Sie sind auf Seite 1von 334

BY

FRANZ ROSENTHAL

SECOND R E V ISE D EDITIO N

L E ID E N

L, j, H K i L l

1968
FOREWORD TO THE SECOND EDITION

Muslim historiography, hke any other im portant subject, adm its


of m any and va stly different kinds of treatm ent. Instead of a new
edition, an entirely new w ork m ight have been w ritten, and this
m ight have pleased critics, and the author himself, much better.
However, the present volum e is m erely a second edition. It shows
no really m ajor changes. Minor additions and corrections are quite
numerous. There is only one addition of some size, th at is, the
chapter dealing w ith a l-ljis m ethodology of historical writing.
The first edition was published in 1952. W ork on it was begun
almost im m ediately after the end of the Second W orld W ar. In
retrospect, it is clear th at the moment was unusually favorable to
the w riting of a w ork of this kind. Scholarly a ctiv ity had naturally
slackened considerably during the great upheaval. A satisfactory
up-to-date bibliography of both W estern and Oriental publications
on Muslim historiography existed in Brockelm anns GeschicMe der
arahischen Litteratur. A bove all, two m ajor developm ents of
tremendous importance for Oriental studies that had been long in
the m aking reached their final stage, which at the same time
signified a new beginning, only w ith the end of the W ar. One of
them has been the astounding perfection reached b y the means of
communication of all kinds. No corner of the earth is now too
remote for the potential and, more often than not, actual partici
pation in scholarly work, the publishing of research and the editing
of texts. The other developm ent, concerning in particular the
Muslim world, is the undeniable fact that the gap which until recent
years did exist between W estern Orientalism and the occupation
of Easterners w ith their own culture has been closed. Publications
b y Near and Middle E astern scholars on Islam ic subjects m ay,
from the point of view of creative scholarship, be good, or bad, or
indifferent, but w hatever it m ay be, they can no longer be disre
garded as was largely possible up to the tim e of the Second W orld
Copyright 1968 by E. J. B rill, L eiden, N etherlands W ar.
A l l rights reserved. N o part o f this book may be reproduced W hile these developm ents are to be w arm ly welcom ed and raise
or translated in any form , by print, photoprint, m icrofilm or even greater hopes for the future, th ey will pose certain problems,
any other means w ithout written perm ission from the publisher
and th ey have already caused some difficulties in the preparation of
PRINTED IN THE NETHERLANDS this new edition. Heroic and quite successful attem pts are being
VI FO R EW O R D FO R EW O RD VII

undertaken b y individual scholars and scholarly organizations inform ation requested in connection with the m aterial contained in
in order to bring bibliographical order into w hat appears to be one of his works, because authors custom arily consult all the
a growing chaos created b y the publication explosion. H owever, relevant literature at the tim e of w riting and then forget about it.
there is no single reference w ork th at could take the place of G A L This could hardly be called the proper scholarly attitude. However,
for the purposes of the present w ork.i Bibliographical references w ith all the checking and re-checking I did, I have to adm it th at I
have, therefore, been added, and new editions have often been was not able to go over all the m aterial I had used in the first place
mentioned. This was done somewhat haphazardly. N ot too much and to re-examine it afresh.
should be read into m y mentioning one edition while seem ingly This second edition thus shares with the original w ork some
ignoring another. A n element of mere chance, such as the availa shortcomings of which I am as fu lly aware now as I was then.
b ility of a certain t e x t publication, m ay be responsible. The fact of Perhaps, it will one d ay be replaced b y something more perfect.
a vailab ility has also played some role in the utilization of research U ntil then, it is hoped that m aking the work available again in a
published in non-European languages. Here, we face a m ajor slightly im proved form will serve a useful purpose and help toward
problem, however. W e m ay well ask of w hat use it is for the reader a better understanding of that great phenomenon of history that
who is not an Orientalist b y profession to be referred to works in was Muslim historical thinking and writing.
languages not readily comprehensible to him. W hile it is not
absolutely true, it comes quite close to the truth to say that, in FOREWORD
order to understand a work, say, on at-Tabari w ritten in A rabic b y (to the first edition)
a modern scholar, one must know as much A rabic as, or more than,
This book represents the very imperfect execution of what I feel
one needs for reading at-T abaris w ork itself. The number of
w as a very good intention. It is no exhaustive history of Muslim
W esterners interested in historical studies who possess such knowl
historiography, as its title says, but, at best, an attem pt to promote
edge and would be able to m ake use of the research b y modern
the understanding of the basic problems of Muslim historiography.
E astern scholars seems as y et to be very small. I do not profess to
I hope th at it will not be considered unw orthy of the m aterial
know any real solution to the universal dilemma posed b y the
support I received in w riting it. The John Simon Guggenheim
increasingly m ultilingual character of modern scholarship.
Foundation granted me a fellowship which enabled me to visit
This history of Muslim historiography was m eant to be an attem pt
England, France, and E gyp t, and to use the great libraries in
to see Muslim historiography as a whole, as it presents itself to
Oxford, Paris, Cairo, and Alexandria, aided b y the never failing
someone not content w ith adm iring outstanding achievem ents
cooperation of the librarians in their charge. The Hebrew Union
selected arbitrarily or looking into particular niches and corners but
College in Cincinnati, to whose facu lty I then belonged, granted
eager to gain a well-balanced appreciation of a large branch of
me a one-year paid leave of absence. Despite all this generous
learning w ith all its characteristic trium phs and failures. Such an
assistance, I h ave b y no means been able to avail m yself of the
approach does not lend itself very well to subsequent patching.
m any aids to scholarly work which modern inventions make
I suspect th at some of the m aterial added here would h ave been
accessible but, alas!, so inaccessible to the povre scoler. I regret
discarded like so much else, if it had been available for scrutiny at
this; yet, knowing th at scholarship did not in the past, and, I
the outset together w ith all the rest. I even suspect th a t some of
trust, never will in the future depend upon com plete library
the added references to older publications were considered b y me
collections, microfilms and airplanes, I venture to present here
before and rejected. A certain scholar, we are told b y as-Safadi
w hatever and however little I have to say.
(as quoted b y Ibn Tulun, Luma'-dt, 64, Damascus 1348, referring to
Badr-ad-din Ibn an-Nahwiyah) was unable to give additional

^ E n tries for historians in the second edition of the Encyclopaedia of Islam , which began
to appear in 1954, are n a tu ra lly brief and restricted in number. W hile it is m ainly the author who speaks in the first part, Muslim
V III FO R EW O R D

students of historiography are given the word in the second part.


It contains a translation of
TABLE OF CONTENTS
1 a l-K a fiy a jis Short Work on Historiography,
2 as-Sahaw is O fen Denunciation of the Critics of the H istorians; Foreword .............................................................................................. v
3 The sections on historiography from T askop riizM eh s K ey to Bibliographical references ............................................................... x iv
Happiness.
P A R T ONE
These three works represent the tw o extant complete system atic I Introductory remarks on history and historiography. . . 3
treatm ents of historiography b y Muslims, and a late reflex of them 1. The objective of a w ork on Muslim historiography. . 3
from an encyclopedia. It m ight have been appropriate to include 2. The concept of history, Muslim and modern ............. 8
a translation of the old and invaluable bibliography of A rabic I I B ackground and e n v iro n m e n t.............................................. 18
historical works, the section on historians in Ibn an-N adim s 1. H istorical consciousness in pre-Islam ic A rabia ......... 18
(tenth century) Fihrist, with its im portant data concerning the 2. The historical outlook of M u h a m m a d ............................ 24
early stages of the publication of historical works in Islam. Such a 3. The position of history in Muslim scholarship and
translation would have shown the contrast th at exists between e d u c a tio n .............................................................................. 30
the Fihrist and the later theoretical discussions of historiography. 4. The Muslim h is to r ia n ......................................................... 54
It would have offered a good illustration of the developm ent of
I I I The basic forms of Muslim historiography ...................... 66
Muslim historical thinking. Such a translation was om itted here
1. Habar history ...................................................................... 66
because it is hoped that the new edition of the Fihrist b y J. F u c k
2. The annalistic form ........................................................... 71
which has been announced for such a long time will even tually
3. Lesser forms of historical periodization ...................... 87
appear and th at then the whole work, including the section on the
a. D ynastic h isto rio g ra p h y .............................................. 87
historians, w ill be translated and annotated. ^
b. The tabaqdt d iv is io n ....................................................... 93
Since unpublished m aterial is often referred to in the course of
c. The genealogical a rra n g e m e n t................................... 95
the work, it seemed advisable to publish the original text of at least
some of that m aterial. The third part serves that purpose. It contains IV The contents of historical w o r k s ......................................... 99
only one complete text, th at of a l-K M iy ajis Muhtasar. A ll the 1. G enealogy ............................................................................ 99
other works, I hope, w ill soon find their editors. 2. B iography ............................................................................ 100
3. Geography and c o s m o g ra p h y ......................................... 106
^ B . D o d g e has been w orking on a translation of the F ihrist for a num ber of years.
T h e A rab ic translator of the first edition of the present w ork, SA lih A h m a d a l - ' A l i ,
4. A strology ............................................................................. no
has added the h istorical titles from the F ihrist to the translation, 273-316 (B agdad 1963). 5. P h ilo s o p h y ............................................................................ 113
6. Political and social science .............................................. 115
* *
* 7. The use of documents, inscriptions, and c o in s ........... 118
V The m ixed forms of historical w riting .............................. 129
The m anuscript of this second edition was subm itted to the 1. The o r ig in s ............................................................................ 129
Publisher in A pril, 1964. The va st num ber of im portant public
2. W orld histories...................................................................... 133
ations th at have appeared since th at date could, if at all, be used 3. Local h is to r ie s ...................................................................... 150
only for additions in the proofs. 4. Contem porary history and memoirs ............................ 172
V I A rtistic forms of historical w r i t i n g ..................................... 176
1. The use of rhym ed prose {saj^)....................................... 176
2. The use of verse .................................................................. 179
TA BLE OF CO N TEN TS TA B LE OF CONTENTS XI

V I I The historical novel ............................................................. i86 X I As-Sahaw is IHdn [cont.)


V I I I A n evaluation of Mushm h isto rio g ra p h y ........................ 194 I. A linguistic definition of ta^'rih .......................... ... 271
II. A definition of ta^rih as a technical term . . . . 273
P A R T TW O III. The object of history ............................................... 273
IV . The usefulness of h isto ry ....................................... ... 273
I X A l-Ijis T u h fa h ....................................................................... 201 V. The goal of the occupation w ith h isto ry .............. 332
1. In tro d u c tio n ...................................................................... 201 V I. The legal classification of h is t o r y ......................... 332
2. Translation ................................................................... .. . 205 V II. The evidence in favor of h i s t o r y ........................ ... 338
A u th ors in tr o d u c tio n .................................................... 205 V III. The blameworthiness of the critics of history . 338
First c h a p te r ...................................................................... 206 IX . The qualifications required of h is to r ia n s ............ 358
Second c h a p t e r ................................................................. 207 X . The introduction of the Muslim e r a ..................... 378
Third c h a p t e r ................................................................... 208 X I. The works on history ............................................... 388
Fourth c h a p te r ............................................................... . 208 A . H istorical works according to ad-D ahabis
F ifth chapter ................................................................... 213 c la s s ific a tio n .......................................................... 388
Sixth ch ap ter...................................................................... 213 1. Muhammad ................................................ ... 393
In tro d u c tio n ................................................................. 214 2. Stories of the p r o p h e ts ............................ ... 403
First section................................................................... 214 3. The men around M uham m ad................. ... 404
Second section ............................................................. 216 4. The c a lip h s .................................................. ... 406
Third section ............................................................... 216 5. The kings of Isla m ..................................... ... 411
Fourth section ............................................................. 226 6. W a z ir s .............................................................. 412
F ifth s e c t io n ................................................................. 232 7. Secretaries .................................................. ... 414
Sixth s e c tio n ................................................................. 235 8. Am irs .............................................................. 4^4
Seventh section ........................................................... 239 9. J u r is t s .............................................................. 414
E ighth section ............................................................. 239 10. Q uran re a d e r s ............................................... 420
Ninth section ....................................... ....................... 240 11. Hadit e x p e r t s .................................................421
Tenth section................................................................. 242 12. Hadit scholars.................................................421
E leventh section ......................................................... 242 13. H isto ria n s.................................................... ...422
Tw elfth s e c tio n ............................................................. 242 14. G ra m m a ria n s.................................................422
Seventh c h a p t e r ..................................... .......................... 244 15. L ittera teu rs.................................................. ...423
E ighth c h a p t e r ................................................................. 244 16. Lexicographers ......................................... ...423
Ninth c h a p te r ................................................................... 244 17. P o e t s ............................................................. ...423
X A l-K M iya jis Short Work on H istoriography................. 245 18. Servants of God and S M s .........................425
1. In tro d u c tio n ...................................................................... 245 19. J u d g e s ........................................................... ...427
2. Translation ............................................................. .. . . . . 249 20. Singers ............................................................428
First c h a p te r ...................................................................... 249 21. A s r d f ............................................................. ...429
Second c h a p t e r ................................................................. 255 22. Noble persons ...............................................429
Third c h a p t e r ................................................................... 261 23. Quick-w itted persons....................................429
X I As-Sahaw is / 7 aw ................................................................... 263 24. Intelligent persons ................................... ...429
1. In tro d u c tio n ...................................................................... 263 25. Physicians .................................................. ... 4^9
2. Translation ........................................................................ 269 26. A s a r i t e s .......................................................... 4^9
X II TA B LE OF C O NTENTS T A B L E OF C O N TEN TS X III

X I A s-Sahaw is IHdn [cont.) PART TH REE


27. I n n o v a to r s .................................................. 430
1 Ibn Farigun, Jaw am i' al-Hilum ................................................ 539
28. S ia h ............................................................... 431
2 Fahr-ad-din ar-Razi, Hadd^ig al-anw dr................................... 54
29. Misers and spongers................................... 432
3 Ibn.a l-Adim, Bugyat at-talah.................................................. .... 541
30. Courageous men ....................................... 432
4 Ibn Sina, Sifd^................................................................................... 54 ^
31. The one-eyed, weak-sighted, Wind, and
5 Al-M aqrizi, al-Habar 'an al-ba sar.............................................. 543
hunchbacked................................................ 432
6 Qud^mah, H a r d j........................................................................ .... 543
32. M o n k s ........................................................... 432
7 Ibn.al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talab.................................................. .... 544
33. Those killed b y the Q ura n .................... 432
8 A bu Z a k a riya al-Azdi, History of M o su l............................ ....545
34. L o v e r s ........................................................... 433
9 A l-Cum ri, Dahirah ........................................................................54^
B. Historical works according to as-Sahawis 10 A l-K afiya ji, al-Muhtasar f i Him at-ta^rih .......................... ....547
classification ...................................................... 433 1 1 A d-D ahabi, M u'jam and Tabaqdt al-qurrd^ ..........................580
1. Muhammad and the p ro p h e ts ............... 433 12 Ibn.H ajar, In b d ^ ........................................................................ ....5^2
2. The men around M uham m ad................. 433 13 Ibn al-Mulaqqin, 'I q d ............................................................... .... 5^4
3. The a h d f .................................................... 433 14 Ibn A b i 1-Mansur, R is d la h ...................................................... ....5^4
4. The Qurasites and other special famihes 434 15 As-Sahaw i, al-Qawl a l-m u n bi.................................................. ....5^4
5. C lie n ts ........................................................... 435 16 As-Sahawi, al-Jawdhir wa-d-durar..............................................$86
6. Reliable and w eak transm itters............. 435 17 As-Silafi,.M u 'ja m ........................................................................ ....610
7. Men connected w ith the science of hadit 446
8. Mu'-jams and masyahahs ........................ 451 Index of proper n a m e s ..........................................................................6 11
9. W orks on men of a particular n a m e ... 454
10. Macrobiotics and young men ............... 454
11. W orks on men of a particular period or
d y n a s t y ......................................................... 454
12. Biographies of particular individuals . . 455
13. Local h is to r ie s ............................................ 457
14. Geographical works ................................. 486
15. S traigh t" historical w o r k s .................... 488
a. Histories of e v e n t s ............................... 488
b. Histories of events and dates of death 490
c. Biographical works ............................ 499
X II. A n alphabetical list of h is to r ia n s ...................... 501
d. W orks on dates of death .................. 511
e. Miscellaneous works. T r a v e l s ........... 515
X III. The chief representatives of personality
c r itic is m ................................................................... 516
X I I TaskopriizM eh on h isto rio g ra p h y ..................................... 530
1. In tro d u ctio n ........................................................................ 530
2. T ra n sla tio n .......................................................................... 531
B IBL IO G R A PH IC A L R E F E R E N C E S XV

B ar th o ld , W ., M usulm anskiy M ir. N auka i skola (Petersburg 1922), is said to contain


a chapter on h istoriography (cf. Islam ica, IV , 138 f., 1930).
------, Turkestan down to the Mongol Invasion (London 1928, E . J . W. Gibb M em. Series,
BIBLIOGRAPHICAL REFERENCES N .S. 5).
B e c k e r , C . H ., Beitrdge zur Geschichte Agyptens unter dem Islam , I, 1-31 (Strassburg 1902):

Som e of the abbreviation s used in the footnotes w ill be found listed below , p. 201, n. i . Zur Geschichtsschreibung unter den Fatim iden.
In general, it has been thought advisable to dispense w ith abbreviations in the references C a h e n , C., La Syrie du Nord a I'epoque des Croisades, 33-93 (Paris 1940). Cf. also his
as far as possible. References to m anuscripts, if preceded b y B od leian , are to the Bodleian Chroniqucs arabes concernant la Syrie, IEgypte et la Mesopotamie, iix Revue des Etudes
L ib rary in O xford ; if preceded b y P aris, to the Bibliothfeque N ationale in P aris; if Islamiques, X , 333-62 (1936).
preceded b y C airo, to the E gy p tia n L ib rary in Cairo, w hich also preserves the T a ym u r C a s k e l , W ., A ijd m al-^Arab, in Islam ica, I I P , 1-99 ( i 9 3 i)-
a d - D u r i , ' A b d - a l - ' A z i z , Baht f t naPat Him at-ta^rih Hnd al-'-Arab (Beirut i960).
collection; and if preceded b y A lexan d ria, to the M unicipal L ib rary in A lexan d ria, E g y p t.
F r i e d l a e n d e r , I., Muhammedanische Geschichtskonstruktionen, in Beitrdge zur Kenntnis
Those are the m anuscripts m ost frequ en tly quoted. T h e num bers are the ones according to
w hich the m anuscripts can be ordered in the various libraries. O n ly in the case o f Paris des Orients, IX , 17-34 (1910).
do these num bers correspond to those of the published catalogues. In the other cases, the G a b r i e l i , F ., Storici arabi delle Crociate (Turin 1957)-

catalogue num ber can u su ally be found w ithout m uch d ifficu lty in G A L . I t m ay be noted ------, L Isldm nella scoria, 153 ff. (Bari 1966).
th at 3. G A L reference to a particular w ork according to b oth the old and the new catalogue Gibb, H. A. R . , T a M h , in Supplement to E l , 233-45 (Leiden-London 1938), reprinted in his
of the E g y p tia n L ib rary u su ally means on ly one and the sam e m anuscript. Studies on the Civilization of Islam , 108-37 (Boston 1962).
It was also th ought superfluous here to give a list of the w orks used. Such a list w ould G o i t e i n , s . D. F., Introdu ction to V'ol. 5 of al-Baladuri, Kitdb al-Ansdb, pp. 14-24 (Jeru

have been v ery long, b u t its length w ould, I am afraid, be alm ost equaled b y th at of a salem 1936).
list of those works w hich I w as not able to consult since th ey are unpublished and no G o l d z i h e r , L , a tortenetirds az arab irodalomban (Budapest 1895) (not seen).

m anuscripts of them were accessible; which I w as able b riefly to read in m anuscript form G r u n e b a u m , G. E . v o n . Medieval Islam , 275-87 (Chicago 1946), on literature and history.

while their editions were n ot at m y disposal; which, including some com m on reference German trans., 329-75 (Z iirich-Stuttgart 1963).
w orks, I w as able to stu d y on ly sporadically through securing a cop y of them through G u id i , I., L historiographic chez les Semites, in Revue Biblique, I I I , 509-19 (1906).
uU erlibrary loan or travelin g to one of the libraries w hich own them ; and which, though H a m e e d u d - D i n , Historians of Afghan Rule in India, in J A O S , L X X X I I , 44-51 (1962).

published, did not exist in the libraries where I had hoped to fin d them . There w as a strong H a r d y , P ., Historians of Medieval India (London i960).
H o r o v i t z , J., The Earliest Biographies of the Prophet and their Authors, in Islam ic Culture,
tem ptation to stu d the footnotes w ith continuous references to w orks w hich I w ould h ave
consulted if th ey h ad been available, b u t I dispensed w ith such rem arks, tru stin g th at m issing I, 535-59 (1927); II, 22-50, 164-82, 495-526 (1928).
references to certain sources w ill not be ascribed to ignorance or carelessness on m y part. H u r g r o n j e , C . s ., M ekka, II, 216-18 (The H ague 1889).
I v A N O W , W ., Ism aili Tradition concerning the Rise of the Fatim ids (London, etc., 1942,
T he m ain biographical inform ation about the in dividuals m entioned is as a rule given
in connection w ith their first occurrence in the translation of the IHdn, cf. the Index. Islam ic Research Association Series, 10), introduction.
T h e general works on historiography, in stru ctive though th ey are in connection w ith K h a d d u r i , M a j i d , The Law of War and Peace in Islam , 121-24 (London 1940/41): A note

the special field of M uslim historiography, p a y e xtrem ely scant atten tion to the la tter. T he on A rab ic historiography.
sixteen th -cen tu ry Frenchm an Jean Bodin had a ch apter on A rab historians in his Method K r a m e r s , J. H ., Over de geschiedsschrijving bij de osmaansche Turken (Leiden 1922). E nglish

for the E asy Comprehension of History. B u t the leading Lehrhuch der historischen Methode translation in his Analecta Orientalia, I, 3-21 (Leiden 1954-56).
und der Geschichtsphilosophie b y E . B e r n h e i m , of w hich I had the third and fourth edition L e v i - P r o v e n q a l , E ., Les Historiens des Chorfa (Paris 1922).

at m y disposal (Leipzig 1903), ju st had a footnote on Ibn ^ a ld u n (p. 126, n. 2). R. F l i n t s ------ , L historien de ITslam (1936, Univ. d Alger, Seance . . . de rentree des Facultes, X I V ,
H istory of the Philosophy o f History (New Y o rk 1894) has a little more. F l i n t p ays m uch 7-24. N ot seen).
atten tion to Ibn H aldun, who has also found the atten tion of other students of the theory L e w i s , B., and H o l t , P. M . (eds.), Historians of the M iddle East (O xford U n iversity Press

of historiography, such as R. A l t a m i r a , Cuestiones modernas de historia (Madrid 1904). 1962).


H. A . B a r n e s , in his History o f Historical Writing 93-97 (Norman, O kla., 1937), m entions L i c h t e n s t a d t e r , I., Arabic and Islam ic Historiography, in The Moslem World, X X X V ,

some of the im portant Muslim historians, and works on Spanish historiography, such as 126-32 (1945).
B. S a n c h e z A l o n s o s H istoria de la historiografia espanola (Madrid 1941-44), n atu ra lly M a k k i , M a h m u d A., Egipto y los origenes de la historiografia arabigo-espafiola, in Revista

include sections on Spanish Muslim historians, b u t this is about all. It is safe to sa y th at del Instituto de Estudios Islamicos, V, 157-248 ( i 9 5 7 )-
none of the num erous and often excellent works of the historians of historiograp hy says M a r g o l i o u t h , D. s ., Lectures on Arabic Historians (Calcutta 1930).
anyth in g of im portance about Muslim historical writing. O b e r m a n n , j . , Early Islam, in O b e r m a n n (ed.). The Idea o f History in the Ancient Near

The follow ing v ery selective list contains a few works, articles, and opinions concerning East, 237-310 (New H aven i 955 )-
general problem s of Muslim historiography. Com prehensive histories of A rab ic literature P a r e t, R . , D ie Geschichte des Islams im Spiegel der arabischen Volksliteratur (Tiibingen 1927,
have not been included. It should also be kep t in m ind th at all m ajor works on Muslim Philosophic und Geschichte, 13).
h istory w ritten in recent years b y trained historians con tain su rveys of their sources which P e t e r s e n , E . L., Historieskrivning i Islam s klassiske Periode, in Historisk 1 idsskrift, X I,

are valuable contributions to the understanding of M uslim historiography. F or general V, 455-73 (Copenhagen 1958).
bibliographical su rveys and for detailed studies of certain periods of Muslim historiography, ------ , ^AM and Mu^dwiya in Early Arabic Tradition: Studies on the Genesis and Growth o f
cf. also below, p. 5. Islam ic Historical Writing (Copenhagen 1964).
P h il ip s , C. H. (ed.). Historians of India, Pakistan andCeylon (Oxford U n iversity Press 1961).
A b b o t t , N., Studies in Arabic Literary Pa pyri I : Historical Texts (Chicago 1957). P o n s B o i g u e s , F., Ensayo bio-bibliogrdfico sobre los historiadores y gcografos ardbigo-
a l - 'A r in i, a s -S a y y i d a l -B az, Mu^arrihu al-hurub as-salibtyah (Cairo 1962). espanoles (Madrid 1898), cf., especially, the Conclusion, 363-87, and Apcndice B,
A s h t o r , K ., Some Unpublished Sources for the Bahrt Period, in Scripta Hierosolymitana, I X , 397-402 (que h ayan opinado los escritores m usulm anes aeerca de la historia, su utilidad
11-30 (1961). y excelencia, su earaeter cientifico).
A v a u , K a m i l , Die Anfdnge der arabischen Geschichtsschreibung, in Geist und Gesellschaft, R i c h t e r , G., Das Geschichtsbild der arabischen Historiker des Mittelalters ('liibingen 1933,
K . Breysig Festschrift, 111, 35-48 (Breslau, n .y., 1928?). Philosophic und Geschichte, ^t,). English translation in Islam ic Culture, X X X I I I , 240-50
B a b i n g e r , F., D ie Geschichtsschreiber der Osmanen und ihre Werke (Leipzig 1927). (1959)-
XVI BIBL IO G R A PH IC A L R E F E R E N C E S

S a c h a u , E ., Introdu ction to V ol. I l l , i , of Ibn S a d, at-Tabaqdt, p. 1 3 ff. (Leiden 1904).


, Studien zur dltesten Geschichtsiiberlieferung der Araber, in M itteilungen des Seminars
fiir or. Sprachen, Westasiatische Studien, V II , 154-96 (1904), in spite of the title,
contains n othing b u t some biographies of early transm itters in connection w ith Ibn S a'd .
S a l i b i , K . s ., Maronite Historians of Medieval Lebanon (Beirut 1959).
S a u v a g e t , J ., and C a h e n , C ., Introduction d Ihistoire de VOrient M usulm an (Paris 1961),
E n glish translation : Introduction to the History o f the M uslim East (B erkeley and Los
A ngeles 1965).
S e m s e d d i n , M u h a m m a d , Islamda tarih we-miiwerrihler (Istanbul 1340-42).
SO M O G YI, J. DE, The Kitdb al-muntazam o f Ibn al-Jauzi, in J R A S , 1932, 49-76, especially
p. 4 9 -
------ , The Development o f Arabic Historiography, in Journal of Sem itic Studies, III , 3 7 3 -8 7
(1958)-
S p u l e r , B ., Islam ische und abendldndische Geschichtschreibung, in Saeculum. V I, 1 2 5 - 3 7
(1955)-
S t o r e y , C. A ., Persian Literature, a bio-bibliographical survey (London 1935 ff.), cf. below,
p. 4, n. 3.
T o g a n , a . Zeki V elidi, Tarihde usul (Istanbul 1950).
------ , Kritische Geschichtsauffassung in der islamischen Welt des Mittelalters, in Proceedings
o f the Twenty-Second Congress of Orientalists, I, 76-85 (Istanbul 1953).
WOSTENFELD, F ., D ie Geschichtschreiber der Araber und ihre Werke (Gottingen 1882, A u s
deni X X V I I I . und X X I X . Bande der Abh. der k. Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu
Gottingen).
Z iY A D A H , M . M u s t a f a , Al-Mu^arrihun f i M isr f t l-qarn al-hdmis '^aiar al-mtlddt (Cairo
PART ONE
1949, 2nd ed., Cairo 1954).
CH A PTE R ONE

INTRODUCTORY REMARKS ON HISTORY


AND HISTORIOGRAPHY

I T H E O B J E C T IV E O F A W O R K O N M USLIM
H IS T O R IO G R A P H Y

W riting about the w riting of history b y any particular group or


in any particular period means only one th in g : To show the develop
m ent which the concept of history underwent in the thinking and
in the scholarly approach of the historians of th at particular group
or period, and to describe the origin, growth, or decline of the
forms of literary expression which were used for the presentation
of historical material.^
I t is thus perfectly clear w hat this book will not be and cannot
be, but, in order to dispel any justified or unjustified expectations,
some of the things which will not be found here m ay be mentioned.
The science of Islam is a com parative newcomer in W estern
scholarship. E ven b y a liberal count, one has to give it less than a
hundred years, beginning w ith such men as A. von K r e m e r , Th.
N o l d e k e , or I. G o ld z ih e r . This compares w ith the more than
four hundred years of classical philology and the two hundred
and fifty years of the science of h i s t o r y . ^ The real objectives of
the science of Islam are, therefore, sometimes obscured b y the (in
them selves very important) secondary requirem ents of a grow ing
and as yet not fu lly developed discipline.
This book is not a bibliography of Muslim historians. The
existence of full bio-bibliographical inform ation about Muslim
historians is an indispensable condition for the task at hand. A
first attem pt to dress a comprehensive list of A rabic historians
and their works was undertaken b y F. W u st e n f e l d in 1882.^
^ One m ay com pare B. C r o c e s definition, of the history of historiography, in Teoria
e storia della storiografia, 156 f. (third ed., Bari 1927).
* Cf. F r . M e i n e c k e , D ie Entstehung des Historismus (M unich-Berlin 1936).
D ie Geschichtschreiber der Araber und ihre Werke (Gottingen 1882. A u s dem X X V I I I .
und X X I X . Banda der A bh . der k. Gesellschaft der W issenschaften zu Gottingen).
IN TR O D U C T O R Y REM ARKS TH E O B JE C T IV E

H is Geschichtschreiher der Amher was, in general, not of the same sufficient strength.^ It cannot be said, however, th at the existence
high q uah ty as his other pubhcations. Y et, it was a highly respect of the G A L in its present form and of the other bibliographical
able achievem ent in its time. However, especially owing to our works would m ake the compilation of a special (bio-)bibliography
greatly increased knowledge of the m anuscript resources of the of Muslim historians a superfluous enterprise. Such a work remains
libraries all over the world, it is now hopelessly antiquated. A an im portant desideratum. Using the G A L as a basis, it would be
pioneer w ork on the Spanish historians, which retains a certain use necessary to omit the non-historical m aterial from B r o c k e l m a n n s
fulness, was published b y F. P ons B o ig u es in 1898.^ In the same historical sections and to collect the historical titles which are
year, w ith the appearance of C. B r o c k e lm a n n s Geschichte der dispersed over the different sections of the G A L . The accuracy of
ayaUschen Littemtur [GAL), in 1898-1902, a safe foundation was each statem ent would have to be checked. The interpretation,
laid lor our knowledge of Muslim historiography.^ For Persian and especially of the biographical data, would have to be improved.
Turkish historiography, we also have quite exhaustive bibliograph A bove all, it would be necessary to collect all the inform ation about
ical surveys in the works of C. A. S t o r e y and F. B a b in g e r .^ historians and their works that have not come down to us and are
In its sections on the historians, the G A L provides excellent and known only through bibliographical reference and through quo
in its time exhaustive inform ation on those historians whose works tations. ^ A very rewarding task is w aiting here for a future scholar,
have survived in m anuscripts and printed books. The relevant preferably one who has constant access to a large library and to the
m aterial which escaped B r o c k e l m a n n s attention is very httle. It m anuscript collections of the Muslim countries.
m ay be doubted that, if it were possible to follow up all the V alu able bibliographical studies on various segm ents of Muslim h istoriography are being
references of the G A L (as well as of S t o r e y and B a b in g e r ), any published w ith increasing frequency in Muslim countries. Cf., for instance, the guide to
M oroccan historical literature b y ' A b d - a s - S a l a m I b n S u d a h , DaVil mu'^arrih al-Magrib al-
omission of real importance for the understanding of the history of Aqsd (Tetuan 1369/1950); the su rv ey of Dam ascene historians b y S a l a h - a d - d i n a l -
Muslim historiography would be discovered. For the purpose of the M u n a j j i d , Al-Mu^arrihun ad-DimasqtyUn, in Revue de I'Inst. des M anuscrits A r., II, 63-145
(1375/1956) (also published separately, Cairo 1956), and idem, al-Mu^arrihUn ad-DimasqtyAn
present book, the G A L offers a bibliographical foundation of ft l-^ahd al-^Utmdm (Beirut 1964); the stu d y on fifteen th -cen tu ry E gyp tia n historians
b y M. M. Z i y a d a h (above, p. X V I ); the rather detailed discussion of 'Ira q i
historians (with the inclusion of m an y non-'Iraqis) b y ' A b b a s a l - ' A z z a w i , at-Ta^rtf bi-l-
1 Ensayo bio-bibliogrdfico sobre los historiadores y geografos ardbigo-espanoles (Madrid mu^arriMn, I: F t 'ahd al-M ugul wa-t-Turkumdn (Bagdad 1367/1957); as w ell as special
1898). Som e tim e before, a check list of Spanish historical works had been prepared b y catalogues of historical literature, such as the catalogue of m icrofilm ed m anuscripts in the
F. C o D E R A which w as published in print b y him and in lith ograph y b y J . R i b e r a . It possession of the Arab League en titled Fihris al-mahtutdt al-musawwarah, II, i (by L u t f i
was m istakenly considered b y G. K a m p f f m e y e r as an old list (of the fourteenth century) A b d - a l - B a d i ') and n (by F u An S a y y i d ) (Cairo n. y. [1956-57]); Y . a l - ' I s s s catalogue of

and treated b y him under the title of E ine alte Liste arabischer Werke zur Geschichte Spaniens the h istorical m anuscripts in the Zahiriyah (Dam ascus 1366/1947); K . ' A w w a d on the
und Nordwestafrikas, in Mitteilungen des Seminars fiir or. Sprachen, Westas. Studien, I X , historical m anuscripts in the 'Ira q i Museum, in Sumer, X I I I , 40-82 ( i 937 )- F or Turkish
74-110 (1906). K a m p f f m e y e r corrected his error himself, ibid., X , 296-98 (1907), and historiography, one m ay m ention Istanbul KiitUphaneleri Tarih-Cografya Yazmalari
O L Z , X , 38-41 (1907). Kataloglan, I : TUrkfe Tarih Yazm alari (Istanbul 1943)-
Vols. I-II, W eim ar 1898-1902. Supplement, Vols. I-I I I, Leiden 1937-42. A new edition Th e scholarly stu d y of historical works w ritten b y Muslim authors of the modern period
of the original tw o volum es (Zweite den Supplementbdnden angepasste Auflage) appeared in is, as we w ould expect, also growing rapidly. Cf., for instance, j A M A L - A D - n i N a s - S a y y a l ,
Leiden 1943-49- A supplem ent dealing w ith the works preserved in m anuscripts in the at-T aM h wa-l-nm^arrihim f t M isr f t l-qarn at-tdsi'^ 'asar (Cairo 1958). There is a tendency
libraries of T u rk e y and some A rabic countries is in preparation b y F u a t S e z g i n . The to see these works as being som ehow connected with the great tradition of m edieval Muslim
catalogues of m anuscript collections in the W est freq u en tly d evote special sections to the historiography, cf., for instance, A . G. C i i e j n e , The Use of History by Modern Arab Writers,
h istorical literature. A separate catalogue is th at b y A . I. M i k h a y l o v a for the h istorical in The M iddle East Journal, X I V , 382-96 (i960), and Autobiography and Memoirs in M odem
m anuscripts in the In stitu t N arodov A sii (Moscow 1965). Arab Historiography, in The M uslim World, L II, 31-38 (1962); G. M. H a d d a d , Modern
Persian Literature, a bio-bibliographical survey. V ol. I, Section II, fasc. i , A : General Arab Historians and World History, in The M uslim World, LI, 37-43 (1961). F or the w ork
h istory, B : T h e prophets and early Islam (London 1935); fasc. 2, C -L : Special histories of done b y recent Turkish historians, cf. the references in K. K. K e y , A n Outline of Modern
Persia, Central A sia and the rem aining parts of the w orld excep t India (London 1936); Turkish Historiography (Istanbul 1954)-
fasc. 3, M : H isto ry of India (London 1939), N : B iograph y (London 1953, including additions,
corrections, and indexes). Although it was incorporated b y S t o r e y in his Persian
Just as th is book is not concerned with bibliography, it is also
Literature, the w ork b y F. T a u e r , Les M anuscrits persans historiques des bibliotheques de not concerned w ith the reproduction or verbal interpretation of
Stambul, in Archiv Orientdlni, III, 87-118, 303-26, 462-91 (1931), and IV , 92-107, 193-207
(1932), m ay be m entioned here. ^ B u t cf. the foreword to this edition, above, p. V I.
* F . B a b i n g e r , D ie Geschichtsschreiber der Osmanen und ihre Werke (Leipzig 1927). 2 L et it be said right now, how ever, th at in the course of this investigation, I have
Cf. a ls o L. F o r r e r , Handschriften osmanischer Historiker in Istanbul, in Der Islam , X X V I , m ade the experience th at quotations as a rule are little illum inating as to possible peculiari
173-220 (1942). ties in the form and contents of lost historical works.
IN T R O D U C T O R Y REM ARK S TH E O BJE C T IV E

the contents of Muslim historical works. A n author on Rom an of information. On the other hand, the fam e of later historians who
historiography, for instance, would proceed on the assumption became known to the W est at an early date, such as al-Makin
th at the works he discusses are known to the reader or m ay be (d. 1273) in the seventeenth and A b u 1-F id a (d. 1331) in the
consulted b y him if he so desires. The same assum ption m ust eighteenth century, declined greatly after the sources they had used
be made b y the author of a w ork on Muslim historiography, or became known. Such considerations are germane to the historian
he would not be able to complete his task successfully. T he sad but th ey have no bearing upon the judgm ent of the critic of
fact, however, is th at in his case, the assumption is not true. M any historiography who would not prefer an ancient author m erely
of the works, even basic ones, are not w idely known, nor is it alw ays because of his value as a source, or disregard a later author m erely
easy or possible to gain access to them. The non-Arabist, indeed, because his factual inform ation duplicates th at of older works.
has com paratively little opportunity to achieve a correct apprecia In short, the question to be answered here is n o t: W hat is the
tion of the contents of Muslim historical literature b y turning to historical importance of something an author says?, but: W hat did
the existing translations, as there are not enough of them. This he do w ith w hatever inform ation was available to him ?
situation reveals the need for a wider dissemination of Muslim This book is also no com parative stud y of Muslim historiography
historical literature but the defect could not and should not be and ancient or m edieval W estern historiography. Such a com
remedied b y the present book. p arative stu d y should be the subject of a separate work, Muslim
Furtherm ore, we are not concerned here w ith the value of historiography must first be understood as the self-contained
historical w orks as source m aterial for the w riting of the history of intellectual growth it is. O nly occasional com parative references
a particular period. There m ay be a certain truth to the contention have been added here as illustrations.
th at the author who possesses the sharpest eye for the tru ly relevant F inally, the present book cannot claim to have taken account
facts and thus gives his w ork the greatest possible value as a of all historical writing done b y MusHms as adherents of the
historical source w ould at the same tim e bring to his w ork the m ost religion of Islam. The term Muslim is here understood in a restricted
original concept of history and the most original mode of presen cultural sense. It refers to the great civilization which took shape
tation. If this is correct in some cases, it certainly is not the general in Dam ascus and B agdad from the seventh century to the tenth
rule. On the other hand, it is definitely correct to say th at w orks of century A .D . Its form ative elements were derived from m any
great im portance as historical sources often are unim portant as civilizations, languages, peoples, and religions. Its m ain vehicle of
exam ples of historical writing. In general, the value of a historical expression was the A rabic language. The predominance of A rabic
w ork as a historical source has no direct relation to its significance can be considered assured also in the case of historiography,
for the history of historiography. ^ although historical works were soon w ritten in the native languages
This holds true, in particular, in the case of Muslim historiography. of individual rulers and regions, and there exist an im portant
The value of a Muslim history as a historical source is conditioned Persian historical literature since the tenth century, beginning
either b y its an tiq u ity and proxim ity to the described events, or b y w ith a free translation of at-T abaris H istory} and a very extensive
the use of ancient or (near-) contem porary works not preserved Turkish historical literature since about the beginning of the
otherwise. The former circum stance is no merit of the historian fifteenth century.^ B y about 1500 or should we say 15 1 7 , the
(unless he were the first to think of the idea of writing contem porary date of the O ttom an conquest of E g y p t the point was reached
history), and the latter a merit only if the choice of the used works w hen this Muslim civilization began to feel the steadily growing
was not obvious. Some of the oldest Muslim historians are valued influence of modern European civilization. Muslim civihzation, and
very h igh ly because th ey are the first to record for us certain items w ith it Muslim historiography, continued to flourish in m any parts
^ T h e w ritin g of h istory and the understanding of h istoriography are two different of the Muslim world w ithout hardly an y changes in its forms of
things. Good historians m ay be poor theoreticians of history. E . M e y e r is a notable
exam p le for the correctness of this statem ent as the readers of his Zu r Thcorie und Methodik 1 C f. S t o r e y , Persian Literature, I, i , n. 2 (London 1927); I I, 61 f f .
der Geschichte (in K lein e Schriften zur Geschichtstheorie, 1-67, H alle 1910) w ill adm it. * C f. B a b i n g e r , Geschichtsschreiber, 10 .
IN T R O D U C T O R Y REM A R K S T H E CONCEPT OF H ISTO RY

expression. It remained especially undisturbed in the m ost con revealing .1 W ith the tremendous upsurge of intellectual and political
servative or least accessible corners of the Muslim world such as a ctiv ity in the Ionian c ity states of the sixth and fifth centuries B .C .,
Morocco and the Yemen. However, there is alw ays the possibility the term LGropiy] that is, the quest for things worth knowing
that w hatever new elements m ay have appeared in Muslim historiog came to be identified w ith the kind of knowledge which was of the
rap h y during the last four hundred years m ight have had their greatest interest for citizens of a tzoKlq: the knowledge of countries,
origin in a conscious or unconscious exposure to occidental influ customs, and political institutions of the present or the past. The
ences. It m ight still be said th at the study of the developm ent of restriction of icrTopiT] to the knowledge of the happenings which
Muslim historical writing during the dawn of European influence accom panied the growth of those phenomena was soon made, and
should not be excluded from a survey of Muslim historiography, the term history in its common meaning was born.
since something might be gained for the understanding of the The Rom ans adopted both the literary form and the word for it.
m edieval Muslim spirit from the works of the tim e of its disinte Historia remained w ith them a learned expression. In its transition
gration. W hether this is correct or not, the w riter of the present into the Rom ance languages, it did not undergo the phonetic
book feels th at the difficulties involved would be too great for his changes which it would have undergone if it had been a word of
lim ited knowledge to master. The lim itations of the authors the spoken everyd ay language. Its m eaning in vulgar usage, how
knowledge also precluded a special treatm ent of Muslim historiog- ever, had already deteriorated in L atin and had taken on m any
graphy in areas of strong cultural autonom y such as India and different shades of m ean in g. Closest among them to its original
Indonesia. In the authors opinion, the inclusion of all these materials m eaning was th at of anecdote, tale, or the English derivation of
and the problems connected w ith them would have shed no addi the word from the French: story.
tional light upon the contours and substance of the great cultural W hen the word eventually regained its scholarly dignity, it was
phenomenon of Muslim historiography and the developm ent it took in an artificially revived form : histoire, history, Historic, istoriya,
during the centuries of its free and independent existence when etc., or in a no less artificial translation of historia into the ver
hundreds of Muslim scholars w rote historical works guided b y their nacular, such as German Geschichte.
particular concept of history. B y th at time, all these words had been filled w ith an entirely
new meaning. H istory now denoted the process according to which
2 T H E C O N C E P T O F H IS T O R Y , M U SLIM A N D M O D E R N a particular object had reached a particular stage in its develop
m ent. The preferred object, in conform ity with the traditional
The vantage point from which the investigation of the history view of history, was man, and, in particular, human political in
of the historiography of a particular group or period m ust needs stitutions and activities. However, the application of the idea
be undertaken is th at of our own view s regarding the function of of history to every conceivable object, animate or inanimate, which
h isto ry and the task of the historian. These views are the product becam e general in the nineteenth century, was quite a logical
of our time, of two and a half centuries of historicism, and th^y are extension. H istory, in this sense, has become an all-inclusive
em inently peculiar to modern W estern civilization. The historiog concept. L ike philosophy, it can claim th at every thing and every
raphy of any group that does not form part of modern W estern a c tiv ity is subject to it and belongs into its s p h e r e .^
civilization is subject to different environmental factors and is con
ditioned b y a very different scale of intellectual values. It will be ^ Cf. K . K e u c k , Historia. Geschichte des Wortes und seiner Bedeutung in der Antike und
in den romanischen Sprachen, E asd etten 1934 (Diss. M unster); H. R u p p and O. K o h le r ,
good to keep this fact in mind throughout our occupation w ith Historia-Geschichte, in Saeculiim, II, 627-38 (1951).
Muslim historiography, and it m ight not be entirely superfluous ^ T h e com parison of h istory and philosophy here should not be understood in the sense
of C r o c e s inherence of philosophy in h istory and h istory in philosophy, op. cit., 71.
to sketch as briefly as possible the difference between the m edieval And, of course, H. S t . J. B o l i n g b r o k e s fam ous: I think th at h istory is philosophy
Muslim and modern W estern concept of history. teaching b y exam p les (Letters on the Study and Use of History, 5, London 1870, cf. also
J. T h . S h o t w e l l , The History of History, 234, N ew Y o rk 1939), is som ething very different.
The sem antic history of the Greek w ord wTopCa is in itself most Challenging rem arks on the difference between the m odern and m edieval concepts of
10 IN T R O D U C T O R Y REM ARK S T H E C O NCEPT OF H ISTO RY II

In a certain, if basically very different, sense, such a wide ex the modern mind, the general concept of history m ay, in theory,
tension of the term history was not unknown in Islam, as the works be extended to include all animate or inanimate matters.
of al-M asudi and al-M utahhars Book of Beginning and History, In the form ation of the modern idea of history, semantic develop
and, especially, al-K M iyajis speculations would seem to indicated m ents have played a significant role. The same was the case in
Nevertheless, it must not be apphed to the subject m atter of the Muslim historiography, although, again, on a very different level.
present investigation. The historian who accepts such a com pre The tw o technical terms b y which the idea of history is commonly
hensive definition of history overlooks the distinction betw een denoted in A rabic are {Him) al-ahbdr and ta^rih. Ahbdr, the plural
history as such and history as the object of historiography.^ The of habar, is the more general term. The etym ology of the root hbr
term history m ay refer both to the process of historical develop is not quite clear. There is no clue to its possible original meaning in
ment and to the description of th at process, two to ta lly different A rabic itself. The evidence of the other Sem itic languages also does
things which all too often are not properly distinguished. E very not perm it a clear-cut decision. However, the suggested connection
little pebble has its own history and is subject to historical processes, of hbr with A kkadian habdru meaning to be noisy, to make noise
but in view of the existence of an uncounted number of pebbles seems more probable than any other combination.^ In historical
and their relative insignificance, it would be absurd to give a times, the A rabic word means inform ation (about remarkable
description of its history and th at of millions of other pebbles and events), and also the events themselves, in which latter meaning
consider it part of historiography. The description of their history, it has a large number of non-technical synonyms. Ahbdr corresponds
worked out in general terms, would no longer be h istory, but to history in the sense of story, anecdote. It does not im ply any
part of some branch of natural science. fixation in time, nor is it ever restricted to mean an organically
H istory, in the narrow sense applicable here, should be defined connected series of events.^ The term later on assumed the addi
as the hterary description of any sustained human a ctiv ity either tional meaning of inform ation about the deeds and sayings of
of groups or individuals which is reflected in, or has influence Muhammad, and, in particular, the ancient Muslim authorities.
upon the developm ent of a given group or individual.^ O nly Together w ith other words such as dtdr, it became in fact sometihng
history in this sense can form the subject of a scholarly discipline of a synonym of hadit.
in its own right, and only this definition of history should be in Ta^rih, which at least from about the ninth century on m ay be
the mind of the person who speaks about historiography, historians, considered the specific technical term for h istory in general, is
and history, though there can be no denying of the fact th at, for
1 Cf. J . J . F i n k e l s t e i n , Hebrew hbr and Sem itic *hbr, in Journal of Biblical Literature,
L X X V , 328-31 (1956). Cf. also The A ssyrian Dictionary, V I, 7 (Chicago i 95f>)-
h istory in the W est m ay be found in W. L a m m e r s (ed.), Gesckichtsdenken und Geschichtsbild Hebrew and R thiopic [hbr) have a root m eaning to join, to con n ect. There also is a
im Mittelalter (D arm stadt 1961). The W estern Middle A ges were so g rea tly preoccupied word m eaning associate, colleague, in Hebrew, which, as we know from the evidence
w ith G eschichtsphilosophie, Geschichtstheologie und G esch ich tssym bolik th at th ey had of (Accadian and) U garitic has a h and not a ^ in spite of the E thiopic form (cf. T h . n o l d e k e ,
no tim e for the stu d y of history (A. D e m p f , as quoted b y J. S p o r l , in L a m m e r s , 305). in Z D M G , X L , 728, 1886) and the Coptic loan sber (cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , in Orientaha, N .S.,
There are no view s of h istory in the M iddle A ges, if such view s are accepted only if based V I I I , 231, n. 2, 1939). It is conceivable th at there existed two en tirely unrelated roots,
upon historical facts (H. G r u n d m a n n , in L a m m e r s , 418). the word m eaning colleague w ith a h, and the root to con n ect with a h, and th at
^ See below , pp. 108 f. and 114 f. Cf. also al-M aqrizis definition of h istory, below , p. 15. these tw o roots were som ehow b rought together in the languages concerned, even in E thiopic
Cf. F. C. B a u r , D ie Epochen der kirchlichen Geschichtsschreihung, 1 (Tiibingen 1852): where the hjh sound rem ained d istin ct (at least, in early times). If this should have been
G eschichte ist sowohl das o b je k tiv Geschehene, als das su b jektive W issen des Gesche- the case, it would be a convincing assum ption th at A rab ic habar inform ation is derived
henen. from the root hbr to con n ect, in abou t the sam e m anner in which A rab ic '^aql in tellect
^ Cf. the in stru ctive collcction and discussion of the m ost im portant modern definitions was derived from the root ^ql to b in d .
of h istory b y J . H u i z i n g a , in Philosophy and History: Essays presented to Ernst Cassirer, A com bination of habar with H ebrew hpr to look out, to in vestig ate, which was
i - i o (Oxford 1936). H ow ever, H u i z i n g a s own definition: H istory is the in tellectu al suggested b y J. B a r t h (Etymologische Studien, 28, Berlin 1893; cf. idem, Wurzelunter-
form in which a civilization renders account to itself of its p a st, does not do ju stice to the suchungen zum hebrdischen und aramdischen Lexicon, 57, L eipzig 1908), would need support
fundam ental hum an character of history. ing evidence. On the other hand, the form ahbirdh in Job x v i 4, if it is to be translated
Incom plete b u t quite acceptable is C. (W. C.) O m a n s definition: H istory, I conceive, as I shall talk (? ), could represent the H ebrew cognate of A rab ic habar, bu t the form is
m ay be best defined as m ans effort to record the doings of m an {On the Writing of H istory, uncertain and there is much dissension concerning its m eaning (cf. P . D i i o r m e , Tx Livre
V , N ew Y o rk [1939]). (Cf. also R. F l i n t s excellent History o f the Philosophy o f History, de Job, 208, Paris 1926; F i n k e l s t e i n , op. cit.; M. H. P o p e , Job, 115 f., New Y o rk 1965).
7 f., N ew Y o rk 1894.) See below, p. 66 ff.
12 IN T R O D U C T O R Y REM ARK S TH E C O NCEPT OF H IST O R Y 13

an entirely different word. Etym ologically, it would seem to have word in the former case as m andate, business, and, in the latter
been derived from the Semitic word for moon (month), Accadian case, as epoch. For the derived verb, he assumes the meaning
[w)arhu, Hebrew yarh-, Aram aic yrah, South Arabian wrh, Ethiopic of to determine, to prescribe. ^ The Sem itic word which corre
warh. This word is otherwise not used in the Arabic we know. sponds to the South A rabian root obviously is the word meaning
A direct loan from Accadian into A rabic is highly improbable. w a y , and the South A rabian expression developed from fixed
The assumption of a direct loan from Hebrew or Aram aic is also w ay (of action) or the like. If the word in the inscription of J a u s s e n -
precluded, in particular on account of the y (and also oi h > h) in S a v i g n a c is read correctly and actually belongs to the root VA,

the Hebrew and Aram aic forms. There remain South A rabian and it should be understood not as epoch but also as som ething like
Ethiopic, or the assumption th at the word in some form existed in fixed h abits. A t any rate, however, it is b y no means impossible
a N orth Arabian dialect no longer known. The word ta^nh is not that the South A rabian root also served to express the idea of
the simple root form but a noun form ation which exists in A rabic determ ining a document through the use of a date and thus
and South Arabian, but not in Ethiopic. This makes an E thiopic was the model of A rabic ta^nh.
derivation unlikely. Furthermore, it would seem that the word was Unless further evidence in this direction should be forthcom ing,
taken over b y the A rabs as a technical term. This again excludes the derivation from moon, m onth recommends itself as the more
Ethiopic origin as the word would certainly have been preserved in likely w orking hypothesis. A literal translation of ta^nh would then
the Ethiopic hterature if it ever existed there. In addition, it makes be lunation, th at is, the indication of the (month and) d a y of
N orth Arabian origin rather unUkely, since for a technical term we the m onth through observation of the m oon. The transition of
would expect a cultural center as its place of origin. South A rabian meaning from lunation to d ate and era m ay in this case
origin, therefore, is most probable. There, we have the expected be reconstructed hypoth etically as resulting from the use of the
cultural center where a technical term of the sort m ight have been word for the indication of the day and the month in documents
coined. In this case, we m ay assume th at the hypothetic original ( d ate ), w ith the next step being the widening of its meaning to
(South Arabian) form was Hawrih and that ta^nh is a back for indicate the most im portant date in the documents of a well-
m ation from muwarrah > mu^arrah. organized, permanent adm inistration, the year of the era.
It m ay be noted th at a Muslim tradition concerning the intro In Arabic, ta^rih means both date and era. The word
duction of the hijrah era, ta^rih, assumes Yem enite origin.^ This apparently does not occur in pre-Islamic literature. It does not
is an interesting coincidence, but as an argument for a South occur in the Q uran. It does not appear in the old hadit) it is
Arabian origin of the term it can be used as little as statem ents significant th at the only tradition concerning the introduction of
about the existence of different dialectical A rabic forms ^ can be the Muslim era which is included in al-Buharis collection ^ uses
used as arguments for a North Arabian dialectical origin. the root 'adda, and not arraha. B u t to all appearances, the word
Before we proceed, it should be mentioned that South A rabian ta^nh is mentioned in A rabic literature first together with the
offers another possible etym ology of ta'rih. The root VA appears stories of the introduction of the Muslim era.^ Muslim tradition
in a South Arabian inscription ^ as a noun in juxtaposition to favors the opinion th at the hijrah era was introduced under Umar,
some common legal terms meaning judgm ent or the like. It also and it should be noted th at it is used in a papyrus dated in
seems to occur once paired w ith a word meaning y ear. ^ C . the year 22 of the hijrah.^ The thing itself thus existed in the
C o n t i R o s s i n i has attem pted to establish the meaning of the first half of the seventh century, and we m ay assume, though
1 C f. C . C o n t i R o s s i n i , G W L in Sud-arabico, in R SO , X I I , i i g (1929-30), and idem,
1 Th e a u th o rity for this tradition is Ibn A b i H aytam ah who lived in the ninth century, Chrestomathia arabica meridionalis epigraphica, log (Rom e 1931). Th e article in R SO
cf. as-Sahawi, IHdn, below, p. 381 f. served as the basis for R h o d o k a n a k i s discussion referred to on p. 12, n. 3.
Cf. the authorities quoted b y as-Sahawi, IHdn, below, p. 271. 2 SaMk, III , 49 K r e h l .
G l a s e r , 1606, cf. N. R h o d o k a n a k i s , in W Z K M , X X X V I I , 150, n. i (1930). 3 Cf. as-Sahawi, IHdn, below, p. 378 ff.
* Cf. A. J a u s s e n and R . S a v i g n a c , M ission archeologique en Arable, V ol. 2, IVIinaean * C f. J . v o n K a r a b a c e k , Fuhrer dutch die Ausstellung Papyrus Erzherzog Rainer, 1 3 9
inscriptions. No. 32 (Paris 1909-14). (Vienna 1894); A . G r o h m a n n , EinfUhrung, 221 (Prague 1955)-
14 IN T R O D U C T O R Y REM ARK S T H E C O NCEPT OF H IST O R Y 15

docum entary evidence is lacking, th a t the word was also known b y The sem antic history of ta'^rih, as it has been outlined in the pre
th at time. ceding remarks, though h ighly probable, cannot be considered as
Ta^nh, then, acquired the meaning of historical w ork," and absolutely certain. A t any event, the im portant fact remains that
afterw ards th at of history, exactly as history or Geschichte m ay already as the result of its semantic history, the word must evoke
mean both history and historical work. Again, it would be very in the Mushm reader a set ot notions which are not identical with
difficult to fix an exact date for the first occurrence of ta^rih in those suggested b y our h istory. H istory, on the one hand, and
the meaning of historical w ork. It is firm ly established in this the A rabic words which we translate h istory, on the other,
meaning from the second century of the hijrah on. Ta*nh acquired interlock only in one link of the chain of their semantic associations.
this meaning through being used to designate works which contained Furthermore, there where th ey m echanically interlock, the philo
dates. O riginally, therefore, historical works in which no dates sophical im plications of our concept of history which arc the product
occurred could not properly be called ta^rih. It should, however, of modern historicism set it wide apart from Muslim h istory.
be stated th at in the oldest works called ta'nh, which were collec E ven at the com paratively late date of the fourteenth and
tions of biographies, dates were m ost sparingly represented. The fifteenth centuries when Muslim historians felt the need for an
use of the word ta^rih for these and similar works was apparently abstract definition of history and historiography, their different
justified if only the dates of (birth and) death of some of the individ definitions do not reveal any real philosophical insight. Ibn H aldun
uals m entioned were indicated. In al-Buhari's Ta^nh, less says: H istory refers to events th at are peculiar to a particular
th an seven percent of the biographies are provided w ith the dates age or race. ^ Al-M aqrizi defines the object of historiography as
of death, and less than one-half of one percent of the biographies giving inform ation about w hat once took place in the w orld. ^
has an indication of the date of birth.^ Som ewhat more than one- A l- lji m aintains th at historiography is the acquaintance with
half of one percent of the biographies, in addition, contains some conditions of the world th at have been transm itted provided w ith
date which fixes the tim e of its subject. For all the other persons an indication of the times when th ey took place, inasfar as th ey
listed, there is only the indication of their authorities and pupils constitute item s of inform ation. ^ F or al-K afiyaji, historiography
which permits an approxim ate determ ination of their lifetime. is a branch of learning which investigates time-sections and the
The contents of the vast m ajority of all biographies th at extend circum stances prevailing in them, as well as the circumstances which
beyond the names of authorities and pupils consists of the p artic are connected w ith those time-sections, w ith a view to their
ular tradition of which the subject of the biography was a trans
1 M uqaddimah, I, 50 Paris, trans. R o s e n t h a l , I, 63 (New Y o rk 1958).
m itter. Other ancient theological histories were even more sparing Al-habar ^an al-baSar, phot. Cairo T a M h 947, p. 116 : Al-ihbdr ^arn-md fata f t l-^dlam.
w ith their dates.^ W estern m edieval historians sim ilarly defined h istory as the sequence of the great events
of the past. A ccording to M a r i e S c h u l z , D ie Lehre von der historischen Methode bei den
The meaning of history in general developed w ith the use of Geschichtsschreibern des Mittelalters ( V I .- X I I I . Jahrh.), 5, n. i (Berlin-Leipzig 1909,
the word for annalistic histories and only slowly gained currency Abhandlungen zur mittleren und neueren Geschichte, 13), there exist on ly tw o m edieval
W estern definitions of history which m oreover depend on each other (for another one,
from the third century on.^
cf. below, p. 196, n. i, and cf. also H . R i c h t e r , Engl. Geschichtschreiber des zwolften Jahr-
1 Th e count was made in the first two half-volum es of the H yd erab ad edition. hunderts, 73, Berlin 1938). Isidore of Seville (d. 636), in his Etymologiae, I, 43 A revalo, says:
* B y the time of the H atib, the author of the History of Bagdad, the percentage of the . . . siquidem per historiam sum m a retro tem porum , annorum que su pputatio com prehen-
dates of death in the biographies had gone up to fifty percent, according to a count m ade ditur et per consulurn, regum que successum m ulta iiecessaria perscru tan tur. He was copied
in Volum e 2 of the Cairo edition of the work. Moreover, the History of Bagdad follow s a b y H ugo of F leu ry (around rio o ), Historia ecclesiastica, as follow s: . . . siquidem
chronological sequence and alm ost co n stan tly gives approxim ate dates. Those men whose per historiam preteriti tem poris series com prehenditur et per regum et im peratorum
dates of death are not indicated as a rule are m inor figures. W hen later biographical works successiones m ulta necessaria perscru tan tur. M . S c h u l z also considers O tto of Freising
give dates th at are not found in earlier biographers, it u su ally is safe to assume th at those (d. 1158) depending on Isidore when he says in his Chronicon, book 3, 12; . . . historio-
dates were not tradition al bu t the result of later sch olarly reconstruction. T h is applies, in graphorum . . . preterita n arrantium . . . . (For H ellenistic definitions of h istory, cf.
p articular, to dates referrin g to persons who lived during the first two centxuries of the P. S c h e l l e r , D e hellenistica historiae conscribendae arte, 9 ff., L eipzig 1 9 1 1.)
Muslim era. Cf., in m odern times, L. G o t t s c h a l k , The Historian and the Historical Document, in Social
^ T h e m eaning goal, fin al culm ination, which is som etim es indicated for ta^rih (cf. as- Science Research Council Bulletin, No. 53 (1945), p. 8 : B y its most com prehensive definition,
Sahawi, P la n , below, p. 272) is secondary. It is derived from era, epoch . Cf. also our the word history m eans the past of m an kind.
epoch al in the sense of outstan din g, and the phrase he represents an era. ^ See below, p. 205.
i6 IN T R O D U C T O R Y REM ARK S T H E CO NCEPT O F H IST O R Y 17

fixation as to tim e/' ^ while as-Sahawi says that the object of Or would it do to disregard certain types of local histories which
history is man and time. The problems w ith which history is go under the title of ta^'rih but contain little or no history ? In order
concerned are the circumstances of m an and time broken down to to clarify the situation, this has been adopted as the criterion for
details w ithin the general fram ework of the accidental circum determining the extent of the m aterial to be considered here:
stances th at exist for man and in tim e. ^ Muslim historiography includes those works which Muslims, a t a
The gap between the modern W estern concept and the m edieval given moment of their literary history, considered historical works
Muslim concept of history was not bridged b y the consciousness of and which, at the same time, contain a reasonable amount of
Muslim historians of the element of change affecting hum an behavior m aterial which can be classified as historical according to our
as the m ainspring of history. W hen a l- Y a qubi in the ninth century definition of history, as given above.
w rote a w ork entitled The A daptation of Men to their Tim e," we
are tem pted to conclude from the title th at his concept of h istory
came close to modern ideas of developm ent. However, a l- Y a q u b is
thesis in the little w ork is th a t everybody follows the precedent set
b y the ruling caliph for political, social, and cultural behavior.
W hile the existence of constant change is presupposed b y him and
he im plicitly denies the existence of static forces in history outside
th e eternal hum an element in the chosen leaders, al-Ya'qiabi did
not envisage an orderly process of developm ent any more than did
other Muslim historians or scholars in other fields.^
The discrepancy in the semantic and ideological understanding
of h istory also raises some practical problems connected w ith the
treatm ent of the subject under investigation. It is natural th at
our point of view is determined b y the insight modern m an has
gained into the function and purpose of history. This insight will
remain our ultim ate yardstick. B u t w hat about the classification
of literary products as being, or not being, historical works ? It is
com paratively simple to eliminate chronology from our consider
ation, although scholars have no doubt been right in stressing the
im portance of the invention of eras, etc., for the m echanical
processes of historiography.^ B u t even if we adm it biography to be a
genuine part of history, would we be inclined to accept biography as
so prominent an element of historiography as Muslim historians did ?

See below, p. 250; cf. also p. 531, n. i.


2 See below, p. 273.
Another fifteeu th -cen tury author, Zahir-ad-din al-Mar'-asi, in his History of Tabaristdn,
qualified his definition of historiography as a science which involves the knowledge of
the conditions of the ancien ts with the com mon u tilitarian concept of the exem plary
character of h istory, cf. Sehir-eddins Geschichte von Tabaristan, Rujan und Masanderan,
6 D o r n (St. Petersburg 1850).
^ A l-Y a 'q ilb i, MuSdkalat an-nds li-zamdnihim, published b y W . M i l l w a r d (B eirut 1962),
and translated in J A O S , L X X X I V , 329-44 (1964). Cf. also F. R o s e n t h a l , The Technique
and Approach of M uslim Scholarship, 68a (Rom e 1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24).
Cf. J. T h . S h o t w e l l , The History of History, 63 ff, (New Y o rk 1939).

R o s e n t h a l , H istory of Muslim H istoriography


H ISTO RICA L C O N SC IO U SN E SS IN PR E -ISL A M IC A R A B IA 19

political organization, which was characteristic of pre-Islam ic


central and northern A rabia, deprived the population of the
inspiring experience of a continuity of great political events.
C H A P T E R TW O There existed a natural interest in great happenings, and note
w orthy events were used as points of orientation in the history of
BACKGROUND AND ENVIRONMENT individuals. The oldest preserved A rabic inscription, th at of
Imru"u- 1-Qays from the year 328, celebrates the historic achieve
I H IS T O R IC A L C O N SCIO U SN E SS IN P R E -IS L A M IC A R A B I A ments of a deceased prince. A nother inscription, th at of Sarahil
from the year 568, seems to refer to a destruction of H aybar which
Our knowledge of pre-Islamic A rabia shows v e ry m any gaps, had taken place a year before.^ B oth inscriptions, however, come
since it is derived from very scant and disparate sources. Much of from the northwestern fringe of A rabia where foreign cultural
the available inform ation is based upon Islam ic sources. H ow far influences had been strong through the ages. H ow much alive such
th ey are reliable in their description of pre-Islam ic and early Islam ic influences were in the more central sections of the Peninsula is hard
cultural conditions and in their attribution of literary m aterial to to say. The lively caravan trade m ay have carried them quite far.
pre-Islam ic times is a m atter of dispute. The attitude of scholars Unless we w ant to lose ourselves in entirely undocumented
educated in the critical spirit of the last century was often one of speculations, the problem of the actual cultivation of indigenous
great scepticism. A t present, the pendulum is swinging back in this historical lore in pre-Islam ic A rabia centers around these tw o
field as it does in other fields of literary criticism. There is a m arked questions: i) Does the literature of the b attle days of the Arabs
tendency tow ard a more cautious approach which, unfortunately go back into pre-Islam ic times and w hat form did it then h ave?,
and more frequently than one m ight wish, assumes the appearance and 2) did genealogy already in th at early age adm it genuinely
of undisguised credulity. The fact is th at truth and falsehood are so historical m aterial and w hat form did th at connection of genealogy
ingenuously interwoven in Muslim antiquarian and early religious and history take, if it ever existed ?
literature th at no general rule can tell w hat is genuine and w hat is There can be no doubt th at the b attle day tradition ^ is as old
not. E ve ry single statem ent or literary document has to be judged as it claims to be and much older. It could never have been
b y itself. A n element of subjectivism will enter each judgm ent, but freely invented b y a w riters fan cy in Muslim Dam ascus or Bagdad.
no fear of subjectivism , however justified, m ust dull our critical It is an ancient Sem itic form. In fact, it is the same form which
faculties. appears in the oldest historical portions of the Bible. There, the
The complete silence of our sources w ith regard to any appre narrative of a historical event m ay be loosely connected w ith a
ciable am ount of true literary a ctiv ity in pre-Islam ic tim es m ay poem th at was spoken on th at d a y . ^ Or the battle scene m ay
have been caused b y the Muslim view of ancient A rab ia as a culm inate in a d itty which exalts the achievem ents of one participant
country of ignorance. It is, however, much more lik ely to assume to the detrim ent of the other.^ W e now read those epical narrations
th at this silence is explained b y the fact th at there actu ally was in a larger context, and we are used to view them as part of a whole.
nothing to report. The cultural and economic level of the nomad Nevertheless, th ey constitute units in them selves which can be
population was, as it has alw ays been, too low to support any read and enjoyed as th ey are. Before th ey were incorporated in
sustained literary effort. The commercial element in the few larger the historical narrative, th ey circulated as independent stories.
towns, such as Mecca, was in a better position m aterially, but even ^ B oth inscriptions can be found in J. C a n t i n e a u , L e Nahateen, II, 49-51 and 2 1 4
if A rabic was used to any large extent as a literary language, (Paris 1930-32).
* A com prehensive stu d y of the b attle -d a y n arratives was m ade b y W \ C a s k e l , A ijdm
which we do not know, the intellectual horizon there, too, certainly al-^Arab. Studienzur altarabischen E p ik , in Islam ica I I P , 1-99 (1931). C f. alsoG . W i d e n g r e n ,
was quite narrow. There hardly existed an incentive to cultivate On the Early Prose Narratives in Arabic, in Acta Orientalia, X X I I I , 232-62 (1955)-
Judges V , cf. also E xodu s x iv 30.
a historical literature, especially since the lack of an y large-scale
* I Sam uel xvii.
20 BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T H ISTO RICAL C O N SC IO U SN E SS IN PR E -ISL A M IC A R A B IA 21

Reference to the B iblical examples of a b attle-day literature Hsteners and for their emotional enjoym ent. T h ey did contain
m ay also help to clarify the relative position of verses and prose historical elements in th at th ey recorded m ajor events and in that
in the A rab b attle-day narratives. Verses are found in them not th ey considered such events under certain moral aspects. How
only because the philologists who preserved the m aterial cared only ever, th ey entirely lack continuity. T h ey are not viewed under the
for stories which contained poetic m aterial, but m ainly because of aspect of historical cause and effect, and they are essentially tim e
their character as an indispensable element of the literary form. If less. There is also no indication th at in pre-Islam ic times, historical
no verses were connected with a certain event, or if verses were not consciousness ever progressed so far th a t an attem pt was made
brought into connection w ith it at some early date, the event would to bring those narratives into some kind of historical sequence.
not have been preserved for posterity. On the other hand, there A s such, the battle-day narratives could not have developed into,
is no reason to assume th at the verses existed first and th at the or given an impetus to, the developm ent of a historical literature,
events were invented to suit the verses, to provide them w ith an although their technique and their form were to p lay an im portant
attractive setting, and to help in their interpretation. Verses and role in Muslim historiography.
prose context existed simultaneously and complemented each other, Genealogy, in turn, was much less significant than the battle-
although the verses usually seem to have been the more original days as a form of historical expression, but it is more indicative
element. It follows th at in ancient times, the artistic form of the of the existence of a historical sense. It can h ardly be assumed
b attle-day narratives was substantially the same as the one in th at in pre-Islam ic times the preservation of genealogical lines
which th ey are known to us. W hether the one or other narrative included to any considerable degree the preservation of historical
was occasionally fixed in w riting in pre-Islam ic times cannot be events connected w ith the individual members of a particular
decided. W hile the traditional view and general considerations about pedigree (except for a few unusual cases where an individual
the manner in which such m aterial was usually transm itted in was involved in an event celebrated b y b attle-day narratives).
similar cultural environments point to oral transmission, some of Such trespassing into historical territory has never been the real
the m aterial m ight have been w ritten down at times, but none of purpose of genealogy. There is even less evidence for the assumption
the preserved m aterial would seem even rem otely to be based upon th at genealogical lore m ight ever have been put down in w riting
w ritten sources.^ in pre-Islamic Arabia. A ll those interested in certain genealogical
A t any rate, we can be fairly certain that battle-day narratives relationships knew the relevant data b y heart; vice versa, if there
existed in pre-Islam ic times, and the question arises w hether their w as no one who preserved the knowledge of a particular genealogy,
existence is an indication or expression of historical consciousness. th at genealogy was no longer of any interest and could as well
The reply m ust be negative. Those narratives were not originally remain forgotten. Genealogical hterature starts when genealogical
intended to be historical material. The earlier Mushm historians lines become dubious and it is felt that their literary fixation would
usually restricted themselves to brief references to the battle-days. help to clear up doubts and to forestall frauds. Pre-Islam ic Arabs
According to W. C a s k e l ,^ the elaborate b attle-day narratives were cannot have been conscious of any weakness in their genealogical
fu lly accepted in historical literature no earher than the thirteenth traditions, 1 since th at would have undermined their entire social
century. The historians thus showed themselves hesitant to adopt and pohtical organization. Consequently, genealogy is not likely
m aterial which th ey recognized as belonging to the domain of philol to have developed into a literary form with them, and, in fact,
ogists and litterateurs. A nd in fact, in their origin, the b attle-d ay it later on had a rather insignificant part in the shaping of the
narratives belonged rather to literature in the narrow sense than literary forms of Muslim historiography.
to history. T h ey prim arily served for the entertainm ent of the On the other hand, the practical interest in genealogical lore
^ The point has been, m ade that no prose literature properly speaking existed in pre- m ay, under favorable circumstances, develop into an interest in
Islam ic A rab ia ( W m . M a r ^ a i s , Les Origines de la prose litteraire arabe, in Revue Africaine
L X V I I I , 15-28, 1927).
T h e occasional exposure of fraudulent genealogical claim s does not contradict this
O p . c it., 8.
statem ent.
22 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T HISTO RICA L C O N SC IO U SN E SS IN PR E -ISL A M IC A R A B IA 23

the past in general and engender or strengthen the historical the word for date, era. ^ B u t did th ey h ave a historical literature,
consciousness which is a necessary condition for the creation of or, at least, did th ey possess some concrete forms of expressing
a historical literature. The advent of Islam was such a favorable historical consciousness which m ight have affected the Muslim
circum stance which perm itted genealogy to activate its historical outlook on history ?
potential. Moreover, genealogical lore, among the A rabs as well A rabic historical works contain a great am ount of inform ation
as the Semites in general, was not restricted to individual or fam ily about the South A rabian kings. A good deal of this inform ation
relationships but served to evolve genealogical schemes which m ay have come to the Muslims through Christian sources of Syriac
encompassed all the known population groups regardless of their or B yzantine origin.^ Y e t, at least part of it gives the definite
size. The table of nations in Genesis ch. X shows th at such schemes impression of being of native South A rabian origin. This, however,
could easily be extended to cover the whole of the known world. could be the result of the efforts of Muslim scholars who went to
In this extension of the genealogical relationships of small personal the Y em en and added local color and w hatever local historical
groups to large anonymous political entities, there lies another reminiscences th ey could find to the inform ation which m ight have
avenue of approach tow ard tru ly historical thinking. Here we come to them from other than South A rabian literary sources.
encounter one of the contributory factors which conditioned the It would thus be no indication of the existence of any indigenous
Muslim m ind for the acceptance of world history.^ South A rabian historical literature and very little of an indication of
In addition to the battle-day narratives and the genealogical the existence of historical consciousness among pre-Islam ic South
lore which were at home in pre-Islam ic central A rabia, we have to Arabians.
reckon w ith the infiltration of certain forms of historical w riting F or more reliable inform ation, we m ust turn to the South A rabian
and thinking from the adjacent territories of the Peninsula. Some inscriptions. T h ey h ave been preserved in great numbers. The
indication as to the character which such infiltration m ight have vast m ajority of them has nothing to do w ith history. R oyal
taken has already been given w ith reference to the northern fringe inscriptions of the typ e so well known from the more northern
of the desert where the desert comes into contact w ith the civili regions of the ancient Orient do not exist. Practical legal considera
zations of the Fertile Crescent.^ There would be h ardly any point tions were responsible for the fact th a t building and other public
in following this trail back into a more remote an tiq uity and to projects were so busily recorded in inscriptions. B u t, in addition,
discuss the expressions of historical consciousness of, for instance, the very existence of so m any inscriptions of this typ e also reveals
the Palm yrenians and the N abataeans inasmuch as th ey were a certain feehng for the historical im portance of poHtical and
Arabs. Interesting though such an investigation would no doubt adm inistrative measures and a desire to preserve the m em ory of
be, no results which would directly affect our understanding of great enterprises. This impression is greatly strengthened when
the prehistory of Muslim historiography can be expected from it. we find those inscriptions placed occasionally in the setting of great
A more im m ediate potential source of cultural influence m ight contem porary m ilitary events which are carefully described. It
be sought in the highly cultivated and prosperous regions of is true th at not even inscriptions of th at typ e could shake a
Southwest Arabia. Those regions had alw ays been in direct con scholarly auth ority on m atters South A rabian in his opinion th at
nection with the places of the origin of Islam, down to and beyond the South A rabian inscriptions give the impression of a people
the time of Muhammad. A s well-organized and literate settled where even the leaders com pletely lack a sense of history. ^ This
communities, th ey did not lack the continuity of political experience
^ A b o v e p. 12 f.
and the means of recording it which go into the m aking of a histori Cf. A . M o b e r g , The Book o f the Himyarites, X L V (Lund 1924). Cf. also J . W . H i r s c h -
cal literature. T h ey possessed a politically oriented chronology BERG in Rocznik Orientalistyczny, X V , 321-38 (1949).
Cf., for instance, Repertoire d epigraphie semitique, Nos. 2633, 2687, 3943 (cf. N . R h o -
which m ay have inspired Muslim chronology and given the Muslims D O K A N A K is, in S B A W Vienna, philos.-hist. K l., 206, 2, 1927), and 3945.
* Cf. R h o d o k a n a k i s , op. cit., 36, n. 4, quoted b y C. B r o c k e l m a n n , G A L Supplement,
1 Cf., further, below , p. 26. I, 1 5 and 2 0 3 . On the historical contents of South A rabian inscriptions, cf. also D . S. M a r -
> A b ove p. 19. G O L IO U T H , Lectures on Arabic Historians, 28 ff. (Calcutta 1930).
24 BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T TH E H ISTO R ICAL OUTLOOK OF M UH AM M AD 25

opinion is very largely based on lack of evidence and would seem It leads through a series of great moments of spiritual promise
to be far too sweeping. Of course, it is correct if the word historical or culm inates in one supreme moment of salvation b y which the life
(unhistorical)" is understood in its modern sense, but in this case, of all future generations is decisively circumscribed. It thus reaches
it w ould m ore or less apply not only to the South Arabians but its final destination in the future when stock is taken of the actions
other ancient peoples as well. The inscriptions do show the existence and sufferings of each individual and nothing w hatever he did or
in pre-Islam ic times of a certain historical consciousness in South w hatever happened to him is disregarded.
A rabia which later on in Muslim times was to come to the fore in The m uch discussed question whether M uhammad received his
full force.^ Y e t, if we except the possible South A rabian origin inspiration predom inantly from Christian or Jewish sources means
of the idea of the Muslim era, there is nothing to show that a little in this connection, since the forms of Judaism and Christianity
South A rabian historiography existed and influenced th a t of Islam. w ith which M uhammad had an opportunity to become acquainted
One im portant element in our picture of the historiography and h ardly differed from each other in this historical interpretation of
historical consciousness in pre-Islam ic A rabia is still missing, hum an life. M uhamm ads talent for simphfication, a result of his
th at is, the role of the Jews and Christians. B oth religions were lim ited education, helped him to grasp the essentials of this con
num erically well represented in the Peninsula. Large Jewish struction much more clearly perhaps, and with m uch fewer dog
groups lived in the oases settlements and in South Arabia. Chris m atic preconceptions, than th ey were grasped b y any of his Jewish
tian ity was, it seems, represented in central A rabia only b y individ or Christian informants.
uals, but there were large Christian settlem ents in South Arabia, In M uhamm ads little changed adaptation of this great historical
and others all over the northern fringe of the Peninsula. The Jews construction, the future is determ ined b y the end of the world,
and Christians certainly possessed the fundam ental knowledge of the D a y of Judgm ent, when every soul will be asked w hat it did
history and the forms of historical presentation which the B ible while it was alive. M uhammad m ay at first have been impressed
transm itted to them, whether th ey knew the tex t or rehed on orally b y the nearness of that D ay. Later on, he certainly did not antici
transm itted paraphrases. However, as far as th ey form ed p art of pate its coming in the near future. The Great D a y remained a
the population and were not travelling merchants, missionaries, or fixed and known event of the history of the future. Its coming
the like, th ey probably shared w hatever historical experiences and w ith all its paraphernalia was so absolutely certain and so exactly
forms of historical expression their pagan neighbors knew or did not described b y the religion th at those events, although th ey had not
know and did not distinguish themselves from them in any respect. yet taken place, were as well known as if th ey had taken place
It can therefore hardly be assumed th at th ey actively cultivated already and as any other event of the past. T h ey were the history
any form of historical writing. Still, th ey held the key which in of the future in the same sense as there existed a history of the past.
the person of Muhammad opened for the Muslims the w ay to a This extension of the idea of history to the future also dominated
historical view of life. m edieval Christian historiography.^ Nevertheless, it is, in fact, a
h ighly improper procedure. It is detrim ental to the value of history
2 T H E H IS T O R IC A L O U T L O O K O F M UH AM M AD as a reflection about actual factors and influences in human life.
The Muslim history of the future as such would not have been
If man is not to abandon himself to despair in the face of adversity
able to stim ulate historical thinking, because it lacked variety
and at the realization of his own futility, his frailty and insignifi
and inflexibly concentrated upon a few data. However, the idea
cance need an explanation. Judaism and Christianity provided a
of the Judgm ent could be im m ediately applied to the evaluation
highly satisfactory one: The individual is not alone b y himself.
of the actions of the present. Since everything th at an individual
He does not exist only now. He is placed in a historical context.
did was to p la y a part of great im portance for him in the future
His history starts long before him with the beginning of the world.
^ I t is again considered p a rt o f h istory b y K . J a s p e r s , Vom Ursprung und Z iel der
Cf. below, p. 158 f.
Geschichte, 181 (Zurich 1949).
26 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T TH E H ISTO RIC AL OUTLOOK OF M UH AM M AD 27

long after his death, w hatever he did tod ay could no longer be Muslim historiography, its existence in a w ay proved to be a m ajor
forgotten tomorrow. The m emory of the pin-pricks of M uhamm ads shortcoming as it prevented the adoption of wider or, at any rate,
adversaries was to stay w ith them, whether th ey liked it or not. different perspectives.
A ll human actions assumed an appearance of permanency. This A practical incentive for the study of history was the abundance
constituted a definite incentive to remember and record actions. of historical (or pseudo-historical) data in the Q uran. The Q uran
T he appreciation of the value of the actions of the present was interpreters were forced b y this circum stance to look for illustrative
accom panied b y a clear and well-defined appreciation of the value historical inform ation. In the course of time, the occupation w ith
of the events of the past. Muhammad himself was the final goal of the historical m aterial of the Q ur an came to be considered one of
th e historical processes which w ere set in m otion w ith the creation the branches of learning th at were developed in connection w ith
of the world. A t various periods, spiritual guides had arisen in the Q ur an.1 The channel through which Muhammad received
different geographical locations. T h ey had either succeeded or failed his historical inform ation or inform ation believed to be historical
in their mission during their lifetime, and all of them had m ore or again was oral intercourse w ith Jews and Christians. The Q ur S.n
less failed to give permanence to their message. Now, Muhammad repeatedly shows his acquaintance w ith the fact th at books con
appeared, and his message would be final and permanent. Muham taining the record of the ancient prophets existed and were read
m ad w as no new beginning. H e w as historically connected w ith the and recited,2 but any hypothesis which would h ave Muhammad
succession of prophets, and he was, in particular, the successor of read historical sources such as the original tex t of the B ible in a
one of them, Abraham . O nly the trium phs and defeats of the hypothetical A rabic translation is untenable.
history of the past had made M uhammad w hat he was. The principal fault of the historical m aterial of the Q uran was
It is worth noting that this picture of the history of the past th at it contained so m any obviously false data which later historians
covers the whole of the world as mirrored in the mind of Muhammad. w ere in the position to recognize as such but did not dare to discard
He him self was the prophet of his own people, the Arabs, b ut the com pletely, all the more so since Muhammad himself had already
other prophets had been sent to different peoples, om itting none. explained his deviations from the Jewish and Christian inform ation
Figures like al-H idr and D u 1-qarnayn h ad travelled to the ends of as the result of a falsification of the Scriptures b y Jews and Chris
the earth. The history of the whole world had been the concern of tians. Intense as M uhamm ads consciousness of history was, his
the Creator. The Prophet thus devised a universal scheme of past knowledge of historical facts was most limited. Contem porary world
history which h ad only to be filled in b y actual historical facts as history enters the Qur an only once when a prediction is made
soon as such facts became available. about the outcom e of the struggle between the Byzantines and the
The stim ulus which M uhammad's historical ideas could give Persians.^ The events around the Prophet found more frequent
and, later on, actually did give to the occupation w ith history acceptance in the te x t of the Q ur an, if only in the form of allusions.
could not have been any stronger. The actions of individuals, the The existence of those passages has no bearing upon M uhamm ads
events of the past, the circum stances of all peoples of the earth a ttitud e tow ard history except, perhaps, for the fact that he felt
h ad now become m atters of religious importance. A definite dividing th at events concerning him were so im portant th at th ey could be
line in the whole course of history, which later Muslim historiog made part of the divine revelation. Nevertheless, these Q uranic
raphy never crossed,^ existed in the person of Muhammad. A passages were not w ithout im portance for the history of Muslim
similar concept dom inated Christian historical thinking,^ but, for
^ Cf. ss-Sn y n il, Itgan, ch. 65, II, 127 (Cairo 13 17); Taskopriizadeh, M iftdh as-sa^ddah,
^ According to Ism a 'ili S i'a h concepts, this d ivid in g line did not exist, and the periods ol II, 364 (H yderabad 1328-56).
w orld history from the beginning were m arked b y the appearance of the seven successive proph ^ Cf. H. S p e y e r , D ie biblischen Erzdhlungen imQoran, 159, n. 4 (Grafenheinichen, n. y. [ca.
ets. H ow ever, th at concept was not applied in actu al fact to the w riting of ordinary h istory. 1938-39], reprinted H ildesheim 1961. Th e proofs of S p e y e r s w ork were read b y me in 1936).
A n exam ple is the S yrian historian Y o h an n an b ar P en kaye whose lifetim e coin cid ed' T h e self-evident fa ct th at the existence of a great literature in the cultural centers of
with the e arly beginnings of Muslim historiography, cf. A. B a u m s t a r k , E in e syrische the E ast was n ot concealed to Arab c ity dwellers, even though th ey do not refer to it,
Weltgeschichte des siebten Jahrh.s, in Romische Quartakchrift fu r christliche AUerthumskunde, w ould need no special m ention, were it not som etim es disregarded.
X V , 2 7 5 ( 1 9 0 1 ) , and A . M i n g a n a , Sources syriaques, I, part 2, p. V I (Leipzig-M osul 19 0 8 ). Beginning of sArah x x x .
28 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E H ISTO RIC AL OUTLOOK OF M UH AM M AD 29

historiography, because very soon, the events to which th ey referred al-H irah on the Euphrates and had learned there the stories of the
became historical happenings of supreme significance to Mushms Persian kings, of R ustum and Isfandiyar. Now, whenever the
and stim ulated historical research. Prophet preached to a gathering and told them about the divine
A minor detail which must not pass unnoticed here is the repeated punishm ent which had befallen the nations of the past, an-Nadr
reference of the Q uran to the phrase asdtir al-awwalin.^ This stood up right after him, and telling those Persian stories, he asked
phrase is said to have been used b y the Prophets adversaries in the assembled Meccans in w hat respect the stories of Muhammad
order to ridicule his declamations. It would be of interest as a were b etter than his. This an-Nadr, according to the commentators,
curiosity if the etym ology which connects asdtir w ith Greek was the person who em ployed the expression asdtir al-awwalin w ith
tCTTopLa were correct. This etym ology was proposed b y J. G o l i u s reference to M uhamm ads stories.^
in the seventeenth century.^ Its adoption b y men such as G. W . It is indeed not impossible th at some inform ation about Persian
F r e y t a g ,^ H. L. F l e i s c h e r ,^ and A. S p r e n g e r provoked much national history reached Mecca in the w ay described already in
discussion during the last one hundred years. Though superficially pre-Islam ic or early Islam ic times. However, it would appear
very attractive, this etym ology cannot be correct. It has been much more Hkely th at the story of an-Nadr was an invention of the
shown th at the Greek word is not com m only used in Aram aic early eighth century. In the second quarter of th at century, the
(or in Ethiopic), while Arabic asdtir in the Q uran appears as a alleged sources of Persian national history were translated into
current and generally understood expression. A derivation from Arabic. Their translation was not a hterary exercise but prim arily,
the root str which is known in this particular meaning only in it was an expression of and a weapon for the Persian national
Syriac would yield the very satisfactory sense of stupidities resistance against the A rabs and their new religion. The story about
but would meet w ith a similar objection. A derivation from the an-Nadr, w ith its Prophetic disapproval of the Persian stories, m ay
A rabic root str to w rite which is represented in various Sem itic have come into circulation as a first Muslim counterm ove against
languages remains preferable. The stories which M uhammad told the stirrings of the Persian nationahst spirit. Its h istoricity could gain
were, consequently, called writings (in a pejorative sense) of little support from other related legendary m aterial. The Christian
the ancients. The expression asdtir al-awwalin is, however, not poet Harm alah b. al-Mundir, a m acrobiotic who is said to h ave lived
only interesting as an etym ological curiosity, but it also deserves down to the tim e of U tm an, frequented, we are told,^ the courts of
attention on account of the fact th at the early com m entators the non-Arab princes and had a good knowledge of their biographies
connected it with a tradition whose authen ticity or non-authenticity (siyar). He often came to Mecca, but, even if all this is true, his
is not w ithout im portance for the history of Muslim historiography. stories certainly were not history.
An-N adr b. al-H arit, one of the devils of the Qurays, had visited The hadit literature does not contribute any further notew orthy
and reliable inform ation as to M uhamm ads knowledge of, or
1 Si^rahs, v i 25 (25), v iii 31 (31), x v i 24 (26), x xiii 83 (85), x x v 5 (6), x x v ii 68 (70), x lv i
17 (16), Ixviii 15 (15), Ixx x iii 13 (13). interest in history. The Prophets supposedly low opinion of
Lexicon Arabico-Latinum, col. 1171 (Leiden 1653). Spot checks of some of the A rabic genealogy has nothing to do w ith genealogy as part of historical
w orks before G o l i u s m ake it seem lik e ly th at he w as the first to suggest this etym olo gy
of asdtir. knowledge but must be understood in the light of his efforts
Lexicon Arabico-Latinum, II, 314 (Halle 1833). to tear down the social barriers in his contem porary society which
* In 1841, cf. his Kleinere Schriften, II, 119 f. (Leipzig 1888).
' Das Leben und die Lehre des Muhammad, II, 395 f. (Berlin 1869). Cf. also T h . N o l d e k e - had been created b y ancestral pride.^ In connection with a certain
F r . S c h w a l l y , Geschichte des Qordns, 1, 16, n. 4 (Leipzig 1909). hadit, we find the rem ark th at Muhammad recommended not to
J. H o r o v i t z , Koranische Untersuchungen, 69 f. ( B e r l in - L e ip z ig 1926).
Those who w ould like to accept the story of an-N adr as authentic m ight, however,
point to his M esopotam ian background and argue th at he learned the word asdtir while ^ Cf. Ibn Hisam, Sirah, 191 W u sten feld .
he was in M esopotam ia. 2 Cf. Y a q u t, IrSdd, X , 191 (Cairo = IV , 107 M a r g o l i o u t h ).
Cf. D. K u n s t l i n g e r , in O LZ , X X X I X , cols. 481-83 (1936). Cf. the translation of as-Sahawi, IHdn, below, p. 3 11. A ccording to at-Tirm idi (cf.
T his w ould be another instance of the knowledge of the existence of w ritten books Concordance, II, 238b; Ibn H azm , Jamharah, 2, 4 L 6 v i - P r o v e n ^ a l , Cairo 1948; Ibn
am ong M uham m ads contem poraries, b u t it would be no indication of the existence of 'A b d -al-B arr, Inbdh, 42 f., Cairo 1350), the Prophet recom m ended as much knowledge of
an indigenous literature. ones pedigree as is necessary for the preservation of fam ily ties.
30 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E P O SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 31

leave aside ta"n h (chronology), because it shows which historical models. Muslim civilization kept to the solid ground it found pre
inform ation is correct and how recent or how remote a particular pared and grew not in depth b ut in width.
piece of historical inform ation is. ^ Under no circum stances can A s a result of its m ilitary prowess and of favorable historical
this statem ent be considered an authentic or very ancient tradition. circumstances, Islam had in a short tim e overrun a territory in
It remains, however, a fact th a t the Prophet himself planted which all intellectual achievem ents of the tim e were represented,
the seeds from which a wider interest in history was to arise. The and it soon began to m ake those achievem ents its own through an
apologists of Islam later on took an unhistorical but not inappro energetic translation and adaptation activity. A s a new spiritual
priate line of reasoning when th ey considered M uhamm ads know l movem ent, it was forced to present its tenets to well-trained
edge of past (and future) history as one of the miracles which were opponents and to defend its raison d etre. A s a new w a y of life, it
proof of his prophetical vocation. ^ H istory loomed very large in had to reform the adm inistrative institutions it found in the various
his thinking. His work, on the whole, did much to promote the regions. A b ove all, w ith the advent of Islam , century-old barriers of
future grow th of Muslim historiography, although its author could language and custom fell, and there was a rare opportunity for
not have foreseen the tremendous developm ent of learning and all the different peoples and civilizations to start a new intellec
scholarship which was to take place in the name of his religion. tual life on the basis of absolute eq uality and in a spirit of free
competition. W ith the ninth century, the form ative period of
3 T H E P O S IT IO N O F H IS T O R Y IN M USLIM these processes was completed. From then on, each individual
S C H O L A R S H IP A N D E D U C A T IO N branch of learning in Islam was governed b y the law s and traditions
Muslim historiography has at all times been united b y the of an autonomous Muslim civilization.
closest ties w ith the general developm ent of scholarship in Islam, It is only in very modern times that historiography has been
and the position of historical knowledge in Muslim education has fu lly recognized as an independent discipline. D uring the period
exercised a decisive influence upon the intellectual level of historical of the transmission of Greek knowledge, the Muslims m ade their
writing. T he vicissitudes of Muslim historiography become m uch first acquaintance w ith a system atic classification of the various
better understandable, if th ey are view ed w ithin the general fram e branches of learning.i It was found then th at history was not
w ork of Muslim culture. included in the scheme of the established sciences, and for the same
The growth of the Islamic civilization is one of the great spectacles reason which also determ ined the position of history in the W estern
in the intellectual history of mankind. It is something which will Middle A ges: ^ The H ellenistic classification of the sciences which
never fail to stir the highest adm iration. However, it can h ardly be the A rabs took over did not assign a special place to history.
called m ysterious or a miracle. It is a miracle, perhaps, because ' On Muslim encyclopedias in general, cf. M. P l e s s n e r , D ie Geschichte der Wissenschaften
it took place so rapidly that it was com pleted after it h ad scarcely im Islam , 15 f. (Tiibingen 1931, Philosophic und Geschichte, 31).
Cf. J . H u i z i n g a , Sobre el estado actual de la ciencia historica, 12 f. (Madrid 1934):
begun. It m ay be called m ysterious inasmuch as every act of in No m uchas ciencias h a y que para su desarrollo deban tan poco a la U niversidad come la
tellectual creation, every flowering of a civilization is something H istoria. Cuando en los ultim os siglos de la A n tigiied ad se form a el sistem a de la educaci6n
civilizad a, que como las siete artes liberales dom inaria toda la E d ad M edia y aun parte
beyond full hum an comprehension. Y e t, in Islam, the causes and de la E poca Moderna, no figura la H istoria en el grupo de estas siete. Las m as de la ciencias
conditions which brought Muslim civilization into being are clearer m odernas han ido form andose por un proceso de especificacion y de divisi6n, sea de los
tres grandes estudios de la Teologia, Derecho y M edicina, que coronaban el edificio de las
before our eyes than in most other comparable cases. The soaring artes, sea de estas m ism as artes, com o se concibieron en el trivio y cuadrivio. E sto no toca
flight of the Greek spirit towards heights never reached again, or a la H istoria sino en b ajo grado. Su m ateria con stitu ia un anejo de la R et6rica, aplicabase,
de vez en cuando, a los estudios teol6gicos y ju rid icos; pero no se puede decir que en la
the portentous glam or of the W estern Renaissance had an irrational escuela esa m ateria de la H istoria experim entase un tratam ien to cientifico. E ra una m ateria
element in them that was more effective than environment and dada, por la m ayor parte de procedencia bib lica y clasica; esta tenia por objeto la declam a-
ci6n y la contem placi6n m oral, pero no la investigaci6n ni la critica. No se prestaba al
* Cf. Ibn al-M udabbir, ar-Risdlah al-^adrd?, in RasdHl al-bulagd^, ed. M. K u r d A l i , m etodo escolastico ui al silogism o. L a H istoria, en la U niversidad, se reducia a un apendice
p. 183 (Cairo 1331/1913)- de la elocuencia y de la poesia, litil ejem plo y agrado de la erudici6n. Cf. also H . G r u n d -
* Cf., for instance, al-B^qillani, I^jdz al-Qur^dn, 19, 27 f. (Cairo 1315); 56-55 (!, te x t in MANN, Geschichtsschreibung im Mittelalter, in W . S t a m m l e r (ed.), Deutsche Philologie im
disorder), 79 (Cairo 13 17, m argin of as-Suyuti, Itqdn). Cf. also below , pp. 46 f. and 288f. A u friss, I I , 2221 (Berlin-Bielefeld-M iinchen, n .y.).
32 BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T TH E PO SIT IO N OF H IST O R Y 33

Politics had an im portant place in this classification, but history ments as a historian, m akes no mention of history in his sm all
w as not attached to it. Nor do Hellenizing Arabic philosophers as encyclopedic, if predom inantly theological, treatm ent of the
a rule mention history in connection with poety and rhetoric.^ A sciences. Bay an zagal al-Hlm. It comes, therefore, h ardly as
notew orthy exception is, however, found in al-Farabis classification a surprise th at Ibn Haldun, in the Introduction of his H istory,
of Aristotelian philosophy. A l-Farabi refers to biography {ahbdr an has nothing to say about history in his enumeration of the sciences.
nas) and history [ahbdr al-umam) as belonging to the typ e of The reason for this omission apparently is not to be looked for in
knowledge th at is acquired because it provides pleasure and the fact th at history, as the main subject of the Muqaddimah,
entertainm ent, along with m yths and stories {hurdfdt, ahddit) and is dealt w ith in m any places of the work. In connection w ith
the dram atic ( im itative ) arts.^ astronomy, Ibn H aldun refers briefly to the knowledge of past
W hether al-Kindi, in his books On the Divisions of Human Know l eras [at-tawdrih al-mddiyah), ^ but his wide canon of learning
edge and On what Knowledge is and its Divisions ^ referred to history does not include the occupation w ith historiography as an inde
we are not in the position to tell since these works have not yet pendent intellectual pursuit.
been recovered. In all likelihood, al-K indi did not m ention it and The classification of the sciences and their system atic presen
thus inaugurated a tradition which was to linger on for m an y tation in the form of encyclopedias was, however, not the preserve
centuries.^ The leading Muslim philosophers, al-Farabi, in his of philosophers but an em inently practical undertaking. A s such,
Enumeration of the Sciences, and Ibn Sina, in his Treatise on the it could not overlook the existence of a very large historical litera
Divisions of the Intellectual Sciences, did not include history in ture and a steadily widening interest in historical subjects and,
their encyclopedic treatm ent of the sciences. Further classifi in general, of m any A ra b literary and scholarly activities which
cations which originated under Ibn Sinas influence, such as the were foreign to the H ellenistic scheme. Thus, not very long after
one contained in Ibn A bd-al-B arrs fdmi^ haydn al-Hlm ^ or Ibn the Mushms had become acquainted w ith philosophical classifi
B adrun's Kimdmah, a historical work, p ay no attention w hatever cation, they originated the distinction between A ra b and G reek
to history. The encyclopedia of al-Akfani, from the fourteenth branches of learning. More frequent than the encyclopedias just
century, contains a brief list of historical works and has a word of discussed which disregard the A ra b learning entirely or adm it
custom ary praise for the usefulness of history, but, although it only inadvertently are those which include both the A rab
a great number of sciences are treated in detail, there is no special and the G reek (or non-A rab ) subjects.
section devoted to history which, like poetry, is classed among A catalogue of book titles, such as the Fihrist of Ibn an-Nadim,
the non-sciences. It is obvious th at in the context of his work, al- would have been incomplete w ithout a chapter on historical works.
A kfan i did not think of history as an independent discipline. H is The Fihrist, in fact, contains a long chapter on historians, genealo
contem porary, ad-Dahabi, whose fam e rests upon his achieve- gists, biographers, etc., which is placed between the chapters on
^ Cf. also below, p. 75. Ibu y a ld u n , Muqaddimah, I, 62 Paris, says th at his science of gram m ar and on poetry. This was in the tenth century. From
civilization belongs neither to rhetoric nor to politics.
the same time, we have al-H uw arizm is treatm ent of difficult
^ A l-F arab i, Falsafat Aristutdlis, 61 M a h d i (B eirut 1961), trans. M . M a h d i , 73
(Glencoe 1962). technical terms in the sciences. The terms are grouped together
F ihrist, 358 (Cairo 1348 = 256 F l i Jg e l ) ; a l-Q ifti, 369 M xJl l e r - L i p p e r t ; Ibn A b i
according to the respective branches of learning to which th ey
U sa y b i'a h , i, 209 M O l l e r .
* A b u Z ayd a l-B a lh is attitu d e in his w ork On the Divisions o f the Sciences (cf. G A L lu crative profession of goldsm ith {daqq ad-dahab) and, therefore, w as called ad-D ahabi,
Supplement I, 408} is n ot known. He m ay h ave follow ed his teacher al-K in d i, or he m ay according to his sons Mu^jam, ms. Cairo M ust, al-h adit 65, fol. 13a. Th e Cairo m anuscript
h ave preceded his supposed pupil Ibn Farigiin (see below p. 34f). of the Mu^jam w as w ritten in 745/ i344 during the lifetim e of its author and w as seen b y
II, 36 f. (Cairo, n .y.). No reference to history appears in al-B alaw i (d. 1164, G A L him. I t uses the form Ibn ad-D ahabi. T h e form ad-D ahabi, how ever, was used v e ry soon
Supplement, I, 914), Unmudaj, Ms. or. Princeton 1129A = 515H . after his death and m ay have been used a lread y while he w as still alive. H is pupil M uham
25 ff. (Cairo 1340), quoted in the h istorical section of an-N uw ayri, N ihdyat al-arab, m ad b. 'A b d allah al-S ib li calls him ad-D ahabi in the M ahdsin al-wasdHl. The autograph
X V , 245 (Cairo 1342 ff.). m anuscripts of ad-D ahab i should be checked in this connection (cf. the plates added to
IrSdd al-qdsid, 15 (Cairo 1318/1900), quoted b y as-Sahaw i, I'^ldn 30, below , p. 307 f. the first volum e of the edition of the Siyar an-nubald^, Cairo 1955/56). For Ibn ad-D ahabi, cf.
* Op. cit., 14. also O . S p i e s , Beitrdge zur arabischen Literaturgeschichte, 112 (Leipzig 1932, A K M 19, 3 ).
* H is nam e actu a lly should be Ibn ad-D ahabi, as it was his father who exercised the ^ Muqaddimah, III, 107 Paris.
R o s e n t h a l , H istory of M uslim H istoriography 3
34 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T TH E P O SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 35

belong. The second part of al-H uw 4 rizm is w ork deals w ith the encyclopedia in tabular form, which is quite a rem arkable arrange
"G reek sciences, which are considered foreign importations. The m ent to be found in so early a period. The m ain topic in each
first part comprises th e A rab sciences. I t has chapters on Muslim case is w ritten in large letters. Thin lines lead from it to the detailed
jurisprudence, theology, grammar, calligraphy, poetry, metrics, explanations which are w ritten in smaller letters and, as a rule,
and, as the last chapter, "historical inform ation. The disposition vertically. T he first reference to history in this w ork is one to the
of the historical termini technici w ithin the chapter on history is historical knowledge which secretaries m ust possess.^ Then, in
as follows: The Persian kings; the caliphs and Muslim princes; the second chapter, the author has the following to say about
pre-Islam ic Y em en ite and other non-Arab dynasties; another history which he classifies among the notions of wisdom [Him al~
section on Persian history; Bedouin history; the early Islam ic hikmah) : i) H istory [Him at-ta^rihdt) ^ is based upon rare events
raids; the pre-Islam ic Arab rulers; and finally, terms connected of far-reaching significance, such as a deluge, an earthquake, an
w ith B yzantine history. ^ This arrangement does not follow th at epidemic, or a famine. 2) It is necessary to know the succession of
of an actual historical work, but it corresponds to the m aterial dynasties and the rulers according to the clim ates in which they
to be found in w orld histories. Hved, w ith their number, days, and the length of their respective
The RasdHl of the Ihw an as-safa contain a classification of the reigns. 3) The beginning of creation and the events surrounding the
sciences in which history is relegated to a place similar to the one Resurrection as well as the physical and intellectual conditions of
it occupies in al-Huwarizmi. It figures among the propaedeutic past generations. Because of its remoteness, this m aterial is often
{riyddiyah), or, rather, practical, sciences which comprise i) reading corrupt. The m aterial is so extensive th at only God knows it all.
and writing, 2) lexicography and gram mar, 3) comm ercial counting, I t is acceptable only inasmuch as it is based upon literary sources
4) poetry and prosody, 5) various kinds of divination, 6) magic, or trustw orthy inform ation. 4) The biography of Muhammad,
talismans, alchem y, etc., 7) professions and crafts, 8) commerce, w hich is instructive for political and m ilitary activities. 5) The
agriculture and animal husbandry, ^ and 9) biography and biographies of the Qurasite caliphs, their conquests, adm inistration,
history [Him as-siyar wa-l-ahhdr). The next higher group is con a n d the revolts th at took place during their reigns, as w ell as 6)
stituted b y the religious sciences, and th e highest one b y the the history of the transition of power from the U m ayyads to the
philosophical sciences. O nly the last m entioned group is considered Abb^sids, which is illustrative of the changes of time. 7) The
as being of any real im portance; therefore, a larger am ount of B edouin (pre-Islamic) history, which contains m uch poetry.
space is devoted to it.^ A bout history, the Ihw an as-safa m erely (H yderabad 1357-58); G A L , I, 96; E . d e Z a m b a u r , M anuel de genealogie et de chronologic,
say th at its contem plation leads to experience and the realization 205 (H annover 1927). H ow ever, the proper nam e of the author is n ot certain. In the
m anuscript of the E scorial, w hich w as w ritten in 393/1003, the nam e was read S a 'y a
of hum an instability.^ (Isaiah) b y M. C a s i r i , Bibliotheca Arabico-Hispana-Escurialensis, I, 280 (Madrid 1760),
A nother rem arkable work which appears to date from about the and H . P. J . R e n a u d , Les M anuscripts arabes de IEscurial, II, 3, 82 f., no. 950 (Paris 1941).
M. S t e i n s c h n e i d e r , therefore, claim ed Ibn F arigu n as a Jew (D ie arabische Literatur der
m iddle of the tenth century and thus would probably be the oldest Juden, 120, F ra n k fu rt a.M. 1902). H. S u t e r , stran gely enough, w an ted to id en tify the
of the preserved A rab-G reek encyclopedias is entitled Jawdmi^ auth or of the Jawami^ al-'-ulum w ith a Spanish scholar, Sa^id b. F ath u n (Die Mathematiker
und Astronomen der Araber und ihre Werke, 73, L eipzig 1900, Abh. zur Geschichte der mathem.
al-'-ulum. Its author is a certain Ibn Farigun who is said to have ly jss., 10). F or certain points of sim ilarity w ith the anonym ous author of the Persian
been a student of A bu Z ayd al-Balhi.^ T he w ork is a com prehensive geographical w ork Hudud al-^dlam, cf. V . M i n o r s k y , in A Locust's Leg, Studies in Honor
of S. H . Taqizadeh, 189-96 (London 1962).
1 M afdtth al-'-ulum, 60-82 (Cairo 1349/1930). T h e E g yp tia n L ib ra ry in Cairo has tw o ph otostat m anuscripts of th e w ork (M a'arif
^ Cf. Qur^an surah ii 205 (201). '^m m ah 528 and 527). Th e originals are in Istanbul, T o pkapu saray, A h m et III , 2768 and
^ RasdHl Ihwan as-safd?, I, 202 (Cairo 1 3 4 7 / 1 9 2 8 ) ; II, 2 4 6 D i e t e r i c i , translated b y F . 2675, cf. H . R i t t e r , in Oriens, III , 83 ii. (1950). T h e form er (first m ade availab le to me
D i e t e r i c i , in D ie Philosophie der Araber, IV , 1 0 (Leipzig 1 8 6 8 ). Cf. also below, pp. 4 5 and 1 1 if. in m icrofilm through the kindness of G . E . v o n G r u n e b a u m ) is dated in D u 1-qa'd ah 396/
* Op. cit., I, 253 f. (Cairo 1347/1928). Cf. also IV , 2 11. T he Risdlah al-jdmi^ah, II, 174 A u gu st 1006. T h e la tter, undated, is sim ilar to it in appearance. On the E scorial m anuscript,
S a lib a (Dam ascus 1368-71/1948-51), places the h istory (ahbdr) of the ancients, the poems cf. D . M. D u n l o p , in Z eki V elidi Togan^a Arma^an, 348-53 (Istanbul 1955). Cf. also G A L
of early poets, and the stories of the first generations and d ays p a st among the acquisitions Supplement, I, 435.
of the ration al soul and puts this kind of knowledge on a level with religious and astrological ^ Phot. Cairo M a'arif 'am m ah 527, p. 49, cf. below , p. 5 if.
predictions of fu tu re even ts. * T h e m eaning eras is transparent.
Farigun occurs as a Persian nam e; cf., for instance. Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, X , 64 Cf. Q ur an surah x iv 9 (10), and also ix 70 (71).
36 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E PO SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 37

8) The Persian books and biographies, such as the Covenant of preparatory curriculum of the linguistic and m athem atical-physical
A rdasir B ab a k a n / the speeches of Anusarwan, the K arnam ah. sciences. Since it is an easy and pleasurable subject, it should be
A ll this is instructive with regard to political affairs and the ad studied when one needs a rest from other more demanding subjects.
m inistration of justice. 9) The m ain events, stories, and actions H istory serves as evidence for the instability of the world and for
connected w ith the individual rulers, and 10) the history of persons the fact th at tyran n y and injustice are alw ays punished in the end
of noble birth, scholars, secretaries, poets, eloquent men, kind men, while virtue is alw ays rewarded. It stim ulates the im itation of the
generous men, gentle men, moderate men, and faithful men.^ deeds of virtuous men and is a warning against following the example
Owing to his chosen form of presentation, the author had to be of evildoers.! Since historical reports coming from v a stly different
brief. The absence of any reference to later dynasties and, above all, regions, periods, and cultural environments, all teach the same
the absence of any specific theological elements as well as the lesson, their truth cannot be denied.
com paratively minor position assigned to the history of M uhammad Subsequently, Ibn H azm has another, more system atic division
and to th at of scholars and cities would seem to be characteristic of the sciences into a trivium , consisting of the science of the
of the tenth century.
religious law [sari'-ah), history [ahbdr], and linguistic science, all
A brief discussion of the sciences ascribed to al-Jahiz but believed sciences which differ in every nation and religion, and into a
to date from the tenth century, evaluates every science as to its quadrivium , consisting of astronomy, m athem atics, medicine,
good or bad characteristics. W hat the author describes as magdzi and philosophy. A ll these sciences have their subdivisions, genealogy
and ahbdr, apparently referring to the literature on the Muslim being one of history. H istorical w riting m ay be organized according
conquests, is characterized as useless forgeries used to cap tivate to kingdoms (dynasties), countries, or classes [tahaqdt). Histories
the common people.^ On the other hand, hadit and dtdr, the m ay also be arranged annalistically, or th ey m ay loosely deal with
traditions of the Prophet and the early Muslims, are praised very a variety of relevant topics. The histories of non-Muslim nations,
highly as teaching the history [ahbdr, anbd'") of the men of the past. such as the Israelites, the Persians, the Greeks [Rum], the Turks,
H istorical anecdotes {al-ahbdr wa-n-nawddir) are severely censured. the Hazars, the Negroes, the Indians, the Chinese, and so on, are
Other historical m aterial, if this is m eant b y al-ahbdr wa-n-nutaf, only im perfectly known, if at all. Muslim history, however, is fully
is praised as providing valuable m ental discipline.^ It m ay be noted and reliably known. The student of history must not waste his
here th at A bu H ayyan at-Taw hidi made no mention of history in time on the study of unreliable and unprofitable aspects of historical
his Risdlah f i l-'-ulum.^ knowledge. A ll this m akes it clear th at in Ibn H azm s view, Muslim
The eleventh century is represented b y the brilliant Spaniard, history is one of the sciences of the Muslim religious law and is on
Ibn Hazm. He included brief treatm ents of history in tw o places a par w ith A rabic philology as an auxiliary discipline in the religious-
of his Mardtih al-Hilum.^ H istory occupies an im portant place in the legal field, although it has wider and more general implications.
For the second part of the following century, we m ay refer to
1 Th e te xt is preserved in the Istanbul ms. K opriilii 1608, fols. I46b-I55a.
^ Phot. Cairo M a'arif amm ah 527, p. 90. A rab ic text, below, p. 539 f. the encyclopedia of Fahr-ad-din ar-Razi, entitled Hadd^iq al-anwdr
F or early objections to the magdzi literature, cf. I. G o l d z i h e r , Muhamtnedanische f i haqdHq al-asrdr, a Persian work, which is more easily available
Studien, II, 206 (H alle 1889-90).
^ Cf. C. P e l l a t , i n al-Machriq, L, 70-78 (1956). than the A rabic recension Jdmi'- al-Hdum (if the latter exists at
^ E d. and trans. M. B e r g e , in B ulletin d'Etudes Orientales de I'lnstitu t Frangais de all).2 It is obvious th at ar-R azi felt th at history constituted an
Damas, X V I I I , 241-300 (1963-64).
Rasd^il Ibn Hazm, 71 f., 78 f. I h s a n Ab b a s (Cairo n .y. [1954]), cf. the brief sum m ary * Ibn Hazm expressed him self sim ilarly in his R isd la k ft muddwdt an-nufus, cf. Rasd^il, 149.
b y M. AsiN P a l a c i o s , Un codice inexplorado del Cordobes Ibn Hazm, in A l-A n dalus, II,
^ Bodleian mss. or. Fraser 183 (F.the 1481), fols. 36b-46a, and 182 (Ethe 1482), fols.
49, 52 (1934), and as-Sahaw i, I^ldn 47, below , p. 333 f. A n acquaintance w ith ancient and
27a-34a, see below, p. 540 f. Cf. also al Ju w ayn i, Ta'^rth-i-jahdnguMy II, r (Leiden-London
modern h istory is one of the things needed for real know ledge (haqd^iq), according to Ibn
1912-16). The Istan bul m anuscripts m entioned in G A L , I, 508, as containing the Arabic
H azm s Taqrib, 198 I h s a n ' A b b a s (B eirut, n. y. [1959]). T h e existence of w ell-know n
version, in fa ct contain the Persian w ork. The 1966 reprint of the edition B om bay 1323
countries and rulers and the undoubted even ts connected w ith them are the basic premises
of the Jdmi'- al-^iilum, pp. 50-62, contains the Persian text.
for h isto ry pro ved true through an abu n d an tly a ttested tradition (Taqrib, 202). C f.,fu rth e r,
T h e unusual encyclopedia ascribed to a certain Q azw ini {(iA L, I, 499), M ufid al-'^ulum
below , p. 112.
wa-mubtd al-humUm, 169-85 (Cairo 1310), has chapters on historical inform ation and the
38 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E P O SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 39

ancilla theologiae. Its treatm ent, as the thirteenth science of the m atters, and the lowest group which comprises the natural sciences
work, follows th a t of the science of traditions and the sciences of and medicine. According to one definition, the middle group
the names of hadit authorities. It is followed, in turn, b y another consists of the quadrivium (and thus would not be concerned with
historical discipline of theological significance, the raids [magdzi] of history). A ccording to another definition, everything th at is
the early years of Islam, and, after that, the author turns to the concerned w ith language belongs to it, as, for instance, poetry,
treatm ent of grammar, and so on. A r-R azi was prim arily a philos rhetoric, and logic. H istory {Him al-ahbdr) falls under th at part of
opher. Looking at historiography from his vantage point, he finds language which is concerned w ith prose composition. It forms a
th at in contrast to other sciences, it knows no system atic treat triad w ith speechm aking and epistolography. Its subdivisions are
m ent of its problems on a progressive scale which would lead up from historical inform ation about kings and their policies; the history
simple problems to the more difficult ones. Thus, historiography of dynasties and im portant e ve n ts; and historical inform ation about
does not m ake a distinction betw een inform ation which is virtuous men, sages, noble personalities, and men of the opposite
obvious, and inform ation which is not obvious. Some of its d ata qualities.!
are com plicated, and others simple, w ith no gradual transition. A bout a hundred years later, another Persian scholar, Muhammad
A r-R azi concludes that it would be difficult to observe a logical b. Mahmud al-Am uli, who wrote in 1340, dealt w ith history in
arrangement in the treatm ent of historiography. He therefore his ponderous encyclopedia, NafdHs al-funun f i ^-ardHs al-'-uyun.^
divides his discussion into nine chapters which deal w ith factu al In his work, too, history occupies a position among the Muslim
inform ation. He starts, as we would expect, w ith the ancient religious and A rab literary sciences which form the subject of the
history of the Persians and then goes over to M uhamm ads history first part of the work. However, it is placed among a group of sub
and the names of the caliphs. A special chapter is devoted to Ali. jects, such as riddles and genealogy, which are classified b y the
A nother chapter deals with the history of the transition of power author as conversational sciences. H istory is called Hlm-i-tawdrih
from the U m ayyad s to the Abbasids, which also constituted a wa-siyar. A ctu ally, the author explains, these are tw o different
special subject in Ibn F ariguns Jawdmi'- al-'-ulum. The remaining branches of learning. One of them is concerned w ith the length
four chapters are concerned w ith the more recent history of the life and the duration of the activities of prophets, kings,
close to ar-R azis own time, i.e., the history of the fam ily of rulers, and religious groups (nations), while the other deals with
Sult.n M ahm ud of Gaznah, the beginnings and later history of the the individual circum stances of each personality. Nevertheless,
Saljuqs, and, finally, the history of the ruler at whose court ar-R azi al-Am uli follows the custom of treating the tw o together under the
lived, the H uwarizm ah A bu 1-M uzaffar Tekes, who ruled from one heading of history. In accordance w ith the usual procedure
589/1193 to 596/1200. of historians, he starts out with a few words about the instruc
The Suluk al-mdlik f i tadbir al-mamdlik, an encyclopedia in tiveness and m anifold practical uses of history in th at it teaches
tabular form composed b y a certain Ibn A b i r-R ab i', presents the fleeting character of w orldly greatness and the in stab ility of
itself as a work w ritten under the Caliph al-M utasim (in the ninth m aterial possessions and gives m an an opportunity to keep his
centu ry). This appears to be an error, and it has been suggested that name alive and to live on as a good m emory. In five chapters,
the caliph in question m ight be the last ^Abbasid al-Musta^'sim who al-Am uli then presents a brief sketch of world history. He deals
died during the Mongol conquest of B agdad in 1258.^ H istory, w ith the history of the prophets from A dam to M uhamm ad;
according to Ibn A b i r-R a b i, belongs to an interm ediate group of the Persian kings; the kings of H atay, and the kings (i.e., the em-
sciences. This group stands in the middle between the highest group
1 Suluk al-mdlik, 46 f. (Cairo 1329, an edition which dispenses w ith the tabular arrange
which comprises theology, religious law, and all supernatural
ment).
h istory and w ay of life (siyar) of rulers. A -ah razu ris Sajarah al-ildhtyah, which w as w ritten in 1282, has nothing on history.
^ Cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 372. Accordin g to the G A L , the S u lM m ay have been com posed T h e section on history in an-N uw ayris Nihdyat al-arah is contained in vols. 13 ff. of the
in 655/1256. Cf. also A s *^a d T a l a s , in Revue de VAcademic arabe de Damas, X X I V , 274 (1949); Cairo edition. Its contents is indicated in the table of contents of the whole work.
M. P l e s s n e r , in. Ignace Goldziher M emorial Volume, II, 81 f. (Jerusalem 1958). I, 261-99 (Teheran? 1315-17). I also consulted the Bodleian m anuscripts of the work.
40 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E PO SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 41

perors and popes) of the European C hristians; the first four cahphs, thorough religious scholars broadminded one m ight call them, if
the U m ayyads, and the Abbasids; and the later dynasties of the sufficient allowance is m ade for their inherent lim itations. These
eastern part of the Mushm world, from the Saffarids to the house scholars realized the im portance which historical studies, as th ey
of Jingizhan. understood them, had for theological and juridical pursuits, and
W ith the time of al-Amuli, we have reached the threshold of a some of them, such as Ibn H ajar, became historians in their own
rather unexpected development, to wit, the appearance of historiog right. Moreover, the country possessed in men such as al-Malik
raphy as an independent discipline which was considered deserving al-Asraf B arsb ay com paratively strong and ambitious rulers who
of discussion in monograph form. This developm ent did not have adm ired past greatness and considered themselves deserving of
its starting point in the encyclopedic history of sciences. It grew out historical fame. A few centuries before this period, a Mushm
of the historical interests of the Muslim religious sciences, which, historian correctly rem arked: W hen the country was full of good
in general, were responsible for most of the progress in Muslim and noble men, God appointed a historian who would tell their
scholarly technique. Still, history had alw ays been considered b y noble deeds and qualities, but when they were no longer and only
most theologians as a necessary but definitely very inferior adjunct mean persons remained, m ercifully there also was no longer a
of their studies. Therefore, the appearance of monographs on histo historian to be found. ^ Now, historians could find again both the
riography was not something th at came about as a m atter of course inspiration for their w ork and the m aterial encouragement. Another
but depended on special circumstances which made it possible for coincidence which was as auspicious in this case as its like has
monographs to materialize.^ alw ays been in intellectual history was the appearance of a man
In the case of the Persian, al-lji, it seems to have been his who combined in himself the qualities of an eminent statesm an and
interest in philosophy th at caused him to speculate about the scholarly genius. The historical w ork of the statesm an and judge,
th eo ry of historiography. His Gift of the Poor M an written in 1381-82 Ibn Haldun, was w idely discussed, frequently attacked, alw ays
m ainly aims at providing for historical inform ation what philosoph highly appreciated, and little understood in short, it fulfilled the
ical speculation had done for the science of hadit, nam ely, a m ost im portant function of a scholarly work, th at is, to act as an
system atic approach to the problem of ascertaining historical truth, incentive and stimulus. Under these circumstances, scholars were
so th at the truth of Islam would find its historical justification.^ able to specialize in historical research and to speculate about the
The discussions of historiography b y al-K M iyaji, who wrote his theoretical aspects of historiography. The latter stage, however,
Short Work on Historiography in Cairo in 867/1463, and the E gyp tian appears to have been reached only near the end of the period under
as-Sahawi, who finished his Open Denunciation of the Critics o f the consideration, and the great historians of the beginning of the
Historians in Mecca in 897/1492, become understandable as the fifteenth century, such as al-Maqrizi, do not seem to have devoted
result of the favorable situation which historical studies enjoyed special studies to the theory of historiography.
in the E g y p t of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. In contrast B oth a l-K afiy a ji and as-Sahawi were prim arily religious scholars,^
to other parts of the Muslim world at the time, political conditions but for them, history was not the mere servant b u t alm ost the
in E g y p t were b y and large stable and offered an atmosphere equal of the science of tradition.^ Their historical studies exclusively
in which scholarly work in general could flourish. The m aterial served the purpose of defending the flourishing historiography
welfare of scholars was com paratively well taken care of b y m an y against attacks b y the general run of theologians and of upholding
pious foundations. There existed then a few especially keen and
^ Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, I X , 42 (H yderabad 1357-38), quoting A b u 1-W afa b. 'A q il
1 A t the same time, the subject of h istory continued to p la y a certain if subordinate role (G A L Supplem ent I, 687).
in encyclopedias. Thus, in the first half of the fifteenth century, 'A b d -ar-R ah m an al- * F or the follow ing paragraph, cf. also below, pp. 245 ff. and 263 ff.
B istam i includes biograph y and history (Him as-siyar wa-l-ahbdr) am ong the propaedeutic Cf. as-Saliaw i, IHdn 45, below , p. 330 f. Scholars such as A b u Sam ah found it necessary
sciences said to be m ostly directed toward p ractical and m aterial goals. A m on g them , to defend their historical activities b y the exam ple of as-5 a fi'i. He w as said to have been
historical subjects o ccu py the last place, after the m agical sciences, cf. al-Bistam i, al- considered b y Mus'^ab az-Z u b ayri as the m ost learned historian in existence and to have
Fawd^ih al-misktyah, Istanbul ms. Nuru O snianiye 1520, fol. 72b. studied history (ayydm an-nds) and adab for tw en ty years, as an aid to jurisprudence
^ Cf. below, p. 201 ff. (Rawdatayn, 5, Paris 1898, Recueil des hist, des Croisades, H ist, or., 4).
42 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T TH E PO SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 43

its position w ithin the theological disciplines. Their theological w ith the biographies of the transmitters.^ In this connection,
preconceptions naturally warped their discussion. A l-K M iyaji, espe local histories of the theological typ e becam e a subject of instruc
cially, seems to h ave brought to his task an additional measure of tion,^ and if possible, students travelled to their authors, in order
confused thinking, even if it w as the strict m ental discipline of the to acquire firsthand knowledge directly from them and on the
principles of jurisprudence th at determ ined his analysis of history. spot. Some academic instruction on historical subjects was thus
However, their works are the perfect expression of w hat Muslim alw ays available, and the stu d y notes and ijdzahs at the end of
historiography w as and aspired to be. In points of detail, th ey historical m anuscripts testify to that. One might, however, expect
depend on the w ork of previous generations of scholars, b ut the to find frequent references to historical lectures in the innumerable
synthesis appears to be their own. A m ong the questions th ey treat scholarly biographies which are known. This is not the case. The
are those of the object and definition of history, its purpose and references to history and historians in all the biographies of the
usefulness, its origin, the qualifications and methods of the historian, History of Bagdad are not frequent. It is true th a t the History
the criteria and degrees of reliability of historical inform ation (al- of Bagdad is theologically oriented. This explains w h y few historical
K M iyaji), and the various products of Muslim historiography (as- works except those of im m ediate interest for hadit scholars are
Sahawi). As-Sahaw i's numerous quotations from the introductions mentioned in it.^ B u t its silence with regard to historical activities
of historical works, almost the only places where historians proves th a t the official system of education then in force cared
expressed general reflections about the nature of their task,i little for them.
give a complete cross section of the Muslim thinking on history. A m an so well known as a historian as ad-D ahabi includes in
W e miss an y deeper penetration into the problems of history, and the list of his teachers (Mu^jam) only a very few references to
only here and there do we encounter traces of greater awareness the fact th a t the one or other among them wrote historical works
of w hat history m ay mean. However, in this respect, too, al-K M iyaji ^ A s-S a m 'to i, for instance, studied Ibn M andahs Ma^rifat as-sa^dbah, cf. Ansdb, fol. 60b
and as-Sah^wi tru ly represent the attitude of Muslim scholarship. ( = I I, 44 of the edition w hich began to appear in H yd erabad 1382/1962, un fortu n ately
w ithout references to the folio num bers of the m anuscript reproduced b y D. S. M a r g o -
H istoriography, in al-M asudis words, was, for Muslim scholars, l i o u t h ) . Ibn Ja m a 'ah recom m ends the knowledge of the dates [tawdrih] of the science of

factual inform ation {habar) and not speculative research {baht traditions as one of the branches of th at science (Tadkirah 126, H yd erab ad 1354)-
^ A s-S am 'an i, for instance, studied al-A zraq is History of Mecca (as w ell as the History
and nazar),^ and the author of a historical w ork frequently called of Y a 'q u b b. Sufyan ), cf. Ansdb, fols. 54a ( = I, 400, of the H yd erab ad edition), 148a,
himself a compiler [jdmi^). and 195b.
Al-^Iatib al-B agdadi lectured in B agd ad on his History of the c ity (Y aq u t, IrSdd, I, 246 f.
The preceding discussion has made it sufficiently clear th at M a r g o l i o u t h = IV , 1 6 f. C airo).T here is no reason to assume, w ith the Handworterbuch des

historiography could hardly be expected to have form ed part of Islam , 389a, s.v. M adrasa (Leiden 1941), th at he lectured on th at w ork in the M osque, thus
e levatin g it to the rank of a regu larly tau gh t subject. T h e te x t says th at he tau gh t hadit in
Muslim higher education. Indeed, it never achieved the position the Mosque, and the History o f Bagdad in B agd ad thus, apparently, n ot in the Mosque.
of an academ ic subject either in the environment in which the Parallel te x ts are less clear on this point, b u t confirm ation comes from a most interesting
legend which m ay reflect the historical settin g accurately: A student of the I^atib dream ed
G reek sciences were cultivated, or in the form al system of th at he was attending a h istory lecture in the house of the H atib as u su al, b u t there was
Muslim religious education which crystallized in the eleventh an unusual auditor there, none other than the Prophet him self, and I said to m yself,
the narrator of the story continues, th at this was not on ly an honor for the Sayh, b u t also
century. L ack of evidence is enough of a confirm ation of the fact a refu tation of those who censure the stu d y of h istory as in vo lvin g attacks upon the
th a t w orldly history was not represented in the curriculum of any religious scholars (as-Snbki, Tabaqdt as-SdfiHyah, III, 14 f., Cairo 1324).
Ibn 'A sa k ir lectured on his volum inous History of Damascus in the presence of as-
madrasah anywhere in Islam. The biography of M uhammad was S a m 'a n i and the ^Imad al-Isfahani. I t seems, though, th at the lecture was m erely a per
studied there. T he science of traditions required an acquaintance fu n ctory reading of sm all parts of the w ork, cf. al-'^Imad al-Isfahani, Hartdat al-qasr
{Syrian poets), 274, 276 (Dam ascus 1375/1955); the la tte r passage seems to b elon g to a
q uotation from a s-Sam 'an is Supplem ent to the History o f Bagdad and thus to refer to as-
S am 'an i and not to the 'Im ad.
1 Th e same situation prevailed in the W estern Middle Ages, c f . F. W a g n e r , Geschickts- ^ W ith reference to al-H akim s History of Ntsdbur, cf. T B , V , 474, and as-Sam 'am ,
wissenschaft, 54 ff. (Munich 1951). Ansdb, fol. g g b ; w ith reference to al-M ataris H istory o f M edina, cf. Taqi-ad-din a l-F asis
2 M u fu j, I, 151 Paris ed. = I, 46 (Cairo 1346); cf. also al-M as'udi, Tanhth 354 D e G o e j e , autobiography, in al-^Iqd at-tamtn (cf. below, p. 165, n. 3).
and at-Tabari, I, 56. B u t cf. the long list of historical works studied b y the H atib (Y . al-Hss, al-Hatlb al-
F or instance, al-W aqid is Magdzt, cf. as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 243b (Ragini). i, 106-12, Dam ascus 1364/1945).
44 BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E PO SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 45

or occupied himself w ith history. A contem porary of as-Sahawi in education, historical works were system atically read and studied
the fifteenth century, Muhammad b. Am m ar, studied the basic b y the scholars who were interested in them. A fter the death
principles of jurisprudence w ith Ibn Haldun, and only in this of the Qur^an com m entator Ibn A b i t-T a yy ib (d. 458/1065), his
connection, it is mentioned th at he also studied part of the Muqad- library was found to contain four books: one on jurisprudence,
dimah of Ibn H alduns H istory w ith its author.^ H ardly any of one on belles lettres, and two volumes on history.^ Indeed, a
the m any scholars whose scholastic careers were described b y strange collection! E ven the author of a system atic philosophical
\ as-Sahawi in the Daw' al-ldmi*' is expressly stated to have studied w ork m ay occasionally though rarely betray the fact th a t he studied
w orldly histories, though the historical lectures of Ibn Haldun historical works. ^ For a later age, w e have much better evidence
wHich Ibn H ajar and others attended are incidentally mentioned.^ of w hat historical books a scholar (who, it is true, developed ear
The stu d y of historical works, even those which w ould interest ly a professional interest in history) would read in the course
teligious scholars, also is only very rarely referred to in the paw\^ of his scholarly education. In the list of the books studied b y
As-SahS,wi himself does not say in his autobiography that the studied him {al-Mu'^jam al-mufahras), Ibn H ajar has m any historical
historical works. W e hear, however, of famous historians of the titles. The third chapter of the Mu'-jam al-mufahras which deals
tim e as teachers, and it is well possible th at th ey also lectured w ith the different branches of the science of traditions contains
e% officio on their historical works. A s-Suyuti tells us th a t in one biographical works and local histories, but among them there
of his classes in the Mosque of A hm ad b. Tuliin, he was asked also appears a reference to the great History of at-Tahari^ and
about the historicity of Qaraqus,^ but the question m ay have been to the Ansdb of az-Zubayr b. B ak kar and Ibn al-A tirs Ansdb
an incidental one and m ay not presuppose the existence of a course and Kdmil.^ The fifth section of the sixth chapter then contains
in history. A knowledge of history is often mentioned among the the general histories which were studied b y Ibn H ajar, such as
scholars listed in the Daw'', but it is alw ays mentioned as part of Ibn al-A tirs Kam il, Sibt Ibn al-Jaw zis Mir^dt az-zamdn, and
their general education (adab).^ E ven in the two cases where a the works of ad-Dahabi, but also biographical works such as al-
scholars stud y of history is said to have been coupled w ith th at of Mundiris Takmilah f i wafaydt an-naqalah. It m ust be said,
jurisprudence, the reference to history pertains to the general however, th at history is lum ped together b y Ibn H ajar w ith the
education of the particular scholar. As a man of general culture, non-traditional sciences and seen in connection w ith gram mar
a great jurist, such as the father of the author of the History of and poetry. Ibn H aja rs interest in history was aroused at the
Qazwin, ar-R M ii, m ay have had a good knowledge of proverbs, beginning of his academ ic studies. He alw ays considered history
poems, historical data, and anecdotes, b u t this was considered the an im portant part of his w ork in the science of traditions and its
least of his accom plishm ents. Such knowledge of history resulted adjunct, biography. B u t his enjoym ent of historical works m ay have
from the role of history as part of a m ans general culture, about been th at of the m aturing student and the man of general Culture.
which more will be said later on. In fact, the real position of history in Muslim education has
W hile historical studies did not fall under the category of higher alw ays been one in elem entary education. H istory was an occasional
^ Daw^, V I I I , 233. In the biographies of the History o f Granada of Ibn H aldu n s con
subject of form al instruction in school. It alw ays was, in some form
tem porary, Lisan-ad-din Ibn al-H atib, we find w h at seem to be unusually frequent references or other, the favorite reading m atter for boys and an im portant
to a knowledge of h istory on the part of the biographees.
* Daw^, IV , 148. A l-K in a n i studied h istory w ith al-M aqrizi {Daw^, I, 205). element in their intellectual formation.
* Cf., for instance, Daw^, I, 196. The Ihw an as-safa* refer to the fact th a t the children in school
* Cf. P. C a s a n o v a , Kardkouch, in Mem. publiees par les memhres de la mission archeol.
frangaise du Caire, 472 (Paris, 1897). For a l-K a fiy a ji lecturing on historiography, cf. below,
learn the Q uran, history (ahbdr), poetry, gram mar, and lexicog-
p. 24 7 -
^ A s is also the case, for instance, in the obituaries of a l-Y u n in is D ayl M ir at az-zamdn Y a q u t, IrSdd, X I I I , 274 (Cairo = V , 232 M argoliouth).
(H yderabad 1374-80/1954-61). ^ H ibatallah al-Bagdadi, MuHabar, II, 223 (H yderabad 1357), quotes the h istory of
* Daw^, III, 41, and X I, 66. al-Jah siyari for the appearance of a star in the days of al-M uwaffaq.
^ Cf. a r-R a fi i, al-Qawl al-fasl f t fadl A M Fadl, a biograph y of his father, which he in ^ Al-Mu^jam al-mufahras, Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 82 (w ritten in 854/1450), p. 140.
corporated in the History of Qazwin, Phot. Cairo T a rih 2648, p. 94. ^ Op. cit., p. 162. F or the y a t i b al-B agd ad i, cf. above, p. 43, n. 4.
46 BA C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E P O SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 47

rap h y.i The system atic works on elem entary education are nearly m uch attracted b y historical inform ation and stories. I was very
all silent on the subject of history. The tenth-century Qabisi, eager to read w hat had happened in ancient tim es and to know
whose w ork was w ritten from the M alikite point of view, refers to w hat had taken place in past centuries. I read the different collec
the opinion of Ibn H abib th at there is no objection to hiring a tions of stories and anecdotes. From th at I transferred m y predi
teacher for the teaching of poetry, grammar, epistolography, lection to the long fanciful tales, and then to the big novels, such
the battle days of the Arabs and similar subjects such as the as the stories of A n tar,i 1-Himmah, and al-B attal, the story
biographies of scholars and outstanding men [Him ar-rijdl wa- of Alexander D u 1-qarnayn, of al-A n q a (the Phoenix), and Taraf
dawi a l-m u ru w d t)^ This is history seen in the fam iliar context of b. Ludan, and others. A fter I had studied these works, it became
adab works. A slight religious coloring is already present. In later clear to me th at most of their (contents derived) from the works of
times, the inform ation about pious men is recommended as the the historians. I looked for true historical inform ation. M y attention
only historical subject in which children m ight be instructed. was directed tow ard historical works. I read the book of A bu A li
The scarcity of references to the teaching of history in works b. M iskawayh which he had entitled Tajdrib al-umam. I also studied
on elem entary education shows th at it was not a w idely taugh t the History of at-T abari and other historical works. Through them,
subject. It was permissible to teach it. More could h ardly be I becam e acquainted w ith the history [ahbdr) of the Prophet,
expected. General educational requirements did not extend beyond his raids, and the miracles which God produced for him . . ^
reading, writing, and the memorizing of the Q uran. O nly the A s-Sam aw al was greatly impressed b y the miraculous success of
great and the well-to-do could afford to hire teachers who would Muhammad, the collapse of the m ighty Persian and B yzantine
instruct their children in other subjects.^ H istorical knowledge, armies, the skilful and just policies of A bu B ak r and Umar.
therefore, was usually acquired b y p rivate reading or, on a lower If he as a Jew could be so much influenced b y the record of a past
level, from story-tellers who seem to have filled the role of popular which was not his, how much more so must young Muslims have
interpreters of the Muslim religious view of history since the experienced the emotional im pact of the historical literature. Here
beginning of Islam.^ we clearly see the tremendous significance of historiography in
A rare glimpse into the im portant role which historical works Islam. It helped to inspire lo y a lty to and enthusiasm for the religious
played in the intellectual form ation of boys is afforded to us and cultural heritage of Islam at an age in the life of the individual
through the autobiography of the tw elfth-century Jewish scientist,
as-Sam aw al b. Y a h y a al-Magribi, who later in his life converted
1 In the tim e of as-Sam aw al, it w as possible for a you n g student to earn his livin g b y
to Islam : " . . . A t the age between tw elve and thirteen, I was very
copyin g the novel of 'A n ta r. T h e physician A b u 1-Mu a yy a d al-Jazari thus acquired the
nam e of a l-'A n ta ri (Ibn A b i U sa yb i'a h , I, 290 M u l l e r ). A thirteen th -cen tu ry amir, Salih
^ Rasd?il Ihwdn as-safd^, III , 60 (Cairo 1347/1928). T h a t ahbdr in this con text does not b. 'A li b. B u htu r, it m ay be added here, while he was in prison, copied the 'A n ta r novel,
refer to traditions m ay, for instance, be deduced from the biograph y of H ibatallah Ibn cf. Salih b. Y a h y a , Histoire de Beyrouth, ed. L . C h e i k h o , 2nd ed., 81 (Beirut 1927).
M akula, in Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V II I , 103, anno 430 (H yderabad 1357-58). In the tw entieth cen tury, the same m aterial th at inspired as-Sam aw al continues to serve
^ A. F. al-Ihw ani (or Ahw ani), at-TaHtm f t ra?y al-Qdbisi, 278 (Cairo 1364/1945), cf. the its old purpose, as we learn from the biograph y of H a s a n A L -B A N N A ^ the founder of the
editors com m ent, p. 156 f. (2nd ed., pp. 304 and 171 f., Cairo 1955). Ihw an al-M uslim in, a contem porary political m ovem ent th at com m anded a considerable
^ According to the con text, Ibn A b i r-Rabins brief reference to the spiritual advan tage am ount of a tte n tio n in th e i9 4 o sa n d th e e a rly 1950s,cf. I. M. H u s a i n i , The M uslim Brethren,
to be gained b y children from the stu dy of books and biographies {siyar) appears to refer 3 (B eirut 1956). Cf. also below , p. 188.
to the biographies of pious persons (Suluk al-mdlik, 60, Cairo 1329). Taskopriizadeh, Miftdfi ^ Cf. M. S c h r e i n e r , in M onatsschrift fu r Geschichte und Wissenschaft des Judentums,
as-sa^ddah, III, 280 (H yderabad 1328-56), is more explicit. X L I I , 127 and 417 f. (1898). In the edition of as-Samaw^als Ifhdm b y M. P e r l m a n n
* Cf. the references to princely tutors, below p. 48 f. [Proceedings of the Am erican Academy for Jewish Research, X X X I I , N ew Y o rk 1964), the
The mudakkir calls to m ind G ods benefactions, the wdHz bases his adm onitions upon passage appears on p. 100 f., trans. 77 f.
the threats m ade b y God, and the qdss, the story-teller, relates the h istory [ahbdr] of the Converts to Islam , in general, leaned h eavily on argum ents from h istory, in order to
men of the p a st. T h is distinction between three types of preachers is discussed b y A bu prove the superiority of Islam , cf. 'A li b. R abban at-T ab ari (ninth century), Kitdb ad-Din
B a k r Ibn al-^Arabi, ^Aridat al-ahwadi {Commentary on at-Tirm idi's SaMh), X , 140 (Cairo wa-d-dawlah, 52, 54 ff., etc. M i n g a n a (M anchester 1923). F or th at a u th ors high esteem of
1350 - 53 / 1931 - 34)- historiography, one m ay com pare his statem en t: I also noticed th at all books of lasting
* Th e im portance of historical instruction in G reek education was known to Muslims from valu e do not fail to deal either w ith the litera ry and education al m atter of this w orld
the translation of a fragm ent of Them istius, On Friendship, cf. M iskaw ayh, Tahdtb al-ahldq, and the information [ahbdr] about its inhabitants, or w ith religion [op. cit., 45, cf. also
51 (Cairo 1322); F. R o s e n t h a l in Islam ic Culture, X I V , 403 f. (1940). G . E . VON G r u n e b a u m , M edieval Islam , 98, Chicago 1946).
48 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T
T H E P O SITIO N OF H IS T O R Y 49

history [ahbdr). E ach of the tw o princes built up his own library.


in which other intellectual influences would have been far less
effective. T h ey studied poetry and history w ith as-Suli and appear to have
been so fond of these subjects th at as-Suli considered it necessary
Stories, poems, and historical data form ed part of the knowledge
to switch over to Prophetic traditions and engage an auth ority on
which parents would transmit to their children. The historian
the subject, p robably in order to appease the theologians,^
Ibn an-N ajjar (d. 643/1245) was educated b y his brother, since
The role of history in the education of princes was not a fortuitous
his father had died when he was only seven years old. In touching
one. It was closely connected w ith the old oriental tradition of
words, he describes how his brother brought him up, carried him
historical knowledge as the main source of political inspiration for
to the Mosque on Fridays and the tw o holidays, taught him w hat
kings and rulers. This tradition has lived on in Islam. R o y a l
to say, carried him on his shoulders to show him the h oly places
sciences are genealogy and history (hahar) ; the science of m ilitary
and ceremonies when, at the age of nine, he w ent w ith his m other
men is the study of books on b attle days and biographies {siyar) ;
to Mecca. A nd from him he derived m any stories, poems, and
historical data.^ and a m erchants sciences are w riting {kitdb) and counting {hisdb). ^
R oyal sciences are genealogy, history {hahar), and p oetry; the
H istorical instruction held a special place in the education of
sciences of sultans are raids and biographies {siyar) ; a m erchants
young princes.^ R ead historical works and study biographies and the
science is counting; and a secretarys sciences are calligraphy and
experiences of the nations, ^ was a recomm endation which it
linguistic usages. ^ The royal sciences are genealogy, history
was advantageous for every am bitious m an to follow. For the
{hahar, ahhdr), and the outlines {jumal) of jurisprudence. ^ The
potential future ruler, in addition, the study of historical works
knowledge of genealogy and history {ahhdr) belongs to the sciences
was considered the best w ay to imbibe political wisdom. The caliph
of kings and im portant persons. Only noble souls aspire to it, and
al-M utad id ordered Sinan b. T ab it b. Qurrah to go through a fine
small minds do not w ant it. ^ A rhym ed history of the seventeenth
library collection and pick out the books dealing with jurisprudence,
century even included the knowledge of history among the con
biographies {siyar) from ancient and modern times, historical
inform ation about kings and events {ayyam an-nds), historical ditions of the caliphate:
inform ation about the A bbasid dynasty, and similar m aterial, A writer he must be and know.
which would be right for the ages of al-Mu*^tadid's sons, A bu Ja*^far The biographies of the ancients he must understand,
and A b u 1-Fadl, and could be used for their instruction.^ A bu Of kings and caliphs.
1-Fadl, al-M uqtadir, as he was called as caliph, was less than seven A n d likewise of amirs and wazirs.
years old at th at time, and A bu J a 'fa r apparently som ewhat older. Occasionally, however, an author realized th a t not all nations
The next generation, two sons of al-Muqtadir, H arun and his knew history as the royal science. Ibn at-T iq taq a thus mentioned
brother Ahm ad, who later on became caliph under the name of the knowledge of history among the subjects which were esteemed
ar-R adi, were educated b y as-Suli who soon after his appointm ent b y the kings of the Persians and Arabs, but he had nothing to sa y
as their teacher discovered their lack of knowledge. He therefore about history in connection w ith the Mongols.
bought for them books on jurisprudence, poetry, lexicography, and
1 A s Suli, Ahbdr ar-Rddt li-lldh wa-l-Muttaqi li-lldh, 25 D u n n e (London-Cairo 1935),
trans. M. C a n a r d , 73 (Algiers 1946). C f. also Ibn H aldun, M uqaddimah, I I I , 266 Paris,
Ibn an-N ajjar, Supplem ent to the History o f Bagdad, Paris ms. ar. 2 13 1, fol. 36b.
where ar-R asid orders al-A m in to be in stru cted in ahbdr (see above, p. 44, n. 4).
In a fou rteen th-cen tu ry fiirstenspiegel, Ju an M anuel describes the w eekly schedule of
2 Ibn A b d -R ab b ih , "^Iqd, I, 150 (Cairo 1305).
the infante as including general and Spanish h istory as the m ain su bject on T u esd ays,
^ A r-R a g ib al-Isfahani, Muhddardt, I, 21 (B ulaq 1287).
Thursdays, and S atu rd ays, cf. W . B e r g e s , D ie Fiirstenspiegel des hohen und spaten M ittel-
* Ibn H am dun, Tadkirah, part 3, Bodleian ms. or. Marsh 316 (Uri 379), fol. Sob.
alters, 24 3 (Leipzig 19 3 8 . Schriften des Reichsinstituts fUr dltere deutsche Geschichtskunde,
Y a q u t, Irsdd, I, 92 (Cairo = I, 27 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ), follow in g al-B ah arzi (?). Cf. also
Monumenta Germaniae Historica, II).
G A L Supplement I, 204, q uoting al-JM iiz apud as-Suyuti, M uzhir, I, 357 (Cairo 1325).
^ E lijah of Nisibis, M assime, no. 1 2 3 S b a t h (Cairo 1 9 3 6 ).
A l-B a yh a q i, Ta^rih-i-Bayhaq, 15, 17 (Teheran 1317).
* From S in an s H istory of al-MuHadid, as quoted b y Ib n al-'^Adim, Bugyat at-talab, Ph ot.
A l-(ju m ri, Dahirah, Ms. Cairo T a rih 104, fol. i i a .
Ms. Cairo T a rih 1 5 6 6 , I, 1 3 7 . Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , in J A O S , L X X I , 13 9 ( 1 9 5 1 ) . A rab ic text,
Fahrt, 22 A h l w a r d t (G otha i860). C f ., how ever, Svv'l^'r, D ie Mongolen in Iran ,
below , p. 541 f. Cf. also the sto ry reported in T B , I, 228 f., concerning Ib n Ish a q s com position
439 (Leipzig 1939), who rig h tly stresses the Mongol rulers concern w ith h istory.
of a w orld h istory for an 'A b b asid prince upon orders of the la tte rs father.
R o s e n t h a l , H istory of M uslim H istoriography 4
50 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E P O SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 51

W h a t for the B iblical Ahasuerus was the pastim e of a sleepless joined a great part of A sia Minor and of A frica to the dominion of
night is described as the usual routine of the caliph Mu^awiyah: his ancestors. ^
. H e slept one-third of the night, then he rose and sat down. From this, the highest layer of society, the knowledge of history
One brought the files which contained the biographies and history trickled down the whole social scale of officials, scholars, and all
[ahbdr] of the kings and the wars and m ilitary ruses. Slaves who those who w anted to be considered educated. It became the hall
were entrusted w ith the task of knowing and reciting these subjects m ark of general culture. N ot only was Sahrzad of the Arabian
read to him in turns (?). E ach night, he thus studied a certain Nights well read in historical works, the biographies of ancient
am ount of historical and biographical inform ation, of antiquarian kings, and the history [ahbdr) of the p ast and not only was it the
and political m aterial. ^ This story can hardly claim any historical princess who possessed thousand historical works concerned w ith
auth en ticity but, like the novel in which al-Asm ai entertains former nations, kings of the past, and poets, ^ but even a porter
H arun ar-Rasid w ith historical information,^ it somehow reflects m ight claim having read historical works as definite proof of his
an actual situation. There are m any references to caliphs who contention that he was an educated man. ^
displayed an interest in history.^ The library of a flourishing A wazir, even if he was a man w ith no form al education, such as
d yn a sty would contain m any historical works. It is reported that al-Fadl b. M arwan b. Masarjis, a wazir of al-M amiin and al-M u'ta-
am ong the tw o m illion volum es of the library of the F atim ids in sim, was capable of and interested in w riting a book of personal
E g y p t, there were 1220 m anuscripts of at-T ab aris History.^ The reminiscences of the historical events in which he had a part.^
figures seem v a stly exaggerated b u t th ey illustrate the interest in A cultured man, such as the wazir Ibn Sa'dan, would, of course,
historical works which one expected to find in royalty. Some of the have read the Tap, the historical w ork of his contem porary as-Sabi\
lesser rulers of later centuries were also credited w ith a knowledge and thus, in a discussion w ith at-Taw hidi, he is able to refer to the
of history and biography. Others composed historical works of fact th at he could not find in it a report about a m eeting w ith
their own. A Mamluk Sultan greatly enjoyed the lectures of the *Izz-ad-dawlah in which means to counter the B yzantine menace
historian a l-'A y n i.^U nw ittingly, J e a n B o d in , in sixteenth-century h ad been discussed. The historical knowledge of a wazir was also
France, paid a compliment to the great tradition of history as the useful when it came to choosing an auspicious nam e for a ruler;
royal science in Islam when he said: There is no exam ple more thus, B ayb ars who had chosen for himself the nam e of al-M alik al-
recent or more fam ous than th at of Selim, prince of the Turks. Qahir was persuaded b y his minister to change to al-Mahk az-Zahir
Although his ancestors alw ays avoided history on the ground th at because of the unfortunate history of former rulers nam ed al-Qahir.
it is false, he himself first had the deeds of Caesar translated into B u t we also hear th at a w azir does not like to have his ruler study
the vernacular, and b y im itating th at general in a short tim e he historical works, since th ey m ight teach him how to exploit his
1 Al-M as'udi, M uruj, V , 77 f. Paris ed. = II, 72 (Cairo 1 3 4 6 ) . F urther inform ation about subjects on his own, so th a t he would be able to dispense w ith the
M u 'a w iy ah s alleged interest in history is found in Y a q u t, Irsdd, I, 96 (Cairo = I, 29 f. services of the w azir. T he w azir himself, however, had to know
M a r g o l i o u t h ), and F ihrist, 132 (Cairo 1348 = 89 F L t i G E L ) . Cf. also the edition o f 'A b id b .
Saryah , Ahbdr al-Yam an, in Ibn H isain, Ttjdn, 311-488 (H yderabad 1347); Ibn history, and when the stars determ ined th at a child was to become
Q u taybah , ^Uyun al-ahbdr, II, 305 (Cairo 1343-49/1925-30); Agdni, X X I , 1 9 1 ; Y a q u t,
IrM d, X I I , 78, s.v. 'A b id . Cf. also below, p. 64, n. i. In IrSdd, I, 86 ( = I, 29 f.), Y liq u t also ^ Method for the Easy Comprehension of History, 13 R e y n o l d s (New Y o rk 1945). M e h m e t
m entions 'A b d -al-M alik b. M arw ans search for a person am ong whose qualities there m ight the Conqueror is also believed to h ave shown m uch interest in W estern h istorical works,
b e a knowledge o f A rab p o e try and h istory {ahbdr).
c f . F . B a b i n g e r , Mehmed der Eroberer, 115 (Munich 1953). H ow ever, according to M o N T A iG N E ,
^ Cf. below , p. 58.
Essays, II, c h . 36, the M uslims allegedly despised all histories w ith the exception o f the
3 Cf. A . D i e t r i c h , in Z D M G , C IV , 22 3 (1 9 5 4 ) . Cf. a ls o b e lo w , p . 5 2 .
h i s t o r y o f A lexander.
Ib n A b i T a y y , apud Ibn K a tir, Riddyah, X I I , 266, anno 567.
* Arabian Nights, I, 6 M a c n a g h t e n (Calcutta 1839-42).
Cf. a l-'Im ad al-Isfahani in al-Bundari, Nusrat al-fatrah, 142 (Cairo 1318/1900), concern
^ Op. cit., I, 60.
ing the Saljuq Su ltan M ahm ud (d. 525/1131).
* Cf. F ihrist, 184 (Cairo 1348 == 127 F l u g e l ) ; as-Safadi, W aft, Bodleian ms. or. Seld.
Ibn A b i Zar"- 53, trans. 73 T o r n b e r g (Uppsala 1843-46), concerning the Idrisid A b ii
A rch. A 28 (Uri 677), fol. i4oa-b.
1- A y s A h m ad b. al-Qasim Kanniin (d. 343/954-55). Cf. also Ibn A b iZ a r ' ,200, trans. 261.
A t-T aw h id i, Imtd^, III , 159 (Cairo 1939-44).
* Cf. below , p. 55f.
* A l-Y u n in i, D a y l Mir^dt az-zamdn, II, 2 f. (H yderabad 1374-80/1954-61).
Cf. as-Sahaw i, I^ldn, 43, below, p. 328.
'Ib n at-Tiqtaq& , Fahri, 5 f. A h l w a r d t (Gotha i860).
52 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T
TH E PO SITIO N OF H IST O R Y 53
a w azir one day, the child showed an early natural inclination
tow ard acquiring a liberal education and a thorough knowledge of protection, still required a knowledge of history and biography for
history and political science.^ A nd according to a saying ascribed at least one nadim.^ A n anonym ous official of the fifteenth centu ry
to Aristotle, one of the necessary qualifications of a w azir was the was so h appy w ith as-Sahawis Tibr al-masbuk th at he alw ays
knowledge of historical dates, of the biographies of rulers, and of carried it around. ^
the best political practices.^ The soldier w as advised to stud y the raids of early Islam and
A secretary in governm ent service needed a particularly thorough biographies.^ Occasionally, a scholar well-versed in history and
knowledge of the past. He had to be acquainted w ith the eras of literature held a position in the army.* The Turkish general,
the three nations, the Persians, B yzantines, and Muslims. H e had Bejkem , a man of Httle or no form al education, was able to quote
to know the contents of Persian furstenspiegels, such as K alilah at-T abaris great History. He did it, however, in order to defend
wa-Dimnah, the Covenant of Ardasir, and the letters of Anusarw^n. a particular reading in a poem, and was gently reminded b y
He also had to be fam iliar with the biographies of the caliphs and as-Suli th at in m atters of lexicographical problems in poetry,
their chronology as well as the raids of the early years of Islam . at-T abari was not as great an authority as on other subjects.^
A ll this made a perfect secretary of state.^ His letters and docu Am ong scholars of all fields, there m ay alw ays have been some
ments greatly gained from the insertion of examples drawn from who as grown men would affect a disdain for history, but a
a large store of historical curiosities.* For his own good, he was m ajority, which increased in the course of time, aspired to add
expected to know the history of the wazirs.^ to the title of scholar th at of adih, educated man, and this title
The nadim, the boon-companion of the ruler, had to be able to implied the possession of historical knowledge ready for use in
converse about any conceivable historical subject. This was one of social gatherings. In nineteenth-century Mecca, the world history
the qualifications required of him.'^ If the ruler, as in the case of of Ibn al-Atir, the biographical w ork of Ibn H allikan, and the
al-Mansur, hked entertaining stories, historical inform ation {ahbdr), centenary biographies were studied b y those who w anted to
and the A rab battle d ays, the am bitious courtier would strive to shine in conversation. Thus, historiography, if, in general, it was
m aster these subjects.'^ A fiirstenspiegel from 708-9/1309, which no considered no science at all or just tolerated among the lower
longer counted history among the sciences th at deserved royal ranks of scholarly disciplines, was richly com pensated for its
theoretical inferiority b y the dom ination it exercised over the
^ Pseudo-A ristotle, Sirr al-asrdr, 135 B a d a w i (Cairo 195 4 . Islam ica 14).
2 Cf. A h m ad b. A h m ad b. ^Abd-al-Latif as-Sarji, Tuhfat al-ashdb wa-nuzhat al-albdb, Ms.
minds of the young and the thinking of men of political influence
ar. Y a le U u iversity L-443 (Cat. N e m o y , ao. 471), fol. 58b. and general culture. A nd the Muslim historians had the right to
^ Cf. Jawdmi^ al-'^ulum, Phot. Cairo M a'arif 'am m ah 527, p. 49. Cf. also the tw elfth-
cen tury fiirstenspiegel, Iddh al-masdlik wa-tadbtr ad-duwal wa-l-mamdlik, Bodleian ms. or.
feel and, as a rule, did feel confident about the value of their work.
Sale 74, fol. 30a; ^Abd-al-Hamids fam ous epistle, in Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, II, 26
P aris; at-Taw hidi, apud Ibn H ijjah, Tamardt, 1, 4 1 1 (Cairo 12 87, in the m argin of R agib,
Muhddardt).
^ A l-H asan b. 'A b d allah b. a l-'A bb as, Atdr al-uwal f i tartib ad-duwal, ch. I l l , 7 (P- 122,
^ Cf. al-Q alqasandi, Subh al-a^sd, I, 411-66 (Cairo 1331-38/1913-19). F or further historical B u laq 1295). K ings should be interested in chronology {Him al-awqdt wa-l-azmdn), op. cit.,
inform ation needed b y the kdtib, cf. op. cit., I l l , 254 ff.
ch. I, 7 (p. 47).
A l-G azzali, al-Adab f t d-din, 11 (Cairo 1322. In the m argin of M iskaw ayh, Tahdib ^ A s-Sahaw i, iHdn, 43 f., below p. 329. H istorical vadem ecum s, w ritten for men m
al-ahldq). Cf. also Sind'-atayn, 351 (Cairo 1320). authority, were n ot uncom m on, cf., for instance, the pre-Islam ic history, Muhtasar siyar
Th e nadim nm st know all events (ayydm an-nds), and he should n ot repeat the same al-awd^il, w ritten b y M uham m ad b. ^AH b. B a rak at al-H am aw i for the isfahsaldr Sayf-
story, or som ething sim ilar to w hat had happened to A b u B a k r al-H udali m ight happen
ad-din A li b. 4 zz-ad-dm H asan (Paris ms. ar. 1507, fol. 2b).
to him. Al-M ansur rem em bered that al-H udali had told him once before about the b attle
Ibn H am dun, lac. cit. (above, p. 49).
d ay of D u Qar, because at th at time there had been such a terrible thunderstorm and rain
Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 289.
th at al-M ansur had rem arked th at the d ay of D u Q ar could not have been worse! Cf. an-
A s-Suli, op. cit., 39.
N uw ayri, Nihdyat al-arab, V I, 146 and 149 (Cairo 1345/1926). * Cf., for instance, above, p. 44. It m ay be added here th at the stu d y of historical works
Ibn al-Faqih, Kitdb al-bulddn, i f. D e G o e j e (Leiden 1885, B ibl. Geogr. Arabicorum, V). m ight have the v e ry h igh ly prized effect of im proving ones style. T his was the experience
In the early tw elfth century, a com pilation containing a large am ount of h istorical in
of as-Sam aw al (above, p. 47, n. 2).
form ation and anecdotes, w ritten b y a certain Ibn B abah, was en titled The Capital of the Cf. Ch. S n o u c k H u r g r o n j e , M ekka, II, 216 ff. (The H ague 1889). H u r g r o n j e s rem arks
Nadim , cf. G A L Supplement I, 586, new ed. I, 420, and F. R o s e n t h a l , Humor in Early show a surprisingly great interest in h istory in the M ecca of the last century. F or the
Islam , I I , n. 2 (Leiden 1956).
interest in h istory or the lack of it in E g y p t at the daw n of the modern period, cf. D. A y a l o n
The Historian al-Jabarti and his Background, in B S O A S , X X I I I , 217 ff- (i960).
54 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T TH E M USLIM H IST O R IA N 55

4 T H E M U SLIM H IS T O R IA N plines in the sense in which he understood history, or to h ave


earned his living as an official. H alf a century later, we find the
A s a consequence of its position in Muslim education, historiog
E gyp tian historian Ibn Ziilaq whose exclusive occupation w ith
raphy in general was not a discipline th at m ight have enabled
history caused him to apply to himself the verse;
its practitioner to earn a living. Professional historians were
rare. Philology and genealogy, governm ent positions, and the Y o u never ceased to w rite w ith zeal on history.
various branches of theology took care of the m aterial needs of U ntil you saw yourself w ritten in history.^
most historians. Al-Baladuri was a nadim of al-M utawakkil, and
The line between those who were full-tim e historians and
similar positions at the court were held b y a great num ber of the
those who in addition exercised some other profession is hard to
lay historians of the golden age of the Abbasids. The court historian
draw because in practice it did not exist or, at times, m ay m erely
then became a fixed institution whether, like as-Suli, he proceeded
seem to exist on account of our incomplete information. Ibn al-
more or less on his own in his historical production, or, like Sinan
A tir, the author of the Kam il, devoted most of his life to his literary
b. T a b it,! w rote on explicit or im plicit official orders. A m an like
w ork in the fields of history and biography. However, being an
at-T abari w as m uch more im portant and fam ous in his d ay as a
expert on the im portant theological discipline of the biographies of
theologian than as a historian. A s-Sabi\ M iskawayh, as-Safadi, all
the men around M uhammad and of the religious scholars, he also
held governm ent positions, and w riting historical works becam e so
was a successful lecturer, and he was supported b y his ruler. ^
m uch a task of high political personalities that it would be difficult
Passing over such T raqi historians as Ibn as-Sa'i (see below),
to say w hether a man, such as, for instance, the thirteenth-century
we m ay again refer in this connection to the rise of the typ e of
w azir al-Juw ayni, w rote his great history as an am ateur work, or
professional historian (who, it is true, usually earned his livin g in
as part of his official duties. Then as now, the inside inform ation of
some theologico-juridical capacity) in fourteenth and fifteenth-
a high governm ent official added prestige to his work.^ A nother
century E gyp t. The name of al-Maqrizi m ay be mentioned as its
exam ple of the m anifold positions which m ight be held b y historians
m ost characteristic representative.
is th a t of Ib n Haldun, who was a judge and statesman. A d-D ahabi
The am ateur historian (excluding authors of nothing but their
and Ibn H ajar were religious scholars. A n occasional physician also
own personal memoirs) is another interesting figure which is not
appears among the authors of historical works. Thus, we hear that
infrequently found in Islam. Since historical knowledge was an
A hm ad b. Ibrahim al-Jazzar, who lived under the Fatim ids in al-
indication of ones education, it must have been a tem pting thought
Q ayraw an in the tenth century, w rote on the history of the
for an educated am ateur to venture into historical writing. H ow
F atim id d yn asty, on the conquest of Ifriqiyah, and on the scholars
ever, in an environment where stylistic requirements in any branch
of his time.^ In eighteenth-century Damascus, even a m aster barber
of literature were very high, there cannot have been too m any who
felt called upon to w rite a chronicle of current events.^
felt them selves qualified to w rite on historical subjects. There was
W hat is more, there were few authors among the great names of
no sharp dividing line between historical am ateurs and historical
Muslim literature whose literary production was predom inantly in
scholars. A bu 1-F id a , prince and scholar, cultivated historical
the field of history, let alone restricted to historical works. T h ey
studies during a life full of political and m ilitary activity.^ His w ork
were exceptions. One of them, for instance, was al-M asudi who is
^ Cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, V II, 22 6 (Cairo = I II , 7 M a r g o l i o u t h ). C f. also as-Sahawi, I^ldn
not know n to have devoted himself to other than historical disci- 16 8 , below, p. 5 2 8 . T h e verse is from Ibn D u ra y d s martiyah for at-T ab ari (cf. Ibn al-A bbar,
Cf. below, p. 104. Tuhfat al-qddim, in al-M asriq, X L I , 3 6 6 , 1 9 4 7 , and a l-B a lla fiq is abridgm ent of the Tuhfah,
^ Cf. al-Q ifti, 110 M u l l e r - L i p p e r t , on H ilal as-Sabi^s historical w ork, cf. below, p. 82. 25 a l - I b y A r i , Cairo 1 9 5 7 ) , b u t is om itted in T B , 1 1 ,1 6 7 ff. For its use in a eulogy for Ibn
For the court historian in m uch later periods, cf., for instance, H. I n a l c i k , in B. L e w i s and Y u n u s, cf. as-Safadi, al-Oayt al-musajjam, II, 24 2 (Cairo 1 3 0 5 ) ; a l-K u tu b i, Fatvdt, I, 5 2 7
P. M . H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 162 f. (Cairo 1 9 5 1 ) .
Cf. Ib n Ju lju l, Tabaqdt al-atibbd , 89 f. F u a d S a y y i d (Cairo 1 9 5 5 ) ; Y a q u t, IrSdd, II, ^ Cf. the introduction of his Histoire des Atabecs de M osul, in Recueil des historiens des
13 6 f. (Cairo = I, 8 1 M a r g o l i o u t h ) ; Ibn A b i U say b i'ah , II, 3 7 -3 9 M i j l l e r ; G A L , I, Croisades, Historiens orientaux, II, 2, 6 f. (Paris 18 7 6 ) ( = at-Ta^rih i T u laym at
238 , Supplement I, 4 2 4 . [Cairo 19 6 3 ]).
* Cf. G. M. H a d d a d , in Der Islam, X X X V I I I , 2 5 8 -7 1 (1 9 6 3 ). ^ A l-M alik al-M ansur of H am ah also w rote a h istory, cf. Ibn al-'Im a d , Sadardt, anno 6 1 7 .
56 BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E M USLIM H IST O R IA N 57

is not different from th a t of other scholarly historians. Yem enite a sm all chance of survival, or even of having their titles preserved
rulers, such as al-M alik al-Afdal a l-A bbas b. A li (d. 778/January for posterity, since th e y were rarely published, th at is, copied in a
13 77)/ and al-Malik al-Asraf Ism a'il b. a l-A bbas (d. 804/1401-2), num ber of copies which would have m ade it possible for them to
m ight, on account of the considerable number of their publications, escape th e ravages of tim e and man. This m ay be the reason w hy
be classified as professional historians rather than amateurs. The the only preserved true specimen of the kind which is not restricted
latter, however, can hardly be called a scholar, for he is expressly to sim ple fam ily history is the History of Beirut and the Fam ily o f
stated to h ave used w hat in recent years would be known as Buhtur, which was w ritten b y one of the members of the B uhtur
research assistants or ghost w riters. It is said that he prepared fa m ily in the first half of the fifteenth century. The author con
an outline (or draft, yada'^ wad'-an) and ordered someone to sidered the w ork as of use only for his fam ily and their future
com plete th a t outline (draft) and then subm it to him w hat he had descendants and destined it to be fam ily property which was not
done. W hat he liked he retained, w hat he did not like he threw out, to be shown to outsiders.^ H is com bination of fam ily history w ith
and w hat he found deficient he supplem ented. ^ local history has produced a piece of individuahstic w riting which
A true am ateur historian among rulers was the Yem enite J a yy a s is in a sense so different from the ordinary run of historical works
b. N ajah (d. 498/1105 or 500/1107), who composed a history of his and, one m ight say, also in a w a y so superior th at one regrets th at
city, Zabid. H e w rote the w ork m ainly on account of the genealogical there exists so little of the same type.
interest of the m aterial he used.^ A royal prince of the last years The social and economic position of historians m ight in the
of the Abbasids, A bii Hasim Y u su f b. Muhammad az-Zahir (d. average h ave been somewhat better than th at of m any other
656/1258), took an active interest in the works of Ibn as-Sai, and scholars. Scholars often had good reason to com plain th at th ey did
on his own com posed a history which w as concerned w ith the n ot receive the bounteous treatm ent th ey thought th ey deserved
events of the rule of his brother al-Mustansir.^ from the great of the world, and their fate was eloquently described
Ibn at-T iq taq a w rote his Fahri for a high official, still, the history in the rhym es of a sixteenth-century p o e t:
of this chief of the Alids m ay be considered an am ateurs product.
I said to P o ve rty ; W here dost thou hide ?
In w riting it, Ibn at-T iq taq a looked a t the history of th e caliphs
In a scholars inkw ell, P o verty rephed.^
w ith a double detachm ent as far as historical tradition was con
cerned. He was an A lid, and the caliphate was a m atter of the past There were quite a num ber of exceptions to this rule am ong
though not yet forgotten. H e therefore succeeded in giving a scholars of various periods, and historians, in particular, appear to
certain flavor of historical reality to his reflections on politics and h ave been quite well off. Most of them, we h ave heard, were allied
his entertaining collection of stories about each cahph and his to the lucrative professions of official and theologian. B u t it is
wazirs at least in some passages of his work.^ reassuring to know th a t at least in one case, a historian could reap
Occasional writings of am ateur historians of lower rank had but substantial profits from his literary work. The B agdadi librarian
of the thirteenth century, Ibn as-Sai, was a popular historian who
^ Cf. O. L o f g r e n , Arahische Texte zur K enntnis der Stadt Aden i m Miitelalter, II, 20
(U ppsala 1936, Arbeten utgivna med understod av V ilhelm Ekmans Universitetsfond, 42; 2 ,1 ) earned m uch m oney w ith his writings. For each volum e on history
^ Cf. O. L o f g r e n , op. cit., II, 1 0 7 .
he w rote, he earned between one hundred and three hundred
Cf. also as-Sahaw i, IHdn, 150 f., below, p. 496 f., for the report th a t the h istory of B a yb a rs
al-M ansuri was w ritten w ith the help of a Christian secretary. dinars. T he statem ent, unfortunately, is not quite clear. The
Cf. O. L o f g r e n , op. cit., I I, 43-47.
Cf. as-Safadi, W dfi, Bodleian ms. or. Seld. Arch. A 29, fol. 128b. 1 Salih b . Y a h y a , H istoire de Beyrouth, 7 C h e i k h o (2nd ed., B eiru t 1927). C f. below ,
Cf. G A L Supplem ent II, 201 f. E v e r since W . A h l w a r d t introduced th e F a h ri to p. 157, and K . S. S a l i b i , Maronite Historians o f Medieval Lebanon, 14, n. i , and passim
W estern scholarship w ith words of excessive praise, it has been a favorite of editors and (Beirut 1959). For Ibn B asras chronicle of D am ascus as a kind of am ateur w ork, cf. below ,
translators. F o r a m ore favorab le opinion of Ibn a t-T iq ta q a as a historian, cf. J. K r i t z e c k ,
P- 157.
in J. K r i t z e c k and R . B . W i n d e r , The World o f Islam, 159-84 (New Y o rk 1959). Cf. also 2 A l-M uzajjad (d. 930/January 1524), in Ibn al-*^Aydarus, an-NUr as-sdfir, 140 (Bagdad
E . I. J. R o s e n t h a l , Political Thought in Medieval Islam , 62-67 (Cam bridge 1958). T he
1353/1934)-
latest edition known to me is th at of 'Iw a d Ibrahim and 'A ll Jarim , Cairo 1945. A n English Cf. Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, Muntahab al-M uhtdr (an abridgm ent of Ibn Rafiks Supplement
tran slation w as published b y C. E . J. W h i t t i n g (London 1947)- to Ib n a n -N ajja rs Supplem ent to the History o f Bagdad), 139 (B agd ad 1357/1938).
58 BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E M USLIM H IST O R IA N 59

am ount of m oney m ay refer to each historical volum e he copied (or (antiquarian, ahbdri) M uhammad b. A li al-"Abdi al-Hurasani,
to the price of each copy of a volum e of his works ?). For comparison, again, m ay not be historically accurate, but it is a good indication
it m ay be m entioned th at the teacher of a son of al-Mustansir, the of w hat was possible. W hen a l-A bdi was alone with al-Qahir,
later al-M ustasim, received, among other presents, the sum of with whom he was on intim ate terms, the caliph asked him, in a
2000 dinars, when the boy completed his study of the Q uran.^ manner which looked to him v ery menacing, to tell him the truth
New-born quadruplets got a present of six hundred dinars from the and nothing b u t the truth about a number of Abbasid cahphs.
ruling caliph.2 A nd after a bad harvest the price of w heat w ent up W hen a l-A bdi h esitatingly comphed, he earned high praise from
to one hundred dinars, and th at of oats to fifty dinars a kurr (six the caliph and a m onetary reward for having opened the gates
ass loads). of politics and given inform ation about the m ethods of leadership.
The historian lecturing to the ruler had been a theoretical B u t when, upon leaving, he was followed b y the caliph who had his
possibility since the beginnings of the caliphate in Islam, even if lance in his hand, he again thought th at his last moment had come.i
the only known historical instance comes from the fifteenth century W hen the court historian pleased his master, which he usually
(al-Ayni).^ The introduction to the anonym ous pre-Islam ic histori achieved b y praising him beyond measure, he had nothing to fear
cal novel, which is wrongly ascribed to such ancient scholars as except the adverse criticism of later generations of scholars,^
al-A sm ai, Nihdyat al-arah f t ahbdr al-Furs wa-l-'^Arab, presents al- but when he praised him and then was caught calling his w ork a
A sm a'i as entertaining Harun ar-R asid w ith the stories of former concoction of falsehoods and hes, he got into trouble. This is said
nations and past ages. Harun exclaim s: W here are the kings and to have happened to as-Sabi w ith his Tdji, the history of the
the sons of k in g s? Then, he orders the biographies of the kings B u y id s .3 A n author such as M uhammad b. A bdallah a l-U taqi
to be brought from the library and commands al-A sm ai to read (d. 385/955), who w rote a historical w ork under the E gyp tian
them to him. The book he starts to read begins with Sam b. Nuh, F atim id al-A ziz, whose court astrologer he was, would have done
and Harun tells him to complete it b y adding the history from b etter to omit from his w ork some of the stories showing the U m ay-
A dam to Sam, and so on.^ yads and A bbasids in a favorable light. T h ey were stories com
The court historian in real life faced the same professional hazards m only found in histories, but th ey offended i ah susceptibilities.
as most courtiers. Through an unconsidered word or action, he A l-U taq i was denounced to a l-A ziz. A farm he owned was con
risked incurring the disfavor of his master. The story of th e historian fiscated, and he had to spend the last eight years of his life under
house arrest.^ A less severe p enalty for failing to live up to the
1 Ibn al-F u w ati (?), al-Hawddit al-jdmi'^ah, y i (B agdad 1351). Ibn as-Sa'i, in cidentally, expectations of the ruler was non-paym ent of the reward the
wrote a special m onograph on the circum cision of the tw o sons of al-M usta'sim and the
m oney spent on th at occasion, cf. ad-Dahabi, Ta^rth al-Isldm , biographies of the y e ar 674, historian had been promised for his efforts.^
B odleian ms. or. L au d 279, fol. 82b. (The Hawddit al-jdmi'-ah d ate from the tim e of Ibn In his m aterial position, the historian b y and large shared the
al-F u w ati, b u t it has now been established b y 'Ira q i historians th at Ibn a l-F u w ati was
not the author, cf. E l , 2nd ed., s.v. Ibn al-F u w ati.) social status of the scholarly discipline to which he belonged apart
Al-H aw ddit al-jdmi^ah, 219, anno 645. from the fact of being a historian. His intellectual outlook was also
^ Al-H aw ddit al-jdmi^ah, 226, anno 646.
Cf. above, p. 50. Ibn at-T iqtaqa, Fahrt, 6 f. A h l w a r d t (Gotha i860), tells th at in the not m arkedly different. One feels tem pted to assert th at m any
m onth of R am adan, the A ta b e g of Mosul, Badr-ad-din Lu^lu^, had histories and biographies historians had their eyes more open to reality than those of their
read to him. B u t the readers were a secretary and a hadit scholar, and not historians, unless
the latter, 'Izz-ad -d iu b y name, m ust be identified w ith the historian Ibn a l-A tir who wrote colleagues who did not com pile histories. However, such an
his K a m il for Badr-ad-din. H ow ever, according to A . H. a s - S a r r a f , Al-Shahak, 265 (Cairo impression m ay m erely be the result of the fact th at historians had
1 9 5 4 ). and M u s t a f a J a w a d , in his edition of Ibn as-Sabuni, Takmilah, 154-56 (B agdad
1377/1957), he is to be identified w ith 'Izz-ad -d in 'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. R izq-A llah ar-Ras^ani
(589-660/1193-1262). 1 Cf. al-M as udi, M uriij, V I I I , 389 ff. Paris ed. = II, 514-18 (Cairo 1346).
Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , in J A O S , L X I X , 91b (1949). T he introduction of the w ork is to * Cf. Ibn H assuls criticism of as-Sabi s Tdjt, Ta fdil al-Atrdk ^ald sdHr al-ajndd, in
a large part reproduced in W . W r i g h t s Catalogue of the A rab ic m anuscripts in the British troduction.
Museum, no. 1273 (and no. 914). Cf. also S t o r e y , Persian Literature, II, 244. T h e Paris 3 Cf. G A L , I, 96.
m anuscript of the Ta^rth al-^Arah qabl al-Isldm ascribed to a l-A sm a'i has been published Cf. al-Q ifti, 285 M O l l e r - L i p p e r t .
b y M. H. A l Y A sin (B agdad 1379/1959). * Cf. V . L. Mi;NAGE, in E l , 2nd ed., s.v. al-Bidlisi (Idris, d. 956/1520).
T H E M USLIM H IST O R IA N 61
6o BAC K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T
and the h um ility and p iety which assured blessedness in the other
an occasion to speak about actual events and real personalities, an world.^ The idea of the m aterial value of the lessons of history also
occasion which other scholars all too often lacked. For the successful dom inated the Occident. Satis de eo convenit inter omnes, nihil
com pletion of their task, most historians also needed contact w ith homini elegantiori jucundius, nihil civilis prudentiae studioso utilius
the contem porary great and others who could give them the esse, quam historiam tem porum scire, said G. J. Vossius,^ to quote
inform ation th ey needed, since, w ith rare exceptions, historical one of m any. H e was m erely echoing those of the ancients who saw
w riting included the time of the author. W hile th ey were all aware tw o parts in history, the TspTrvov and the against a m an
of the im portance of information from livin g sources, th ey availed like L ucian who considered the epyov and tsXo? of history to be
themselves to a much lesser degree of the possibiHty to m ake the only one thing, the A nd the question of the value of
historical past speak through its inanim ate relics,^ and in this history is still raised in our age: E n notre siecle utilitaire, il ne
regard, literary sources replaced observation. Y e t, we h ave stories suffit pas quune science reponde a un besoin de notre esprit et
such as th at about al-W aqidi who was once seen in Mecca carrying dispose d une m ethode sure, pour se trouver justifiee aux y eu x du
a knapsack. Being asked where he w as going, he replied; To public. L a question m onte bientot aux levres: a quoi sert-il? ^ The
H unayn, in order to see the place and the historical event which utilitarian approach in the evaluation of the purpose of scholarship
took place there. ^ must, however, alw ays be seen in the light of the prevailing theo
The problem of historical truth was, it would seem, upperm ost retical definition of usefulness. For Islam, there is no better
in the m ind of quite a few h is t o r ia n s .T h e y asked themselves how guide in this respect than Ibn Sina. In the chapter on the First
accurate was the inform ation th at had come to them through a Philosophy in the Sifd^ (twenty-third part), he explains th at
variety of channels. The accuracy of inform ation obtained through useful is generally defined as the thing which through its essence
personal observation was never doubted, but beyond th at, critical leads to the good and, eventually, to hum an perfection. In scholar
historians were aware th at they were faced w ith a crucial problem. ship, usefulness is em ployed to indicate the value of a particular
On an elem entary level, it was recognized that events were not science for the corroboration of the data of another science in the
alw ays reported truthfully. Thus, Ibn al-Jazari speaks of the system of learning. In view of Ibn Sinas general definition of
external cause of the rem oval from office of a judge in 613/ usefulness, the m aterialistic utilitarianism professed b y the
1216-17 and the internal cause which he had learned about historians becomes part of a higher concept which m ay not have
through fam ily tradition.^ More im portant, the theories about been entirely lost to the more thoughtful authors of historical works.
historical truth developed in connection w ith the science of hadit ^ The particular kind of m aterial usefulness which in our thinking
entered historical thinking, as exem plified b y the later philosophers attaches prim arily to historiography was unknown to Muslim
of history, among them, in the first place, al-Iji and, with a historians: H istory was not used as a means for the propagation
different approach, Ibn H aldun (cf. also below, p. 113 f.)
The purpose which Muslim historians sought to accomplish was * Cf. the cu stom ary introductions of historical works, such as are recorded in as-Sah&wi,
IHdn. An, anti-historical bias, denying any usefulness to the occupation w ith the past, is
to produce works which would be useful and im prove the social expressed in the H erm etic treatise Stomathalassa which w as popular am ong Christian A rab s:
position of the individual acquainted w ith them. The knowledge of D o not discuss past h istory (ahbdr al-ajydl allatt qad ^abarat), for its usefulness and
harm fulness have passed w ith its passing; rather stu d y w hat is takin g place in you r own
historical works, th ey contended, brought w ith it the pohtical d ays, because our tim e is the present, and its d ays are num bered (ed. G. L e v i d e l l a V i d a ,
wisdom and conversational skill which assured success in this world, L a Dottrina e i Dodici Legati di Stomathalassa, in M em. Accad. Naz. dei Lincei, Cl. di
Scienze mar., star, e filo l., III , 8, 501, 531 [1951]).
Cf. below , p. 118 ff. * De historicis Graecis libri quatuor, 2 (Leiden, 1624).
^ Cf. al-H atib al-B agdadi, T B , I I I , 6. ^ Lucian, n w i; S st IcTO piav auyypacpsiv, 12, Cf. also P. S c h e l l e r , op. cit. (above,
For O tto of F reisin gs interpretation of in fuga et electione as m eaning, for the historian, p. 15, n. 2), 72 ff.
* L. H a l p h e n , Introduction a Vhistoire, 72 (Paris 1946). Cf. also J. H u iz in g a , op. cit.
the avoidance of u n truth and the unsw erving adherence to the tru th, cf. J. K o c h , in
L a m m e r s , op. cit. (above, p. 9, n . 2 ), 3 2 2 . (above, p. 31, n. 2), 108, 117 f.
3 Ms. R a b at 194 q, p. 18. Bodleian ms. or. Pocock 117 (Uri 482), fol. ig a -b ; Pocock 125 (Urbi 435), fol. 29Sa-b.
Cf. for instance, al-G azzali, Mustasfd, I, 140 ff. (B u laq 1 3 2 2 -2 4 ). A rab ic text, below, p. 542.
Cf. below, p. 216 ff.
62 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T T H E M USLIM H IST O R IA N 63

of ideas, or, more exactly, historians as a rule did not consciously religious environment effectively blot out the true significance or
intend, in w riting their works, to reinterpret historical data so as insignificance of m any historical figures.^
to conform to the ideas th ey m ight have wished to propagate. The In their works, Mushm historians also made use of historical
zeal of the early theologians-historians for the preservation of the judgm ents which obviously were the result of poKtical bias. Certain
exact wording of their works is illustrated b y a story about A hm ad U m ayyads were described as thoroughly corrupt and incapable,
b. A b i H aytam ah who perm itted the transmission of his History some Abbasids were very pious, the statesmanship and san ctity
only as it was {'aid l-wajh). W hen A b u l-*Abbas M uhammad b. of A ll was variously appraised, the Fatim id al-H akim was con
Ishaq as-Sarraj w anted to borrow the History and was reminded sidered a m adm an or, more shrewdly, a man of contradictions.^
b y Ibn A b i H aytam ah of the condition attached to its transmission, Those judgm ents were transm itted to the historians through the
as-Sarraj returned the w ork and did not use it, because he wanted environment in which th ey lived, and th ey adopted them, uncon
to take over only such inform ation as w as new to him and usable.^ sciously or for reasons of expedience. Their persistence and in
The later theologians-historians stressed the need for fairness and fluence were very great. In certain cases, as in the treatm ent of early
o b jectivity in historians,^ and this plainly suggests that historians Muslim history, every bit of historical w riting is strictly partisan.
were often guided b y their personal inclinations and prejudices. The confUct between A li and M u'aw iyah was perpetuated b y
However, whether or not this was true, the scholars who discussed historians in Syria and the Traq, w ith SMih b. K aysan and az-Zuhri
the qualifications of historians in this m anner were prim arily con being the outstanding old representatives of the Syrian pro-
cerned w ith theologians and their legal and political quarrels. U m ayyad point of view, and as-abi in al-K ufah keeping alive
Their judgm ent cannot be used for the evalution of the attitude the pro-A lid v e r s io n .T h e struggle between the U m ayyads and
of historians in general. the Abbasids never ceased to have its partisans. A d-D ahabi, for
MusHm historians, such as the T m M al-Isfahani, could also be instance, rem arked b lu n tly th at when the A bbasid forces took
very strong in the expression of their likes and dislikes. T h ey often Damascus, they com m itted greater atrocities than did the Tatars
were in the service of a ruler, and their w ork was slanted often of a much later age.^ H owever, in general, the attitud e of the early
very crudely to reflect his political interests. The praise that was 'A bbasid historians becam e the standard for later historiography.
bestowed on a ruler b y historians w riting during his reign m ight As late as the fifteenth century it was possible for a historian such
happen to turn into denigration b y historians w riting under his as al-Maqrizi to w rite a monograph which compared the two
successor. D uring the Crusades, contem porary historians expressed dynasties and discussed the question w h y the U m ayyads, w ith all
an increasingly acute sense of urgency w ith regard to the need of their faults, could ever become caliphs.
fighting the invaders,^ and one of them even went so far in using his However, in spite of all this, historians did not intend to color
historical knowledge in the political struggle as to w rite a special history in this manner. Such an intention would h ave been abso
history or biography {sirah) of the European Christians who in lutely contrary to their concept of history which w as transm itted
those years had come to the Muslim countries. ^ In general, facts. Those facts could be true or false, but authors did not
standard forms of praise or condem nation in describing the ' Cf. J. SCH ACH T, in Oriens, V II , 155 f. (1954)-
^ Cf. M uham m ad b. T u lu n s appraisal of al-H akim , in al-Luma^dt, 48 f. (Damascus 1348,
character and acts of individuals restricted the historians freedom RasdHl ta^Hhiyah 4): kadr at-talawwun f i af'-dlihi wa-aqwdlihi . . . umuruhu mutaddddah.
of expressing moral judgments. These conventions created b y the ^ E . L. P e t e r s e n , '^Ali and Mu^dwiya (Copenhagen 1964). P e t e r s e n also refers to a
p ro-U m ayyad pocket in al-Basrah.
^ T a M h al-Isldm, V , 321.
Cf. al-IJatib al-B agdadi, T B , IV , 163. Kitdb an-Nizd^ wa-t-tahdsum ft-m d bayn Bant U may yah wa-Bani Hdsim, ed. G . V o s,
^ Cf. the older and younger Subki, below, p. 370 f. Leiden 1888.
3 Cf. B. L e w i s , ixxB S O A S , X V I I, 169 (1955). Perhaps it should be stated th at the crux of the argum ent here lies in the word in
* One would like to know more about this w ork which, according to Ibn M uyassar, ten tion. Modern historians of the last cen tury who liked to stress their factualness have
Annales d Egypte, 70 M a s s e , anno 520 (Cairo 1919), was com posed b y the tw elfth -cen tu ry been found to represent thoroughly su b jective tendencies, while those w riting to bring out
H am dan b. Abd-ar-Rahim al-A taribi. Or was it identical with the Qut, described b y as- a particu lar trend in history would rig h tly deny any tendency on their part to color the
Sahawi, P la n , 125, below, p. 466. facts. Thus, the in tention does not m ean m uch for the result, and it is possible to prove
64 B A C K G R O U N D A N D E N V IR O N M E N T
T H E M U SLIM H IST O R IA N 65

consider them selves justified to change the details of or to reinter


which for instance, the A lids have unproportionately long obitu
pret a transm itted factual report.^
aries filled w ith their wise sayings and which succeeds very well in
Therefore, it also was not possible for historians who belonged
presenting U tm an in a very unfavorable light. O rthodox historians,
to an unorthodox religious group to re-evaluate "general history
in turn, were able to find much m aterial th at was detrim ental to
in the light of the experiences of their own group. Dissident his
the historical aspects of the Ism a'iliyah m ovem ent for inclusion in
torians could w rite the particular history of their sect, but since
their works.^
this history was seen b y Muslims m ainly as a purely rehgious
Muslim scholars, in general, were quick to suspect evil intentions
struggle and since, consequently, even so large a m ovem ent as the
on the part of historians when th ey scented unorthodoxy.^ Such
A lid S i'ah had little real political history, th ey have w ritten
evil intentions were hardly ever present. However, it is a fact that
com paratively few historical works of their own.^ \\^en a historian
the direction of the thinking of the historians expressed itself in
happened to be a S iah, he would note contem porary events which
the whole of their work. Their position in the intellectual environ
concerned his persuasion more readily than an orthodox historian,
m ent of their tim e determ ined the choice of the forms and the
but this was or appeared to be factual inform ation which was in
contents of the histories th ey wrote, and w ith it, it determined the
no w ay offensive to the later orthodox historians who did not mind developm ent of Mushm historiography. W hen at one time, for
copying it.^ A ll this does not mean, however, th a t the personal
instance, we find philosophy crowd upon historiography,^ this
convictions of the historian were autom atically kept out of his work.
parallels the role which philosophy then played among Muslim
His main weapon was his freedom to om it m aterial from his sources
religious or secular thinkers, and so on. The historians thus did
or to add m aterial from other sources which m ust not alw ays have not use (or abuse) their works for the expression of their personal
been historical in the proper sense, and this was expected from him.^ aspirations or the aspirations of their particular groups, but the
How much it was possible to achieve in this w ay, even if the device changing forms and contents of historical works were the natural
was used w ith m oderation, is illustrated b y al-Ya"qubis History, in
and true reflection of the changing cultural and political atmosphere
in which the individual historians lived.
the existence of bias in m ost Muslim histories. H ow ever, m uch of th at, I feel, m ay be
described as unconscious, the effect of not clearly appreciated influences and pressures.
1 A l-J a h iz im plicit censure of the (fictitious) historian ^Abid b. Saryah th at he knew only * In conuection w ith the Ism a 'rliya h , Ibn W asil, the historian of the A yyu b id s, rem arks
the outw ard even ts {zdhir al-habar) (cf. Buhald?, 40, Cairo 1948, and, for the distinction th at their tenets are discussed b y the heresiographers and there is no point in perpetuating
between e xtern a l and in tern al, above, p. 60, n. 3), unfortu n ately, cannot be in ter them in historical w ork s, b u t he goes on to discuss their h istory, cf. Ibn W asil, M ufarrij
preted as referring to historical penetration. T h e term mujdzafah which is derived from the al-kurUb, I, 206 AS-SayyAL (Cairo i 9 5 3 )-
science of traditions and which was also used as a title of reproach against some historians 2 There is h ard ly an yth in g in the strictly historical field which would com pare, for
(cf. below, p. 84) im plies such an arbitrary handling of the transm itted m aterial, b u t no instance, w ith the orthodox accusation against al-Jahiz th at all his w orks are m erely well
historian would consciously com m it w hat he would consider mujdzafah. H ow ever, the cam ouflaged propaganda for his special brand of M u'tazilism , cf. al-Isfarayini, at-Tabstr
conflation of several reports on the same m atter {ihtisdr) was freq u en tly practiced for reasons f t d-din, 50 (Cairo 1 359/1940), b u t when it is said th at al-M as'udi had M u'tazilah leanings,
of b revity, and occasional attem pts to give a different slant to recent source m aterial can this would seem to h av e been an im pression derived from his h istorical works, turned into
be observed, cf. H. A . R. Gibb, in Speculum, X X V , 58-72 (1950), on Ibn a l-A tir and the an accusation (cf. as-Subki, Tabaqdt aS-SdfiHyah, II, 307, Cairo 1324, quoted in a fo o t
'Im ad. A good classification of the various types of bias am ong historians has been given note to V aq u t, IrSdd, X I I I , 90, Cairo).
b y H. L. G o t t s c h a l k , A l-M a lik al-Kdm il von Egypten und seine Zeit, 2 ff. (W iesbaden 1958). Cf. below, p. 114 f.
^ Cf. \ V . IvA N O W , Ism aili Tradition concerning the Rise o f the Fatim ids (Oxford 1942,
Islam ic Research Association Series, 10).
Som e of the oldest works dealing with the religio-political stru ggle of the seventh cen tury
m ay, it seems, be considered as genuine docum ents of sectarian historical w riting, as, for
instance, al-Mincjaris Wag'^at Sifftn . A p articu larly strong case for the genuineness of
H arijite -lb a d ite tradition as h avin g preserved authentic historical docum ents from a v ery
early period has been made b y several scholars, cf., for instance, L. V e c c i a V a g l i e r i , in
Annali dellIstituto Universitario Orientale di Napoli, N . S. I V , i ff. (1952), or J. S c h a c h t ,
in Melanges M asse (Teheran 1963).
For a l-C a z z a lis contention th at the B a tin iT sm a ^ li literature was preem inently histor
ica l, cf. below, p. 337 f.
^ Cf. C. Cahen, Vne Chronique chiite au temps des Croisades, in C R A I 1935, 258-69.
* Cf. the story of al-'U taq i, above, p. 59.

R o sen th al , H istory of M uslim H istoriography


Hahar h is to r y 67

Secondly, from its ancient predecessor, the battle-day narratives,


the hahar form retained the character of the viv id ly told short
story, the preference for situation and color as against sober facts.
The action is often presented in the form of a dialogue between
CH APTER TH REE the principal participants of an event which relieves the historian
of w hat should be his real task, th at is, presenting a clearly ex
THE BASIC FORMS OF MUSLIM HISTORIOGRAPHY
pressed analysis of the situation, and leaves such analysis to the
reader. The frequent battle scenes m ake enjoyable reading, but the
t HABAR h i s t o r y
actual facts remain much under a cloud. ^ In general, however, this
The oldest form of Muslim historiography, a direct continuation characteristic of the hahar form constituted the m ain instrum ent for
of the battle-day narratives, is the well-rounded description of a lifting all later Muslim historiography out of the category of dry
single event, usually of no more than a few pages. Such a description annals and for stim ulating historical interest among the young and
is called hahar} In the context of the larger historical works, the the men of general education. The high literary quality of hahar
w ord hahar is often used as a heading or title, alongside w ith the historiography also perm itted the inclusion of chapters on history
word dikr report as well as, occasionally, amr affair or hadit (which then m ight be extended also to include the simple data of
sto ry, all of which are used in the same maimer. From the tenth annalistic or dynastic historiography) in adah works, such as, for
century on, the narrative of the hahar history is at times introduced instance, Ibn A bdrabbih s '-Iqd.
b y wa-kdn as-sabah and the reason of it w as, after a particular The th ird characteristic feature of the hahar form is rather in
event had been sum marily referred to. The character of the hahar the natu re of a m ixed blessing. A s a continuation of the battle-day
as a self-contained unit is stressed b y the chain of transm itters narratives and an artistic form of expression, the hahar history
w hich precedes each hahar and which is om itted only in order to required the presence of poetical insertions. To find a historical
achieve b revity or to remove the appearance of scholarly austerity. w ork entirely free of poetical quotations is very rare indeed. ^
Three features are characteristic of the hahar form of historical If in view of the vastness of the m aterial which had to be discussed,
writing. For one, b y its very nature it does not adm it of the estab a historian w anted to be as brief as possible, he m ight think of
lishment of a causal nexus between tw o or more events. E ach cutting out all poetry. A l- Y a qiibi, who expressed this intention
hahar is complete in itself and tolerates no reference to any kind of in his History, restricted himself to only a very few verses.^ B u t
supplem entary m aterial. If a historical w ork is made up of more even an abridgm ent stripped to an enumeration of bare facts, such
than one hahar, as in practice it needs must be, the juxtaposition as Ibn al-Jaw zis Sudur al-'-uqud, a short version of his Muntazam,
of the individual hahars (as much as th ey are not different versions contains a few verses. These verses as a rule have but a loose
of the same story) m ay occasionally indicate a transfer of the connection w ith the events to which th ey belong. A s far as the
historical locale from one geographical region to another, but as a factual understanding of the historical context is concerned, th ey
rule it indicates progress in time. The tim e intervals in this case m ight as well have been om itted in nearly all instances. It is rare
can be of undeterm ined length, although a kind of chronological for a Muslim author to note the evidential character of a poetical
continuity is frequently intended. It is obvious th at no deeper quotation.^ The insertion of verses had become a stylistic law
historical penetration of w hatever kind can be achieved in this which nobody would think of questioning. In biographies, it had an
manner. It is also obvious th at in w riting the history of a long period ^ Th e same statem ent, it m ay be m entioned here, has been m ade w ith regard to T a citu s
of time, the hahar form becomes quite unmanageable w ith regard descriptions of battles.
^ For instance, al-Quda*^!, ^Uyun al-ma^drif, for which I consulted the Bodleian m anu
to size, since a hahar, unless it is to lose its true character, can be scripts, ms. or. Pocock 270 (Uri 865) and ms. or. Maresc. 37 (Uri 713).
compressed only to a certain degree and no more. A l-Y a 'q u b i, History, II, 3 (N ajaf 1358 = II, 4 H o u t s m a ).
* Cf. al-H um aydi, Jadwat al-Muqtabis, Bodleian ms. or. H unt. 464 (Uri 783), fol. 6b;
1 Cf. above, p. i i f. al-M as udi, Tanhth, 170 D e G o e j e .
68 T H E BA SIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y Habar h is to r y 69

especially firm foothold owing prim arily to the fact th at verse m aterial was transm itted orally. This helped to introduce the
m aking was part and parcel of a cultured individuals self-expression. pretense of the oral transmission of religious and scholarly subjects
Needless to say, m any good and inform ative verses have thus been which in the early years m ade the preservation of written works a
preserved. B u t the amount of bad and irrelevant verses which fill superfluous and even undesirable task and reference to them a
the pages of biographies, especially those of scholars, is b y far the clandestine business.^ It would thus seem that the earliest works of
greater, and neither poor quality nor the realization th at the Aa&ay historiography (as well as of the other main forms of historiog
poem s did not do justice to the intellectual stature of their raphy whose seeds were planted in the first century of the hij rah)
supposed author ^ acted as a deterrent.^ m ight have been private books, notebooks of scholars, about
The pre-Islam ic origin of the hahar form is sufficiently established, which there never existed any explicit and rehable information.
and its oral (or written) literary tradition must have passed into That which lies open before our eyes is not the beginning of habar
Islam w ithout a break.^ B u t where do we find the first w ork of the historiography but the result of more than a century of rapid
hahar typ e in Mushm historical w riting ? There can be no precise development. A s its oldest concrete documents, we must consider
answer to this question. None of the products of the earliest Muslim elements in the biography of Muhammad. ^
literature has been preserved. Bibliographical sources or citations The habar form, in some w ay or other, reoccurs in all Muslim
in later authors do not help. Then, there is the gap which existed historical works, unless th ey are restricted to a mere tabular
between the probable origins of A rabic literature and the organi registration of events or names w ithout any narrative. L ike the
zation of Muslim book publication. A s in classical A n tiq uity, the other basic forms, however, it rarely if ever appears in w hat m ight
publishing of a book in Islam required that the authors finished be called its pure form. It is usually combined w ith other elements
w ork was given to friends or pupils for the purpose of m aking copies of historical writing. A lready in the biography of Muhammad, it
of it, or it w as turned over to professional copyists and bookdealers is supplem ented b y genealogical and related inform ation, such as
who made a number of copies of the particular w ork for sale. In the Hsts of names of persons possessing some special merit or qualities.
first decades of Islam, an organization of this kind was not possible. W ith the trend tow ard specialization and thoroughness in detail
The number of those who knew how to w rite Arabic was necessarily which heralds the progress of Muslim science in the A bbasid age,
small. It was only during the reign of Abd-al-M alik that A rabic was we also notice an industrious production of short monographs on
generally introduced in the governm ent administration. P rivate historical events. It is as if the old form was entering upon a new
persons, such as booksellers, m ight have been quicker in establishing phase of usefulness and was facing a brilliant future. The famous
an A rabic book-trade than the governm ent in changing the ad protagonist of this typ e of historiography was A li b. M uhammad
m inistrative routine. For such an assumption, there is no evidence, al-M adaini (135/752-53 to ca. 215/830-31). Am ong the numerous
nor is it likely. The A rabic speaking ruling class of the first years of titles of his works, there appear monographs on individual battles
Islam certainly was less interested in A rabic literature than in the and the Muslim conquests as well as biographies of individuals and
A rabization of their administration. Over half a century after ^ In the eleven th -cen tu ry History o f Bagdad, for instance, the books of authorities
M uhamm ads death thus passed before ordinary book pubhshing, are occasionally if rarely m entioned in the chain of transm itters. T h e older authorities,
then, were oral transm itters and the more recent ones, apparently, transm itters of the
which was not governm ent sponsored such as the editions of the
particu lar b ook .
Q uran, could get under w ay. E ven then, the men who had the * J. H o r o v i t z , The Earliest Biographies o f the Prophet and their Authors, in Islam ic Culture,
I. 550 (1927), is positive to have found the beginnings of Muslim historiography d ating
inform ation which interested early Muslim scholars were m ostly from the tim e of ^Abd-al-Malik in at-T ab ari: T he w ritings of *^Urwa (b. az-Zubayr) here
iUiterate or half-literate and little given to literary pursuits. Their quoted represent the oldest w ritten notes on particu lar events in the life of the Prophet
preserved for us, and at the same tim e the oldest m onum ents of A rab ic historical prose.
1 Cf. Y ^ q u t on al-B irum , as quoted b y F. R o s e n t h a l , in Orientalia, N .S., X I , 283 (1942). A tten tion should be paid to H o ro v itz use of the word notes and n ot books or the like.
2 T he m an y A rab ic and occasional Persian verses in Persian histories w hich poin ted ly ' A b d - a l -'-A z i z a d - D u r i , Baht f t naPat Him at-ta^rth, 74 (Beirut i960), speaks of watd^iq
bring out the m oral of a historical happening are a sty listic device and in the nature of docum ents.
proverbs. T h e rh ym ed form is incidental. J. S c h a c h t , in Acta Orientalia, X X I , 300 (1953), discusses Musa b. "^Uqbahs (d. 141/
Cf. the discussion above, p. 19 f. 758-59) Kitdb al-Magdzi as an early, if n ot the earliest w ork of M uham m adan h isto ry.
70 TH E BA SIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y TH E A N N A L IS T IC FORM 71

the description of single exploits.^ His w ork is known to us largely external continuity and the coordination of a variety of subject
through quotations in later historical and Hterary works.^ So far, m atters, qualities which were foreign to the hahar form.
only one of his m any monographs has been recovered. E ntitled
On Qurasite Women that had several husbands, its interest is genea 2 T H E A N N A L IS T IC FO R M
logical, and the episodes included in it have a very pronounced
A nnalistic historiography constitutes a speciahzed form of chron
literary flavor. It is also clear from the hst of titles of al-M adainis
ological historiography.1 A s its name says, it is dom inated b y the
works that most of them, if short, still were of a composite character.
succession of the individual years. Under a heading such as: In
Before him, a historian of this typ e was A bii Mihnaf L u t b. Y a h y a
the year n ," or Then, there came the year n, the various events
(d. in or after 157 /773 - 74 ), and, in his generation or somewhat later,
of this particular year are enumerated. The connection between
we find men such as al-H aytam b. A di (d. 206/821-22, or 207) and
the events of one and the same year is preferably made b y the
Ibn Habib, whose works constitute a collection of m onographs of
simple device of inserting the phrase: A nd in it (that is, this same
either the hahar or the genealogical form. Y et, in spite of its apparent
year, wa-fihd). The extent of the details to accom pany the descrip
great promise, their w o r k - in contrast to the historical monograph
tion of the events is left for the author to decide. The pure form
of the strict research type which after a long history reached its
w ould not perm it a consecutive report about an event which extends
apogee in the fourteenth-fifteenth century ^ was not destined to
over a period of years to be given under one of those years, but this
signify a new start in the history of the forms of Muslim historiog
raphy. It actually marked the end of the hahar form as a quasi rule is occasionally set aside.
This form of historical presentation was fu lly developed in the
independent and exclusive form of historical writing. A s long as his
tim e of the great Tabari. His History was first published in the first
tory went back about a century and half and as long as the interest
decade of the tenth century,^ and it was continued to the year 302/
in it was confined less to historical facts than to the religio-political
914-15, or 303. On account of the size of the work, it would be a
significance of certain events, the demand made on historians was
priori unlikely th at at-T abari w as the first to apply the annalistic
satisfied when th ey gave a detailed narrative of those events. B u t
form to historical writing. A Muslim author correctly rem arked:
as tim e w ent on, and the events of im portance greatly increased in
A thing which is an original and unprecedented creation starts out
number and, moreover, a great mass of pohtical, adm inistrative,
small and then grow s. In fact, the History of H alifah b. H ay y at,
and cultural inform ation was considered worth retention as a part
which continues down to the year 232/846-47, th at is, eight years
of history, it w as necessary to find more economic principles of
before the presumable date of his death, is an annalistic w ork
arrangement than were offered b y the hahar form. The most prom
(starting out w ith a discussion of the term ta^rih and a v ery brief
inent of the principles of arrangement which the Muslims adopted
treatm ent of M uhamm ads early history).^ Further, from the second
was the annalistic form. A mere technique, it nevertheless exercised
a great influence upon the historical contents, and it swallowed up 1 T h e use of annals for chronicle has becom e an accepted part of our language.
the hahar form. W hatever its shortcomings, it certainly was an H3re, the original distinction has been strictly observed.
2 Cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, X V I I I , 70 (Cairo = V I, 445 M a r g o l i o u t h ).
advance beyond hahar historiography in th at it assured at least 3 As-Sibli, M ahdsin al-wasdHl, ms. Cairo Ta^rih 4557, fol. 8 ib , w ith reference to the
sm all size of A bu 'U b a y d a h M a'm ar b. al-M utannas 6 arth al-hadit. Cf. also as-Suyuti,
1 F ihrist, 147 ff. (Cairo 1348 = 100 ff. F l u g e l ) . Cf. also the m uch more lim ited list of Itqdn, I, 3 f. (Cairo 1317), follow ing the Nihdyah of M ajd-ad-din b. al-A tir (I, 4, Cairo 1322).
titles of works b y his contem porary al-W aqidi ( H o r o v i t z , op. cit., Islam ic Culture, II, H ow ever, the growth of the size of scholarly productions in Islam w as extrem ely rapid,
515 [1928]). cf. F . R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach of M uslim Scholarship, 43a (Rom e 1947,
^ A n in stru ctive selection of M ada ini passages from at-T ab ari m ay be found in a d - D u r i , Analecta Orientalia, 24), referring to at-T an u hi and the faraj-ba^-d-aS-siddah literature, or
op. cit., 270-91. H am zah al-Isfahani and the collections of proverbs (Istanbul, Ms. D am at Ibrahim 943, beg.).
^ A l-M urdifdt min Qurays, in ' A b d - a s - S a l A m H a r u n , Nawddir al-niahtutdt, I, 2, 58-80 * T h e on ly m anuscript known so far is preserved in R ab at iggq [q = awqdf, the m anu
(Cairo 1370/1951). script h avin g been form erly in the Z aw iyah an-N asiriyah in T a m k ru t [Tam agrout]). It was
* Cf., for instance, Ibn al-H atib on the rulers of Islam who received the oath of allegiance signalized in Liste de manuscrits arabes precieux, exposes a la BihliotMque de I Universite
before th ey reached pu b erty (cf. M. M. A n t u n a , in A l-A ndalus, I, 105-54, 1933); or al- Quaraouyine a Fes, 60 (R ab at i960). During m y sta y in R a b at in 1963, the m anuscript w as
M aqrizi on the caliphs and rulers who perform ed the pilgrim age (Paris ms. ar. 4657; an ju st being sent aw ay on an exhibition, and I was able to inspect it on ly very b riefly. It is
edition appeared in Cairo 1955). in M agribi w riting and dated in 477/1085, bu t it rather seems to have been w ritten in the
72 T H E BA SIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y T H E A N N A L IST IC FORM 73

half of the third/ninth century, we have the History of Y a 'q u b b. b y A bii Salih A bdallah b. (?) M uhammad b. Y a z d M , m ay have
S u fyan (d. 277/891), which was annalistically arranged as shown b y been annalistic, since it is stated th at the author's son completed
the preserved fragm ent covering the years 137-241/754-855 and it to the year 300, a figure of speech which usually refers to
confirmed b y occasional quotations. 1 The History of Ibn A b i annals.i The excerpts from the History of the great scientist of the
H aytam ah (d. 279/893) also seems to h ave contained an annahstic first half of the ninth century, Muhammad b. Miisa al-Huwarizm i,
section which m ay have been hm ited and insignificant as compared which we read in the histories of H am zah al-Isfahani ^ and E lijah
to the w ork as whole; the manuscript m aterial thus far available is of Nisibis, give a semblance of probability to the assumption th at
too fragm entary to permit a safe conclusion.^ al-H uw arizm is w ork was annahstic, and so was the History of A bu
Some uncertainty has been created b y the fact that the occur Hassan al-H asan b. Utma,n az-Ziyadi, if we m ay trust a statem ent
rence of the word ta^rih in the title of a w ork m erely indicates th at b y as-Sam 'ani which seems confirmed b y a quotation in the H atib s
th at particular w ork contained chronological data and, although it History of Bagdad.
m ight be used for an annalistic work, it does not necessarily refer Into the second century of the hijrah (718-815 A .D .), we are led
to the use of the annalistic form of historical presentation. For b y the attribution of a History according to the Years to al-H aytam
instance, the History of A bu Z u rah ad-Dim asqi (d. 282/895) b. *Adi who is already known to us as a representative of hahar
appears to h ave been concerned m ainly w ith the usual inform ation historiography and who died, allegedly ninety-three years old, in
on religious scholars and to have m ade only fum bling attem pts to 206/821-22, or 207.^ A nd it has been suggested th at one of the
indicate precise dates; it m ay be, however, th at the w ork also works b y his somewhat younger contem porary al-W aqidi (130-207/
contained an annalistic section that is not preserved. It is not the 747-823) was arranged annalistically, a suggestion which seems to
simple ta^rih, but the expression ta^rih ""aid s-sinin or the like, be born out b y passages such as are found in at-Tabari. Annahstic
H istory according to the years, th at suggests an annalistic work. historiography w as thus practiced in the Mesopotamia of the second
A few decades before at-Tabari, A bu 'Isa b. al-M unajjim w rote a half of the second century of the hijrah. Y et, the evidence would
History of the World,^ which, however, m ay have been a treatm ent of
^ Fihrist, 179 f. (Cairo 1348 == 124 F l u g e l ). Cf. F ihrist, 180 ( = 124 F"l u g e l ) for the
chronology ab origine mundi in the Jewish-Christian style and m ay
History to his own day b y A hm ad b. 'A b d allah al-QutrubulIi, who m ay have been a con
not have dealt w ith Muslim history at all. A n Annalistic History tem porary of Ibn A b i 1-Azhar (below, p. 507), in view of a passage in Ibn al-Q arihs Rwa/a/t
addressed to A b u l- A la al-M a'arri (in M . K u r d ' A l !, RasdHl al-bulagd\ 2nd ed., 197,
was composed b y Um arah b. W atim ah in the ninth century.
Cairo 1331/1913): A l-Q u trub u lli and Ibn A b i 1-A zhar told in a h istory w ritten join tly
W hether the H istory of J a far b. Muhammad b. al-Azhar (d. 279/ b y them w hich the B agdadis and the E gyp tian s considered unique in its kind because of
its sm all size and the large am ount of knowledge it contained . . . . T h e problem of iden
892) was annalistic is not quite certain. Another History, w ritten
tification is further com plicated b y the fa ct th at A h m ad s father (an a u th ority of as-Suli,
thirteenth or fourteenth cen tury ( I b n T a w i t a t - T a n j ! concurs w ith this opinion). A cf. Y a q u t, IrSdd, V , 122, Cairo = II, 142 M a r g o l i o u t h ) is m entioned as the author of
collation note on fol. 37 speaks of an original m anuscript {asl) of A b u 'A b d allah M uhammad a H istory" b y al-M arzubani, N ur al-qabas, 334 S e l l h e i m (W iesbaden 1964, Bibliotheca
b. Y a h y a b. al-H add a . [Ed. al-U m ari, B aghd ad 1967.] Islam ica, 23a). Th e fath er A bd allah appears also to be m eant in al-Q ifti, Inbdh, I I I , 247.
For a quotation indicating the annalistic character of the work, cf. Y& qut, Mu'-jam al- Th e treatm ent of h istory from Constantine to the year 301 of the h ijrah b y Judge
bulddn, IV , 634 W u s t e n f e l d , s .v . Malatyah. W a k i' m ay also have been annalistic (cf. H am zah al-Isfahani, History, I, 70 G o t t w a l d t ,
^ Ms. Istanbul T opkapu saray, Revan K ok 1554; al-FJatib al-Bagdadi, T B , I, 67i,, 7914. S t. P etersburg-Leipzig 1844-48). E xcerp ts from Waki^s w ork can be assumed to be the
For Y a 'q u b , cf. below , p. 392, n. 3. T he preserved fragm ent, how ever, is la rgely concerned basis of al-H atib al-B agdadi, T B , I, 67 ff.
w ith biographical inform ation. I , 187 G o t t w a l d t . Cf. also T B , I, 67, 83. A l-H u w arizm is History was quoted for the
^ Cf. below, p. 382, n. 2. T he annalistic section covering the years i - i o is preserved in the date of the P roph ets birth b y al-Biruni, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, Istan bul ms. 'U m u m i 4667,
Fez m anuscript. p. 136, published b y K . G a r b e r s , in Documenta Islam ica Inedita (Festschrift R . Hartmann),
Cf. below, p. 392, n. 7. 55 (Berlin 1952), and translated b y the same in Der Islam , X X X , 63 (1952). Cf., further,
* F ihrist, 207 (Cairo 1348 = 144 F l O g e l ) ; Y a q u t, IrSdd, III, 243 f. (Cairo = I, 229 below , p. 134, n. 3. For al-H u w arizm is interest in chronology, cf. E. S . K e n n e d y , in
M a r g o l i o u t h ). Cf. below , p. 79, n. 8, and the translation of as-Sahaw i, I^ldn, below , p. 5 11, Scripta Mathematica, X X V I I , 5-59 (1964-66).
n. I . A s-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 283a; a l-y a tib a l-B a gd M i, T B , I, 157.
Cf. A b u 1- F i d a , Historia Anteislamica, 2 f. F l e i s c h e r (Leipzig 1831). * F ihrist, 146 (Cairo 1348 = 100 F l u g e l ); Y a q u t, IrSdd, X I X , 310 (Cairo = V II, 265 f.
Cf. Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V , 37 (H yderabad 1357-58); G A L Supplement I, 217. M a r g o l i o u t h ).
'U m arah s Qisas al-anhiyd'^ (cf. below, p. 506, n. 3) could hard ly be m eant here. A b ou t the form of the History of Ibn 'A d is auth ority, 'A w a n a h b. al-H akam , we have
Th e decisive ^ald s-sinin appears on ly in Y a q u t, Iridd, V II, 186 f. (Cairo = II, 417 no definite inform ation. Aw^nah is credited w ith a w ork on d ynastic h istory, see below p. 89.
M a r g o l i o u t h ) b u t not in Y a q u t s source, Fihrist, 164 (Cairo 1348 = 113 F l C g e l ). Cf. also ^ Cf. J . H o r o v i t z , in Islam ic Culture, II, 516 (1928); at-Tabari, III, 629.
al-H atib al-B agdadi, T B , V I I , 197.
74 TH E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y TH E A N N A L IST IC FORM 75

hardly necessitate the assumption th at the Islam ic origins of the scholars who preferred to stress the predominance of Persian
annalistic form have to be sought in th at region and period. It just influence upon the origins of MusHm historiography ^ have failed
means th at the first known published works of th at typ e originated to give proof th at sim ultaneously w ith dynastic historiography ^
then and there. the annalistic form was also introduced under Persian influence.
It is theoretically possible th at Muslim scholars who were prob In fact, this cannot have been the case.^
ably acquainted with the use of historical data since the introduc The situation will be found to be different when we turn our
tion of the Muslim era arrived independently at the conclusion attention to B yzan tiu m and Greek (and Syriac) literature. It is com
th at an annalistic form would be a convenient vehicle of historical mon knowledge th at none of the classical works of Greek historiog
presentation. However, whenever we find a long established idea raphy ever reached the Arabs,^ nor do we have any express inform a
or literary form m ake its appearance in another place which is tion about the existence of complete A rabic translations of B yzantine
not separated from the original home of th at idea or literary form chronographies (but see below). The laws governing Graeco-Arabic
b y unsurmountable barriers of space or time, we are on m uch safer translation a ctiv ity w^ould not m ake us expect the situation to be
ground when we do not assume independent creation but some otherwise. H istorical literature was much more suspect to Muslim
kind of borrowing. In the case of a form of historiography, it would theologians than science.^ A bove all, it belonged as little to the
be unreasonable to demand th at there ought to exist tangible curriculum of Graeco-Syriac higher education as A rabic historiog
m aterial evidence for the fact of borrowing. For in this particular rap h y later on was to belong to th at of higher Muslim education,
case, it is not a question of borrowing the substance of historical and only works belonging to the disciphnes which m ade up higher
works. It is the mere idea of an annalistic arrangement which was education were translated. However, the B yzantines showed a very
taken over. The transmission of historical m aterial would have deep interest in historical literature, and B yzantinists seem to be
required the existence of a translation hterature or, at least, of agreed th a t historiography occupied a preponderant position in
the opportunity for Muslim scholars to acquire an extensive knowl B yza n tin e literary a ctiv ity . It m ay be recalled in this connection
edge of foreign historical works. The idea of the annalistic form,
on the other hand, could have been transm itted through some 1 F or instance, I. G o l d z i h e r , and, follow ing him, J. d e S o m o g y i , c f . J R A S , 1932, 49.
^ Cf. below, p. 88.
superficial acquaintance with annalistic writing. Or a casual E ven supposing th at the Hwatdyndmak and sim ilar products of Sasanian historiog
discussion with a foreign scholar who mentioned the existence of ra p h y were based upon official annals , th at would not mean th at the historical works
were w ritten in the form of annals. C f . A . C h r i s t e n s e n , L Iran sous les Sassanides, 59 (2nd
annalistic works in his literature m ight have kindled the spark in ed., Copenhagen 1944), and the literature on the illustrated m anuscript supposedly trans
a Muslim historian.^ la ted from Persian into A rab ic in 731, quoted below , p. 176, n. i. A ccording to the A rab ic
versions of the Hwatdyndmak, the on ly chronological d ata contained in it concerned the
The evidence available as to the form of Iranian historiography len gth of the reigns of the in d ivid u al rulers.
in the seventh century is very slim. This much, however, seems B. S p u l e r (in B. L e w i s and P. M. H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 126) goes much
farth er in his skepticism concerning pre-Islam ic Persian h istoriography: . . . apparently
certain: There is nothing that would perm it us to assume th at the no real h istoriography existed in pre-Islam ic Persia. S p u l e r s point of view has m uch to
Persians used an annalistic arrangement. E veryth in g tends to show recom mend it.
* T h e Greek, and especially, the L a tin annalistic literature, which as literature was of
th at th ey did not, and there is the additional theoretical considera m inor im portance, is also lost to us.
tion th at the absence of a continuous era would have made the One m ay com pare the distinction which as-Safi'i m ade w ith regard to the treatm ent
of G reek books which were part of the Muslim b ooty. He distinguished between those which
com pilation of long-range historical works a difficult task. The dealt w ith medicine and other non-objectionable subjects, and those which dealt with
theological subjects (polytheism ). Most histories w ould have som ehow belonged to the latter
1 W hen H am zah al-Isfahani, in the tenth century, needed inform ation on Graeco-Rom an category. Cf. at-Tabari, Ihtildf al-fuqahd\ 178 S c h a c h t (Leiden 1933, Veroffentlichungen
history, he asked an old Greek [Rumi), who had been captured and served as a valet, to der "D e Goeje Stiftung, 10).
translate for him a Greek historical w ork orally. T h is was accomplished with the help of A w ork such as F. F u c h s , D ie hoheren Schulen von Konstantinopel im Mittelalter
the G reeks son, Y u m n , who knew A rabic well (H am zah al-Isfahani, History, I, 70 G o t t - (Leipzig-Berlin 1926, Byzantinisches Archiv, 8), has no occasion w h atever to m ention history.
WALDT, St. Petersbu rg-Leip zig 1844-48; translation b y E . M i t t w o c h , D ie literarische T he professors of rhetoric certainly discussed historical works in their courses, because
Tdtigkeit Hamza al-Isbahdnts, in Mitteilungen des Seminars fiir orientalische Sprachen, th ey furnished m aterial for public speakers.
Westasiatische Studien, X I I , 121, 1909). Som ething of the sort m ight easily have happened C f . E . G e r l a c h , D ie Grundlagen der byzantinischen Geschichtschreibung, in Byzantion,
in earlier times. V I I I , 93, n, I (1933)-
76 T H E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y T H E A N N A L IST IC FORM 77

th at the Bihliotheca of Photius (of the tenth century, it is true) is to existence of different eras in late antiquity. This made synchronisms
a large part devoted to the discussion of histories of all kinds.^ E ven necessary and also somewhat obscured the annalistic scheme, but
if a provincial outlook was predom inant in Syria and the libraries it is clearly there. L ike loannes Malalas, Jacob, too, is concerned
in Syrian cities were not well stocked with historical works, the w ith w orldly rulers, church dignitaries, scholars, and pious men.
stud y of history certainly was not an unknown subject in Syria A b ove all, he also has the characteristic succession of earthquakes,
wherever Greek books were understood. hailstorms, invasions of locusts, fires, comets, and building activities
Greek chronicles of the period when Islam came into being th at goes w ith annalistic historiography.^ In sum, there can be
represent exactly the type of annalistic historiography we find in little objection to the assumption that Mushm annalistic historiog
the later Muslim works. W hen loannes Malalas gets near his own raphy in its beginning was indebted to Greek and Syriac models.
time, he em ploys the annalistic form, in the same year, at the end It was not a particular w ork th at served Muslim authors as an
of the same indiction. ^A n arrangement according to the reigns of the inspiration, but the idea of the annalistic arrangement came to
individual emperors is superimposed upon the annahstic structure. early Muslim scholars through contact w ith learned Christians or
There is some cultural history as well as data concerning scholars, Christian converts to Islam.^ The close contact between Muslims
philosophers, and church dignitaries (most of whom were at the and Christians in the field of historiography, even in areas remote
same tim e politicians). Earthquakes, thunderstorms, and floods are from both B yzan tiu m and the center of Islam, is illustrated b y the
recorded. This information, as well as plagues, famines, inflations, history of early L atin Christian chronicles from Spain,^ where, it
and oddities of nature, is characteristic of annahstic historiography is known, there were historians of some m erit up to the time
and is also never absent from Muslim annals.^ In loannes Malalas, of the A rab conquest. ^ How much greater must the cultural
we thus have exactly the same annalistic form and contents exchange in such m atters have been in Syria where Muslims and
encountered later on in Muslim annalistic historiography.^ Christians lived on the m ost intim ate terms. If the annalistic form
A Syriac interm ediary would be superfluous, but its existence was thus suggested to the Muslims b y G raeco-Syriac historians, the
should be noted. The sixth-century Chronicle- of Edessa is an former were able to m ake a great contribution to its im provem ent.
annalistic compendium. The same form of historical w riting as T hey were in the possession of a generally accepted, continuous
we find in Malalas appears in Syriac literature in the historical era which greatly simplified the historical presentation.
work of Jacob (James) of Edessa who lived in the seventh century. Those who would prefer to find more concrete points of contact
Jacob faced chronological difficulties which resulted from the between Graeco-Syriac and Muslim historiography will find the
evidence meager but not entirely devoid of some potential support
* Cf. J . H e r g e n r o t h e r , Photius, Patriarch von Constantinopel, III, 15-17 (Regensburg
1869). for the hypothesis suggested here.^ W e m ay discount the alleged
^ Cf., for instance, Chronology, 439-41 D i n d o r f (Bonn 1831).
History of Y a h y a an-Nahwi and the History of Philosophers b y
AI-H uw arizm i had occasion to refer to earthquakes, plagues, and inundations.
* T he parallel between loannes M alalas, 172 D i n d o r f , and al-BirClni, India, trans. ^ Cf. E. W . B r o o k s , The Chronological Canon of James of Edessa, in Z D M G , L I I I, 261-
E . S a c i i a u , I, 112 (London 1910), which was pointed out b y S a c h a u in his notes, certainly 327 (1899), and the edition b y the same, in CSCO , Scriptores Syri, Series III, tom us IV ,
does not prove a n y direct knowledge of M alalas b y the Muslims. I , 261-327, and 2, 197-255 (Paris-Leipzig 1903).
A nother Greek w ork of the same type which m ay be com pared is the Chronicon Paschale. A s suggested b y J. S c h a c h t , in Oriens, V II, 155 (1954)-
Inciden tally, the existence of m uch historiographical a c tiv ity in A lexan d ria up to the time ^ Cf. C. E. D u b l e r , Sobre la cronica ardbigo-bizantina de 741 y la influencia bizantina
of the Muslim conquest m ay be assumed, although of actu al h istory w ritten at this time en la Peninsula Iberica, in A l-A n dalus, X I , 283-349 (1946).
b u t little rem ains (A. J. B u t l e r , The Arab Conquest of Egypt, 95 f., O xford 1902). *Cf. H. P i r e n n e , Mohammad and Charlemagne, E n gl, trans., 123 (New Y o rk 1939)-
It w ould also seem to be entirely perm issible to deduce from the existence of an annal- Most of the m aterial m entioned in the follow ing section has been known for m any
istically arranged w ork such as Theophanes Chronology th at earlier S yrian histories were years, cf. M. S t e i n s c h n e i d e r , D ie arabischen Vbersetzungen aus dem Griechischen, 16 i.
sim ilarly arranged. Th e assumption of an influence of Muslim historical w ritin g on (Leipzig 1897, first part, reprint G raz i960).
Theophanes is all b u t excluded. Cf. M . M e y e r h o f , Joannes Grammatikos (Philoponos) von Alexandrien und die arabische
C f. I. G u i d i , E . W . B r o o k s , and I . - B . C h a b o t , Chronica M inora, edited and translated M edizin, in Mitteilungen des Deutschen Instituts fUr dgyptische Altertumskunde in Kairo,
in CSCO , Scriptores Syri, Series III, tomus IV , i, 1-13, and 2, i - i i . II, 12 f. (1932).
T he Maronite Chronicle, which is p u b lis h e d in the same volum e and w h ic h s e e m s to have H is h istory is also quoted b y A gapiu s (Mahbfib) b. Q ustantin al-M anbiji, ed. L. C h e i k h o ,
some connection w ith the historical w ork of Theophilus of Edessa (d. 785, cf. A . B a u m s t a r k , in CSCO, Scriptores A r., Series III, tom us V , 128 and 289 (B eirut-Paris 1912), where w e
Geschichte der syrischen Literatur, 341 f.), should also be considered in this connection. read Y a h y a b. 'A d i an-N ahw i.
78 TH E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y TH E A N N A L IST IC FORM 79

P orph yry (died between 301 and 304) which was in part translated have been in part an annalistic work, was quoted b y U baydallah
into A rabic and is known from quotations. The latter work, although b. Jibril b. B u h tisu (d. 1006),^ who, in turn, was the source of
it contains m uch chronological m aterial/ is concerned w ith biog Ibn A bi Usaybi'ah.^ W hether Ibn B u h tisu s source did or did not
raphies, and the same seems to have been the case with the w ork exist in an A rabic translation is difficult to decide. It w ould seem
attributed to Y a h y a . A t any rate, neither was arranged annalisti- likely th at he quoted from a Syriac (or Greek) text. Andronicus was
cally. The name of Eusebius (died between 337 and 340) suggests known in Syriac literature,^ and not long after Ibn B uhtisu', he
itself as th at of the ancient Christian historian most likely to have also appears as a source in the Syro-Arabic bilingual Chronicle of
been known to the Muslims, as he was w idely known among Syriac E lijah of Nisibis (d. after 1049).^ Another Greek chronicler, Anianus,
authors.2 The relevant pre-Islamic inform ation in the great Muslim who lived in the fifth century, was known to Syrians and A rabs in
historians, such as at-Tabari, a l- Y a qubi, or A bu 1-Fida", does not a minor way.^
seem to go back to Eusebius, but he was known to and used b y a A H istory of the Greeks {Ahbdr al-Yundniyin), about whose
Christian A rabic author, Harun b. 'A zzur, whose w ork is said to form, contents, and authorship we have no further information,
be preserved ^ but is as yet unavailable and whose lifetim e seems is said to have been translated (into Arabic) b y H abib b. Bahrez,
to date rather far back but is uncertain. A l-Biruni seems to have a matrdn of Mosul, as early as the time of al-M amun, and the
know n him indirectly, but the precise form and age of his sources translation was used b y H am zah al-Isfahani. A nd Judge W a k i
are uncertain.^ Through Christian intermediaries, Eusebius is occa (d. 306/918) used a historical w ork (belonging to?) a B yzantine
sionally quoted in later Muslim historians.^ Eusebius work, in the king, which had been translated b y an anonym ous translator.'^
form in which it became known to Eastern Muslims, did not have The Muslim inform ation about Rom an pagan and Christian
the slightest intim ation of an annalistic arrangement. kings goes back to Christian Greek or Syriac sources; that about
N e x t to Eusebius, we must m ention the sixth-century chronog Old and New Testam ent history and about A ssyrian and Babylonian
raph er Andronicus. Alongside w ith an unidentified ancient Short kings also goes back to Christian (and, in some cases, perhaps, to
Byzantine (Rumi) History, the History of Andronicus, w hich m ay Jewish) sources. It should be noted that like the Biblical m aterial,
these sources need not have alw ays been historical works in the
1 Cf. Eusebius, Chronik, 89 K a r s t (Leipzig 1 9 1 1, E usebius' Werke, ed. K irchen vater-
Com m issiou der kgl. Preussischen Akadem ie d. W iss., V^ol. 5). proper sense. W e thus leam from a chance quotation b y A bu
^ Cf. A . B a u m s t a r k , Syrisch-arabische Biographien des Aristoteles, 2, n. i (Leipzig 1900, 1-F id a from the History of A bu Isa b. al-M unajjim th at A bu
Aristoteles bei den Syrern vom V .- V I I I . Jahrhundert).
P. S b a t h , A l-F ih ris, Supplement, 32, no. 2696 (Cairo 1940), refers to a m anuscript Isas authority for the dating of Hellen and Moses w as the Contra
in private possession, dated in 480/1087; of. G . G r a f , Geschichte der christlichen arabischen Julianum of Cyrillus of Alexandria.^
Literatur, II, 112 (Citta del V atican o 1947, Studi e Testi, 133). Eusebius is also used b y
Agapius (Mahbub) b. Q ustantin al-M anbiji. ^ C f. G . G r a f , op. cit., I I , i n .
* Cf. al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 85 ff. S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923), which u ltim a tely would * I, 73 M C l l e r .
seem to go b ack to Eusebius. In Atar 305, the Chronikcn of Eusebius is expressly cited for ^ Cf. A . B a u m s t a r k , loc. cit.; idem, Geschichte der syrischen Literatur, 136 (Bonn 1922);
the Christian E aster calculations. From the Istan bul ms. Umiimi 4667, p. 344, which fills G. F u r l a n i , in Zeitschrift fiir Sem itistik, V , 238-49 (1927). Th e references m ay n ot all be
in the lacuna on p. 307 S a c h a u , we learn th at the quotations from the Chronikon were to the same Andronicus.
derived from the Z tj of Y u su f b. al-Fadl a l-Y ah u d i al-H aybari. * C f. p. II o f the introduction to E . W . B r o o k s and J . - B . C h a b o t s translation, in
H istorical m onographs of a related type probab ly were, for instance, Sinan b. T a b it b. CSCO, Scriptores Syri, Series III, tom us V II (Paris-Leipzig 1910).
Q urrahs History of the K ings of the Syrians (al-Qifti, 195 M u l l e r - L i p p e r t ) , and, perhaps, ^ Cf. B a u m s t a r k , loc. cit. (p. 78, n. 2).
the h istory of the ancient E gy p tia n kings b y a certain Ibn Hnwn (Hanun ?) at-Tabari, History, I, 80 f. G o t t w a l d t (St. Petersburg-Leipzig 1844-48); al-Biruni, al-Atdr al-
cited b y A b u 1-Fida^ Historia Anteislamica, 102 F l e i s c h e r (Leipzig 1831). A ccordin g to bdqiyah, 2820 S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923). For Ibn Bahrez, cf. Fihrist, 341 and 348 (Cairo
al-H asan b 'A b d allah b. a l-'A bb as, Atdr al-uwal f t tartib ad-duwal, ch. I, 7 (p. 44, B ulaq 1348 = 244 and 248 f. F l u g e l ) . He m ay be identical w ith 'A b d -Y a s u ' b. Bahrez m entioned
1295; p. 52, Cairo 1305, in the m argin of a s-S u yu tis T a M h al-hulafd^), he w as 'A ll b. F ihrist, 35 f. ( = 23 f. F l u g e l ) ? Jew ish chronology m ay also have entered A rabic literature
M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah b. Hnwn at-Tabari, and his w ork was used in the w ork of M uham at the time of Harun, cf. below , p. 139, n. 5.
m ad b. H arun al-'A b b a si which, in turn, seems to have been one of the sources for ancient H am zah al-Isfahani, op. cit.. I, 70, 76, 79 G o t t w a l d t .
E gyp tia n h istory in A b u M a'sars Kitdb al-UlHf. Historia Anteislamica, 152 f. F l e i s c h e r (Leipzig 1831). Cf. the Siwdn al-hikmah,
^ Cf., for instance, Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talab, phot. Cairo T a rih 1566, I, 161. origin ally the w ork of A b u Sulaym an al-M antiqi as-Sijistani, in the Istanbul m anuscript
Ibn Ju lju l, Tabaqdt al-atibbd^, 3 F. S a y y i d (Cairo 1955), knew S t . Jerom es Latin M urat M olla 1408, fol. 5a. More ligh t on Ibn al-M unajjim s w ork (above, p. 72) has been
translation of E u sebius Chronicle {al-Qrw^nqh li-Yrw nm at-turjumdn), bu t this knowledge prom ised b y S . M. S t e r n , cf. Bibliotheca Orientalis, X I, 74 (1954).
no d oubt rem ained restricted to the Muslim W est, and even there was soon forgotten. I, 10, p. 517C M i g n e .
8o TH E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y T H E A N N A L IST IC FORM 81

W hile all the preceding evidence points to the availab ility to Qasim b. A sbag and provided with m any additions.^ The translation
Muslim scholars of a certain knowledge of Graeco-Syriac historiog w as used b y the contem porary Spaniard Ibn Juljul, in his History
raphy, it is b y no means proven th at th at knowledge reached of Physicians,'^ and again b y later historians, especially Ibn Haldun
Muslim historians early enough in this w ay to inspire their use of and, following him, al-Maqrizi. A related Christian Spanish treat
the annalistic form. The same apphes to an even greater degree to m ent of pre-Islam ic history down to the Muslim conquest of Spain,
some Christian A rabic historical works, which m ay have transm itted of uncertain authorship and date of composition, is particularly
the form and contents of Graeco-Syriac annalistic historiography to rem arkable on account of the fact th at it found its w ay into a
Muslim scholars. A ll the works about which we have definite know l mosque library and thus must have at some time been studied b y
edge date from long after the tim e when the annalistic form made Muslims. In general, as is well known, Mushm historians, because
its appearance in Muslim historical writing. H unayn b. Ishaq of the self-centered outlook of Mushm society, were reluctant to
(d. 260/873) is thus credited w ith a History of the World, th& B e use non-Muslim historical sources. In addition to Orosius, a brief
ginnings, the Prophets, Kings, Nations, Caliphs, and Princes in Islam, passage in al-M asudi and a section in the world history of Rasid-
about which we have but little information.^ The History of P h y si ad-din are all th at can be proven to have been translated from
cians b y his son Ishaq (d. 298/end of 910) is basically a history of later W estern European sources prior to O ttom an times.^
ancient medicine and the individuals who created it, with much
chronological detail but no thought of an annalistic o r g a n i z a t i o n . 2 For the developm ent of the annalistic form in Islam after it
His sporadic use of the Seleucid era, which was occasionally had been adopted in its early years, it is im portant to realize that
mentioned also b y other Muslim scholars, did not exercise any b y its very nature annalistic historiography is prim arily concerned
influence upon Muslim historiography. Ishaqs contem porary, w ith facts, bare facts, which were, or at least were in theory,
Q u s ti b. L uq a (d. 300/912), wrote a w ork entitled Paradise on recorded b y contem porary sources and could not be corrected,
History in his old age, which is also not preserved. The historical im proved, or enlarged b y any later writer. Subsequent annalistic
w ork of S a id (Eutychius) b. B itriq (d. 328/940) is in part based w orks were thus conceived as mere continuations of the annalistic
on Muslim sources but draws its m ain inspiration from B yzantine w orks of former authors. A l-Q ifti, therefore, found it easy to explain
historiography. how one m ight get the m ost reliable historical inform ation from the
The only complete translation of an ancient history, of which beginning of the world to the year in which he wrote, th at is,
we know and which has been preserved, certainly came too late to the year 616/1219-20. T f you w ant continuous historical infor
exercise any sort of influence on Muslim historiography. T h at was m ation well arranged, you m ust consult the w ork of A bu J a 'fa r
the translation of Orosius, Adversus paganos.^^ A copy of Orosius, at-Tabari, from the beginning of the world to the year 309 (!). If
together with a copy of Dioscurides, was sent b y the B yzantine you wish, you m ay combine the w ork of A hm ad b. A b i Tahir and
Em peror Rom anos (rather: Constantine) to Abd-ar-Rahm an an- his son U baydallah w ith at-Tabari.^ Y o u w ill do well to do that,
Nasir in Spain in the year 377/948-49. Orosius w ork was translated, because th ey went very thoroughly into the description of the
but not very literally, b y the Judge of the Christians together w ith
^ Cf. Ibn H aldun, ^Ibar, II, 88 (B ulaq 1284); Ibn Ju lju l, Explanation of the Names of the
Cf. Ibn A b i U say b i'ah , I, 200 M U l l e r , and S. M . S t e r n , loc. cit. N either the F ihrist Sim plicia from the Book of Dioscurides, quoted b y Ibn A b i Usaybi'^ah, II, 46-48 M u l l e r .
nor al-Q ifti m entions the title. Cf. M . M e y e r h o f , D ie Materia M edica des Dioskurides hei den Arabern, in Quellen und
* Cf. F . R o s k n t h a l , in Oriens, V II, 55-80 (1954), and idem, in Bulletin of the H istory o f Studien zur Gesch. der Naturwiss. und der M edizin, III, 72 ff. (1933). Since Ibn Ju lju l only
M edicine, X X X , 54 f. (1956), and J A O S , L X X X I , 10 f. (1961). in cid entally m entioned Orosius in connection w ith his w ork on Dioscurides, he has no
T h e m uch older Ahbdr al-atibhd^ b y the Muslim kdtib Y u su f b. Ibrahim (below, p. 510, inform ation about the translation of Orosius.
n. 4), it m ay be added here, was clearly not a historical w ork b u t rather a collection of ^ Tabaqdt al-atibbd^, 2, 12, 36 F . S a y y i d (Cairo 1955).
stories and anecdotes. ^ Cf. G. L e v i d e l l a V i d a , Un texte mozarabe d'histoire universelle, in E . Levi-Provengal
Fihrist, 411 (Cairo 1348 = 295 F l O g e l ). M emorial Volume, 175-83 (Paris 1962).
G. L e v i d e l l a V i d a has found a m anuscript of the w ork and is w orking on its edition, ^ Cf. B . L e w i s , in B . L e w i s and P. M. H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 180-91
cf. his article in M iscellanea G. Galhiati, III , 185-203 (1951), and Al-A ndalus, X I X , 257-93 (London 1962), and below , p. 147.
(1954). See below , p. 135, n. 2, p. 152 f., and p. 462, n. 2.
R o s e n t h a l , H istory of Muslim H istoriography 6
82 T H E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y T H E A N N A L IST IC FORM 83

A bbasid d yn asty and gave additional details which were not men al-H am adanis work, but his w ork is unsatisfactory, because he was
tioned b y at-Tabari. T hey stopped at about the same time. A t- not a historian b y profession. H e brought his w ork down to the
Tabari has a little more. This is followed b y the w ork of T abit year (5)27. A l- A fif (?) Sadaqah al-Haddad^ then continued Ibn
(b. Sinan b. T ab it b. Qurrah), which for some years coincides w ith az-Zagunis w ork down to the year 570 and something, and
at-Tabari and leads down to the year 363. Y ou would do well to Sadaqahs work, in turn, was continued b y Ibn al-Jaw zi down to
combine w ith T ab it al-Farg^nis Continuation of at-T ab aris w o rk / after the year (5)80.2 Then, Ibn al-QM isi ^ continued Ibn al-
because the w ork of al-Fargani is more detailed in some places than Jaw zis w ork down to the year 6 16. ^
the w ork of Tabit. Then, there is the w ork of H ilal b. al-Muhassin A l-Q ifti gave an accurate picture of the prevailing situation.
b. Ibrahim as-Sabi (d. 448/1056), which coincides w ith the w ork of Annalistic works were composed in succession to and continuation
his m aternal uncle T ab it and supplements it down to the year 447. of preceding works. There w as not much need for any two annalistic
No one else was as well informed about the actual state of affairs works being w ritten at the same tim e and in the same region. The
and the political inside story of th at period as he was. He got th at im portant part of an annalistic w ork was its contem porary section,
from his grandfather who was a secretary of state and well inform ed which could become very detailed. The raw m aterial for it m ay
about events.2 He himself, too, was a secretary of state. He checked often have been a detailed diary kept b y the author. A valuable
the m aterial he collected w ith the incoming (government and exam ple of such a diary has been preserved from the pen of the
diplom atic) inform ation. This was followed b y the w ork of his son, eleventh-century H anbalite, A bu A li Ibn al-B ann a (396-471/
C irs-an-nim ah Muhammad b. Hilal. It is a good w ork and goes 1005-78 ).5 W e do not know whether his diary was intended for
down to sometime after 470. Some unknown circum stance caused later use in a comprehensive w o rk ; it m ay never have been intended
him to be brief at the end of the work. Ibn al-H am adanis (work) for publication in any form. However, it shows how the w riting of
then coincides w ith that of Cirs-an-ni'm ah and supplements it contem porary history in annalistic form was undertaken, down to
down into the year 512.^ A bu 1-H asan b. az-Zaguni continued Ibn the execrable handw riting shared b y Ibn al-Banna" w ith m any
other great historians, which must have in evitab ly led to m any
^ T h e Silah b y A b d a lla h b . A h m a d b . J a 'f a r al-F arg a n ,i is e x te n s iv e ly q u o te d in, th e
m inor errors in the finished history. E ventu ally, in the fourteenth
life o f a t - T a b a r i in Y a q u t , IrSdd, an d in 'A r i b s Tabari continuatus , cf. also a r - R a s id b .
a z - Z u b a y r , ad-DaM ?ir wa-t-tuliaf, 47 f., 183 f., 189 f. H a m i d u l l a h ( K u w a it 19 5 9 ); al- and fifteenth-century histories, the historical presentation w as
M arraku S i, Mu'^jib, 33 D o z y (L eiden 184 7, 18 8 1), tra n s . A . H u ic i M ir a n d a , Coleccion de
cronicas drabes de la reconquista, I V , 40 (T e tu a n 1955); I b n H a llik a n , I I , 528, I I I , 222 Ibn al-F u w ati, Talhis Majma^ al-dddb, IV , I, 534 (Dam ascus 1962). Cf. also Y a q u t, Mu^jam
tra n s . D e S l a n e ; a n d C. C a h e n , La Chronique abregee d'al-^Azimt, in J A , C C X X X , 355 al-bulddn, II, 907 f. W u s t e n f e l d , s . v . Zaguna. H is w ork is quoted b y Ibn an-N ajjar, D a y l
(1938). H is w o rk p r o b a b ly w a s w id e ly u sed b y la te r a u th o rs, e v e n w h ere he is n o t e x p r e s s ly Ta^rth Bagdad, Paris ms. or. 2131, fol. 20b (Life of 'A li b. M uham m ad b. M uham m ad), etc.
m e n tio n ed . A l- F a r g a n i w a s b o rn in 282/895-96 (cf. p . X X o f th e in tr o d u c tio n to th e e d itio n 1 Sadaqah b. al-H usayn, 4 7 7 , or 479-573/io86(87)-ii77, cf. Ibn al-Jaw zi, op. cit., X ,
o f a t - T a b a r is History). H e d ied in 362/972-73 (a c co rd in g to a s -S a fa d i an d a d - D a h a b i, cf. 276-78; J. A . B e l l a m y , in J A O S , L X X X I , 227 (1961). H is History is referred to b y as-
R . G u e s t , in A Volume of Oriental Studies presented to E . G. Browne, 173, C a m b rid g e 1922). Safadi, W aft, Bodleian ms. or. Seld. Arch. A . 24, fol. 67a, and Ibn K atir, Biddyah, X I I , 298,
Cf. also N . A b b o t t , Studies in Arabic Literary Papyri I , 1 15 f. (C h icag o 19 5 7). H is son probably follow ing Ibn as-Sa'i. It is quoted in Y a q u t s IrSdd, cf. G. B e r g s t r a s s e r in
A h m a d , w h o c o n tin u e d h is fa t h e r s w o rk , liv e d fro m 327/939 to 398/1007 ( Y a q u t , Irsdd, Zeitschrift fu r Sem itistik, II, 204 (1924); Ibn an-N ajjar, D a y l Ta^rth Bagdad, Paris ms. or.
I I I , 105 f. C a iro = 16 1 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ; as-Safadi, W dfi, B o d le ia n m s. or. Seld. A r c h . A 2 1, 2131, fol. 137b (life of al-M ustarsid); ad-D ahabi, al-Muhtasar al-muhtdj ilayh, I, 138
fo l. 48b). Cf. I b n K a tir , X I , 244. (Bagdad 1371/1951). Al-'^aftf cannot be Afif-ad-din, because Sadaqah did not have this
^ T h e te x t m ust apparently be understood in this m anner. epithet, and al-Q ifti w ould n ot have used the abb reviated form, b u t the adjective m odest,
^ On the w ork of G irs (Gars)-an-ni'mah, cf. C . C a h e n , in B . L e w i s and P. M. H o l t , or the like, also seems strange here, although it is n ot uncom m only used in this m anner.
Historians of the M iddle E ast, 6 1. For Sadaqah, cf. also G. M a k d i s i , Ibn ^Aqtl, 54-58 (Dam ascus 1963).
* T h e year 512 is the date of the death of the caliph al-M ustazhir whose reign began in ^ Th e edition stops w ith the year 574.
487. A lth ough al-H am adani him self says in his introduction th at he w as ending his w ork ^ M uham m ad b. A hm ad, d. 632/1235, cf. C. C a h e n , La Syrie du Nord, 71 (Paris 1940).
w ith the beginning of the reign of al-M ustazhir, it is quite lik e ly th at he did continue it His father, A hm ad b. M uham m ad, died in 621/1224, cf. Ibn K a tir, op. cit., X I I I , 104.
down to the year 5 1 2 . IHdn (below, p. 488) gives the wrong term inal date of 360. T h e Ibn al-Q adisis w ork is quoted, for instance, b y A b u Sam ah, Rawdatayn, I, 286 ff., 314 f.,
preserved m anuscript of the w ork goes down to 367 on ly b u t w as to be continued. 395; II, 94, 96, 103 (Paris 1896-1906, Kecueil des historiens des Croisades, Historians or., 4-5);
It does n ot seem to be com pletely certain w hether the auth ors gentilic w as (the more likely) Ibn IJallikan, I, 302, 305; IV , 114, 125 trans. D e S l a n e .
H am adani, or H am dani. * A l-Q ifti, n o f. L i p p e r t - M u l l e r . T h e passage was quoted b y D e S l a n e , in his trans
'A ll b. 'U b a y d a lla h b. Nasr, A b u 1-H asan b. az-Zaguni (4 55 -5 27/10 6 3-1132), cf. Ibn lation of Ibn y a llik a n , I, 290.
al-Jaw zi, M untazam, X , 32 (H yderabad 13 5 7 -5 8 ); Ibn R ajab , D a y l Tabaqdt al-Handbilah, Cf. G. M a k d i s i , in i?S O /lS , X V I I l , 9-31, 239-60 (1956); X I X , 13-48, 281-303, 426-43
I, 2 16 -20 a d - D a h h a n and L a o u s t (Dam ascus 13 7 0 /19 5 1); M. J a w a d , in his edition of (1957). Cf. below , p. 174.
84 T H E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y
T H E A N N A L IST IC FORM 85

broken down into months and days w ith considerable regularity, m aterial in larger tim e units was occasionally felt in later centuries.
whereas earlier annalistic writers were not as consistent in this A d-D ahabi, in his History of Islam, introduced a subdivision into
respect. 1 A b ove all, the transm itted facts had to be taken at decades (years one to ten of the hijrah, etc.), which he consistently
their face value. The verb jdzafah, borrowed from the term inology apphed throughout the whole work. The origin of the division is,
of the science of traditions, was applied to historians as an ex however, not to be sought in annalistic historiography. It was
pression of disapproval for the baseless expansion, interpolation, derived from the biographical historiography th at was under the
free and untruthful invention of information.^ To our mind, the influence of theology. Before ad-Dahabi, Ibn al-Jaw zi wrote a book
use of the term m ight occasionally indicate a certain originality on the Ages of Prominent M en in which those men who died in their
of approach. B u t this is b y no means certain. W hen we read about second, third, etc. decade of their hves were treated as separate
a late author, Nur-ad-din A li b. D aw ud b. as-Sayrafi al-Jawhari groups. 1 A d-D ah abis indebtedness to biography is not only shown
(d. 900/1495), whose historical efforts supposedly provoked the b y the special position of the obituary-biographies w ithin the decade
derisive laughter of his contemporaries, that he wrote history b y arrangement, but above all b y the word he uses for decade, tahaqah,
baseless expansion {mujdzafah), and not on the authority of some which links his decade division w ith the tahaqdt literature.
one telling or transm itting the inform ation, we are somewhat The same biographical origin also attaches to the centennial
curious to know whether here we are actually deahng w ith an author arrangement. The division of the m aterial in centuries was apphed
possessing an independent attitude tow ard historical sources. Th at to collections of biographies, which are as a rule arranged alpha
the following verses are applied to him: b etically but also, as in Ibn al-'Aydarus,^ annahstically. O nly very
O you who say th at there exist perfect works on history. rarely, as appears to have been the case w ith B aybars al-Man-
Y o u are related to camels which do not know what th ey are suris Zuhdat al-fikrah,^ is the century considered a superimposed
carrying,^ element of periodization in an annalistic non-biographical history.
The biographical origin is confirmed b y the occasional use of the
would serve to strengthen our impression th at we m ight expect
word qarn centu ry in the title. Qarn is no abstract numerical
here some originahty. Y et, from w hat we know of the authors
unit like mi''ah centu ry but has alw ays been felt to be connected
production, we can be certain to be very much disappointed. In
with the length of the life of individuals or groups. A s late as the
general, all the m anifold accretions from other forms of historical
fifteenth century, we find an author such as al-M aqrizi om it cen
presentation and from sciences other than history which w ent into
tu ry from the various lengths of duration attributed to qarn.^
the m aking of Muslim annalistic works were not able to produce
an y basic change in the inherent traits of the annalistic form. It 1 Cf. G A L Supplement I, 916, no. lo c.
^ W ho includes some events.
remained the vehicle which made historical writing as easy as a
I consulted the abridgm ent, Bodleian ms. or. Pocock 324 (Uri 704) containing the
technique as it made it difficult as a form of expression for artistic years 559-774, and the incom plete ms. or. H unt. 198 (Uri 711), dealing w ith the third
century.
or intellectual aspirations.
Al-Habar ^an al-basar, Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 947, p. 123: Qarn m eans the succession of
The need for an additional w ay of organizing the steadily growing one nation after the other. Its duration is said to be ten, or tw en ty, or th irty, or six ty
years. W ith some hesitation, it m ight be defined as the average length of the lives of the
^ Accordin g to J .- M . A b d - e l - J a l i l , B r h e histoire de la litterature arabe, 126 (3rd ed.,
people of a given period. Thus, a qarn am.ong the people of Noah means the length of their
Paris 1946), the d atin g according to year, m onth, and d a y was practiced since the eighth
lives, and among the peoples of Moses, Jesus, 'A d , and Tam ud, the length of their respective
cen tury beginning w ith a l-H aytam b. 'A d i. Is this a m isunderstanding of w hat w as said
lives. A qarn is said to be fo rty years . . . The a u th ority for the preceding statem ent is Ibn
b y D . S. M a r g o l i o u t h , Lectures on Arabic Historians, 1 7 (C alcu tta 1930) ?
Sidah. A ccording to the Sihdh (II, 400, B u laq 1292) a qarn is e ig h ty years. It is also said
F or a d a y -b y -d ay h isto ry of E g y p t, which m ay have been a diary, cf. Ibn H allikan , II,
to be th irty years . . . (Arabic te x t, below, p. 543.)
3 18 trans. D e S l a n e . Cf. also al-B ayhaqi, Ta^rih-i-Bayhaq, 1 7 5 (Teheran 1317), on the
A l-lji, Tuhfah (below, p. 207 f.), fol. 19b, says th at A b u H anifah assigned to the qarna.
h istory of A b u 1-F ad l a l-B a yh a q i ( S t o r e y , II, 2, 252 ff.; M . M i n o v i , in B . L e w i s and
duration of 120 years, M alik one of seven ty, and Ibn H anbal one of six ty or ninety.
P. M . H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 13 8 40 ).
The Lisdn al-'-Arab, X V I I, 211 f. (B ulaq 1300-8), has approxim ately the same inform ation
* I t often occurs in as-Sahawi, I^ldn, b u t cf. also Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, I X , 42 as is found in al-M aqrizi. I t quotes a num ber of additional sources. Qarn, in the m eaning of
(H yderabad 1357-58), and already Kitdb al-Agdnt, I, 19 (Bulaq 1285); I, 36 (Cairo 1345 ff.), people livin g at the same tim e, is said to be derived from iqtarana to be connected. T he
in a critique of Ibn H u rradad bih s historical inform ation.
duration of qarn is also fixed at se v en ty or eigh ty years. For the m eaning of one hundred
^ Cf. Ibn ly a s, Badd^i^, II, 288 (Bulaq 1311/1893-94). On al-Jaw hari, see below, p. 247. years, a tradition is quoted, according to w hich the Prophet p a tted a b o y on the head and
86 T H E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y L E S SE R FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL PE R IO D IZ A T IO N 87

A certain connection of this typ e of w orks w ith annalistic historiog 3 L E S S E R FO R M S O F H IS T O R IC A L P E R IO D IZ A T IO N


raphy is, however, established b y the fact th at authors w rote A D Y N A S T IC H IS T O R IO G R A P H Y
continuations beyond the century m ark. This seems to have been
No annalistic history in Islam is entirely free of a superimposed
the case w ith al-Birzali, and Ibn H ajar w rote a continuation of th e
principle of arrangement, th at is, one based upon the reigns of
Durar al-kdminah in which the biographies are arranged according
caliphs and other rulers. In addition, a special biography is as a
to the years in which the persons listed died.^ The crystallization
rule devoted to the particular ruler either in connection w ith the
of centennial historiography took place towards the end of the
year of his accession to the throne or the year of his death. These
thirteenth century. For the first tim e the word centu ry appears
biographies stress the moral and ethical quahties (or lack of such
in a title in connection w ith th at century, in Ibn al-F u w atis Pure
qualities) of the particular ruler and often add a description of his
Pearls on the Poets of the Seventh IThirteenth Century and the same
physical appearance.^ A list of his children, wives, officials, and
authors General Events and Useful Experiences of the Seventhj
other statistical inform ation (for instance, the names of the leaders
Thirteenth Century.'^ A l-6u b rin is History of Bajdyah, according to
of the pilgrim age during his caliphate) is also found in this connec
the title given it in Ibn al-H atibs Ihdtah,^ was restricted to the
tion. The importance which was attached to such adm inistrative
seventh/thirteenth century. The tradition thus inaugurated w as
data is evidenced b y the fact th at th ey constitute nearly the entire
continued. For the next four centuries, we have Ibn H aja rs
contents of the section devoted to each caliph whenever the author
Hidden Pearls on the Great M en of the EighthjFourteenth Century,
w anted to be brief, such as, for instance, al-Q udai in the 'Uyun
as-Sahaw is Sparkling Light on the People of the NinthjFifteenth
al-ma'-drif.'^ In the Muqtabis of al-Quda*^is Spanish contem porary
Century, Ibn a l-A yd aru s Resplendent Light on the History {ahbdr)
Ibn H ayyan , the hsts of officials, scholars, poets, and opponents
of the Tenth]Sixteenth Century, and al-M uhibbis Choice of the Age
of the ruler precede the annalistic presentation of the events of his
on the Great M en of the Eleventh!Seventeenth Century ^
reign. 3
said to him : L ive a qarn, and that b o y lived to be one hundred years old (cf. al-Buhari, The oldest preserved historical works (and, as a rule, the numerous
Ta?rth, I, i, 323, H yd erab ad 1360 ff.). T h e same tradition was also accepted b y al-M arzuqi,
al-Azm inah wa-l-amkinah, I, 238 (H yderabad 1332), as proof th at a qarn should be one dynastic histories of later years, after the disappearance of a central
hundred years, b u t al-M arzuqi also quotes another well-know n tradition (cf. as-Sahaw i, a u th ority in Islam) used the reigns of the rulers as their only
P la n , 42, below, p. 326) as an indication th at qarn signifies th irty or fo rty years, while the
Lisdn refers to the same tradition as an indication of the indefinite length of a qarn. A s early principle of arrangement and h ad no proper annalistic division.
an author as Ibn S a 'd , Tabaqdt, I, i, 126 S a c h a u and others, did not doubt th at qarn m eant T h is m ay h ave been the case already w ith Ibn I s h ^ s History of
a hundred years, and for an author of the tim e of Ibn K a tir {Biddyah, I, lo i) , it was
n atu ral to consider a hundred years the common though n ot exclusive m eaning of qarn. the Caliphs, about which we have only very scant inform ation so
Th e actu al d erivation of these meanings of qarn is not absolutely certain. Qarn, in the far.^ A good exam ple is the History of al-Ya*^qubi, which, further
m eaning of horn, strength (of an individual or group), m ay have developed into period
of the strength of an in d ivid u al or group, hence generation or some other period of time. more, has the p eculiarity of indicating the astrological constellation
1 Phot. Cairo T a rih 4767. Ibn H ajar stopped w ith the year 832/1428-29. which prevailed at the beginning of each reign. Or one m ight
A l-B irza lis Muhtasar al-mi^ah as-sdbi^ah covers the years 601-736 (G AL, II, 36). T h e
title is e vid en tly not genuine, cf. E l, 2nd ed., s.v. al-B irzali. compare the Ahbdr at-tiwdl of al-Ya*^qubis contem porary, ad-
^ Cf. G A L Supplement, II, 202. A w ork on seventh/thirteenth-century poets, al-Gusun Dinawari. A l-B alad uris Ansdb is also built into a fram ework of
al-ydni^ah f t mahdsin Su^ard'' al-mPah as-sdbi^ah (listed in G A L Supplement, I, 581, under
Ibn al-Abbar), has been ascribed to Ibn Sa'^id b y its editor, I. a l - I b y A r i (Cairo, n.y. [1954 ?], A history of the personalities of the eleventh cen tury w as also begun b y M uham m ad at-
Dahd^ir al-^Arab, X I V ). Ib n S a 'id is also credited w ith a w ork of sim ilar contents and a T a y y ib al-Fasi, cf. E . L e v i- P r o v e n ? a l, Les Historiens des Chorfa, 284 (Paris 1922).
sim ilar title, al-Cfurrah at-tdli^ah f t fudald^ (not Su^ard^) al-mPah as-sdbi^ah {GAL Supplement, ^ From the time of al-M a mun, we have a m onograph on the subject, Kitdb Sifat al-
L 5 7 7). hulafd^, which was quoted b y al-H atib al-B agdadi, T B , X , 391. F or its occurrence in the
H ow ever, a s-S u yu ti states in the introduction of his Bugyah th at he used an anonym ous biograph y of M uham m ad and Greek parallels, cf. F . R o s e n t h a l , Arabische Nachrichten
al-Budur as-sdfirah f t udaba^ al-mPah as-sddisah Resplendent F u ll Moons on the L itte ra iiber Zenon den Eleaten, in Orientalia, N .S ., V I, 38 (1937).
teurs of the S ix th C e n tu ry . * A l-Q u da4 enum erates the children, secretaries (or wazirs), judges, cham berlains, and
= I, 5 ff. (Cairo 1319). Cf. G A L , II, 239. provin cial governors of the caliphs.
* In practice, those works favored the personalities of one particular region. W ith the Cf. the edition of p a rt three of the w ork b y M. M. A n t u n a (Paris 1937, Texies ar.
tenth/sixteenth century, the regional restriction becam e official, and has rem ained so ever relatifs d I histoire de I Occidenf musulman, 3).
since. For the collection of the biographies of N orthw est Africans in the tenth and eleventh Cf. N . A b b o t t , Studies in Arabic Literary Pa pyri I , 80 ff. (Chicago 1957); M. J. K i s t e r ,
ci.G A L S u p p lem en t, II, 678, and II, 681 f. (new edition II, 605). Cf. also II, 683. in Journal of Sem itic Studies, I X , 320-26 (1964).
00 TH E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y L E S SE R FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL P E R IO D IZA T IO N 89

caliphal histories. There can be h ttle doubt that the older histories this meaning.^ Its original m eaning is circulation, turn. It was
of the U m ayyad and A bbasid dynasties followed the same arrange connected in Islam w ith a theory of recurrent cycles of political
ment. The natural sequence is th at leading down from the most power as early as the time of al-Kindi.^ A s a com bination of Persian
ancient to the more recent rulers. This sequence was only once nationalist and S i'ah aspirations, the idea m ay have been much
reversed in Mushm historical writing, and that was in the History older, and the fact th at the word dawlah which expresses it came
of Sinan b. T ab it in which, we are told, the author dealt first with to be used as the A rabic term for d y n a sty m ay be corroborative
his contem porary al-M utadid and then, going backward, w ith the evidence for a certain Persian influence upon Muslim dynastic
reigns of the preceding caliphs. ^ Much later, there seems to have historiography.^
existed a feeling that the annalistic and alphabetical-biographical Muslim authors them selves had certain ideas about the origin
principles of arrangement were so prevalent and ordinary th at an of dynastic historiography, which, however, are not very helpful.
uninterrupted, coherent presentation of the history of a given d yn asty The first to w rite on the dyn asty the A bbasid dynasty, th at
was something original ; this, at least, is w hat Ibn al-Barizi says is ^ was Muhammad b. SMih b. Mihran b. an-N attah, who died
in his prose w ork on history which he started to w rite in 666/1267.2 120 lunar years after the establishm ent of th at dynasty. B u t we
The ruler scheme of historical presentation is very ancient and are also informed th at Ibn an-Nasri already w rote a Book of the
w idely used. It is known from ancient oriental as well as Graeco- Dynasty.^ This was the source of the w ork of Ibn an-N attah, who
B yzantine historiography. In its Muslim form, it is characterized m ay have functioned as the editor and revisor of the unpublished
b y a special interest in ethical and adm inistrative questions. This w ork of his teacher Ibn an-Nasri. Moreover, we are alw ays hesitant
m ay be a sign of the influence of Persian national historiography to believe th at a w ork stated to have been the oldest one of a special
which also used the ruler scheme, since Persian historians appear to typ e actually w as the oldest one. In this particular case, we should
h ave considered ruler ethics and political adm inistration the most look for older works of the same typ e on the U m ayyad dynasty.
im portant elements of history. The early biography of Muhammad, In fact, the Fihrist states th at Aw anah b. al-H akam al-K albi,
it is true, contains such inform ation in a quite similar form. N ever the auth ority of the historians al-H aytam b. A di and al-MadaHni,
theless, there remains the possibility th at Persian influence, which who died around the middle of the second century of the hijrah
m ay reach back into the time of Muhammad, ^ m ay have been at (ca. 767),^ wrote a Biography of Mu^dwiyah and the Umayyads.
w ork here. The larger dynastic principle of historical periodization
^ T h a t is, w hether its occurrence can be established for the eighth cen tury or earlier.
m ight have also become known to the Muslims as a result of their =* Cf. al-K ind i, Risdlah f t mulk al-'^Arab, ed. O. L o t h , in Morgenldndische Forschungen
early contact w ith Persian historiography. However, it is well worth (Leipzig 1875, F estsch rift H . L . Fleischer).
As stated in E l , 2nd ed., s.v. dawla, the developm ent of the m eaning d y n a sty for dawlah
remembering th at anybody reared in the ancient Arabic-Bedouin appears to be an internal A rab ic developm ent which gained im petus in e arly 'A b b asid
concept of political organization and acquainted w ith the religio- times, and the possibiUty of Persian influence upon the form ation of the concept is slight
b u t cannot be ruled out entirely. H ow ever, in connection w ith the above paragraph, the
poUtical history of early Islam would see the mainspring of all doubts concerning Persian h istoriography iu general, expressed above, p. 74f., should be
historical happenings in dynastic divisions. The A rabic word for taken into consideration. On dawlah, cf. a lread y A. M e z , Abulkdsim , V I I , n. 2 (H eidelberg
1902).
'd3masty, dawlah, m ight give us some clue, and it would be * Al-M as^udi, M uru j, I, 12 Paris ed. = I, 5 (Cairo 1346) has this inform ation in addition
interesting to find out when it first occurred in A rabic literature in to th at contained in Fihrist, 156 (Cairo 1348 = 107 F l u g e l ). An im portant nin th-cen tu ry
w ork dealing w ith early 'A b b asid h istory is believed b y ' A b d - a l - ' A z i z a d - D u r i to be possibly
the History of Ibn an-N attah , cf. M ajallat K ulltyat al-dddb wa-l-^ulum (Bagdad), II, 64-82
(1957) (I owe m y knowledge of this publication to the courtesy of P. A . G r y a z n e v i c h ).
^ Cf. al-M as'udi, M uru j, I, 19 Paris ed. = I, 7 (Cairo 1346), quoted b y as-Sahaw i, IHdn, Fihrist, 158 (Cairo 1348 = 108 F l u g e l ), cf. G . L e v i d e l l a V i d a , Les Livres des
157, below, p. 505. Chevaux, X X X I V (Leiden 1928, Publications de la Fondation De Goeje, 8).
Kitdb Ta^rih al-Hhdd wa-l-bildd, preserved in the Istan bu l m anuscript H atice Turhan F ihrist, 134 (Cairo 1348 = 91 F l u g e l ).
V alide S u ltan 22 8, fol. ib , to which F u a t S e z g i n k in d ly drew m y attention. A p p aren tly A ccording to the Kitdb al-M atdlib of A b u HJbaydah, A w a n a h s father was of low and
only the introduction of the w ork is preserved in the m anuscript. T he w ork m ay h ave been ra cially m ixed parentage, cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, X V I , 134 (Cairo = V I, 93 M a r g o l i o u t h ),
rather sim ilar to the versified h istory of the same author, preserved iu Vienna, Ms. ar, 808 b u t there is nothing in this statem ent which would necessarily connect 'A w a n a h w ith
(G AL, 1, 3 49). either the B yzan tin e or the Persian civilization . Cf. also Ibn Ish a q s caliphal h istory
Cf. above, p. 28 f. (above, p. 87).
90 TH E BA SIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y L E S SE R FORM S O F H ISTO RICAL PER IO D IZA T IO N 91

This w ork m ay have been a history of the U m ayyad d yn asty quite paratively meager and was never fu lly integrated in Muslim
com parable to later works of dynastic historiography.^ historiography.! O nly if al-Biruni thought of the great mass of
The dynastic arrangement of Muslim history is paralleled b y historical inform ation th at existed in other Hteratures was he
the presentation of pre-Islamic history b y Muslim historians in the justified in saying th at the life of man does not suffice for ac
form of nations and dynasties. The treatm ent of pre-Islam ic history, quiring a thorough knowledge of the history {ahbdr) of one of the
in general, met w ith the great technical handicap that the Muslims m any nations in existence; how, then, could it suffice for the
never invented a system of time-reckoning for the pre-Islam ic acquisition of the history of all of th e m ? ^ In reality, it would
period, such as the B.C. system which became established in W estern not have been difficult to acquire all the knowledge that MusHm
chronology, but even there only in very recent times. ^ In the histories contained on foreign nations.
life of the Prophet, certain events are occasionally described as Pre-Islam ic history was accepted into Muslim historiography
being so-and-so m any years before the hijrah. A ll references to from its very beginning. The ancient A rabic and South Arabian
other eras, such as th at of the creation of the world or the history and the Jewish and Christian history from the creation
Seleucid era, are m erely incidental in Muslim literature and entered of the world belonged into the biography of the Prophet. Inform a
through the sources consulted, which were either Christian works ^ tion about this m aterial was not alw ays sought at the proper
or works on chronology, such as th at of al-Biruni, who em ployed sources. The most accurate inform ation about Jewish and Christian
Seleucid dates in keeping w ith the custom of the astronomers. (including Roman) history is found apart from later Spanish and
W herever a correlation of hijrah dates and pre-Islam ic dates is W estern Muslim works in a l- Y a qubi and, to a lesser degree,
attem pted, as, for instance, in connection with the establishm ent of also in H am zah al-Isfahani, and in A bu 1-F id a where he bases
the lifetim e of Galen, Christian influence is unmistakable.^ himself upon A bu Isa b. al-Munajjim. Other Muslim authors
Pre-Islam ic history also presented a more incisive problem to lean h eavily tow ard the often very fanciful m aterial of the Jewish
Muslim historians. For them, the great break in world history took and Christian prophetical stories which was m ade respectable
place with the coming of the Prophet Muhammad. The entire b y its supposed authorship (such as th at of W ahb b. Munab-
preceding history and, to some degree, the subsequent history of bih) and its long tradition. W hen Persian history became known
non-Muslim peoples were considered a story of errors which could to the Muslims, which happened no later than the end of the
fulfil the great purpose of historiography, th at is, to instruct, only first or the beginning of the second century of the hijrah, it was
in its negative aspect. In particular, th ey were of no use in fulfilling p robably very soon incorporated in the com plex of pre-Islam ic
the principal d u ty of historiography, which was to illustrate the history, since at its end, it had certain connections w ith early
truth of Islam. This appears to be the main reason w hy the inform a Muslim history (but cf. above, p. 74). It could thus have contributed
tion on pre-Islam ic and non-Muslim history alw ays remained com- to determine the character of the Muslim concept and form of
In our e arly preserved historical literature, such as al-B aladu ris Ansdb, m en like presentation of pre-Islam ic history. This concept and form reached
'A w a u a h and A b u M ihnaf frequently figure as oral transm itters of historical inform ation
on U m ayyad h istory (examples in a d - D u r i , Baht f t naPatHlmat-ta^Hh, 215 ff. [Beirut i960]).
their full developm ent w ith the early ninth century as a consequence
A l-B a lad u ris technique, u nfortunately, prevented him from telling w hether he also found of the transmission of the cultural heritage of other nations to the
this inform ation in the w ritten works of those men (cf. a d - D l t ri , op. cit., 36 f.).
F. K . G i n z e l , Handbuch der mathematischen und technischen Chronologic, III , 182
Muslims and the grow th of the international cultural idea of
(Leipzig 1906-14), states th at the B.C. era has been em ployed since the end of the eighteenth eternal wisdom . H istorians under the influence of theology,
century. H ow ever, one would exp ect to find occasional earlier exam ples of its use, in spite
of the classical tradition and the unfam iliarity w ith n egative calculations which w orked ^ A rationalization of the lack of interest in non-M uslim h istory is the statem ent b y Ibn
against its adoption. Y e t, the great Scaliger m anaged to have, it seems, only tw o v ery H am dun, Tadkirah (Ms. T o pkapu saray, A h m et III, 2948, V ol. X I I , fol. 2a), th at he restricted
incidental references to a date before Christ in his Opus de emendatione temporum, 22, him self to the h istory of the A rabs and Persians, because we do not see any use in stu dying
and, indirectly, 446 (Geneva 1629). It is in terestin g to observe in this connection how the conditions of other nations, and their history has not come down to us in a coherent
the Marmor Parium avoided a n egative chronology b y counting the years from the form .
even t to the epoch y ear of the era. 2 A l-B irim i, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 5 S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923)-
^ Cf. above, p. 80, and H am zah al-Isfahani, History, I, 76 G o t t w a l d t (St. Petersburg- Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach of M uslim Scholarship, 70 ff. (Rome
Leipzig 1844-48).
1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24).
92 T H E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y
L E S SE R FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL PER IO D IZA T IO N 93

chronological relationship of the first Persian king w ith the first man
such as at-Tabari, continued to restrict themselves to Jewish-
of Jewish and Christian m ythology, etc. It should, however, be
Christian and Iranian history and did not p ay any special attention
noted th at the synchronization of the history of the various peoples
to the Greeks, Indians, or Chinese. The same was the case with some
was cultivated b y Christian G raeco-Syriac historiography. On the
nationalist Iranian authors, such as ad-D inawari or, to a much
other hand, it is hard to see w hy Persian historiography in pre-
lesser degree, Miskawayh.^ Other historians did not close their eyes
Islam ic times, unless it was Christian or Manichaean, should ever
to the widening of the intellectual horizon. T h ey saw and treated
have bothered w ith synchronisms. Moreover, the express statem ent
the history of pre-Islam ic peoples preferably as cultural history.
th at one of the translators of the Hwatdyndmak, Musa b. *!sa
In the treatm ent of the ancient Greeks, their political history was
al-Kisraw i, tried to correlate Persian w ith Seleucid chronology
alm ost entirely omitted. The section which a l- Y a qubi, for instance,
is proof of the fact th at he did not find synchronisms in his Persian
devoted to the Greeks is taken up b y a detailed report on their
sources. 1 The idea of sjm chronization could possibly have come to
scholarly and scientific achievements. W hen, at the same tim e, the
the Muslims from Christian G raeco-Syriac historiography. It would
Indians and Chinese came within the ken of Muslim historians, it
thus constitute another form al affinity between it and Muslim
was likewise as representatives of a particular culture and not as
political entities. The author of the eleventh-century Gurar, at- historiography.
T a Mibi,2 w isely remarked th at it is difficult and, indeed, im B TH E tahaqdt d iv is io n

possible to report on the history of the Indian kings as one reports The meaning and developm ent of the word tahaqah are clear.
on the other kings, because the sources do not speak about their Tabaqah means lay er. The transition to people belonging to one
history. He therefore gave excerpts from al-M utahhars Beginning layer or class in the chronological succession of generations is
and History on the religions, customs, and laws of the Indians. easily made.^ A s in the case of qarn, which preceded tahaqah in
Reporting on these m atters is like reporting on their kings, its use in the meaning of generation, ^ lexicographers tried to
because people follow the religion of their king, especially the establish the exact length of a tahaqah. T w en ty years was the
Indians, who sacrifice themselves for the glory of their kings, and choice of some,^ while others based themselves upon a Prophetic
some of whom even worship them ." ^ Historians of science and tradition th at said: My nation consists of five tahaqdt, each
medicine, such as S a'id al-Andalusi and Ibn Juljul, arranged their of which is fo rty years. ^ A rbitrarily, the length of tabaqah could
biographies of pre-Islamic scholars according to the various also be fixed at ten years.
nations represented b y them.^ The tahaqdt division is genuinely Islamic. It would seem to be
The m ajority of historians who dealt with pre-Islam ic dynasties, the oldest chronological division which presented itself to Muslim
it would seem, refrained from any attem pt to interconnect the historical thinking. It is in no w ay genetically related to the
history of the various nations according to some scheme o f synchronistic m ethod which was common in Greek biographical
synchronization. Some of them, however, such as at-Tabari and, tradition and which, at some later date, entered A rabic literature
more system atically, ad-Dinawari, tried to estabhsh a chronological together w ith Greek biography.'^ It also has no bearing upon
relationship between the pre-Islam ic nations th ey dealt with. It the origin of the tahaqdt division th at the word was early applied
stands to reason that such attem pts at synchronization m ight very to the four successive Persian dynasties. The tahaqdt division was
well have been the resrdt of an inner-Muslim development. Nothing
^ H am zah al-Isfahani, History, I, 17 G o t t w a l d t .
was more natural for them than to acquire, through inquiries with ^ Lexicographers find a sim ilar m eaning in the forms tahaq and tibq, cf. Lisdn al-^Arah,
Persians, Christians, or Jews, sufficient inform ation to construct a X l l , 79 f. (Bulaq 1300-08).
Cf. below, p. 167.
^ Lisdn al-^Arah, X I I , 79 f.
1 Follow ing his chronographical sources, H am zah a l-Is fa h a n i a t least in c lu d e d the
Cf. Ibn al-Jaw zi, Talqih, Paris ms. ar. 724, fol. 27ia-272b. T h e edition, Delhi 1927,
Greeks, Rom ans, and Copts in his History.
which is listed in G A L Supplement, I, 915, w as not available.
2 Couccrniug the authorship of the work, of. F . R o s e n t h a l , in J A O S , L X X , i 8 i (1950).
* Cf. ad-D ahabi, History of Islam , above, p. 85.
^ Paris ms. ar. 1488, fol. 247a.
Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , in Orientalia, N .S ., V I, 33 ( i 937 )
* Cf. also below, p. l o i f.
94 TH E BASIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y L E S SE R FORM S OF H ISTO RICAL PER IO D IZA T IO N 95

the natural consequence of the concept of the Men around Muham of A bu Ishaq as-Sirazi, one needs about as much inform ation in
m ad, the Follow ers, etc., which, in conjunction w ith the isndd order to be able to locate a particular biography as one might
criticism of the science of traditions, developed in the early second expect to find in th at biography once one has succeeded in locating
century of the hijrah. A m arked sim ilarity of this concept with it A This is an extrem e example, but it illustrates the fact th at true
Jewish tradition m ay be explained as a parallel Sem itic develop to its origin, the tahaqdt division alw ays was more practical for the
m ent rather than as the result of Jewish influence upon Islam, purposes of the religious sciences than for those of historiography.
though the latter possibihty is not excluded.^ The connection of the The alphabetical principle of the arrangement of biographies
tahaqdt division w ith the science of traditions is confirmed b y its gained more and more friends in the course of time.^ N ot infrequently
almost exclusive use in biography. A t the beginning, as, for instance, in later times, a m ixed arrangement is preferred. In the History of
in Ibn S a d, the tabaqdt arrangement was em ployed for the biogra the M dlikites b y the fourteenth-century Ibn Farhun, entitled ad-
phies of authorities who were of im portance for the transmission Dihdj, the M alikite scholars are treated in the order of their given
of traditions. In early local histories, such as B ah sals History of names, but this arrangement is subdivided into tahaqdt, and the
Wdsit, it was restricted to transm itters of traditions. L ater on, tahaqdt, in turn, are arranged geographically.
it could be used for the classes of all kinds of personahties, but
preferably scholars. Inappropriately, it was eventually also applied c T H E G E N E A L O G IC A L A R R A N G E M E N T

to the classification of events, as in ad-D ahabis History of Islam. During the first tw o centuries of Islam, the old im portance of
The common superimposition of a local division upon the fam ily relationships in the social organization of A rabian life was
tahaqdt division started early in general tahaqdt works. In fact, m aintained, if not augmented. Qurasite or H asim ite and Alid
it already appeared in Ibn S a d who added special sections on the descent, or the descent from members of the old guard of Islam,
K ufians and Basrians. In these sections, the men around Muham constituted nobility in Islam and opened the door to all positions
mad, who had some connection w ith al-K ufah and al-Basrah but of leadership. Thus, a fertile field of practical usefulness was opened
had been mentioned before in a more im portant context, were for those learned in genealogical lore. Genealogical knowledge also
treated once more, if briefly. The local or regional division w as a lent itself to abuses. A n illum inating anecdote in this respect is th a t
m atter of local or regional pride, but, above all, it was helpful in told about Sarahbil b. S a 'd (d. 123/740-41) who is said to have been
justifying the legal practices which prevailed in a certain locality. It
the greatest expert on the raids of Muhammad in his time and who
therefore occurs in the tahaqdt histories of the jurists of the different used his knowledge for blackm ail; he would tell, he threatened,
schools. It was taken over into non-religious literature b y Ibn A bi th at the father of the person approached b y him had not partici
U sayb i'ah in th at part of his History of Physicians which deals
pated in the battle of Badr.^
with the Islam ic period. However, a roughly similar arrangement, During the eighth and ninth centuries, the antiquarians-historians-
on a much smaller scale, appears already in the biographies of philologists were at the same time also genealogists. Their works were
physicians in Ibn J u lju ls Tahaqdt al-atihhd\ and the history of hahar-siyle collections of the deeds of various members of tribal
science, recognizing as its starting point the achievem ents of pre- groups. One of the early genealogical monographs, the Kitdh H adf
Islam ic nations of separate geographical location, was predisposed min nasah Qurays, on minor Qurasite families (that is, to the
tow ard the adoption of a system of geographical division. exclusion of the Prophet), b y M uarrij b. A m r as-Sadusi, who was
The greatest and obvious draw back of tahaqdt works was that a somewhat older contem porary of H isam b. al-K albi and whose
it was extrem ely difficult for the historically minded to find in small w ork seems to antedate the large one of the latter, has been
them w hat th ey were looking for. In the famous Tahaqdt al-fuqahd^
^ I used the Bodleian ms. arab. e. ii 6 , as the edition (B agdad 1356/1937, cf. G A L
Supplement III , 1224, ad I, 670) w as not available.
1 Parallel developm ent, instead of direct influence, m a y also account for the origin of Cf. below, p. 167 ff.
the isndd, as against the theory of J. H o r o v i t z , Alter und Ursprung des Isndd, in Der Cf. Ibn A b i H atim ar-R azi, Jarh, II, I, 339 (H yderabad 1360-73/1941-53), and the
Islam, V I I I , 39-47 (1918). other biographies of Sarahbil.
96 TH E BA SIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y L E S S E R FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL PER IO D IZA T IO N 97

preserved.^ I t confirms the rather obvious fact th at the stimulus of A rabs and Berbers, whose Bedouin character w as preserved b y
for w riting works of this kind stemmed from the desire to fix the the constant influx of new Berber elements on the Bedoum level.
place of new ly im portant families in relation to the Prophet. A From A hm ad b. M uhamm ad ar-R azis comprehensive w ork on the
com p aratively large amount of space is given to poetical quotations, genealogies of fam ous Spaniards ^ to a seventh/thirteenth-century
which, again, is not unexpected. A nother p artly preserved exam ple w ork on the tribes and personalities around the Mahdi of the
of early genealogical w riting is the fam ous Nasab Qurays b y az- Almohads,^ W estern Muslim hterature produced a good number of
Z u b ayr b. B ak k a r (d. 256/870).^ L ike an earlier w ork of A bu genealogical works of historical importance. It also was there th at
U baydah M am ar b. al-Mutanna, ^ it was more concerned w ith the historical m aterial w as arranged (for the first tim e ?) according to
good qualities and virtues of the Qurasites than their relationships. the ethnic principle. The A lid descent of the upper class in N orth
Since the m embers of the leading fam ilies were at the same tim e west A frica, moreover, generated a flourishing genealogical literature,
also the leaders of political life, the extension of genealogy to so th at in later times there was hardly an educated s m / w h o did
history w as easily accomplished. The historical inform ation to be not compose, among his other works, a sort of heraldic description
found in as-Sadusi, which was added to the enumeration of names of his own fam ily. ^
and pedigrees on both the paternal and the m aternal sides, w as still In the East, genealogy or fam ily history w as cultivated b y those
v e ry m eager (and it has often remained so also in later genealogical personally interested in it, b y rulers, members of fam ous families,
works). However, on a large scale, w e find the genealogical principle A lids, and some historians who were interested in the history of
of w riting history applied b y al-Baladuri to his Kitdb al-Ansdh. The the Qurasites, or Hasimites, or in the A rab tribes which had settled
tribal and fam ily affiliations of historical personalities are its basic in their particular part of the world in the early years of the Muslim
principle of arrangement, even though it is dom inated b y the conquest. The histories of later rulers of Bedouin origin, such as
biographies of the caliphs. Its form is th at of hahar and dynastic the various T u rk rulers and the Mongols, usually contained some
historiography. ethnic-genealogical introduction and proceeded then according to
In reality, already in the time of al-Baladuri and almost as soon the ordinary biographical scheme.
as Islam extended beyond the borders of the A rabian peninsula and The tabular form of presenting genealogical relationships, the
the rigid lim itations of Bedouin society, the forces which shaped the fam ily tree, p robably was known to literate A rabs in pre-Islam ic
h istory of Islam could no longer be encompassed b y genealogical times, and it w ould be idle to attem pt to establish its earliest
schemes. Genealogical historiography of the typ e of al-Baladurts occurrence in Muslim literature. However, the Fihrist has no
A nsdb was no suitable vehicle for w riting the history of the com plex indication th a t any of the genealogical works mentioned in it
M uslim civilization, and it is to the credit of Muslim scholarship w as in tree form, unless the Kitdb al-M usajjar of Muhammad b.
th a t it all but disappeared after the ninth century. If found a ready H abib ^ contained genealogical tables. F or the older genealogists,
refuge in the w est of the Muslim world. The provincial character of the tabular form w as p robably not y e t acceptable as literature.
Spanish Islam at once its strength and its weakness favored the L ater on, we find, for instance, quotations from a M usajjar b y
retention of genealogy. In addition, the political history of the Ibn Maymun, a M usajjar b y Jam al-ad-din A b u 1-Fadl A hm ad b.
W est took its course against the background of the ethnic rivalries
' Al-Istt^db f t ansdb (maSdhtr) ahl al-Andalus, cf. al-H um aydJ, Jadwat al-Muqtabis,
1 E d. S. a l - M u n a j j i d (Cairo, n.y. [i9 60 ]). F or Mu^arrij, cf. G A L , I, 102. F or az-Zu hris Bodleian ms. or. H unt. 464 (Uri 783), fol. 45a; 'ly a d , M addrik, Ms. Cairo T a rih 2293,
possible w ork 011 genealogy, cf. below , p. 1 3 1 . F or H isam Ibn a l-K a lb is great Jamharat fols. 3b, 129b.
an-nasab on tribal genealogy and its connection w ith h istoriography, cf. W . C a s k e l , Das * Kitdb al-Ansdb f i ma^rifat al-asfidb, cf. E . L ^ : v i - P r o v e n ? a l , Documents inedits d histoire
genealogische Werk des H isdm Ibn Muhammmad al-Kalbt (Leiden i g 66 , n ot seen). almohade, 18-49 (Paris 1928, Textes ar. relatifs d Ihistoire de I'Occident musulman, i).
2 A n edition b y M a h m u d M . S A k ir has begun to appear in Cairo 136 1/19 6 2. * Cf. K . V o L L E R S , Fragmente aus dem Mugrib des Ibn SaHd, X (1894, Semitistische
Cf. al-M as'udi, Tanbih, 210 D e G o e j e . F or the Nasab al-Ansdr b y A bd allah b. Studien, 1. Erganzungsheft zur ZA) .
M uham m ad b. 'U m arah Ibn al-Q addah, w ho also w rote in the second h alf of the second * Cf. E . L 6 v i - P r o v e n 9 A l , Les Historiens des Chorfa, 48 (Paris 1922). Cf. also R. B a s s e t ,
cen tury of the h ijrah , cf. Ibn S a 'd , Tabaqdt, V ol. I l l , I, X X V I I ff., and III , I I, in particu lar, Les Genealogistes berbhes, in Les Archives Berberes, I, 3-11 (1915).
7 0 i,f., 9817, 1515, also 4 5i5 f., 11925. and al-H atib al-B agd ad i, T B , X , 62. Cf. also as-Sahaw i, F ihrist, i5 5 n (Cairo 1348 = 106 F l u g e l ) .
I^ldn, 108, below , p. 433 f. * Ibn a s-S a'i, Ahbdr al-hulafd^, Ms. Cairo T a y m u r T a rih 2293, fol. 129b (ed. B u laq 1309,

R o s e n t h a l , H istory of Muslim H istoriography 7


98 T H E BA SIC FORMS OF M USLIM H IST O R IO G R A PH Y

M uhamm ad b. al-M uhanna/and a Kitdb al-Far^ wa-s-sajar b y A bu


1-H asan Muhammad b. al-Qasim at-Tamimi,^ which, according to
the title, m ay have contained tables (although the quotations do
not indicate this), and the tree form became popular. A certain
i ah author, Taj-ad-din b. Muhammad,^ in the introduction to his CH APTER FOUR
Gay at al-ihtisdr f i ahbdr al-huyutdt aWAlawiyah, adm itted of two
kinds of presentation for genealogical information, the tree form THE C O NTEN TS OF HISTORICAL WORKS
{musajjar) and the plain one {mahsut). Finally, the history of the
whole world could be presented in genealogical trees. It is interesting The elem entary forms of Muslim historiography were all developed
to note th at the author of such a w ork from the year 602/1205-6, at a very early date. T h ey did not undergo any further developm ent
Fahr-ad-din M ubarak Sah, in his Persian Sajamh-i-ansdh, got the properly speaking during the whole course of Muslim historical
idea for his w ork when he w orked on his own Qurasite genealogy.^ writing. No new forms of any consequence, w ith the very unimpor
A ltogether, however, genealogy had little influence upon the forms tan t exception of poetical histories, were created. Developm ent in
of Mushm historical writing. On a minor scale, it made some M uslim historical w riting consisted of the m ixture of the different
contributions to the contents of histories, as will be explained. historical forms and, in particular, of the incorporation of disciplines
p. n o ) . Cf. also p. 124 of the edition where Ibn M aym uii, who lived in the th irteenth cen tury, th a t were not strictly historical into the fram ework of historiog
is said to h ave rebuffed someone who wished to be entered in his M usajjar as a H asanid. raphy. The varying emphasis which was placed upon the different
1 He was one of the authorities of Ibn al-F u w ati who quotes him freq u en tly in his Talhts
Majma'- al-dddb, IV , I, 104, 256, 2 91, 323, 330, 355, 385, 533, 577, IV , II, 94 8, 1 10 3 , 118 0 , aspects of hum an intellectual endeavor considered w orthy of
cf. also IV , I I I , 550 J a w A d (Dam ascus 1962-65).
preservation for posterity was the main cause of variations in
Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talab, Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 155b (Hfe of a l-A s'a t b. Qays).
^ Odyat al-ihtisdr, 5 ff. (B ulaq 13 10 ), cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 59 1. Th e passage is cited historical w riting in Islam.
in the in troduction to the edition, N a ja f 13 8 1/19 6 1, of Ibn <^Inabahs W m dat at-tdlib.
T aj-ad -d in w rote in the early eighth/fourteenth cen tury. He refers to a s- a fi'i as the alleged
in ven tor of the m usajjar b u t says th at he him self is undecided about its origins. A uthors I GEN EALOGY
of musajjar works nam ed b y Taj-ad -d in are 'A b d -al-H am id b. 'A b d allah b. U sam ah a l-K u fi
and Ibn 'A b d -a s-S am i' al-H atib an-N assabah. T he la tte r is quoted as 'A b d -a s-S am i' b. The interest in genealogy existed when Muslim historiography
'A b d -as-S am ad al-H ashim i in Ibn al-F u w ati, T a M s Majma'^ al-dddb, IV , I I I , 12 J a w a d .
Cf. E . D. R o ss, The Genealogies of Fakhr-ud-din, Mubarak Shah, in A Volume of Oriental
came into being. Genealogical lore m ay have been put into writing
Studies presented to E . G. Browne, 392-413 (Cambridge 1922). Cf. also Ibn I^Jalduns '^Ibar. before history proper.^ The two subjects were recognized as being
different from each other. This fact is illustrated b y the story of
an encounter of az-Z u bayr b. B ak kar w ith Ishaq b. Ibrahim al-
Mawsili. The latter teased az-Zubayr in a friendly w ay b y saying
th at az-Zubayr had w ritten a book on genealogy which, in fact,
was a book on history {ahbdr). A z-Z u b ayr retorted th at Ishaqs
Book on Songs, in fact, w as a book on the meanings of words and
things {ma'-dni).^ A t the same time, the story m akes it clear that
the close connection between genealogical and historical lore was
realized.
The practical im portance of genealogy has already been stressed.
The political interest in the Qurasites, the sectarian interest in
th e fam ily of Ali, the antiquarian interest in the A rab tribes,
1 Cf. s. D. F. G o i t e i n s introduction to his edition of al-B aladuri, Ansdb, V , 14-24
(Jerusalem 1936).
^ A l-H atib a l-B a g d ^ i, T B , V II I , 469.
100 T H E C O NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W O RK S BIOGRAPHY lO I

the pride of rulers and distinguished men in their ancestors, all this alw ays shows a m arked tendency to revert to the biographical
never ceased and was instrum ental in the production of a steady aspect of it. In Rom an historical literature, for instance, the
flow of books on these subjects. Similar works were w ritten on influence of biography upon historiography became more and more
animals, such as horses or pigeons, and, according to al-Jahiz, pronounced, while the sort of influence of historiography upon biog
were even m ore numerous than genealogical works dealing with raphy th at appears in T acitu s Agricola remained unique (sporadic ?
hum an beings.^ The animal books possessed m ainly philological vereinzelt). ^ B iograph y had a share in Muslim historiography
and lexicographical interest. from the very beginning, and it eventually achieved a dom inating
A s has been stated, genealogy influenced historical w riting on position in it. In the Muslim environment there are a number of
a larger scale in the Ansdh w ork of al-Baladuri, whose contents special reasons for th at. The biography of Muhammad constituted
was exploited b y later historians such as Ibn al-Atir in his Kam il, the quarry from which the m aterials for the construction of the
and in the genealogical literature of western Islam. Minor traces m ighty edifice of Islam were derived. ^ The transmission of the
of the great interest in genealogy are encountered everywhere in details of the P rophets life depended on individuals, and the
M uslim historiography. W herever possible, long pedigrees are given. accep tability of w hat th ey transm itted hinged on the data of their
There are lists of the w ives and children of rulers. The ethnic origin lives. The dogm atic struggle in Islam was to a large part waged
of rulers is often discussed, as in the case of the D aylam ite Buyids, in the name of personalities and individual merits or demerits.
the Mongol rulers, or the Berber dynasties in the W est. More im B iography thus becam e a necessary subject for theologians and gave
portant than all this was the universal retention of the genealogical historians their greatest opportunity for being practically useful
view of hum an relations as the driving force in history and the fact and em ployable w ithin the social organization of Islam. The
th at the prim itive interest in genealogy w as soon transform ed in w orldly connections of historians, on their part, also drew them
Islam into a deep concern w ith biography. into biography. Caliphs and rulers and officials and the mass of the
educated found the best models of ethical behavior in the circum
2 B IO G R A P H Y stances of the lives of the great men of the past. W riting their
biographies and m aking history center around their lives, therefore,
The definition of history which guides us in our investigation ^ satisfied the demands which th a t im portant group of readers of
m akes allowance for biography as a part of historical literature. W e historical works made upon the historian. In addition, all Muslims
m ay also refer to F. J a c o b y s great collection of the fragm ents of shared in the firm conviction th at all pohtics w as the w ork of
Greek historians, which, as the author stated in his introduction,^ individuals and understandable in the light of their personal quali
was intended to include both biography and geography. It would ties and experiences. In m any Muslim minds, history thus became
therefore hardly be indicated, even if it were possible, to om it a almost synonym ous w ith biography. Under the influence of theolo
brief reference to these disciplines from a treatm ent of Muslim gy, even the history of the various branches of learning was con
historiography. ceived as a collection of biographies of outstanding scholars. In
B iography w ould seem to be the most durable of all forms of the histories of some of the sciences, as, for instance, medicine
historical expression. In a sense, it preceded them, as we m ay or the com parative history of religion, pre-Islam ic medicine or
infer from the personal character of the royal inscriptions of the religions were accorded precedence in the presentation, but aside
ancient Near E ast. A nd a highly developed historical hterature
^ F. L e o , D ie griechisch-rdmische Biographic, 234 (Leipzig rg o i).
* A l-Jahiz, Kitdb al-Hayawdn, III , 64 f. (Cairo 1323-25). ^ One m ay, how ever, com pare C. H. B e c k e r s opinion concerning the origin of the
* Cf. above, p. 10 and p. 17. Si*ah (Islamstudien, I, 527, Leipzig 1924), in order to realize th at it is d oubtful w hether
A m odern philosophers opinion concerning the relationship of history and b iograph y, the h istory of M uham m ads life was m ain ly responsible for the form ation of certain aspects
though h ard ly a v e ry helpful one from a practical point of view , is th at of W . D i l t h e y , of theology and jurisprudence, or w hether those tw o disciplines were m ainly instrum ental
Der Aufbau der geschichtlichen Welt in den Geisteswissenschaften, in his Gesammelte Schriften, in creating the P roph ets biography.
V II , 246 (Leipzig-B erlin 1927). As-Safadi, W aft, I, 55 R i t t e r , chose the right words to characterize the vastness of
D ie Fragmente der griechischen Historiker, I, p. V (Berlin 1923). the biographical literature which had developed in connection w ith the science of traditions.
102 TH E C O NTENTS OF HISTO RICAL W ORKS BIO G R A PH Y 103

from that, no other historical principle was applied. The bio the dates of death in general antedated th at of the dates of birth
graphical arrangement predominated, or, as in the case of the and that historians were used to give biographical inform ation
com parative history of religions, it was not the biographies of the about a person in connection w ith the year in which he died. In
individuals but something similar, th at is, the dogm atic beliefs the case of persons of notew orthy ancestry, a genealogical note,
of the sects, which determined the arrangement, and again no sometimes in the form of a long excursus as in the biography of
chronological or historical principle. It m ay be added, however, Muhammad or in the biographies of rulers of foreign origin, m ay
th at the biographical principle was appHed only in the large m ake the beginning. A philological note as to the correct form of
monograph treatm ents of the history of science and learning. There the names of the subject m ay also find its occasional place in the
also existed very brief and incidental but tru ly historical surveys biography. The rest of the contents varied. E xcep t for occasional
of the developm ent of some branches of learning. ^ instances from the biographies of rulers and politicians, the
The form and contents of Muslim biographies varied considerably external events of life received com paratively little attention.
according to the subject treated and the point of view from which In the case of theologians and scholars, it was the story of their
the author approached his subject. The one common element which education, the teachers under whom th ey studied, the places they
can be expected to be found in all biographies except in the oldest visited, or the traditions th ey transm itted, th at occupied most of
times is the date of death of the subject of the biography. This the space. W ith poets and men of letters, the accent la y on the
date was usually known or could be inferred. It was the fixed date interesting anecdotes of their careers and on their poetic and
in a persons life. His date of birth, except in the cases of the well literary achievem ents. Bibliographies of the published works of
born, and often not even then, was rarely known. A s a rule, it was scholars and scientists were quite regularly inserted near the end
known only if it was supplied b y the subject himself; consequently, of the biography, though, in the case of theological biographies,
its appearance presupposed the existence of an interest in biography the bibliographies were often greatly curtailed. A p retty general
which, in turn, resulted from the existence of a very developed feature of all kinds of biographies (almost as general as the reference
biographical Hterature. The biographical interest and, w ith it, to the dates of death) were descriptions of ethical or intellectual
the interest in the dates of birth existed since the beginnings of qualities. T h ey were either expressly stated or indicated b y
Mushm scholarship, but it was only at the end of the tw elfth characteristic stories and anecdotes. The physical features were
century th at the point was reached where ad-Dahabi, in the History also often mentioned.
of Islam, was able to indicate with a certain regularity the names The overwhelm ing m ajority of Muslim biographies were parts
of those who were born in each particular y e a r . ^ of larger collections, th at is, exclusive collections of biographies,
It is the normal procedure of biographers to begin w ith the historical works of the dynastic form, or annalistic works in which
birth of their subject and to conclude his biography with his death. biographical notices were inserted in connection w ith the year,
This is the usual order in Muslim biography. It is, for instance, in which a particular individual had died. The length of those
quite regularly found in the biographies of the History of Bagdad biographies varied from a few lines to sometimes over a hundred
b y al-H atib al-Bagdadi. Occasionally, the dates of birth and death (printed) pages. As independent works, biographies were published
were m entioned next to each other in the beginning of the biog in steadily increasing numbers beginning w ith the biography of
raphy. This probably resulted from the fact that the knowledge of Muhammad at the start of Muslim pubhshing activity. T he early
works on A lids such as al-H usayn and Z ayd b. 'A ll were, to
^ Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach o f M uslim Scholarship, 68 f. (Rome
1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24); idem, Al-Asturldbt and as-Samaw^al on Scientific Progress, judge from their titles, m ainly concerned not w ith the biography
in Osiris, IX , 562 f. (1950). of their heroes but w ith a description of their m artyrdom , the
E xcep tion al non-biographical histories of sciences, such as as-Sahaw is IHdn, were little
concerned w ith a n y historical arrangem ent or argum entation, b u t cf. also the studies crowning and historically most significant event of their lives.
referred to above, p. 80, n. 2. The same hesitation to accept early works w ith biographical titles
2 Cf. below, p. 149. For the percentages of the dates of birth and death in e arly bio
graph ical collections, cf. above, p. 14. as full-fledged biographies would seem to be advisable in most
104 T H E CO N TE N TS OF H ISTO RICAL W O R K S BIO G R A PH Y 105

cases. Y et, the titles which in the hst of al-M adainis books are the significance of his being the ninth Turkish ruler in E gyp t,
enumerated as works on individual Qurasites ^ probably contained and the significance of the date of his accession, together w ith
all the necessary elements of biographical monographs. 2 The desire a description of al-Mu a y y a d s qualifications as a ruler, m ake up
of rulers to see the memory of their deeds preserved for posterity a large part of the work. Then, there follows an annahstic presen
in the most durable form as yet devised b y m ankind resulted in tation of the events th at occurred during al-Mua y y a d s rule.
the composition of biographies w ritten at their instigation. How, The whole is m erely a conglom eration of often very insignificant
for instance, al-M utadid w atched over the preparation of his facts which are not held together b y any attem pt at biographical or
official biography b y his friend T ab it b. Qurrah and the la tters son historical characterization. i The unsatisfactory result m ay be due
Sinan, we are told b y the author, Sinan, himself. Although the fact less to the inability of the historian than to the irrelevance of the
that such biographies were commissioned b y the rulers them selves subject, but it remains an unfortunate fact that works of this type
was no secret ,3 th at particular biography was to appear in an were more frequently w ritten than works such as the biography of
entirely unofficial form, nam ely, as an epistle w ritten b y the Salah-ad-din. 2
author to a friend upon the latters request.^ Another group of biographies date back to a very early period
The dividing line between the biography of a ruler or statesm an of Muslim literature, but th ey actually need not be considered here.
and an authors memoirs of his time is often not clearly definable. A These are the biographies of poets. A s their title as a rule would
w ork such as Ibn Saddads an-Nawddir as-sultdniyah wa-l-mahdsin indicate, th ey are ahhdr, th at is, collections of anecdotes centering
al-Yusufiyah can on the one hand be considered a w ork of memoirs, around the poems of a particular poet. Thus, th ey are no biographies
but it also is a true biography of Salah-ad-din. A lthough other in the historical sense of the term.
Muslim rulers in great periods of history were the subjects of The biographers of scholars turned to the monograph form no
similar im portant works, Ibn Saddads Nawddir is the outstanding later than the tenth century. A personal acquaintance of A bu
exam ple of its type. O nly the first tenth of the w ork is devoted to Z a y d al-Balhi, for instance, a certain al-Hasan b. Muhammad al-
the early biography of Salah-ad-din. He is depicted as the ideal W azin , w rote a book on the events [ahhdr) of A bu Z a y d s life.
Muslim ruler in a rather unrealistic fashion, but then, throughout This book mentioned conventional traits such as the physical
the long narrative of his wars up to his death, w ith all the pedantic appearance of A bii Zayd, but also included such psychological
if useful data and details, he remains in the center of action, and insights as the great scholars deep love for his home town. In
his hum an personality conveys itself to the reader w ith sufficient the biographies of scholars and m ystics, Muslim m onograph biog
clarity. The outstanding historical character of Ibn S ad d ad s raphy even tually achieved its ultim ate development, even if in
biographical w ork becomes especially clear if it is compared w ith the process, it lost nearly all the stylistic brilliance and powers of
later products, such as, for instance, the biography of the E gyp tian characterization which were in such a large measure possessed b y
ruler al-M uayyad, entitled as-Sayf al-muhannad f t ta^rlh al-M alik tenth-century biographers such as al-W aziri and, especially, A bu
al-M u'ayyad, b y the famed historian al-'A yni. In order to build H ayyan at-Tawhidi. It took several centuries for the art of w riting
up the proper background for his subject, al-A yn i starts w ith the m onograph biographies of scholars and saints to develop beyond
distribution of m ankind and describes the Turkish and Circassian the collection of chance episodes tow ard an attem pt to present a
tribes and al-M u a y y a d s fam ily descent. Curiosities, such as the ^ I used the Paris ms. ar. 1723 of the work.
excellence of the persons who bore the same names as al-M ua yy a d , 2 Th e A rab ic T a M h al-6dzdnt b y Fadlallah Rasid-ad-din (d. 718/1318) is a fam ily
h istory according to the sam e plan, dealing with Jingizhan and his fam ily. It w as provided
' Fihrist, 148 (Cairo 1348 = l o i F lx ig e l) . w ith such attraction s as pictures of the Mongol Hans (see below, p. 176, n. i), b u t in spite
^Awanahs Biography of Mu^dwiyah and the Umayyads was rather in the nature of of his proven a b ility as a historian, the author was unable to m aster his m aterial in this
a historical collection of U m ayyad biographies, see above, p. 89 f. case. I consulted the Phot. Cairo Ta^'rih 1889. For editions of the original Persian te x t,
^ For the case of al-Mu^tadid, cf. C. L a n g , MuHadid als Prin z und Regent, ein historisches cf. below , p. 148, n. i.
Heldendicht von Ibn el MuHazz in Z D M G , X L , 593 (1886). 3 Y a q u t, IrSdd, III , 71 and 69 (Cairo = I, 147 and 144 M a r g o l i o u t h ). Although he does
Cf. above, p. 48, n. 4. F or the docum entary b iograph y of a politician, cf. below, p. 120. n ot say so expressly, Y a q u t appears to be indebted to al-W aziri (whom he quotes indirectly)
n. 2. also for the la tter passage.
io 6 TH E CONTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS G EO G R A PH Y A N D COSM OGRAPHY 107

coherent picture of a persons life and achievements. A splendid On the part of the historians, there were obvious points of contact
exam ple of the perfection finally reached and of the glaring short w ith geography. Soon, geographical data which occurred in the
comings never overcome is as-Sahaw is long biography of his biography of M uhammad were no longer generally understood
teacher Ibn Hajar.^ It is a well organized and very com plete recital and required an explanation. The widening of the geographical
of the outward course of Ibn H ajars hfe and of his scholarly horizon as the result of the Muslim conquests also directed the
accomplishments, but it lacks any trace of psychological penetration historians attention to geography. Occasional explanations of a
and m akes no attem pt to place the hfe of the individual in the geographical nature can be found, for instance, in early works such
proper historical setting. as al-Baladuris Conquests of the Regions} The need for clarification
of geographical data proved an effective stim ulant for the develop
3 G E O G R A P H Y A N D C O SM O G R A P H Y ment of Mushm geography and to a large degree determined its
course, but it did not affect historiography in an y appreciable
Much less im portant than the contribution of biography to histo
measure. The conquest literature, of which al-Baladuri was a
riography but not entirely insignificant w as that of geography. 2
representative, offered m any opportunities for going into geo
The historian and geographer al-Y a 'q u b i describes how he collected
graphical questions, but no consistent effort was made in this
m aterial for his geographical work. He travelled extensively and
direction. Occasionally, later authors of conquest works, such as
asked everybody he met for inform ation about his particular
the fifteenth-century a l-B iq a i, in his Ahbdr al-jildd f i futuh al-
country. He wrote down what his inform ants told him and took
bildd,^ can be found quoting a geographical work.
notes on the history of the (Muslim) conquests as well as the ad
Another more effective inroad of geography into historiography
m inistrative and economic history and present situation of each
cam e through the medium of local histories.^ As a rule, local
region.^ Other contem porary authors of geographical works, under
histories were concerned w ith topographical details, buildings,
the continued influence of the spirit of classical A n tiq uity, no doubt
monuments, and antiquities, but with men like Ibn a l-Adim ,
proceeded sim ilarly in the collection of m aterial which th ey were
whose History of Aleppo contains a special book on the geography
not able to find in the w ritten sources. Alm ost every geographical
of northern Syria, Ibn S a d d M (d. 684/1285, not the biographer of
w ork contains at least some historical data. Descriptions of lesser
Salah-ad-din), who wrote the history of northern Syria and
known regions, such as the tenth-century History {ahbdr) of the
Mesopotamia according to their regional divisions, and the historians
Nubians b y A bdallah b. Ahm ad b. Sulaym al-Aswani,^ probably
of E gyp t, local histories became valuable as geographical textbooks.
contained as m uch historical inform ation as their authors were able
The hterature of the B eginning, th at is, the description of the
to get hold of. The historical interest of geographers persisted, or
creation of the world, was even more significant for the future
rather increased, when geography, in the wake of the rapid develop
com bination of both geography and cosm ography with history.
ment of Muslim civihzation, was codified in large reference works
Originally, discussions of the Beginning were based entirely upon
th at were arranged alphabetically according to geographical names.
tradition and not at all prepared for the admission of scientific
B y then, it was the biographical aspect of Muslim historiography
infoim ation. B u t when the age of the geographer-historian arrived,
and the theological interest in the correct form of the gentilics of
the traditional story of the creation of the world provided him with
religious scholars which affected geographers. The geographical
an entering wedge. This happened at the end of the ninth and
dictionary of Y a q iit seldom fails to include short biographies of the
the beginning of the tenth century.
most distinguished individuals born in a particular locality.
The author who to our knowledge was the first to combine
Cf. below, p. 455.
F or the historians w ho concerned them selves with geography, cf. the great posthum ous ' H ow ever, it is not on account of the geographical interest of al-B aladuri th at his w ork
w ork b y I. Y . K r a c h k o v s k y , Arabskaya Geographicheskaya Literatura, in his Izbrann ie w as exten sively quoted in Y a q u t s Mu'-jam (cf. F. J. H e e r , D ie historischen und geographi-
Sochineniya, IV (M oscow-Leniugrad 1957). schen Quellen in Jdqut's Geographischem Worterbuch, 4 5 -87, Strassburg 1898).
^ Kitdb al-Bulddn, 232 D e G o e j e (Leiden 1892, Bibliotheca Geographorum Arabicorum, 7). ^ I consulted the Paris ms. ar. 5862, a modern copy.
* Cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 410. Cf. also M . M . M u s ' a d , al-Isldm wa-n-Nubah (Cairo i960). * Cf. below, p. 150 ff.
io 8 TH E C O NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS G EO G R A PH Y AND COSM OGRAPHY 109

history and scientific geography in the grand style was al-Mas"udi. however, wherever the first part of their works is preserved so that
A l-Y a 'q u b i had still kept his geographical and historical works we are in the position to form an opinion,^ the later world historians
separate. A l-M asudi, on the other hand, before going into the followed the w ay al-M as'udi had shown them. It is also not surprising
historical narrative in his history, described the form of the earth, to see th at a similar use of geographical knowledge was made in
the cities, the notew orthy geographical phenomena, the oceans, the tenth-century Beginning and History of al-Mutahhar. Ibn
mountains, rivers, islands, lakes, buildings, the physical trans al-Jaw zi's Muntazam contained geographical inform ation as we
formations which the earth had undergone, and similar topics.i know from the Muntazam s abridgm ent, Sudur al-^uqud.^ T he Sibt
According to the famous passage in the Tanbih, in which al- Ibn al-Jaw zis Mir^dt az-zamdn which made frequent use of al-
M as'udi described the historical works b y Christian authors know n M asudi can be assumed to have also borrowed his geographical
to him, it would seem that the same combination of geography and d i s c u s s i o n . 2a The scientific spirit once aroused showed itself aston
history was practiced by contem porary and earher Christians. ^ ishingly hardy and not easily subdued b y theology. It is only
Agapius (Mahbub) b. Qustantin al-M anbiji indeed has a thorough necessary to read the brief chapter on rivers and oceans in the
geographical chapter in his world history. However, al-M asudis beginning of Ibn K a tir s Biddyah,^ in order to realize how m uch
description of the Christian works is obviously influenced b y his this chapter, w ith its references to Ibn Sina and Ptolem y, deviates
own concept of w hat a historical w ork should be like, and should from the traditional description of the creation of the world that
not be interpreted too hterally. Y et, it serves as a reminder th at surrounds it. Before Ibn K atir, Ibn ad-Dawadari, in the K anz
(Graeco-) Syrian Christian scholarship contributed much to the ad-durar, and after him a l-A yn i, in the 'Iqd al-jumdn, and al-
developm ent of the scientific attitude in Islam which al-M asudi Maqrizi, in al-Habar ^an al-basar, offer good exam ples for the per
applied to history. sistence of the scientific geographical introduction of world histories.
In the opening chapter of the M uruj, which deals with the be Of special interest is the extension of the cosm ographical remarks to
ginnings and cosmography and geography, al-M asudi also made it the description of the planets, fixed stars, the other heavenly bodies,
quite clear b y implication th at he was approaching a scientific and the atmospheric phenomena which we still find in the ''Iqd
subject which m ight even be in contradiction to the religious al-jumdn.^
precepts of Islam.^ Al-M asudis exam ple was not able to sw ay the It should not be left unnoticed th at the appearance of geog-
authors who followed the historical tradition of at-Tabari, such as raphers-historians such as al-M as'udi in their tim e was not due
M iskawayh, Ibn al-Atir, and, presum ably, the continuators of at- to chance. Readers of a l- Y a qubis introductory words in his
Tabari, although even among them there was the one or the other Geography will be reminded of the traveling seekers after knowledge,
who would consider geographical works [ahhdr al-hulddn) as form ing IcTopiT], such as H ekataeus and Herodotus, and of the close con
a special group of sources to be used b y the historian.^ In general, nection of the beginnings of Greek historiography w ith geography
and the interest in foreign peoples and countries. Muslim scholars
Th e M uru j is the on ly preserved w ork of al-M as'udi, in which we find the com bination
of the ninth and tenth centuries naturally were not aware of these
of geography and h istory. According to the introduction of the M uruj, al-M as'udis Ahbdr
az-zamdn contained geographical inform ation of the character described. The published historical circumstances, b ut th ey were m otivated b y a parallel
Ahbdr az-zamdn (Cairo 1357) which is preserved in m an y m anuscripts under the nam e of
al-Mas'^udi, does in fact contain geographical inform ation b u t apart from the alleged W hen a Persian author of the tw elfth cen tury, who w rote in the chronographical
h istory of the Pharaohs, has no other historical inform ation. Cf. the references to the w ork tradition of H am zah al-Isfahani, fe lt the need for im parting som e inform ation about
in al-M as'ud is Tanbih. geography and holy topography, he sim ply added th at inform ation at the end of his work,
^ Al-Mas^udi Tanbih, 154 f. D e G o e j e (Leiden 1894, Bibliotheca Geographorum Arabi- cf. the M u jm il at-tawdrih, according to J. M o h l , in J A , III, 11, 144 (1841).
corum, 8), cf., especially, the reference to the M aronite historian w ho w rote under al-M uktafi ^ Cf. below , p. 144.
(289-95/902-8). I failed to ascertain w hether this is so when I stu died the Istan bu l m anuscript of
For A gapius, cf. also G . G r a f , Geschichte der christlichen arabischen Literatnr, II, 39-41 the w ork.
(Citta del V atican o 1947, Studi e Testi, 133). I, 22 ff.
M uruj I, 54 f. Paris ed. = I, 17 (Cairo 1346). Ms. Cairo T a rih 71 m, p. 12 ff.
* M iskaw ayh, Tajdrib al-umam, introduction, I, i C a e t a n i (Leiden-London 1909, A table of contents of the ^Iqd is in O. S p i e s , Beitrage zur arabischen Literaturgeschichte,
E . J . W. Gibb M em. Series, 7). 91 ff. (Leipzig 1932, A K M , X I X , 3).
n o T H E C O NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS ASTROLOGY III

intellectu al situation. The transmission of Greek science, and, in or a constellation possessed particular historical significance.^
this particular case, Graeco-Rom an geography inspired the Mushms Y e t, the scientific curiosity of the historians of the ninth and tenth
w ith the same desire to see for them selves and to widen their own centuries did not entirely by-pass this m uch disputed branch of
political horizon b y learning about foreign peoples which anim ated knowledge. Thus, we fm d a l-Y a qubi indicating the astrological
the Ionian scholars of over thirteen hundred years ago. In ninth- constellation th at existed at the beginning of each reign,^ and
cen tu ry Islam, in contrast to early Greece, there already existed a later local histories sometimes indicate the astrological constellation
h igh ly developed historiography, and it was, therefore, hardly w hich prevailed at the founding of a given city.^
possible for an entirely new form of historiography to arise out Astrologers, on their part, were very much interested at th at tim e
of the new spirit. Geography loosely attached itself to the existing in cultural and historical inform ation about the past. Such inform a
forms of historiography in the manner described. It need hardly tion m ay have occasionally been contained in some of the ninth
be said th at in general, history and geography remained, and were an d tenth-century works on nativities published under the title
felt to be separate sciences in their own right,^ even if the one or of Tahwil sini al-^dlam {al-mawdlid) R evolution of the years of the
the other author of a geographical compilation would consider the world (nativities), ^ which, however, were principally concerned
adm ixture of historical and otherwise entertaining m aterial in his w ith the annual occurrences of famine and disease, etc. W e know
w ork as decisive for its value as a literary product.^ as a fact th at m uch historical m aterial was contained in the Kitdb
al-U lu f of A bu M a'sar, which was, therefore, used b y the historians
4 A S T R O L O G Y al-M asudi and H am zah al-Isfahani.
A strology, w ith its ephemeral or long-range predictions, exercised Astrologers, according to the Ihw an as-safa , ought to have a
a greater influence on m edieval history than on m edieval historiog good knowledge of dates [ta^nhdt).^ And, for the same authors,
raphy. Historians, true to their vocation of reporting the past, the a ctiv ity of the astrologers {munajjimun) has bearing upon
adopted the calculations of the astronomers concerning the age of seven points, which read like the listing of the contents of an annahs-
the world and pre-Islamic history.^ In this manner, a considerable tic history. These seven points concern i) the religious groups
am ount of im portant historical m aterial became available to [milal) and dynasties, 2) the transfer of power {mamlakah) from one
early Muslim historians. However, th ey paid little attention to nation to the other or from one country to the other, 3) the changes
astrological predictions, except when th ey were able to call a t of individual rulers and the wars and disturbances which take place
tention to the curious coincidence th at a prediction had materialized^ in connection w ith that, 4) the events th at take place each year.

1 Cf. al-M arrakusi, Mu'-jib, 252 D o z y (Leiden 1847, 1881); trans A. H u ic i M i r a n d a ,


Coleccidn de crdnicas drabes de la reconquista, IV , 285 (Tetuan 1955), quoted b y J. H. and History, II, 155 ff. H u a r t (Paris 1899-1919, Publ. de l cole des langues or. viv., IV e
K r a m e r s , article D iu shrd fivd . in the Supplem ent V olum e of the E l . Serie, V ol. 16-18, 21-23), and H am zah al-Isfah an is History, I, 153-55-
^ Cf. the introduction of the fifteen th -cen tu ry Rawd al-miHdr, ed. . L ^ v i - P r o v e n ^ a l , Cf. M iskaw ayh, Tajdrib al-umam, in D. S. M a r g o l i o u t h and H . F. A m e d r o z , The
La Peninsule Iberique au Moyen-Age, X I X , te xt h (Leiden 1938). Eclipse of the ^Abbasid Caliphate, II, 239 f. (Oxford 1920-21).
C f., fo r in s ta n c e , th e History o f H a m z a h a l-Is fa h a n i. H a m z a h s a y s t h a t fo r th e h is to r y ^ Cf. above, p. 87, and b elow ,p . i3 3 f. Cf. also Ibn M uyassar, Annates dgypte, 34 M a s s ^;
o f th e C o p ts h is o n ly so u rce o f in fo rm a tio n w a s th e zijdt (I, 82 G o t t w a l d t , S t . P e te rs b u rg - (Cairo 1919). A strological d ata for the accession of caliphs are also to be found in astrological
L e ip z ig 1844-48). F o r th e ztj lite ra tu re in g en era l, cf. E . S . K e n n e d y , A Survey of Islam ic treatises such as those ascribed to a l-B a ttan i and the Indian K an kalah (Ms. Ism ail Saib
Astronomical Tables, in Transactions of the American Philosophical Society, N .S . X L V I , [Ankara] 1/199, fols. 27a-77a). Cf., in particular, D. P i n g r e e , Historical Horoscopes, in
12 3 -7 7 (1956). F o r th e c a le n d a rs fro m a s tro lo g ic a l w o rk s as a so u rce o f O tto m a n h is to ric a l J A O S , L X X X I I , 487-502 (1962).
w r itin g , cf. H . I n a l c i k an d V . L . M e n a g e , in B . L e w i s a n d P . M. H o l t , Historians of the ^ Cf. Ibn as-Sihnah, ad-Durr al-muntahab f t taM h mamlakat Halab, 19 (Beirut 1909),
M iddle East, 15 7 f., 1 7 0 f. follow ing Ibn Saddad, al-AHdq al-hattrah, who, in turn, quotes an ancient b ook which
* 'A li b. Y a h y a al-M unajjim once read to al-M utaw akkil from a book on predictions speaks about the decipherm ent of a G reek inscription givin g the horoscope of Aleppo. Cf.
(maldhim) and cam e to a passage th at said th at the tenth caliph would be killed in his also below, p. 125. ^ Cf. F ihrist, 382-87 (Cairo 1348 213-17 FLtioEL).
reception hall. A l-M utaw akkil did not refer the prediction to himself b u t it was fulfilled ^ Cf. J. L i p p e r t , Abu Ma^sar's Kitdb al-U luf, in W Z K M , I X , 351-58 (1895); H am zah
through him, cf. at-Tabari, Ta^rih, III, 1463 D e G o e j e and others, anno 247. Sim ilar stories, al-Isfahani, History, I, 79 f. G o t t w a l d t . For the Kitdb al-U luf, cf. also Ibn Ju lju ls Tabaqdt
as well as success stories predicted b y astrology, are v e ry frequent. H am zah al-Isfahani, al-atibbd^, and above, p. 78, n. 4.
History, I, 191 G o t t w a l d t , noted the occurrence of a drought instead of the predicted RasdHl Ihwan as-safd^, IV , 364 (Cairo 1347/1928). Ashdb at-tawdrth means astrologers
deluge. Cf. also at-T ab ari, T a M h , III, 1364. in the Arabian Nights, I, 108 M a c n a g h t e n . For astrology and h istory in China and m edieval
Predictions concerning the duration of Islam were accepted into al-M utahhars Beginning E urope, cf. H . F r a n k e , in Oriens, III , 117 (1950)-
112 TH E C O NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS P H IL O SO PH Y 113

nam ely, rising and falling prices, fertility and sterility, pestilence, should not be the case, we can be certain th at such observations
death, and drought, diseases and illnesses, and accidents and safety do not exist anywhere in the w orld. ^
(well-being), 5) the daily events, m onth b y m onth and d ay b y day, In such small w ays, astrology came into contact w ith historiogra
6) the nativities of each hum an being, and 7) the indication of p h y, w ith the result of some minor give-and-take between
obscure details, such as concealed or stolen objects, as well as the these two different approaches of man in his quest for the under
discovery of secret m atters and of answers to queries on the basis standing of the world.
of horoscopes. 1 Thus, astrologers were concerned w ith everything
th at was of interest to historians, and a little more. 5 P H IL O S O P H Y
T h ey also knew the value of historical knowledge as a convincing
Philosophy, more than any of the previously mentioned disciplines,
background for their predictions of the future. W hen a certain
would have been in a position to solve the great problems of history,
DaniyM i, who was so named because he was a speciaUst in predic
but it was never effectively used b y Muslim historians for this
tions ascribed to the biblical Daniel, was asked for his help in ef
purpose. The basic question of the reliability of historical inform ation
fecting the appointm ent of a pohtician to the w azirate, he forged a
and its relationship to reahty, th at is, the question of w hat con
book in the name of Daniel which cryp tically referred to events of the
stitutes historical truth, troubled the historians (above, p. 60), but
past and to things which had not y e t happened.^ Thus, apparently,
true to their determ ination of reporting facts, th ey do not speak
when D aniels predictions concerning things th at had happened in
m uch about it in historical works. Religious scholars who were
the m eantim e were found to be true, the other predictions were
also historians, such as the H atib al-Bagdadi, ^ discussed the
accepted w ith greater confidence.
problem inasmuch as it concerned Muslim law and theology and
On the other hand, there w as the argument from history against
al-Iji, finally, placed it in the center of the m ethodology of histo
the valid ity of the claim s of astrologers. A s Ibn H azm put it, em
riography. Ibn H aldun was more reticent and looked at it not from
pirical confirm ation of the possible soundness of astrology requires a
a philosophical or religious but rather a pragm atic point oi view.
continuity of astronom ical observations far beyond the life span of
According to him, the historian needs a diversified knowledge and
individuals and even nations. The m ost remote historical in
good judgm ent, if he w ants to avoid errors, since historical infor
form ation available comes from the Torah, and it does not go back
m ation as handed down is often m isleading unless it is checked against
more than 3000 years . . . . Of Persian history, w e have ample and
the general background of custom, politics, and social science and
well-documented inform ation only from Sasanian times, and this
compared w ith other parallel and better known material.^ A reflex of
means, for less than a thousand years. The same applies to Greek
Muslim speculation on the reliability of historical reporting again
{Rum) history. Today, there is no trace left of the history of the
appears in J. B o d i n s M ethodus; . . . the Turks, who are said to have
Copts, the Syrians, the Edomites, the Amm onites, the M oabites,
no m emory for an tiq uity and to have abandoned interest in it
and all the other n a tio n s . . . . A bout the Indians and the Chinese
because th ey believe th at a reliable account cannot be written b y
we do not have as much inform ation as we might wish. T h ey m ay
men who foUow hearsay, much less b y writers who were present or
possess a store of ancient astronom ical observations, for their
realms h ave lasted unscathed through the ages. It is true th a t the
1 Cf. Ibn H azm , Mardtib al-'^ulum, in RasdHl Ibn Hazm, 69 I h s a n ^Abbas (Cairo n .y.
Chinese are craftsm en and not at all interested in the sciences, but [1954]). Cf. also his Risdlah f t muddwdt an-nufus, ibid., 169, on the p a u city of the available
there m a y be astronomical observations preserved in India. If this knowledge from pre-lslam ic times.
Th e argum ent from h istory is also b riefly referred to b y Ibn Q ayyim al-Jaw ziyah, M iftdh
ddr as-sa^ddah, II, 134 (Cairo n .y.).
2 Cf. his Kifdyah, 16 ff. (H yderabad 1357). Cf. also al-Biruni, India, trans. E . S a c h a u ,
^ op. cit., I l l , 258. Cf. also above, p. 34, n. 4. 1 , 3 f. (London 1910), and id., al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 8I19, 8219ff. S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923),
^ Cf. Ibn a l-A tir, Kam il, V I I I , 85 f., anno 319 (Cairo 1301 ). M iskaw ayh, in H . F. A m e d r o z a n d the rem arks in F. R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach of M uslim Scholarship,
and D . S. M a r g o l i o u t h , The E clipse of the ^Abbasid Caliphate, I, 2 15-17 (Oxford 1920), 57-59 (Rome 1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24).
som ew hat differs in the relevan t details. Cf. also Ibn Ila ld u n s chapter on astrology and ^ Ibn H aldun Muqaddimah, I, 8 f. Paris. For a philosophers view on historiography,
h istory (Muqaddimah, II, 176 ff. Paris). cf. also above, p. 37 f.
R o se n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 8
114 TH E C O NTENTS OF HISTO RICAL W ORKS POLITICAL A N D SOCIAL SC IE N C E 115

had comm and of events, since th ey Ue about themselves in m any of the Creator, the cultural and philosophical significance of the pre-
respects or are influenced to deviate from the truth b y fear, or Islam ic rehgions, and the dogm atic differences between Muslim
bribes, or hate of princes. ^ sects, and tries to convey wherever possible scientific and philo
Popular wisdom of the fiirstenspiegel typ e came to Muslim his sophical information. However, he does not in the least succeed
torians together w ith Persian historiography.^ Biographical w orks in in creating an integrated picture of history as a function of intellec
the classical tradition were filled w ith popular philosophy ex tual processes. The philosophical remarks are, one m ight say, purple
pressed in wise sayings. Speaking about A lexander and his death, patches pasted almost at random to various sections of the work,
authors, such as a t-T a Mibi in the Gurar,^ did not leave aside but it remains for us to acknowledge the authors genuine desire
the philosophical embroidery which had alw ays belonged to the to effect a union of philosophy in the widest sense with history.
Alexander novel. Wise sayings often constituted an im portant part U nfortunately, to our knowledge, he found no successor who m ight
of biographies to be found in historical works. A nd popular philo have intensified and deepened the inquiry into history in his spirit.^
sophical themes, such as the b revity of life and the short duration
of w orldly glory, were considered b y Muslims as constituting one
6 P O L IT IC A L A N D SO C IA L S C IE N C E
of the keynotes of historical investigation.
The inclusion of Greek and Indian history into world histories in
Mushm political science drew quite extensively on the Persian
the ninth century was accompanied b y references to Greek and
fiirstenspiegel literature ^ and on certain aspects of Greek ethics.
Indian philosophical ideas. The same period also saw some attem pts
In this manner, as has just been pointed out, it came into some
to give philosophy a special and distinguished position in the
contact w ith historiography. It also was instrum ental in shaping
treatm ent of history. The History of Sinan b. Tabit, which, it is
the ideal picture of the Muslim ruler, as exemplified in biographical
true, appears to have been largely biographical, was introduced,
works or in the alw ays popular literature of the mandqih or faddSl,
we are told, b y a discussion of Platonic ethics and politics.^ T he
the political and moral virtues of rulers, especially, the early rulers
closest approach to subordinating history to philosophy, at least
of Islam. Short excerpts from the Persian fiirstenspiegel literature
superficially, was made b y al-M utahhar b. Tah ir al-Maqdisi in the
were considered a suitable introduction to a historical w ork already
Bad"" wa-t-ta'nh which he wrote in 355/966. The introductory
b y al-Jahsiyari in the first half of the tenth century. A com plete
chapter of the Beginning and History contains a theoretical discus
fiirstenspiegel was prefixed b y Ibn at-T iqtaqa to his Fahri in the
sion of knowledge and the intellect and thus shows the authors in
late thirteenth century; his description of the ideal Muslim ruler
tention to view the whole universe and its history under the aspect
was enlivened b y a few examples derived from personal experience.
of philosophy. In the course of the w ork which follows the ordinary
In the early years of the same century, Ibn Isfandiyar added a
arrangement from the creation of the world to M uhammad and his
fiirstenspiegel to his History of Tabaristdn, owing to special circum
history, the men around him and the dynastic history of the U m ay-
stances th at made such an addition seem most appropriate.^ The
yads and Abbasids, he stresses such subjects as the attributes
fiirstenspiegel literature, in turn, absorbed a good deal of historical
information, and, at one time, reached the point where summaries
1 Method for the E asy Comprehension of History, traus. R . R e y n o l d s , 42 (New Y o rk
1945). The author m ay have ascribed to the T u rk s w hat he hesitated to say about his of Mushm history were included in fiirstenspiegeh^ However, the
own, environm ent.
^ Cf. G. R i c h t e r , Studien zur Geschichte der dlteren arabischen Fiirstenspiegel (Leipzig 1932,
Leipziger Semitistische Studien, N .F ., 3), for instance, p. 54 f. B ut cf. also above, p. 74, and ^ Cf. also Abd-al-Jabbars historical poem, below, p. 184.
below, p. 115, II. 2. ^ There is considerable doubt as to how genuinely Persian this literature a ctu a lly is.
^ Cf. F . R o s e n t h a l , i n O LZ , X L , c o l . 6 2 7 (1 9 3 7 ) . Muslim scholars considered it as being of Persian origin since at least the eighth century,
* Histoire des rois des Perses {Ourar), ed. Zotenberg (Paris 1900); traiis. F. R o s e n t h a l , and w h atever its u ltim ate origin, it evid en tly reached them through Persian, interm ediaries.
Das Fortleben der A ntike im Islam , 168 ff. (Z iirieh -Stuttgart 1965). ^ The fiirstenspiegel was in the form of a lett(>r addressed t(.> the king of Tabaristan. It was
^ Cf. above, p. 88, 11. i. translated b y J. D a r m e s t e t e r , in ] A , IX , 3, 185-250 and 502-55 (1894).
The title Dahd^ir al-'^ulum wa-md kdn f i sd lif ad-duhur of a work b y al-MasH'idi suggests ^ Th e only work I can m ention in this connection is one referred to b y G A L , II, 446,
a content sim ilar to th at of the Beginning and History. which dates from the year 936/1529. There presum ably e.\isted earlier ones.
ii6 T H E C O NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS PO LITICAL A N D SOCIAL SC IE N C E 117

essential aspects of the Muslim theory of the state and its political furnished the legal basis for the Muslim system of taxation, and
constitution were associated w ith legal practice and theological wherever necessary the evidence of the conquests was adduced
speculation. The events upon which the Muslim theory of caliphal b y authors dealing w ith the problems of taxation. However, the
succession was based were mentioned in historical works, but th ey integral treatm ent of the conquests within a hardj work was a different
were not subjected to any theoretical scrutiny. Political science proposition. In the case of Qudamah, it clearly m eant th a t he in
as a m atter of theoretical speculation did not enter Muslim historiog tended to widen the historical basis of the discussion of taxation
raphy until Ibn Haldun. through a process of am algam ation quite similar to th a t which,
Social science was represented in Islam b y Greek economics. for instance, led to the com bination of geography and historiog
It was either dealt w ith in m onograph works of Greek origin or raphy at about the same time. Qudamah not only added a chapter
incorporated in encyclopedias. ^ Some of these encyclopedias on the conquests, but he also included a fiirstenspiegel in his w ork
also had sections on history, but no connection was made betw een (ch. 8, par. 9) containing all the traditional inform ation on Aristotle,
the treatm ent of history and th at of social science. Financial and Alexander, Anusarwan, etc. He furthermore included a system atic
taxation m atters were often treated b y historians as im portant presentation of social and political science (ch. 8). In this connection,
events. The history and changes of coinage found wide attention he speaks about the reasons w hy human beings need food, clothing,
among them.^ The historical value of economic statistics was recog sexual intercourse, cities w ith their social organization, money,
nized, and such statistics were occasionally taken over into historical an d kings and leaders who m ust have specific quahfications, follow
works, especially secular local histories, such as the ninth-century a specific policy, and be provided wHh a specific group of political
histories of B agdad and late Persian or E gyp tian secular local advisers.^
histories.^ Their proper place, however, was in the literature on There was no direct road leading from Qudam ah in the tenth
adm inistration, the works on the land-tax {hardj) and on govern century to Ibn H aldiin in the last quarter of the fourteenth century.
ment adm inistration such as Ibn M amm M is Qawdnin ad-dawdwin.'^ Ib n H aldun was the first to attem pt the utihzation of those com
It is in this typ e of literature th at we find, in the tenth century, a bined disciplines in the service of historiography. His great w ork
rem arkable instance of the penetration of historical and social w as m uch admired and dihgently studied b y later generations,
thinking into Muslim economic theory, the hardj w ork of Qudamah especially among Turkish statesm en and scholars. Ibn H aldun also
b. J a far. In contrast to the older hardj works of Judge A bu Y u su f appears to have sparked the historical renaissance in fifteenth-
and Y a h y a b. Adam , or the w ork on financial adm inistration century E gyp t. However, he found no true successor among Mushm
{Kitdb al-A mwdl) b y A bu U b ayd b. Sallam, Qudamah has a special, historians to take up his line of investigation. The search for an
long chapter on the history of the Muslim conquests. The conquests im m ediate model of Ibn H aldiins thought has so far remained
u n s u c c e s s f u l . 2 The possibility remains th at in the N orthwest A frican
1 Cf. M. P l e s s n e r , Der O IK O N O M IK O S des Nenpythagoreers Bryson und sein E in -
flu ss a u f die islamische Wissenschaft (H eidelberg 1928, Orient und Antike, 5). and Spanish environment, ideas such as his were discussed before
2 For instance, the introduction of Muslim coinage under ^Abd-al-Malik, or the chapter
him in some rudim entary fashion. However, his fundam ental origi
on m intage in an-N arsahi, History of Buhdrd, 34-36 S c h e f e r (Paris 1892, Publ. del'E cole des
langues or. viv., I l l , 13); trans. R. N. F r y e , 35-37 (Cambridge, Mass., 1954)- n ality would seem incontestable. There is his own strong pronounce
^ Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , Ahm ad b. at-Tayyib as-Sarahsi, 80 (New H aven 1943, American ment as to the originality of his work, whose sincerity is supported
Oriental Series, 26). Cf. also the lists of revenues in Ibn Isfandiyar, History of Tabaristdn,
p. 29 of E. G. B r o w n e s abridged translation of the w ork (Leiden-London 1905, E . J . W. b y an evident display of modesty.^ W e also have no reason to distrust
Gibb M em. Series, 2); Ibn W asil, M ufarrij al-kurub, 273 ff. a s - S a y y a l (Cairo 1953); Ibn
H aldun, Muqaddimah, I, 321 ff. Paris; trans. F. R o s e n t h a l , I, 361 ff- (New Y o rk 1958);
and, above all, the com plete statistics of Fez which Ibn A b i Zar*^ (25 f., trans. 37 f. T o r n - ^ I used the Paris ms. ar. 5907. a modern copy of an Istan b u l m anuscript. (Arabic text,
b e r g , Uppsala 1843-46) copied from an official docum ent (zimdm). below , p. 543 f.). Cf. A . B e n S h e m e s h , Taxation in Islam , II (Leiden 1965).
T h e inclusion of a table of the dates of the Persian new year in H am zah a l-Isfah an is ^ Cf. H. A . R. G i b b , The Islam ic Background of Ibn K haldun's Political Theory, in B S O S
History is due to the im portance of these dates in fiscal m atters. H ow to squeeze high taxes V II , 23-31 (1933), reprinted in his Studies on the Civilization of Islam , 166-75 (Boston 1962).
out of the population m ight be learned from historical works, according to Ibn a t-T iq taq a, Cf. also m y introduction to the translation of the Muqaddimah (New Y o rk 1958, Bollingen
above, p. 51, n. 7- Series X L II I ) .
E d . -A. S u ry al 'A tiy a h , Cairo 1943. ^ Muqaddimah, I, 62 f. Paris.
ii8 TH E C O NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS D O C U M E N T S, IN SC R IP T IO N S, A N D CO INS 119

Ibn H aldun when he says th at his sources of inspiration were the of the past was occasionally noted b y the historians, but it was
science of the fimclamental principles of jurisprudence and the reserved to Ibn H aldun to draw historical conclusions from it.^ On
fiirstenspiegel Hterature.^ W e know not only the older w orks he the other hand, the use of documents, letters, governm ent papers,
used, but also contem porary fiirstenspiegeh from N orthwestern official declarations, speeches, and related m aterial was well-nigh
A frica, such as the Suhub al-ldmi'^ah of Ibn H alduns friend, A b u universal in Muslim historical hterature. E ven where documents
1-Qasim b. Ridwan, and the Wdsitat as-suluk b y one of the A bd- of this typ e were not directly quoted, th ey were extensively used b y
al-W M id rulers of Tlemcen. These works do not show the slightest historians who held positions of political influence, when th ey wrote
trace of the thinking we find in Ibn H alduns w ork; thus, his the history of their period. The existence of letters of Muhammad in
inspiration cannot h ave come from this direction. On the other which he allegedly tried to win the adherence of various political
hand, social and economic problems were the daily bread of law yers units inside (and outside) the Arabian peninsula gave early Mushm
and jurists. From them and their practical outlook, Ibn Haldun historians an opportunity to show their appreciation of historically
m ight have received the decisive inspiration. His great achievem ent valuable documents.^ W hether or not these documents were genuine
was the construction of a system, the application of scattered does not m ake much of a difference in this connection, if only
political and sociological ideas to history which he recognized as a the genuine or false documents them selves once existed.
hving force joining the past w ith the present in one continuous Letters of all kinds were so frequently quoted b y historians th at a
process. Man and environment, individual effort and group organi few exam ples will suffice here. In al-Baladuris Ansdb, we find the
zation are the raw m aterial of history according to Ibn H aldiins alleged letter b y Utm an to the E gyptian s who had come to protest
keen, if sometimes arbitrary, analysis. His views are alw ays ex his rule, as well as other letters b y less prominent men.=^ A l- Y a qubi
plainable from the authors Muslim background, but after all devoted a special chapter in his History to the correspondence of
factors have been considered, the final judgm ent on the M u- M uhammad and th at of the early cahphs. Letters from foreign
qaddimah as a product of Muslim historiography must be th at it potentates were especially interesting. Those from the B yzantines
was more in the nature of a unique interruption than an ordinary were im portant enough to be quoted.^ The letter which the E thiopic
stop on the prescribed course of Muslim historical activity. ruler Y a g b e a Seyon sent to the E thiopic com m unity in Jerusalem
in 689/1290 was preserved b y a historian.^ W hen the original doc
7 T H E U S E O F D O CU M EN TS, IN S C R IP T IO N S, A N D CO IN S ument was w ritten in a language other than A rabic and had to be
translated for purposes of quotation, this fact was not left unmen
For modern W estern historiography, the use of non-literary tioned. International treaties were occasionally quoted.^ Im portant
evidence in historical research is a question of m ethodology. As documents of internal politics, such as documents appointing the
such it is intim ately connected with the pecuhar developm ent presum ptive successor to the ruling caliph or other high officials,
historical w riting has taken in modern times. A ll previous histori
ography did not progress to the stage where the im portance of a ' Muqaddimah, I, 317 f. Paris.
m ethodical use of such evidence was realized. ^ The contents of ^ Cf. J. S p e r b e r , D ie Schreiben Muhammads an die Stdm>ne Arabiens, in Mitteilungen
des Seminars fiir orientalische Sprachen, Westasiatische Studicn, X I X , 1-93 (1916); M.
historical works did include incidental references to non-literary H a m i d u l l a h , Documents sur la diplomatie nmsnlmane (Paris 1 9 3 5 ) .

evidence, and in Muslim historiography, such references were not ^ A l-B alad u ri, Ansdb, V, 64, 222 f. G o i t e i n (Jerusalem 1936).
Cf., for instance, Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I, 293, anno 326 (H yderabad 1357-58).
infrequent. T h e y throw some interesting sidelights on cultural Cf. K . C e r u l l i , E tio p i in Palestina, I, 88 f. (Rom e 1 9 4 3 ) , a i ' d the edition of Ibn ^Abd-
attitudes. az-Zahir, T a srif al-ayydm u'a-l-^usilr f t sirat al-M alik al-M ansur, 1 7 0 - 7 3 M u r a d K a m i l
(Cairo 1961). Ibn 'A b d -a z-Z a h irs w ork is particu larly distinguished b y its extensive
The continued existence of the great architectural monuments reporting of international treaties and m an y other documents.
Cf. al-H am aw i, at-T aM h al-M an sun, fol. 176b, 187b G r y a z n e v i c h (Moscow i960),
* Muqaddimah, I, 63 ff. Paris. or ar-R asid b. az-Z u b ayr, ad-DahdHr wa-t-tuhaf, 50 f. H a m i d u l l a h (K u w ait 1 9 5 9 ) -
^ T'or the attitu d e of W estern m edieval historians tow ard couteniporary historical docu For instance, the peace tre a ty between 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. Musa b. N usayr and Theodem ir
ments, rf. M . R i t t e r , Die I-'.nhi'icklung der GeschichtsiHssenschaft, 1 1 7 (Munich-]3erliu 1 9 1 9 ) . cf. the references in K. L e v i - P r o v e n (;a l , La Peninsule iberique, 79 (Leiden 1938).
Cf. also H . R i c h t e r , Gcschichtschreibcr, 19 , 72 (Berlin 19 38 ). Cf., for instance, Ibn al-Jaw zi, op. cit., V II, 64, anno 363.
120 T H E CO NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS D O C U M E N T S, IN SC R IP T IO N S, A N D COINS 121

or al-M utadids edict against the U m ayyad s which was never of his official duties. T h ey have some bearing on the histoiical events
made p ub h c/ were faithfully quoted b y historians. Docum ents but are often quite superfluous for their understanding. It was the
also constituted the principal m aterial for the establishm ent of the exhibition of his styhstic perfection th at was uppermost in the
biography of a pohtical figure. A rem arkable exam ple of this sort authors mind when he included the documents in his work, and
has come down to us from Fatim id times in the biography of U stad not the docum entation of historical happenings.^ Y et, such
Jaw dar (or Jiidar, d. 362/972) which was compiled b y his secretary, documents as we find in the Barq are the exact equivalent of the
Mansur. This biography consists m ainly of letters b y F atim id official papers of modern foreign ministries. Reading them gave the
caliphs addressed to Jawdar, letters th at were serving as political contem porary Muslim student the same insight into history-in-the-
or adm inistrative documents.^ There must have been other Muslim m aking at his tim e which the modern student is wont to expect
authors who w rote biographical works along these or similar hnes in the docum ented memoirs of one of the statesmen of our time.
in periods other than that of the early Fatim ids where, it is true, The use of documents in Muslim historical works was circum-
there existed an unusual chm ate of intellectual experim entation. sciibed b y the fact th at the acquaintance w ith a particular document
It is, however, understandable if little of the sort was preserved was nearly alw ays restricted to contemporaries (or near-contem po
b y later generations. For such works were too specialized and, raries) . L ater historians who quoted documents of a past period can be
therefore, of minor interest for men who had to struggle constantly expected to have used not the original documents but literary sources.
w ith the lim itations imposed b y the difficulty of producing enough The original documents were no longer available to them, nor did
m anuscripts to preserve the growing heritage of the centuries. th ey try to search for them.^ Under these circumstances, the occa
Speeches in the fiirstenspiegel tradition and, especially, speeches sional 01 even frequent use of documents would not have been able
of the religio-ascetic hom iletic typ e were frequently incorporated in to give rise to a specific m ethod of historical criticism.
historical works. It need hardly be said th at they were usually Original documents were actually consulted. W e learn this, for
fictitious. Their invention, however, was not m otivated b y the instance, from a passage in the History of M osul b y A bu Z a k a riya
Thucydidean idea of historical characterization,^ except, perhaps, al-Azdi (d. 334/945-46). A l-A zd i mentions th at he found a letter
inasmuch as th ey were to characterize the speakei as living up to of al-Mansiir among the old papers [kutuh) of the Mosul judge
Muslim religious ideals. W hen the Tm ad al-Isfahani made A lp al-H arit b. al-Jarud, which one of the la tte rs children had made
Arslan, who was killed in 465/1072, on his deathbed give a speech available to him. This historical document was incorporated b y
on the subject th at man should never be over-confident, th at speech al-Azdi in his work. A n even better exam ple for the use of docu
was composed throughout in the best rhym ed prose. ^ The Tm ad m ents in the w riting of history comes to us from near the end of
in a w ay m arked the culmination of the Muslim historians use of the creative developm ent of m edieval Muslim historiography.
documents. His great annalistically arranged memoirs, al-Barq W hen Salih b. Y a h y a wrote his History of Beirut and the Fam ily of
as-Sa^mi, were largely made up from documents, letters, official Buhtur, he delved into the fam ily archives and came up w ith a
adm inistrative orders (mansur), and similar material. Most of the number of documents concerning the appointm ent of members of
documents were composed b y the author himself in the course the B uhtur fam ily to various positions.^ W e m ay assume th at earher
Cf. H a jji H alifah s rem arks concerning al-W assafs Persian h istory, iu K a sf az-zunun,
1 Cf. at-Tabari, T a M h , III , 2165 ff. D e G o e j e and others, anno 284. Cf., further, H. A. R.
II, 156 f. F l u g e l .
The F iscal Rescript of ^Umar I I , iu Arabica, II, 1-16 (1955). For the docum ents
G ib b ,
^ This applies to a n y system atic search for historical docum ents. It m ay, however, v ery
appointing successors to the caliphate from at-Tabari, cf. A . C h e j n e , Succession to the Rule
w ell be th at historians were m uch more aware of the im portance of docum ents and also
in Islam (Lahore i960).
m ight have m ade more frequent attem pts to get acccss to them than the available literary
2 Cf. the French translation b y M. Canard, Vie de I Ustadh Jaudhar (Algiers 1958).
references indicate. Cf. at-Tabari, Ta^rth, III, 326; Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, II, 296 Paris.
^ B u t cf., possibly, at-Tabari, Ta^rth III, 1793 f.
For a m odern M oroccan historian, cf. E. L e v i - P r o v e n c a l , Les Historiens des Chorfa, 192
^ A l-^Imad alT sfah an i, Nusrat al-fitrah, cf. the abridgm ent of the w ork b y a l - B u n d a r i ,
(Paris, 1922).
published under the title of Ta^rih dawlat as-Saljuq, 45 (Cairo 1318/1900).
Phot. Cairo T a rih 2475 (also Taym vir T a rih 2303), p. 187. Th e original m anuscript is
I used the Bodleian mss. or. Bruce 11 and Marsh 425, containing, resp ectively, part 3
now iu the Chester B e a tty Collection in Dublin, Ireland. Cf. below, p. 153.
(years 5 7 3-7 5 ) and part 5 (years 578-70) of the Barq. Cf. H. A. R. C.iiii;, in W Z K M . I.IT, * Hisioire de Beyrouth, ed. L. C i i e i k h o , 2nd cd., 45 ff. (Beirut 1927). Cf. also E. D.
93-115 ( 1 9 5 3 )-
Ross, in A Volume of Or. Studies presented to E. G. Browne, 40<) (Cambridiic u)22).
122 TH E CO NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS D O C U M E N T S, IN SC R IP T IO N S, A N D COINS 123

authors of fam ily histories, such as Ibn a l-A dim who wrote on his the replies which the jurists had sent to Abd-al-M alik. T h ey had
fam ily, the Banu Jaradah of Aleppo,^ or, in the early tenth century, been discovered in his office (files, iistuhrijat min diwdrdh). I ab
A hm ad b. Y a h y a b. al-Munajjim, who wrote on the history and stracted the gist of them. The opinions of the jurists differed, but
pedigree of his family,^ made a similar use of fam ily archives. A nd the number of those who advised a peaceful settlement, even if it
when T abit b. Sinan incorporated in his History a document of the would entail some irregularities, was larger than th at of those who
w azir A li b. Isa concerning the estabhshment of m edical care counseled w ar. A bu U b ayd then proceeded to quote excerpts
for the inm ates of the coun trys prisons during a year of much from the documents.^ Historians as a rule, however, did not suffi
illness, he p robably had access to and knowledge of the document cien tly avail them selves of the great opportunities which the
only because it had been addressed to his father, then superinten existence of legal archives offered them.^
dent of B agdad's hospitals.^* W hile w ith the use of documents, the historian entered the legal
The preservation of documents was usually due to very concrete and adm inistrative domain, w ith the use of inscriptions he came
motives, such as the fact that a certain document was a letter into contact w ith novelistic tradition and popular fancy. Long
bestowing privileges upon the recipient. Thus, we hear about an before Islam , the esoteric character of w riting and its early monu
alleged letter of the Prophet in which he granted some villages in m ental use had inspired stories of mysterious discoveries of m yste
Syria to one of his followers. This letter was preserved b y the de rious w ritten documents which when deciphered revealed deep
scendants of that man. E ventually, it was bought b y the caliph philosophical or rehgious insights. In the Muslim environment,
al-M ustanjid for his library in Bagdad.^ L iterary criticism entered the h eavenly prototype of the Q ur an is a good exam ple of the v a
the picture when the necessity arose to refute claims concerning rious forms in which this tradition was able to survive. The cir
privileges made in a document.^ The keeping of files of documents culation of fanciful stories concerning inscriptions was greatly
was especially im portant in the adm inistration of justice. Oc stim ulated b y the m any m onum ental relics of foreign writings which
casionally, legal theory had recourse to documents of historical the Muslims came across from the early years of the conquests on
importance. In the Kitdb al-Amwdl, A bu U bayd b. Sallam tells and which did not fail to attract their attention. The products of
about the request for a legal opinion which General 'Abd-al-M alik a semi-learned im agination inspired b y strange inscriptions were often
b. Salih (d. 196/812) had addressed to several famous jurists of the credited to the authorship of W ahb b. Munabbih. Legend has it th at
time and in which he had asked whether it was legally permissible a Greek inscription from the Mosque of Damascus which he d e
for Cyprians and other people in Asia Minor to p ay tribute to both ciphered was interpreted b y him as a sermon from the days of
the Muslims and the Byzantines. He then went on to say; I found Solomon. His translation was in perfect A rabic rhym ed prose.^
V ery often, the translator remained anonymous, v/hich added an
^ Cf. G A L Supplement I, 568. In the liugyat at-talab, Ibn, al-'-Aclim quoted a waqf deed of
other good novelistic element of m ystification. On a beautiful
one of liis ancestors, cf. phot. Cairo T a rih 1566, p. 265.
^ Cf. I''ihrist, 206 (Cairo 1348 = 144 I'Y u g e l). tapestry, al-Muntasir observed a circular Persian inscription which
" Cf. Ibn A b i Usaybi'^ah, I, 221 M i j l l e r (Konigsberg-Cairo 1882-84).
surrounded the representation of a horseman w ith a crown upon
Cf. \\ usTENFELD, Register zu den gencalogischen I'abellen der arabischen Stdinine und
Fam ilien, 441 f. ((iottiugen 1853); J. S p e r b e r , op. cit., 66. Th e M ustanjid episode is not his head. Nobody was able to read the inscription. E ventually,
mentioned b y F. K r e n k o w , The (Want of Land by Muhammad to Tamim ad-Dari, in Islamica,
someone whose identity is not revealed was found who was able to
I, 529-32 (1923), and C h . D. . M a t t h e w s , M aqrizls Treatise Dau^ as-sdrt on the Tam im t
W aqf in Hebron, in Journal of the Palestine Oriental Society, X I X , 147-79 (1939-40). read it. He hesitated to comm unicate to the caliph the ominous
As sacn-d relics, such letters, none of them genuine, have been preser\ ed down to modern
words he savv% and only the cahphs incipient w rath made him reveal
times, cf., for instance, .A.. C r o h m a n n , in E l, s.v. al-Miikawkas.
Alleged letters o f the Prophet were ahvays treasured and preserved as holy relics, cf. the dire words: T am Siroyah b. Hosraw b. Hurmuz. I killed m y
A hm ad b. Abi la h ir . History of Bagdad, I, 271 K e l l e r (Leipzig 1908); at-Tabari, Ta^rth,
III, 1142 f. D e G o e j e and others, anno 218. ^ Kitdb al-Amn'dl, 171-75 (Cairo 1 3 5 3 ) -
^ For al-H atib al-B agdadi and the Jew s of H ayb ar, cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , The Technique h'or statistical docum ents, see above, p. 116, n. 3.
and Approach of M uslim Scholarship, 47b (Rome 1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24). As-Safadi * Al-M as'udi, M uruj. V, 361-62, Paris ed. - II, 152 (Cairo 1346). Ibu '^Asakir, Ta^rih
(al-Oayt al-viusajjam, II, 66, Cairo 1305) considered this one incident sufficient proof for the DimaSq, I, 197 (Damascus 1329 ff.); al-\'azidi, A malt, 72 (H yderabad 1948). Cf. (i. h. von
usefulness of historical studies. G ru n eb au m , Medieval Islam, 242 (Chicago 1946).
124 TH E CONTENTS OF H ISTORICAL W ORKS D O C U M E N T S, IN SC R IP T IO N S, A N D CO INS 125

father, and therefore, I had only six months to enjoy m y royal who also had the tradition th at clay was the earhest w riting m a
pow er. 1 terial. ^ The adm ittedly unknown w riting on a tablet which was
The more sober-minded appreciated alleged economic-historical found b y chance in an ancient grave certainly was a cuneiform
inform ation in strange inscriptions, such as an E gyp tian tom b document. 2
inscription from the S a id, written in the Upper E gyp tian {saHdi) It is not surprising th at Muslim scholars were not able to do
language," which yielded a list of Pharaonic ta x receipts.^ W here anything w ith hieroglyphic and cuneiform inscriptions. T h ey could
history was clearly fiction as in the Nihdyat al-arab f i ahbdr al- also hardly be expected to understand South A rabian inscriptions,
Furs wa-l-'-Arab, it was almost necessary to have a H im yaritic even if the inhabitants of southern A rabia still knew the alphabet
inscription and a man from S a n a ' who was able to interpret the and were able to m ake out some gram m atical features of the lan
A rabic verses it contained, but the political interest of the early guage of the inscriptions.^ The knowledge of their highly technical
Muslims m ay have been instrum ental in the discovery of a Him- contents and language probably did not survive the end of South
yarite inscription in Samarqand.^ Travellers in B ibhcal territory A rabian autonom y. It also comes as no surprise that H ebrew
expected to find strange inscriptions which spoke about Moses inscriptions were never correctly interpreted, for, in most cases,
and the like> those inscriptions were certainly not w ritten in H ebrew but, among
W hen scholars and writers left the realm of fiction, th ey often other possibilities, in N abataean, Palm yrenian, or some Iranian
had to confess, unless they w anted to exploit the credulous disposi language. Genuine Syriac inscriptions were of no interest to Muslim
tion created b y the novelistic tradition,^ th at th ey could not read historians. It is, however, somewhat disconcerting to meet w ith an
the strange writing. A Muslim historian who wanted to w rite on the apparent complete inability to decipher Greek inscriptions. Some
histo ry of China and was told, on w hat must have appeared to him of these inscriptions m ay indeed have been very difficult to read
good authority, th at people who knew the country and its language and to interpret, but it w ould seem th at it was the novelistic tradition,
had found historical inform ation in inscriptions on stone, on city and not philological incompetence, which doomed to failure any
gates and in temples,** was in no position to judge w hat he heard. attem pts to achieve a reasonable interpretation of Greek inscriptions.
It was the same in m atters concerning E gyp t. Al-Biruni quoted a Rulers or scholars whose curiosity had been aroused b y the dis
report about the discovery of an ancient E gyp tian m onum ent in covery of an inscription wished to find some extraordinary in
Upper E gyp t. Its walls contained, in three horizontal bands, sculp form ation in it, and the men who offered them selves to decipher
tured trees, animals, and representations of hum an beings. E v e ry the inscription were only too willing to comply. The closest approach
thing was accom panied b y an inscription 'to which one now does not to the correct reading of a Greek inscription is found in connection
have the k e y ." ^ Cuneiform inscriptions were known to the Mushms, w ith an ancient monument of marble, or rather alabaster, in Aleppo.
It was considered to be a pagan altar and, in the thirteenth century,
^ A l-H atib al-B agdadi, T B , II, 120 f . ; al-H usri, Jam'- al-jawdhir, 170 f. (Cairo 1353).
^ Cf. Ibn Zulaq (cf. below, p. 154), iu Paris ms. ar. 4727, fol. 205b. was preserved in Aleppo's H alaw iyah College. A scholar who had
^ Cf. ms. Cairo T a ^ h 4505, fol. 22b-23a, see above p. 58, and W . B a r t h o l d , Turkestan
grown up in th at College told Ibn al-'A dim th at Nur-ad-dm had
down to the Mongol Invasion, 87 (London 1927, E . J . W. Gibb Mem. Series, N .S ., 5).
* Cf., for instance, al-M aqrizi, Hitat, I, 188 (B ulaq 1270). brought the monument from Apam ea. He had heard someone
The secretary All b. as-Sari al-K arh i who in 344/955 read the inscriptions on the
decipher its inscription. It started w ith: This was made for K ing
m onum ents of Persepolis when ^Adud-ad-dawlah visited the c ity m ust have m ade ample
use of his fan cy, bu t the feat was com m em orated in inscriptions, cf. G . W i e t - E . C o m b e - D iocletian, and after that, there followed the astrological constel
J. S a u v a g e t , Repertoire chronol. d'epigraphie arabe, IV , 135 f. (Caire 1933); G . E . v o n
G r u n e b a u m , loo. cit.
lation which prevailed at the time the monument was made.'*
For a d iscovery and decipherm ent of m anuscripts in an unknow n w riting, cf. H am zah 1 Cf. F ih rist, 6 (Cairo 1348 ^ 4 F l u g e l ).
al-Ifahani, History, I, 197 G o t t w a l d t ( S t . P etersburg-Leipzig 1844-48), and al-Biruni, 2 Ibn al-Jaw zi, Mimtazam, V, 100, anno 276 (H yderabad 1357-58)-
al-Atar al-bdqiyah, 24io_i2, S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923). = Cf. al-H am dani, IhlU, Vol. \ II, cd. and trans. N. A . 1'a r is , 122 f. (72 f.) (Princeton
A l-Y a 'q u b i, History, I, 146 (N ajaf 1358 = I, 205 H o u t s m a ) . F or Central Asian 1940 and 193 8). Cf. also H. S t . J . B . P ii u . b y , The Background of Islam, 127-40 (Alexandria
inscriptions, cf. the rep o it given b y al-Juw ayni, Ta^rih-i-jahdngusdy, trans. J. A. B o y l e , 194 7). T h e fact th at a related idiom was spoken certainly was no real help in the decipher
54 f. (Manchester 1958). m ent of the inscriptions.
A l-B fn m i, Kitdb al-Jamdhir f i ma'-rifat al-jawdhir, 166 (H yderabad 1355). ^ Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talab, Phot. Cairo T a rih 1566, I, 85. Cf. above, p. i n , n. 3- This
126 TH E CO NTENTS OF H ISTO RICAL W ORKS D O C U M E N T S, IN SC R IP T IO N S, A N D COINS 127

The inscription m ay indeed have contained something like the occasionally on A rabic inscriptions for exact information, as did
name of Diocletian. However, already al-Q udai reported that a Ibn as-Sihnah who reported th at an inscription on the gate of the
m onk from the F ayyu m who deciphered the ancient Coptic Zahiriyah College in Aleppo declared the College to be a waqftor the
inscriptions on a m um my wrapping found the name of D iocletian benefit of SM i'ites and Hanafites.^ General historians sometimes
in th em / apparently, since it was the name of an ancient emperor reproduced correct readings of A rabic inscriptions, as, for instance,
com paratively well-known to the Muslims. A nd elsewhere, an in the inscription upon a minbar made and sent to Mecca in the
telligent man such as Ibn al-'A dim did not refrain from adopting year 470/1078.^ From a building inscription dated in 422/1031,
entirely fantastic interpretations of Greek inscriptions. From the found underneath the mihrdb of the mosque after an earthquake
Siyar at-tugur of U tm an b. A bdallah at-Tarsusi (d. about 401/ had shaken Oazwin in 5i3/Dec.-Jan. 1 120-21 and mentioned b y
lo io -i),^ he quoted the good adm onitions of a long-lived cousin of a r-R a fii in his History of Qazwtn, Ibn H ajar derived proof for his
D u 1-qarnayn discovered in a Greek inscription at the Q alam yah dating of the replacement of dawlah titles b y din titles, as reported
Gate of Tarsiis. Its decipherment had been the work of a local b y as-Sahawi in the Jawdhir, the detailed biography of Ibn H ajar.
veterinarian.^ Am ong the smaller inscribed objects which engaged the attention
A fter all this entertaining but regrettably unhistorical m aterial, of Muslim historians, there were seal inscriptions. T h ey entered
which could be illustrated b y m any further examples, it is com M uslim historical literature from Persian sources.^ A lready al-
forting to be able to refer to a few cases of an accurate and historical H a y ta m b. A di wrote on the seals of the caliphs.^ The strange
use of inscriptions b y Muslim historians. These cases concern sto ry of the fate of the Prophets simple silver ring with the three-
inscriptions in Arabic. A valuable exam ple in this direction was line inscription; Muhammad Rasul Allah, was recounted b y the
set b y the early historian of Mecca, al-Azraqi. He quoted Meccan h i s t o r i a n s . 5 The fact that seal inscriptions were attributed to

building inscriptions which no doubt were genuine and correctly Persian kings and Greek sages shows their connection w ith wisdom
reproduced.^ The tradition thus inaugurated in connection w ith the literature. T h ey soon becam e a topic of the entertaining and edify
local history of Mecca persisted. In addition to literary sources and ing adah literature.
the inform ation received from reliable inform ants as well as the
things seen b y himself, Meccas historian in the early fifteenth thirteenth century, al-F asi II, 199) unearthed a docum ent concerning the sale of a
house in Mecca. For as-Sayb is w ork on the cem etery of al-M u'alla and its inscriptions, cf.
century mentioned as his sources marble and stone m onum ents G A L , II, 173. A sim ilar w ork p robab ly was th at b y al-A qsahri, cf. IHdn, 130, below, p. 476.
and wooden m aterial which have inscriptions and are found in 1 Cf. Ibn as-Sihnah, ad-Durr al-muntahab f t taM h mamlakat Halab, 112 (Beirut 1909)
A building inscription in B agdad : al H atib al-Bagdadi, TB , I, 108. Inscriptions on tom b
the places where they b e l o n g . O t h e r local historians also drew stones are occasionally referred to in the specialized branch of local historiography th at
story and other rem arks on inscriptions b y Ibn al-'-Adim w eie taken over b y Ibn H atib an- deals w ith fam ous burial sites, cf. as-Sahaw i, Tuhfat al-albdb (Cairo 1356/1937)) and the
N asiriyah and p a rtly also b y later historians of Aleppo. (Arabic text, below, p. 544.) preceding note.
S . M. S t e r n , in Bibliotheca Orientalis, X I, 74 (1954), refers to an inscription from the 2 Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V II I , 311 (H yderabad 1357-58). Cf., further, al-Qadi al-Fadil
reign of Justinian . . . read to the F atim id caliph al-M ansur in the neighborhood of T a h art al-B aysani, in al-M aqrizi, Hitat, I, 184 (Bulaq 1270); Ibu A b i Zar*" 27, 31, 33 (trans. 39,
in 336/947-48. 44 f., 46) T o r n b e r g (Uppsala 1843-46). For an early exam ple, cf. al-Jahsiyari, VVuzard^,
^ Cf. al-M aqrizi, Hitat, I, 116 (Bulaq 1270). A sim ilar story in great detail. I, 433 f. fol. 40b M zik (Leipzig 1926, Bibl. arabischer Historiker und Geographen, i), cf. G A L Supple
^ Cf. Y aq u t, Irsdd, X I I , 128 f. (Cairo = V, 37 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ). ment, I, 204.
^ Cf. Ibn al-'^Adini, op. cit., yg f., where the author also m entions a H ebrew inscription. ^ Cf. al-Jahsiyari, op. cit., fol. 2a.
Cf. further, for instance, Ibn Tulun, Luma^dt, 61 (Dam ascus 1348, Rasd^il ta'rthtyah, 4). * Cf. Fihrist, 1465 (Cairo 1348 = 10 0 4 F l u g e l ). A l-M ada uu w rote a Kitdb al-Hdtam
The tendency to find wisdom and p iety in ancient inscriptions has persisted into modern wa-r-riisut, cf. Fihrist, 148 (Cairo 1348). Al-M as'udi, Tanbih, regu larly mentions the seal
times. N ot only would an Athanasius Kircher in the seventeenth cen tury find the m ost inscriptions of the caliphs.
fan tastic things in lig y p tia n hieroglyphics (cf. A. E r m a n , D ie Hiero^lyplien, 3 f., 2nd ed., ^ Cf., for instance, at-Tabari, Ta^rih, I, 2856-58, anno 30; Ibn al-A tir, Kam il, III, 5 4 !.
B erlin -Lcipzig 1923, Sammlims; (idschen; M . L i d z b a r s k i , Handhuch der nordsemitischen (Cairo 1301); Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, II. 53 f. Paris. Cf. also the references in A. J.
I'.pi^iraphik, 89 ff., W eim ar 1898), but even the translators of A ram aic papyri in the nine W e n s i n c k , a Handbook of Early Muhammadan Tradition, 211 f. (Leiden 1927); as Suli,
teenth cen tury would obtain some strange results (cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , Die araniaistische Adab al-kuttdb, 139 (Cairo 1341); L. C a e t a n i , A nnali dell Islam, VTI, 387 f. (Milan 1914)-
horschuns;,, 26 f., Leiden 1939), and our own age is not immune to this tendency. Cf. al-\Vassa , M iiwaski, 162 ff. B r u n n o w (Leiden 1886).
^ Cf. I'. W U S T E N F E I . D , D ic ('liromken der Stadt Mekka, 1, 306 ff. (Leipzig 1858). An early and \ ery im perfect attem pt to deal with the subject is J. H a m m e r - P u r g s t a l l s
^ 1 aqi-ad-din al-Fasi, 5 ;/ al-f^ardm, in F. W ' C s t e n f e l d , op. cit., II, 58 (Leipzig 1859); Abhandlung iiber die Siegel der Araber, Perser und Tiirken, in the phil.-hist. Kl. of the Vienna
I, 2 f. (Mecca-Cairo 1956). In order to ascertain the date of a IVIeccan governor of the early A cadem y, 1848.
128 THE CONTENTS OF HISTORICAL WORKS

Coins were not used b y Muslim historians as sources of historical


information. Finds of hoards, however, were occasionally reported,^
as, already accom panied b y a fictional decipherment, in the Ahbdr
al-hulafd^ of the ninth-century al-H arit b. (Muhammad b.) A b i
U s a m a h . 2 Since the issuing of coins often reflected political develop
C H A P T E R F IV E
ments, historians reported on it w ith some frequency. The m inting
of special non-circulating issues was also mentioned o c c a s i o n a l l y . ^
THE MIXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING
Thus, even coins were not entirely neglected or missing among the
numerous elements which together constituted the contents of
i_ t h e o r ig in s
Muslim historical works.
^ Cf. K u rkis 'A w w ad , in Revue de VAcademic arabe de Damas, X X , 143-56 (1945). In H aving analyzed the original form elements of historical pre
South A rabia, we arc told, gold pieces w eighing one quarter ounce, of non-M uslim coinage,
were found in 910/1504-5, cf. I b n a l - ^ A y d a r u s , an-Nilr as-sdfir, 53 (B a g d M 1353/1934).
sentation in Islam and the contributory non-historical branches of
^ Died in 282/896 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 258; al-H atib al-Bagdadi, T B , V II I , 218 f.). learning, we are now prepared to review the m ixed forms of his
H e is quoted b y al-Jah siyari, op. cit., fol. 15 1a ; ar-R asid b. az-Zubayr, ad-Dahd^ir wa-t-tuhaf,
224 f. H a m i d u l l a i i (K u w ait 1959).
toriography, th at is, the actually existing works. T he early hahar
A fiction al coin inscription of a Persian queen, in Nihdyat al-arab f t ahbdr al-Furs wa-l- works and biographies need no longer be discussed. Three large
^Arab, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 4505, fol. 56.
Again, it had to be a monk, in this particu lar case a Greek, w ho deciphered the legends
groups of historical works are under consideration: W orld histories,
of copper coins found in Qus in 662/1264 (Ibn 'A b d -az-Z ah ir, al-Fadl al-bdhir min strut as- local or regional histories, and contem porary histories and memoirs.
sultdn al-M alik az-Zdhir, quoted b y al-Y unini, D a y l Mir^dt az-zamdn, I, 556 f., H yd erab ad
1374-80/1954-61; al-M aqrizi, Hitat, I, 236, B u laq 1270). Cf. also H. R i t t e r , in Der Islam ,
However, it m ay be well to pause here for a moment and at
V II, 83 f. (1917). tem pt to draw together the hints and suggestions scattered through
Cf. G. C. M i l e s , A Portrait of the B u y id Prince Rukn al-dawlah, in Am erican Num ism atic
Society, M useum Notes, X I , 283-93 (1964).
out the previous pages th at have bearing upon the perpetually
fascinating problem of the origins of historical writing in Islam.
The history of Muslim historiography offers innumerable facts and
thousands of concrete documents for study to the historian, and
he knows th at the aw ail, the first beginnings, remain shrouded, at
least for the tim e being, in a darkness im perfectly pierced b y wilful
inferences and guesses, but it is his undeniable task to search for
possible glimmers of light in th at darkness. Of the two questions
concerning all origins, the w h y ? and the how ?, the former, being a
m atter of the mind, usually is the harder to answer. In our case, the
situation is different. The m otivation for w riting history in Islam
is ap p aren t; the technical procedures cannot be described and dated
with sufficient accuracy.
The stress Muhammad placed upon knowledge [Him) and
history, the m any practical uses of historical and biographical
d ata from early Islam ic times, the tremendous events triggered
b y the coming of Islam which deeply impressed those prim arily
responsible for them w ith their historic significance, the ancient
Near E ast tradition of history as the royal science, the existence
of a historical literature and of active historians among the con
quered peoples in view of all these factors, it would be astonishing
R o se n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 9
130 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R ITIN G TH E O RIG INS 131

if no historical w riting had developed in Islam. Pride of place am ong 740-43), and Musa b. U qbah (b. ca. ?, d. 141/758-59). U rw ah suppos
the activatin g factors must go to the historical element in Muslim edly wrote a w ork on M uhamm ads raids {sannafa al-magdzi).^
religion. Its influence upon the direction historical w riting took in A z-Zuhri is pictured as having insisted upon oral transmission, al
Islam m ay not alw ays have been favorable, but w ithout it, the though modern scholarship is inclined to consider his purported
w orldly powers m ight not have felt inclined to give support to aversion to w ritten fixation a reflection of later ideas projected
historical studies, and the long periods of pohtical decay m ight back into his time.^ The only historical book he is supposed to
have put an end to them. A s it was, not even the growth of m ys have w ritten was a book on the genealogy of his people, but he is
ticism, so hostile to the idea of history, was able to smother its also supposed to have owned m any books on poetry,^ poetry being
trium phant progress. A s a concrete indication for the prim ary a subject relatively so unim portant th at there was no harm in
importance of the religious factor, it m ay be noted th at the early w riting it down. On the other hand, we have a quotation (direct or
historians, w ithout exception, were representatives of know ledge indirect?) from a w ork b y az-Zuhri, written, it seems, for personal
in its wide religious sense. The early, more or less legendary figures use, about the ages (that is, the length of the reigns) of the ca
credited w ith representing a combination of literary and historical liphs.^ Of the w ork of the youngest of the three, Musa b. Uqbah,
inform ation remained (together w ith their more tangible literary the brief preserved fragm ent is not entirely historical in character
successors, the historical novehsts) as it were on the sidelines of and has gone through a later process of transmission difficult
Muslim historiography. for us to assess as to its literary significance.
For the determ ination of the m aterial origins, we are handicapped A valid deduction from the available evidence as marshaled b y
b y a num ber of circumstances. In the first place, developm ents such scholars as H o r o vit z , A b b o t t , and S ch ac h t , is that books
were exceedingly rapid, corresponding to the general tempo of containing historical inform ation were w ritten in the second half of
the form ation of Muslim civilization. Then, as might be expected, th e first century of the hijrah. It would seem likely th at all the
original m anuscripts from the earliest period, that is, from well form elements of later Muslim historiography already appeared
before 750 A .D ., are not available.^ Our sources of inform ation, in them. There is no proof for the assumption th at these books
direct or indirect, are for the most part of a much later date, and enjoyed any kind of public circulation. It would seem th at their
those com paratively close in time give little information. A b o ve circulation was largely restricted to friends and students who
all, these sources labor under a contradictory pair of preconcep at times m ay have included caliphs and other high officials.
tions. For one, it was desirable to project back the existence of a W hen the interest in historical works, one or tw o generations
civilization based upon writing, which developed during the eighth later, becam e widespread enough to m ake them part of the rapidly
century, into the earhest times of Islam. On the other hand, the growing literary output, some were published b y students of them
oral transmission of knowledge, which must have been preponder in their own recensions. These recensions m ight have constituted
ant in the very early years, acquired a halo of san ctity sufficiently an accurate reporting of the contents of the early works, or the
strong to distort the true situation. latter m ight have been augmented and rearranged. From later
In the three successive generations to which the earliest histo ^ Cf. ad-D ahab i, T a M h al-Isldm, IV , 31, quoted b y as-Su yu ti in his awa^il w ork, 115
rians of Islam are most likely to belong, the outstanding names are (Bagdad 1369/1950). Cf. also above, p. 69, n. 2.
^ Cf. ^Ab d - a l -'^Az i z a d - D u r i , Baht f t naPat ^ilm at-ta'^rth, 24 (Beirut i960). A d - D u r i s
Urwah b. az-Zubayr (b. ca. 30/650-51, d. ca. 93-95/711-14 ),2 w ork deals in great detail w ith the men m entioned here and w ith their role in early Muslim
M uhammad b. Muslim b. Sihab az-Zuhri (b. ca. 50/670, d. ca. 123-25/ historiography.
^ Ad-D ahabi, op. cit., V , 143, 145. His books in general: Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, IX , 344;
1 T he im portant m aterial published b y N. A b b o t t , Studies in Arabic Literary Pa pyri I : a d - D u r i , op. cit., l o i .
Historical Texts (Chicago 1957), does not go b ack far enough. H ow ever, the auth ors * Cf. at-T ab ari Ta^rth, II, 428, 1269, cited b y J. H o r o v i t z , in Islam ic Culture, II, 49
discussion of the beginnings of Muslinx h istoriography and her strong plea for greater (1928). A reconstruction of az-Zuhris w ork w as undertaken b y a d - D u r i , in B S O A S , X I X ,
recognition of the im portance and achievem ents of U m ayyad intellectual life are basic for 1-12 (1957), who sees in him the first serious student of the biograph y of the Prophet
the understanding of the problem s facing us here. according to tradition ist scholarship as cu ltiv ated in Medina. Cf. also E. L. P e t e r s e n ,
It stands to reason th at the dates of birth, uncertain as th ey are, are more im portant op. cit. (above, p. 63).
in this connection than the dates of death. ^ Cf. J. S c h a c h t s im portant contribution cited above, p. 69, n. 2, and below, p. 393, n. 6.
132 M IX E D FORMS OF H IST O R IC A L W R IT IN G W O RLD H IST O R IES 133

periods of Muslim literature, we are used to finding m anuscripts of 2 W O R L D H IS T O R IE S


works provided w ith a chain of transm itters of which the last is
As a rule, only those works which are preserved constitute a
the one responsible for the actual m anuscript (or an earlier copy
satisfactory m aterial for our investigation. Moreover, it is preferable
of it). In these cases, we do not hesitate to ascribe authorship of
to have carefully edited texts of complete works or, at least, of
the work, in the form we find it, to the first member of the chain.
characteristic portions. This, unfortunately, is frequently not the
Such a procedure, however, is not justified for the earliest stages
case. W e can, however, be certain th at more m aterial, if it were
of historical writing.
known, m ight to some degree change the emphasis b u t not the essence
Some day, a lu cky find m ay restore to us one of the earliest
of the picture here presented.
Mushm historical books, and this would indeed be an even t of
W ith the beginning of the tenth century, we meet three different
the utm ost importance. However, it seems h ardly h kely th at such a
types of world histories. T h ey were preceded b y ad-D inaw aris Ahbdr
find could signify th at more than the barest beginnings of a histori
at-tiwdl} a synchronized presentation of Biblical, Persian, and pre-
cal literature existed in the Muslim world around the year 700. T h e
Islam ic A rabic history, followed b y an early Islam ic history which,
strongest argument against the existence of a flourishing historical
like the whole work, is essentially interested in Persian affairs.
literature of published works at that time lies, after all, in the fact
T h e h istory of the caliphs is briefly treated according to their
th at the ninth-century historians whose works have been preserved
reigns. M uhamm ad and his history is passed over in complete
seem to know practically nothing about it. If we look at the hst
silence.
of works used b y a l- Y a qubi ^ we find th at he m akes no direct use
T he first of the three types of universal historiography is the
even of authors such as Miisa b. U qbah or Ibn I s h ^ . H e m ay have
History of a l- Y a qubi. The authors introductory remarks, including
preferred later works because th ey embodied the substance of the
th e story of the creation of the world, have fallen victim to a gap in
earlier ones and, in addition, were more comprehensive. B u t it
th e m anuscript. The first part of the w ork is devoted to pre-Islam ic
seems quite likely th at neither he (nor his contemporaries) had
h istory, beginning w ith B iblical history. A s usual, the chronological
access to the very earhest original works. Now, it m ay be th at the
succession of individuals (prophets, kings, etc.) provides a simple
library holdings of U m ayyad times perished in their entirety, or
principle of arrangement. Then, there is a description of the four
were deliberately destroyed, under the im pact of the A bbasid
Gospels, replacing pohtical history w ith cultural history. A l- Y a -
revolution and th at this, in particular, affected historical works as
qubi followed the same procedure wherever there existed no inform a
their contents was considered subversive; there is nothing to indi
tion, or no sufficient inform ation, on political history, as in the case
cate th at this was actually the case. Or the old m anuscripts m ay h ave
of the Greeks, the Indians, and the pre-Islam ic Arabs. Topics such
been all discarded because of their obsolete writing and the m aterials
as the works of A ristotle and H ippocrates, the introduction of chess,
upon which th ey were w ritten; this would only be a further argu
and the pre-Islam ic poets are discussed. A l- Y a qubi went back to the
ment for the assumption th at the number of pubhshed copies,
original sources as far as th ey were available to him. W ith regard
wherever such existed, was very small.
to the history of the Old and New Testam ent period, he was not
A n argument ex silentio is alw ays uncertain. B u t everything
satisfied w ith Muslim tradition but, w ith the help of inform ants,
considered, it remains suggestive in this case. H istorical w riting
had recourse to the original writings and in this w ay achieved a
in Islam started in the second half of the seventh century (if not
rare accuracy. The cultural interest of the author continued into
before!). It began to capture its strong position in organized Mus
the second part of the w ork which deals w ith Muslim history. It
lim literary hfe during the eighth century. Of this production,
begins w ith wise saws on the im portance of knowledge. A li b. A bi
little has been preserved or as yet been recovered. However, its
general sim ilarity in form and character to the works preserved ^ G A L , I, 123. T h e w o rk w a s re p rin te d , w ith o u t d a te , in th e M atba'^at 'A b d - a l- H a m id
seems quite certain. A . H a n a fi, C a iro , a t th e e x p e n se o f th e M a k ta b a h a l-'-A ra b iy a h in B a g d a d . A m ore re c e n t
e d itio n is t h a t b y ' A b d -a l -M u n ' im ' A m ir a n d J a m a l - a d - d in a s -S a y y a l (C airo i9 6 0 )
^ C f. b e lo w , p. 134 , n. 2. (n o t seen).
134 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O RLD H IST O R IES 135

Talib is conspicuously quoted in this connection. The S i'ah per jurist, and the insight into political affairs of the practicing lawyer-
suasion of the author further shows itself in the preference shown for pohtician. A ll these were qualities which commanded enduring
i ah versions of the events of the first century of the hijrah and in and ever-increasing respect in the intellectual circles of orthodox
the biographical notices devoted to the T w elver imams which stress Islam. It was therefore only natural th at his historical w ork never
their contributions to wisdom.^ The sources used b y a l- Y a qubi, ceased to exercise a tremendous influence upon future historians
who had at his disposal a rich historical literature of which only a as a model of how history should be written. Its pre-Islam ic history
few fragm ents are preserved, are indicated in a bibliography.^ is restricted to a synchronized presentation of Islam ized Bibhcal
The history of the Prophet follows the usual pattern. It consists of a history, A rab history, and Persian history. No notice is taken of
series of hahars. T h ey are classified as pre-Islam ic activities, raids, the widening of the historical and cultural horizon which had
etc., and, as far as possible, arranged chronologically. Topics which taken place during at-T ab aris hfetime. The story of Muhammad
do not adm it of a chronological arrangement, such as the list of follows the sirah pattern. However, w ith the hijrah, the annahstic
M uhamm ads wives or his sermons, are put at the end of the Pro presentation sets in and is then continued w ithout the slightest
phetical history but, in this particular case, before the reports on deviation. The events of the individual years are presented in
M uhamm ads last pilgrim age and death. The remainder of the hahar form, w ith the careful indication of sources and chains of
w ork is a straight history of the reigns of the individual caliphs. transm itters. W here there were different reports about the same
E ach reign is treated as a unit. It is introduced b y the date and event which at-T abari thought worth preserving, he took them
horoscope of the caHphs accession.^ It is concluded b y a character over and placed them n ext to each other in his work. A ccuracy
ization of the caliph and b y lists of his civihans officials (jurists), and faithfulness to the transm itted text, even to the extent of
the leaders of the annual pilgrimages during his reign, and the including foreign-language quotations, such as Persian verses,^
m ih tary expeditions undertaken in his tim e and the men who headed are the rule. The more im portant events are, it seems, given first
them. The bulk of the section devoted to each caliph is made up of place in their respective years. The ruler division is only ligh tly
individual hahars. There are few exact dates, although annalistic superimposed upon the annalistic division. It is m arked m ainly
coordination of events through in the same year occurs occa b y extensive biographies of the caliphs at the end of their reigns.
sionally.^ The Syrian m onth corresponding to a given m onth of the L ists of officials seem to have appeared less im portant to the theolo
hijrah is alw ays indicated; surprisingly enough, this feature re gian at-Tabari than to more worldly-m inded historians. The authors
occurs in the early eighth/fourteenth-century history of Ibn al- point of view when he approaches his own time is strictly Bag-
Jazari. dadian and reflects the attitude of the central governm ent, as we
A t-T ab a ris world history was incom parably more im portant would expect. This fact becomes evident wherever we can compare
than a l- Y a qubi who was soon all but forgotten. A t-T ab ari brought at-T ab aris presentation w ith th at of authors possessing a different
to his w ork the scrupulousness and indefatigable longwindedness outlook, as is possible, for instance, in the case of Tulunid history.
of the theologian, the accuracy and love of order of the scholarly D etails unfavorable to the Abbasids seem occasionally to have been
' See above, p. 64 f. om itted .2 O bituary notices were kept out of the History, unless it
^ T h e bib liograph y of sources was an in tegral p a rt of Muslim scholarly research. Its was the case of persons of historical significance. A special work,
existence or non-existence in a w ork indicated the degree of scholarship the author laid
claim to. In the course of the centuries, the bibliographies in histories as w ell as any other entitled D ayl al-mudayyal, took care of the biographies of early
type of works becam e more and more detailed.
Muslims.
^ Cf. above, p. i n . Th e source certainly was Masa^llahs Nativities, m entioned b y al-
Y a 'q u b i, H istory II, 3 (N ajaf 1358 = II, 4 H o u t s m a ) , as one of the works used b y him. The third great historical w ork of the period is al-Masudis
T he w ork b y M uham m ad b. Musa al-H uw arizm i, which is m entioned ibid., m ay have been M uruj, which belonged to a series of apparently quite similar
his Ta^rth, and not an astrological work. H ow ever, the inform ation we find in a l-Y a 'q u b i
in connection w ith M uham m ads birth is not the same th at occurs in al-Biruni (above, 1 A t-T ab ari, Ta^rth, II, 1606 f., anno 119. Cf. also III , 50, 65, 1539.
p. 73. n. 2). * Cf. H. K e l l e r , in the introduction to his edition of the sixth volum e of A hm ad b. A b i
* A l-Y a 'q u b i, History, II, 128 (N ajaf 1358 = II, 159 H o u t s m a ) . T a h ir s History of Bagdad (Leipzig 1908). K e l l e r s characterization of the relationship of
Cf. below, p. 493, n. i. Cf. also at-Tabari, Ta?rth, III , 916. a t-T a b ari to his author is, how ever, h ard ly acceptable.
136 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O R LD H IST O R IES 137

historical works b y the same author. i A l-M asudis brief Kitdh largely modeled after the treatm ent given to historical data in the
at~TanUh, w ith its constant references to other parts of the series works of astronomers and shows greater sim ilarity to al-Birim is
of pubhcations, m akes it fully evident th at it was the object of w ork on Chronology (for which H am zah was a principal source)
that series to treat all m aterial phenomena of the world under the than to historical works.^ The authors intention was to present the
aspect of history. A playful flourish, such as the indication of the chronology of the various nations known to him, th at is, the Per
date of the composition of the Tanbih at the end of the work ac sians, Rom ans, Greeks, Copts, Israelites, Lahm ids, CTassanids,
cording to different eras, is significant as the expression of a truly Yem enites, K indah, and Muslims. This involved ascertaining the
world-historical outlook. E ven more so than a l- Y a qubi can al- length of the reigns of the individual rulers and, occasionally,
M as'udi be considered the characteristic representative of the attem pting synchronizations between the various nations. E ven
universal cultural interpretation of history. In the M uruj, the story in the case of the caliphs, H am zahs inform ation is largely restricted
of the creation of the world is followed b y a physical description to the length of their reigns. Some little space is given to the events,
of the earth. The treatm ent of pre-Islam ic Arabs which stresses the such as earthquakes or pestilences. M any pages, on the other hand,
cultural elements in their history is combined with a discussion of are occupied b y such inform ation as the dates of the Persian new
all foreign nations known to the Muslims of the tenth century. year according to the Muslim calendar.^ Particular sections are
This comprises almost one-half of the whole work. V ery httle space devoted to the history of H urasan and Tabaristan which, in the
is given to the history of the Prophet it is true, though, that auth ors opinion, played an especially im portant part in the history
al-M as'M i refers to another w ork of his in which the sir ah is said to of Islam, because of H urasans A bu Muslim and the B uyids of
have been dealt w ith in detail. The stress here is on briefly narrating T ab aristan .3 ^11 in all, a rather defective w ay of treating world
M uham m ads life in chronological order, using the years of Muham history, in spite of the authors admirable scholarly qualifications.
m ads hfe as the principle of arrangement for the time before the From the same tenth century,^ a Christian world history is
hijrah. E vents concerning A ll are given much more attention preserved in the w ork of A gapius (Mahbiib) b. Q ustantin al-Manbiji.
than the biography of the Prophet. The history of the caliphs is It is m arked b y a quite scientific approach in its geographical de
treated according to the reigns of the individual rulers. Poetical, scription of the world and b y its full use of inform ation custom arily
hterary, and otherwise entertaining notes and anecdotes are the found in B yzantine chronicles, th at is, Biblical history synchronized
main concern of the author. Some theologico-philosophical infor w ith Greek m ythology and cultural history, and Hellenistic, Rom an,
m ation is also included. A brief sum m ary of the dates of caliphs and Near Eastern political history.
and the length of their reigns and an enumeration of the leaders of Another Christian world history was th at of A gap ius contem
the annual pilgrim age conclude the work. porary, E utychius (Sa'id) b. Bitriq. The authors introductory words
W hile the works of a l-Y a qiibi, at-Tabari, and al-M asudi are raise great expectations. He starts out b y saying th a t everyone
typ ical of the Muslim universal history of the period, th ey were b y
no means the only forms that grew in the fertile soil of tenth- 1 For the distinction of chronological and historical works, one m ay compare al-B irun is
statem ent, in his Atdr al-bdqiyah, loO j, S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923), th at he w as occupied
century Islam. Al-M utahhars Beginning and History has already w ith estabhshing the historical dates {tawdrih) and not w ith evalu atin g the historical
been described as a historical w ork w ritten from a philosophical inform ation {ahbdr).
2 Cf. above, p. 116, n. 3-
point of view. 2 Philosophical, theological, and scientific discussions ^ Cf. H am zah al-Isfahani, History, I 216 G o t t w a l d t (St. Petersburg-Leipzig 1844-48).
obscure the historical character of the w ork and leave only little S alm a w ayh s/Joo^ of the Dynasty [Fihrist, 156, Cairo 1348 = 107 F l u g e l ) paid considerable
atten tion to H urasan. It is quoted b y al-M as'udi, Tanbih, 65 D e G o e j e , under the title of
room for the Islam ic history. Contem porary with the Beginning and Book on the 'Abbdsid Dynasty and the A m irs of Hurdsdn.
History is H am zah al-Isfahanis History, which, for us, is an ex * G . G r a f , Geschichte der christlichen arabischen Literatur, II, 122 (Citta del V aticano
1947, Studi e Testi, 133): A church and pohtical h istory {k. at-TaM h) in Sb ath , F ihrist,
trem ely valuable source of cultural information. It is, however, 2427 (13th cent.), and a universal h istory {k. al-Azm ina Book of T im es ), ibid. 2428 (from
the year 1397), are said to h ave as their respective authors each an unnam ed N estorian of
' Cf. above, p. io f . the ninth ce n tu ry. Xo com m ent on this statem ent is as y et possible.
- Cf. above, p. 1 14 f. Cf. also the M as'udi passage, referred to above, p. 108.
138 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O R LD H IST O R IES 139

who does not w ant to build on sand must know the basis {ad) of his through fi-hd in his treatm ent of the caliphs. Although the inspira
particular science. He refers to Plato and A ristotle as the authors tion for using the annalistic form m ay have come to the Mushms
who in their books on logic had stressed the need for such knowl from Christian sources,^ Christian historical w riting in A rabic ante
edge of basic principles. It thus comes as a great disappointm ent dated the victo ry of the annahstic form in Muslim historiography
when E utychius has nothing more to say about the basis of his and conservatively retained a preference for a form of presentation
toriography than th at it is the Torah and similar sound books. ^ that was older and more genuinely Arabic. Moreover, as long as
The work, however, contains a skilfully synchronized pre-Islam ic Oriental Christianity remained strong, Christian writers hardly
history which is circumscribed b y the Christian outlook of the cherished the thought of using the Muslim era in their historical
author (Biblical history, Alexander, the Diadochi, Romans, Chris works. The form influence, however, could not entirely be avoided,
tianity, Byzantines, and Persians). His religious interest expresses and when an author hke Michael Syrus, in his Syriac history,
itself in excursuses against the Manichaeans and Nestorians as well arrived at Muslim history, his presentation becam e strongly an
as references to events of significance in the history of the Church, nalistic. E ventu ally, also Christian A rabic writers, such as al-Makin,^
such as synods and appointments of ecclesiastic dignitaries. em ployed the annahstic principle of arranging historical data.
Strangely enough, the hijrah constitutes a division of history for From the tenth century, we also have some references to a world
the Christian author, but nothing is said about the life of Mu history w ritten b y a Jewish author. The Ta^rih of Sa'ad yah Gaon is
hammad. The arrangement of later history strictly follows the said to have comprised the period from God's creation of heaven
reigns of the caliphs, whose biographies do not differ in form from and earth to our days and to have been based upon the historical
w hat is found in Muslim histories. The m ain substance of the his inform ation of the Israelites .3 However, if S a ad yah s lost w ork is
torical narrative, however, is provided b y Church history or b y adequately represented b y the tw elfth-century Oxford Anonymous,^
events concerning the Christians. R arely do we find a reference to it was b y no means a full-fledged history. It was hardly more than
rem arkable natural phenomena or to a political event th at did an expanded version of Jewish calendar chronology in the style
not im m ediately concern the authors coreligionists. The contin best known from the Seder ''61dm, which, incidentally, was also used
uation of E utychius b y Y a h y a b. S a 'id al-Antaki, about a hun b y Muslim scholars in some form or other possibly from th e early
dred years later, closely followed E utychiu s' w ork but showed ninth century on.^ The Anonymous is restricted to historical events
much more interest in and understanding of general history,
1 Cf. above, p. 74 f f .
especially in its treatm ent of the Fatimids.^ ^ Cf. G . G r a f , Geschichte der christlichen arabischen Literatur, II, 348 ff. (Citta del V aticano
It is worth noting that, if we except A gapius tendency to use the 1947, Studi e Testi, 133). F or al-M akins continuator, al-M ufaddal b. A b i 1-Fada^il, cf.
ibid., 450.
in this year' of annalistic historiography, these Christian authors 3 Cf. A . M a r x , in Revue des Etudes Juives, L V I II , 299-301 (1909)-
did not use the annalistic arrangement. Nor do we find it in later * Cf. A. N e u b a u e r . Medieval Jewish Chronicles, II, 89-110 (Oxford 1895, Anecdota
Oxoniensia).
Christian historians, such as B utrus ar-Rahib (thirteenth century) ^ Cf. al-Biruni, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 75 and 78 S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1 9 2 3 ) , and Istanbul
who treated B iblical history, the history of the Romans, MusHms, ms. ^Uiniimi 4667, p. 127.
A n anonym ous chronicle (supposedly of the ninth or tenth century) contains repeated
U m ayyads, Abbasids, Fatim ids, and, at the end, the history of the references to a Jewish chronicle in the sty le of the Christian Chronikon which dealt w ith
Patriarchs of A lexandria in a series of very brief biographies w ith the h istory of the world, the great events, and the religious festivals. Its A ram aic title,
which is corrupt in the source, m ay have been Husbdn dlmd. It has been suggested th at
a synchronistic hst of dates in the margin. B ar Hebraeus, too, who this w ork was identical w ith (?, rather, sim ilar to) the Seder 'oldm, and its translator th at
in his A rabic History of Dynasties displayed an interest in cultural A h m ad b. ^Abdallah b. Sallam (Salam ?) who is known from the Fihrist, 33 (Cairo 1348 = 22
F l u g e l ) . T his w ould place the translation of the w ork in the time of Harrin ar-R asid (?).
questions and did not refrain from including a biography of Mu Cf. G . R o t h s t e i n , Der Kanon der biblischen BUcher bei den babylonischen Nestorianern im
hammad, shows only a few instances of the annalistic coordination 9./10. Jhdt., in Z D M G , L V I I I , 658 (1904), and W . B a c h e r , ibid., 774 f- A ll this, including
th e early date of the w ork, how ever, is v ery uncertain.
1 E d . L . C h e ik h o , in CSCO , Scriptores Arabici, Series III , to m u s V I, i , 4 f. (Beirut- F or another, unidentified w ork on Jew ish h istory which w as used b y H am zah al-Isfahani
Paris 1905-6). and whose author is said to have been a certain Finhas b. B a ta ( ? ) al-'Ib rani, cf. E .
2 A l-A n ta k is w ork (cf. G A L Supplement I, 228) ended with the year 458/1065-66, cf. M i t t w o c h , D ie literarische Tdtigkeit Hamza al-Isbahdnts, in M itteilungen des Seminars
C . C a h e n , L a Chrcnique abregee d al-^Azmn, in J A , C C X X X , 353 ff. (1938). fiir orientalische Sprachen, Westas. Studien, X I I , 124, n. 6 (1909).
140 M IX E D FORMS OF HISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O RLD H IST O R IES 141

of im m ediate Jewish interest and devotes m ost of its space to the of the past and some occasional sad reflections about the sufferings
period from the creation of the world to the end of Jewish poUtical of the present. A t times, it lost itself in the adm iration of the his
hfe. L ittle more than one page is needed to deal w ith the last torical greatness of Islam.^
Jewish kings in the ^Iraq, w ith the inclusion of the names of some The intellectual developm ent of the tenth century led to the
Jewish kings in Syria-Palestine, the Diadochi, Rom ans, Persian trium ph of a typ e of thinking which found its m ost characteristic
kings, and Res galutas. A nd just one-quarter of a page is considered expression in Ism a'ilism but, as a religion of the educated, probably
sufficient to give all the necessary inform ation about the remaining extended far beyond the active adherents of the political theories
Persian kings, to refer briefly to the Arabs, and to m ention some of the extrem ist i ah. In the series of great Muslim world histories,
more Res galutas of the most recent years. th at typ e of thinking is best represented b y the Tajdrib al~mnam
It seems a fact that the Jews in the m edieval Mushm environ of the Persian nationalist philosopher M iskawayh. H e states th a t
m ent did not produce any substantial historical works. And, to some he found the historical sources to be full of inform ation w hich
degree, this statem ent is also true w ith regard to m edieval Jew s in w as like entertaining stories and idle ta lk [hurdfdt], which had no
Christian territory. M. S t e in s c h n e id e r , in the introduction of his use except m aking one fall asleep. ^ M iskawayh w anted the ex
Geschichtsliteratur der Ju den} realized the necessity of m aking a periences of the nations to serve as examples for the reader. Thus,
distinction betw'een historical w orks and historical sources. N ever he had to ehminate such idle ta lk .' W hat he m eant b y it becomes
theless, most of the books he m entions in his work belong to the clear on the following page of his w ork: I am beginning w ith
latter category. The number of real historical works is very small, and reporting the historical inform ation about the tim e after the Deluge,
subsequent research has not changed, and will not change the picture. because the inform ation about earlier events can be little trusted,
The Anonymous, as insignificant a com pilation as it is, m ay help to and also because th at inform ation is in no w ay useful for accom plish
explain the lack of a historical literature among m edieval Jews. It ing the professed purpose of the w ork (namely, to mention experi
fades out as soon as the historical presentation reaches the end of ences th at m ight serve as examples). For the very same reason,
Jewish political independence. The existence of an active interest in we did not undertake to report the miracles and political achieve
historical production among Jews depended upon their having a ments of the prophets, because the people of our time can gain
share in political life. The Christian historical literature in A rabic experience for the tasks th ey will face in the future only from hum an
points to the identical phenomenon. O nly because Christians as a behavior th at is unconnected w ith anything m iraculous. For this
group enjoyed considerable political independence at certain times reason, the idle ta lk of the prophets one cannot fail to be
and in certain Muslim regions, much more so than the num erically reminded of the supposedly extrem ist Si'ah literature on the char
g reatly inferior Jews, do we find a Christian historical literature latanry of the Prophets which tried to destroy the belief in proph-
which then m ostly deals w ith Christian affairs. Muslim histories ethood and revealed religion was barred from M iskaw ayhs history.
were read b y Jews and found their w ay into Jewish libraries,^ but A nd not only the history of the pre-Islam ic prophets but also the
Jewish historical consciousness in Islam, lacking the nourishment religious history of Muhammad w as entirely om itted. H is political
of political independence, remained restricted to the proud m emory history is briefly treated like a rather insignificant incident in
^ F raukfu rt a.M. 1905. Cf. also idem, D ie arabische Literatur der Juden, X X f. (F rankfurt w orld history. The oldest recorded history, according to the author,
a.M. 1 9 02 ) . S t e i n s c h n e i d e r referred to Maimon,icles low opiuiou of A ra b ic historical, is th at of the Persian kings. Therefore, he starts w ith them and
genealogical, and other adab works. M aim onides judgm ent, however, reflects the attitu d e
of the philosopher and theologian rather than th at of the Jew . w ith evident enthusiasm for his subject m atter leads their history
^ Cf. the History of al-M ahdt and the History of the ^Abbdsids and Barmecides, in a ca ta
logue of books published b y J. M a n n , Text and Studies in Jewish History and Literature, 1 Cf. above, p. 46 f. It is a confirm ation of the above statem ent th at some Jewish converts
I, 652, 658 (Cincinnati 1931). T h e of Alexander (op. cit., I, 654) m ay be another sign to Islam becam e fam ous historians, especially Fadlallah Kasid-ad-din (cf. W . F i s c h e l ,
of Jewish interest in m oralizing history. Th e existence of a Turkish fragm ent of an ancient tiher Kaschid ad-Daulas ji'ulischen Urspriing, in Monatsschrift fUr Geschichte und Wissenschaft
O ttom an anonym ous chronicle in Spanish H ebrew script is interesting, b u t the scribe
des Judentums, L X X X I , 1 4 5 - 5 3 , i Q 3 7 )-
m ay not have been en tirely the product of a Muslim environm ent, cf. F . B a b i n g e r , in 2 M iskaw ayh, Tajdrib al-umam. I, 4 C a e t a n i (Leiden-London 1909, A'. / . W. Gibb Mem.
Archil' Orientdlni IV , 108-11 {1932). Cf. also below, p. 180, n. 2.
Series, 7).
142 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R ITIN G W O RLD H IST O R IES 143

down to the end of the Persian empire. Rem arks about the B a b y The appearance for a brief moment in Islam of w hat m ight be
lonians, Greeks, Christians, Byzantines, and pre-Islam ic A rabs called true historiography is explained b y the fact th a t during the
are occasionally interspersed whenever the course of Persian history tenth century a class of men, such as, for instance, the Sabis,
seemed to require it. The authors flair for the interesting in litera who embodied the cultural progress achieved during the preceding
ture did not fail him when he came to Islam ic history. If he re century, became the leading element in political life and had a true
stricted himself to abridge the te x t of at-T abaris History b y dis inside knowledge of the historical processes they were w riting about.
carding the chains of transm itters and shortening the n arrative, These men were also fortunate in th at th ey hved in a time where the
as a modern scholar maintains, ^ he deserves praise rather than vestiges of Islam s political greatness were still visible in the crum
censure. For the early years of Islam, he also did the sensible bling A bbasid realm. It is tem pting though idle to speculate that,
thing and dispensed w ith the annahstic division. 2 H is narrative if men of their cultural background and position in pohtics had been
of the events of the first seventy years of the fourth century of the possible in the first century of the Abbasids, a truly great his
hijrah, due to his own merit or b y virtue of the sources he used, toriography m ight have arisen in Islam.
represents the highw ater m ark for historical w riting in annahstic W ith the early eleventh century, the period of historiographical
form.=^ U nim portant m atters are h ardly ever considered. Miska- experim entation came to an end. The downfall was rather sudden
w ayh displays a keen grasp of w hat is historically essential, and the though not unexpected. A great change had taken place in the
im portant events are intelligently and coherently presented. cultural clim ate through the introduction of the madrasah system
A t-T a Mibis ^Gurar f i siyar al-muluk wa-ahbdrihim was probably as a means of re-establishing the predominance of orthodox Islam
quite similar in some respects to the Tajdrib of his contem porary, over secularizing and S iah tendencies. i The next of the preserved
M iskawayh. A t-T a ahbi certainly did not have the historical insight great A rabic world histories, Ibn al-Jaw zis Muntazam, reached the
and the feeling for history which distinguished M iskawayh. H ow lowest level to which Muslim historiography, in its main represen
ever, the Gurar is preserved in too fragm entary a fashion to allow tatives,^ ever sank. The Muntazam represents a transitional stage
a definite judgm ent concerning its historical quahty. The Islam ic in which theology Ibn al-Jaw zis m etier had not y et fully
history down to the early Abbasids was, among other sources, estabhshed its hold over historical writing, though the political
based upon at-Tabari, although the annalistic arrangement was interest was waning. Ibn al-Jaw zi introduced a sharp division
not used and a division according to the reigns of the caliphs was between events and obituary notices. H e placed the latter after
followed, w ith special subsections devoted to the characterization the events of each year and arranged them alphabetically. H is
of wazirs and some other great men of the time. The narratives separation of the obituary notices from the historical contents
which are m ainly concerned with the east of the A bbasid empire was nothing basically new. O bituary notices had originally been
are coherent and interesting. The cultural interest of the author, a historical subject to be treated b y itself, and we have, for instance,
which is indicated in the title, dominates his treatm ent of pre- annalistically arranged obituaries placed at the end of the descrip
Islam ic history. Wise sayings of caliphs and other outstanding tion of each cahphal reign in Ahm ad b. A bi T ah irs History of Bag
individuals as well as edifying and instructive stories are care dad.^ However, the consistent treatm ent of the biographies in this
fully noted. particular manner seems to be Ibn al-Jaw zis merit. Biographies
intended to serve the purpose of theological personahty criticism ^
1 E . B l o c h e t , in J R A S , 1912, 1128.
were the authors m ain concern. E ven when he reached his own
^ S in ce th e p a r t o f th e w o rk fro m th e b a tt le o f Siffin, to th e y e a r 199 o f th e h ijra h is
n o t y e t p ubU sh ed , it is n o t p o ssib le to s a y w h en th e a n n a lis tic d ivisio n sets in.
Cf. M iskaw ayh s statem ent {anno 340) as to the sources of his inform ation. It explains ^ Cf. H. A. R. G i b b , in Cahiers dHistoire Mondiale, I, 54 ff. ( i 953 54)-
w h y his w ork tends to be a local h isto ry of M esopotam ia and Iran rather than a true 2 It is. of course, not d ifficult to find m uch poorer products am ong minor historical
universal history. com pilations.
* Cf. above, p. 92, n. 2. In addition to Z o t e n b e r g s edition and the Paris m anuscript 3 I, 348 f. K e l l e r (Leipzig 1908), for the reign of al-M a mun.
on which th at edition is based, I consulted the O xford m anuscript, Bodleian ms. or. D O rv. * Cf. the introduction of the Muntazam, reproduced b y O. S p i e s , Beitrdge zur arabischen
X , 2 (542) (Uri 130). Literaturgeschichte, 61 f. (Leipzig 1932, A K M , ig, 3).
144 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O RLD H IST O R IES 145

time in the historical presentation, insignificant events, such as opinion of the author is such news as the demise of famous per
extraordinary natural phenomena, are prevalent, and the more sonalities, religious developm ents, including measures concerning
im portant happenings are given rather scant attention. Strangely Christians and Jews, strange births, earthquakes, diseases, the
enough, Ibn al-Jaw zi himself labored under the illusion th at he opening of a new hospital, a severe unseasonal cold, the eruption
was reporting only im portant m atters, while other historians had of a star, a great fire, the appearance of the D aylam Turks, fam
filled their books w ith m aterial which it would have been better ines, the deaths and successions of caliphs, the bigam y of a
to disregard. 1 woman, and cases of inflation and deflation. A rapid survey of
Ibn al-Jaw zis pre-Islam ic history, to judge from the Sudur pre-Islam ic history m akes the beginning, rounding out a picture of
al-*-uqud,^ was largely concerned w ith cosmography, geography and history propagated b y m any mediocre reference works and b y
Bibhcal history down to Jesus. It continued w ith a brief section on occasional reference works of a better quality, such as ad-D ahabis
the Persian kings and a bare reference to the existence of other abridgm ent of his History of Islam, entitled Duwal al-Isldm. B rief
non-Muslim nations. A strict annalistic arrangement governs the outlines of world history m ay also function as introductions to
later history, counting the years from M uhamm ads birth to the detailed histories of their authors own times, in the intention of
hijrah, and then the hijrah years. A m onthly arrangement w ithin placing contem porary history, as it were, in the proper perspective.
the years is attempted.^ That, in spite of everything, Ibn al-Jaw zi In the early thirteenth century, al-H am awi thus prefaced his
was receptive to the significance of historical forces is shown b y preserved history (which was preceded b y a longer version not
the fact th at he realized the importance of Ism a'ilism in his tim e preserved) w ith a list of pre-Islam ic prophets, as required b y the
and therefore went beyond at-Tabari in his rather detailed descrip Muslim view , ^ a few remarks about Muhammad, and hsts of the
tion of the Qarm atians in connection w ith the year 278/891-92, in U m ayyad , Abbasid, and F atim id caliphs, followed b y an annal
which he first m entions them.^ It m ay be noted that his great ad istic survey beginning w ith the first year of the hijrah, which be
m iration for historical knowledge also shows itself in his Kitdh al- comes grad u ally more and more detailed on approaching the time
M udhiL This w ork contains a chapter on basic historical data of the author.
{^uyun at-tawdrih), starting w ith remarks on geography. In Ibn In this connection, another developm ent in the writing of univer
al-Jaw zis estimation, this chapter ranks w ith the basic data on the sal history m ay be mentioned, th at is, the use of tables as a form
Q ur an, Muhammad, the early Muslim scholars, and the A rabic of historical presentation [taqwim). This device was alw ays used
language. L ike them, historical knowledge provides the necessary b y chronographers and astronomers and taken over into the scientif
learned preparation for the composition of sermons on the va n ity ic discussion of chronology, as we find it in al-Birunis Atdr al-
of the world and the deceptive character of human ambitions.^ bdqiyah. Its practical educational value cannot have long remained
W ith Ibn al-Jawzi, we also encounter the skeleton-like handbook concealed to historians. However, the earliest available historical
of history th at gave all the inform ation desired to those who did taqwim dates from as late as the fourteenth century.^ Its sixteen
not have the tim e or patience to stu d y the original sources. The folios deal w ith the rulers of Islam. In separate columns, we find
Sudur aUHtqud, Ibn al-Jaw zis own abridgm ent of the Muntazam, inform ation about each rulers father and mother, his patronym ic,
is such a handbook. B rev ity is the keynote. H ardly more than one surname, year of birth, appointm ent as heir to the throne, length
happening is mentioned for each year. E vents of real historical ^ At-Ta^rth al-M ansuri, fol. 3b G r y a z n e v i c h ( M o s c o w i 9 6 0 ) , im m ed iately before a
la c u n a in the m anuscript.
importance find only very sporadic attention. W hat counts in the
^ W . B a r t h o l d , Turkestan down to the Mongol Invasion, 24 (London 1928, E . J . W. Gibb
M em. Series, N .S ., 5), refers to a.Ta^rth-i-mujadifal b y a certain A b u 1-Qasim M uham m ad b.
1 Cf. S p i e s , loc. cit. 'A li al-4 madi, who m ay have lived at the beginning of the tw elfth century, if not earlier,
^ Cf. a l s o S p i e s , loc. cit. and who certainly was earlier than the thirteenth century. According to the title, this m ust
^ Cf. J. UE So.MOGYi, in J R A S , 1032, 59 f. have been a h istory in tabu lar form.
^ Cf. Muntazam, V, 2, i i o - i q (H yderabad 1357-58). A t-T ab ari, Ta^rth, III, 2124-30. For the gen ealogical-tabu lar representation of universal history, sec above, p. 9 7 f.
A l-M u d his, 57-70 (Bagdad 1348). Cf., further, J. S o m o g y i , Ibn al-Jau'zVs School of Cf. also Ibn Farigun, A rab ic texts, below, p. 459. For O ttom an calendars, cf. above,
Historiography, in Acta Or. Academiae Scientiarmn Himgaricae, V I, 207-14 (1956). p. n o , n. 3.

R o se n th a l, H istory of Muslim Historiography 10


146 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O R LD H IST O R IES 147

of life, date of death, length of reign, cause of death, and place of in 491/1098 as p a it of a three-pronged a tta ck of the Christian
burial.1 Another, later instance of the transposition of annalistic world against Islam : in Spain, in Sicily, and now in the heartland
w orld historiography into tabular form can be seen in a Turkish of Islam.^ Or he ventures an explanation of the observation th at
taqwim b y H ajji Halifah. It starts out w ith a discussion of the various the founders of dynasties usually are not succeeded b y their own
o f f s p r i n g . 2 A t another time, he reflects, as do other historians,
eras, followed b y a presentation in the form of tables of universal
history, first according to the years of the w orld and then accord upon the greatness of the calam ity of the T atar invasion.^ In this
ing to the years of the hijrah. The years are further grouped in connection, he was surpassed in historical and psychological in
decades (following ad-D ahabi?), and, for each year, the most sight b y Ibn A b i U saybi'ah , who knew that there alw ays was a
im portant event is reported. ^ greater calam ity, a bigger even t. ^ On one occasion, Ibn al-A tir
Ibn al-Jaw zis grandson wrote the Mir''at az-zamdn, a universal even defies the annalistic arrangement, in order to give a coherent
history, which in its pre-Islamic part reflects the richness and report on four years of crusader trouble which began with the year
cultural curiosity of al-Masudi, and in its Islam ic part gives much 614/1217-18.^ H owever, in some essential respects, he, too, does not
fuller historical inform ation than Ibn al-Jawzi. A t the same time, rise above the ordinary level of the annalistic compiler. H e often
the w ork which among the ordinary annahstic treatm ents of relies exclusively upon one source. In the case of inform ation derived
world history in Islam deserves to be called the best was in the from at-Tabari, he tries to m ake up deficiencies from other works.
m aking, the K am il f i t-ta^rih b y Ibn al-Atir. For the vast ground On some rare occasions, he expressly mentions his use of more than
it covers, the K am il is rem arkably well balanced. The pre-Islam ic one source. He often shortens hs particular source in a rather
h istory deals w ith the creation of the world, Bibhcal history (which neghgent and subjective m anner. On the whole, the Kam il, in
is synchronized w ith that of the Persians), and the stories of form ative as it is, is not very rehable, but it remains a great and
Christians, saints, and pre-Islam ic Arabs. The life of Muhammad rem arkable achievem ent.
is quite long but not unproportionately so, as it occupies roughly T h e world-wide repercussions of the rise of the Mongols brought
somewhat less than one-twentieth of the whole work. The author an increased interest in the history of non-Muslim peoples as well
expresses his regret th at someone in Mosul must necessarily miss as the opportunity to satisfy it. The m ost original w ork in this re
up on events of the remote regions of east and w est. ^ E ven w ithout spect w as done b y Fadlallah Rasid-ad-din. In his Jdmi^ at-tawdrih,
this express statem ent, it is fully obvious th at at least he tried he included sketches of Chinese, Jewish, Indian, and W estern Euro
hard to strike an even balance between events from all parts of the pean history, the last one being based on a L atin chronicle close to or
Muslim world, even if he was not uniform ly successful in this identical w ith that of M artinus Oppaviensis (Polonus) (d. 1278);
respect. In addition, he tried to do justice to strange happenings while M artinus treated first the Popes and then the Emperors down
and the biographies of im portant individuals, while not putting to his own time, the two lists were merged b y the Persian author.
undue stress on them. A n up-to-date presentation of the geographical features of W estern
Ibn al-A tirs historical treatm ent gets more detailed when he ^ o p . cit., X , 112.
reaches his own time, but again he keeps w ithin the proper limits. Op. cit., X I , 154 f., anno 564, quoted b y B a yb a rs al-M ansuri, Zubdat al-fikrah, cf.
B odleian ms. Pocock 324 (Uri 704), anno 564.
He occasionally if rarely shows ghmpses of true historical insight. Op. cit., X I I , 164, anno 617.
For instance, he describes the capture of Antioch b y the Crusaders * Ibu A b i Usaybi'^ah, I, 233 M u l l e r . Th e author was b elitthn g the com plaints which
the physician SaMd b. Bisr had m ade about conditions in the tenth/eleventh century. On
1 Ms. Cairo T a rih 86 m. In the m anuscript, the taqwim is followed b y A bu 1-F id a s the fallacious concept of the good old d a y s, cf. also al-M aqrizis Igdtat al-ummah. ed.
M . M. Z i Y A D A H and J. a s - S a y y a l (2nd ed., Cairo 1957).
Tibr al-masbuk. B oth works seem to have been composed b y the same author, b u t the
K a m il, X l l , 147.
question of their authorship needs closer investigation. Th e Tibr ends ten years after Abu
Op. cit., X I , 170, anno 568.
1-F id a s death.
2 Paris ms. persan suppl. 1739 ( B l o c h e t 2293); cf. G A L , II, 248; Supplement II, 636;
F or Ibn al-A tirs lelation to at-T ab ari, cf. C. B r o c k e l m a n n , Das Verhdltnis von Ibn-
al-A tirs K a m il fit-ta^rih zu Tabaris Ahbdr er rusul U'al muluk. D issertation Strasbourg 1890
S t o r e y , Persian Literature, II, 128 f . ; K dtip Qelebi, hayati ve eserleri hakkinda incelemeler,
(not seen); for his relation to Ibn al-Qalanisi, cf. H. A. R. G ibb, Notes on the History of the
48 ff., lo i ff. (A nkara 1 9 3 7 ) -
E a rly Crusades in B S O S , V II , 739-54 (1933-35). Cf. G i b b , in Speculum X X V 49-72 (1950).
3 Kam il, I, 3 (Cairo 1301).
148 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G W O R LD H IST O R IES 149

Europe precedes the historical outline. In this w ay, Rasid-ad-din In addition to this tw ofold m ark which theology impressed upon
produced a true world history. 1 the pre-Islam ic and early Islam ic part of universal histories, theolog
From the thirteenth century on, there was a steady flow of A rab ic ical influence also showed itself in the treatm ent of later Muslim
and Persian universal histories. Most of them were distinguished history. The preponderance of biographies becam e more and more
m erely b y the different emphasis th ey placed upon the one or other pronounced. In both Ibn K a tir and ad-Dahabi, th ey occupy a large
of the various components of Muslim world historiography. W her part of the contents. Ibn K a tir did not adopt the alphabetical
ever the theological interest dom inated h istoiical writing, a quite arrangem ent of the biographies which he found in one of his main
notable developm ent took place. Pre-Islam ic history becam e pre sources, the Muntazam, and he avoided to some degree the pedantic
dom inantly a collection of Mushm traditions concerning the creation separation of events from biographies. Ad-D ahabi, on the other
of the world and B iblical history. The biography of M uhammad, hand, alw ays kept the tw o subjects strictly apart. If the O xford
the treatm ent of which can serve, as has been shown, as an indica m anuscripts of the History of Islam represent the authors inten
tion of the historian's intellectual outlook, was expanded beyond tion,^ he showed some vacillation in the manner in which he arranged
any reasonable limits. A typical representative of this tendency is events and biographies in his work. In the first decades, ^ the
Ibn K a tir s Biddy ah wa-n-nihdyah.^ Or another w ay was found. biographies precede the events. Later, all biographies, alphabeti
Pre-Islam ic history was unim portant for theology, and the biog cally arranged, are placed at the end of each decade. Again, we
raphy of Muhammad was a sacred subject to be treated b y itself. find the events of a fifty-year period treated together and followed
The result was works such as the History of Ibn A b i d-dam (d. b y the biographies for the whole period. These biographies are then
642/1244),^ a l-K u tu b is (d. 764/1363) '"Uyun at-Tawdnh, or al- arranged annahstically and, within the individual years, alphabeti
Y M i'is (d. 768/1367) Mif^dt al-jandn, all of which begin w ith year cally. Moreover, there is a superimposed arrangement according to
one of the hijrah. There also were comprehensive dynastic histories decades and, at the end of each decade, there follow obituary notices
which started w ith the first caliph, such as Ibn D uqm aqs (d. 809/ of men whose exact date of death w ithin the particular decade is not
1407) Jawhar at-tamin f i strut al-hulafd^ wa-s-saldtin. These works known. From the end of the tw elfth century on, the events of each
m ight be called truncated world histories. There also existed year are followed b y a list of those born in th at particular year.^ A nd
occasional sham world histories, th at is, works deahng w ith for the last decades of the seventh/thirteenth century, the History o f
some hm ited historical subject but provided w ith world historical Islam, as we know it, contains only biographies. It is not only the
introductions.^ large number of biographies which is so conspicuous but also their
1 Cf. K . J a h n , Histoire Universelle de Rastd al-dtn . . . I, H istoire des Francs (Leiden 1951),
and above, p. 81. Pu blication of Rasid-ad-dins w ork has been undertaken in m an y different length, especially in the case of persons who seemed im portant
places. Cf. S t o r e y , Persian Literature, Section II, 72 ff., 1231 f. For the first p art, the from the religious point of view.
Ta^rih-i-Odzdnt (above, p. 105, n. 2), cf. the references in K . J a h n s p a rtia l edition (The
H ague 1957), covering pp. 739-838 of the edition Teheran 1338/1959. O ther sections have transferred to litera ry sub jects th at had on ly a slight relationship w ith history. T h e awd^il,
been edited b y A. A x e s , such as the section on the Saljuq s (A nkara i960). A m odern A rab ic the first in ventors or the things in ven ted or done first, alw ays had a certain historical
translation of Q u a t r e m e r e s edition, covering pp. 1-20 and 677-838 of the Teheran edition, interest (we find them , for instance, m entioned, in al-Q uda4 , ^Uyun al-ma^drif, Bodleian
was published in Cairo, n. y. A n oth er edition began to appear in the U S S R in 1965. Cf. ms. or. Pocock 270, Uri 865, fol. 54a, and already in our earliest historians, such as al-
also K . J a h n , Rashid a l-D in s History of India (The H ague 1965), the source of which B alad u ris Ansdb, life of Y a z id II). Therefore, it is not surprising to find the scheme of
was the B a ksh i Karnalashri. universal h istory applied to a w ork on the firsts, the M ahdsin al-wasd^il b y as-ibli.
2 A lthough the even ts of the Resurrection were alw ays considered b y Muslims part of The w ork starts w ith the awa^il of creation, the awa^il of M ecca and the Ka'-bah, then those
history and were, therefore, included in historical works such as al-M utahhars Beginning from A d am down to A braham and Isma'^il, those of prophets, kings, and A rab lords, of
and History, the addition of a special second part dealing w ith the E n d {nihdyah) was a M uham m ad and the men around him , the awd^il of Islam and the Islam ic religious law , of
sign of growing theological influence. Th e publication of the N ihdyah which was announced nam es and governorships, of chess, of the U m ayyad s and 'A b b asids, and, after some u n
at the end of the fourteenth part of the Cairo edition of the Biddyah apparently has not yet classified awa^il, those of the L ast D a y and the w orld to come (Phot. Cairo T a rih 5 557,
m aterialized. F or m anuscripts of that part in Istanbul, cf. O. S p i e s , Beitrdge zur arabischen fol. 11 a). V ice versa, the awd^il of each ruler of the past constitute the introduction of the
Literaturgeschichte, 79 (Leipzig 1932, A K M , 19, 3).
annalistic h istory of more m odern times in al-M aqrizis Suluk (Vol. I, Cairo 1934)-
^ Ibn A b i d-dains preserved w ork (Bodleian ms. Marsh 60 [Uri 728]) is a brief annalistic 1 For the Istan bul autograph of the w ork, cf. O. S p i e s , op. cit., 70. F or the O xford mss.,
history startin g w ith the life of the Prophet and going down to the y ear 628/1230, cf.
below , p. 445, n. 4. (The w ork is now in course of publication, Cairo 1367 ff.)
G A L , I, 346, and L I , 2nd ed., s.v. Ibn A b i 1-Dam.
* Cf. above, p. 85.
^ B u t cf. also above, p. 145. The scheme of universal historiography was occasionally
^ Cf. above, p. 102.
150 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G
LOCAL H IST O R IES 151

than annalistic historiography. There were m an y minor variations.


U niversal historiography thus lost the power to give a well-
Genetically, however, two main strains of local or regional historical
rounded picture of the world which it had possessed for m any cen
writing can be distinguished. T h ey will be briefly referred to as
turies and which was curtailed only b y the circum stance th at for
secular local historiography and theological local historiography.
most of the tim e the historians knowledge of events of the
Secular local historiography in Islam had some pre-Islam ic
non-Muslim p art of the world w as extrem ely scant. T he Muslim
antecedents. T h ey came from an area which, in view of its geo
approach to the w riting of universal history alw ays offered m any
graphical and cultural situation, m ight have served as the m eeting
inducements to historians to be superficial, to copy their sources
ground where Muslims could have become acquainted w ith this typ e
m echanically, to prefer quantity to quality. B u t it also represented
of hterature. Thus, we find th at loannes Malalas had at his disposal
a kind of universal historical consciousness which is one of the
a history of Antioch. He also seems to have used a history of Con
first necessary stages on the road tow ard a tru ly hum an concept of
the world. stantinople. ^ Syriac literature knows a brief history of the foun
dation of Rom e ascribed to the historian D iodes, who lived in the
3 L O C A L H IS T O R IE S third century B. C.^ A rabic literature has some local histories of
Eastern Christian origin. A m ong them, there is a fantastic descrip
The occupation w ith local history ^has at all times been a favorite
tion of Rom e ^ and a history of the foundation of Antioch. The
literary expression of group consciousness. The strong attachm ent
latter includes an account of the buildings, pagan temples, sources,
th a t binds hum an beings to the place where th ey were born was
etc., of the city and its history in the time of Jesus and the Apostles.'*
felt and expressed b y all the various population groups which
A H istory of Antioch b y some Christian was copied b y the sarif
inhabited the Muslim realm. A good part of the eariiest local
Idris b. Hasan b. A li al-Idrisi, the historian, in whose m anuscript
historiography in Islam grew out of theologico-juridical consider
Ibn al-A dim read it. The w ork appears to have been a truly
ations. Nevertheless, local pride was behind the discussions of the
historical treatm ent of the subject, but the tim e of its composition
scholars. Non-existence of works on local history was considered as
and its authorship are entirely uncertain. A description of Con
much a disgrace b y as-Sallami in H urasan ^as it was b y Ibn H azm in
stantinople, which is preserved in m anuscript, was certainly no
Spain,^ and it remained axiom atic th at an author should not
detailed history of the city. Such a history did not exist as late
neglect the history of his own country while writing about another
as the seventeenth century, and it probably was never written,
one.^ L ove for ones c ity as the incentive to w rite a w ork on local
history was expressly mentioned for the first time in al-M afarruhis ^ Cf. A . F r e u n d , Beitrdge zur antiochenischen und zur konstantinopolitanischen Stadt-
chronik (Jena 1882).
Mahdsin Ishahdn in eleventh-century Iran.^ From then on, this ^ Cf. A. B a u m s t a k k , Geschichte der syrischen Literatur, 171 (Bonn 1922). Cf. also
is a recurrent m otif in local histories. W . H. P. H a t c h , A n Album o f Dated Syriac M anuscripts, pi. L X V I (Boston 1946).
^ Cf. I. G u i d i , L'E uropa occidentale negli antichi geografi arabi, in Florilegium M . de
Successive authors on the history of a particular locality in m any VogUe, 263-69 (Paris 1909).
cases followed almost slavishly the earhest standard w ork that * I used the tw o Bodleian m anuscripts of the w ork, ms. or. Selden super. 30 (Uri 432),
fols. 54a-7ob, and Laud or. 30 (Uri 870). F or other m anuscripts of the descriptions of Rome,
dealt w ith th at locality. B u t apart from this, local historiography A ntioch, and Constantinople, cf. G . L e v i d e l l a V i d a , Elenco dei manoscritti arabi Islam ici
left considerable freedom to the individual inclinations of the della Biblioteca Vaticana, uo. 286 (Citta del V aticano 1935, Studi e Testi, 67); G . G r a f ,
Geschichte der christlichen arabischen Literatur, III , 155-57. T he h istory of A n tioch w as
historian and presents a greater va riety of form and contents published from the V atican m anuscript b y I. G u i d i , in Rendiconti, R. Accad. dei Lincei,
Cl. di scienze mor., stor. efilo L , V , V I (1897), 137-61. D. S. M a r g o l i o u t h com pared the v ery
^ F or some additional inform ation, cf. iH dn 121-35, below, p. 457 ff.
different m anuscript Laud. or. 30. in J R A S , 1898, 157-69; cf. also the unpublished doctoral
^ Cf. IHdn, 39 f., below, p. 322.
dissertation (Yale U n iversity, 1932) b y W . F. S t i n e s p r i n g .
Cf. Ibn H azm s re p ly to the letter which al-H asan b. M uham m ad b. A h m ad b. ar-R abib
^ Bugyat at-talab, phot. Cairo Ta^rih 1566, pp. 158 and 160. F or the 5 a rf/al-Id risi, cf. also
al-Q ayraw an i had addressed to Ibn H azm s cousin, A b u 1-Mugirah ^Abd-al-Wahhab b.
a l-'Im a d al-Isfahani, Haridat al-qasr (E gyptian poets). I, 190, 201, 212 (Cairo 1370/1951);
A hm ad, and in which he com plained about the lack of historical works b y Spaniards dealing
A b u Sam ah, Rau'datayn, I, 130 ff. (Paris 1898, Recueil des historiens des Croisades, Historiens
with Spain, in al-M aqqari, Analectes, II, 108-21 D o z y and others (Leiden 1855-61);
or., 4). His w ork is also quoted in Ibn Saddad, al-AHdq al-hattrah, ms. Topkapu saray, R evan
C. P e l l a t , in Al-A ndalus, X I X . 53-102 (1954).
K osk 1564, fol. 12b, from Ibn al-'-Adim.
* T aqi-ad-din al-Fasi, al-'-Iqd at-tamin, introduction, with regard to Q utb-ad-din al-
Cf. H a jji H alifah, K a sf, II, 116 F l u g e l . Th e author informs us th at he knew a fifteenth-
Q astallan is w ork on the h istory of the Y em en.
cen tury Persian translation of a h istory of A y a S ofya and a Turkish translation made from
W ritten near the end of the century, cf. H. R i t t e r , in Oriens, IV , 191 (1951).
152 M IX E D FORMS OF HISTO RICAL W R IT IN G LOCAL H IST O R IES 153

at least not in the traditional form. A Syriac w ork entitled TasHt the authors son Ubaydallah,^ and the History of M osul b y A bu
(that is, Syriac tasHtd story, h istory ) containing inform ation Z a k a riya ' al-Azdi. A hm ad b. A bi Tah irs w ork was intended to be
on (Christian) M ayyafariqin was used b y Ibn al-Azraq (twelfth a history of the 'A bbasid caliphs th a t centered around their capital.
century) for his History of Mayydfdriqin.^ He had the w ork trans A s such, it was w^ell suited to take the place of a general history of
lated for him (orally, it seems) b y a Christian. the Muslim empire.^ A topographical chapter was added to the
The legendary histories of Rom e and A ntioch as well as the A rabic historical presentation, for we are told th at the Spaniard Ahm ad
description of Constantinople would not seem to be v e ry ancient. b. M uhammad ar-R azi wrote a description of Cordoba dealing
Th ey are preserved only in quite recent manuscripts. This, of course, w ith the sections {hitat) of the c ity and the residences of its distin
would not prove recent origin of the works. T h ey m ay have been guished inhabitants in the manner originated b y Ahm ad b. A bi
compiled, or translated into A rabic, at a com paratively early date. Tahir in the History {ahbdr) o f Bagdad. ^ The description of B agdad
This, however, cannot have been so early th a t these w orks m ight m ay have drawn h eavily on cultural and economic statistics. An
be assumed to have inspired the creation of Muslim local historiog approxim ate idea of the character of th at typ e of inform ation
raphy. Moreover, the preserved Christian Arabic local histories of m ay be gained from the preserved fragm ents of the works in praise
this type, as well as the Syriac and Greek works, show no real of B agdad b y tw o other authors of the ninth century, A hm ad b.
sim ilarity in either form or contents w ith later Mushm works. One a t-T ayyib as-Sarahsi and Y azd ja rd b. M ahbundad al-Kisrawi.^
more consideration would seem to speak against linking Muslim W hile there has never been any doubt about the secular character
secular local histories to Christian models The earliest known of Ibn A b i T ah irs work, al-A zd is History o f M osul is generally
M uslim w orks h ad their origin in Mesopotamia, and this typ e of described as a w ork on the hadit experts of th at city. Quo
local historiography seems to have originated there, and not in tations in other authors would seem to bear out the correctness
Syria, as one would expect in the case of Christian influence. of this description.^ However, the preserved part of the w ork
According to their form and contents, Muslim secular local histories tells another story. It contains an excellent annalistic history
seem to have originated as a specialized form of general historiog th at comprises the years 101-224 the hijrah. This history m ay
raphy. In their later development, th ey were influenced in some have constituted a separate part of one larger work, or it m ay have
w ay or other b y theological local historiography and b y m any been an independent w ork to which the Tabaqdt o f Hadit Scholars
different regional and cultural considerations. was the biographical companion volum e. The political events
From the Mesopotamia of the ninth and tenth centuries, large dealt w ith are of a general nature but th ey do have some con
parts of only two secular local histories are preserved,^ the History nection with Mosul. Particular attention is paid to the governors
o f Bagdad b y A hm ad b. A bi Tahir T ayfu r, which w as continued b y of the city and their exploits as well as the dates of death of scholars,
among whom there are not only Mawsilis. A l-A zdi displays a certain
the Persian translation. understanding for the importance of economic factors in history
Th e Turkish texts dealing w ith the h isto ry of Constantinople and A y a S o fya which
H ajji H alifah had in mind, were based upon B yzan tin e sources and, apparently, have ^ Cf. below, p. 462, n. 2.
n othing to do w ith the A rab ic w ork, cf. J. H. M o r d t m a n n , in his review of F . K r a e l i t z Cf. above, p. 81.
and P. W i T T E K (editors), M itteilungen zur osmanischen Geschichte (Vienna 1921-22), in Der ^ Cf. al-H um aydi, Jadwat al-Muqtabis, Bodleian ms. or. H unt. 464 (Uri 783), fol. 45a.
Islam , X I I I , 159 ff. (1923). Cf. also E l , 2nd ed., s.v. A y a Sofya. * Cf. above, p. 116, n. 3, and M. ^Awwad, in Revue de VAcademie arabe de Danias, X I X ,
1 Cf. the p artial edition of the w ork under the title Ta^rth al-Fdriqi b y B . 'A . "^Iw a d 322-31 (1944). ^Awwad prefers M ahm andar to M ahbundad. W e are not in a position to state
(A w a d ), 15 f. (Cairo 1379/1959). I do not know w hether the quotation(s) would perm it any how m uch historical inform ation these works contained and precisely in w hat form it w as
dating of the Syriac work. presented. T h e im portant fragm ent of Y a z d ja r d s Fadd^il Bagdad in H ilal b. al-M uhassin
2 I t m ay be added here th at the origin of theological local h istoriography in Islam , to be as-Sabi^s Rusum ddr al-hildfah, 18 ff. M. 'A w w a d (Bagdad 1383/1964), has been treated
described later on, precludes a n y thought of an influence b y these Christian works upon b y M. "^Awwad in a separate publication (B agd ad 1962).
th at branch of local historiography. Cf. below, p. 482, n. 3, ad iHdn, 133.
3 For the History o f al-Basrah b y Z a k a riy a b. Y a h y a as-Saji (below, p. 436, n. 5) which * I used the phot. Cairo Ta^rih 2475 (also T a ym u r T a M h 2303). T h e m anuscript was
seems to have contained predom inantly political and geographical inform ation, cf. V aq u t, w ritten b y Ibrahim b. Jama'-ah b. 'A ll in 654/1256. Cf. above, p. 121.
Mu'-jam, index W u s t e n f e l d , and F. J. H e e r , Die historischen mui ^eographischen Q udlen On p. 258 f. of the Cairo ms., the author sa y s; W e gave a fu ll account of the h istory
in Jdqfit's GeoiiraphiscJiein Wortcrbuch, 32 f. (Strassburg 1S98). [ahbdr] of al-M u'afa (b. 'Im ran) in the KUdh Tabaqdt al-mttha.dditin.''
154 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G LOCAL H IST O R IES 155

when he describes, for instance, the black m arket operations which authen ticity of the preserved tex t in general has been doubted.^
took place during a famine in the year 207/822-23.^ Some of the Since Ibn Zulaq wrote in the tenth century, we would expect to
information, it seems, has no obvious bearing upon Mosul, but there find a much better organization of the contents and fuller inform a
is little of th at and closer scrutiny m ay show th at it is necessary tion on classical A n tiq uity, if the w ork was in fact w ritten b y him.
background m aterial for the history of the city. According to the A s it is, a tw elfth-century date is more likely but not absolutely
author, he was the first to compile a history of Mosul. He explains certain. The w ork starts out, as any theological local history would,
his inability to check the correctness of the statem ent that al-Mahdi with references to E g y p t from the Q uran and the traditions, but
had appointed A hm ad b. Ism a'il b. A li governor of Mosul in 167/ it then goes on to discuss oriental-Hellenistic inform ation about
783-84, in these words: I did not compose this history from a E g y p t as the home of Greek philosophy and science. This discussion
readily available special work which I could have used for the is followed b y the history of E g y p t in pre-Islam ic days down to the
affairs of Mosul, but I collected (my material) from various books. Muslim conquest. Thereafter, E g y p ts Si'ah families and other
I m entioned w hat I found, and did not deviate from the tru th . ^ prominent E gyp tian Muslims are enumerated, and finally there are
The History of M osul b y the two H alidi brothers m ay have been notes on the topography of E gyp t, its agricultural and industrial
similar to A bu Zakariya^s work. To judge from a preserved frag products, and the calendar used there.
ment, the authors-poets placed Mosul in a wider geographical con The tradition of secular local historiography in E g y p t was
text, and thus they probably also included historical inform ation continued b y such authors as al-Musabbihi and Ibn Muyassar.
from beyond the confines of the city and its im m ediate surround A curious city history of A lexandria was w ritten b y M uhammad
ings.^ The same is likely to have been in the case w ith the eleventh- b. Qasim an-Nuwayri. The w^ork centers around an event of the
century History of M osul b y Muhammad b. A li as-Simsati.^ Ibn year 767/1365-66 and was inspired b y the struggle with the E uro
al-A tirs History of Mosul, which was not completed, followed pean Christians, as w as the case also w ith such works as the T m ad s
the great tradition of politically oriented local historiography.^ history of the conquest of Jerusalem, al-Fath al-Qussi, or A hm ad
A bout half a century before him, Ibn al-Azraq wrote his History of b. A bdallah b. A m irahs w ork on the conquest of Majorca, which
M ayydfdriqin which presented the history of the city from pre-Is- is said to have been fashioned after th at of the ImM.^ The w ork on
lam ic times to the time of the author as forming part of the general A lexandria contains a long account of the history of A lexander
history of the region politically and culturally. and Aristotle and deals w ith m any other m atters of no historical
In Mesopotamia, the glorious Muslim present overshadowed the im port and of no particular connection w ith Alexandria.
great pre-Islam ic past of the country. In E gyp t, on the other hand, W ith the approach of the fifteenth century, the tradition of
consciousness of and pride in its pre-Islam ic history were alive and secular local historiography in E gyp t led to the composition of
found expression in a number of works on local history. Ibn Zulaq reference works th at present a wealth of topographical, cultural,
wrote a History and Praise of Egypt. The m anuscripts we have historical, and economic inform ation neatly arranged and classified.
contain m erely an excerpt of the authors original v/ork, and the The most celebrated w ork of the kind is al-M aqrizis Hitat. It
^ o p . cit., p. 308. shows the authors wide interests and encyclopaedic reading and
^ Op. cit., p. 216 f.
probably is much more comprehensive than the apparently very
^ Cf. below, p. 482, n. 4, ad IHdn, 133.

Cf. Ibn al-A zraq s History of M ayydfdriqin (above, p. 152, n. i), 27 (Eugl.) and 17 (Ar.). similar works of his predecessors, such as M uhammad b. A s ad
Cf. below, p. 482. T he w ork is ob viously identical w ith the Histoire des Atabecs de M osul,
al-Jaw w ani (d. 588/1192) and M uhyi-ad-din A bdallah b. Abd-az-
which was edited in the Recueil des historiens des Croisades, Historiens or., II, 2 (Paris 1876),
and, more recently, b y ' A b d - a l - Q a d i r A . T u l a y m a t (Cairo 1963). identical. Cf. R. G o t t h e i l , in J A O S , X X V I I , 226, n. 2 (1907).
* Cf. above, n. 4. ^ Cf. G o t t h e i l , loc. cit.
I used the m anuscript Paris ar. 4727, fols. i8 6b -2i2 a. T he m anuscript is dated in Safar ^ Cf. al-M aqqari, Analectes, I, 201 D o z y and others (Leiden 1855-61). Ibn ^Amirah died
988/March-April 1580. It is said to have been copied from a m anuscript d ated K a b i' I, in 658/1260, cf. also P o n s B o i g u e s , E nsayo, 288 f.; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, I, 203. M uham m ad
608/August-Septcm ber 12 11, which, in turn, was copied from a m anuscript th at w as copied b. al-H alaf as-Sadafi (d. 509/1116) sim ilarly w rote on the capture of V alencia b y the
from the autograph of the author. Th e works which Brockelm ann, in G A L , I, 149 and Christians, cf. Ibn al-A bbar 146, no. 514 Codera (Madrid 1886-89, Bibliotheca Arabico-
Supplement I, 230, enum erates as nos. 1-4 of Ibn Z iilaq s works seem all identical or n early Hispana, 6).
156 M IX E D FORMS OF HISTO RICAL W R ITIN G LOCAL H IST O R IES 157

Zahir (d. 692/1293). The universal outlook of world histories is to the T atar invasion.^ It m ay be mentioned in this connection
reflected in the Hitat in the brief discussion of the world and the th at a similar com bination of geographical description w ith an-
earth with which the work starts. W riting on the history of E g y p t nalistically arranged political history (and other elements of annal
did not stop w ith al-Maqrizi. A fter him, there were works such as, istic historiography, such as the discussion of the introduction
for instance, the Durr al-manzum fi-m d warad f i M isr min mawjud of the Muslim era) is also found in the Yem en. Ibn a d -D a y b a s
wa-ma'^dum b y A li b. D awud al-Jawhari.^ A remarkable though (d. 944/1537) Bugyat al-mustafid f i ahhdr madinat ZaU d is a repre
little satisfactory achievem ent was as-Suyutis Husn al-muhddamh. sentative of this typ e of local history.^
H istorical m ethodology, as devised b y fifteenth-century historians, A rem arkable w ork from M amluk Syria is the p artly preserved
determined the plan of the work, and the scholar and theologian chronicle of Dam ascus (1389-97) {ad-Durrah al-mudi^'ah f i d-dawlah
in as-Suyuti prom pted him to la y great stress on biographical az-Zdhiriyah) b y an an otherwise unknown M uhammad b. Mu
information. The result was a handbook full of inform ation, a ham m ad b. Sasra.^ The w ork was not intended to be a local history
useful reference work, which, however, can no longer be called a of Damascus. However, the city was the authors residence and cen
history. ter of experience and he is almost exclusively concerned with
In Syria, secular local and regional historiography m ade its events th at took place there. The historical exposition is inter
appearance in the tw elfth century. The character of the histories of spersed w ith m oral reflections and bolstered b y verses and edifying
D am ascus w ritten in the tenth century b y Ibn A bi l-A ja iz and stories, thus exem plifying the accepted purpose of historiography
A b u 1-H usayn ar-R azi ^ remains as yet undetermined. Ibn al- as a m orality p lay and an exhortation to a god-fearing life. A lthough
Q alanisis (d. 555/1160) annalistic history centered around D a Ibn Sasra tells us th at he w rote another history, he can probably
m ascus. In the thirteenth century, Ibn a l-Adim, whose m agnum be considered an am ateur historian whose outlook on life somehow
opus was a biographical history of Aleppo,^ wrote the c ity s political differed from th a t of professional historians and who therefore
history in the well-informed Zubdat al-halah f t ta^nh Halah. Before holds for us the special attraction of a non-conformist attitude
Ibn a l-Adim, secular histories of Aleppo were w ritten b y al- which is so rarely found in Muslim intellectual endeavors.
A zim i ^ and, it seems, Ibn al-Munla.^ The invigorating influence The same kind of attraction attaches to another type of Syrian
which the historical experience of the Crusades exercised upon secular local history, representing a combination of a fam ily history
intellectual life in Syria showed itself in another product of Syrian with the history of the city th at was the central seat of th at particu
local historiography, Ibn Saddads AHdq al-hatimh on the History lar fam ily. This is Salih b. Y a h y a s History of Beirut and the F am ily
of the Governors and Rulers of Syria and Northern Mesopotamia. As of Buhtur.'^ The author deals w ith the Muslim conquest of B eiru t
the title indicates, the w ork is a regional history. Dow n to the year and describes the ruins which testify to the c ity s former greatness.
302/914-15, the history of the whole area is treated as a unit. From The Christian legends connected w ith it and its high antiquity
then on, as there no longer existed any political unity, the different which antedates Christianity are discussed, and the geographical
sovereign regions are dealt with independently. A description of the location of the c ity is described. Some notices about famous Mus
geographical or topographical features of each section m akes the lims, such as al-A w zai, who lived in Beirut, and a very few and
beginning. It is followed b y the respective political history down very brief remarks about the Muslim history of the city before the
^ The description of the contents of the AHdq is based upon J. H o r o v i t z , in Mitteilungen
^ Cf. above, p. 84. I consulted the ms. Cairo T a rih 863, dated 1031/1622. des Seminars fiir or. Sprachen, Westas. Studien, X 30 f. (1907). Th e part dealing w ith
* Cf. S. a l - M u n a ] J I d , al-Mu?arrihun ad-Dimasqlyun (above, p. 5). F or the fadd'^il w ork Dam ascus has been published b y S. a d - D a h h a n (Damascus 1375/1956).
of ar-Raba*^!, see below p. 469, n. i. Cf. also the su rvey of Syrian local histories b y S. D a h a n , ^ I used the ms. Cairo T a rih 11 m,
in B. L e w i s and P. M. H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 108 ff. ^ E d. and trans. W . M. B r i n n e r (B erkeley and Los Angeles 1963).
Cf. below, p. 170.
* J. S a u v a g e t , Corrections au texte imprime de I'Histoire de Beyrouth de Salih b. Yahyd,
* Cf. G A L Supplement I, 586, and '^Abbas al 'A zzaw i, in Revue de VAcademic arahe de in B ulletin d'etudes or., Institut frangais de Damas, V H - V n i, 65-81 (1937-38), announced his
Damas, X V I I I , 199-209 (1943). intention to translate the w ork. Cf. above, p. 57. 1 have no inform ation on tlie related w ork
^ H is w ork seems to have been a special history of A leppo rather than a general h istor b y the sixteen th -cen tu ry Ibn A sb a t (Sibat) {GAL Supplement II, 42; A . PI. H o u r a n i , in
ical work. B. L e w i s and P. M. H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 229).
158 M IX E D FORMS OF HISTO RICAL W R IT IN G LOCAL H IST O R IES 159

Crusades are added. The treatm ent of the histor}^ of B eiru t during al-Qifti knew only some books of the work, the first, fourth (not
the Crusades is com paratively long, but most of the w ork is filled quite complete), sixth, tenth, and eighth; these had been acquired
w ith the well-documented history of the Banu B uhtur. The more b y his father in the Y em en and constituted one-half of the whole.
recent generations of the fam ily are divided into three classes The Ik lils rarity and fragm entary preservation were attributed b y
{tahaqdt), and the individual biographies of the members of each al-Qifti to the action of members of tribes who had not been favor
class are presented in their historical setting and in chronological ab ly treated in the w ork and sought to prevent its circulation b y
sequence. destroying all copies w ithin reach. The fate of al-H am danis w ork
The great privilege of local historiography to express the p articu was, we are told, duplicated b y another Y em enite local history
lar needs and aspirations of a given environment was nowhere which m ay have been quite similar to the Iklil, the History of
more eagerly claimed in the Muslim world than in southwest ZaU d b y J a yya s b. N ajah. One explanation given for the great
Arabia. The proud memory of the past, which since the earliest rarity of the History of Zabid in former times (and its complete
days of Islam had stim ulated the grow th of something akin to loss for modern scholarship) is th at the author exposed false claims
nationalism in th at part of the Arabian peninsula, fathered a typ e to A rab descent m ade b y a number of people, and those people
of local historiography that was a combination of topography, then tried to suppress his work. Another explanation says th at a
cultural history, and genealog}^^ Al-H am dani (d. 334/945-46) was group of people about whom the author had said m any unfriendly
not the first as he was not the last ^ representative of th at spirit, things bought all the copies th ey could lay their hands on for
but his fam ous Ik lil was its most prominent expression. The con v e r y high prices and destroyed them.^
tents of the Ik lil leans h eavily tow ard the antiquarian and geo The political history of the Y em en was cultivated b y Yem enite
graphical side, and its descriptive title refers to it as a w ork on authors in direct proportion to the growing isolation of the country
inform ation about the Yem en and its remarkable features as w ith regard to the rest of the Muslim world. ^ The resulting works
well as rem arkable facts concerning its inhabitants. Y e t, the were histories dealing w ith a practically self-contained region. T h ey
essentially historical character of the Iklil, in the sense of the works can no longer be considered as representatives of local historiog
here discussed, cannot be denied. The contents of all ten books of raphy, but th ey belong to the m ainstream of historical writing.
the work was adequately described b y al-Qifti in his History of The Yem enite local historian par excellence was the afore-mentioned
Grammarians: i) The beginning of creation and the genealogy of Ibn a d -D ayb a, who combined the history of his c ity Zabid w ith
the descendants of M alik b. H im yar, 2) the genealogy of and anec th at of the whole region. In one of his m any variations on the same
dotes about the descendants of al-H am aysa who belongs to the subject, he dealt, for instance, w ith the excellence {fadl) of the
descendants of H im yar, 3) the praise of the Yem en and the qualities Yem en, its Islam ization, its governors under the U m ayyads and
of Qahtan, 4) the first H im yarite history (?, sir ah), 5) the inter Abbasids, the Qarm atians in the Yem en, and the successive dy
m ediate H im yarite history, 6) the last H im yarite history down to the nasties in San a and Aden. Then, he discussed Zabid, its amirs
tim e of Islam, 7) the old w ay of life (?, as-sirah al-qadimah) and and politicians, together w ith a chapter on building activities in the
impossible, untrue historical inform ation, 8) grave stories ^ and c ity and similar memorable happenings.^
rem arkable things found in the graves of the Yem en, and the poetry In the far west of the Mushm world, we find secular local his
of A lqam ah b. Di Jadan and A s ad T u b b a', 9) H im yarite speeches, toriography represented in works such as the lost History of Cordoba
wise sayings, and experiences, which were transm itted in their
own native language, and 10) inform ation about H am dan and B ook I of the I k lil began to appear in U ppsala 1954 (Bibl. Ekmaniana, 58 : i). A l-H am d an is
critical attitu d e vis-a-vis certain genealogical inform ation is given expression at the
their genealogy and some historical notes about them.^ A lready
beginning of the work.
^ For southw est A ra b ia as the setting of h istorical novels, cf. below, p. 187, n. i. ^ Cf. O . L o f g r e n , loc. cit. (above, p. 56, n. i) ; H. C. K a y , Yam an X I I (London 1892).
2 Cf. Cx. L e v i u e l l a V i d a , in Orientalia, N .S ., IX , 16 4 (19 40) . ^ For m anuscripts on Yem en ite history, cf. below, p. 484, n. 4.
^ q u b u r iy d t b y i t s e l f m e a n s t h i n g s f o u n d in g r a v e s . Ibn ad-Dayba*^, Qurrat al-~uyun f t ahbdr al-Yavian al-maymun. I used the ms. Cairo
A l-Q ifti, I n b d h a r -r u u 'd h , I, 282 f. ( C a i r o 1 3 6 9 - 7 4 / 1 9 5 0 - 5 5 ) . O . L o f g r e n s e d i t i o n o f T a rih 1355.
i6 o M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R IT IN G LOCAL H IST O R IES 161

b y A hm ad b. M uhammad a r-R a zi/ b ut the theological (or, at any later and has suffered the same fate as the History o f Buhdrd.
rate, the biographical) form appears to have been p revalen t. Here, A fter topographical and economic notes, the w ork goes into a
the loss of the older local histories m akes itself felt w ith particular discussion of the A rab settlers of Qumm, especially the descendants
severity. A s the political history of the Magrib and o f Spain was of A b u TMib. It m ay h ave concentrated on the history of individ
largely divorced from that of the rest of Islam, it was discussed b y uals to a greater degree than the History of Buhdrd.^
itself in numerous annalistic or dynastic w orks of general history. A n eleventh-century history of Isfahan, the M ahdsin Isbahdn b y
The setback Islam suffered at the hands of the Christians in Spain M ufaddal al-MMarruhi, represents a strongly individualistic trans
gave rise to m uch soul-searching reflection, even as late as the form ation of ordinary theological local history. It is not a political
fifteenth century when A bu Y a h y a b. A b i B akr b. A sim tried to history b ut nevertheless exhibits a predom inantly secular character.
explain the historical reality of Christian suprem acy as due to A fter praising the healthful location and rem arkable features of
Muslim disunity. ^ Isfahan, the author hsts prominent Isfahanis from pre-Islam ic and
The Iranian east, on the other hand, possessed a flourishing Islam ic times. T h ey are grouped according to professions and,
secular local historiography, an impressive monument to Iranian w ithin the professions, according to the ancient and the modern
patriotism . The praise of B alh and Hurasan was sung b y scholars of representatives of each profession. The list starts w ith the theolo
Persian descent in whom the love of their native country was burn gians, but leads through all kinds of professions down to the mu-
ing.^ Their works m ay have been more geographical and cultural hannatiin of Isfahan, who are described as especially w itty. Topo
than historical. A History of Isfahan was written b y Ham zah al- graphical notes, economic statistics, cultural remarks (e.g., on Isfahan!
Isfahani. It probably was not of the ordinary theological type,"^ songs and music), and poetical quotations are rich ly represented.^
even though the w ork itself as well as its continuation b y Ibn Sim ilarly, the History of Bayhaq b y A li b. Z ayd al-B ayhaqi,
M ardaw ayh was quoted b y later authors for its biographical in dating from the middle of the tw elfth century, relies upon the
formation. The author referred elsewhere to his History o f Isfahan comm on scheme of theological local history. It includes a chapter
as a w ork containing m any even ts, ^ and it was described b y on the men around M uhammad who came to B ayhaq. In connection
al-Qifti as a useful book of an adm irable composition and con w ith some biographies, the Prophetical traditions transm itted b y
taining m any remarkable things, a description which would their subjects are quoted. However, the author was a historian
hardly have been applied to a purely theological w ork such as who considered the science of history as belonging to both re
A b u N u a ym s History of the same city. W e are on safer ground ligious knowledge and natural science and for whom historical
w ith an-N arsahis History of Buhdrd, although its tenth-century works were the storehouses of the secrets of affairs. ^ H e begins
A rabic original no longer exists and we have to be satisfied w ith a w ith a general discussion of the value of history, presents briefly the
later Persian translation. A fter an introductory chapter on the general history of the region, and ends with reporting im portant
judges of Buhara, historical, topographical, and economic m atters happenings concerning B ayh aq (referring, for instance, among other
are used to illustrate the c ity s history.'^ The History of Qumm b y m atters, to two trees in the vicin ity believed to go back to the time
Hasan b. M uhammad al-Qummi was w ritten only three decades of Zoroaster) and adding some moralistic-philosophical reflections
on the corruptness of the world. A s a man proud of his own A rab
1 Cf. above, p. 153, n. 3.
2 From Ibn 'A siin, Jannat ar-rida f t tasltm li-md qaddara Allah wa-qadd, as cited b y al- descent who also wrote an autobiography , he groups the im
M aqqari, Azhdr ar-riydd, I, 50 ff., 162 f. (Cairo 1358/1939 ff.). portant men of the area in families (mostly of A rab descent, treating
^ Cf. below, p. 467, n. 4, and pp. 473 f. and 476 f. F or an Ahbdr al- Jabal (?) b y A hm ad b. al-
F ad l an-Nu'^aymi (d. 413/1024), cf. as-Sahmi, Ta^rth Jiirjdn, 82 (H yderabad 1950). w ith especial deference the 'A lid nobility). Often, he injects references
^ A s E . M i t t w o c h assumed, i u Mitteilungen des Seminars fiir or. Sprachen, Westas.
Studien, X I I , 131 (1909). ^ Cf. G A L Supplement I, 2 1 1 ; S t o r e y , Persian literature, II, 348 f., 1291.
^ H am zah al-Isfahani, History, I, 187 G o t t w a l d t (St. Petersburg-Leipzig 1844-48). Cf. G A L Supplement I, 571, 875, and above, p. 150, n. 5.
' Inbdh, I, 336 (Cairo 1369-74/1950-55). Ta^rlh-i-Bayhaq, 7 (Teheran i^iyjig ^ g ). A copy of the w ork was m ade available to me
Cf. G A L Supplement I, 2 1 1 ; III, 119 7; English trans. b y R . N . F r y e (Cambridge, through the kindness of C. A. I ' e r g u s o n . Cf. also Q. S. K . H u s a i n i , in Islam ic Culture,
Mass., 1954)- X X X I I I , 188-202 (1959).
R o s e n t h a l , H istory of Muslim H istoriography 11
i 62 M IX E D FORMS OF H ISTO RICAL W R ITIN G LOCAL H IST O R IES 163

to his own fam ily. Finally, as a h ighly accomplished litterateur The History of the Governors of Hurdsdn b y as-Sallami, of which a
and author of a history of philosophers and scientists, he shows, number of fragm ents is preserved, dates from around 950.1
following al-Jahiz, considerable interest in geographical data, in later centuries, the history of local officials was made the subject of
the biographies of physicians, and in the biographies of B ayhaqis didactic verses. The rulers of E gyp t were versified b y al-Jazzar in
who w rote Persian poetry. The History of Bayhaq is a rich w ork not the thirteenth century.^ The history of E gyp tian judges was the
easily classified. subject of several authors, among them Ibn D aniyal, whose poem
Am ong later Persian works, one m ay compare Ibn Isfan diyars on judges formed the basis of Ibn H ajars Raf" al-isr on the fudges of
History of Taharistdn, which was composed in the early thirteenth Egypt,^ Ibn Jama'ah,^ and al-Kinani.^ Ibn Ja m a ah also composed
century.^ The w ork begins w ith a fiirstenspiegel, and although a poem on the judges of Damascus. The history of the caliphs,
it largely revolves around personalities, political figures and political princes, and governors who had been in contact w ith that city was
history are preponderant. Or, from the fifteenth century, one m ay put into verse in the fourteenth century b y as-Safadi who states
compare Zahir-ad-din al-M arasis History of Tabaristdn, Ruydn, th at he followed the alphabetically arranged w ork of Ibn Asakir,
and Mdzandardn, which is strictly pohtical and arranged according apparently the la tte rs famous History of Damascus. In as-Safadis
to the succession of individual rulers.^ w ork entitled Tuhfat dawi al-albdb, the rajaz verses are interspersed
B efore we turn to theological local historiography, a few words w ith long prose sections which, among other m aterial, contain histor
m ust be said about a specialized form of secular local histories, ical inform ation and poems. Another treatm ent of the same subject
th a t is, the history of the political and legal officials of a given concerning E g y p t was, for instance, the Dahirah of the seventeenth-
locality. The origin of this type of works is not to be sought pri century Gumri.
m arily in local historiography. W e do find special sections on judges A historical topic which m ight have contributed to the great
and governors in al-Fakihis History of Mecca, Ibn A bd-al-H a- v a rie ty of the forms of local historiography but did so only to a
k a m s Conquest of Egypt, or an-N arsahis History of Buhdrd. H ow lim ited extent was the Muslim conquests. If this topic found the
ever, the m onograph treatm ent of the history of officials w ith attention of early scholars, it was for the p ractical reason th at the
reference to a particular locality would seem to have been inspired history of the Muslim conquests provided jurists w ith precedents
b y the exam ple of general biographical histories of high officials enabling them to determine the fiscal and adm inistrative status
which began to be w ritten in the ninth century. Subjects such as of a particular area. In addition, however, the subject involved a
the Governors o f al-Kufah or the ftidges of al-KHfah and al-Basrah, certain amount of geographical and historical information. A ll
and even such speciahzed groups as the Police Prefects of the Am irs th at was necessary to transform the h istory of the Muslim conquests
of the ^Irdq, were already treated b y al-H aytam b. Adi.^ Outside into local history was to select the m aterial relevant to one particu
the heartland of the A bbasid empire, such works appear to have lar area and to add historical inform ation on pre-Islam ic times as
developed in regions in which governors and judges were the highest well as an adm inistrative and political history of th at area beyond
representatives of the central power, and in a period when those the tim e of its conquest. This step was taken in the ninth century
regions were not yet practically independent, that is, the early in Ibn A bd-al-H akam s Conquest of Egypt and the West, a product
tenth century. The earliest historical monographs of this kind of regional historiography which has no true parallel elsewhere
date from this period. They are the two books b y the E gyp tian in the preserved literature, although the subject was taken up
K indi, one on the fudges and the other on the Governors of Egypt.
1 Cf. below, p. 321, n. 7. Cf. also above, p. 1 3 7 , n. 3. F or al-B asanis History of the
1 Ed. 'A b b a s Eghbal (Teheran 1320/1942). Abridged translation b y E . G . B r o w n e Governors of Herat, cf. below , p. 483, n. 6. F or the histories of N isabur, cf. R . N. F r y e
(Leiden-London 1905, E . J. W . Gibb Mem. Series, 2). (below, p. 483, nn. i and 2).
2 E d. B. D o r n (St. Petersburg 1850). For Ibn -i-Zarku b-i-irazis History of Sirdz {Pars) 2 Cf. G A L Supplement I, 574. I used the Paris ms. ar. 1816, fol. 45b-49a, and 1608,
cf. S t o r e y , Persian Literature, II, 351. fol. 200b-202b. A supplem ent b y as-Suyuti, ibid., fol. 202b-203b.
Th e fo urteen th-cen tury History of Herat b y S a y f b. M uham m ad al-H araw i was edited b y 3 Cf. G A L Supplement II, i f. ^ Cf. G A L Supplement II, 80 f.
M. Z. SiDDiQi (Calcutta 1944). Cf. G A L Supplement II, 5 7 . Cf. G A L , II, 297, and above p. 49.
3 Cf. Pihrist, 146 (Cairo 1348 = 100 F l u g e l ). Cf. also 'U m ar b. Sabbah. In w riting about The Colonization [nuzul] of Hurdsdn and the Sawdd by the Arabs
164 MIXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING
LOCAL HISTORIES 165

b y subsequent Spanish and E gyp tian historians. It can be assumed


were a com bination of travelers guides and propaganda pamphlets.
th at M uham m ad b. Musa ar-R azis (ninth century) lost Kitdb
For m any centuries, the histories of Mecca and Medina seem to
ar-Rdydt, the history of the conquest of Spain, ^ and possibly other
h ave remained free from the overgrowth of biographical history.^
conquest works, sim ilarly went into pre- and post-conquest history.
M eccas prominent historian of the fourteenth/fifteenth century,
The history of local historiography under the influence of theology
Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, said in the introduction of the ""Iqd at-tamin
was not as colorful as that of its secular counterpart, but it also
th at he had no predecessors w ith respect to the biographical section
was not com pletely one-sided. Its first representatives were
of his work. The only histories of Mecca he knew were those of al-
at the same time the oldest local histories in Islam. H owever,
A zraqi and al-Fakihi. T h ey provided him m erely w ith the intro
th ey did not yet em ploy the form soon to become predom inant.
ductory chapters of the ""Iqd. In addition, he had heard about the
These were the histories of Mecca b y al-Azraqi and al-Fakihi. T h ey
existence of a history of Mecca b y the sarif Z a y d b. H asim al-
did not have the word ta^rih in their titles 2 and were quite properly
M urtada al-Hasani. His inform ation was derived from a rem ark in
called ahhdf. D ates and biographies were not their real concern. Their
the Jawdhir of a l - M a y u r a q i , ^ which, however, was not sufficient
purpose w as to provide MusHms w ith a knowledge of the holy
to prove (though al-Fasi is inclined to assume it to be true) that
history of their sacred city. Over three-fourths of al-A zraqis
Z a y d s w ork contained biographies and inform ation on the secular
w ork is taken up b y the stories which since pre-Islamic tim es had
h istory of Mecca.^ In another of his works, the Sifd^ al-gardm,
grown around the main sanctuary of Mecca, and b y the description
which in its first part m oves entirely along the lines of al-Azraqi
of the rites connected w ith it. The remainder dealt w ith other holy
and al-Fakihi, al-Fasi also referred to the lack of predecessors and
places in Mecca, the conditions governing the ihrdm, and references
to his efforts to bring al-A zraqis and al-Fakih is historical and
to M uham m ad and his Meccan contemporaries as well as the to
topographical inform ation up to date. H e decribed, for instance,
pography of the c ity and its environs.
in detail the contem porary condition of the c ity s walls and gates
Old histories of Medina m ay have been rather similar to those
and tried to clarify the history of some of the changes th at had
of Mecca. T h ey appear to have contained very httle, if any, bio
taken place in the course of time. The w ork also contains a discus
graphical m aterial. This is the conclusion suggested b y the lack
sion of M eccas pre-Islam ic history, a chronological detailed hst
of quotations from Medinese city histories in later biographers.
of its governors and rulers, and a number of chapters on historical
Moreover, even a thirteenth-century author such as Ibn an-N ajjar,
events such as incidents connected w ith the pilgrimage, inundations,
who was thoroughly fam iliar w ith the biographical tradition of
and the c ity s economic history. A ll of this is based upon extensive
local historiography, filled his History of M edina with topography
research in the general historical literature.^ It is true, though, that
and holy history to the exclusion of everything else.^ H is work, in
there existed m any more earlier works on M eccas history, as
cidentally, was w ritten for a purpose which was characteristic of
al-Fasi himself realized from references to them. A n d if scholars
m any Meccan and Medinese c ity histories (as well as some of the
such as A bu S a 'id b. a l-A rabi and Abd-ar-R ahm an b. Mandah
works dealing w ith Jerusalem and Hebron) and which set them
actually wrote histories of Mecca, as w as stated b y as-Sahawi,^
apart from other local histories. These works were to stim ulate visits
to the holy cities and to serve as guidebooks for pilgrims. Th ey In their particu lar case, biographical tradition w ould h ave ju stified the inclusion of the
v ast m ajo rity of all Muslims of distinction, considering th at the religious d u ty of the
{Fihrist, 1 4 5 , Cairo 1 3 48 = 99 F l u g e l ), al-H aytam b. ^Adi m ay already have m oved in
pilgrim age b rought m an y Muslims to the h o ly cities at least once in their life.
the same direction, b u t it is uncertain how far he went.
* Cf. E . L e v i - P r o v e n q a l , in E l , s.v. al-R azi.
Cf. below, p. 304, n. i.
A l-F asi, al-'-lqd at-tamin. I used the four-volum e cop y of the w ork, T a ym u r T a rih 849,
^ Th e appearance of the word in the title of the Leiden m anuscript of al-F akih i (cf. E l ,
of which the first volum e is an old m anuscript. No edition of the w ork (cf. G A L Supplement
2nd ed.) would seem to be secondary.
I I, 221) w as available. In the S ifP , I, 5 (Mecca-Cairo 1956), al-Fasi repeats this inform ation
^ In the introduction of the work, Ibn an-N ajjar reports th at when he stayed in Medina,
and ibid., II, 272, he cites Z ayd through al-M ayuraqi for an even t from the year 676/1277-78.
the Medinese requested him to write the h istory of their city, and he com plied with their
Cf. also below, p. 481, n. 2.
request in spite of the fa ct th at being w itho ut his lib rary, he had to rely upon his
* E d. F. W u s T E N F E L D , D ie Chroniken der Stadt Mekka, II, 66 ff. (Leipzig 1859). A modern
m em ory, cf. p. 321 of the edition of Taqi-ad-diti al-Fasi, Sif(P (M ecca-Cairo 1 9 5 6 ), where
Ibn a n -N ajja rs w ork is published as an appendix. edition appeared in M ecca-Cairo in 1956. Cf. also above, p. 126.
I^ldn 133, below, p. 481.
i6 6 M IXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING LOCAL HISTORIES 167

their histories are almost certain to have contained biographical early history of the city and its surroundings, and then deals
m aterial; however, as-Sahawi is not supported b y some more w ith those of its religious scholars who were connected w ith the
reliable evidence. author b y an uninterrupted chain of transmitters. The scholars are
E xcep t for Meccan and Medinese histories, theological local grouped together according to their generation {qarn, instead
historiography used one characteristic form peculiar to it. It con of tabaqah which was comm only used in this sense later on). The
sisted of a topographical introduction which was followed b y an first generation are the men around M uhammad those who
enumeration of the men (and women) who were born or had settled served him, saw him, transm itted his hadit, and heard him speak
in, or had some other kind of contact w ith, a particular locality. who came to the c ity of W asit. ^ T he individual biographies
Originally, the persons listed had to be religious scholars, but soon contain very h ttle inform ation. A s a rule, th ey m erely mention
all kinds of scholars, litterateurs, statesmen, and even a sprinkling the name of the transm itter, his tradition(s), and those who trans
of w ealth y businessmen were adm itted. T he topographical intro m itted on his auth ority as well as their tradition(s). The purpose
duction, on the other hand, was capable of being greatly reduced of quoting the tradition(s) which was (were) connected w ith the
in size. name of a particular transm itter was to have every personalitys
This form of local historiography grew out of the need for ad position (in scholarship and the degree of his reliability) made
ditional protection against the invention of spurious traditions b y know n. ^
determ ining the residence of transm itters. Its grow th was favored The following tenth century saw a widening of the professional
b y the pohtical rivalry between the various centers and schools of groups which qualified for inclusion in local histories. T he result
hadit transm itters who had settled in the cities of the Muslim empire. w as a relaxation of the condition th at each biography was to contain
It w as politically inspired school riv a lry rather than educational a t least one tradition which had been transm itted b y its subject.
expediency which caused a scholar to m ake a statem ent such as A nother result was the addition of a greater am ount of biographical
this, reported in the name of the author of the Tahaqdt al-Ha~ information. This process was very slow in certain places. A genera
maddniyin, Salih b. Ahm ad: W hen religious scholarship has been tion after Bahsal, Muhammad b. S a'id al-Qusayri, in his History
cultivated in a place and scholars have lived there in ancient and of ar-Raqqah, still followed the old custom.^ Tow ard the end of the
modern times, the students of traditions there and all those century, however, the process was nearly completed. A t the sam e
interested in traditions should begin w ith a thorough stud y of the time, the alphabetical arrangement of biographies made its ap
hadit of their home town and w ith the acquisition of solid know l pearance. It m ay have been used much earlier in local historiogra
edge concerning the representatives of the science of tradition there. phy. U nfortunately, bibliographical references and quotations do
A fter the student has come to know w hat is sound and w hat is not help very much. The word ta^rih in the title of a local history
unsound in their traditions and has become com pletely acquainted m ay as well refer to a tahaqdt work. O nly the express statem ent
w ith the hadit scholars in his city and their conditions, he m ay occu th at a particular history was arranged alphabetically or according
p y himself w ith the traditions of other places and with traveling to tahaqdt permits a classification. According to as-Sahawi, Ibn
in search of traditions. ^ Y a s in s (?) History of Herdt was alphabetically arranged, and Ibn
B ah sals late ninth-century History of Wdsit is the oldest pre Y asin is said to have lived in the first half of the ninth century.^
served w ork of this type. The original form and concept are well A t about the same time, al-Buhari used an alphabetical arrange
represented in it. The History of Wdsit has come down to us in m ent in his History, and local historians m ight have conceived the
only one incomplete manuscript in which, moreover, a number of idea of arranging their biographies alphabetically already at th at
leaves are disarranged.^ It goes rather briefly into a discussion of the early date. However, the passage in as-Sahawi is corrupt, and
^ op. cit., fol. 56b, which belongs after fol. 7b.
1 Cf. al-H atib a l-B a gd M i, T B , I, 214. ^ Op. cit., fol. i i b .
^ Ms. Cairo T a ym u r T a rih 1483, written in 629/December 123 1; K . ^Awwad, in Sumer, Cf. below , p. 469, n. 8.
X I I I , 50 ( 1 9 5 7 ) . Cf. below, p. 484, n. 2. IHdn, 133, below, p. 483, nn. 4 and 5.
i6 8 MIXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING LOCAL HISTORIES 169

further confirm ation of his statem ent is needed before an y reliance who cam e next among the authors of preserved alphabetical local
can be placed upon it. For most of the older local histories down to histories, said in his History of Isfahdn}
the end of the tenth cen tu ry/ our inform ation is insufficient. This The scholar who through his use of an alphabetical arrangement
applies, for instance, to the works of A hm ad b. S a yya r (Marw) accom plished the final break with the tabaqdt {qarn) arrangement
which, however, was called ahhdr and, therefore, m ay not have was the H atib al-Bagdadi in the eleventh century.2 A lphabetization
contained alphabetically arranged biographies; A hm ad b. Mu of the given name of a person and of the name of his father was
ham m ad b. Isa (Emesa); al-H uraqani (Marw); A bu Arubah the system adopted b y the H atib, although, in the form in which the
(Jazirah); Ibn Yunus (Egypt); the Anonym ous (Ishaq b. Salam ah History of Bagdad has come down to us, it is not consistently and
al-Q ayni?) on the personalities of M alaga; M uhammad b. Y u su f logically apphed. Persons known under their patronym ics ^ and
al-W arraq (Ifriqiyah) whose N orth A frican city histories, however, notew orthy women follow alphabetically at the end of the work.
are called ahhdr] HMid b. S a 'd al-Qurtubi (d. 352/963), on the In its choice of individuals to be mentioned, the History of Bagddd
personahties of Spain Salih b. A hm ad (Hamadan); M uhammad is all-inclusive. H owever, preference is still given to religious scholars.
b. Salih al-M aMiri al-Qahtani (Spain); A bu s-Sayh (Isfahan); Ibn Their biographies are much more extensive than those of anybody
ar-Raqiq (al-Q ayraw an); Muhammad b. J a 'fa r at-Tam im i (al- else. T he contents of all biographies remains largely concerned w ith
K M a h ); al-H akim (HurLsan, Nisabur) whose History of Nisdbur, traditions. The religious side of the activities of the persons listed,
however, was a tabaqdt work;^ and al-Idrisi (Samarqand, A stara- including those who were not prim arily religious scholars, is stressed.
bad). A good m any of these works, especially in the second half The men around Muhammad, of course, did not live to see the foun
of the list, m ay have been alphabetically arranged. A n alphabetical dation of B a g d M proper, but some of them were reported to have
arrangement was indicated b y as-Sahawi for the History of Balh b y visited its neighborhood. Their biographies precede all other biog
a certain A bii Ishaq who is said to have lived in the early fourth/ raphies. This was a relic of the tabaqdt arrangement, but the system
tenth century, and the History of Marw b y Ahm ad b. S a id al- was re-interpreted b y the authors of alphabetically arranged works
M a'dani (d. 375/986).^ The oldest preserved local history w ith an as a sign of respect for the exalted position of the sahdbah and as
alphabetical arrangement of its biographies is Ibn al-Faradis a means of m aking it easy for the reader to learn their names.^
(d. 403/1013) History of Spanish Scholars. For the sake of b revity, Preceding the biographies is a long section dealing w ith topograph
Ibn al-Faradi w rote alphabetically arranged biographies instead ical, cultural, and historical inform ation concerning Bagdad, its
of a collection of historical notes and anecdotes concerning the suburbs, and the story of its foundation. The high q uality of this
various Spanish cities. The alphabetical arrangement in Ibn section of the w ork is due to the authors use of the research that
al-Faradi was quite rudim entary (and was retained in this form had gone into the earlier secular histories of the city.
b y most of his Spanish successors). It took into account only the The H atib s History of Bagddd remained the model not only
given names of the subjects of the biographies. Still, even in this for all later histories of B a g d M , but also for the m ajority of the
form, it made for easier reference, as A bu N u 'aym (d. 430/1038), numerous local histories of the following centuries, and there was
no part of the Muslim world in which this typ e of theological local
history (which, at times, severed all its ties w ith rehgious scholar
' Cf. IHdn, 121 ff., below , p. 457 ff. O nly works th at can be d ated approxim ately through ship) was not represented. The History of Bagddd was surpassed
knowledge of the lifetim e of their authors are considered here. in size b y Ibn A sak irs History of Damascus. Ibn A sak irs introduc-
^ Cf. Ibn al-Faradi, I, 113 f., no. 396 C o d e r a (Madrid 1890-1902, Bibliotheca Arabico-
H ispana, 8). ^ I, I D e d e r i n g (Leiden 1931-34).
Cf. H a jji H alifah, K a s f az-zunun, II, 155 f. F l u g e l . B u t, apparently, there was a Cf. T B , I, 213 f.
ru d im en tary alph ab etical arrangem ent w ithin the tabaqdt, cf. R. N. F r y e (below, p. 483,
T h is w rong translation of kunyah has been adopted in this book. H yionym ic or
nn. I and 2). paidonymic w ould be the proper word, if the thing had been known to the Greeks.
A b d -al-Jab b ar al H aw lan is History of Ddrayyd (near Damascus) (ed. S A 'iu a l - * Cf. A b u N u 'a ym , History of Isfahan, I, 43 D e d e r i n g . Th e custom persisted, cf., for
A f g a n I, Dam ascus 1950) has no alphabetical arrangem ent. instance, a r-R a fi'is Tadu'tn f t dikr ahhdr Qazwtn.
^ I, 5 C O D E R A . ^ C f. J. L a s s n e r , in J A O S , L X X X I I T , 458-69 (1963).
170 M IXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING LOCAL HISTORIES 171

tion was m ainly concerned w ith the relations between Dam ascus m aterials derived from Ibn Saddad and other Aleppo historians,
and M uhammad and the early Muslims. Item s borrowed from an Ibn al-A dim s introduction also served as the basis for Ibn as-
nalistic historiography, such as the story of the introduction of the Sihnahs compilation of the history of Aleppo, ad-Durr al-muntahab
Muslim era, seemed more im portant to the author than a factual f i ta^rih mamlakat Halah. This w ork omits all biographical inform a
topographical description such as we find it in the History of tion and has only little historical information, but it shows the
Bagdad. authors predilection for dates of buildings and monuments as well
Another Syrian historian, Ibn a l-Adim , who has already been as statem ents verified either b y himself or his sources.
m entioned as the author of a secular history of Aleppo,^ also wrote Scholars who were not born in a particular c ity or region but
a biographical history of the typ e of the History of Bagdad. lived and taught there alw ays found special attention in local
Its title is Bugyat at-talab f i ta^rih Halah. Ibn a l-A dim deserves histories, but it was a peculiarity of E gyp tian theological histori
m ention not so m uch on account of the historical quahties of some ography th at it produced a large work devoted exclusively to for
of his biographies ^ as because of the fact th at in his hands the topo eigners, th at is, religious scholars who were not born in E g y p t but
graphical introduction became a substantial volum e on the geog made their home there for some time. This was the Gurahd^ of A bu
rap h y of northern Syria presented according to the best sources S a 'id b. Y u n u s.i The great attraction which the valley of the Nile
and w ith a w ealth of cultural information. ^ A later continuation has exercised for foreigners through the millennia made such a
of the Bugyah, Ibn H atib an-N asiriyahs Durr al-muntahab f i w ork possible. Another minor variation of theological local his
takmilat Ta'rih Halah, gives a brief outline of the Bugyahs intro toriography is attested in connection with E gyp t, a collection and
duction. A ccording to that outline, this introduction was divided annalistic presentation of the dates of death of contem porary
into five chapters of the following contents: i) The different names E gyp tian s (among whom a few non-Egyptians were included).^
and the construction of Aleppo, 2) the location of the city, its A s a truncated form of theological local historiography, the
extension, and its suburbs, 3) its excellence and rem arkable features, fadd^il works in praise of a given locality m ay find a place here.
including a description of the influence of political events upon the D ow n to the eleventh century, the words faddHl or hawass (praise
physical appearance of the city down to the tim e of the author, 4) w orth y qualities and properties, respectively) in connection w ith a
the Muslim conquest of Aleppo, and 5) its w aterw ays, historical c ity or region indicated works that contained only a lim ited amount
relics, mosques, and sanctuaries.^ of historical inform ation and dealt with the praisew orthy physical
Ibn a l-A dim gave future historians of Aleppo a good start, and geographical features of th at city or region and the excellence
whose effects were felt well into the fifteenth century. The contin- of its in h ab itan ts; the literary topic of rivalry between two localities
uator of Ibn H atib an-Nasiriyah, Sibt Ibn a l-A jam i (d. 884/1480), as to their respective merits and draw backs was also frequently
in his K iinuz ad-dahab f i ta^rih Halah, was still capable of presenting treated.^ L ater on, the title fadd^il usually denoted monograph
a highly readable description of Aleppo and its history. The things collections of quotations from the Qur^an, the traditions, and
he had to say about some of the mosques of Aleppo would seem to related sources in praise of a particular locality, the same typ e of
be as complete an art historical description as one m ight expect m aterial we also find in the introductions of local histories, both
from an author w riting in the m edieval tradition. W ith the help of secular and theological. This then can no longer be considered as
' Cf. above, p. 156. ^ Cf. below, p. 477, n. 9. Ibn al-F arad i im itated Ibu Y u n us b y adding the foreigners, if
^ Cf. the specim ens printed in Vol. I l l of the Recueil des historiens des Croisades, Historiens there were any, after each name.
or., pp. 695-732 (Paris 1884). ^ Cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 572 (al-H abbal d. 482/1089-90); Y . al-'-Iss, F ihris mahtutdt Ddr
^ For a brief su rvey of the sources of the Rugyah, see M. C a n a r d , inAnnales dc V lnstitut al-Kutiib az-Zdhiriyah, 151 (Damascus 1366/1947). The w ork of al-Jazzar (above, p. 54 ,n. 3)
d Etudes Or., Faculte des Lettres de I Univ. d'Alger, X V , 41-53 (1957). C f. also F. R o s e n t h a l , was presum ably of a sim ilar type, and so were, in a sense, the centennial histories (above,
in J A O S , L X X I , 136-41 (1951). p. 86).
F or the m anuscript of Ibn H atib an-N asiriyah used here, cf. below, p. 445, n. i. ^ Cf., for instance, J. S c i i a c i i t and M. M e y e r h o f , The M edico-Philosophical Controversy
I used the incom plete ms. Cairo (Taynu'ir?) T a rih 837. The description of m onum ents hetiveen Ibn Butlan of Baghdad and Ibn Kidwan of Cairo, 89 ff. (Cairo 1937, Publications of
was the task of geographers whose data were occasionally used b y historians. An ou tstanding the Faculty o f Arts of the Egyptian University, 13), or the fourteenth-century com parison of
exam ple is the description of the famous mosque of Cordoba. D am ascus and Cairo, in al-M aqrizi, H itat I, 368 (Bulaq 1270). Cf. also below, p. 473, n. 6.
172 MIXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING CONTEMPORARY HISTORY AND MEMOIRS 173

representing a branch of historical writing. However, it remains was hardly able to conceal his predilection for court ceremonial ^
another m anifestation of the devotion to regional divisions which and court chitchat. More im portant, it also led to the adoption
often influenced the course of Muslim history w ith not too h appy of the artificial flow ery style of the bureaucracy for w riting the
results but contributed to Muslim historiography one of its m ost biography of the ruler. 2 F or fla ttery and indirection th at style was
productive branches. unsurpassed, and it retained its hold over works of this type. B y
virtue of the official position of the historian, his w ork not infre
4 C O N T E M P O R A R Y H IS T O R Y A N D M E M O IR S quen tly assumed the character of memoirs. A t one point of his
A ll Mushm historical works were keyed to the time of their biography of Salah-ad-din, Ibn M d a d describes how this came to
individual authors. S trictly antiquarian history was confined to pass. This is w hat he says: T have come to love Salah-ad-din since
occasional monographs on events of the early years of Islam and I first saw him and noticed his love for the jihad. I loved him on
on the oldest Muslim leaders. The tendency in these works was account of that, and I was in his service since the beginning of
theological rather than historical. E ven rarer were the occasions J u m M a I of the year (5)84/ June 2 8 ,1188, when he came to northern
on which a w riter recalled the glorious old days as th ey were, for Syria. A ll m y inform ation on the tim e before th a t date was derived
instance, personified in the Barmecides. ^ Here, literature and biog from eyewitnesses whom I trust. From th at date on, I put down
rap h y greatly outweighed history. Biography, in general, was not only things which I witnessed personally or about which persons
oriented tow ard the contem porary scene as inexorably as w as history. whom I trust had informed me in a w ay comparable to personal
In all genuinely historical production, the author would use past observation. Thus, for the last five years of Salah-ad-din's reign
history m erely as a background for the present. The result was, on which cover three-fourths of Ibn Saddads work, biography turns
the one hand, th at all historical w orks contained inform ation on into memoirs.
contem porary history, and, on the other, that all contem porary Two authors of memoirs, both of whom lived in the tw elfth
historiography did not differ in its form and contents from general century, were distinguished b y the fresh approach th ey brought
histories. In w riting the history of their own times, Muslim his to their task, the South A rabian Um arah al-H akam i, in an-Nukat
torians could not avoid reflecting the intellectual interests of their al-'^asnyah f i ahbdr al-wuzard^ al-M isriyah, and Usam ah b. Munqid,
respective periods, but they made no specific contribution to the in his famous IHihdr. The former starts w ith his autobiography,
developm ent of the forms and contents of historiography other than leading it down to the tim e when he settled in E gyp t. The history
th at which found its expression in general historical works. There of the E gyp tian wazirs promised b y the title then sets in, but it
fore, not m uch needs to be said about the w riting of contem porary develops into a display of U m arahs proficiency as a poet. Usamah,
history in Islam. in turn, deals with m any of his personal experiences which reveal
The most common monograph treatm ents of contem porary him as a good observer and a thoroughly hum an personality. It is
history were those undertaken upon orders of the ruling sovereign clear, however, th at in Um arah, the literary, and in Usamah, the
who wished to see his deeds (and often also those of his dynasty) popular philosophical element was stronger than the historical one.
or the one or other outstanding event of his reign im m ortalized in The basic m aterial for memoirs are notes or diaries. M any a
writing. It seems to be true th at the greatness of the ruler and ^ The court cerem onial of the 'A b b asid s continued the Persian tradition, b u t con
the im print he left upon the history of his tim e are paralleled b y the tem porary B yzan tiu m was the shining m odel w ith which one had to com pete. A certain
A b u 1-H usayn A h m ad b. al-H usayn al-A hw azi w rote a w ork on the B yzan tin es which
q u an tity and q u ality of his contem porary biographers (Mahmud was based upon personal observation and which, am ong other things, d ealt w ith the
of C^aznah, Salah-ad-din, Sulaym an the Magnificent). Official ecclesiastical ranks in the B yzan tin e Em pire, cf. al-Biruni, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 289 f., 293
S a c h a u (Leipzig 1878, 1923). F or the 'A b b asid court, cf. the relevan t chapters in H ilal b.
historians often held high positions in the adm inistration. In the al-M uhassin as-Sabi^ Rusum ddr al-hildfah, ed. M. A w w a u (B agd ad 1383/1964). For
tenth century, this produced a Suli who, w ith all his literary genius, as-Siili, cf. also above, p. 48 f.
^ Cf. below, p. 177.
his brilliant style, and the w ealth of inform ation he had to offer, ^ An-Xaw ddir as-sultdniyah, 7 1 (Cairo 1 3 1 7 ) . Cf. also M iskaw ayh, Tajdrib al-umam,
* Cf. below, p. 429, n. 3. anno 340.
174 M IXED FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING CONTEMPORARY HISTORY AND MEMOIRS 175

Muslim occupying a place of distinction in his com m unity m ay have A nother diary of historical im port was th at of the secretary
kept notes about his activities. B u t whether there were m any who whose pen rather than the sword of his m aster Salah-ad-din was,
dared to entrust their intim ate thoughts to regularly kept diaries w ith some exaggeration, said to have been responsible for the lat-
seems doubtful, considering the political clim ate of the Middle Ages ters success,^ the Qadi al-Fadil al-Baysani (d. 596/January 25,
which made such an undertaking rather dangerous. Y et, diaries 1200 2). The quotations from his w ork are headed b y the A rabic
were kept b y some officials, probably from the beginning w ith a word for diary, muydwamdt, or, as a rule, b y the title News [mu-
view to their later publication. Memoirs such as were composed tajaddiddt) of the year n . ^ A l-B aysani was concerned with Sal,h-
b y the wazir Ibn Masarjis in the ninth century ^ or b y the Im ad ad-dins naval expedition to A ylah and other m ilitary operations,
al-Isfahani, in his voluminous Barq as-Sa'mi, in the tw elfth century, w ith the destruction of the palm trees of a l-Aris b y the Crusaders,
were based on the notes of a lifetime and m ay have been based on w ith establishing the date of the construction of a minaret, but
regular diaries. W hen Ahm ad b. a t-T ayyib as-Sarahsi accom panied above all w ith m atters of adm inistrative importance, such as the
the future caliph al-M utadid on a m ilitary expedition to Palestine unseasonal increase of the Nile, the fiefs, the distribution of the
in the year 884-85, he kept a careful diary of the trip, presum ably charity taxes, the Coptic new year celebration, the equalization of
upon official request. His observations were m ainly geographical fiscal w ith lunar years, the treasures left b y the last Fatim id,
and m ilitary.2 a l-Adid, the income of the various districts, the high prices in a
A s the title of a book, the word diary, in its Persian form certain year, or the inauguration of a new hospital. A ll this was
Yuzndmajah, appears among the works of the Sahib Ibn A b bad carefully noted w ith the day, month, and year of its occurrence.
(d. 385/995). H is Diary is preserved in a number of fragm ents^ H is w ork is especially significant in th at it shows w hat excellent
which show th at it was not concerned w ith m atters of historical materials historians of the period had to w ork with. Am ong Persian-
interest, but w ith literary and philological inform ation of the typ e Turkish historians we encounter the use of diaries ^ in historical
known from the Am dli as well as general adah works and a certain w riting and m any memoirs, but it m ay not be entirely b y chance
form of Mu'-jam. Ibn al-Banna s afore-mentioned work, ^ if it th at most of the examples of this brief chapter date from the time
ever had a title, was probably not called d iary b y its author, of the Crusades. A t no other tim e in the history of the central
but it does qualify as such. L ivin g in B agd M , Ibn al-Banna* region of Islam did the rhythm of the change from fear to hope and
m ainly noted events affecting this city. A s a H anbalite, he was from hope to fear m ake contem porary happenings appear so w orth y
particularly interested in the affairs of his colleagues. A n d his per of the attention of the historian as it did then.
sonal predilection was the recording of his own m eaningful dreams. ^ As-Safadi, W dfi, Bodleian ms. or. Seld. Arch. A . 26, fol. 150a.
A ll of this m aterial was suitable for easy transform ation into a * Cf. Ibn K atir, Biddyah, X I I I , 25, where the d ay of the w eek is indicated.
Cf. A . R . G u e s t , in J R A S , 1902, n o , and C. H . B e c k e r , Beitrdge zur Geschichte
full-fledged history. Agyptens unter dem Islam , I, 24 f. (Strasbourg 1902), where the quotations in al-M aqrizis
^ Cf. above, p. 51. T h e volum e of rem iniscences of the reign of the caliph al-M u'tam id H itat are enum erated. The w ork also appears to have been quoted in Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat
b y the poet A hm ad b. J a 'fa r Jahzah (224-324/838(3g)-936) m ay have been in the style of at-talab, cf. C . C a h e n , L a Syrie du Nord, 53, n. i (Paris 1940).
as-Sulis h istory of the caliphs (cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, II, 243 Cairo = I, 384 M a r g o l i o u t h ). F or other possible diaries, cf. also Ibn H allikan, IV , 143 trans. D e S l a n e .
^ Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , Ahm ad b. at-Tayyib as-Sarahst, 62 ff. (New H aven 1943. American * Cf., for instance, K eb ir Q adizadehs History of the Conquest of Egypt b y Selim I, w rittei
Oriental Series 26), and J A O S , L X X I , 138 ff. (1951). upon the order of the emir Sadruddin M uham m ad, after notes taken during the cam paign
G oing on the pilgrim age from A d arb ayjan one m ight w ell keep a d iary for the instruction in which he had participated, cf. F. T a u e r , in Archiv Orientdlni, IV , 98 ff. (1932).
of his children, as was done b y a certain M uham m ad b. A hm ad b. al-H asan al-K atib , whose
Ruzndmaj w as used b y Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talab, Ph ot. Cairo T a rih 1566, p. 209.
^ Cf. G A L Supplement I, 199; II, 28. Further quotations: at-Ta'-alibi, Yattmat ad-dahr, II,
I I (Dam ascus 1304); idem, A bu t-Tayyib al-Mutanabbt, 62 (second ed., Cairo 1343/1925);
idem, H ass al-hdss, 42 (Cairo 1326); idem, I'-jdz, 241 (Cairo 1897); al-A zdi, Badd^i^ al-
badd^ih, II, 21 (Cairo 1316); Y a q u t, IrSdd, X V , 112 ff., 116 ff. (Cairo = V , 440 ff. M a r g o
l i o u t h ). Cf. also M. H. A l Y a s i n , as-Sdhib Ibn ^Abbdd, 243 f. (Bagdad 1376/1957), and

A l Y a s i n s collection of the preserved fragm ents (B agd ad 1966). For another litera ry d iary,
cf. al-B ayh aq i, Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq, 192 (Teheran 1317).
Cf. above, p. 83.
THE USE OF RHYMED PROSE 177

w ith it a factu al and concrete form of linguistic expression. A n d


the historian was under the obligation to reproduce his sources
literally and to avoid any arbitrary tam pering w ith them, w ith the
result th a t the history of the past was usually w ritten in the sober
C H A P T E R S IX style of the early authors. The use of saj^ becam e obligatory in the
introduction of histories. It was also used as an escape into a less
AR TISTIC FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING pedestrian presentation of the m aterial, especially, when the w riters
emotions were involved. ^
I T H E U S E O F R H Y M E D P R O S E {SA / ) A s a dom inant stylistic device, the use of rhym ed prose entered
historical w riting through the panegyrical biographies which high
H istorical w riting on the whole successfully w ithstood the on
officials devoted to their masters. In these works, th ey felt duti-
slaught of the rhym ed prose m ania which did so m uch m ore h arm
bound to exhibit their virtu osity in the rhymed-prose office style.
than good to Mushm literature. A number of factors con trib u ted
A t the beginning, the literary ta ct and skill of the authors, as well
to bring about this healthy situation. For one, historiography w as
as their deep understanding of the genius of the A rabic language,
not w holly belles-lettres but in m any respects a scientific p u rsu it
did indeed m ake their works masterpieces. The stylistic briUiance
and as such able to offer some resistance to literary fashions. Its
displayed in these works reconciled the reader to the difficulties he
concern w ith concrete data and observations from daily life b rou gh t
encountered in tryin g to figure out their meaning. T act and skill
1 Such childish nonsense as Ibn al-Muqri^s h istory of the Rasulids of the Yem en which and linguistic ability, however, were rare qualities. Especially in
consists of a colum n of letters read vertically in an elem entary treatise on jurisprudence
(cf. G A L , II, 190 f. The L ib rary of Congress in W ashington has an edition of the w ork,
later Persian and Turkish works, these qualities were conspicuously
Cairo 1309) cannot be called an artistic approach to h istorical presentation. B u t a word absent. Ibrahim b. H ilal as-Sabi" (d. 384/994) possessed them in the
m ay be said here a bo u t illu strated histories:
W hen Islam appeared on the scene, illum inated editions of historical texts had a lon g
fullest measure and made use of them in his fam ous encomium of
and varied history behind them (wich, how ever, is n o t quite tan gib le for us). Such illu m in ated Adud-ad-dawlah and the Biiyids, the Tdji.'^ His use of rh5rmed
histories were known both in the Greek and, presum ably, the Persian orbit. For the form er,
of., especially, A . B a u e r -J. S t r z y g o w s k y , E in e Alexandrinische Weltchronik, in Denk-
prose in this w ork w as p robably as sparing as th a t of al-U tb i in
schriften der k. Akad. d. W iss. zu Wien, phil.-hist. K l., L I, 2 (1905); H. L i e t z m a n n , E in his Yam ini, a panegyric of (Yam in-ad-dawlah) Mahmud of Gaznah,
Blatt aus einer antiken Weltchronik, in Quantulacumque, Studies presented to K . Lake, 339-48
(London 1937); K . W e i t z m a n n , m Byzantion, X V I , 87-134 (1944).
in which he followed as-Sabi as his model.
O n ly little of th at found acceptance in Islam . The Muslims knew of books w ith the pictures The m aster of the art who w rote his historical works throughout
of Sasanian rulers, as an often quoted passage of al-M as'udi informs us {Tanbih, 106 f. D e
G o e j e ; trans. H . H . S c i i a e d e r , in Jahrbuch der Preuszischen Kunstsammlungen, L V II,
in a rhym ed prose verbose but not h eav y was the Im&,d al-
231 f., 1936). Pictu res of G reek philosophers appeared in the histories of philosophers b y Isfahani. Occasionally, he handled the rhym e quite freely. In the
H nnayn and al-M ubassir (for the latter, where the illustrations m ay be a later addition [ ?],
cf, the Istan b u l m anuscript T o pkapu saray, A h m et III , 3206, discussed b y R . E t t i n g -
History o f the Saljuqs, Tugrilbek was perm itted to relate a dream
h a u s e n , Arab Paintinf;, 74 ff. [Lausanne-Paris 1962], and the crude draw ings of the Berlin ^ This was the case, for instance, when a writer related the end of the 'Abbasid caliphate,
m anuscript or. 785 quarto reproduced b y J . K r a e m e r , in Z D M G , C V I, 289 [1956]). cf. M ugultays ISdrah ild strut al-M ustafd wa-dtdr man ba^dahu min al-hulafd^, for which
Th e appearance of illustrated historical works in Persia later on seems to be a new depar I consulted the Bodleian ms. or. Sale 56, in the absence of the edition (Cairo 1326, cf. G A L
ture, follow ing the precedent of the epical literature. W e have illustrated m anuscripts of Supplem ent II, 48).
the Persian translation of at-T abari (cf. E . KtJHNEL, in A . U . P o p e , A Survey of Persian Cf. G A L , I, 96 {Supplement I, 153 f.), and above, pp. 51 and 59; D. S . M a r g o l i o u t h ,
Art, III , 1853, 1855, N ew Y o rk 1939, cf. also plates 8 i6b, 880); of Fadlallah R asid-ad-dins in Islam ica, II, 388, n. 4 (1927), and idem, Lectures on Arabic Historians, 134 (Calcutta
Jdmi'^ at-tawdrth (op. cit., I l l , 1835 ff. and plates 827-29, 845, 847-50, cf. also above, p. 105, 1930). For references to the Td jt, cf., further, al-Birum, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 38 S a c h a u ;
n. 2, and the report of Ibn al-Fuw ati, TalMs Majma'^ al-dddb, IV , I, 528 J a w a d [Dam ascus aI- Utbi, a l-Y am ini, I, 47 f., 106 (Cairo 1286), cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 547; at-Ta'alibi,
1962], to the effect th at in 705/1305-6 he m et an artist in A rran who w as engaged in illu strat Yattmat ad-dahr, II, 3, 9 f., 26 f.; I l l , 3 (Damascus 1304); Ibn Hassul, T a fdil al-Atrdk,
ing the w o rk ); of al-Ju\vaynis Ta^rih-i-jahdngusay (op. cit., I l l , 1843)! quite com m only, introduction, cf. G A L Supplement, I, 553, III, 1216; Ibn Isfandiyar, History of Tabaristdn,
of historical works of the M ugal period. (The references to illum inated Islan^ic m anuscripts 90, 223 B r o w n e (Leiden-London 1905, E . J . W. Gibb M em. Series, 2); Ibn y a llik in , I,
in this paragraph have been selected from the long b ibliograph y on the su bject w ith which 213; II, 263; III, 261 f. trans. D e S l a n e ; an-Nuwayri, N ihdyat al-arab, Paris ms. ar. 1576
Dr. R. E t t i n g h a u s e n in W ashington most kin dly provided me.) foL 23a. The work was used b y aI- Azim i (above, p. 156, n. 4), cf. C. C a h e n , L a Chronique
F o r tenuous relations between m edieval W estern illustrations of historical works and abrdgee d'al-A^tmt, in J A , C C X X X , 355 (1938). For a brief abridgment of part of the T d ji
Muslim book illum ination, cf. H. B u c h t h a l , M iniature Painting in the Latin Kingdom of from a manuscript in the Yemen, cf. M . S . K h a n , in Arabica, X I I, 27 ff. (1965) ;
Jerusalem, 85, 100 ff. (Oxford 1957).
W. M a d e l u n g , in J N E S , X X V I , 17-57 (1967).

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 12


178 ARTISTIC FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING THE USE OF VERSE 179

in ordinary prose. ^ On the other hand, A lp Arslan on his death showed a considerable disinclination for facts and conciseness.
bed used perfect saj\'^ In his abridgm ent of the Im ads work, In order to produce the rhyme, a line which as a rule was m erely
al-Fath al-Bundari, a generation after him, complained th a t the repetitious and rarely contributed to a better characterization of
author as usual had given free rein to his pen and th at his rhym ed a personality or an event had to be added. Much of the space which
prose made it difficult to understand w hat he intended to say. m ight otherwise have been devoted to factual inform ation was thus
A l-Bundari, however, did not m ake an y changes w hatsoever in taken. Instead of giving a full bibhography in his scholarly biogra
the Im ads style. T h at he, the A rabic translator of F ird aw sis phies, Ibn H abib al-H alabi restricted himself to an average of one
Sdhndmah, occupied himself w ith the Im ads w ork m ay in itself title. The m ain rehc of factual inform ation in his w ork is the indi
be a compliment to its high stylistic quality. It m ay, however, cation of the date of the death and, if it w as known, the age of
be added th at a more historically and less artistically inclined the deceased person as well as a genealogy in the beginning of the
author, A b u Samah, in his Rawdatayn, objected to the *Imads obituary notices. A ll in all, w hatever attractiveness the use of
style and pruned it severely.^ rhym ed prose m ay have added to historical literature in the eyes
In less gifted authors, the constant use of rhym ed prose was a of the cultured reader,^ it made no contribution to a deepening of
source of serious shortcomings. The fourteenth-century Ibn H abib the historical understanding, nor did it produce an essentially new
al-Halabi, for example, wrote the Durr at al-asldk f i dawlat al-Atrdk form of historical presentation.
and a general history, Juhaynat al-ahbdr, in a typ e of saj'^ in which
alw ays two, and no more, cola rhym ed w ith each other. Thus, we 2 T H E U S E O F V E R S E
read in the Durrah: The technique of the prose rhym e as such was hardly suited for
Their king, al-Faransis, tumbled, a tru ly artistic treatm ent of history. The traditional medium of
and the foundation of the building which he had poetical expression, the verse, could alone fulfil the task of trans
constructed w ith so much care crumbled. form ing history into poetry. There was no intrinsic reason why, in
A bout 30,000 of them were captured or killed, the languages of Islam, poetry, being itself feigned h istory, ^
and b y about a hundred Muslims the m artyrdom could not have, in turn, served to sublim ate the description of
was fulfilled, actual happenings. However, in Islam, poetry was only once called
upon to render this service to historiography, and th at was on
while short cola prevail in the Juhaynat al-ahbdr:
Iranian soil in the cause of Iranian nationahsm.
A baga b. H ulagu: He lit w ars flame, The m agnificent epic of Firdawsi (born between 933 and 936,
like his father, a m an of crime and shame. died between 1020 and 1025) had its more modest predecessors.
He continued to shun of right guidance the w ay, A certain M as'udi wrote a poem on Persian history, of which a few
until, after sixteen (years), he saw his last d a y . verses are preserved. The Persians are said to have held th at poem
in the highest esteem and to have considered it a true history (or
It is obvious th at bare facts and concise descriptions could not
chronology, ka-ta^rih) of theirs. Considering the preserved verses,
be pressed into this form. Indeed, the rhym ed prose style alw ays
one would hardly venture to assert th at it was more than a rather
1 Nusrat al-fitrah, Paris ms. ar. 2145, fol. 22b. A l-B u n dari, Ta^rth dawlat as-SaljHq, 26 prosaic and rather brief enumeration of the m ythical and historical
(Cairo 1318/1900).
Cf. above, p. 120. rulers of ancient Iran. The larger, incomplete w ork upon which
A l-B un dari, op. cit., 3. ^ A long m arginal note in the Bodleian m anuscript of the Durrat al-asldk (above, p. 178,
C f . B . L e w i s , i n B S O ^ S , X V I I , 16 9 , n . 2 ( 1 9 5 5 ) . n. 6), fol. 24b, concerning the conquest of B agdad b y H ulagu w ould seem to indicate th at
L ite rally ; w as seized. In a n y evaluation of the rh ym ed prose style, it should not be readers objected to the lack of fa ctu a l inform ation.
forgotten th at the num ber of rhym ing words and endings in A rab ic is v a s tly larger than * F r a n c i s B a c o n , The Advancement of Learning, in speaking about poetry.
in E nglish. Cf. al-M utahhar, Beginning and History, III, 138 and 173 (trans. 143 and 176) H u a r t
* Durrat al-asldk, B odleian ms. or. M arsh 223 (Uri 750), fol. 4a. (Paris 1899-1919, Publications de l cole des langues or. vivantes, IV e Serie, Vols. 16-18,
Juhaynat al-ahbdr, ms. Cairo T a ri^ 1610. 21-23). Cf. also at-T a 'alib i, L histoire des rois des Perses [Ourar), 388 Z o t e n b e r g (Paris 1900).
i8 o ARTISTIC FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING THE USE OF VERSE 181

Firdawsi based himself was th at of D aqiqi (wrote between 960 and ment of poetical products but no more so than the sayings of the
980). If D aqiqi was a Zoroastrian, as one has occasionally assumed, sages of the past.^ Im portant contem porary events often constituted
his place would not be among Muslim historians, but one m ay also the m aterial for poems. A glorious m ihtary happening m ight inspire
doubt the propriety of placing the Sdhndmah itself into the con the poet when he hoped for a m aterial reward in some form or other
te x t of Muslim historiography, since its sole purpose was to exalt from the person who had played a leading role in th a t happening.
the heroism and grandeur of pre-Islam ic Iran. However, Firdaw si H istorical events could be m ade the topic of biting vituperative
wrote and felt as a Muslim, no less than did, for example, a historian poems, which, hke the hijd'' of old, were im portant weapons in the
such as M iskaw ayh.i T he history of the past came to him as legend, struggle between two contesting parties. ^ The im pact of history
and it was not his task to uncover the reahstic traits it m ight have upon the contem porary scene could be celebrated in poems, or
contained. V aliant heroes of superhum an strength and chaste mourned, depending upon circumstances.^ A ll these poems are
women of great beauty, base traitors and faithful warriors, drawn valuable for our understanding of the history of their time, but in
w ith a few stereotype yet lifehke strokes, populate his work. The no w ay do th ey form part of historiography. Unless a comprehen
tragedy of m an and the b eauty of the world, the inexorable doom sive study, which would be highly desirable, should lead to different
which guilt brings into the historical process, are the subject of results, it seems evident th a t the historical im port of the events
the m any dram atic episodes loosely strung together b y the poet into w ith which the poets dealt was of little or no concern to most of them.
a gigantic composition. The value which a Muslim poet would most surely find in a rapid
The Sdhndmah was often im itated in its own country. Its form review of world history was historys lesson of the instability of
was used for a va rie ty of novelistic topics b ut also occasionally, all hum an greatness. The Uhi-sunt m otif would be in the mind of the
in the eastern part of the Muslim world, for a presentation of poet who looked at history, no m atter whether he lived in the Spain
Mushm h istory.2 Its greatness and popularity was grudgingly ad of the early tw elfth century hke Ibn Abdun,^ or later in the same
m itted b y A rab writers,^ but the rest of the Muslim world never century in the Y em en like N aswan b. S a id, the author of the famous
produced anything comparable to it. Himyarite Poem.^
The epical treatm ent of history in verses remained unknown to In the golden age of A rabic hterature, some reluctant attem pts
A rabic literature; at least, the few attem pts at poetical historiog were made b y great poets to try their skill on historical subjects.
raphy m ade in the ninth century (see below) never led to an y true A yajaz poem on the conquest of Spain said to have been w ritten
epical poetry.^ A knowledge of history was considered as an adorn- b y Y a h y a b. H akam al-Gazal in the first half of the ninth century

quotations in al-Biruni, Ifrdd al-maqdl f i amr az-zildl, 142-44 (H yderabad 1367/1948), and
^ F or the conflict between Muslim and Persian ideas in F ird aw sis concept of h istory, cf.
G . E . VON GR t)N EBA UM , in Melanges F u ad Kdpriilu, 177-93 (Istanbul 1953), reprinted in his
idem, Tamhtd al-mustaqarr li-tahqiq ma^nd al-mamarr, 26 {ibidem).
1 Cf. al-Husri, Zahr al-dddb. I, 96 (Cairo 1305, in the m argin of Ibn 'A b d rab b ih , ^Iqd).
Islam , Essays in the Nature and Growth of a Cultural Tradition, 168-84 (Menasha, W ise., 1955).
* Cf., for instance, al-Q affals poem against Nicephoros Phocas (cf. the literature quoted
^ F or H am dallah al-M ustaw fis Zafarndmah, which was com pleted in 735/1334-35, cf.
b y B r o c k e l m a n n , G A L Supplement I, 307 and III , 1200), or a m inor exam ple from the
S t o r e y , Persian Literature, II, 81 ff., or, for the h istory of the Muslims in India en titled
Futuh as-saldttn b y 'Isam i, cf. P. H a r d y , Historians of M edieval India, 94 ff. (London i960). Crusades in al-M aqrizi, Hitat, I, 223 (Bulaq 1270).
Cf., for instance, J. d e S o m o g y i , A Qastda on the Destruction of Baghdad by the Mongols,
Th e form w as so popular th at also a seven teen th -centu ry Jewish author, B^ bay, could use
it, cf. W . B a c h e r , in Revue des ^t. Juives, L I - L I I I (igo6 f.). in B S O S , V II , 41-48 (1933-35), concerning a poem b y A b u 1-Y u sr Ism a 'il b. Ibrahim {GAL
Supplement, I, 458). Th e m odern historians of Muslim Spain, in particular, have recognized
Th e Q u r an of the com mon people, cf. D iy a -ad-din Ibn al-A tir, al-M atal as-sd^ir,
the im portance of these poems as historical sources and d evoted to them a num ber of studies,
503 (B ulaq 1282), quoted b y I. G o l d z i h e r , Muhammedanische Studien, I, 173, n. 2 (Halle
1889-90). cf. E . G a r c I a G o m e z , La Qastda MaqsHra del Qartajanni (d. 684/1285), in Al-Andalus,
I, 81-103 (1933); E. L 6 v i - P r o v e n 9AL, Un Z a y a l hispanique sur Vexpedition aragonaise
* G. VON G r u n e b a u m has pointed ou t th at the form of rhym e em ployed in them m ight
have been borrow ed from Persian sources {On the Origin and Early Development o f Arabic de 1309 contre Alm eria, in Al-A ndalus, V I, 377-99 ( i 9 4 i)-
* For his fam ous poem , cf. G A L , I, 271, Supplement I, 480, and A. R. N y k l , Hispano-
M uzdaw ij Poetry, in J N E S , III , 9-13, 1944)- Som e predecessors of F ird aw sis Sdhndmah
Arabic Poetry, 176 ff. (Baltim ore 1946). T he A rab ic te xt also appears on pp. 299-302 of the
m ay h ave influenced the historical attem pts of the A rab ic poets. In this connection, it m ay
be of some significance th at the historian al-B aladu ri translated the Covenant o f ArdaUr in Cairo edition (1340) of Ibn B adru n s com m entary, Kimdmat az-zahr.
Cf., for instance, R. B a s s e t , La Qasidah Himyarite (Alger 1914), or I. G o l d z i h e r ,
(with) poetry (?), according to the F ihrist, 164 (Cairo 1348 = 113 F l u g e l ) . Cf. above
p. 36, n. I, as well as the activities in the sam e d irection of A ban a l-L ah iq i {G A L apud C. H. B e c k e r , Islamstudien, I, 519 (Leipzig 1924).
Cf. G A L Supplement I, 148; al-M aqqari, Analectes, I, 178; II, 123 D o z y and others
Supplem ent I, 239). It m ay also be noted th at early versifications of astronom ical lore
originated under foreign (Indian) influence and used a peculiar form of rhym e, cf. the (Leiden 1855-61); . L e v i - P r o v e n ^a l , Islam d'Occident, 91 ff. (Paris 1948).
i 82 ARTISTIC FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING THE USE OF VERSE 183

is not preserved, and there is no indication to show whether the form because of the practical im possibility to continue one rhym e
poetical genius of its author asserted itself in it. The poem of A b u letter through hundreds of verses (anticipating the conclusion of
Firas in which he praised the achievem ents of his ancestors was later literary critics th at long poems of necessity alw ays contain
hardly m otivated b y historical considerations of any kind.^ Ibn m any bad verses^). This m ight have been a secondary consideration.
al-M uta zz biography of al-M utadid, on the other hand, was a Unless we are willing to believe in an influence exercised b y Persian
very interesting attem pt to apply the custom ary forms of A rab ic rhym ed histories, ^ it would seem th at the simple metre and rhym e
poetry to a large historical composition of 419 verses. Ibn al-M u- chosen here recommended them selves for an essentially prosaic
tazz was conscious of the fact th at his enterprise was different subject. T he jingling effect made this typ e of verse stick in the
from ordinary poetry as practiced b y the Arabs. He was not able m em ory and caused it to become the favorite form of didactic
to free himself from the conventionalities of prose literature. Thus, and mnemonic rhymes. Its use b y Ibn al-Mu*^tazz is evident proof,
the first verses contain the hasmalah and htitbah which introduce if such were needed, th at the later rhym ed histories were, like the
all prose works. The ending, which was added after the poem was later histories in rhym ed prose, degenerated versions of legitim ate
finished, is restricted to two prosaic lines, of which one indicates older attem pts to give a certain artistic form to the m aterial
the date of al-M utadids death and the other comments upon the contained in historical works.
instability of hum an life. The m ain contents describes the troubled Quite a number of years before Ibn al-M utazz, another great
conditions before al-M utadid, his greatness, and the viciousness poet, *Ali b. al-Jahm , w rote a rajaz poem on world history down to
of his enemies. This is done in a num ber of skilful specimens of his own time.^ Some verses from a continuation of Ibn al-Jahm s
laudatory and vituperative poetry. These specimens are units b y poem w ritten a few decades later b y Ahm ad b. Muhammad al-
themselves. T h ey are not welded together b y any internal logic, A nbari ^ had already shown th at the poem was a dry enumeration
nor are al-M u'tadids character and career explained through his of the various caliphs much inferior to Ibn aI-Muta z z work, and
activities and the events of his time,^ which, however, is something quite unw orthy of so gifted a lyrical poet as A li b. al-Jahm. Other
one looks for in vain also in ordinary prose histories. It w as Ib n al- previously known lines from the beginning of Ibn al-Jahm s poem
M u 'tazz merit to have chosen for the versification of the traditional also m arked it as a mediocre product. T h ey run about like
typ e of historical inform ation those poetical forms which were this;
most suitable for the task, the madih and the hija . This w as a T h ey then procreated, and offspring he desired.
highly intelligent choice and a considerable achievem ent. The poet A nd E ve was pregnant b y him w ith a child.
executed his design w ith his custom ary m asterly craftsm anship,
as far as the choice of words and figures of speech were concerned. She bore a son, and th ey called him Cain,
It was, however, an unfortunate idea to use the pedestrian rajaz A n d th ey saw him attain w hat he did attain.
metre w ith internal rhym e of the tw o half-verses. Since it alw ays
was the tendency of A rabic poetry to consider the rhym e word
1 Cf. D iy a -ad-din Ibn al-A tir, loc. cit. (above, p. 180, n. 3).
the conclusion of a unit of thought and expression, the units now Cf. above, p. i8o, n. 4.
becam e much too short to express a coherent idea. The whole poem * Published as a special appendix to y a l i l M ardam B e y s edition of Ibn al-Jahm s Diwdn,
228-50 (Dam ascus 1369/1949).
alm ost dissolves into hackneyed, overbrief sentences, whose agglom * Cf. Y A q ilt, Ir^dd, IV , 197 f. (Cairo = I I, 62 M a r g o l i o u t h ), according to whom the
eration has a rather tiresome effect. author of the continuation of 'A li b. Jahm is identical w ith A h m ad b. M uham m ad b.
S ayh . T his id entification needs corroboration from independent sources. Ibn S ayh died in
It is hardly possible to assume th a t Ibn al-M utazz selected th is 307/919, according to al-H atib al-B agd ad i, T B , V , 42 f., and not in 320, as Y a q u t (cf.
G A L Supplement I, 123) assumed on the basis of a rather daring identification.
1 G A L Supplement I, 144. Cf. also D. S. M a r g o l i o u t h s com parison of A b u Firms poem * Cf. al-M utahhar, Beginning and History, II, 85 f. (transl. 75 f.) H u a r t . A l-M as'udi,
with M iskaw ayh, in his valuable chapter on poetry as a vehicle of h istory {Lectures on M uru j, I, 19 (Cairo 1346) quotes a slig h tly different version of the last verse and adds
M uslim Historians, 59-81, C alcu tta 1930). another one:
Cf, C. L a n g s rem arks in his edition and translation of Ibn al-Mu'^tazz poem, in Z D M G , Thus A b el grew up, and so did Cain.
X L , 563-611 (1886), and X L I, 232-79 (1887). A n d no difference w as betw een the twain.
184 ARTISTIC FORMS OF HISTORICAL WRITING THE USE OF VERSE 185

The complete te x t does nothing to im prove the negative impression devotes most of its contents to the western dynasties, is a w ork of
as to the artistic m erits of the w ork gained from the occasional this type. It also is a good illustration of the fact th at even men of
quotations of individual verses. literary taste and historical understanding were no longer able to
U sually, however, the poetical histories of the ninth and tenth im prove the form of rhym ed histories. Their contents usually
centuries seem to have retained a certain dignity which lifted them consisted of a bare list of names and some factu al data, and the
above the level of mere mnemonic exercises. The early w ork on the whole was well suited for memorizing. The introduction never
history of Spain b y Tam m am b. Am ir b. Alqam ah has unfor failed to be the exact rephca of the corresponding typ e of prose
tu n ately left no trace. 1 The long rajaz poem, in which Ibn *Abd- works. 1 The common praise of the importance of history was not
rabbih described the reign of Abd-ar-Rahm an III of Spain and omitted.^ E ven the sources on which a particular poem w as based
his m ilitary expeditions, was an attem pt to convey full inform ation were described in verse. The poetical quality of later rhym ed his
in an appropriate literary, if not poetical, language. In it, the author tories is indicated in the translated specimens from a l-B a um,^
followed an annalistic arrangement m arked b y interm ediate lines although it m ust be said th at the English translation does more
in prose.2 If Ibn A bdrabbih is compared w ith Ibn al-M utazz, than justice to the original. N ot m any of them have been printed,
however, the great difference between the form ers prosaic rhym es and few ever will. Some are known from the context of larger his
and the latte rs use of genuine poetical forms for a prosaic subject torical works, such as a brief rajaz poem on the Abbasids inserted
becomes at once evident. The eleventh-century historical rajaz b y Ibn K a tir in his Nihdyah,^ or Ibn D an iyals poem on the judges
poem b y *Abd-al-Jabbar al-M utanabbi from A lcira also is no great of E g y p t which was taken over b y as-Suyuti in his Husn al-muhd-
poetry and is reminiscent of Ibn al-Jahm , but, with its philosophical darah^ and which m ay also be found in Ibn H ajars Raf^ al-isr."^
introduction, it is as sensible a product of versified historiography
as one m ight expect to encounter.^ 1 Cf. a lread y Ibn al-M u 'tazz, above, p. 182 f.
^ Cf. Ibn al-Ij[atib, Raqm al-hulal, Paris m,s. ar. 5026, fol. 2a (the edition, Tunis 1316,
The flood of rhym ed histories was loosened in the thirteenth cf. G A L , II, 262, w as not at h a n d ); a l-B a 'u n i, in as-Sahaw i, iHdn 15 and 95, below , pp. 286
century and has never since been stemmed. The thirteenth century and 409; al-C u m ri, op. cit. (p. 49, n. 6).
=> Cf. as-Safadi, Tuhfah, used in the Paris ms. ar. 5827 (phot. ms. Cairo T a ym u r TaMl>
was the time when the physician Sadid-ad-din b. Raqiqah (d. 635/ 2102), see above, p. 163; al-G um ri, op. cit. In his poem on the creation of the world, A li b.
1237-38), an adept rhym ester of the better sort, impressed his al-Jahm alread y referred at some len gth to his sources characterized b y him as reliable
transm itters . Cf. also 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r, loc. cit. A specim en is to be found below , p .5 4 6 .
colleague Ibn A bi U sayb i'ah with his ab ility to turn any m edical * Below , p. 409.
w ork into rajaz verses more quickly than any other physician of X I I I , 206 ff., anno 656.
I I, 138-42, and supplem ent b y as-Su yu ti, 142 f. (Cairo 1299).
the time. In addition to the speed of his poetical production, Ed. H A m i d ' A b d - a l - M a j i d and I b r a h i m a l - I b y a r i , 2 ff. (Cairo 1957-61).
he expressed himself well and was able to retain in his versifications For rh ym ed biographies of the P rophet, cf. below , p. 398.

the whole contents of the works he versified.^ H istorians of the


same proficiency were certainly not wanting. The didactic purpose
of versified prose histories is obvious, even if an author occasionally
states th at he w as induced b y the conciseness of the m etrical form
to m ake use of it. A t times, the verses were interrupted b y com
m ents in prose. This simplified the rather difficult task of squeezing
exact data into a m etrical form. The Raqm al-hulal f i nazm ad-
duwal b y Ibn al-H atib, which deals w ith prophets and caliphs but

* Cf. G A L Supplement I, 148, 233.


Cf. ^Iqd, I I, 288-302 (Cairo 1305).
Cf. Ibn, Bassara, Dahirah, I, 2, 404-31 (Cairo 1361/1942).
* Ibn A b i U say b i'ah , II, 220 M u l l e r .
Ibn D an iyal, cf, as-Suyuti, H usn al-muhddarah, II, 139 (Cairo 1299).
THE HISTORICAL NOVEL 187

of Arabia. Its oldest stage antedates the consolidation of Muslim


scholarship and hterature. This typ e of historical novel existed
when Muslim literature was first w ritten down, and it became a
part of historical Hterature. It was no longer transm itted exclusively
CH APTER SEVEN b y storytellers but b y the ordinary processes of w ritten or oral
scholarly transmission, and its novelistic origin was no longer
THE HISTORICAL NOVEL reahzed. The subj ect m atter of these novels was the legendary history
of pre-Islamic southwestern Arabia. Through them, th at part of the
It is a most significant fact th at the novel (or romance) in A rabic A rabian peninsula becam e firm ly established in Muslim fiction as
literature is largely represented b y historical novels. E ducated the favorite setting for novels. The Yem enite saga," in its origin,
Muslims alw ays looked down upon these historical novels and other perhaps, a non-Yem enite echo of Yem enite nationalist feeling,^
works of fiction as inferior products. In fact, th ey are greatly in w as attached to such names as W ahb b. Munabbih,^ who m ay in
ferior to the best products of Muslim literature, both in their artistic fact have functioned as a transm itter of some inform ation about
form and in the intellectual level of their contents.^ B u t their very southwestern A rab ia to early historians, and the much less his
existence and popularity are indicative of a strong historical con torical A bid b. Saryah and Ibn Qirriyah.^ The name of Am ir
sciousness in the Muslim masses. It was through these novels that a s- a bi, the early transm itter whom later legend made the paragon
history filtered deep down into the hearts of the people. Through of MusHm scholarship, was also used in this connection. Am ong
them, children learned to understand Islam as a historical phe the literary figures under whose names m aterial of this typ e was
nomenon. The illiterate could get a glimpse of Muslim history published, we find al-A sm a'i as the authority for philological in
when th ey listened to the storytellers in the streets. Am ong those formation, and Ibn Hisam as th at for historical information. E ven
who were able to read and to b u y books, novels were the most Ibn al-M uqaffa was not omitted.^ A ll this m aterial which to a large
w idely read and bought of all A rabic books, w ith the sole exception part existed already in the ninth century, though later additions
of the Quran. A rabic historiography would have been no less to it were not unknown, was generally accepted as history and
rem arkable as an expression of intellectual curiosity w ithout the transm itted as such, together w ith the rest of the pre-Islam ic history
existence of its low ly sister, the historical novel, but it would have of southwestern Arabia. The historicity of it was much less sus
been much less of an instrum ent for m aking history a part of every pect than th at of the conquest [futuh) novels and the ascription
Muslims intellectual experience. of their authorship to al-W aqidi.
N otw ithstanding the existence of a large Persian historical
literature which was known to the Muslims and soon recognized 1 G. L e v i d e l l a V i d a , in calling m y attention to the fact th at he had occupied him self
w ith the Paris m anuscripts of P seudo-A sm a'i m entioned in J A O S , L X I X , 90 ff. ( i 949 )>
as fiction,2 the Muslim historical novel was in its origin a product cf. Orientalia, N .S ., I X , 164, n. 2 (1940), m aintains the theory th at the origin of the Y em enite
pseudo-historical literature should be sought in the Y em en where th at literature w as
* T h is statem ent is n ot to be m odified on account of the fa ct that these works are for popular as evidenced b y the Yem en ite provenience of m anuscripts dealing with it.
us in valu able sources for the understanding of the psych ology and aspirations of the ^ Cf. below , p. 335.
com mon m an in Islam . T he inherent value of a w ork of literature m ust not be confounded For A b id , cf, G A L Supplement I, 100; new ed., I, 63 f., as well as above, p. 50, n. i,
with its valu e as a source of inform ation entirely unconnected w ith its original destination. and p, 64, n. i. Th e d ata availab le for him would seem to indicate th at his appearance in
For a brief su rv ey of the A rab ic historical novel down to modern times, cf. H. P e r^ s, in literature as a historical novelist does not antedate the early eighth century. A s a sage and
Annales de I'lnstitu t d'tudes Or., Faculte des Lettres de I Univ. d'Alger, X V , 5-39 (1957); longevous mu^ammarhe m ight h ave been know n m uch earlier. It is not certain w hether his
X V I , 5-40 (1958). nam e is to be read 'A b id o r 'U b a y d . For the form Saryah , cf. the verse cited in O. L o f g r e n ,
2 Cf. the ch apter on works of fiction, in F ihrist, 422 ff. (Cairo 1348 = 304 ff. F l O g e l ) . E in H am dani-Fund, 24 (Uppsala Universitets Arsskrift, i 9 3 5 > no. 7); al-H am dani, IkUl,
It is d oubtful w hether the G raeco-B yzan tine titles of novels, lumped together in the F ihrist, 6 L o f g r e n (U ppsala 1954, Bibliotheca Ekmaniana, 58: i).
4 2 5 ( = 3 0 5 f- F l x ) g e l ) , under the subtitle of novels and histories , were known to the F or Ibn al-Q irriyah, cf. H. M. L e o n , in Islam ic Culture, II, 3 4 7 - 5 9 (1928).
Muslims before the third/ninth century. Their appearance in A rabic took place, it w ould * For Pseu d o-al-A sn ia'is (or al-W assas?) M uluk al-'-Arab, cf. J A O S , L X I X , 90 f.
seem, about a cen tury later than th at of the corresponding Persian literature. F or the (1949), and above, p. 58, n. 5. Ibn H isam s Kitdb at-Tijdn was published in H yderabad 1347*
passage of the F ihrist on asmdr and tawdrth, cf. B. E. P e r r y , in Byzantinische Zeitschrift, Ib n al-M uqaffa' figures in the Nihdyat al-arab.
L I V , 12 ff. (1961), and F . R o s e n t h a l , in Oriens, X V , 37 f. (1962). B u t cf. al-M as'udi, M uruj, IV , 89, Paris ed.
i8 8 THE HISTORICAL NOVEL THE HISTORICAL NOVEL 189

W hile this oldest historical novel lost its id en tity in general pressly attested.^ E xcep t for works th at indicate a terminus post
history, the second stage of historical fiction has preserved its charac quern b y their historical setting, such as the Sirat Baybars, only a
ter to the present day. It is represented b y two groups of w orks: thorough literary analysis of the preserved works could give us a
the futuhdt just mentioned which describe the early Muslim con better insight into the early history of the novels, unless A rabic
quests (or magdzi raids ), and the siyar which deal w ith the hterature should yield some day exact indications as to an existence
novelistic biography of historical or pseudo-historical heroes or of those works in earlier times and as to the form th ey had then.
peoples. 1 The steady flow of novehstic creativity reached its largest It would, however, be dangerous to assume a specific and very
dimensions in the time of the Crusades. It was still vigorous in the early date for certain handpicked elements of the contents,^ since
colorful E g y p t of the fourteenth/fifteenth century where, for in the novelists derived their m aterial in part from the historical
stance, such novels as the sir ah of B ay b ars and th at of S ayf b. hterature .3 The extraordinary length attained b y m any novels
D i Y aza n originated,2 but slow ly ran out w ith the decay of Hterary was due to a process of continuous accretion which took longer
and pohtical v ita lity in the Mushm world tow ard the end of the for the futuh works than for those novels which dealt w ith more
Middle Ages. The passive interest in historical novels, however, recent heroes. The date when a novel reached the form in which
has alw ays remained aHve. This is indicated, for instance, b y the we read it tod ay m ay, perhaps, be approxim ately determined b y a
fact th at ancient m anuscripts of the novels appear to be very rare. careful collection and comparison of all the existing m anuscripts
T h ey were no collectors items. T h ey were read, worn out, and and b y the study of variations occurring in their texts. In view of
replaced. The m anuscripts of S p r e n g e r s collection in Berlin date the recent date of most manuscripts, results m ay, however, not
from the seventeenth, and in the m ajority of cases from the eight alw ays be forthcom ing in this manner.
eenth and nineteenth centuries. N othing older was apparently to be The form elements which m ake up the contents of the historical
found in S p r e n g e r s days.^ In our time, the m any cheap editions of novel are the same as in habar historiography. The individual
the futuh works or the success of a film version of the *Antar novel episodes seem, however, to flow much more sm oothly into each
testify to the continued popularity of the novehstic tradition. other than in historical w orks; in fact, as in any effective thriller,
The roots of this tradition are inextricably connected w ith the ancient or modern, there never seems to be a pause or stop, and
beginnings of Muslim historiography. Modern historical criticism the end seems never to be in sight. The speeches are longer and
has recognized th at the early historians of the conquests, such as m uch more frequent. B attles are more ferocious than in real his
S ayf b. 'U m ar and A bu H udayfah, prepared the ground for futuh tories but hardly as v iv id ly described. Descriptions of locale are
novels and, incidentally, b y their colorful novelistic presentation held in very general terms. A fabulous building has just everything.
of events caused historians like at-T abari to give more credence It is furnished w ith all kinds of carpets. Garm ents are composed of
to their works than th ey deserved. W ith the beginning of the second all colors. Trees have all kinds of fruit.^ The narrator relied on
millennium, the existence of novels such as the Sirat A n tar is ex- his fancy, which often failed him. The fictitious chain of trans
m itters indicating the supposed historicity of a particular habar
1 T he references in G A L , I, 136 , and II, 62 (new edition I, 142, and II, 74), Supplement
I, 208, 6 1 6 ; II, 63-65, furnish m uch of the bibliographical help needed as far as A rabic w as w idely preserved, but there also appeared a sum m ary indication
works are concerned. There also exist such novels origin ally w ritten in Persian and Turkish.
* F o r the former, cf. H. W a n g e l i n s stu d y (S tu ttga rt 1936) and G. S c h r e g l e , D ie
of sources in which, in typ ica lly novelistic fashion, all kinds of
Sultanin von Agypten, 9 7-122 (W iesbaden 19 6 1), and for the d ate of the latter, cf. R . P a r e t , historians from different periods were lum ped together. The out-
S a if ibn D hi Jazan, ein arabischer Volksroman (H annover 1924).
C f. R . P a r e t , D ie Geschichte des I slams in der arabischen Volksliteratur, 20 f. (T iib in gen
192 7, Philosophie und Geschichte, 13). 1 Cf. G A L Supplement I I, 63.
* Cf. the indications in W . A h l w a r d t , Verzeichniss der arabischen Handschriften, V ol. Cf. R . P a r e t , op. cit. (p. 188, n. 3), 9 f., who is h ard ly convincing.
V I I I (Berlin i8 g 6 . D ie Handschriften-Verzeichnisse der kdniglichen Bibliothek zu Berlin, 20). On the m utual relationship betw een the novel and historical works, cf. the instructive
Cf. also R . P a r e t , D ie legenddre Maghdzi-Literatur (Tiibingen 1930). On p. 124, P a r e t discussion in connection w ith ajarat-ad-d urr b y G. S c h r e g l e , op. cit.
dubiously refers to a m anuscript in Cairo which, according to the Cairo catalogue, w as * Cf. Futuh Bahnasd (Paris ms. ar. 1690, fols. 23b-24a); F utuh al-Yam an (Paris ms. ar.
copied in 846/1442.
1816, fol. 54a).
Cf. alsoj^above, p. 4 7, n. i. Cf. F utuh Bahnasd, I I, 138 (in the edition of the F utuh aS-Sa^m, Cairo i 354/i9 3 5 )*
I go THE HISTORICAL NOVEL THE HISTORICAL NOVEL 191

standing ingredient of the historical novel is poetry. The frequency fan cy of the common people were directed against infidels, whether
of poetical insertions often m arks a w ork as fiction. The verses one thinks of the early conquests of Islam, the continuous struggle
occurring in novels are characterized b y a simple language which, in w ith the Byzantines, or the defense against the Crusaders. It
contrast to A rabic poetry in general, needs no philological training would, however, be wrong to see in the prevalence of religion in
and acumen for its understanding. Their sim plicity often m akes the historical novel m erely the m echanical consequence of historical-
them very appealing to the modern reader, if much less so to the political circumstances. It was in the religious element th at life
educated Muslim. It was even permissible to use local dialects.^ and fiction met. W ithout it, the novels would have seemed pointless
The use of rhym ed prose was strongly favored, as we would expect. and w holly unrealistic to the ordinary Muslim. It was thus necessary
It took on such childish forms as found in the following conversation to turn pre-Islam ic figures into precursors of the Muslim jihdd.
between M uhammad and A li: Am ong Mushms, a position of preeminence was accorded to A li b.
A b i T ilib . W ith him as the glorious hero, the public felt th at here
M uhammad: W here is m y uncles son, was the conduct th at their Muslim upbringing could approve as
W ho disperses all m y sorrows and leaves not one! exem plary. W hen the infidels pronounced the Muslim confession
A li: A t your command, at your command! of faith, it was the only really h appy ending which the heros
Before you here I stand. adventures could find.
G ods blessings upon you I demand. ^ A brief description of the contents of the first part of the Futuh al-
Yaman, which w as ascribed to a certain A bu 1-H asan al-Bakri
Stock phrases, such as: A nd the Messenger of God stood up, who enjoyed the reputation of a proverbial liar,i m ay serve as
standing on his feet, were often repeated. The description of the an illustration of the basic tenor of the historical novel in Islam.
same recurrent situation, such as the coming of mornings and The Futuh al-Yaman begins w ith a m an called Urfudah ^ telling
evenings ,2 was never om itted from the story. A s a typ ical device the Prophet about the accursed H addam b. al-Jahhaf (Jahhaf?).
of epical narrators, such repetitions are known to us from Homer
O nly A li b. A b i T ah b would have a chance to defeat him. The
and the U garitic epics to Firdawsi and down through history. archangel Gabriel tells the Prophet th at A li would indeed succeed.
The contents of the novels, as in all popular fiction, was heroism Reassured, M uhammad calls Ali. The people are assembled and
in the futuhdt, and heroism and some love in the siyar.^ A ll evil harangued. A bdallah b. U nays is ordered to describe the heresy of
is conquered b y the shining goodness of the hero. No danger is Haddam. H e reports th at H addam had made for himself an idol
too great for the hero to face, and he alw ays overcomes it w ith
which is suspended in the air b y means of magnets. This affair and
little effort. The element which distinguishes Muslim historical the buildings of H addam are described. The gold, silver, and marble
novels from other novels of old is the predom inant interest in used in the construction of the buildings, the beautiful slave girls
religion which finds expression in nearly all of them,^ and makes there, everything is mentioned, also, th at H addam has established
them documents of religious history ^ more than anything else. the worship of his own person. W hen the Prophet hears this story,
Heroism in history, to the simple mind, revealed itself in wars. he prostrates himself. W ith his eyes full of tears,^ he asks Ibn
W ars, according to Muslim theory, could only be w aged against
infidels. In fact, the momentous wars in Islam which engaged the 1 Cf. E I , 2nd ed., s. V. a l-B a kri; G A L Supplement I, 616; al-Q alqaandi, Subh al-aHd, I,
454 (Cairo 1331/1913-1338/1919); G. L e v i d e l l a V i d a , in Collectanea Vaticana, II, 167 f.
^ Cf. Ibn. y^aldun, Muqaddimah, III, 362 ff. Paris, and A . B e l s edition, of a poenj, from (Citta del V aticano 1962, Studi e Testi, 219-20), w ho is inclined to believe in the h istoricity
the sto ry of the B an u H ilal, in J A , I X , 19, 289-347 (1902), 20, 169-236 (1902), and X , of the indication th at the original al-B akri w as an a u th o rity of the nin th-cen tu ry Um arah
1 ,3 11-6 6 (1903). b. W atim ah and thus lived in and before the tim e of the latter. T h e older Sibt b. a l-'A ja m i
* Cf. the Futuh al-Yaman. (d. 841/1438, cf. G A L , II, 67), N ur an-nibrds, Paris ms. ar. 1968, fol. 2, warns em phatically
* The proportion betw een h istory and love in Muslim novels m arks the distinction between against him, w ith reference to ad-D ahabi, M izdn, I, 53 (Cairo 1325).
historical and other fiction. * = 'U rfu tah .
R. P a r e t , op. cit. (p. 188, n. 3), 7, refers to the n ovel of Zir Zalim as one in which E m otional situations were greatly favored in these novels. Cf., for instance, the scene
Islam plays no role at all. of y a i id b. S a 'id standing a t the grave of his son, in the Futuh aS-Sa^m, I, 12 f. (Cairo
Cf. R. P a r e t , op. cit. (p. 18 8, n. 4), 1 6 7 . 1354/1935)-
IQ2 THE HISTORICAL NOVEL THE HISTORICAL NOVEL 193

U nays where Hadd^m is living. In the Yem en, is the answer, far excitem ent, A li find the time to pause every few moments to
from civilization in the W adi of the Idol this is a good opportunity recite poems of his own composition. . . .
to exhibit some superficial knowledge and enumerate the names It was m ainly in this manner that Muslim historiography ful
of wadis in the Yemen.^ The kings of the Yem en, the tu bb a's, the filled its destiny as a living force which helped to shape the history
offspring of the Am alekites, the heroes of the H im yar, all of them of Islam.
are powerless against H ad dim who has an immense arm y. The
Prophet just smiles: 0 Ibn Unays, you w ill see something th at
w ill m ake you glad, if God wills. The help of God, He is exalted, for
His friends is close. There is no m ight and strength except w ith
God, the High, the G reat. Then, he calls A ll who forthw ith appears.
The Prophet smiles broadly and embraces him. Then, he comm ands
A ll to go on the expedition against Haddam. A li reflects for a
long while, then looks up, w ith his cheeks flushed. Then, again,
he reflects (the repetition serves to add to the suspense of readers
and listeners). The Muslims show concern, and the hypocrites are
jubilant, because th ey think that A li is afraid. B ut, of course, he
is not. A sked b y Muhammad w hy he does not say anything, A li
declares th at since Gabriel had stated th at H addam would be de
feated with the help of God, he should rely on no other help but
on God alone. He would, therefore, go all b y himself. The Prophets
face and those of the Muslims light up. The faces of the hypocrites
change. Muhammad writes a letter to Haddam. Jam il b. K a tir
volunteers to go. He is sent in advance. The Prophet weeps again.
A ll fasts, prays, washes, puts on his armor, kisses his sons, says
good-bye to his wife Fatim ah, and takes leave from the Prophet.
He is accompanied b y all the inhabitants of Medina and kissed
and exhorted b y the Prophet outside the city. Then, he fin ally
gets off. A hypocrite, W araqah, offers A li his services as a guide.
A fter much hesitation, A li eventually takes him on, although he
is aware of his evil intentions. The trip is filled w ith dangerous
adventures which result from the presence of the hypocrite. W hen
they come close to their destination, tw o lions a tta ck them. A li
kills both of them. One of them is split b y him into tw o parts. This
is a good opportunity also to split the hypocrite in two, as his evil
intentions had become fully evident in the lion episode. The negro
[al-aswad) who had watched A li fight the lions becomes a Muslim.
A ll sends him to Muhammad. Needless to say, inspite of all this

' A certain relationship of the novel w ith local historiography in the choice of m aterial
is evident, cf. the traditions in praise of Bahnas^, in the Fut'Uh Bahnasd.

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 13


EVALUATION OF MUSLIM HISTORIOGRAPHY 195

Turks, and in some areas of the A rabic speaking world, historical


works were the forem ost products of intellectual activity, almost
the only ones if one discounts theology as serving, as a rule, practical
purposes. Nevertheless, it could not be said that historiography
C H A P T E R E IG H T ever originated an intellectual m ovem ent in Islam. It alw ays oc
cupied the more modest position of a means for preserving and
AN EVALUATION OF MUSLIM HISTORIOGRAPHY reflecting the achievem ents of the Muslim mind.
In this capacity, it fulfilled a number of im portant functions.
H istorical works constitute a large percentage of the literature
Second only to the customs and practices of religious life, historiog
of the various Muslim peoples. The question poses itself w hether
raphy was instrum ental in firm ly planting into the hearts of a large
historiography influenced Muslim intellectual life to a degree com
number of Muslims the ideals and aspirations of Islam , an eminent
mensurable w ith its quantitative importance, or: W hat place did
ly historical religion both in its origin and later development. A t the
Muslim historiography occupy in the whole of Muslim civili
same time, historiography also served to keep alive the m em ory
zation ?
of the significance of their distinctive national heritage for the
H istoriography, adm ittedly, never was one of the determ ining
various nations of Islam. Furthermore, it alw ays m aintained a
factors of the currents of Muslim intellectual life. In its beginnings
position in which it was able to stim ulate a certain interest in va l
around 700, when, like all other Muslim scholarship, it still was
uable aspects of cultural a ctiv ity which were in danger of being
entirely in the service of Muslim law and religion, it absorbed
entirely elim inated from Muslim life. Its never broken continuity of
B yzantine and, perhaps, Iranian influences and strove, w ith partial
literary production was in itself a sort of intellectual life insurance
success, q uickly to become a w orldly political and educational
which supported the existence of w orldly' knowledge long after
subject. In the golden age of the Abbasids, historical works becam e
the scholarly urge to cultivate it had largely been suppressed.
the mirror of the most progressive phases of the Muslim renaissance,^
A bove all, in its close association w ith biography, historiography
the experim ental ground on which constantly new m ethods were
was the only effective vehicle in Islam for concrete self-expression
tried out in order to present as m any of the results of contem porary
and for the factual observation of life, for looking at life as it was
science and learning as possible to men of general education, in a
and for analyzing if one m ay use this word to designate the ru
manner which would be understandable to them. During the time
diments of psychology th at existed in m edieval Islam m an and
of the Crusades and, it seems, during the whole lifetim e of Spanish
his aspirations as the sole source of cultural development.
Muslim literature, historiography h esitatingly entered the service
A fter the position of Muslim historiography in its own cultural
of the forces in the individual which wished to proclaim the im por
environment has thus been briefly described, another question
tance of the here-and-now and which were usually suppressed in
demands an answer, nam ely, w hat position did Muslim historiogra
Islam. In fourteenth and fifteenth-century E gyp t, it was subjected
phy occupy in the history of W estern civilization and, in particular,
to the searching criticism of sociology and juridical m ethodology.
w hat contribution, if any, did it m ake to modern W estern historiog
Am ong the non-Arab Muslim peoples, such as the Persians and the
raphy. If we were dealing, for instance, w ith medicine or philoso
phy, this question would certainly be of fundam ental importance.
^ A . M e z , in his fam ous w ork, was n ot the first to use this expression w hich con veys to
the m odern W estern reader the real significance of the cu ltu ral process in ninth/tenth- In the particular case of historiography, however, it means com pa
cen tury Islam as well as any single word is able to do. L . L e c l e r c used it in his Histoire ratively little. No research will be able to discover that Muslim
de la medicine arabe, I, 139, 323 (Paris 1876). S im ultaneously w ith M e z , T . J. d e B o e r
com pared the eternal w isdom concept of ar-R azi w ith the ideas of the hum anists of the historiography ever reached the depth of penetration and artistic
European Renaissance, cf. De M edicina mentis van den arts Rdzi, 8 f. (Am sterdam 1922, expression of classical Greek or Rom an historiography, although it
Mededeel. d. k. Akad. van Wetenschappen, A fd . Letterkunde, deel 53, ser. A . D e B o e r s
contribution a lread y appeared in 1920. M e z had died in 1917, five years before the pu b lica
even tually achieved a definite advance beyond previous historical
tion of his book). w riting in the sociological understanding of history and the scientific
196 EVALUATION OF MUSLIM HISTORIOGRAPHY EVALUATION OF MUSLIM HISTORIOGRAPHY 197

system atization of historiography. The size of Muslim historical intellectual a ctiv ity as a whole did it indirectly h ave its niche in the
literature was conspicuous. B yzantine chronicles were closely related great com plex of E ast-W est cultural continuity.
to their Muslim counterparts, but w ith regard to them, Muslim For the later developm ent of W estern historiography, it m ay
historiography had the advantage of its great va riety and its vast not have been entirely insignificant that in Mushm literature there
volume. Indeed, it m ay be doubted whether anywhere in earlier existed so large an am ount of historical information. The mere
history, there existed so large a historical literature as we find in fact that such inform ation was readily available for everybody
Islam. The Greek and L atin historical production m ay have been who took the trouble of learning A rabic m ay have hastened the
equally large, but there certainly w as nothing to be compared w ith slow progress of W estern historiography tow ard a tru ly universal
it in sheer bulk in m edieval B yzantine, European, or even Far outlook on history. The developm ent of modern historical writing
Eastern literature. Its prominent place in Muslim literary a ctiv ity seems to have gained considerably in speed and substance through
cannot have remained concealed to m edieval W estern scholars the utilization of a Muslim historical literature which enabled
who had contact w ith the Arabs. B u t those scholars were interested W estern historians, from the seventeenth century on,i to see a large
in science, philosophy, and theology. L ike their average Muslim section of the world through foreign eyes. Muslim historiography
colleague, th ey would not stoop so low as to adm it to any knowledge also contributed to the picture of Islam which inspired the historical
of the existence of a historical literature.^ A t any rate, how much view s of men such as D. H u m e , T h . W a r t o n , and, through them,
or how little th ey m ight have known of Muslim historiography, their J. G. H e r d e r ,2 and thus, it helped indirectly and m odestly to
knowledge was not comm unicated to an y wider group of people. shape present-day historical thinking.
The political situation in thirteenth-century Christian Spain stim Modern historiography as a whole has clearly outdistanced any
ulated a certain interest also in Muslim history. Nevertheless, it thing achieved in the field of historical w riting in Islam. L ittle
can safely be said th at inform ation about Muslim history (including could be said about Muslim historiography if one would apply to it
even the historical facts of the life of M uhammad which were not a scheme such as J. G. D r o y s e n ' s Grundriss der Historik.^ For
infrequently related in some detail was p ractically non-existent m any centuries, Muslim historiography was superior to contem pora
or p itifu lly inaccurate in the W est, and there are no signs of any ry non-Muslim works. Then, the changed concept of history, the
influence of the forms and contents of Muslim historiography va stly widened modern experience in m any fields th at are more
upon historical w riting in m edieval Europe. Modern historiography or less closely related to history, and the general intensification and
drew its inspiration from W estern spiritual antecedents. Thus, the diffusion of research th at was brought about b y the invention
cultural value of Muslim historiography rests on its significance as a of printing largely replaced the forms of Muslim historiography.
Muslim phenomenon. O nly in as much as it formed part of Muslim It remains an adm irable and im m ortal giant monument of the
searching m edieval Muslim mind. It also is a vast storehouse of
1 W illiam of T y re certainly knew A rab ic h istorical works, cf., for instance, C. C a h e n ,
L a Syrie du Nord, 17 (Paris 1940). W hen Jacob of V itry , in the early thirteenth cen tury,
factu al inform ation and historical insights which up to now has
boasted of h avin g consulted Latin , Greek, and A rab ic historical sources (cf. U . M o n n e r e t only in part been exploited. A nd if there is a basic truth which
DE V i L L A R D , Lo studio dell Islam in Europa nel X I I e nel X I I I secolo, 25 f., C itta del V ati-
cano 1944, Studi e Testi, n o ) , this could be interpreted as evidence th at at least he knew
Muslim historiography could teach us after all historiographical
about the existence of such som ces. A careful perusal of the W estern m edieval literature efforts, would it not be th at the simple approach to history as a
concerning Muslim affairs m ay y e t yield the one or other express reference to the existence
of a Muslim h istorical literature. S . M. S t e r n , in Bibliotheca Orientalis, X I , 75 (1954), refers
source of facts and examples, both useful and inform ative, m ight
to A lfonso the Sage and C. E . D u b l e r , in Vox Romanica, 1951-52, 120 ff., in connection still be the best key to historical understanding ?
w ith the situation in m edieval Spain.
It is p robab ly of no significance th at the eleventh or tw elfth -cen tu ry Spanish Glossarium
latino-arabicum, 224 S e v b o l d (W eim ar-Berlin 1898-1900, Semitistische Studien, 15-17, ^ Cf. the brief su rvey b y P . M. H o l t , The Study of Arabic Historians in Seventeenth
Ergdnzungsheft zur Z A ), has no A rab ic equivalents for a n y of the three entries; historia Century England, in B S O ^ S , X I X , 444-55 ( i 957 )-
narratio rei geste preterite-, historicus qui instoriam scribit; historiografus historic auctor. A ccording to F . M e i n e c k e , D ie Entstehung des Historismus, II, 459 (M unich-Berlin
^ Cf. the life of M uham m ad from the h istory of the late tw elfth -cen tu ry G eoffrey of 1936).
V iterbo, which is unusually rich in its inform ation (E. C e r u l l i , II L ibro della Scala , In J. G . D r o v s e n , Historik. Vorlesungen Uber Enzyklopddie und Methodologie der
427, 552, C itta del V atica n o 1949, Studi e Testi, 150). Geschichte, ed. R. H O b n e r , 360 ff. (M unich-Berlin i 937 )-
P A R T TWO
C H A P T E R N IN E

A L -lJ i S TUHFAH i

I I n t r o d u c t io n

A. Z e k i V e l i d i T o g a n was the first to draw the attention of


scholars to an apparently unique m anuscript in the Siileym aniye
L ib ra ry in Istanbul, in the collection H atice Turhan Valide Sultan,
No. 231. It contains the oldest large-scale theoretical discussion
of historiography th at has so far become known from the Muslim
world,^ if one excepts the Muqaddimah of Ibn Haldun, the original
version of which was finished four years earlier. The Muqaddimah
was treated as a separate w ork already during the lifetime of its
author who called the subject dealt w ith in the first book of his
historical w ork an independent discipline. However, it was intended
^ T h e annotation to this and the follow ing translations m ight have been expanded
ad infinitum . It has been kep t as brief as possible. Individuals have as a rule been identified
at their first occurrence in as-Sahaw is IHdn. For all other occurrences, the index m ust be
consulted. E x cep t for the men whom I did not succeed in identifying, on ly caliphs and some
other rulers easily traced in such reference w orks as the Encyclopaedia of Islam are left
unidentified.
W herever possible, no other reference than one to G A L has been given. References are
as a rule to the original first edition, although the Supplement often provides the more
im portant inform ation. B ibliographical inform ation contained in G A L has as a rule n ot
been repeated here.
F or the Prophetical traditions, a reference to A . J. W e n s i n c k , J. P. M e n s i n g , and
others. Concordance and Indices de la tradition musuhnane (Leiden 1936 ff.), has often been
considered sufficient. N ot all the passages indicated in the Concordance for a given en try
agree, in certain cases, w ith the te x t as quoted in the w orks translated here.
Q uotations from the Q u r an are according to the num bering of the verses in the E gyp tian
edition, w ith the num ber of the verse in F l u g e l s edition added in brackets.
Som e freq u en tly quoted w orks; A l-B u hari, Ta^rih (H yderabad 13 6 0 - 7 8 ) ; al-H atib al-
B agdad i, T{a^rih) B{agddd) (Cairo 1 3 4 9 / 1 9 3 1 ) ; Ibn H ajar, Tahdib (H yderabad 1 3 2 5 - 2 7 ) ;
idem, Lisdn (H yderabad 1 3 2 9 - 3 1 ) ; idem, Durar (H yderabad 1 3 4 8 - 5 0 ) ; Ibn al-Jaw zi, Munta-
zam (H yderabad 1 3 5 7 - 5 9 ) ; Ibn K a tir, Biddyah (Cairo 1 3 5 1 - 5 8 ) ; as-Sahaw i, Daw (Cairo
1353-55).
^ Cf. Proceedings of the Twenty Second Congress of Orientalists (Istanbul 1 9 5 3 ) , I, 82,
and Islam Tetkikleri EnstitiisU Dergisi, I, 4 3 -4 9 ( 1 9 5 4 ). D uring m y sta y in Istan bu l in the
sum m er of i 9 6 0 , Professor T o g a n expressed to me the hope th at the m anuscript m ight some
d ay be reproduced m echanically, as this w ould seem to be the m ost suitable form of pu b li
cation. He also kin dly allow ed me to m ake use of a l-Ijis w ork in this publication. I h ave
refrained from publishing the A rab ic te x t of the translated sections, b u t I have added a
larger than usual am ount of transliterated A rab ic terms. M y sincere th an ks go to the lib ra ry
authorities in Istan bul who, w ith their custom ary courtesy, let me have a m icrofilm of the
m anuscript.
* Muqaddimah, I, 61 Paris.
202 A L - f j i s TUH FA H IN TR OD UCTION 203

to be the introduction to a world history, and it was concerned w ith place. This does not mean th at historical works were not w ritten
history, and only indirectly w ith the w riting of history. A l- ljis or appreciated in a l-ljis circle or th at his education left him entirel)^
Tuhfah, like the works to be discussed later b y al-K M iyaji and as- unprepared for an interest in history. However, the environm ental
S ah iw i, is concerned with the m ethodology of historiography.^ stimulus was much weaker in his case than the one th at existed in
The full title of a l-ljis work is Tuhfat al-faqir ild sdhih as-sarir. the Mamluk realm and the Mamluk sphere of cultural influence.
The nam e of the author, M uhammad b. Ibrahim al-lji, is new to Thus, the fact th a t he turned his attention to history must be con
Muslim literary history. A l-lji composed his w ork in 783/1381-82 sidered an original m ove on his part. It was the result of his desire
(fol. 79b). The scribe of the m anuscript was a certain P ir A li to test the philosophical and theological presuppositions he had
al-Hafiz, known as JUl, who com pleted his task on Tuesday, been taught to accept on the realities of this world. The tools he
al-Muharram i , 800/September 24, 1397. used in his approach to the problems of history were borrowed
The author gives us some inform ation about himself in the work. from the disciplines in which he had been trained. He relied upon
He w as a student of the well-known philosopher, *Adud-ad-din the criteria developed b y hadit scholars for the critical evaluation
a l-lji (d. 756/1355). He had mastered, it seems, the full curriculum of traditions and upon the principles developed b y jurists on the
of religious studies and had intensively occupied himself w ith the basis of form al logic for the determ ination of truth and falsehood.
stu d y of the hadit. However, presum ably as a result of his contact H e was convinced th at these criteria and principles were applicable
w ith Adud-ad-din, he was drawn to the forbidden fruits of phi to the study of history and, in fact, to every item of information,
losophy and the stud y of non-Muslim religions. Although he con no m atter w hat its subject. It w as natural for him to use the term
stan tly stresses the dangers inherent in these subjects, he uses habar ^ to include every conceivable kind of information. As he
every occasion to defend the right to study and discuss them. His saw it, there was no fundam ental difference between the criteria
concept of history is th at of the religious philosopher or, perhaps, to be applied to a habar th at concerned a fact of geography or
the cultural historian. For a l-lji, history has as its proper object physics, an event of recent history, a miraculous happening, or a
the stud y of all natural and supernatural phenomena, the data of statem ent b y a religious authority.
physics, geography, and m etaphysics. A bove all, history deals The great weakness of a l-lji is th at he does not consider it nec
with man and, in particular, with outstanding Individuals, among essary to prove the correctness of his approach. He merely states
whom the most effective agents of history were the founders of th at his principles, based as th ey are on the religious sciences and
religions as well as the scholars and thinkers. P olitical history the principles of jurisprudence, are generally applicable to historical
is of much lesser m oment in the eyes of a l-lji. This basic conviction inform ation. He does not bother to give exam ples and to show in
of his finds its expression in the fact th at the number of pages detail how these principles could be used in connection w ith indi
devoted to political history is less than half th at devoted to re vidual cases. N ot unlike Ibn Haldiin, he probably assumed that
ligious and cultural history. his historical presentation later on would bear out the soundness
U nlike his western contem porary Ibn H aldun who was concerned of his views, w ithout any further explanation or comment. Those
w ith political and social forces and tried to understand their his responsive to the philosophical approach will, I believe, see the
torical setting, or the later E gyp tian historians who im bibed his authors point right aw ay and agree with him th at recognition of
torical thought from the intellectual clim ate that surrounded them, the tru th in history must be based upon some generally valid
a l- ljis m ind w as attuned prim arily to religious and philosophical philosophical principles. On the other hand, historians who cannot
ideas. 2 It is hard to see how he came to w rite on history in the first help noticing the gap between lo fty principles and their assured
applicability to hum ble facts are justified in feeling somewhat
1 H ow ever, a l-ljis discussion is in a w ay a prelude to his historical presentation and
sim ilar in this respect to the Muqaddimah, if on a m uch sm aller scale. The honor of h avin g shortchanged.
w ritten the oldest Muslim m onograph on the th eory of h istoriography know n to us m ust,
therefore, still go to al-K M iyaji. (above, p. 114 f.), who, how ever, w rote in a v e r y different age.
* In this respect, a l-lji rem inds us of the m uch earlier M utahhar b. T a h ir al-M aqdisi Cf. below , p. 266. In long stretch es of a l-ljis w ork, the historical relevance of habar,
204 A L -ijls TUHFAH INTRODUCTION 205

A l-K afiya ji, like al-lji, relied upon the methods evolved b y the been uniform ly consistent in this respect. The possible use of dif
science of hadit and the principles of jurisprudence, and there are ferent term s in connection w ith a l-lji does not b y itself im ply
sim ilarities betw een his w ork on historiography and a l-ljis Tuhfah. repudiation of the terms used in the other translations. There
T h is w e w ould expect to result from the use of common sources. usually are m any possibilities of translating a given A rabic expres
In fact, both authors state th a t th ey used the Muntazam of Ibn sion, all of them equally accurate or inaccurate,
al-Jawzi. Elsewhere, dependence upon a common source can be
safely inferred, as in the case of the various definitions of ta^'nh 2 T R A N S L A T IO N
E n d of the auth ors in troduction (fol. 1 2 b ):
cited in the identical sequence in both works (again, on the basis
of Ibn a\-]a.wzVs M untazam}). H owever, a l-K afiya ji cannot be Thus, let it be known to you th a t historiography {Him at-ta^rih)
assumed to h ave known al-Ijis work. His independence from a l-lji is the acquaintance w ith conditions of the world th at have been
is confirm ed, for instance, b y the treatm ent of the various classes transm itted provided w ith (an indication of) the times (when th ey
of tru th and falsehood. B oth authors, following their sources, give took place), inasfar as th ey constitute items of inform ation {habar md).
their num ber as five b u t define them in a rather different manner. Its object is the things created, in (13a) particular, hum an beings
As-Sahaw i shows no acquaintance w ith al-Iji. and the effects [dtdr] of their activities, inasfar as th ey are the sub
A l-lji seems to have been proud of his fluent knowledge of A ra ject {muhbar 'anhd) of some item of information.
bic, and with some justification. Y e t, style and language are not Its purpose is the study of the conditions of outstanding individ
his strong points. The technical term inology forming the backbone of uals [a'-ydn) in the world and the different kinds of hum an beings,
his exposition is transformed into literature b y an outpouring of as transm itted.
all the tired cliches of A rabic diction, strung together almost me Its usefulness is too great for exhaustive description. One of its
chanically.^ A l- lji makes a very extensive use of rhym ed prose, and useful aspects is th at it provides proof of the createdness of the
he tends to be verbose. The intellectual stature of an author w riting world and the w orlds need for a creator and adm inistrator who
in A rabic can be measured b y the kind of use he m akes of all those is knowing, powerful, wise, living, enduring, prim eval, whose essence
obligatory synonym s and the inevitable parallelismus membrorum. is too exalted for the blemishes of createdness and disintegration.
If there is additional meaning, however slight, in the seeming This is the greatest usefulness of historiography. W e shall mention
repetitions, he is a m aster not only of style but also of thought. details in the chapter devoted to the subject (cf. the fourth chapter).
A l- ljis repetitions add m erely words. The principles {mabddi^) of historiography th at is, the basis
The following translation tries to give the essential argum ent of on which it rests are the oral transmission {naql) from authorities
a l-Ijis discussion. I feel that it deserves the space devoted to it, through listening (to their lecturing) and a w ritten tradition (n-
although I h ave h ad initial, and persistent, m isgivings on this wdyah) of assured continu ity {bi-t-tatabbu^). T he process of trans
score. Practicing historians w ill strain at the excessive theorizing, mission {riwdyah) has its particular w ays and m ethods which h ave
and th ey w ill be w ell advised to skip the pages dealing w ith al-lji. been adequately explained b y the leading hadit scholars. These
The reader should keep in m ind th at the translation of the Tuhfah can, however, only rarely be observed in all the other kinds of
was done m any years after those of the works of al-K M iyaji and transm itted inform ation. I have tried hard to collect all (the rules)
as-Sahawi, which were already contained in the first edition of th a t are to be observed b y an author in connection w ith the trans
the present work. I have attem pted some harmonizing, th at is, mission of (historical) inform ation {ahbdr) and which he should
I have tried to use the same English expressions for the same use as criteria for the criticism of reports {dtdr). I have devoted a
A rabic ones wherever this was indicated. However, I have not special chapter, the sixth, to bringing together all the necessary
inform ation on this subject. God leads to the path of right guid
atar, a a d sim ilar term s is u su ally less obvious th an in a l-K a fiy a ji and as-Sahawi.
ance. ^
^ In these cases, the follow ing translation u su ally dispenses w ith artificial literalness in
fa vo r of b rin gin g ou t the intended nieaning. ^ Sim ilarly, Q u r an x l 29 (30 FI.), 38 (41 FI.).
2o 6 A L - f j i s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 207

F ir s t Ch apter a fixation of the periods of time, expressed in m onths and years,


This chapter (fols. i3 a -i7 a ) deals w ith the division of the sciences. T h e y are classified as th at h ave elapsed between those conditions and (certain) m ajor
fo llo w s;
happenings, is called historiography [Him at-ta^rih).
1. T he sciences of the religious law {as-sarHyah).
II. Th e philosophical sciences {al-hikmtyah).
(The part) concerned w ith the condition of a specific outstanding
III . T h e lite ra ry sciences (al-adaMyah). individual is called biography [Him as-siyar).
T h e third group is su bdivid ed as follow s; (The part) concerned w ith individuals all of whom share one
A . Disciplines concerned w ith in dividual words. and the same aspect,^ is called Him al-qisas (which refers to the
B. Disciplines concerned w ith com posite statem ents.
stories of the prophets and similar works of collected biographies
The subdivision o f B proceeds as follow s:
of persons sharing the same vocation).
r. Disciplines coucprned w ith the accidcnts th a t go w ith com posite statem ents as such
(as, for instance, litera ry criticism , prosody, etc.).
(The part) concerned w ith pedigrees is called genealogy [Him al-
2. Disciplines concerned w ith the outstan din g topics {a'-ydn) of com posite statem ents in ansdb).
as m uch as th ey indicate m eanings d escrip tively (that is, the science of conversation con
cerned w ith the tellin g of stories, proverbs, or poetry).
(The part) concerned w ith wars is called Him al-maldhim (re
ferring to the prediction poems which often deal w ith w ar and
Th e second catego ry is further subdivided as fo llo w s:
a. E ve ry th in g th at is concerned with the preservation of p oetry {an-nazm al-muttaba^, similar m atters).
th at is, the factu al knowledge [Him] of poems). (The part) concerned w ith countries is called the science of mon
b. E ve ry th in g th a t is c o rc e m e d w ith th e (re)produrtion of p oetry [an-nazm al-muhtara^,
th at is, the knowledge of the recitation and com position of p oetry, al-inSdd wa-qard a f-siV ),
um ents (relics, dtdr), roads, and provinces.
c. E ve ry th in g th at is concerned with the production of prose (an-natr al-muhtara^, th at Strange and laughable stories are called wonders (of creation).
is, litera ry com position as practiced b y the w riters of official com m unications and papers,
al-insd' ). Anecdotes and fictional reports concerning dumb creatures (17a)
d. E ve ry th in g th at is concerned w ith the preservation of prose [an-natr al-muttaha^). and (dangerous) unknown places are called stories.^
This last subdivision, fin ally, includes three categories: T he preceding eight disciplines constitute the science of (histori
a. Prose preserved litera lly * [al-muttaba^ bi-hasab al-lafz, th at is, the knowledge of cal) inform ation [Him al-ahbdr).
proverbs).
p. Prose preserved not litera lly b u t w ith regard to its m eaning [md ttubi^a bi-hasabi
l-ma^nd duna l-lafzi, th at is, historiography). Second Ch apter
y . Prose preserved both litera lly and w ith regard to its m eaning [an-natr al-muttaba^
lafzan wa-ma^ndn, th at is, the knowledge of the sayings and statem ents of prophets, saints, T h is chapter (fols. i7 a -i9 b ) contains a long discussion of tim e and tim e units, introduced
scholars, sages, kings, w azirs, litterateu rs, etc.).
as follow s:
T he subdivision of h istoriography (III, B , 2, d, (B) is explained in the follow ing passage Linguistically, ta^rih is the indication of time. It is derived from
(tols. i6 b -i7 a ):
a Persian expression, nam ely, mdh u roz, th at is, month and day.
The second category is prose preserved not literally but w ith
It was arabicized and changed to mu^arrah, from which ta^rih and
regard to its meaning. This is the science of (historical) inform ation
other derivatives were formed. W henever the A rabs use a foreign
{^ilm al-ahbdr) which reports on the conditions of created things
word, th ey m ix it up b ad ly until it fits into their kind of speech.
m ainly human beings and only rarely others , their actions, their
A s a technical term, ta^rih is the fixation of tim e for the purpose
pedigrees, their dwelling places, their countries w ith their roads
of relating to it a time-section th at comes later.
and rem arkable phenomena, and the remaining (visible) effects
A ccording to another definition, ta^rih is the indication of time
(monuments, dtdr) of their activities. E ach (part of this science)
b y relating it to the first occurrence of a m atter of wide concern,
has its own name.
(The part) concerned with the conditions of hum an beings in T h e m anuscript h as jihatun whdh, the last w ord n o t being clear and apparently cor
former times and among the nations of the past and in connection rected b y the scribe, read wdhidatun.
^ T h e A rab ic te xt of the last three paragraphs runs; wa-bi-l-bildd Him al-dtdr wa-l-
with events th at happened, (if the reports are) accom panied b y masdlik wa-l-mamdlik wa-l-gard^ib wa-l-maddhik summiya bi-l-'-aja^ib wa-n-nawddir wa-l-
^ T h a t is, only or m ain ly for its litera ry form . T ak en up (critically) or adopted, mawdu^dt ^an al-^ajmdwdt wa-l-majdhil bi-l-hikdydt. I believe th at I have broken up this
adop tio n m ay be a m ore litera l renderm g for w h at has here been translated preserved, ju m ble correctly. H ow ever, in order to be on the safe side I have added the original te x t
preservation . here.
208 a l -!j Is tuhfah TRANSLATION 209

such as the appearance of a religion, or a dynasty, or the happening reading is required in order to m aster it, and only constant and
of a terrifying event (17b) such as a deluge. penetrating discussion (on the basis of information) derived from
According to another definition, it is a know n stretch of tim e the best and most skilful transm itters can yield a thorough knowl
between the occurrence of an obvious m atter (of importance) and edge of (historical) inform ation and help to capture its meaning.
other events.^ Its uses are manifold, and the profit one can derive from it im
According to still another definition, it is the fixation of a d ay measurable. A t this time, I wish to indicate ten of its general fea
on which there appeared something of wide (concern) for the pur tures.
pose of knowing (the tim e th at has elapsed) between it and the 1 Learning about G ods m ighty works, perfect power, m ar
times of events (of the past) and of future m atters whose dates have velous creations, and hidden wisdom. This provides some sort of
to be established, such as contracts drawn up to take effect at some (legal) necessity (for the stu d y of history), as a premise for achieving
later date {al-'-uqud al-mu^ajjalah). the knowledge about {ma'^rifah) God which is something necessary
Thus, ta^rih is a known and delimited time-section, divided for all responsible (Muslims, mukallaf). Therefore, H e commanded
according to years, months, days, and hours. One of its lim its is them in H is noble book to stu d y and reflect on the various kinds of
the time fixed b y the happening of an obvious m atter (of im por created things and m entioned the clear signs b y which H e can be
tance) th a t has been made a starting point [mabda^] for earlier or recognized. I shall refer to some of this when I get to the proof for
later events to be measured on it. The other lim it is the other event H is existence.
th at one w ants to delimit. 2 Becom ing acquainted w ith the condition of the cream of
The first definition (of ta^rih as a technical term) is derived from hum anity th at is, the prophets and messengers who explained the
the beginning; the second, from the end; the third, from w hat is religious laws and clarified the w ays (of moral behavior) , with
in betw een ; and the fourth, from all of th a t together. the tribulations th ey suffered while promoting the cause and help
Ta^rih was then em ployed in some special custom ary usage and ing the religion of God, and w ith the m anifold experiences th ey
used for the science th at deals w ith the events considered suitable had as the result of the m anipulations of G ods enemies, until
to be a starting point for the ta^rih and w ith the (historical) infor th ey were able to remove corruption from the earth, to spread
m ation {ahbdr) fixed b y it. Everyw here, the time-section (zamdn) right guidance on it, to secure for the truth v icto ry over falsehood,
is considered an essential part of the definition. Zamdn, in the even though this took some time, to estabhsh firm ly the rule of
opinion of the philosophers, is. . . . religion, and then, to realize the promise (29b) God gave them with
regard to the other world and to be sure of success for the remainder
T h ird C h a pte r of their days in this world.
This chapter (fols. 2oa-28b) treats the various ancient eras and the era of the h ijrah and
3 Gaining a more accurate appreciation of the verses of the
subsequent M uslim system s of time reckoning. T h e sto ry of the introduction of the Muslim Q uran through the knowledge of how the (historical) inform ation
era is reported on fols. 24b-2sa.
about the past contained in it agrees w ith th at which was revealed
F ourth C h a p t e r in all the other scriptures of the founders of religions, although it
The Uses of H istoriography came from an illiterate inform ant [muhhir) who w as unschooled in
the sciences and in history [ahbdr) and had never in his life visited
L et it be known to you that the extraordinary usefulness and
remote places.
im portance and the far-reaching influence of historiography are 4 A cquiring full knowledge of the conditions of various kinds
something th at is no secret to intelligent and learned men. H is of nations, whether th ey were religious or political groupings.
toriography is a discipline very difficult to handle, which yields This shows the superiority of Islam over all other religions and
itself to the student only after long and skilful work. Persistent reveals the superior qualities of the Muslim caliphs and sultans as
T h e preceding rem arks all reappear in a l-K a fiy a ji, cf. below, p. 249. com pared to the rulers of all other periods of the past. It proves th at
R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 14
210 A L -tjI S TUHFAH TRANSLATION 211

the religio-legislative activities of the scholars of Islam rank w ith g Obtaining knowledge of the precious statem ents in prose
the revelations of the prophets of the Israelites and th at Muslim and verse made b y outstanding men, such as prophets, sages,
theologians outweigh the most outstanding of the pillars (asdtin) scholars, and, in particular, kings, whose sayings, according to the
of Greek philosophy. proverb, are the kings of sayings. A ll this will be found in this
5 K now ing about the condition of the pious and the righteous w ork inserted in the narrative hke gems in signets, or pearls in
in this world, how th ey were scattered w idely, lived long ago, jew elry, as the most precious gifts from the noblest souls and minds,
left no posterity, and were held captive b y their adversaries.^ deserving to be w ritten w ith gold upon the eyes rather than with
This encourages rulers to practice justice, to acquire a good rep ink upon paper. Those who act in accordance w ith (the precepts)
utation, and to give ample rewards, and it discourages obstinate contained in those sayings in both verse and prose will obtain
tyran ts from com m itting their pestilential, oppressive misdeeds. happiness and leadership in both this world and the next.
This is tru ly a great advantage for everybody at every time. 10 {30b) Finding th at most of the religious sciences are based
6 Planting in the minds of men the seeds for the proper handling upon historical knowledge and in m any cases require it:
of m atters th at m ay happen, and alerting prudent (hdzim), wide The science of the Qur^dn needs it in three of its subdivisions:
awake persons to (the potentialities of) the thoughts ^ th at m ay In theology [al-ildUydt), it is needed in connection w ith the
come to them. The story of the life (30a) of a prudent man and the proofs for the existence of the Creator and the establishm ent of
description of the results he achieved can teach m any an intelligent His attributes, for these proofs are based upon the proper apprecia
person the good m anagem ent and prudent handling of his own tion of His activities as the creator of the essences of the various
affairs. On the other hand, the story of the life of an imm oderate species and the different and rem arkable forms and shapes of
person and the description of the end he found can cause m any individual creations. In this connection, it is further needed for
an intelligent m an to avoid imm oderate aspirations. This, then, the argum ents for the createdness of the world, because these ar
is an education for the powerful and a lesson for the thoughtful, gum ents are derived from the changes th at take place in the sub
im plying a sharpening ^ of dulled intellects. stances and accidents found in the world, and from the occurrence
7 Encountering wondrous affairs, the changes of dynasties, of corruption {haU) and decay th at affects the basic and individual
the vicissitudes of destiny, which is a relaxation for the souls and (features of this world, arkdnihi wa-aVddihi).
a consolation for the hearts of both the ruler and the ruled. It also In (Qur^nic) prophetology [an-nubuwdt), historical knowledge
encourages patience in the face of (untoward) happenings and is needed to explain the miracles th at disrupt the ordinary course
conditions and stills worries b y creating hope. (of events) and to infer the truth of the claims of the prophets (to
8 G iving a person the delight and the intellectual pleasure of divine inspiration) from such miracles, from the condition and char
learning about rem arkable and wondrous m atters which he had acter qualities of the prophets, and from the fact th at their pre
not known or heard of before. It has been reported on the auth ority dictions as to w hat was to happen to their friends and enemies
of A bu l-A la al-M aarri {sic) th at a man had grown very old and were fulfilled.
no pleasure was left to him. He w as asked whether he would not In traditional m atters based on the Q ur an {as-samHydt), it is
prefer to die. N o , he replied, and when asked w hat pleasure was needed in connection w ith questions concerning the im am ate and
left to him, he said: I am still able to listen to wondrous stories. ^ caliphate and the orthodox sects and the various kinds of unortho
^ Wa-l-asr f t aydt husamdHhim, rather (with al-asr corresponding to ad-darb), and how
dox innovators.
the hands of their adversaries were stayed (?). The science of Qur'^dn interpretation needs historical knowledge
^ Ms. mh^r [leg. majdri) az-zunun.
^ Leg. Sahd.
in connection w ith the circum stances of the revelation, the abro
* The preceding three paragraphs are based, in part literally, on Ibn al-Jaw zis M untazam , gating and abrogated verses, and the explanation of the stories of
m,entioned by al-lji as his basic source (below, p. 243). The same text is cited also b y as-
Sahawi, cf. below, p. 295 f., where the name of the old man appears more appropriately as
prophets and the generations, nations, and peoples of the past.
A.bu 'Am r b. al-'A la. The science of hadit needs historical knowledge for the personality
212 A L - f j t s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 213

criticism th at is needed in order to ascertain the conditions and the I hope th at God will enable me to bring this book to a successful
methods of giving inform ation of the men around M uhamm ad and conclusion in the w ay I h ave envisioned it, nam ely as containing
the men of the second generation who transm itted traditions (on all these useful aspects of history, as being free from all those draw
the authority of the Prophet), and of the men who, in turn, trans backs, as comprising the (historical) inform ation about all nations
m itted on their authority. It is also needed in order to ascertain the and peoples, as giving an adequate explanation of the condition
dates when th ey were born, how long th ey lived, when th ey died, of m ost groups of hum an beings, and as being elegantly and sol
who their contemporaries were, in w hat countries th ey traveled, id ly organized. The (historical ) inform ation presented in it I
and w ith whom th ey m ay have had contact, things th at show w heth envision as being critically sifted according to the criteria of tra
er a given tradition is reliable or unrehable or a fraudulent fab dition and reason, as being protected against contradiction and
rication. incoherence, as being fortified b y the evidence of (monumental)
Jurisprudence {fiqh) needs historical knowledge in order to as relics and signs {al-dtdr wa-l-dydt), as being adorned with precious
certain consensus and differences of opinion as well as the classes saws (31b) and verses, as containing practical problems and scien
of leading scholars of independent judgm ent, (31a) authorities tific opinions, as being a successful collection of transm itted m ate
who m ake highly regarded statem ents {ashdb al-wujuh wa-l-aqwdl), rial {riwdydt), and as being a thorough presentation of the stories
men whose statem ents and legal decisions are relied upon in theory dealt with. Help and success come from God. He can be expected
and practice [al-ahkdm wa-l~a^mdl)} to m ake hum an hopes come true.
M ysticism needs historical inform ation in order to ascertain
the various classes of saints and m ystics and the ranks of the leading F if t h C h apte r

heads of Sufi orders and of the m ystics who have achieved union, This chapter (fols. 3ib-4oa) deals in detail with the divisions of the natural and super
so th at one can be sure of the va lid ity of the cloak {hirqah) and of natural worlds and the means of knowing about them. On fol. 38a, we read:

the permission to practice the dikr received from them and can Further, let it be known to you th at giving inform ation on all
confidently follow their m ethod of m ystical exercises and of cleans the other kinds of possibilia in historiography is something par
ing the soul of sinful desires and adorning it w ith virtuous habits. asitic. The basic purpose and general object (of historiography)
For preaching {al-wa'-z wa-t-tadkir), historical inform ation con is the most noble of species, th at is, man, of whom there are
stitutes an integral part, or, rather, preaching entirely revolves m an y different single specimens and numerous distinct kinds.
around it. ^
Y o u should realize that some historical and biographical works S ix t h c h a pter

{kutub at-tawdrih wa-l-ahhdr wa-s-siyar wa-l-dtdr) possess all these


The Principles of H istoriography and the Criteria of H istorical
useful aspects. Others do not possess all of them but choose eyes
Criticism (fols. 4oa~7ob)
th at see and pearls th at shine(?), Others again combine valuable
and worthless inform ation, like jet throw n together w ith precious This chapter contains valuable investigations of a unique useful
pearls. Others are loaded w ith husks and waste i^l-srf ?) and lack ness, such as are rarely produced b y the minds of students and con
substance and grace ?). This situation results from the differ sidered w orth collecting even b y the most skilful of transm itters of
ent ambitions and purposes of authors and from their varyin g degree (historical) inform ation. W ith the help of divine guidance and the
of learning and scholarship in intellectual and traditional m atters. beneficent support {maydmin) of (our) splendid ruler [ad-dawlah
al-garrd"' as-suUdniyah)} I have succeeded in undertaking these
1 Ahkdm is often used b y the author in the narrower meaning of the five degrees of original (investigations), and I have thus laid a foundation for this
legal classification, which is sometimes applicable even in passages where the present
translation employs more general terms.
discipline {li-hddd al-Hlm). I have arranged them in an introduction
This is the end of the discussion of the ten uses of history dealt with b y the author. and tw elve sections.
Ms. wa-minhd md fdza min mryth {leg. hiydzitihd ?) bi-qutrayhd fa-ftalada min-a-l-
^uyuni n-nawdziri wa-dtara min [del. ?) ad-durari z-zawdhiri. ^ This seems, in fact, to refer to the financial support received or hoped for b y the author.
214 A L - t j i s TUHFAH INTRODUCTION 215

Introduction firstly, to speech th at is part of a declarative sentence {jumlah


habariyah), whether predicate {musnad) or subject {musnad ilayhi).
L et it be known to you th at the student of intellectual problems
F or instance: The servant who belongs to Z a y d did such-and-such
involving both general and definite concrete notions ^ m ust of
a th ing. E ach one of the tw o parts (of this sentence) is speech, but
necessity investigate their species, subdivisions, rules {sarait) and
it is not a habar, because it does not indicate anything b y itself.
laws {ahkdm),^ and the w ays {turuq) leading up to them, such as
Secondly, (it is) inapplicable to insd^ (wishes, commands), because,
explanatory statem ents and obscure or clear arguments. E ach
according to the definition of al-Maydani,^ inm^ is speech in which
of them has its own qualities [kayfiydt) ^ th at characterize it, and
the words are the cause of a relationship th at is not preceded b y
is divided into species [anwd^) and classes {asndf).
another relationship. Now, although the words of a hahar are the
Thus, the student and transm itter of (historical) inform ation has
cause of a relationship which results in speech, it is a relationship
to follow specific w ays and established methods which enable him
th a t is preceded b y another one which it tells about. Thus, if the
to grasp intellectual and concrete m atters {ma'-quldt-masnu'^dt) and
tw o conform to each other, the hahar is true; if not, it is false.
which h ave their own peculiar qualities {kayfiyah) th at provide
Insd^, on the other hand, has only (41a) the relationship expressed
them w ith a certain number of classes and rules [sardHt). These
in the words of the speaker and no other outside relationship but,
are (40b) known among transm itters and serve as a p ivo t for their
in fact, is seeking to establish another relationship. Therefore, it
considerations and as the base for their criticism of (historical)
does not tolerate (the judgm ent of) true or false, for (true or false)
inform ation and its (possible) condemnation as spurious. T h ey
are identical w ith conform ity and non-conform ity, and (either)
m ay be contradictory in (their application to) the hahar text which,
can result only among two things.
on the basis of them, can be subdivided into categories, each of
A hahar, further, consists of matn (text), sanad, isndd, and irsdl
which possesses its own rank and standing. Thus, (the student)
(terms dealing w ith the transmission or the chains of transm itters of
must know the w ays th at enable him to establish degrees of pref
traditions), the meaning of which must be known, because the most
erability [turuq at-tardjih) and to put everything into its proper
im portant aspects (of the study of habars) depend on it.
place and decide whether it is sound. (The contents of habars
An explanation of these terms and of the classification of traditions, on the basis of their
m ay contradict the requirements and conclusions of reason. Thus, transmission and chains of transmitters, as sound {sahth), good {hasan), and weak \daHf).
it is absolutely necessary to know on w hat (basis) one of tw o {habars)
Transmission of a w eak tradition, w ithout an explanation of
can be established as preferable to the other after thorough study,
its weakness, and la x ity w ith regard to its isndd are permissible, as
or how th ey can be combined successfully. The thorough historian
is acting in accordance w ith w eak traditions in, for instance, moral
must p ay attention to all of this, so th at he and the m aterial he
and ethical m atters [ka-l-mawdHz wa-faddHl al-a^mdl), but not in
transm its can be considered authoritative. The m atter can be
m atters concerning w hat is allowed or forbidden or m atters con
explained in a number of sections containing the basic principles.
cerning the divine attributes. M any hadit scholars permit the trans
mission of traditions on the authority of all except those trans
First Section
m itters who b y general agreement should be left alone. Accordingly,
The definition of hahar and the basis of its true character which
the historian is perm itted to report (historical) inform ation while
serves to explain all its subdivisions
om itting the isndd and being lax about it, to transm it m aterial
Hahar is speech th at b y itself indicates a relationship of some on the auth ority of men who are little known [majdhil), and to be
thing to some other thing outside. (This definition) is inapplicable, content (42a) w ith the use of w ritten m aterials w ithout the support
1 Cf. below, p. 256, n. 2. ^ Ahm ad b. Muhammad (d. 519/1124, cf. G A L , I, 289), who is best known for his collec
Cf. above, n. 212, n. i. tion of proverbs. I have not been able to trace the quotation in the works of al-Maydani
^ Th at is, the how, the manner in which something takes place, occasionally to be available to me, but most of the above paragraph appears verbatim in at-Tibis H uldsah f t
translated procedure, process. ma'-rifat al-hadit (Ms. Istanbul, Kopriilii 230, fol. 2a). A t-T ibi is mentioned b y al-lji later on,
* The suffix iu yu^driduhd is most likely to refer to au implied ahbdr. below, p. 225. Al-M aydanis name does not occur among the stated sources of at-Tibi.
2i 6 A L - f j i s TUHFAH INTRODUCTION 217

of oral tradition, ^ since all this is possible in connection w ith the (falls into three categories). Some of it is accepted b y those who
transmission of Prophetical traditions, and there is so much more hear it, and adjudged true b y reason. Some of it is sim ply and nat
leew ay in connection w ith other material. urally rejected. A nd some of it seems reasonable to some minds and
From God there comes the protection against m istakes and is rejected b y others, considered w orthy of attention b y some and
loquaciousness. demolished (as untrue) b y others.
Second Section This is because the reasons for rejection and acceptance va ry
and because students differ in their (experience of) data provided b y
The m ethods b y which inform ation [ahhdr) becomes established tradition and reason. M any a heart is fam iliar w ith m atters w ithin
These, on the basis of inductive reasoning, are several things: its own (experience) and considers anything else unacceptable and
1 Personal observation [musdhadah), as is, for instance, in absurd. M any a free m ind is ready to take in w hatever (information)
dicated b y the men around M uhammad when th ey sa y : I have an inform ant m ay pour into it, saying (with the poet):
seen the Messenger of God do such-and-such a thing. . . . .
L ove for her came to me before I knew w hat love was.
2 H earing {samd^) a tradition in the words of a speaker or a
It found m y heart free and took over. ^
sayh who transm its it. It does not m atter whether this involves
dictation {imW) or lecturing {tahdit), w hether (the sayh) uses his (44a) Thus, it is absolutely necessary to investigate all the reasons
m em ory or his book (written notes)......... for and characteristics of accep tability and to stu d y all the categories
3 Reading {qird^ah) to a sayh, a procedure called b y early and classes of rejection and acceptance, to find out w hat is to be
scholars 'ard. It makes no difference whether he himself reads classified as unreliable and w hat is to be considered authoritative,
or someone else while he is listening; whether he saw the sayh or did and to uncover and explain w hat constitutes a sound basis for
not see him, b u t his presence was known. It m ay be from a book or considering (items of historical information) true and w hat seems to
from m e m o r y ... be fictitious [awhdm) and m ust be disregarded after thorough study.
4 The ijdzah, th at is, granting the right to and perm itting It is no secret th a t the causes and reasons th at im ply differences
transmission (of the m aterial studied). (in acceptability) have reference to the condition of the speaker-
H ere, nine kin ds of ijdzah are enum erated, including the procedures called munawalah, inform ant {muhhir), the meaning of the subject {al-muhbar '-anhu),
kitdbah, iHdm, and wijddah. Th e wijddah th at is, the use of w ritten sources not certified or the item -of-inform ation {habar) itself, and, further, to the con
b y a n y sor^ ot oral tradition* ^raises, am ong other things, the problem of how to deal
w ith books of d ou btfu l authorship. Since it is considered perm issible, the author says, dition of the student {sdmi^), since a habars power, or the lack of it,
this (point o f view) h as been considered a u th o ritative b y m e in connection w ith th e m aterial to p urvey knowledge [Him), probability {zann), doubt {sakk), or
used in this book, and I have relied upon the inform ation found in the (written) w orks of
fellow writers (ashdb), a fter conridering it c ritic a lly . fictitious inform ation [wahm) does not go beyond any of these.
In view of these circum stances, a habar falls into several catego
Third Section ries, each of which differs w ith regard to rejection and acceptance.
Causes of and laws [ahkdm) governing rejection Consideration of the condition of the inform ant {muhhir) leads to
and acceptance, and the various kinds (a tw ofold conclusion): H e either attributes his habar to himself or
and categories of (historical) to someone else. In either case, classification {hukm) depends on the
inform ation (informants) condition w ith respect to his known, unknown, or
doubtful faultlessness {Hsmah) and reliability or unreliability. The
L et it be known to you th at the inform ation on rem arkable
pitfalls in this respect have been rem oved b y the scholars of the
events set down in the pages of books which is unconfirmed b y
principles (of jurisprudence) and of the hadit. In their books ancient
personal observation and rests upon the m ethod of transmission
* The text appears to be al-qand^ah 'aid l-wijddah (for wijddah, cf. below , n. 2), H ow ' Cf. Dtwdn M ajnUn Layla, 282 F a r r A j (Cairo, n.y. [1958?]), where further references
ever, the use of the preposition ^ald, instead of hi-, is strange. are given. Cf. also Ibn Q ayyim al-Jaw ziyah , Rawdat al-muhibbtn, 138 'U b a y d (Cairo
* For a discussion of wijddah, cf. A b u l - Y u s r ' A b i d i n , in R A A D , X X X V I , 58-67 (1961). 1375/1956).
2i 8 A L - f j i s TUH FA H INTRODUCTION 219

and modern, th ey h ave mentioned rules {hukm) applying to this receives) deserves preference and thus be firm ly decided upon ac
situation as far as m atters of the religious law are concerned. Now, ceptance of the opposite ^ because of some knowledge he possesses
owing to the long tim e that has gone by, the transm itters of in or because of his trust in tradition {taqlid), because of bias and ob
form ation {ahbdr) find it difficult to observe the rules {sardHt) stinacy {^asabiyah m a i) , fiction and iajicy {wahm haydl), weak-
governing it. Therefore, they have come to consider as auth oritative nes and stupidity, or deceitfulness (jarbazah) and shrewdness. A ll
the musnad, sunan, and ahkdm works composed b y the leading these qualities m ay cause the student in question to accept or to
Muslim scholars. In (information) other th an Prophetical traditions, reject w hat comes to him and is put before him, regardless of w heth
the chain of transmission has become interrupted because men who er it is in itself false or true and in contradiction or conform ity
are little kown {majdhil) have entered into it, so th at the gap has to reality {md f i l-wdqi').
become too wide for right-m inded people to bridge. Thus, there L et us explain in detail the(se) parts of the habar b y considering
exists no desire (on the part of modern scholars) to clarify the sit the reasons th at decide the question of certainty {qat"-), probability
uation and to verify the condition of transmitters. {zann), or doubt {sakk), and the causes th at require acceptance,
Consideration of the conditions [ahwdl) th at refer to the subject rejection, or withholding a decision {waqf), for the guidance of
of a habar {al-muhbar 'anhu) must proceed from the assumption those who seek to exercise habar criticism. The remaining parts we
th at (the subject) m ay be absurd and not possibly true, or theoret shall reserve for the other ^ section later on. L et us also distinguish
ically true, or theoretically possible [mumkin ma^qul), or observable w hat is w orthy of attention from th at which is not. Thus, I say;
b y the senses and fam iliar as either something custom ary or some A habar qua habar, if no consideration is given to the particulars
thing extraordinary, as something th at is observed repeatedly connected (hususiyah) w ith the inform ant {muhbir), m ay be true or
or something th a t rarely happens. false. If consideration is given to the pillars it rests on th at is,
(44b) Consideration of the conditions th at refer to the habar (as a the inform ant {muhbir) and the subject {al-muhbar 'anhu) , it
whole) must proceed, as far as the habar as such is concerned, from m ay be divided into five (45a) categories;
the assum ption th a t its meaning [daldlah) m ay be definite [maqtu^]
or probable [maznun], that it m ay be a tex t (nass) or an obvious 1 Know n to be true.
im plication {zdhir) or something requiring interpretation [mu- 2 Know n to be false.
*awwal) w hether it be ambiguous {mujmal) or clear [mubayyan). 3 Possibly either true or false. This falls into the three categories
As far as the sanad is concerned, consideration must proceed from of (a) probably true, (b) probably false, or (c) doubtful either w ay,
the assumption th at it m ay go back to m any authorities [muta- th at is, it is equally possible th at it is either true or false, be
wdtir) or to one [dhad]} that it m ay be generally known [mustafid) cause of the equivalence of indications in either direction {li-ta'^ddul
or not, th at it m ay skip the first transm itter on M uham m ads amdratihimd). If either truth or falsehood seems to preponderate
authority [mursal) or lead back to the Prophet {musnad), th at on one side, the other side is fictitious {mawhum).
it m ay be uninterrupted [muttasil) or lacking one link {munqati'-),
and so on, things th at have been adequately explained b y the L et us discuss these categories together w ith the legal classifi
leading scholars of the hadit and the principles of jurisprudence. cation {ahkdm) applicable to each, inasmuch as th ey are connected
Consideration of the conditions th at refer to the student {Sami') w ith the purpose of the present work, but om itting the details
must proceed from the assumption th at he m ay have a free m ind required for an exhaustive treatm ent of legal classification {ahkdm).
or be seeking (something), that he m ay be doubting or disapprov F irst category: Inform ation known to be true th at must be ac-
ing, as he m ay believe that the opposite of (the inform ation he
1 More correctly, less than three, according to the definition of habar al-wdhid accepted
b y the author (below, p. 222). According to al-6 azzali, M ustasfd, I, 93 (Cairo 1356/1937), * Ms. li-H im ddi (read li-Hiqddi] hildfihi Hiqddan rdjihan musirran jdzim an ^ald hildfiht.
the number m ay be as high as five or six. For the occasional distinction between habar Perhaps, we should translate: . . . decided upon opposing it.
al-wdhid and dhdd, cf. J. R o b s o n , in Jou rn al o f Sem itic Studies, IX , 327-40 (1964). * Ms. al-fasl at-tdn(, apparently referring to the fifth and following sections.
220 A L - t j f s TUHFAH 221
TR A N SL A T IO N

cepted. According to the fundam entalists {usuliyun)} there are (45b) Second category: Inform ation known to be false th at must
seven kinds:
be rejected. There are two kinds;
1 Inform ation whose existence is known ^ of necessity, such as 1 Inform ation, the contrary of which is known ^ (to be true)
prim ary data [awwaliydt), things observable b y the senses, m atters of necessity or through deductive reasoning.
transm itted b y m any authorities [mutawdtirdt), m atters proven b y 2 Inform ation that, if it {madlul) were correct, would be trans
experience {mujarrabdt), and m atters based upon (intuitive) con m itted b y m any authorities in view of its having ample claim
jecture {hadsiydt). Or (information) which is known through de to being transm itted, because it is im portant or remarkable. The
ductive reasoning, such as, for instance, data based upon argu inform ation ascribed to the prophets contains m uch of the sort.
m entation {burhdniydt), th at is, syllogisms {adillah) composed of Inasm uch as it is ascribed to Muhammad, there is his statem ent:
necessary (propositions) {daruriydt) or leading up to them. Falsehoods will be ascribed to me {sa-yukdabu '-alayya). In
2 The inform ation {hahar) of God, such as the Quran and asmuch as it is ascribed to the Israelite prophets, there is the
the revealed scriptures th at are protected against alteration. statem ent of the Q uran: T h ey alter words and remove them from
3 The inform ation of the prophets, because it is confirm ed b y their places. ^ The one prophetical scripture definitely protected
the proof of miracles. It becomes known only to those who hear against alteration is the noble Q uran, as God has said: Falsehood
it or obtain it through transmission b y m any authorities. will not come to it from before it or from behind it, ^ for He
4 The inform ation of the entire (Muslim) nation, because gen guarded it w ith His essence {bi-ddtihi) and did not entrust (it) to
eral consensus is decisive proof. anyone else, saying: W e revealed the reminder, and W e are guard
5 The inform ation of a large num ber of people concerning ing it. ^
their own conditions, whether th ey are m atters observable b y The reason for ascribing false inform ation to God and the Prophet
the senses or, rather, m atters of, for instance, internal observation is twofold. The lesser of the two reasons is oversight, forgetfulness,
(wijddniydt).^ and negligence. The most frequent one is (pure) invention {wad"-).
6 Inform ation surrounded b y propositions th at lend them This is done either b y heretical {zindiq) innovators and disbehevers,
selves to conclusions [qarain), for indications [amdrdt) th at support in order to scare intelligent men aw ay from the true religions or
each other give (a hahar) the status of necessity. in order to circulate their own falsehoods and innovations. Or it
7 Inform ation reported b y m any authorities, where the trans is done b y ignorant persons such as storytellers and related (profes
m itters are so m any that custom (ary experience) precludes the sions) like would-be preachers. T h ey frequently invent moral and
assumption th a t th ey m ight have happened to agree upon some ethical traditions, for Satan caused them to slip and led them a-
thing untrue. The Sum aniyah (Buddhists) held a contrary opinion stray from the even road and deceived them b y causing them to
in this respect. T h ey did not acknowledge (the possibility) th at know l approve of (such a) procedure as something pleasing to God. T h e y
edge could be obtained in this manner, nor did th ey acknowledge were deceived and invented false and disapproved statem ents.
(the possibility of) obtaining knowledge through speculation T h ey w ent astray and led others astray and joined those who
{nazar). Their opinion is similar to th at of the Sophists.^ were the greatest losers (46a) in w hat th ey did, whose efforts went

I.e., the scholars versed in the principles of (religion and) jurisprudence. I t is hoped
that the use of fundamentalists will not give rise to misunderstandings.
1 For the Sophists, cf. al-lji, M aw dqif, 20 f., where, however, nothing is said about the
* Ms. md ^ulima wujit-du niuhbariht. The consonants m ight suggest m uljbiriM infor
Sumaniyah. T h ey are often mentioned in other works on the principles, such as al-Amidi,
m ant, that is, the source of which is known to exist. However, the required vocalization
Ihkdm , I, 151 (Cairo 1347), or al-'Allam ah al-Hilli, A n w ar al-m alakut, 5 Najm i-Zanjani
is niuhbariht, which is seemingly identical with the more common muhhar ^anku. The same
(Teheran 1338). Cf. also, for instance, E. S a c h a u s translation of al-Birunis work on
muhbar {md ^ulima naqtd muhbariht) occurs in connection with the first paragraph of the
second category. India, II, 261.
* Cf. above, p. 220, n. 2.
^ Cf., for instance, 'Adud-ad-din al-Iji, M aw dqif, 38 (Cairo [?] 1 3 5 7 ) , in connection with
the muqaddamdt q a fiy a h . Quran iv 46 (48 FI.) and v 13, 41 (1 6 , 45 FI-)-
* QurSn xli 42 (42 FI.).
* Cf. Ibu Haldun, M uqaddim ah, trans. F. R o s e n t h a l , I, 19 8, n. 277 (New York 19 5 8 ) .
Quran XV 9 (9 FI.).
222 A L - ! jf s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 223

astray in the life of this world while th ey thought th at th ey did 4 A ccuracy and lack of indifference, because negligence and
w ell." 1 indifference do not perm it placing reliance upon statem ents made.
Since such fabrications occur so frequently in traditions and In this category, probable (truthfulness) can be assumed only
stories, I have dwelled on the subject at some length, so th at the where there is no decisive evidence to the contrary or where an
reader of the book who comes across something of the sort and is interpretation is acceptable.
sure that he is confronted w ith invented m aterial can elim inate Fourth category. (Information) th at is probably false, which
it. I have no responsibility for it. The responsibility for avoiding is of necessity fancied to be true {mawhum as-sidq). The character
such (material) rests upon the one who invents it {wada^ahd).^ istics (46b) th at suggest the probability of untruthfulness are
Third category: Inform ation th at is probably true. This is in the opposites of those four (mentioned in connection w ith the third
form ation coming from a reliable person {hahar a/-aifZ) which has category): Absence of (legal) responsibility, unbelief, wickedness,
not reached the status of having been transm itted b y m any and indifference and lack of accuracy, because these qualities
authorities {tawdtur). If there are fewer than three transm itters preclude any trust in statem ents made b y men possessing them in
(for a habar), it is known to the fundam entalists {usuliyun) as the case of legal m atters [al-ahkdm as-sarHyah). However, in other
habar al-wdhid; if there are more, it is known as mustafid. B oth in matters, greater tolerance is indicated, especially in connection
dicate probable (truthfulness), even though they do not fulfill the w ith persons who believe th at untruthfulness is forbidden (in gener
conditions {sardit) laid down in connection with the first category. al) or who are upstanding and prominent people.

Characteristics referring to the inform ant {muhbir) th at suggest F ifth category. D oubtful inform ation. T h at is inform ation coming
probability are five: ^ from a person about whose condition w ith respect to characteristics
1 (Legal) responsibihty {takUf), because someone who is not (46b) th at m ight suggest either truthfulness or falsehood (for the
responsible {mukallaf) does not fear the taint of falsehood and sin. inform ation he transmits) little is known {majhul).
2 Religion, because the religious person fears the consequences *
of (spreading) falsehoods. In m atters of the religious law, he must * *
be a Muslim, because unbelievers caim ot be trusted w ith regard to Now, let it be known to you th a t this book contains different
Muslims.
kinds of inform ation {ahbdr). (Inform ation in it) known to be true
3 P robity {^addlah), which is a habit in the soul that prevents it is the inform ation transm itted from the prophets, the heavenly
from com m itting m ajor sins or doing w hat is bad, (if) permissible. scriptures, and the divine revelation enounced b y the Q uran
Transmission b y a wicked man (fdsiq) does not produce probability and b y (Prophetical) traditions ^ transm itted b y m any authorities.
(for the m aterial he transmits), because in the fondness he shows (Information) known to be false is the inform ation coming from
for wickedness, he is as a rule quite ready to (transmit) falsehoods. pseudo-prophets and ignorant unbelievers concerning their beliefs
(The existence of) probity (in a transmitter) is known through affecting God, the divine attributes, and the beginning of creation,
a declaration (by qualified scholars) of reliability {tazkiyah) and as, for instance, the statem ents coming from Magians, Manichaeans,
also through the fact th at there is widespread knowledge (of him the altered passages of the Torah and the allegorical interpretation
as a transm itter, suhrah). The absence of probity is known through of the Gospel, the beliefs of the Christians w ith regard to the Mes
negative personality criticism. siah, and the statem ents of Indian and Chinese eternahsts {dahriyah)
w ith regard to the beginning of creation, and the statem ents of
* Quran xviii 103-4 (103-4 FI-)- The preceding lines contain allusions to Qur Snic
phrases, cf. Quran v 77 (81 FI.). the Sabians w ith regard to the stars and the heavenly bodies.
* Possibly, the student who sets it down. However, the author presumably had in
nund the first inventor as the guilty party. 1 Its seems reasonably certain that the above translation represents the intent of the
Only four are enumerated here and again referred to in connection with the fourth author. He does not mean: . . ., the divine revelation enounced b y the Qur^an, and (Pro
category. phetical) traditions . . .
224 A L -fjI s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 225

There is no harm in transm itting such (information) on their author 2 Stories {anbd^) of Jewish rabbis and Christian bishops who
ity. For the transmission of falsehood is not (in itself) falsehood, converted to Islam, which th ey found in ^ the books of their proph
just as the transmission of unbelief is not (in itself) unbelief. The ets and which came to them from persons whose m aterial {bi-
purpose in transm itting such (information) is to learn about (the naqlihim wa-anbdHhim th ey trusted. A ll their other m aterial is
degree of) nonsense which owing to the m achinations of Satan th ey suspect of having been altered, falsified, or freely invented. More
have obtained. It is the task of the transm itter to transm it every over, every sect accused the other of purveying false and fictitious
item of inform ation as it has come down, and to send on {irsdl) (information). Their opinions on the beginning and the end of the
any statem ent so as to express the tenets held b y the person who world [al-ihtida* wa-l-intiha*) contradicted each other. M any dif
made it (J-ald muHaqad al-qail), be it true or false. The criticism ferent subsects arose which held different opinions and possessed
(of information) and its condemnation as spurious are left to others. diam etrically opposed inform ation {ahhdr). W e have therefore
(Information) th at is probably true constitutes much or, indeed, restricted ourselves to (information) th at has reached us in w ays
m ost of the contents of this book. It also contains inform ation th at {turuq) considered (worthy of attention) b y men versed in m any
is probably false (47a) but only little of it, such as statem ents trans disciplines {mutafanninun), and have paid no attention to infor
m itted on the authority of other than religious persons not definitely m ation assailed b y historians.
established as false. The absence of religious com m itm ent {tadayyun) The inform ation {ahbdr) of the second age concerning the con
and the com bination of individual (opinions, fard) w ith generally ditions of the Prophet, the righ tly guided caliphs, the men around
accepted ones [al-'-dmm al-aglah) are w hat makes preferable the Muhammad, and the leaders of Islam and rulers of men has been
assumption th at (a given item of information) is false, except, exh au stively sifted, explained, and verified (47b) b y the early
of course, in the case of people who believe th at untruthfulness is Muslims. A ll the transm itters are authoritative. Men who are
forbidden (in general), or in m atters th at are no concern of theirs little known {majdhil) are rarely found in between, except, of
and in which th ey have no stake. Then, (only) doubt is created. course, in the later generations {al-awdhir). (The later generations)
The fifth category that is, doubtful inform ation transm itted have neglected to observe this m ethod {tanqah), and the chain of
on the auth ority of men who are little known {majdhil) is w idely transmission {silsilat al-isndd) is, in fact, broken, even if some faint,
represented in the (historical) inform ation about the first age nominal traces are left. Reliance m ust (now) be placed upon books
dealing w ith the conditions of all the (pre-Islamic) nations, while and upon the m aterial transm itted b y the ancients, and not upon
very little of it is found in the second (Muslim) age where every the m aterial stored in the minds [mahfuz) of the later generations.
(information) is, in fact, either definitely or p robably true. A t-T ib i ^ said: In these times, people p a y no attention to any
In the former case, the reason is the great an tiq uity and dis of the conditions [smut) governing the transmission. A s far as ^ the
appearance (of the nations and individuals concerned) and the lack probity ['addlah) of a transm itter is concerned, th ey are satisfied
of sources for knowing {inqitd'- asbdb al-Hlm) the conditions of when he does not show any weaknesses (mastur al-^adddlah), and
the transm itters of inform ation concerning them. The inform ation as far as his accuracy is concerned, th ey are satisfied if his samd"
th at has reached us has passed through tw o channels [min tanqayn) : is found confirmed b y a reliable signature [hatt) and his transm is
I The inform ation of the prophets coming from the heavenly sion [riwdyah) comes from a m anuscript {asl) th at agrees w ith th at
scriptures, which is restricted to the conditions of peoples among of his sayh. Now, if the science of hadit, one of the bases of the
whom the Q uran was revealed and about whom the Prophet has religious law, has come to such a pass, w hat do you think about
given proven and clear inform ation [hi-^-sarh wa-l-haydn), saying,
^ The preposition f t is to be supplied.
Messengers about whom W e have told you before, and messengers
2 H ardly, wa-inbdHhim whom they trusted as transmitters and narrators.
about whom we did not tell. ^ Al-H usayn b. Abdallah at-Tibi died in 743/1343, cf. G A L , II, 64. His Huldsah appar
ently does not contain the above quotation. Other works of his could not be consulted.
* Leg. m in (instead of 'an).
1 Qur^aii iv 164 (162 FI.), conflated with Qur^w xl 78 (78 FI.). I. e., the fact of his participation in lectures on the material in question.
R o se n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 15
226 A L - tjt s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 227

historical and biographical inform ation {al-ahhdr wa-s-siyar) of the ( i ) Its being fam iliar, occurring repeatedly, and being du
distant past! Thus, do not desire to have everything verified and plicated, according to custom ary experience, b y similar events, as,
accept w hat I give you, which is the appropriate thing to do under for instance, (historical) inform ation on the change of dynasties.
the circumstances. A nd ask God for guidance and success. 2 Its belonging to m atters observable b y the senses, such as
inform ation on topographical conditions {ahwdl al-bildd) and the
remaining traces {al-dtdr al-hdqiyah) of former kings, for the soul,
Fourth Section because of its fam iliarity w ith (such m atters), welcomes them more
The reasons th at call for the acceptance or rejection than anything else.
of inform ation {ahhdr), and the m atters th at 3 Its belonging to concepts {ma'-nd) im agined and given form
m ake it attractive {mayl an-nafs) or unattractive to b y the im agination {wahm haydl), such as inform ation given
{ihbdr) b y m athem aticians on the shape of the heavenly bodies,
L et it be known to you that the afore-mentioned reasons, though for, even if it is not definite, since, as th ey have said, it is (always)
th ey do suggest, in the w ay we have mentioned, (definitive) know l permissible to assume the contrary, the probability is th at it is as
edge, probability, doubt, or fictitiousness (affecting a given item of (they say).
information) on the basis of reason and tradition and also indicate 4 Its conform ing to ethical requirements, such as biographical
the characteristics as we have detailed them th at are to be taken inform ation on noble representatives of the early generations, be
into consideration, (do not exhaust the problem,) b ut whether cause the soul judges th a t it m ust be acceptable.
(historical) inform ation is rejected or accepted often depends on (48b) 5 Its conforming to the requirements of generally known
how the m ind of the student (sdmi^) judges the m atter (48a) on propositions derived from religious laws {sardH'-) and educational
account of accidental circumstances, on his departure from the ideas {dddb), adjudged b y reason to be valid because of a general
required classification {hukm) in a given case, and on situations interest or a weakness or fervent emotion in their favor.^
{ahwdl) arising from other characteristics {sifdt) not considered b y 6 Its being useful on account of its comprising some theoretical
fundam entalist {usuli) and hadit scholars as necessitating action or practical wisdom {hikmah), instruction {adah), or experience
in accordance w ith them but which are influential in causing accept bound up w ith virtue whose acquisition is the natural (purpose)
ance or rejection. Frequently, something looking like a weakness of noble men.
[Hlal) is m istaken for one and turns the person who hears a particular 7 Its being (commonly) known as and having ample claim
item of inform ation [sdmi'- al-hahar) from the right direction. He for itself and the conditions connected w ith it to be known.
does not p ay the least attention to something th at deserves to be 8 The habar being transm itted from men whose statem ents
accepted, and he carefully listens to w hat ought to be rejected. are accepted w ith m uch faith, because th ey possess much know l
This is because the mirror of his reason {'aql) has become rusty edge or religion or (act under a) divine command, such as the m a
through the souls desires and the fact th at the soul is attracted terial transm itted from scholars, ascetics, and excellent and god
tow ard m atters th at agree with the claims of nature and im agination fearing men.
[wahm) : 9 Its agreeing w ith and being conform to the belief and purpose
N ature is a ruler (slavishly) obeyed. of the student {sdmi^), because he (then) considers it a m atter to
A nd how m any tricks does im agination have readily available. be taken for granted b y reason {min musallamdt al-''uqul) and
accepts it.
L et us mention part of this, so th at it m ay serve as a base for 10 Its belonging to m atters com m only and w idely known
comparison. Reasons referring to the subject of a hahar {al-muhbar among (various) people which are not reported to have been dis
'anhu), provided it is something possible, th at call for acceptance approved b y anyone of those who(se opinions) count.
are: ^ Ms. m im -m d hakama l-^aqlu biha (?) li-maslahatin 'dmmatin aw riqqatin aw hamtyatin.
228 A L - ij t s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 229

These are ten reasons which compel attention to (historical) cidental characteristics {a'rdd) of (the prevailing) religious or po
inform ation and require to welcom e it (iqbdl), and which in most litical leadership th at imbues them w ith th at (attitude),1 or other
cases are considered adequate. things.
5 Its being repetitious for the student, because similar and
The reasons for shunning (historical information) are also ten:
related (matters) have occurred to his mind several times. Frequent
1 The subject {al-muhbar '^anhu) being rare, strange, and of occurrence makes them something ordinary {ka-l-mu'-dd) and thus
sporadic occurrence, such as a deluge. The soul dislikes to accept unattractive. This does not contradict the earlier statem ent th at
unfam iliar facts, unless it is forced to do so b y evidence. N ever fam iliar m atters are more easily accepted.^ R epetition {takrdr)
theless, it feels attracted to hearing about them, because it pas means th at the pleasure of acquiring new knowledge is absent,
sionately enjoys learning unknown, new data. because purpose and intent remain the same, even if the subject
2 Its belonging to intelligihilia whose q u an tity reason cannot {al-muhbar 'anhu) is different. The earher statem ent refers to know
perceive {yatasawwaru) and whose q u a lity it cannot depict {yu- ing similar m atters (in general), (49b) and not as individual instances
sawwiru), such as inform ation about m atters connected w ith the {ma'rifatu mitlihi jumlatan Id bi-''aynihi). W hen some inform a
other world which are beyond observation b y the senses and (49a) tion is heard for the first time, it produces the pleasure of knowing
the perception of weak intellects, especially if th ey are dom inated (al-ma^rifah), but when it is repeated, it produces no longer any
b y the power of im agination {vis aestimativa, al-quwah al-wahmiyah). pleasure, except after a long period when it has been somehow for
3 Its belonging to pure, abstract intelligihilia which the power gotten. Individual repetition {at-takrdr bi-hasab as-sahs) necessitates
of im agination is unable to perceive or to imagine. (Such information) the dishke and boredom th at go w ith w hat is ordinary. Generic rep
is therefore adjudged unacceptable, unless the judgm ent of reason etition {bi-hasab an-naw') necessitates attention and is welcomed
compels acceptance. E ven so, it is considered unsatisfactory and a {at-tawajjuh wa-l-iqbdlr).
thing to be avoided, such as, for instance, the giving of inform ation y Its being little known {majhul), because such inform ation
(ihbdr) on theological m atters {al-umur aL-ildhiyah). is rarely of interest to the soul, unless a given item {habar) contains
4 Its belonging to m atters that cannot be verified b y reasoning some additional attractive aspect, such as strangeness, because this
{al-^uqul al-fiknyah), because th ey belong to the world of the super produces the pleasure of a new, previously not experienced percep
natural {'dlam al-gayb). T h ey are, in fact, perceived b y perfect tion {tasawwur). Inform ation about something (commonly) known
souls aided b y the h oly power, b y inform ation from heaven, b y is frequently of no interest either, because it involves repetition.
divine inspiration and intuitional knowledge [al-'-uliim al-maw- 8 Its being impossible. Thus, it is known to be false. B u t (such
hibiyah). Those who were eager to acquire intellectual knowledge information) is often found a ttractive and pleasurable, because
{al-'-uliim al-fikriyah) but were unable to m aster those (supernatural) giving inform ation {ihbdr) about it in a w ay means transform ing
m atters were quick in rejecting them. It is enough of a loss for them it from im possibihty to possibility, and the soul finds it strange and,
to be deprived of (the knowledge of) them and to have to be satisfied therefore, pleasurable.
w ith (the restricted knowledge) th ey have! 9 Its being well known as something th at does occur, because
5 (Its being presented to) a student {sdmi^) who is fettered giving such inform ation {ihbdr) is useless, since the use of any
b y blind adherence to tradition {taqlid) and holds (preconceived) inform ation {habar) consists in m aking (new) knowledge available.
different notions, for if the mind is impressed with (notions) con 10 Its contradicting m atters attested b y sound tradition and
trary to (those contained in the inform ation presented to it), it pure reason. This is (information) to which no attention is and
shuns acceptance. This is an incurable disease which affects m any should be paid.
school members {ahl al-maddhib) for various reasons which have
their origin in one's immediate fam ily {dba) and relatives, in ones
Ms. hamalahum, leg. hamalathum.
contact w ith professors and teachers and other outsiders, in ac * Of. above, p. 227.
230 A L -t jt s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 231

D etails of these reasons that ju stify the expression of preference disapproval or obstreperous and m isled haughtiness. The truth
for either rejection or acceptance can be learned through inductive deserves most to be followed. ^ O nly inform ation th at is (simply)
reasoning {istiqrd^) verified b y ones own exam ination, because it invented should be rejected, and not w hat is (merely) strange and
is something th at is not unknown [mim-md Id yunkaru). novel. I t is not wrong for you ^ to report interesting and strange
Now, knowing the foundations laid and the edifice erected b y happenings and rare and rem arkable cases, even if things of th at
us and being fully acquainted w ith the reasons and causes and the sort rarely happen and the interesting conditions surrounding them
things th at rem ove the veil of doubt w hatever inform ation you are considered astonishing, as long as possibility does not turn
m ay obtain (orally) or read in books, you should strip ^ of all into im possibility. For such inform ation is considered attractive
accidents and free from the qualities and purposes 2 th at envelop (50b) and agreeable. G ods power is wide and His wisdom as regards
it. Y o u should weigh it in the scales of attentive study {iHihdr) H is interesting creations extensive.
and exam ine it according to the critera fixed b y us, distinguish Y o u should test w hat you say, and guard it against contradiction
between the true (50a) and the false, and assign to (each item) its and incoherence from beginning to end. Y o u should keep your
proper place and rank. Then you should go over it again once pen from transm itting and giving wide currency to evil deeds of
more and keep nicely a w a y ^ from w hatever seems tarnished b y wickedness. This is a crime, even if the transmission is (technically)
the doubt of disapproval {subhat al-inkdr), so th at someone who sound. Im prudent persons [futtdk) m ight im itate (such deeds)
m ight be inclined to disapprove will not find a w ay to reject it. and be guided b y their erroneous example. T h e y m ight m ake light
N ot everything th at is true m ust be transm itted. Not everyth in g of their own bad quahties which entrain the suspicion of evil deeds,^
th at conforms m ust be followed and accepted. L eave the things and you m ight be held to some degree responsible for the trouble
th at puzzle you for those which do not puzzle y o u . ^ Throw off and harm caused. If the discussion leads to something of the sort,
the burden (boredom) of m atters which occur frequently in sim ilar you should call attention to the damage to his position and property
form, and do not w eave the embroidered garm ent of your dis suffered b y the evildoer in question. This will serve as an excuse
cussion on their loom, since this is of h ttle use and unprofitable for for you and as a warning for those who are not (hopelessly) negligent
the student [Sami'-). (Repetitious m aterial of) this sort is frequent in and perplexed. B e careful not to report any stories about (actions
histories and has brought censure upon its transm itter. of) unjust ancient rulers called b y them statesm anship [siydsah)
Y o u should leave it to those qualified to give inform ation [ihhdr] and considered a credit to themselves [faddil), w ithout stressing
on m atters connected w ith the other world. Y o u should not con the delusion th a t lurks in such interesting reports. This covers
cern yourself w ith it in any w ay. For the historian is spared this various kinds of injustice [zulm) which (the ancient rulers) prom oted
h e av y and dangerous commitment. Beware of dipping into the churn b y using the w ork ( statesm anship ) and for which th ey had no
ing w aters of the discussion of pure intelligihilia and be satisfied basis in the religious law. A p proval (of this so-called statesmanship)
w ith (those of the intelligihilia) th at are connected w ith the sen- as something b etter than and preferable to the religious law is
sibilia, the images of which are engraved upon the tablet of the w hat has often pushed ignorant persons into unbelief. Thus, th ey
things fancied [mawhumdt). Y o u should go after the most w idely contract an incurable disease. The transm itter of (information on
useful, most readily acceptable, most intellectually impressive, such unjust activities) faces dire consequences. For b y reporting
and, for the purposes of the reader and hearer, most helpful and them he has revived them and is culpable as m uch as the person
profitable historical information, and you should not p a y any who did them.
attention to anyones rejection resulting from ignorant or uninformed Y ou should report m an y stories about good and noble quahties as
such, because these are the m asters of customs (51a) and the cus-
^ Ms. fa-jarrid an-nafs 'an . . . wa-^arrihd. Obviously, nafs refers to the information, and
not to the reader, as all the following suffixes {-hd) are best explained as referring to ahbdr. ^ Cf. below, pp. 250, n. 2, 350, n. 4, and 375, n. 2.
^ The manuscript has a^rdd twice, apparently b y mistake. ^ Ms. Id 'alayka, leg. Id <.ba?sa> 'alaykal
Cf. Qur an Ixxiii lo (lo FI.). 3 Ms. al-muqtarifah bi-sH^ al-fa^dl. Perhaps, the author meant to say: which entrain
* or: this hadit, cf. below, p. 259, n. 5. the commission {U-) of evil deeds.
232 A L -tj ts TUHFAH T R A N SLA TIO N 233

toms of m asters {sadat al-^dddt wa-^dddt us-sdddt), and th ey are other through interpretation, or it m ay not. This, then, are three
most helpful w ith respect to the acquisition of pleasing habits and categories. It is a fixed (principle) th at the {habar) w ith the stronger
a good, acceptable behavior, since th ey are concealed in the center (evidence in its favor) m ust be taken into account. One that adm its
of the minds and natures of noble men and are sparked into being of interpretation m ust be interpreted, and the two [habars] be
b y repeated reference to and discussion of them, as fire concealed combined according to all possible m ethods of combination, in
in the stone is kindled only b y contact w ith flints. Therefore was order to guard against the terrible m istake of attributing untruth
the chosen Prophet commanded as follows in G ods clear book: fulness to a transm itter, whereas everything else m ust of necessity
Remind, for being reminded is useful for the behevers. ^ This be rejected. W hen there is equah ty and an interpretation unaccept
was then followed b y references to the evil deeds of those credited able, it m ay be said to be a case of incoherence (tasdqut) and con
with the opposite quahties, the vices, and to the great m isfortunes fusion {tahayyur). It is better to m ake a distinction between re
th ey experienced in this world. Things become clear through their ligious and w orldly m atters (in such cases). In connection with
opposites. W ithout darkness, the perfection of the full moon would religious m atters, the more cautious (solution, al-ahwat) should be
not be apparent. This is the excuse for m entioning evil persons adopted, and in w orldly m atters, the more beneficial one {al-aslah).
and stories about them together w ith the inform ation on good men. In cases of conflict between tradition and reason {ma^qul man-
M ay God inform us about our own faults and give us success b y qul), if the inform ation based on reason is definite(]y known to be
means of H is excellence and generosity. true), the one based on tradition is subjected to interpretation, in
case it adm its of th a t; w hatever does not adm it of interpretation
F ifth Section is rejected. Reason is basic, and tradition secondary. The former
A n explanation of inform ation {ahhdr) contradictory in cannot be invalidated b y the latter, even if it is not definite(ly
significance, of conflicts between tradition and rea known to be true). If the inform ation based on tradition is definite-
son, and of the general rules applicable here (ly known to be true), it is accepted, and the inform ation based
in finding (items of information) equivalent on reason is interpreted or rejected. If both are cases of probable
or the one preferable to the other {wa- (truth), one looks for things estabhshing preferabihty and adopts
-hukmihi al-kulU Hnd at-ta'-ddul (the information) found to possess greater probabihty. If th ey are
wa-t-tarjih) equal, com bination as much as possible (is required). If not, the
inform ation based on tradition should be accepted in religious m at
Contradiction {ta^'dfud) means th at tw o habafs differ in meaning. ters, and the one based on reason in other m atters. There is room for
It cannot take place in the case of tw o definite(ly true habars),^ m aking a choice (tahyir).
because this would in fact require th at tw o contradictory or oppo This is w hat appears evident to me. Critical minds have looked
site (statements) be combined. It also cannot happen in the case beyond it, and judgm ent concerning it can be entrusted to them.
of something definite(ly known to be true, maqtu^) and something If you are acquainted w ith that, you should know th at after ob
else, (51b) because adoption of w hat is definite(ly known to be true) serving the rules [sardit] governing the inform ation th at comes to
is (obligatory as a) fixed (principle). It can happen only in the case you, you should em ploy speculation and reflection concerning it.
of {habars) supposed (to be true). Now, if the inform ation refers to the supernatural world th at is
W henever habars contradict each other or differ from one another, outside and above sense perception and the grasp of the imagination,
th ey m ay h ave either equally strong or w eak evidence (in their to something the principles of which are < n o t > perceivable
favor), as far as the sanad or the matn are concerned, or th ey m ay b y reason and rational arguments (52a), something where the pro
not. In the former case, the one of them m ay be reconciled w ith the cedures [kayfiydt] and the details of its particulars can be under
stood only b y prophets and saints through in tu itive reason {^aql
1 Q u r an li 55 (55 FI.).
* Cf., for instance, al-G azzali, Mustasfd, II, 126 f. (Cairo 1356/1937). mawhibi) and instruction coming from heaven and divine inspiration,
234 A L -tjt'S TUHFAH TRANSLATION 235

in this case you should trust in and consider authoritative the cally, since the ancients and the m odem s have agreed upon it,
sound traditional inform ation of (those prophets and saints) th at and since there have been ample warnings against an y disapproval
has been given in com pletely clear terms. Through divine power, of it, th ey follow a prudent and cautious course. If th ey disapprove
th ey perceived the spiritualities of the supernatural world {''dlam and reject those (who give inform ation about the supernatural), the
al-malakut) in their special forms and gave inform ation based upon only thing th ey can expect in this world is loss, and in the other
personal observation [Hydn). Thus, we m ust consider such (infor world, the punishm ent of Hell. It has been said truthfully b y the
mation) true and entrust m atters to them w ith regard to w hat th ey prince of religion and the knight of certainty, m ay God ennoble
willed {fi-md arddu), as reported on the auth ority of a s-a fii his face: ^
al-M u ttalibi: I believe in God and in w hat has come from God,
B oth astrologer and physician think
and I believe in the Messenger of God and in w hat has come from
T h at there is no resurrection of bodies. I said: Go away!
the Messenger of God as willed b y {'^ald murdd) the Messenger of
If w hat you say is true, I do not lose anything.
G od.
B u t if w hat I say is true, you are the losers.
The unnecessary use of interpretation is never free from inven
tion and the dangerous risk of innovation. Exam ples of such in This is not m eant to express doubt b ut belongs to the rhetorical
form ation {ahbdr) are the unsuccessful speculations and conclu figure called fair speech and the feigning of ignorance b y one who
sions of physicists and m athem aticians. Their intellects grew know s [al-kaldm al-m unsif wa-tajdhul aU^drif),'^ something com
w eary from measuring the extent of the external world {'dlam parable to m aking some concessions when one w ants to silence ones
as-sahddah), and th ey were unable to penetrate the worlds of the opponent. Rem em ber this principle, for it w ill save you from the
supernatural. W henever th ey approached the vanguard of the untruthfulness of fanciful interpretation {at-tahyil wa-t-ta'wil) and
supernatural world, th ey lost their bearings and had to turn back. rescue you from the morass of confusion in m atters of the divine
Betw een the world of sense perception {dlam al-mahsus) and the attributes {at-tamtU wa-t-taHU).
supernatural w orld {'-dlam al-malakut), there is a stage [rutbah)
w ith tw o sides, one extending tow ard the supernatural world, Sixth Section
and the other tow ard the world of sense perception. Here, the Greek The w ays and aspects of establishing preferability {tarjih)
sages, the Indian philosophers, and the Persian scholars are active. in the case of contradictory inform ation {ahbdr)
This is their frontier, and th ey are unable to go beyond it to the
supernatural world. Therefore, the train of their thoughts w as in Tarjih means declaring one of two hahars stronger than the other
terrupted and their vision (stopped and) reflected. B y applying (53a) in the case of contradiction [ta^drud), so as to be justified in
to their eyes a light from the supernatural world, th ey perceived adopting it. A habar per se, according to the hadit scholars, does
w hat (52 b) the common people were not able to perceive. A s the not possess strength or weakness but acquires the one or the other
intellects of the common people did not have the cap acity of the from outside, either from the characteristics of the transm itters as
intellects of the sages, and (the common people) therefore consid reliable and accurate or suspect and fumbling, or from the pro
ered the inform ation given b y the sages about the m agnitude {kammi- cedure {kayfiyah) of transmission which m ay be musnad, mursal,
ydt) and position {awdd') of the h eavenly bodies improbable and munqaU'', muttasil, and so on.
in their ignorance often felt th ey were lying and m aking things up In connection w ith establishing preferability, the fundam en
and thus received w hat they said w ith disapproval and skepti talists [usuUyun) considered these two points as well as m atters
cism, so are the sages in turn common people as compared to those
1 T h at is, 'A ll ? The verses cited anonymously b y Ibn 'Arabi, al-FutUhdt al-M akkiyah, I,
who give inform ation about the supernatural world. Now, if th ey 312 (Cairo 1329/1911), are by Abu l-'A la al-Ma'arri (cf. al-Gazzali, Ih y d ' , IV, 52).
grant (the truth of) it, since their reason considers it possible and ^ For references to this rhetorical figure, cf. G . E. v o n G r u n e b a u m , A Tenth-Century
Document of Arabic Literary Theory and Criticism, 118 (Chicago 1950).
permissible, since tradition hints at it both openly and m etaphori Cf. above, p. 218.
236 a l - ! j i s t u h f a h TRANSLATION 237

derived from other aspects. T he various notions (they developed) (4) th at which is not disapproved b y the first transm itter is
amount to seven ty items that can be classified under seven aspects considered preferable to th at which is {md Id yunkiru rdwi
as follows: l-awwali ^ald ma ankarahu) (?).
F irst aspect: Establishing preferability w ith reference to the Fourth aspect: EstabHshing p referability according to the cir
conditions of transm itters, which, according to the m ajority, in cumstances under which the hahar is reported, which makes certain
cludes several m a tte rs: (i) Their number. (2) The small number of kinds of hahars preferable: (i) Medinese [habars) are considered
intermediaries. (3) The transm itters knowledge, th at is, juris preferable to Meccan ones. (2) T h at which indicates the exalted
prudence and A rabic philology. (4) H is greater distinction in both. role of the Prophet is considered preferable to th a t which does not.
(5) His orthodoxy and his being untouched b y innovation. (6) H is (3) T h at which indicates leniency is considered preferable to that
being a participant in the happening. (7) His being counted among which indicates severity (in questions of law and ritual). (4) Th at
the transm itters. (8) His being a man of independent judgm ent. which is dated precisely is considered preferable to th at which is
(9) His being considered reliable b y m an y {katir al-muzakkm). (10) not dated. (5) T h at which is not dated is considered preferable to
His being considered reliable b y a scholar who has done much th at which is dated imprecisely. The establishm ent of preferability
more research or is b etter acquainted w ith the conditions of trans in these cases reverts to (the principle of) giving preference to the
m itters (than the transm itter in question). (11) His being considered later (event or injunction) over the earlier one {taqdim al-muta-
so reliable th at his hahar is accepted as a basis for action. (12) His ahhir 'aid al-mutaqaddim).
being described as possessing m uch memorized knowledge and F ifth aspect: E stablishing preferability w ith reference to the
great accuracy. (13) His being well known and of well-known hahar^ wording, which makes certain kinds of hahars preferable:
descent. (14) The existence of no confusion regarding his name. (i) T h at which is clearly expressed (fasih) is considered preferable
(15) The time when he became a Muslim.^ A n d (16) His being to th at which is not. (2) A te x t (nass) is considered preferable to
free and male, something taken into account b y some people. obvious im plication {zdhir). (3) General (apphcability) is considered
Second aspect: Establishing preferability w ith reference to the preferable to special (applicability). (4) General (apphcability) that
time of taking on the transmission of inform ation [tahammul). If is not specialized is considered preferable to th at which is not. (5)
this is done when a person is m ature, it is preferable to his doing R ea h ty [haqiqah] is considered preferable to m etaphor {majdz).
so as a child. This aspect has been restricted b y (the usuliyun) to (6) M etaphor th a t is closer to reality is preferable to m etaphor less
this one point. Precedence of those who take on the transmission close to it. (7) Legal reality is considered preferable to custom ary
of inform ation as Muslims, over those who do so as unbelievers is or verbal reality, a m atter detailed b y the Imam.^ (8) T h at which does
something th at should be counted as belonging to this aspect, not require silent assumptions {idmdr) and middle (terms, wasat)
although th ey count it as belonging to another one. in m aking a point {daldlah) is considered preferable to that which does.
Third aspect: Establishing preferability w ith reference to the (9) Th at which m akes a point [ad-ddll) from two directions [min waj-
procedure [kayfiyah) of transmission, which m akes certain kinds hayn) is considered preferable to th at which does from one only. (10)
of hahars preferable to their counterparts: (i) Th at which, it is T h at which is conjoined w ith contrary (statements, mu'-drid) is consid
agreed, goes b ack to the Prophet {marfu^) is considered preferable ered preferable to th a tw h ich is not. (11) T h at w hichis connected with
to th at about which there exist different opinions (as to w hether it threats [tahdid) and emphasis [mu^akkad) is considered preferable to
is marju'-). (53b) (2) T h a t which is provided w ith a reason [sahah] other [hahars). A n d (12) th at which contains a statem ent of the
is considered preferable to th at which is not. (3) T h at which is causa legis [kalimat al-Hllah) is considered preferable to th at which
transm itted literally in the nam e of M uhammad is considered pref does not.
erable to th a t w hich is transm itted only according to the sense. A nd Sixth aspect: EstabHshing preferabihty w ith reference to the
legal classification {hukm), which makes certain kinds of hahars
Ms. ta^ahhur Isldm iht <w a -ta qqad u m ihi> . * That is, Fahr-ad-din ar-Razi, rather than al-Gazzali.
238 A L - ij f s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 239

preferable; (i) T h a t which preserves the law of the basic principle tow ard them, so th at no lengthy repetition of details and examples
{hukm al-asl) th at is, basic freedom (from obligation, al-haraah is necessary.
al-asUyah) is considered preferable to th at which removes (it, W here there is contradiction [ta^drud], the main thing is adopting
an-ndqil)?- (2) T h at which makes something forbidden is considered w hatever is more lik ely and more to the point, more in keeping
preferable to th at which makes something perm itted. (3) T h at which w ith the circum stances of the subject {al-muhbar 'anhu), truer
asserts divorce and manumission is considered preferable to th a t to the picture form ed b y reason, and more readily acceptable.
which denies them. A nd (4) (54a) th at which denies a legal p enalty Then, there is (the problem of) establishing preferability on the
is considered preferable to th a t which asserts it {^dfi l-hadd basis of quan tity [kammiyah] over quality [kayfiyah), or vice versa.
'aid muthitihi). Here it is up to the critic to decide which side deserves preference.
Seventh aspect: Establishing preferability through something Likewise, when there are several aspects m aking for preferability
outside the given hahar and all th a t belongs to it, such as establish on both sides, it is up to him to compare each one of them and to
ing preferability on the basis of the fact th at most of the ancients balance everything,^ (54^) until it becomes clear th at one is prefer
acted in accordance w ith th at particular hahar. It would not be able to the other {at-tarjih wa-l-maziyah) or th at both are equivalent
far-fetched to count as belonging to this aspect the establishm ent and irreconcilable {at-ta'-ddul wa-t-tasdqut). W hatever [hahar) is
of preferability on the basis of the existence of the transmission found to contain one of the elements referred to in part in the chap
of another hahar which agrees w ith the first one as belonging to ter on the uses of historiography (ch. IV), or something similar to
the establishm ent of preferability on the basis of the existence of a them the more intensively, generally, and com prehensively useful
large nim iber of indications {katrat al-adillah). it is for the student and the more lasting the impression it makes,
These are fifty ^ items m aking for preferability which were con the more does it deserve consideration and study. In the same
sidered b y the fundam entalists {usuUyun) in connection w ith manner, the more clearly (a hahar) proves the perfection of the
establishing p referability among Prophetical hahars and other w ork of the Creator, the more attention should be paid to it.
hahars which either belong to them or are close to them.
Seventh Section
In connection w ith general inform ation {al-ahhdr al-'-dmmah)
intended for the stud y of the conditions of the world in general The preferability of traditional inform ation {naql\ on
and those of noble human beings in particular, there is much leeway. supernatural m atters inaccessible to sense percep
I have discussed previously some of the aspects and causes of tion wherever reason [al-qdti' al-'-aqli) does
rejection and acceptance as criteria for the critical approach to tra not oppose it
This section (fols. 54b-56b) contains a polemic against the philosophers {al-faldsifah ad-
ditional inform ation. W ere all of th a t transferred to this place and
dahrlyah wa-t-tabtHyah) and their Muslim followers who do not accept the prophetical
combined w ith the detailed rules {ahkdm) just given, the reader information about the supernatural as attested b y Muslim dogma. The argumentation
centers around the distinction between the acquired reason {^aql mustafdd) of ordinary
would be in the possession of a complete knowledge of the various
human beings and the intuitive reason { aql mawhibi) of prophets and saints, as similarly
aspects th at go w ith the estabhshment of preferability, and he above, p. 233 f. The author quotes as-Suhrawardis R asf, that is, K a f al-fadd^ilf, al-Y un dn tya h

would know w hat to reject and w hat to consider correct. He would wa-raSf an-nasdHh al-tm dniyah.

find th at the sources used b y the fundam entalists for establishing Eighth Section
preferability exist quite sim ilarly for all other item s of historical The preferability of (information confirm ed by) reason
inform ation {ahhdr siyar dtdr). T h ey can be applied to them in in natural m atters [ahkdm 'dlam al-mulk) th at can
exactly the same manner, and the fundam entals of reasoning and be proved b y (reason)
the evidence of tradition as well as his trust in his own perfect in This section (fols. 57a-5ga) continues the preceding section and argues, on the basis of
statements b y al-Gazzali and as-Suhrawardi, that acceptance of the data of physical science
telligence and reliance upon his own insight w ill guide the reader
must not undermine the belief in the revealed religion.

1 Cf. R. Brunschvig, in E l , 2nd ed., s.v. barda. * Ms. tarhu kullin bi-md yu'-driduhu, apparently an arithmetical metaphor with the
In fact, not quite that many. approximate literal meaning of to divide everything b y that which contradicts it.
240 A L - I j t s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 241

N inth Section celestial and terrestrial occurrences, the interesting effects of


Habar criticism and the com bination of reason and tahsmans, and the like is not to be considered im probable, according
tradition in considering (information) to the theologians {mutakallimun) on the basis of the general extent
of the power and the firmness of the vohtion of God, and according
A fte r continuing at first the preceding discussion, this section concludes w ith the follow ing
rem ark s; to the sages on the basis of the influence exercised b y the natures,
The available inform ation on the conditions of individuals the va riety of reasons {asbdb), the occurrence of strange positions
and generations of the past, as far as it concerns the first period,^ [awdd^) among the heavenly bodies {falakiydt), and the differences
because of its great antiquity and the fact th at the chain of trans th at exist in preparedness (for reception) b y (the matters) th at
mission is largely broken, is rarely free from discrepancies and receive (strange phenomena, th at is, th at act as substrata for them ).
uncertainties which m ake it necessary to avoid most of it. The only This leads to differences in the influence of the causes and the ap
authoritative source for it is the People of the Book, as the only pearance of the things caused.
w ay to obtain it is through the inform ation {ihbdr) God gave His The inform ation referring to celestial and terrestrial angels,
prophets and messengers and through the tradition of the (Chris to jin n and human beings, and to Satans (is to be considered pos
tians and Jews) among the men around M uhammad who became sible, since) all this is possible in the power of God, and reason
Muslims. It is to be considered as authoritative and as probably cannot prove it false, nor is there any evidence for denying them
true, because it (can be classified as) belonging to traditions trans corporeality. D efinite statem ents {qawdti") transm itted b y tradition
m itted b y one transm itter (ahdd).^ E veryth in g else, and historical indicate their existence, and it has been confirm ed b y inform ation
works are full of it, presents truth m ixed inextricably w ith falsehood attested b y m any authorities and derived from actual observation
and belongs into the doubtful category. From among transm itters of these (beings), so th at no allegorical interpretation would be
who are little known, the careful reporter must give preference to acceptable. E ven though, like traditions transm itted b y one trans
the one who is most accurate, thus joining the select group of m itter [bi-hasab al-dhdd), this (information) is not transm itted b y
those who listen to w hat is being said and follow the best of it. ^ m any authorities, all (the information) taken together comes close
He should adopt (the information) th at is most appropriate and to having the same force of proving the common denominator
most indicative of the perfection of the w ork of God Omnipotent. th at is, the existence of these kinds (of beings) as attestation b y
The inform ation definite(ly accepted as true) b y reason [al-ma'-qul m any authorities would have. H ow could this be considered im
al-maqtu'-) is the one th at rehes upon verified reason or upon tra probable, seeing th at the sages spoke about m atters th at reason
dition confirm ed as sound. ^ E veryth in g else remains (at best) considered even more improbable, such as, for instance, the Platonic
in the realm of the possible. One should adopt the m ost appro ideas and the perfect nature. T ab it b. Qurrah ^ often mentions th at
priate, and take into consideration the most likely, subject {al- he had seen the spirituality of the stars and conversed w ith (the
muhhar 'anhu). W here doubtful inform ation is m orally and ethi perfect nature). H e says, in direct quotation {ft hikdyah): M y
cally edifying and stim ulating (6ib), (it is allright, and) it is not perfect nature gave me such-and-such inform ation. The existence
necessary to refrain from the invention of stories about animals of angels and jin n is a definitely established fact, the denial of
and inanim ate objects that talk, which serve the purpose of de which cannot be reconciled w ith belief in the Scriptures and the
picting proper attitudes and behavior and of showing the results messengers. The disapproval (62a) of the M u'tazilah smells of the
obtained through using those (attitudes and behavior). discussions of the philosophers, a smell th at clung to them and b y
The inform ation available on the wonders of creation, rem arkable sticking to their doctrines led them astray.
^ Cf. above, p. 224.
1 Ms. al-Qurrah. Cf. Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, trans. F. R o s e n t h a l , I, 213, n. 311, and,
Cf. above, pp. 218 and 222.
especially, the translation of P icatrix Das Z iel des Weisen von Pseudo-Ma^rUt b y
Qur^an x x x ix 18 (19 FL).
H . R i t t e r and M. P l e s s n e r , 198, n. i, and 205 (London 1962). In the last m entioned
T h e active participles muhaqqiq reason th at verifies (it) and musahhih tradition
passage, we find a statem ent ascribed to Socrates corresponding rather closely to w hat is
th at confirm s (its) correctness m ay be preferable.
said here about T a b it b. Qurrah.

R osenth al, History of Muslim Historiography 16


242 A L - l j f ' s TUHFAH TRANSLATION 243

This is a proven principle which I h ave explained here. If the individual transm itters or titles of books. This would lead to boring
reader follows it, it will be easy for him to be critical in his collec length, and the student would miss out on the purpose (of the book).
tion and arrangement of the historical and biographical inform ation In this book, therefore, we have, for the sake of simplification,
on the good men of the past and to be an authoritative critic ex dropped the chains of transm itters of the (historical) inform ation
pected and able to m ake the (right) choice. presented, as is considered permissible b y haMt scholars in the
The discussion of this im portant subject here has become long- case of traditions th a t belong into the w eak category. B u t we shall
winded, and m uch ink has been used up to blacken w hite paper. mention enough of it to give the reader (66a) and student author
Lengthiness is rarely free from repetition. However, laying down ita tiv e and reliable guidance and to acquaint (him) w ith the w ays
soHd principles requires much explanation, especially if new and and chains of transmission used b y me {naqli riwdyati).
useful ideas are involved to be added to the existing foundation. T h e author then m entions his teachers and their authorities, and the works he studied
M ay God enable us to use our minds and thoughts constantly. and for w hich he obtained ijdzahs. These are the fam ous hadit collections and other works
on hadit, jurisprudence, and theology. A ll this has nothing to do w ith h istoriography as we
understand it. The on ly historical title m entioned is the K a m il of Ibn al-A tir. T h e
Tenth Section author also studied the works of ar-R afi'i, b u t he does n ot sa y w hether th ey included ar-
R a fi'is History o f Qazwtn. H e concludes w ith an indication of the sources used in the
A refutation of those who deny the occurrence of longevity present work.

In this section (fols. 62a-65a), the author takes issue w ith those who do n ot believe th at This w ork is based upon the Kitdb al-Muntazam b y the Helper
people in other periods of h istory en joyed a longer life. H is argurnents rest upon the
om nipotence of G od and the observable changes in the ph ysical features of anim als and the
of the Hadit, Sayh A b u 1-Faraj Abd-ar-Rahm an b. al-Jawzi, m ay
in anim ate world. H e also discusses, m ain ly on the basis of al-Biruni, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, God show m ercy unto him, for he spent m uch effort on verifying the
8 i f. S a c h a u , the beliefs of astrologers and biologists. H e concludes w ith a statem ent from
the com m entary on the KulUydt of Ibn S in a s Qdnun b y the pole of the firm am ent of
(historical) inform ation, and he selected the inform ation upon which
perfection (apparently, Fa^r-ad-din ar-R azi, b u t cf. also G A L Suppl. I, 824, no. 82 f.) the m ajority of historians agreed. Of other works, I used as the
th a t the w ell-know n opinion th at the exten t of n atu ral life is 120 years is one of the well-
know n opinions th a t are false. ^ basis for m y inform ation on the Prophet the books on siyar and
b y Muhammad b. Ishaq b. Jarir ^ (at-Tabari), al-W aqidi,
Eleventh Section
and other, later authors. For the statem ents {dtdr) of and (historical)
A refutation of those vile ignoramuses who deny the inform ation [ahbdr) on the men of the following generations [atbd^],
occurrence of giantism I used the hadit w ork b y the hadit expert, A b u N u 'a y m al-Isfa-
T h is section (fol. 65) and the preceding section are p a rticu la rly interesting in connection hani ,2 the Ma^rifat as-sahdbah b y the hadit expert Ibn Mandah
w ith the Muqaddimah of Ibn H aldun, the a u th ors contem porary, who argues for the al-Isfahani,^ and the Siyar as-salaf b y the hadit expert Ism a'il
opposite thesis. T h e su b ject w as ob viously considered as one of param ount im portance for
ju dging the trustw orthiness of the entire corpus of B ib lical legends w hich represented a al-Isfahani.^ For the historical eras {tawdrih al-waqdH*-), the length
large p a rt of the M uslim knowledge of pre-Islam ic h istory. T he debate is an excellent of human life, and strange conditions, I used the Kitdb al-Atdr
exam ple for the difficulties th at confronted a m edieval scholar, historian, or scien tist who
a ttem pted to get a t the tru th and was confronted w ith an immense accum ulation of con al-bdqiyah b y Professor A b u Rayh.n (al-Biruni). For the history
tra d ictory evidence laid dow n in w orks he had to th ink of as representing the best of the Persians, I used the Kitdb Tajdrib al-umam b y A bu A li
availab le thought and inform ation.
Miskawayh. F or genealogy, I used the Muntahab Diwdn an-nasab
Twelfth Section and the Kitdb al-Ansdb, put out {tahrij) b y J a far b. Ibrahim as-
The chain of transmission (sanad) of the m aterial Skw y. For reports on religions and sects, I used the Kitab al-M ilal
reported from transm itters and books in this wa-n-niJml b y as-Sahrastani and the Risdlat Tahsil al-haqq b y the
w ork
The preceding discussion has shown th at it is absolutely necessary 1 Ms. al-Jarir.
Cf. below , p. 400, n. 5. Th e reference seems to be to his MaWifat as-sahdbah.
to ascribe every habar to a truthful inform ant or an inform ative Cf. below , p. 400, n. 4-
book {kitdb ndtiq). It would obviously be difficult to list fu lly all * T h a t is, A b u 1-Qasim at-T aym i, cf. below , pp. 394, n. 3, and 400.
^ Ms. al-Miskawayh.
^ Cf. F. R o s e n t h a l , in B ulletin of the H istory of M edicine, X L , 240, 242 (1966). A s-Saku n i, as-Su kkari, as-Sadusi ? I do n ot know the id e n tity of this author.
244 A L - I j i s T U H FA H

Im am and great scholar, Fahr-al-m illah wa-d-din ar-R azi.i These


books contain the basic material.^ For details of all sorts and wise
and entertaining remarks ^ and for inform ation concerned w ith
the description of geographical zones (70b), the shape of the spheres,
the location of oceans, and the routes of provinces {masdlik al~ CH A PTER TEN
mamdlik [sic]), books dealing w ith these disciplines were used, such
as the Nihdyat al-idrdk,^ the Tuhfah as-sdhiyah,^ the Qdnun al- a l - k A f i y a j I s sh o rt w ork on h is t o r io g r a p h y
Mas'-udi (by al-Biruni), the M awdqif al-'-Adudiyah as-Siddiqiyah al-
IjiyaJi,^ and other works, even if at the time of writing, no page I IN T R O D U C T IO N
or line of the books mentioned was available.
God knows best the true state of affairs. From Him is the be The short treatise b y a l-K afiy a ji entitled al-Muhtasar f i Him
ginning and to H im is (the return at) the Resurrection. a t-ta n h The Short Work on H isto riog ra p h y ^ of which the follow
ing pages contain a resume, was w ritten in 867/1463. In spite of
S e v e n th C h a p t e r its com paratively recent date and the com petition offered b y a l-lji
T h is chapter (fols. 7ob-86a) deals w ith the different kiuds of nations and the peoples of and Ibn H aldun , it can still claim the honor of being the oldest
the in h abited quarter of the earth, Arabs and non-Arabs, and includes a rather lengthy-
geographical discussion. It starts ou t b y stressing again the fa ct th at hum an
Muslim monograph on the theory of historiography known to us.
individuals, in their m anifold v ariety , are the proper su bject of historiography. A l-K a fiy a ji attem pted to w rite a w ork concerned exclusively w ith
the theoretical treatm ent of tarih. It m ay be said at once th at he
E ighth C h a p t e r
did not succeed in his purpose. The second half of the tw enty folios
T his ch apter (fols. 86b-92b) b riefly discusses genealogy along fam iliar lines.
of the E gyp tian m anuscript of the w ork is taken up b y mere stories.
N in th C h a pte r Those stories were intended to be illustrations of the theoretical
T h e ninth and la st ch apter (fols. g3a-295a) contains the historical presentation, introduced discussion. H owever, th ey are m erely the ordinary run of fanciful,
as follow s:
unhistorical tales about angels and prophets, w ith a few historical
The preceding discussion has m ade it clear that the general and data added at the end. W hile the second half of the w ork is filled
basic objective of historiography and of w riting historical works is w ith absolutely worthless m aterial, the first half fu lly compensates
(to give) historical inform ation on the best nations and (to study) for the shortcom ings of the second.
the conditions of the noblest representatives of the A rabs and the M uhyi-ad-din M uhamm ad b. Sulaym an al-K M iyaji, a native of
non-Arabs. This is the highest goal (of the historian). A n yth in g else K o k ja k i 2 in A natolia, w as born apparently according to his own
th at is m entioned is mentioned as either something introductory statem ent which m ight have exaggerated his age in 788/1386-87.
or something supplem entary. The more noble a hum an being is, He died in 879/1474.^ The frequency w ith which his name occurs
the more im portant and appropriate does it become to stud y his in the biographies of persons from the ninth/fifteenth century in
condition. It is no secret th at prophets occupy the m ost exalted as-Sahaw is Daw"* suggests th at he was a popular teacher. His pub
rank. . . .
lications were quite numerous. Most of them, however, were short.
O f the follow ing 202 folios, over tw o-thirds are devoted to religious and cu ltu ral h istory,
th at is, such subjects as religion, prophecy, the prophets, scholars, m ystics, sects, pseudo
None of them has been published. In addition to the w ork on his
prophets, heretics, philosophers, and sages. O n ly some s ix ty folios (fols. 231b ff.) deal with toriography, the E gyp tian L ib rary in Cairo preserves, among the
political history.
m anuscripts of a l-K a fiy a ji consulted b y me a com m entary on a gram
1 His TahsU al-haqq f t l-kaldm is m entioned b y H a jji H alifah, II, 216, no. 2510 F l u g e l . m atical w ork b y Ibn H isam and two collections of his minor trea-
2 Th e te xt is uncertain.
^ Th e te xt seems to be defective here.
^ T he title-pages of the Istan b u l m anuscripts and, its seems, also th at of the T a l'a t
B y M ahmud b. Mas'^ud as-Sirazi, cf. below, p. 384.
m anuscript in the E g y p tia n L ib rary add al-muftd The Instructive Short Work . .
A n other w ork b y as-irazi.
^ For the correct form , cf. J. S c h a c h t , in Oriens, V II , 154, n. i (1954).
' T h a t is, the fam ous w ork of the auth ors teacher, 'Adud-ad-din al-lji.
Cf. G A L , II, 114 f.
246 a l - k A f i y a j I s s h o r t w o r k o n h i s t o r i o g r a p h y INTRODUCTION 247

tises.i The subjects of these treatises are v ery indifferent, b ut it new solutions to the problems raised b y a l-K afiyaji. He was explicit
seems th at a l-K a fiy a ji handled them w ith considerable originality. where a l-K a fiy a jis exposition was m ost sketchy. A nd he filled a
The present Short Work on Historiography is likewise rem arkable great gap in a l-K a fiy a jis w ork b y giving full bibliographical in
for its seem ingly original approach and execution. It follows the form ation on all aspects of Muslim historiography.
common scheme of scientific definition which goes back to A risto U nfortunately, a l-K M iy ajis originality was not m atched b y his
telian philosophy.2 The authors im m ediate source of inspiration talent for hterary expression. H is remarks appear to be notes of
in this respect was the m ethodology of jurisprudence.^ The ques lectures given to an audience of law students. There are occasional
tions about the character (t o t i ) of his science, its object, purpose, references to previous discussions w ith which we are not familiar.
and use are more or less briefly answered, A l-K a fiy a ji devotes more A fte r ample allowance is m ade for the intricate technical (mainly
space to the problems growing out of the am biguity of the A rabic legal) language of the period, the exact m eaning of the text occasion
word ta'rih (history, era) and the position of history in Muslim re ally remains obscure. This is due m ainly to the authors inab ility
ligious scholarship. to express himself clearly. However, his ideas, too, are vague. M any
A l-K a fiy a ji was no professional historian, nor does he seem to of them appear not to h ave had tim e to m ature in the authors
have been p articularly interested in history. In addition to the mind.
present work, he occupied himself w ith historical problems in the A ll these factors combine to compHcate the task of the translator.
Kitdh an-Nasr al-qdhir wa-l-fath az-zdhir.^ In his time, he was con The translation of al-K M iyaji was approached in the same spirit
sidered a great auth ority on the non-traditional, non-religious as th at of as-Sahawi, and the rem arks in the introduction to the
disciplines. A modest acquaintance w ith philosophy and the sciences translation of the IHdn should be compared (below, pp. 266-68).
is apparent in his w ork on historiography, but like his younger A n occasional need for greater literalness w as felt. In the IHdn,
contem porary as-Sahawi and like every other scholar of the period, the expression Him at-ta^rih has as a rule been translated b y the
he was above all a religious scholar. More than he him self m ight simple h istory, and not b y the often aw kw ard historiography,
have liked to adm it, his occupation w ith history was incidental to nor b y science of h istory, a translation which m ight easily evoke
his studies of traditions and religious law. wrong associations in the m ind of the modern reader. Here, the
A l-K M iy a jis ideas about history, as expressed in the present more literal translation historiography was chosen. A w ord like
work, greatly influenced as-Sahawi. W ithout the Short Work on tadwin, for which system atic-theoretical treatm en t would have
Historiography, as-Sahaw is Open Denunciation {IHdn) would not been an accurate translation, has been rendered b y the artificial
have been possible. The problems, and to some degree their pres codification.
entation, are the same in both works, and there is no reason to The m anuscript of the Short Work on Historiography on which
assume the existence of a common source for them. H owever, it this translation is based is the one preserved in the E gyp tian
would be wrong to condemn as-Sahawi for his lack of appreciation L ib ra ry .1 It was finished just eight days after the completion of
of the w ork of his predecessor. As-Sahaw i constantly tried to give the w ork in 867/1463. T he scribe was one of a l-K a fiy a jis famuh,
A li b. D aw ud al-Jawhari, the historian, who w as bom in 819/1416
^ Mss. Cairo 'Ilm. an-nahw, 1140 (cf. also 240, 241, 440, 46111), and M ajam iS 392 and 395.
T he desire to be original seems to be present in all the numerous treatises from his pen and who died in 900/1495, As-Sahawi, in the Daw\ it m ay be said
preserved in the various m anuscripts collections, am ong which those in Istan b u l are as in passing, gave him a v ery bad n a m e , ^
usual p a rticu la rly rich.
* A s-S a fa d ls introduction to the W aft, on the other hand, shows the philological approach A n autograph cop y of the w ork from the year 868 is in the
(cf. the translation b y . A m a r , Prolegomdnes d Ietude des historians arabes par K h a lil
Ibn Aibak as-Safadt, in J A , X , 17, 251-308, 465-531, X , 18, 5-48, X , 19, 243-97, i g ii- 1 2 ) ,
bu t it should be noted th at al-M aqrizis H itat starts ou t w ith the eight A ristotelian
problem s th at govern the com position of a litera ry work. ^ Ms. Cairo T a riji, 528, cf, V , 145 of the old, and V , 335 of the new, catalogue of the
* Cf., for instance, 'A ll b. A b i A li al-A m idi, Ifikdm al-hukkdm, I, 6 (Cairo 1914). A rab ic books and m anuscripts of the E g y p tia n L ibrary.
* Cf. W . A h l w a r d t , Verzeichniss der arabischen Handschriften, V II , 495a, ad no. 8507 * Cf. V , 2 17-19 ; Ib n ly a s , II, 288 ( B u liq 1311/1893-94, see above, p. 84);
(Berlin 1895, D ie Handschriften-Verzeichnisse der koniglichen Bibliothek zu Berlin, 19). G A L , I I, 43, Supplement II, 41, new edition II, 53.
248 a l - k A f i y a j ! s s h o r t w o r k on h is to r io g r a p h y T R A N S L A T IO N 249

T a l'a t collection of the E gyp tian L ibrary, T a rih 1814.1 It has not 2 T R A N S L A T IO N
been consulted. In the name of God, the Compassionate, the
There are tw o more m anuscripts of the w ork in Istanbul, A y a Merciful
Sofya 3402 and 3403. W hen I originally inquired about them w ith
H. R it t e r , who was in Istanbul at the time, he kindly informed Praised be God W ho created earth and heaven and all th at is
me, in a letter dated March 28th, 1948, th at only one of the two in them as a lesson for the intelligent. G ods prayer and blessing
m anuscripts was accessible, the other being in its w artim e hideout upon H is beloved Prophet Muhammad, the bearer of the revelation
in A natoha. W hen both m anuscripts were again in Istanbul, I and guidance, and upon his fam ily, the men around him, and those
received photostats of them through the m ost courteous cooperation who followed them , all of whom are lodestars to be followed.
of the Turkish authorities both in this country and in Turkey, and [The following passage is quoted in I Han, 36j8-375 below, p.
through the great kindness of Dr. M u st a f a K o y m e n , then director
318.]
of the Istanbul libraries, and Dr. J. K . B irg e of Istanbul. B oth
. . . I hope th at God will give me a good m em ory in this world
m anuscripts were w ritten b y one and the same person, Y a h y a b.
and ample reward in the other world. He has the power to do every
Muhammad ad-Damsisi. Ad-Dam sisi, who was born in 833/1430,
thing, and He can be expected to respond to prayers.
was another pupil of al-K M iyaji. In contrast to al-Jawhari, he
I divided the w ork into three chapters.
remained on good terms with as-Sahawi. W hen the latter w rote his
Daw'^, ad-Dam sisi was still alive and came in for a good deal of high
F IR S T C H A P T E R
praise. 2
T H E P R IN C IP L E S O F H IS T O R IO G R A P H Y
The m anuscript A y a Sofya 3402 was finished on Thursday,
a ban 23rd, of the year . . . (I w as unable to decipher the rest Linguistically, ta^rih is the indication of time.
of the subscription; it m ay be the year in which the w ork was According to custom ary usage and as a technical term, ta^nh is the
w ritten. The tw enty-third day of S a'b an of the year 867/May 13th, general fixation of tim e for the purpose of relating to it a time-sec-
1463, was a Friday. In 868, which appears to be the more tion, either of the past, the present, or the future.
lik e ly reading, the corresponding date [May is t, 1464] was a According to another definition, ta^rih is the indication of time
W ednesday). b y relating it to the first occurrence of a m atter of wide concern,
The m anuscript A y a Sofya 3403 was finished on R am adan 28th, such as the appearance of a religion, or the happening of a terrifying
868/June 4th, 1464. It has a few m arginal notes not found in the event, th at is, a deluge, a big earthquake, or some similar celestial
other manuscripts. or terrestrial sign and phenomenon.
W hile al-Jaw haris m anuscript was evidently w ritten for his per A ccording to another definition, ta^rih is a known stretch of
sonal use, as shown b y its bad handwriting, ad-D am sisis copies time between the occurrence of an obvious m atter and the times
were produced on behalf of the respective libraries of Q aitb ay, the of other events.^
future Sultan, and a certain Mahmud Basa. Therefore, th ey were E ach one of these (definitions of ta^rih as a) technical term has
copied in a hand of studied legibility. In this case, a bad hand something in its favor. The most appealing (definition) m ay,
w riting does not mean a good text. A l-J aw h a iis copy is inferior therefore, be selected. (The existence of various definitions) shows
to the w ork of ad-Damsisi. th at ta^rih, as a technical term, is a word of m any m e a n i n g s , ^
The A rabic te x t of al-K M iyajis w ork w ill be found below, pp.
547-580. ^ Cf. a l-lji, above p. 207 f.
* Th e preceding definitions of ta^rth, though in general quite coramon (cf. also, for instance,
al-M aqrizi, H itat, I, 250, B u laq 1270), were derived b y a l-K a fiy a ji, w ith some changes, from
al-S irazi, N ihdyat al-idrdk, cf. below , p. 384, n. 2. A l-B istam i, al-FawdHk al-miskiyah, Ms.
^ Cf. Fu^ad S a y y id , in Revue de I'Institut des M anuscrits arabes, I I I , 204 (1957). A y a S o fya 4160, fol. 13a, defines ta^Hh as a known d a y to which is referred a tim e-section
* Cf. Daw^, X , 251 f. th a t follow s upon it [yaHi ^alayhil).
250 A L -K A F IY A jt s SHORT WORK ON HISTORIOGRAPHY T R A N S LA T IO N 251

such as 'ayn (eye, source, etc.). There is nothing wrong w ith that. According to a w idely accepted opinion, a time-section, in custom
Technical terms m ay be freely chosen b y anybody for anything, a ry usage, is the measure of m ovem ent. The knowledge of it is
provided th at there is a sound purpose behind it and th at one needed b y the historians. According to another opinion, a time-
avoids frivolity. E v e ry reader can te stify th at books are full of section, in custom ary usage, is something coming up new th at is
th at (sort of thing). E very group is pleased w ith its own (posses used as a measure for something else th at is coming up new (3b).
sions, opinions). ^ (2b)
[Explanation of solar year and lunar year and other tim e units.]
[Further elaboration of the theme th at everybody has the right The expression ta^rih is an arabicized loan word from (Persian)
to his own opinion, but the truth should be followed. The verses
mdh Yoz.
quoted in this connection are again referred to b y al-K M iyaji in his Ta^rih originated when A bu Musa al-A sari w rote to Um ar b.
Kitdh al-Farah wa-s-surur f i haydn al-maddhih, B rit. Mus. ms. ar. al-H attab : W e are receiving letters from the Caliph, and we do
322 (Or. 3109), fol. 5 a. 2]
not know which we should follow. W e had an I.O .U . ^ payable in
The expression ta'^rih is thus determ ined b y traditional usage Sa'ban, and we do not know which a ban, the past one, or the
just like other traditional (concepts) of religious law or custom ary coming one. A nother version reads: A n I.O .U . payable in Sa'ban
usage, such as, for instance, faith , or prayer , and the like, or, was presented to Um ar, and he asked which S a ban was m eant,
for instance, beast of burden , and the like. The question m ay be the present one, or the coming one.
asked w hat difference there is between ta rih in its linguistic meaning
[The following passage, including the quotation from as-irazi,
and ta 'n h as a technical term. The answer is th at it is a difference
Nihdyat al-idrdk f i dirdyat al-afldk, is quoted in IHdn, 8i8-82u,
of range. Linguistically, td^Yih has a wider m eaning than it has as a
below, pp. 383 f., w ith only very minor changes.]
technical term, in the sense in which anim al has a wider meaning
than m an . . . .T h is era {ta^rih) is called the era of the hijrah. Now th at the
m eaning of ta^rih is known, it should be said th at the eras which are
H istoriography is a branch of learning which investigates time-
w idely used in our tim e are those of the hijrah, the Byzantines, the
sections and the circum stances prevailing in them, as well as the
Persians, the M aliki era,^ and the eras of the Jews and the Turks.
circum stances which are connected w ith those time-sections, (3a)
The hijrah year is a lunar year, and the B yzantine year is a solar
with a view to their fixation as to time.
year. The meaning of lunar year and solar year was explained above.
Now, linguistically, (the words) time-section [zamdn) and tim e Since historiography (5b) is a codified branch of knowledge, it
i;waqt) are identical. Tim e is a generally known (concept). (The m ust have its problems and its object. It m ay be asked w hat are its
word) miqdt (derived from waqt tim e ) has a wider range than problems, and w hat is its object. Its problems w ill be explained
time. The tim e appointed for a certain a ctiv ity, such as the tim e in detail in the second chapter.
of the pilgrimage, or of prayer, and so on, is called miqdt. In ad Its object is rem arkable happenings which are of interest, which
dition, miqdt is used for the place designated for something. The create a desire (for good actions) and constitute a warning (against
miqdt of the Syrians is the point where th ey have to enter into the evil deeds), which engender energy (to do good deeds) and which
ihrdm, th at is, al-Juhfah; the miqdt of the Yem enites is Y alam lam ; are a hindrance (in the w ay of doing evil), which give advice and
th at of the Iraqians D at al-irq, and so on. contain instruction, which are enjoyable and impressive. The
[Other uses of the root wqt.] 1 For the assum ption th at the docum ent was a docum ent of indebtedness rather than
a draft or check, cf. below , p. 381, n. 7-
1 Q u r an XXX 32 (31 FI.). * The era introduced b y M alikah betw een 467/1074-75 and 471/1079, cf. H . S u t e r , in
* Cf. also as-S akkaki, M iftdh al-^ulum, 244 (Cairo 1356/1937), and al-iji, above, p. 231. E l s.v. Djaldlt', at-T ah an aw i, KaSSdf istildhdt al-funun, 59 (C alcu tta 1862. Bibliotheca
Cf. a l-B u h ari, Sahih, I, 386 ff. K r e h l ; idem, Ta^rih, II, i , 400; a l-^ a tib al-Bagd^di, Indica); S . H. T a q i z a d e h , in B S O S , X , 108-17 (1940-42), and idem, in E l , 2nd. ed., s.v.
Kifdyah, 73 f. (H yderabad 1357); Y a q u t, Mu^jam, II, 35 f., IV , 1025 f. W u s t e n f e l d ; Djaldlt.
E l , s.v. Ihrdm, etc. Cf. IHdn, 42, below , p. 326.
252 AL-K AFIY AJI'S SHORT WORK ON HISTORIOGRAPHY TRANSLATION 253

condition is th at those happenings are clearly defined and their well-organized treatm ent is provided b y historiography. Its per
time established and that th ey are then carefully set down for a fection and perpetuation is accom phshed only through codification.
sound purpose. Happenings of this kind are the occurrences ex Codification (of history) is, therefore, as necessary as th at of
perienced b y the prophets, any other branch of learning.
It is known th at the laws depend for their existence or non
[Qur^an xii i i i ( i i i FI. ) and xii 3 (3 FI.) quoted from a l-K afiy a ji
existence on the changing interests {masdlih). Jurisprudence is built
in IHdn, 387.9, below, p. 320.]
entirely upon this fundam ental rule. Muhammad referred to it when
and other celestial and terrestrial events, such as the new form ation he said; T f Musa were ahve, he would have no choice but to follow
of a rehgion, the appearance of a dynasty, an earthquake, deluge, m e. 1 In this sense, jurists say: This is a difference according
pestilence, and other im portant and terrifying affairs. Investigations to (the changed) time. It is no difference in the legal situation
in the field of history which do not observe the condition (just) {burhdn). ^
mentioned in connection with the definition of the object of history Um ar said: Give the people an era {ta^rih) which they can use
are undertaken as a completion of and supplement to (the task of in business and which permits them an exact indication of the date
the historian), and for calling to m ind some particular purpose. in all their m utual dealings. The other men around Muhammad
This is done sim ilarly in the other codified branches of learning. approved (of his idea) and agreed to it.^ Now, the question m ay be
The reservation here expressed is made only in the assumption asked: Does all this indicate th at the codification (of history) is
th at the problems (of history) are dealt w ith in their plain meaning. necessary (from the legal point of view) ? The answer is yes. In
If the fundam ental facts of historiography are to be evolved from fact, it is an express proof of its necessity for all who get the idea.
(their meaning), an y reservation is superfluous. The problems of I t m ight be said th at historiography as heretofore described
any branch of learning are more generally realized than the fun does not im part the knowledge of any one particular occurrence in
dam ental facts. This (fact) was expounded in its proper place. the first place, let alone th at of m any. It would, therefore, be like
H istory is a branch learning just like the other codified branches a tree th at bears no fruit. The occupation with it would be a sort
of learning, such as jurisprudence, gram mar, h terary criticism, of trifling, and, as an irrelevant and unim portant m atter, it should
and so on. It is, therefore, needed just hke the other branches of be avoided, according to the requirements of the religious law.
learning. Like (the knowledge of) them, the knowledge of history God said: Do you think th at we created you trifh n g ly ? ^ The
is necessary as a com m unity d u ty ,i because ^ it presents the best answer to all this is th at it just is not correct. In fact, the useful
available m ethod of establishing the chronology of the whole course aspects of history are innumerable. This noble branch of learning,
of human affairs, including the other life. for instance, comprises all individual events in a well-organized
(6a) T h at the ancients were able to dispense w ith a codification of manner (6b). W ith ou t it, people who discuss those events would
history casts no suspicion upon its necessary character. The neces have to do it in a haphazard manner. T h ey would not be able
sary character of the other branches of learning is also not suspect to m ake a distinction between sound and corrupt (information).
(on account of the fact th at th ey were not codified b y the ancients). T h ey would m ove com pletely in the dark and be like the (prover
The ancients lived in a time of truthfulness and trust. T h ey knew bial) gatherers of wood in the night. H istoriography is the yardstick
the m atters and occurrences th at came to their attention. T h ey
were thus able to dispense w ith the codification of jurisprudence, ^ Cf. Ibn *^Abd-al-Barr, Jdmi^ baydn al-Hlm, I I, 42 (Cairo n y.); Ibn ^Arabi, Kiidb al-
Fand^, in Ras. Ibn ^Arabi, 6 (H yderabad 1367); Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, II, 387 Paris.
let alone th at of something else. In th at time, the events were few.
2 Cf. The Technique and Approach of M uslim Scholarship, 68a, n. 4 (Rome 1947, Analecta
T h ey h ave become very numerous in our time. A comprehensive, Orientalia, 24), where I erroneously suggested th at the incorporation of this principle in
the O ttom an M ajallah m ight have been due to W estern influence.
well-organized treatm ent of them was therefore called for. Such
^ Ci. I'^ldn, 81, below , p. 383 f.
^ Qur^an x xiii 115 (117 FI.).
1 (Fard) al-kifayah. Fard al-^ayn has here been translated in d ivid u al d u ty . ^ Ulughani, Zafar al-wdlih bi-M uzaffar wa-dlih, II, 784 R o ss (London 1910-28), also
* O r : in order to . . . ? applies this phrase to the historians.
254 A L -K lF I Y A jts SHORT WORK ON HISTORIOGRAPHY TRANSLATION 255

and standard of events. Measured on it, they take on the right perm itted to do this on condition th at a story of that kind serves
proportions and become acceptable to the thoughtful. A ll codified the purpose of creating a desire (for good actions) and a fear (of
branches of learning, such as, for instance, jurisprudence, (its) evil deeds) (in the reader) and also serves to instruct him. (The
basic principles, grammar, and h terary criticism , follow the same reader) m ust also be warned of the doubtful character of the story.
pattern. None of them is concerned w ith im parting the knowledge The historian is not perm itted to report doubtful statem ents re
of any one particular detail. In the same w ay, it can be observed garding the essence and attributes of the Creator or the laws. The
th at God talks to His servants in generalities. The scholars noted situation is ex a ctly the same w ith regard to the transmission of
th at none of the men around M uhamm ad was m entioned in the w eak traditions, according to the detailed explanation mentioned.
Q ur'an w ith the express indication of his name except Z a y d ,i In his work, the historian needs an auth ority upon which he can
according to the soundest opinion. A statem ent hke this obviously rely. A uth ority, in this sense, m ay be defined as th at which gives the
somehow alludes to things such as have just been mentioned here. historian the justification to transm it w hatever he transmits, and
The principal foundations of gram m ar are the three vow el end makes his m aterial acceptable (to others). W ithout an authority,
ings which serve for the expression of subject, object, and genitive, the historian is legally not justified (to transm it any m aterial nor
and their corresponding forms. It was thus transm itted from the is th at m aterial acceptable to others). The historian obtains such
caliph, A ll, as is well known, and codified in m any works. The authority through various forms of direct and indirect instruction
situation is similar regarding religious philosophy {kaldm). In the b y a qualified scholar. This was explained in detail in its proper place.
Kitdh Abkdr al-afkdr, ar-Razi made it clear th at religious philosophy
has eight p r o b l e m s . 2 The codification of all other branches of learn
SECOND CH APTER
ing follows the same lines.
Now, historiography comprises m any fundam ental facts and
TH E B A S IC P R IN C IP L E S AND PROBLEM S OF H IS T O R IO G R A P H Y
principles. This will be explained in the second chapter.
[The following passage is quoted in IHdn 375-10, below, p. 318] A ll existent things are either prim eval or created. Or th ey are
The same four qualifications which are required for transm itters neither prim eval nor created and then do not interest us here. God
of traditions are also required for the historian. He is required to be and his attributes are prim eval. Religious philosophy investigates
intelligent, accurate, a good Mushm, and fair. (In the possession of the essence and attribu tes of God, and related (problems). It is
these qualifications) both the historian and the transm itter of not the task of the historian to devote himself to such investigations
traditions will be reliable in religious m atters and trustw orthy. according to the m ethod of religious philosophy. Nor is it his task
The w ork of the historian will thus be more desirable. A n to devote himself to research in jurisprudence, (its) basic principles,
increased wariness of (baseless) expansion {mujdzafah) and in and other branches of learning. This has nothing to do w ith his
vention (of stories, or traditions) will be the result. The particular task. H owever, in as far as it is necessary for the delimi
historian w ill thus also be protected from wrong and m isleading tation of m aterial and time, he m ay devote himself to such investi
statements. gations.
The question m ay be asked w hether the historian is perm itted The created things are either celestial or terrestrial. Now, the
to include a doubtful story in his work. The answer is yes.^ He is objective of the historian is twofold. It is either a basic intentional
objective, or a secondary accidental objective. The basic objective
1 Q u r an x x x iii, 37 (37 FI.). here is the accurate, w ell-organized treatm ent of m an (7b).
A r-R a zi ob viously is m eant to be Fahr-ad-din. H ow ever, a w ork of the title m entioned There are three classes and ranks of men, the high class, the
is not attribu ted to him, nor w as I able to find a reference to the eight problem s of kaldm in
his works, as far as th ey were available to me. A correction of a r-R azi to ('A li b. A b i 'A li) middle class, and the low class. The high class is th at of the prophets.
al-A m idi seems indicated. T he above statem ent is found in the beginning of al-A m id is The middle class is th at of saints, independent scholars, and good
fam ous Abkdr al-afkdr.
Cf. al-B ayh aq i, Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq, 16 f. (Teheran 1317). men. The low class comprises all others. The restriction of all classes
256 AL-K AFIYAJI S SHORT WORK ON HISTORIOGRAPHY TRANSLATION 257

(of men) to (these) three becomes obvious upon the sHghtest reflec had a child, I would be the first worshiper. ^ There are other
tion and consideration.! verses of the Q uran as well as traditions to this effect. Am ong
Now, it is a well-estabhshed fact th at the classification of a thing other similar popular statem ents, the following one is well k n ow n :
depends on the prior acquisition of a general concrete notion about If three were an even number, it could be divided into tw o even
i t .2 Now, the general character of each one of these three classes (parts). Statem ents of this kind very frequently occur in conversa
is known. Also each particular (species) of each of these classes is tions and debates.
somehow known. However, the knowledge of each individual (rep The notions acquired b y a historian who intends to w rite about
resentative) of each of these classes is something absolutely im one individual (representative) of any class are five theoretical
possible to attain. In the search for it, countless generations of men possibilities (for each class), or altogether fifteen aspects. T h ey
have suffered great pain and expended great efforts w ith little are the result of a contem plation of the universal and general
noticeable success. God said: Y o u could (otherwise) have reached structure of the three classes. The contem plation of each individual
it only b y exerting yourselves. ^ A similar idea was expressed b y (representative) of each of the three classes w ould yield an in
the poet who said: determ inable number of aspects. The restriction of the notions to
O her house at the mountain slope th at is very near ! five is the result of reasoning in the direction of the greatest prob
Y e t, the visit of which is barred b y danger and fear.^ ability.
Once the m ethod of learning about the fifteen aspects is known
If these things are clear, I say: The historian who w ants to write
w ith regard to the classes of the human species, analogy ought to
about one individual (representative) of any of these classes, such
teach the (corresponding) fifteen aspects of all the other classes,
as, for instance, Adam , will acquire in the process (the knowledge
th at is, all species of animals, plants, and minerals, and all other
of) certain notions {iHihdrdt) and conditions which are thinkable
kinds of terrestrial, celestial, and other phenomena. A s a result,
and theoretically possible. It does not m atter w hether th ey do, or
so m any aspects will be known th at th ey can hardly be counted
do not, occur in actual fact, nor w hether th ey can, or
in their relationship to species, let alone units and individuals.
cannot, occur simultaneously. Som ething like that is, for some
These are the notions to be acquired b y the historian who w ants
purpose or other, perm itted b y the religious law, reason, custom,
habit, and nature. Books are full of th at (sort of thing). It very fre to w rite about something:
quently occurs in discussions and debates. God said: If there had 1 The notion of being present and seeing w ith his own eyes.
been (other) gods except God in the two of them, th ey both would 2 The notion of certain knowledge.
have perished. ^ He further said (8a): Say: If the M erciful One 3 The notion of probability (8b).
4 The notion of contradiction w ithout the possibility of giving
^ Th e translation, depends upon the sy n tactic position of hddd as in dicated in the A rab ic
text, below , p. 557. It does not seem im possible to read, how ever, wa-ta^ammal hddd. preference to one (case) or another.
^ Tasawwur, perception, general concrete notion , cf. H. A . W o l f s o n , The Terms 5 A notion th at differs from the four preceding ones.
Tasawwur and Tasdtq in Arabic Philosophy, in The Moslem World, X X X I I I , 114-28 (1943).
T he terms were also adopted b y the term inology of jurisprudence. K dna yatasawwaru A d I . The first notion is the best one. God mentioned th at
aqwdlahum apprehend, grasp the logical im plications (of their argum ents) occurs in Ibrahim said: B u t I would like to be reassured. ^ Cf., further,
Ibn T agribirdi, N ujum , V I, p. X X X I X P o p p e r (B erkeley-Leiden 1920-23). Tasdtq ju d g
m ent, apperception has later on been translated definite concrete notion . the statem ent: He who lost a sense lost a know ledge ^ (Another
Qur^an x v i 7 {7 FI.).
sta tem en t:) This story is widespread among experienced antiquari-
T h is is a freq u en tly quoted verse b y A b u l- 'A la al-M a^arri, cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, I I I , 138
Cairo = I, 176 M a r g o l i o u t h . Cf. also H a l i l M a r d a m s edition of the Diwdn of Ali b. 1 Q u r an xliii 8 i (8i FI.).
al-Jahm , 142 n. (Dam ascus 1369/1949); Ibn al-Jaw zi, M ud hil, 299 (B agdad 1348); Ibn ^ Q u r an ii 260 (262 FL).
Q ayyim al-J aw ziyah , Badd^i'- al-fawdHd, III , 219 (Cairo, n .y.); W . P o p p e r , History of Cf. A ristotle, A nal, post., 8 ia 38 f., quoted, for instance, b y al-Farabi, Philosophische
Egypt, trans. Ibn Taghrt Birdt, IV , 145; V II , 11, 44 (B erkeley and Los A ngeles 1958, i960). Abhandlungen, ed. F. D i e t e r i c i , 20 (Leiden 1890, D ie Philosophie der Araber im I X . und
M any localities in A ra b ia were supposedly known as a l-H a yf ( m ountain slope ). H ow ever, X . Jahrh. n. Chr., 14); Ibn Sina, Sifd^, Burhdn, 158, 162 B a d a w i (Cairo 1954); H ibatallah
since the poet is not from A rabia, he hard ly has a definite place in mind, unless he is quoting a l-B agd ad i, MuHabar, I, 230 f. (H yderabad 1357); Fahr-ad-din ar-R azi, M uhassal, 13
from some other poet. (Cairo 1323); Ibn H aldun, Lubdb, 7 (Tetuan 1952); G. V a j d a , Recherches sur la philosophie
Q u r an x x i 22 (22 FL). et la Qabbale, 123 (Paris and The H ague 1962).

R o sen th al, History of Muslim Historiography i7


258 A L -K A F IY A jtS SHORT WORK ON HISTORIOGRAPHY TRANSLATION 259

ans, but a story is not like seeing things w ith ones own eyes.^ God m aterial. For this reason, scholarly books deal w ith the different
m entioned th at Musa said: O Lord, let me see so th at I m ay be school opinions and their m utually contradictory arguments. Books
hold you. He said: Y o u shall not see m e. ^ God further said: are full of th at (sort thing). Their readers will confirm this from
Faces then (will be) shining, beholding their L ord . The historian their own observation.
who w ants to w rite about a person representing a case of the first N ote: Through the history of a representative of the fourth
notion m ust spend the greatest care upon his w ork and jo yfu lly seize notion, the historian and others acquire some general concrete
the offered precious opportunity and high distinction. This could not notions, though th ey do not acquire any definite concrete notion.
be different since his task is interesting, useful, and a lesson for General concrete notions somehow constitute a kind of knowledge,
the th oughtful. ^ God said: T h a t should be the object of the and knowledge no doubt is alw ays useful. A cquire knowledge, for
am bitious. He further said: T h ey should be glad about that. man is helped b y his knowledge. God said: A nd say: 0 Lord,
It is better than w hat they have been collecting. For something give me more know ledge. ^ It is known th at efforts tow ard in
like th at one should w ork. dependent scholarship are circum scribed b y the scholars personal
A d 2 . The historian who intends to w rite about a person rep capacity. It is also known th at something which cannot be attained
resenting a case of the second notion m ust likewise do his w ork in its entirety should, therefore, not be entirely given up. The re
very well, because his task is interesting, stim ulating, instructive, m arks of any man, except for special cases (Muhammad), are
and in m any respects helpful. p artly acceptable, and p a rtly not.^ The denial of the possibility
Ad The historian who intends to w rite about a person (rep of having a definite concrete notion of some particular aspect in
resenting a case of the third notion) m ust execute his intention this case does not m ake it obligatory to deny the possibility of
because his task is instructive, and also interesting and useful from having a definite concrete notion in a general w ay and certainly
the religious point of view. does not preclude having a general concrete notion.
Ad The historian m ay w rite about a person representing a Ad The historian should not w rite about a case in which the
case of the fourth notion, while calling attention to the existence fifth notion is involved. He should be silent and not say a word
of different opinions. No sides should be taken wherever there is no of either denial or confirmation. God said: O nly God knows those
certainty as to which side deserves preference. If preference is after them . ^ M uhammad said: Leave the things th at puzzle
expressed for one side, or one side (better) known than the other you for those which do not puzzle y o u . (The observance of silence
(9a), the historian faces the same situation as in the cases of the in these cases) also serves to avoid stabs in the dark, (unfounded)
second and third notions. The question m ay be asked w hether there guesses, and slander. The historian who writes about such a case
is an y use in w riting about (representatives of) the fourth notion should confess th at his subject is not known to him. H e should
if no preference for one side is expressed. The answer is yes. It is adm it his inadequateness and state (9b) th at the knowledge of the
useful in connection w ith the law and the public interest and case rests w ith G o d . . . . The question w hether anything useful can
m ay be instructive. If not now, preference for one side m ay pos be expected from w riting about such a case m ay be answered
sibly be expressed later on. It gives an opportunity to stud y the in the affirm ative. If a stu d y of the case m ay not be possible under
the prevailing circumstances, it m ay often be possible later on. Cf.
^ F or the last part of the sentence, cf. Concordance, I I, 5a; al-M ufaddal, F dhir, 205 S t o r e y
(Leiden 1 9 1 5 ); as-Sahm l, Ta^rth Jurjdn, 33, 461 (H yderab ad 1950); T B , I II , 200, 360, V I , 56, ^ Qiur an x x 114 (113 FI.).
V I I I , 12, 28; al-M aw ardi, Adab al-waztr, 39 (Cairo 1348/1929, Ar-RasdHl an-nddirah, 5); ^ C f./'Zan , 61, below, p. 355 f; a l-K a fiy a ji, below , p. 564; ad-D ahabi, Siyar an-nubaW ,
Ibn H aja r, Durar, IV , 94. I, 18 a l - A f g A n i (below, p. 492, n. 6).
* Qur^an vii 143 (139 FL). Cf. above, p. 256, n. 2.
^ Q u r an Ix x v 22-23 (22-23 FI.). * Q ur an x iv 9 (9-10 F L).
* Q u r an x ii i i i ( m FI.). ' Cf. Concordance, II, 322b. Further, al-Jah iz, B u h a W , 173 and 184 (Cairo 1948); A bu
Q u r an Ixx x iii 26 (26 FI.). N u 'a y m , History o f Isfahan, I, 45 D e d e r i n g (Leiden 1931-34); al-M awardi, al-Ahkdm as-
* Q u r an x 58 (59 FI.). suUdntyah, 417 E n g e r (Bonn 1853); T B , II, 220, 387; ad-D ahabi, Baydn zagal al-Hlm, 15
Qur an xxx vii 61 (59 FI.). (Dam ascus 1347); a l-lji, above, p. 230, n. 4, etc.
26o A L -K A F I Y A jiS SHO RT W ORK ON H IST O R IO G R A PH Y T R A N SLA TIO N 261

the remarks made in connection w ith the explanation of the fourth [On the prophets in general; Q uran xl 78 (78 FI.) and xi 120
notion. (121 FI.); proofs of prophecy; a verse b y Labid^; Jabal Qaf, the
foundation of the earth; verses, quoted in IHdn, 42, below, p. 326;
A ll (the preceding remarks) are concerned w ith the first species, the jinn\ Iblis; the Angel of D eath; the spirit entering A dam ;
th at is, man. A n alogy should enable us to undertake a comprehen A dam s death; interpretation of the tradition; Tim e was already
sive, well-organized, and instructive stud y along general lines of the revolving in its usual m anner", etc., cf. IHdn, 13, below, p. 283; the
second species, that is, everything but man. age of the w o rld ; N u h ; M uham m ad; a verse in praise of M uhammad
which is ascribed to al-A 'sa^ ; the first four caliphs; the great
If all this introductory m atter is clear, we shall begin to establish respect due to the men around M uhammad; A bu H anifah; M alik
the basic principles and fundam ental facts of historiography. W e b. A nas; a s-a fii; Ibn H anbal . . . ]
say: The rule laid down in describing the first notion should be
applied in w riting the history of an y aspect of any (representative T H IR D C H A P T E R

of the) first notion. The rule laid down in presenting the second TH E N O B IL IT Y OF SCH O LARS, TH E EXCELLENCE OF S C H O L A R S H IP ,
notion should be applied in w riting the history of any aspect of A N D T H E IN S T R U C T IV E N E S S O F R E C O R D IN G A N D
any (representative of the) second notion. The rule laid down in P O N D E R I N G (t h e L E S S O N S O F H I S T O R Y )
establishing the third notion should be applied in w riting the
history of any (representative of the) third notion. The history This chapter deals w ith a number of points.
First point: The Q uran, the traditions of the Prophet, the tra
of any aspect of any (representative of the) fourth notion should
be w ritten in analogy to the remarks made in explanation of the ditions of the early Muslims, and reasoning prove the nobility of
fourth notion. The history of any aspect (involving) the fifth notion scholars (and scholarship).
should be w ritten in accordance w ith the specifications given in [Quotation of relevant passages and arguments.]
presenting the fifth notion.
Second point: The "anqd^ (Phoenix) explained.
The preceding remarks have made it clear th at historiography
[When the ^anqd^ expressed to Sulaym an doubt in predestination,
is founded upon five basic principles, each of which includes m any
Sulaym an bade her to keep apart a b oy and a girl who had ju st
particulars. The (historical) particulars in the first place are quite
been bom in different parts of the world and were destined to be
obviously derived from the fundam ental principles in e xa ctly the
same manner in which particulars are derived from the fundam ental united. She did not s u c c e e d ... .]
principles in other branches of learning, such as religious philosophy, Third point: The source of life.
the basic principles (of jurisprudence), and others.
[Dii 1-qarnayns search for the source of life. Al-Hidr, who was
in D u 1-qarnayns com pany, reached it, but D u 1-qarnayn himself
Lengthiness easily gets boring. If this danger did not exist, we
did not. During his travels, it was dem onstrated to D u 1-qarnayn
w ould m ention here m any rem arkable things (loa) for the enjoy
th at man is never s a tis fie d .. . . ]
m ent of the thoughtful. B u t the aforem entioned remarks suffice
for a sound and alert mind, and th ey constitute safe guidance for Fourth p o in t: E veryb o d y will be transferred from the world of the
a straightforw ard and critical nature. body to the divine world of the spirit. The traces (of his a ctiv ity in
the world) will live on, and his m em ory will remain in this world
W e have finished establishing the fundam ental facts and basic through history and tales.
principles. W e shall now begin to exem plify them w ith (the history Cf. h is Dtwdn no. 41, verse 9 H u b e r t - B r o c k e l m a n n (Leiden 1891).
of) the individuals of the three classes, in a very concise, index-like * The verse is ascribed to H assan b. T a b it b y al-Q alqasandi, Subh, II, 288 (Cairo 1331/
1913), b u t it is n ot included in the edition of H asslins Dtwdn. Cf. also a l-lji, Tulifah, fol.
manner. W e shall start with the prophets. 126b; al-M aqqari, Analectes, I, 36 D o zy and others (Leiden 1855-61).
262 a l - k A f i y a j I s s h o r t w o r k o n h is t o r io g r a p h y

N othing endures. B e therefore a tale


T h at w ill be remembered w ith pleasure. The world is a tale.^
[The following passage is quoted in I Han, 37io-38g, below, p.
318 f .........]
CH APTER ELEVEN
F ifth p o in t:
[Praise of E g y p t ^__ ] a s - s a h A w I*s p l a n

. . . The author of the w ork M ay God grant him a long life


I IN T R O D U C T IO N
for the benefit of all the living sa id : The composition of the Short
Work on Historiography was finished in the morning of Tuesday, The following pages contain an English translation of al-IHdn bi-
R a jab 8th, 867/March 29th, 1463, in Cairo May God protect t-tawMh li-man damma ahl at-tawrih, th at is, Th& Open Denunciation^
(city and country) from calamities, earthquakes, damage, and o f the Adverse Critics of the Historians, b y as-Sahawi (831-902/1427-
m isfortune. . . . 97). 2 In the I Han, the author has erected a w orthy monument
to A rabic historiography. A s the title indicates, the w ork was of
1 Cf. at-T u rtu si, Sird-j, 129 (Cairo 1289). an apologetic character. It was w ritten in order to defend the
^ T h is su b ject seems to h ave been v ery dear to a l-K a fiy a jis heart. W ith it he also con
cludes another w ork o f his, al-Uns al-ants f t ma^rifat sa^n an-nafs an-nafis, w hich w as stud y of history as an au xiliary subject in the curriculum of re
com posed in 873/1469, cf. B rit. Mus. ms. ar. 433 (5719 Rich), fols. 47a-48a. ligious studies. H istory, in this sense, preferably referred to the
discussion of certain aspects of the biography of religious scholars.
In fact, the w ork was w ritten entirely from the point of view of
the religious disciplines. H owever, at the same time, it w as w ritten
b y a m an who was possessed b y a passion for collecting details and
who m arked the end of a great era of research on the problems of
the w riting of history. The result was a w ork which constitutes a
comprehensive and often briUiant exposition of Muslim historiog
raphy.
W e m ight hesitate to call the I Han a history of Muslim historiog
raphy. A s an apology, the w ork is v e ry largely concerned w ith the
w ritings and opinions of the authors contemporaries or near-
contemporaries. Much less attention is paid to the beginnings of
Muslim historiography and its early products. A p art from the
attem pted chronological arrangement of the quotations from his
torical works on the usefulness of history, no historical principle
is followed in the arrangement of the m aterial and in the biblio
graphical data, in which ancient and recent authors, works known
to as-Sahawi directly or indirectly, works whose existence is well
established or dubious, are enum erated together. The historical

^ More lite ra lly: Th e publication of the blam ew orthiness . . .


^ Cf. G A L , I I, 34 f., Supplement I I, 31-3. H e w as born Dec. 1427-Jan. 1428. Cf. also, for
instance, A . J. A r b e r r y , Sakhawiana (London 1951); W . P o p p e r , Sakhdwi's Criticism
of Ibn Taghrt B irdi, in Studi Orientalistici G. Levi della Vida, II, 371-89 (Rom e 1956).
264 A S -S A H lw fS I LA N INTRODUCTION 265

perspective is thus not preserved. Y e t, as-Sahawis book remains local histories, the repeated statem ent th at further checking would
a fine survey of Muslim historiography and for those who know be necessary ^ show th at as-Sahawi did not consider his w ork com
how to read it of its aspirations and problems. It is an accurate pletely ready for final publication. E xcep t for details, however, the
picture of its final achievem ents and failures. On the whole, it is a I Han is exa ctly as its author had planned it, and its unrevised state
picture th at is little cheerful. W e m ay be inclined to console our is no sufficient excuse for its lack of order and clarity. The reason
selves w ith the thought that as-Sah&,wis age was one of intellectual for this is to be sought in the m ental m ake-up of the author and the
decadence and th at the historiography of earlier centuries was not scholarly trend prevailing in his period.^
th at exclusively concerned w ith the quarrels of very unim portant As-Sahaw i was deeply convinced of the param ount im portance
personalities. In doing so, we would deceive ourselves. W e must of everything concerned w ith traditions and religious law. A t
not lose sight of the fact that, although there was, in the ninth/ any moment, therefore, he made excursions into those subjects
tenth century, a period of infinite promise and although there which had little or nothing to do w ith the subject of his work.
were occasional im portant exceptions, all the w ays which led to In one place,^ as-Sahawi himself rem arked th at he was straying
as-Sahawi started w ith the very first beginnings of Mushm his from his subject, b ut th at was in connection w ith literary, and not
toriography. religious, m aterial. A n excursus into the religious disciplines would
A s-Sahaw is bibliographical inform ation is quite extensive, but, have never seemed out of place to him. He felt no compunction
of course, nowhere anything hke complete. It often is not firsthand. about enumerating works on com parative religion, although, he says,
In books, such as those b y his teacher, Ibn H ajar, and m an y other th ey have nothing to do w ith the subject of history.^ The insertion
scholars, a great m any titles of historical works were easily available. of extraneous m aterial often disorganizes the text. One of those
There is a great num ber of indirect quotations in the I Han. There excursuses concerns the distribution, at different periods, of re
m ay be more of them than it is at present possible to tell. The ligious scholars upon the various cities of the Muslim world. It was
author is b etter informed about theologico-historical titles than derived from a m onograph b y ad-Dahabi, w ith only a few changes
titles of general history. W herever his indications do not agree b y as-Sahawi, and obviously entered the IHdn as an afterthought
w ith those from other sources, it is m ost likely he th at is wrong of its author in connection w ith the list of local histories. It has so
(though sometimes the fault m ay lie w ith the modern editor of his ve ry little to do w ith historiography even as as-Sahawi understood
w ork). it th at it was om itted from the translation (but the proper names
As-Sahawi, as the author of works of thousands and thousands occurring in it have been listed in the index).
of pages, was not free from the curse of superficiality, which is the A s-Sahaw i possessed a pronounced tendency to prolixity and
unavoidable result of a long and fertile literary tradition. There repetitiousness, and the editorial technique of the age was also
was so much m aterial, so m any books to m ake more books from not favorable to the cure of such bad habits. There were no foot
th at just picking at random some m aterial here, some m aterial notes into which the excursuses m ight have been relegated. There
there, would m ake a large, instructive, and in a sense extrem ely also were no cross references which m ight have elim inated repeti
useful work. H ad authors of his typ e seriously tried to assimilate tions. However, as-Sahawi did at times m ake an honest effort to
one of the subjects w ith which th ey dealt, their literary output
would not have been more than a small part of w hat it actu ally was. 1 I^ldn, 128, below , p. 472 f.
The most disturbing aspect of the I Han is the lack of organization A secondary reason m,ay be the fact th at as-Sahaw i conabined the system atic approach
of a l-K a fiy a ji w ith the philological approach which m ay, for instance, be found in as-Safadis
of its contents, in spite of the system atic character of its general W dft (cf. above, p. 246, n. 2). T h is m ay have caused some disorganization.
plan which was derived from al-Kafiyaji.^ It m ay be said th at I^ldn, 35, below , p. 315.
* IHdn, 107, below , p. 431.
w hat we have before us is not the final form of the work. Certain IHdn, 1364-1448.
gaps which could not have been difficult to fill and, in the list of F or some tim e, I considered rem oving such m aterial from the b o d y of the translation
and p u ttin g it into footnotes. Such a procedure, how ever, m ight easily have increased the
Cf. above, p. 246. existin g confusion and was, therefore, n ot adopted.
266 A S -S A H A W ts I l A n INTRODUCTION 267

avoid repetitions. In comparing his alphabetical list of historians ^ word in each instance is impossible. In this case, this is not as un
w ith al-M asudi, one notices th at those of al-M asudis comments fortunate as it w ould be if we were dealing, for instance, w ith a
on historians and their works which as-Sahawi had quoted on philosophical text. Nevertheless, an attem pt has been made to
previous occasions were as a rule not repeated. render one A rabic expression through one or as few as possible
English expressions.
The translator of an A rabic te x t will alw ays feel th at the partic
A s-Sahaw is numerous quotations from other works constitute
ular te x t w ith which he is dealing at the m oment is of all A rabic
another problem. These quotations originated at very different
texts the one most difficult to translate. In the case of the present
times, and th ey are b y authors who approached the problem of
work, such a feeling would not seem to be entirely unjustified. As-
history from different angles. This is one difficulty. There is another:
Sahawi stands at the end of a very long developm ent and combines
Although as-Sahawi, as a rule, was quite accurate in quoting, the
the cultural and linguistic influences of m any different periods.
w ay in which he lifted quotations out of their context, retained
He often gives quotations and refers to m atters w ith which his
pronouns which had now lost their antecedents, and changed
colleagues and students were fully fam iliar, so th at he could restrict
from direct to indirect quotation and vice versa, is rather confusing.
himself to brief allusions. A correct understanding of the te x t at
Moreover, as-Sahawi often abandoned the habit of A rabic authors
times requires m uch snooping into the p e tty jealousies of the schol
to quote their sources as th ey came. Instead, he rearranged the
ars of the period an uninspiring business. Then, the language of
te x t of his source in the w ay he saw fit, as, for instance, in the quo
the author is extrem ely technical. T he technical terms he uses
tations from al-M asudi, Judge ly a d , and al-Kafiyaji.^ Frequently,
belong to disciplines peculiar to Islam. E ven in cases in which there
therefore, only a comparison w ith the original te x t guarantees
is a concise w ay of rendering one of these technical terms b y an
a correct understanding of the quotation. Such checking of quotation
English expression, this English expression still lacks the aJl-im-
and original was therefore undertaken wherever possible. As-
portant element of being a technical term. In similar situations,
Sahawi occasionally gave some details about historical works.
classical philologists have evinced a growing tendency to retain
H is remarks in these cases, too, often presuppose an acquaintance
their untranslatable words in the original Greek. This procedure,
w ith the works in question.
however, is neither desirable nor, as far as A rabic is concerned,
The most difficult task of all which a translator from the Arabic
practicable, but it cannot be entirely avoided.
m ust face is the accurate rendition of the stylistic quality of a
The word ta^nh is a case in point.^ A s often as possible, and in
given passage. The simplest English prose m ay suggest itself for
doubtful cases, ta^rih is translated h istory . B u t w henever the
the most artificial Arabic. The opposite case is much more frequent.
A rabic had to be translated b y era, date, chronology, or the
E very-d a y A rabic language often sounds picturesque and quaint
like, the A rabic word has been added in brackets. In addition,
in translation. The present translation has certainly not gone far
there are other A rabic words, such as, for instance, ahbdr, which
enough tow ard avoiding such stylistic mistranslations. O nly oc
frequently m ay be best translated h istory. In order to avoid
casional attem pts were made to do justice to the problem. The
a confusion between ta^nh and ahbdr, the latter word is often
custom ary formulas of benediction which according to Muslim reU-
translated historical inform ation , and only in rare cases h istory.
gious usage were applied b y as-Sahawi w ith complete regularity
In both instances, the Arabic term has been added in brackets.
are om itted in the translation. The phrase our teacher has been
Difficulties of this kind abound in the present text. E ven words
replaced b y Ibn H ajar. W hether al-kdtib, al-qddi, al-hdzin, etc.
that look very harmless, such as dtdr, present considerable difficul
are part of a name rather than an indication of the profession of a
ties, on account of the great m any different shades of meaning
person is sometimes difficult to decide. Certain terms, such as
th ey m ay convey. A uniform rendering b y one and the same English
al-qddi, al-Jidfiz, al-muhaddit, etc., are alw ays translated, because it

^ IHan, 153 ff-. cf. below , p. 501, n. 4. 1 IHdn, 36 f., 100, and 145, below, pp. 318-20, 417 f-, and 489 f. Cf. also the quotations
* C f. also the discussion of ta'^rth and habar, above, p. 11 ff. from the five fatwds, IHdn, 53 f., below , pp. 343-47.
268 A S -S A H lw ts I LAN INTRODUCTION 269

seems desirable to leave as little A rabic words in the tex t as pos m anuscript from which the Ms. Cairo T aym u r T a rih 704 was
sible. These translations are often clumsy. Therefore, in the cases copied and which was w ritten in 900/1495. A ccording to a footnote
of the epithets th at occur less frequently, it was thought advisable at the end of the edition of the IHdn, th at m anuscript is preserved
to consider them part of the name and as a rule leave them un in the library of the Turkish House of al-Azhar. N otw ithstanding
translated. It was more disturbing b u t unavoidable to leave the the kind efforts of m y E gyp tian friends, however, it was not possible
titles of books untranslated. for me to gain access to the m anuscript while I was in Cairo.
Phrases such as a w ork which could heal the sick and dispel The Leiden m anuscript of the IHdn (No. 746 of the printed cata
all grief were often translated in accordance w ith their meaning, logue, Ms. or. W arner 677 was w ritten b y a certain AJi b. Ibrahim
in this particular case: a com pletely satisfactory w ork. ^ A al-Yam ani al-Hanafi. The phrases which would indicate th at as-
reader who does not know A rabic m ay wonder about the meaning Sahawi was still alive when the m anuscript was w ritten have been
of a literal translation such as: L et God protect her from th a t, retained in it. However, the m anuscript gives the impression
and I hope th at no Arabist w ill object when this phrase appears of dating from the (early) eleventh/seventeenth century. Its
in the translation as: H eaven forbid, w hat an idea. ^ B ut, of te x t shows no real divergences from the printed text, except
course, literal translations were chosen when the m eaning appeared occasional m istakes and frequent omissions. The few cases in which
to be transparent, or when a suitable paraphrase would have taken the Leiden m anuscript has the b etter reading appear as a rule to
more space than seemed justified. Synonym s are occasionally concern misprints of the edition. M any omissions, including th at of
rendered b y but one Enghsh expression. Clarifying additions will the additional note at the end, are no m echanical mistakes.
not infrequently be found. T hey are inserted in the text in brackets. However, before the entire m anuscript m aterial is available, it is
Y et, all this m ight have been done on a much larger scale than not advisable to discuss the problems raised b y the existence of
is actually the case. these omissions (or additions).
The Arabic te x t was edited in Dam ascus 1349/1930-31. The
edition is very poor. The editor states th at he derived his te xt from 2 T R A N S L A T IO N
two m anuscripts of the collection of A hm ad Taym ur Pasha, now in (5) In the name of God, the Compassionate, the
the E gyp tian L ib rary in Cairo. Their present catalogue numbers Merciful.
are Ms. Cairo Taym u r T a'rih 704 and 2047. The latter m anuscript,
Our teacher, the religious leader and great scholar, the ayh-al-
which was w ritten in 1115/1703, also exists in a photostat cop y
Islam, the standard-bearer of the sunnah of the lord of m ankind
in the E gyp tian Library, Ms. Cairo T a rih 1846. In a note on a
(Muhammad), the final expert ^ in the knowledge and transmission
separate slip, ad p. 92 of the A rabic text, which is not found in all
of traditions, the conqueror of corrupt teachers and innovators,
copies, the editor states that M. R a g ib a t -T a b b a h compared the
A bu 1-H ayr Muhammad ams-ad-din, the son of the Q uran com
edition w ith the A hm adiyah m anuscript in Aleppo and noted
m entator and reader a yh Zayn-ad-din Abd-ar-Rahm an b. Mu
th at that m anuscript had the same lacunae as the Cairo manuscripts.
ham m ad b. A b i B ak r b. U tm an as-Sahawi al-Qahiri as-Safii
The editor indicates no variant readings. Occasional checks of
m ay God m ake us and all Muslims profit from his learning and
the edition w ith the photostat m anuscript of the E gyp tian L ib rary
partake in his blessings. A m en! thus said:
showed complete identity of the printed text w ith th at of the m anu
Praised be God W ho causes days and nights to follow upon each
script. However, certain passages, as, for instance, the additional
other; W ho gives his servants much inform ation about happen-
note at the end of the I Han, are missing in the m anuscript. T h ey
appear to have been contained in the Ms. Cairo Taym iir T a rih 704, 1 Cf. p . V O O R H O E V E , Handlist of Arabic M anuscripts, 127 (Leiden 1957)-
which I did not consult. I did, however, m ake attem pts to see the == A s-Sah aw is understanding of the term hdfiz, which is here translated b y hadit e x p e rt,
is len gth ily explained b y him in the Jawdhir wa-d-durar, his biograph y of Ibn H ajar,
* P la n , 5, below , p. 270.
P a ris ms. ar. 2105, fols. 8b-i3a.
IHdn, 64, below , p. 360.
Ms. Leiden: the sainted.
270 A S -S A H A W is I ' l A n TRANSLATION 271

ings in past ages and bygone tim es; W ho, in all m onths and Then, there will follow a discussion (X) of who first instituted the
years, honors this (Muslim) nation through perfect, uninterrupt (Muslim) era [ta^rih) and when, in the course of m onths and epochs,
ed accuracy (in religious tradition ); W ho teaches intellectual and it began, in w hat m onth and whether w ith the hijrah. Then, I shall
traditional knowledge, such as is more precious than jewels and mention (XI) the works I know in the field of history, on persons,
pearls, to w hom ever H e w ants to teach; W ho, through excellent trends, and m anifold other subjects, w ith all their great variety
explanation and superb instruction th at revives decaying corpses, of purposes. I shall then mention (X II) the authors of historical
m akes persons w ith keen minds recognize the well attested w ay of works. F inally, I shall likewise mention (X III) the chief represen
short lines of transm itters to be followed in learning about man and tatives of personality criticism, although no completeness can
time! be attained in this respect, even if we were to give much more
G ods prayer and blessing upon the noblest creature (Muhammad) space to the investigation of and research on th a t subject. These
to whom there was revealed (the verse of the Q uran): W e shall are ten, or rather more than ten, subjects. Their discussion blocks
tell you all the stories of the messengers (of old) through which we the gate leading to darkness.
shall steady your h eart th at is, the sincere friend of both those I have called this book The Open Denunciation of the Adverse
who keep aloof and those who turn tow ard him ! God p ray for him, Critics of the Historians. I am asking God th at H e m ay protect us
his fam ily, the men around him, the following generation, m asters from the ignorance of the ignorant and th at wherever forgiveness
and clients! is required in the past, present, and future H e m ay help us out with
The occupation w ith history is one of the m ost rewarding tasks of H is kindness and generosity.
(religious) scholars. H istory is indeed one of the necessary branches
of learning. Persons in the right fram e of m ind recognize th a t ( l A L I N G U I S T I C D E F I N I T I O N O F ta ^ r ih )

it falls under all five degrees of classification (of the Muslim religious
Linguistically, ta^rih means inform ation regarding time. One
law, from necessary down to forbidden things). Y et, I have never
s a y s ; arrahtu, or warrahtu al-kitdha, th at i s : I m ade clear the time
seen a com pletely satisfactory w ork on the virtues of history. Con
of w riting of the book (document).
sequently, it has happened th at some w retched people who have
Al-Jaw hari said: Ta^rih is the indication of time. Tawrih means
difficulties w ith obvious, let alone obscure, problems, h ave found
the same. One sdjys: arrahtu, or warrahtu. Tawrih is said to have been
fault w ith history and the historians. I wish, therefore, to present
derived from arh, irh, th at is, < the young one of > a w ild cow, because
to scholarly experts and those desirous to learn (6) all th at is ab
it is something th at is new, like the young (animal) is something
solutely necessary to know about the subject. A t the same time, I
new . ^ Al-Asm a*i m ade a distinction between arraha and warraha.
wish to show its proven instructiveness and to m ake it clear th a t it According to him, the B anu Tam im say: warrahtu l-kitdha tawrihan,
is recognized as a fundam ental branch of learning.
whereas the Q ays say : arrahtuhu ta^rihan.'^
I shall begin b y giving a definition of history (I) both linguisti This would confirm the genuine A rabic origin of the word. Others
cally and (H) as a technical term. I shall then discuss (HI) the
say th at it is not pure Arabic, b ut an A rabicized loan word, from
object of history, (IV) its fruitful instructiveness, and (V) its goal.
Persian mdh roz, mdh in Persian meaning moon, and roz day, with
I shall further discuss (VI) how history should be classified, w hether
night and daytim e constituting a day.
as necessary, or desirable, or permissible. Then, there will be men
In the Kitdh al-Mu'-arrab min al-kaldm al-a'-jami, A bu Mansur
tioned (VII) the unequivocal evidence in its favor from the Q uran, al-Jaw aliqi said: The com m only used tawrih is said to be not pure
the sunnah, and other sources. N ext, (V III) the blameworthiness
1 Israa'il b. H am m ad al-Jaw h ari (d. end of fourth/beginning eleventh century, cf.
of those persons, w anting in piety, who adversely criticize history G A L , I, 128 f.), Sihdlj,, I, 200 (B ulaq 1282). Cf. also M aw hub b. A h m ad al-Jaw aliqi (d.
w ill be discussed. Then, (IX) the necessary qualifications required 539/1144, cf. G A L , I, 280), Mu^arrab, 39 f. S a c h a u (Leipzig 1867), and Lisdn al-'^Arab,
I I I , 481 (B ulaq 1300-8).
of those who occupy themselves w ith history will be enumerated. 'A bd -al-M alik b. Q urayb al-Asm,a'i, d. 215/830-31, or 216, or 217 (cf. G A L , I, 104 f.).
^ Qur^an xi 120 (121 FI.). F o r the d ialectal distinction, cf. ilso as-Suli, Adah al-kuttdb, 180 (Cairo 1341).
272 AS-SAH AW !s I LAN TRANSLATION 273

A rabic but to have been derived b y the Mushms from the ahl (11 A D E F I N I T I O N O F tO ^ Y lk A S A T E C H N I C A L T E R M )
al-kitdb. The ta^nh of the Muslims was reckoned from the year of
the hijrah. It was put down in w riting during the caliphate of A s a technical term, ta^rih is the indication of tim e th at serves
Umar, and thus became ta'^rih (and has remained in use) down to for an accurate estabhshm ent of circum stances affecting transm it
this d a y .' ^ ters of traditions and religious leaders. It indicates the dates of
(7) In the Kitdh al-Hardj, A bu 1-Faraj Qudamah b. J a far al- their birth and death, their soundness of m ind and body, their
K a tib says: "T h e ta^'rih of each thing is its end. The tim e in which travels and pilgrimages, their accuracy and knowledge of traditions,
the degree of reliability and unrehabihty ascribed to them, and sim
memorable events took place is taken as (the epoch of) an era. 2
ilar m atters. A ll of this has reference to research concerning their
Sim ilarly, as-Siili said: The ta^rih of each thing is its goal and
its final time. Someone m ay thus be called the ta^rih of his people. ^ circum stances throughout their entire careers.
Im portant events and occurrences th at happen to take place
This expression signifies either, as stated b y al-Mutarrizi, th at he
are added to this. Such events are the appearance of a religion, the
is the final culm ination of the glory of his people in view of the
fact th at great deeds of generosity or prowess or the like are connect imposition of new (rehgious) duties, events concerning caliphs and
wazirs, raids, battles, and wars, conquests of countries and their
ed with his person. Or it signifies th at he talks about historical
hberation from usurpers, and changes of dynasties. The term
events and related matters. One of those who were called the ta^rih
td'rih is also often extended to include the beginning of creation,
of his people was A bu 1-B arakat Muhammad b. S a d b. S a 'id al-
the stories of the prophets, and the affairs of nations of the past as
Bagdadi a l-AssM al-Hanbali, the Q uran reader, who died in the
year 509/1116. well as the circum stances of the Resurrection and the events pre
ceding it which will take place in the future. It m ay also be extended
to minor m atters such as the construction of mosques, schools,
1 Mu^arrab, loc. cit.
* Q udam ah lived around 900 (cf. G A L , I, 228; Y a q u t, Irsdd, X V I I , 12 f. Cairo = V I , bridges, paved roads, and similar objects of general usefulness,
203-5 M a r g o l i o u t h ). For a discussion, of some of the m an y problem s connected w ith his m atters th at are well-known, observable, or obscure happenings,
biograph y, cf. S. A . B o n e b a k k e r , The Kitdb Naqd al-Si'^r, 1 ff. (Leiden 1956). I could not
find this q uotation either in the published e xtracts of the Kitdb al-Hardj or in the Paris celestial ones, such as the appearance of locusts and eclipses of the
ms. ar. 5907. Cf., how ever, Ta^rih Dim aiq, I, 18 (Dam ascus 1329 ff.), where the quotation sun and moon, or terrestrial ones, such as earthquakes, conflagra
is said to have been derived from Q udam ahs H istory, this m ight be the Zahr ar-rabt^,
m entioned as a w ork b y Qudam ah in al-M as'udi, M uru j (see IHdn, 156, below , p. 506), tions, inundations, floods, droughts, pestilences, epidemics, and
and Y aq tit, Irsdd, X V I I , 13 (Cairo = V I, 204 M a r g o l i o u t h ), b u t n ot in F ihrist, 188 (Cairo
similar great signs and big m arvels.
1348 = 130 F l u g e l ).
B o th al-Jaw h ari and Q udam ah were also quoted b y Ibn ad-D aw adari, K anz ad-durar, In sum, the term ta 'n h signifies a branch of learning th at is con
Phot. Cairo T a M h 2578, I, 81 f. Qudam ah alone w as quoted b y 'A b d allah b. al-Fadl cerned w ith research regarding the occurrences which take place
al-Lahm i, Wdsitat al-dddb, Paris ms. ar. 6493, fol. 14 b.
A s-S ah aw is im m ediate source for m ost of the above inform ation w as p robab ly S ib t in time, in the intention of establishing their character and their
Ibn al-Jaw zi who quotes al-Jawahqi, al-Jaw hari, al-Asma*^!, and Q udam ah (in this order) place in time. In fact, it is concerned w ith everything th at was
in the beginning of the Mir^dh (Ms. Istan bul, T o p kap u saray, A hm et I II , 2907, fol. 3b).
^ M uham m ad b. Y a h y a as-Suli (d. 335/9 4 6-4 7 , or 336, cf. G A L , I, 143), Adab al-kuttdb, (and is) in the world.
178 (Cairo 1341).
^ N asir b. 'A b d -a s-S ayyid , d. 610/1213 (G AL, I, 293 f.), al-Mugrib, I, 13 (H yderabad ( i l l T H E O B J E C T O F H IS T O R Y )
1328), where as-Suli is quoted.
^ Cf. Ibn al-*^Imad, Sadardt, IV , 26 (Cairo 1350-51). 'A li b. 'A b d -a l-'A ziz al-Jurjan i {GAL
The object of history is man and time. The problems w ith which
Suppl. I, 199) w as declared a ta'^rlh in literary excellence b y at-T a'M ibi, Y atim ah , III , history is concerned are the circumstances of man and time broken
243 ff. (Dam ascus 1304), who then proceeded to quote at length from al-J u rjan is w ork
on Tahdtb at-taMh. 'A li b. M uham m ad at-Tan u hi was described as the ta^rth of w itty men,
down to details within the general fram ework of the accidental
cf. as-Sarisi, Sarh al-Maqdmdt al-Harirtyah, I, 68 (Cairo 1306), quoting at-Ta'^Mibis Yatimah. circum stances th at exist for m an and in time.
Y a h y a b. 'A li b. 'A b d -a l-L a tif al-M a'arri was called the ta'^rih of Syria, cf. as-Silafi, Mu^jam,
Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 3942, 468. Sadaqah b. M ansur w as the taM h of the A rabs in n ob ility
(d. 501/1108, cf. Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, I X , 159; Ibn A b i d-dam , Short History, Bodleian ( i v T H E U S E F U L N E S S O F H IS T O R Y )
Ms. or. M arsh 60). Cf. also Ibn al-M u'tazz, Diwdn, I I, 133 (Cairo 1891); T B , IV , 15017. The
expression of a sto ry becom ing a ta^rih among the people appears in Ibn A b i U sayb i'ah , The instructiveness of history consists in the knowledge of
II, 818 M u l l e r . m atters as th ey actually are. Am ong other things, history is most
R o s e n t h a l , H istory of Muslim H istoriography 18
274 a s - s a h A w I s i l A n TRANSLATION 275

useful in th at it constitutes one of the w ays of learning how to of a l-L a y t,i because (Yunus and al-Layt) hved in different coun
elim inate one of tw o m utually contradictory traditions which are tries. H e therefore suspected a break in the chain of transm itters
difficult to reconcile with each other. This m ay be done b y between the two. Al-M izzi, however, said: Perhaps, he m et him on
(recognizing th a t one of the traditions) refers to a later time, such the pilgrim age. Then, he said: Or rather in B a g d M when al-L ayt
as: I saw him a year before his death, (8) or something similar, or came there on a m ission. ^
to a later auth ority among the men around Muhammad. It is strange th at al-H atib mentioned Abd-al-M ahk b. H abib
The transm itter m ay expressly state (the later date of a certain among the transm itters of traditions on the authority of Malik.
tradition), as, for instance, in this statem ent: The later of the two It was th irty years after the death of Malik th a t Abd-al-M alik
things which the Prophet did was the omission (instead of the traveled in quest of knowledge. In fact, he was born after M aliks
performance) of the ablution in connection w ith (food) touched death.
b y fire. ^ A nother instance, among others, is the statem ent of A similar case is Ibn an-N ajjars confusion of M uhammad b.
A isah th at before the conquest of Mecca, M uhammad did not al-Jahm as-Susi and Muhammad b. al-Jahm as-Sami. He mentioned
wash if he had no em ission; later on, he did wash, and comm anded as-Susi as the transm itter of a story which as-Susi (allegedly) had
(the Muslims) to adopt this practice.^ heard from al-Muhtadi bi-llah b. al-W atiq (who said) th at he had
In the case of m aterial transm itted through a scholar who (later been w ith his father while he w as cah p h ----- Ibn H ajar said:
in his life) becam e confused, the distinction of his old traditions This is a gross error. As-Sam i heard th at story about th irty years
(from the tim e before he became confused and which, therefore, after the death of as-Susi, and al-M uhtadis father, al-W atiq, died
are considered reliable) from the recent ones is achieved b y history. about tw enty years after as-Susis death. ^
In the case of transm itters who did not meet the person on whose In Ibn as-Sam anis Ansdb, it is mentioned under al-Qaddahi
authority th ey transm itted traditions, either because th ey were that after the death of Ism ail b. J a 'fa r as-SM iq, A bdallah b.
lying or because th ey jum ped some links in the chain of transm it- M aymun al-Qaddah claimed to be Ism ails son. Ibn as-Sam ani
ters ,3 those facts are brought out b y history, in th at knowledge of was contradicted b y Ibn a]-Atir who remarked th at Ism ail died
the different types of breaks in the chain of transm itters ^ results while his father, J a far as-SM iq, was still ahve. Thus, how could
from it. al-Qaddah have claimed to be Ism ails son while Ism a'ils father
H istory shows, for instance, th at a transm itter was no contem po was still alive ?
rary of the person on whose auth ority he handed down a certain The hadit expert 'Abd-al-Cani stated in the Kam dl that Jabir
tradition; or th at he was his contem porary but did not meet him, b. Nuh al-Hammani died in the year 203/818-ig. Al-M izzi considered
because the tw o men lived in different countries and none of them
visited the country of the other, nor did th ey meet on the pil 1 A l- L a y t b. S a'd , an E gyp tian , d. i 75/7 9 i {TB, X I I I , 3 f.). T B , X I I I , 313 m entions
Y u n u s as one of a l-L a y ts students while the latter w as in B a g d M .
grim age or the hke, in addition to the fact th at the transm itter had 2 Y u s u f b. 'A bd -ar-R ah m an al-M izzi, d. 742/1341 (cf. G A L , II, 64). His Tahdtb al-Kamdl
no (written) permission ^ or the like from his authority. which certa in ly was the source of the quotation was not available for checking.
3 'A b d -al-M alik b. H abib, d. 238/853, o r 239 (cf. G A L , I, 149 f -; M a h m u d M a k k i , in
A certain hadU expert found it difficult th at Yunus b. M uhammad Revista del Instituto Egipcio de Estudios Isldmicos, V , 189 ff., 221 ff. [ i 957], where the date
al-M uaddib should have transm itted traditions on the authority of his birth is given as 174/790). M alik b. Anas, d . 179/795 (cf- G A L , I, 175 f.). A l-H atib al-
B a g d M i, A bu B akr A hm ad b. 'A li, was born in 392/ 1002 and died in 463/1071 (cf. G A L , I,
392). I did not succeed in locating the above statem ent in his works.
^ Cf. A . J. W e n s i n c k , a Handbook o f Early Muhammadan Tradition, 260 (Leiden 1927); Cf. A hm ad b. 'A li b. H ajar (773-852/ i372- i 4 4 9 > cf. G A L , II, 67-70), Lisdn, V , 109 f.
T B , IV , 14; Ibn as-Salah, Muqaddimah, ch. 34, p. 239 in the edition of M. R agib at-T ab b ah The first M uham m ad b. al-Jahm is b etter known as al-B arm aki, the latter one as the brother
(Aleppo 1350/1931). of the poet A li b. al-Jahm . M uham m ad b. M ahm ud b. an-N ajjar (d. 643/1245, cf. G A L ,
^ T h is tradition is n ot m,entioned in the musnad of 'A^isah in Ibn H anbal. Cf. also the I, 360), D ayl T a M h Bagdad, is the probable source of Ibn H ajar.
references in W e n s i n c k , op. cit., 8 6 a ; Ibn H anbal, M usnad, V , 1 1 5 f. (Cairo 1 3 1 3 ) . ^ 'A b d -al-K arim b. M uham m ad (Ibn) as-Sam ^ani (d. 562/1167, cf. G A L , I, j,2gt.), Ansdb,
^ Th e technical term s in this passage cannot be translated, and it is superfluous for the fol. 449a; Ibn al-A tir, the author of the K am il, 'A ll b. M uham m ad (d. 630/1233, cf. G A L , I,
understanding of the co n text to explain them in detail. 345 f.), Luhdb, II, 245 (Cairo 1357-69)-
* Personal con tact w as no longer necessary to obtain an ijdzah. 'A b d -al-G an i b. 'A bd -al-W ah id al-J am m a'ili al-M aqdisi (d. 600/1203, cf. G A L , I, 356),
D. 208/823 {TB, IV , 350 f.). Kam dl, Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 55, fol. 28a-b. C f. also TB , V II, 237 f-, where Jab irs death
276 TRANSLATION 277
A S - S A H A W i s I LA N

against liars nothing is as effective as history. If upon being asked


this a m istake and sa id : In fact, he diedin 183/799-800. (9) Ibn H ajar
a sayh indicates the date of his birth and we know the date of the
contradicted al-Mizzi and said th at it was one of the m ost curious
death of his authority, we know whether he speaks the truth or
errors which al-Mizzi com m itted in his book. In support of A bd-
al-Gani, he quoted a statem ent b y az-Zuhri concerning ^ A hm ad w hether he is a har.
Judge H afs b. C iy a t ^ is said to have stated; If you suspect
b. Hanbal,^ one of the transm itters of traditions on the authority
(the veracity of) an au th oiity, question him about the tw o ages,
of al-Ham m ani, to the effect th at it was only after the year (1)86/802
th at is, his own age and the age of his authorities.
th at A hm ad b. Hanbal traveled in quest of knowledge. Moreover,
Ism ail b. A y y a s ^ dehberately ^ asked a m an: In which year
Judge A hm ad b. B u d ayl ^ and Muhammad b. Tarif al-B ajali ^ are
did you stud y w ith HMid b. M a 'd a n ? W hen he told him, In the
transm itters of traditions on the authority of al-Hamm ani, and
year 113/731-32, Ism a'il said: So, you profess to have studied
both men did not stud y until after the nineties. ^All this makes the
w ith him seven years after his death .
statem ent of the author of the Kam dl appear to be the more likely
one. Suhayl b. D akw an A bu s-Sindi transm itted traditions on the
auth ority of A isah, professing th at he had m et her in W asit.
A number of scholars gave the year 160/776-77 as the date of the
Thus, the he comes out, for the death of A isah took place some
death of M ujam m i' b. Y a 'q u b b. M ujam m i' b. Y a zid b. Jariyah
tim e before a l-H a jja js estabhshment of W asit as a colony.^
al-Ansari. A d-D ahabi was hesitant to accept this date, because
In this connection, (one m ay also quote) the statem ent of Ibn
Q utaybah who did not travel in quest of knowledge until after
al-Munadi ^ th at a l-A mas held the stirrup of A bu B akrah at-Ta-
the seventies was one of the transm itters of traditions on the
qafi, and the following rem ark of Ibn H ajar regarding th at state
auth ority of M ujam m i . However, the fact that Q utaybah trans
m ent; This is an ugly mistake. A l-A mas was born in either
m itted traditions on Mujammi^s auth ority needs verification.
61/680-1 or 59/678, and A b u B akrah died either in 51/671 or 52/672.
Sufyan at-Tawri^ said: W hen the transm itters em ployed lies,
we em ployed history in deaUng w ith them ." H ow could a l-A mas have held the stirrup of someone who died
ten years or so before his b irth ! Ibn H ajar said further; W ith
Hassan b. Zayd^o is said to have stated th at as a protection
considerable hesitation, one m ight suggest th at a l-A mas held the
is placed in 203. 'A b d -a l-G a u is a u th ority for the date of J a b irs death is M utayyaii. Th e stirrup of the son of A b u B akrah. The word son m ay have been
a u th o rity of T B is M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah al-H adram i. The same H ad ram i, stran gely
enough, is al-M izzis a u th o rity for the earlier date, of. Tahdtb al-Kam dl, Ms. Cairo M ust,
H am m ad b. Z ayd , against the te x t of T B available to him . Cf. also as-Su yu ti, Samdrih, 8
al-h adit 25, s.v. Ja b ir b. N uh.
S e y b o l d (Leiden 1894).
1 Sic Ms. Leiden. I do not know which Zuhri could be m eant here. The nam e is probably
1 D. 195/810-11, or 196 (TB , V I I I , 188 ff.). F or the sayin g, cf. also al-H atib al-B agdadi,
n ot correct.
K ifdy a h, 119 f.
2 A h m ad b. M uham m ad b. H anbal, 164-241/780-855 (cf. G A L , I, 181-83). Ibn H an bal
2 D . 182/798-99 (T B , V I, 221 ff.).
could, of course, have studied w ith Jab ir in B agdad at an earher date, as he is also said
3 Th e w ord ihtiydran here replaces the introduction th at goes w ith this sayin g in the
to have been a stu den t of Ibrahim, b. Sa'^d az-Zuhri who died between 183 and 185, cf
other sources. A h m ad T a ym u r, according to the edition of the IHdn 171, th ought th at
V I, 81-86.
ihtiydr was the d ialect w ord for old: . . . asked an old m an . T h is is unlikely. T h e m eaning
D. 258/871-72 (Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, I, 17 f.).
appears to be th at he asked in order to find o u t. (A correction of ihtiydran to ihtibdran
* D. around 240/854-55 (Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, I X , 235 f. ?).
w ould not be necessary.) Cf. also as-Safadi, W aft, I, 45 R i t t e r ; as-Suyuti, Nazm al-Hqydn,
A ll these points of criticism are found together in a m arginal note w ritten b y the scribe
6 H i t t i (New Y o rk 1927). H alid b. M a'a n s death is placed betw een 203/818-19 and 205/
of the Cairo m anuscript of al-M izzi (p. 275, n. 6), who lived in Dam ascus in 741/1341.
820-21.
" He and his grandfather are m entioned b y al-B uhari, T a M h , IV , i, 408-10.
* Ibn H ajar, L isd n , I I I , 124 f., probab ly is the im m ediate source of as-Sahaw i.
Q u tayb ah b. S a 'id , d. 240/855, or 241 (Ibn H aja r, Tahdtb, V I I I , 358-61).
'A isah died in 58/678. W asit w as settled b y a l-H a jjaj b. Y u su f (d. 95/714) betw een 83
M uham m ad b. A hm ad ad-D ahabi (673-748/1274-1348, cf. G A L , II, 46-48). Cf. Ibn
and 86/702-5. S u h a yl is m entioned, w ithout a date, in al-Buhari, T a M h , II, 2, 105.
H ajar, Tahdtb, X , 49.
A p p aren tly, A h m ad b. J a 'fa r, d. 336/947 {TB, IV , 69 f.). H is Kitdb al-Hdfiz is quoted
S u fyan b. Sa'^id at-T aw ri, d. 161/777-78, or 162 (TB , IX , 151 ff.).
b y Ibn al- Adim , Bugyat at-talab. Ph ot. Cairo T a M h 1566, 179 and 428; Ibn Saddad, al-
T h is and the follow ing three sayings are found together in as-Sibli, M ahdsin al-wasd^il.
AHdq al-hatirah, ms. T o p kap u saray, R evan K osk 1564, fol. 96a. H is Afw dj al-qurrd^ is
Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 5 5 5 7, fol. 95b. A ll of them , w ith the exception of th at ascribed to Hassan
q uoted in T B , V , 41, and as-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 351a. H is Kitdb al-M aldhim is quoted in
b. Z ayd, are m entioned b y Ibn as-Salah, Muqaddimah, ch. 60. S u fy a n s fam iliar sayin g
T B , X , 107, and, rather exten sively, it seems, in Ibn al-B arizi (above, p. 88, n. 2), fols.
is also quoted b y al-H atib al-B agdadi, K ifdyah, 119 (H yderabad 1357); Ibn al-Jazari
2ib -3 6a, 44b.
(below, p. 421, n. 2), Muhtasar Ta^rih al-Isldm (by ad-D ahabi), a w ork which the author
Su laym an b. M ihran, d. 147/764-65, or 148/765 (TB , I X , 3 ff.).
finished in R ajab 7g8/April 1396, Ms. A lexan d ria Ta^rih 2o72d, p. 3.
N u fa y ' b . al-H arit (an-Naw aw i, Biographical Dictionary, 677 f. W O s t e n f e l d ).
Cf. T B , V II, 357. Ibn ^Asakir, according to as-Sibli, loc. cit., suggested a correction to
278 a s - s a h Aw 1 s i l A n TRANSLATION 279

om itted from the rest. Ibn H a jar was am azed th at (the anachro H istory often helps to discover falsifications in documents and
nism involved in Ibn al-Munadis statement) should have escaped the Hke. It m ay show th at the judge before whom the deposition
al-Mizzi, in spite of his knowledge and critical attitude.^ (in a case) was made, or the witness, or some other participant
In the introduction of Muslim, it is stated th at al-Mu*alla b. in a case, or the like, died prior to the date (ta^nh) of the document.
Urfan^ said: A b u WaMP told us (10): Ibn Mas'ud^ went out For instance, some Jew presented a document which, he claimed,
against us at Siffin. A bu N u aym th at is, al-Fadl b. D u k ay n was a letter of M uhammad exem pting the (Jewish) inhabitants
who told the story on the auth ority of al-M ualla said: D o you of H aybar from the paym ent of the poll tax. The document was
think th at Ibn M asud was brought to life again after death signed b y witnesses from among the men around Muhammad.
The im plication is th at Ibn M asud died in 32/652-53 or 33/653-54, A m ong the signatures, it is said, was th at of *Ali. In 447/1055-56,
three years before the end of the caliphate of 'U tm an, and the this document was brought before the chief governm ent official,
b attle of Siffin took place in the caliphate of A li two years after the A b u 1-Qasim A li,i the w azir of al-Q aim. *Ali subm itted it to the
end of U tm an s cahphate. Ibn M as'ud, therefore, could not have great auth ority in the rehgious sciences, A b u B ak r al-H atib A l-
gone against them at Siffin. H atib studied it and declared it to be a falsification. A sked upon
Another similar instance of the usefulness of history is found w hat he based his opinion, he said: The conquest of H aybar took
in connection w ith a certain scholars characterization of Ibrahim place in the year 7/628-29, and the document contains the signature
b. Y a 'q u b al-Juzajani as a Jariri, a follower of the juridical school of M uaw iyah who becam e a Muslim only in the year of the Conquest
of M uhamm ad b. Jarir at-T abari. Ibrahim belongs to the class of (of Mecca in the year 8/629-30). It also contains the signature of
Ibn Jarirs teachers. This fact is clear from the dates (ta^rih) of the S a 'd b. M uad, who had died on the D a y of the B anu Qurayzah,
birth and the death of the two men. Ibrahim s nishah is not Jariri, tw o years before the conquest of H aybar. A ll fully approved of
but H arizi, after H ariz b. Utman. this (argumentation) of al-H atib and based the decision in the
H istory is also useful in that it constitutes one of the tw o w ays to m atter upon it. The Jews were not granted the ta x exem ption
find out about errors regarding persons w ith identical nam es in which was stipulated in the document, because it had become clear
cases in which something referring to one of them is (wrongly) th at it was a falsification.^
ascribed to the other. This can be done b y establishing th at the In ar-R M ii ,3 ^ jg stated: Ibn Surayj ^ was asked about the claim
one was born after the death of the other. A case of this kind is that of the Jews of H aybar (11) th at A ll had w ritten them a letter
of A hm ad b. Nasr b. Z iy M al-Ham adani. He died in 317/929-30, exem pting them from the paym ent of (the poll ta x ). He replied th at
and it was suggested that he was identical w ith A hm ad b. Nasr this was not based upon an y Muslim source.
ad-D^wudi who died in 402/1011-12. There are m any such instances. W hen al-H atib had proved his point, the afore-mentioned chief
governm ent official composed a pam phlet statin g th at the docu
m ent was invahd. The religious leaders A b u t-T a yy ib at-Tabari,
Cf. Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, IV , 223 and 225 f.
* Cf. al-Bul>iri, IV , i , 390; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V I, 64. 402 (Ms. ar. Y a le U n iversity L-162 [ N e m o y 1176]); U. R i z z i t a n o , in RSO , X X X I I , 536 f*
* gaqiq b. Salim ah, d. 79/698-99 (al-Buhari, II, 2, 2 4 6 !.: T B , I X , 368 ff.; an- (1957).
N aw aw i, Biographical Dictionary, 318 W u s t e n f e l d ). ^ A ll b. al-H asan, d. 450/105 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, V I I I , 200 f.).
'A b d allah b. M a s 'M (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, V I I , 162 f.). T h e fam ous sto ry of the FJatibs exposure of the H ayb a r frau d is often quoted, cf.
D . 219/834 {TB , X I I , 346 f f .; his b iograph y from the Kam dl of 'A b d -al-G an i al-Jam - the references in F . R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach of M uslim Scholarship, 4 7 b
in E . S a c h a u , Studien zur altesten Geschichtsiiberlieferung der Araber, in Mitteilungen (Rom e 1 9 4 7 , Analecta Orientalia, 24). Cf. also aS-Sibli, loc. cit. (p. 2 7 6 , n. 9).
des Seminars fUr or. Sprachen, Westas. Studien, V I I , 189 ff., 1904; E l , 2nd ed., s.v. A b u T h is m ay be the author of the History o f Qazwtn, 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. M uham m ad,
Nu'aym ,). A b u N u 'a y m w as a prom inent a u th o rity for the historians, of., for instance, al- d. 623/1226 (cf. G A L , I, 393). Th e te x t from here on to the end of the S a fi'i sto ry is om itted
B u h a ris Ta^rth where a num,ber of dates are m entioned on his a uth ority. in Ms. Leiden.
Cf. MusUm b. a l-H a jjaj (d. 261/875, cf. G A L , I, 160 f.), Sahth I, 152 f. (B ulaq 1304. * T h e id e n tity of this person eludes me. 'A li w ould seem to be A li b. A b i T alib , and
M argin of a l-Q a stallin i, IrSdd). not the w azir. S till, Ibn Su rayj could h ard ly be the fam ous A h m ad b. Um ar, d. 306/918
T h e fam ous historian, 224 or 225-310/839-923 (cf. G A L , I, 142 f.). {TB, IV , 287 ff.; G A L Supplement I, 306 f.), or his son Um ar, because it seems dou btfu l
D . 162/778-89, or 163 or 168/784-85 {TB, V I I I , 265 ff.). th a t this paragraph could refer to a d ate previous to the ^ a tib episode.
* A M a iik ite ju rist who lived in Tripoli and Tlem cen, cf. ad-D ahabi, T a M h al-Isldm, anno T^hir b. A b d aliah , 348-450/959 (96o)-io58 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I I I , 198).
28o AS-SAHAW ts I ' l A n TRANSLATION 281

A b u Nasr b. as-S abb ag/ M uhammad b. M uhammad al-Baydawi,^ established through an affidavit that he was just then forty-five
M uhammad b. A li ad-Damagani, and others endorsed it. years old.
In the sixty-fourth session" of the Jalis, a]-Muafa b. Z a k a riy a Badr-ad-din b. al-Q attan ^ deprived Z ayn -al-Abidin b. as-arafi
an-Nahrawani 4 reported through ^ M am ar b. Sabib b. Saybah (Saraf-ad-din) aJ-Munawi ^ of the piofessoiship in the H ariibiyah,
th at the latter had heard al-M amun say: I exam ined as-M ii while the father of Z ayn -al-Abidin was still ahve and after his
in every respect and found him perfect. O nly one q uality remains separation from the judgeship in the days of al-Asraf In^l.^ The
to be investigated: I shall p ly him w ith wine {nabid) enough to person who had endowed the chair had stipulated th at its incum bent
overpower a m an of the highest intelligence. Al-M a'm un, accord should be over fo ity years of age, and Zayn-al-Abidin was not y e t
ingly, invited as-S afii and plied him (with wine). It appeared that forty.
his m ind remained com pletely uninfluenced, and he continued his On the other hand, in the first part of the Notes {fawdHd) of al-
argument. A l-M u afa added that the soundness of the story was Halabi,^ we find the following statem ent transm itted through
doubtful. Ibn H ajar rem arked to this story in the Lisdn: "N ob od y A b u Ism a il at-Tirm idi who said: I heard al-B u w ayti say:
who has the slightest knowledge of history wil] fail to recognize A s - a fii was asked how old he was or in w hat year he w as bom ,
th at the story is not true. As-afi"i cam e to E g y p t at the beginning and he replied: It is unbecom ing for (12) a m an to tell his age.
of the third century. A t that time, al-M am un was in Hurasan. A b u Ism ail is also the source for the statem ent th at he heard Abd-
A s- a fii then died in E g y p t in the year in which al-M amun went a l-A ziz al-U w aysi say: Someone asked M alik: O A bu Abdallah,
from Hurasan to the Iraq, th at is, in the year 204/819-20. how old are y o u ?, and M alik replied: Mind your own business.
A s-S a fii and al-M amun never met while the latter was caliph. These stories are directed against (prying into a persons age)
A nd how could one believe th at as-M ii would have done such which is unnecessary unless there is a serious purpose behind it.
a thing! It was he who said: If it were unbecom ing for me to drink This particularly applies to a person who despite his youth has
cold w ater, I would drink nothing but w arm w ater. already achieved something, because set ^ old people especially
H istory m ay also be helpful to obtain for a deserving man w hat like to pick on (the fact of his) youth.
is due to him. This happened, for instance, to Sayh ams-ad-din b. Y a h y a b. A ktam noticed such an intention on the part of
A m m ar al-Maliki. He was installed as professor of M ahki juris someone who asked him about his age at the tim e he becam e a
prudence in the M usallam iyah College in the Suyuriyin quarter judge. H e was (then) only about tw en ty years old. Therefore, he
in Cairo. However, objections were made to his appointm ent on replied: I am older than A tta b b. Asid^ when M uham m ad ap
the ground th at the person who had endowed the chair had stip pointed him governor of Mecca according to al-Waqidi,^^ A tta b
ulated th at the incum bent should be in his forties. ams-ad-dm w as at th a t tim e (just) over tw en ty years old ; older than M uad

1 M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, 814-879/1412 (Jan. ist)-75 (Daw^, I X , 248-52).


M uham m ad b. Y a h y a b. M uham m ad, 829-873/1426-69 {Daw^, X I , 173 f.). His father
^ 'A b d -a s-S ay y id b. M uham m ad, 400-477/1009 (io io )-io 8 4 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, I X , w as born in 798/1396, and he died in 871/1467 {Daw^, X , 254-57)- Cf. Daw^, I X , 250.
12 f.). ^ R uled 857-865/1453-61 {Daw^, II, 328 f.).
392-468/1001 ( i o o 2 ) - i o 7 6 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, V I I I , 300). * I w as not able to a uth en ticate this statem ent.
* 398-478/1007-85 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M w n team , I X , 22 ff.). * M uham m ad b. Ism a 'il, d. 280/893 (TB , II, 42 ff.).
D . 390/1000 (cf. G A L , I, 184; A . D i e t r i c h , in Z D M G , C V , 271-86 [1955]). Ms. or. * Y u su f b . Y a h y a , d. 231/845-46, or 232 (T B , X I V , 299 ff.).
Princeton 1369 = 705 H includes the beginning of the sixty-fou rth session b u t does not have 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A b d allah , d. about 220/835 (cf. L. C a e t a n i , Onomasticon Arahicum
the sto ry cited above. 161, Rom e 1915).
Th e w ord th rou gh w as chosen as the translation of min tartq through the specific * I t w as excep tional th at a scholar such as ad-D ahabi had a sense of hum or, and was
chain of transm itters w hich leads through . . . . free from the set sta te of m ind and dull stubbornness of hadtt scholars and transm itters,
M uham m ad b. Idris, 150-204/767-820 (cf. G A L , I, 178-80). cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, III , 337.
T h e whole paragraph is derived from Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V I, 67. * D . at the end of 242/847 or in the beginning of 243 {TB, X I V , 191 ff.). T B , X I V , 198 f.,
8 M uham m ad b. 'A m m ar, 768 -844/1367-1441 (D aw \ V I I I , 232-34). In the D aw \ Ibn has tw o versions of the above story. Cf. also al-G azzali, Ihyd^, I, 128 (Cairo 1334); a l-'A m ili,
H aja r is quoted as referring to the a ffid avit which placed the birth of Ibn 'A m m a r in KaSkM , I, 388 f. (Cairo 1380/1961), quoting T B .
758/1357) b u t a p p a ren tly as-Sahaw i gave no credence to it. D. 13/634 (an-Naw aw i, Biographical Dictionary, 405 W u s t e n f e l d ).
Cf. al-M aqrizi, H itat, II, 401 (B ulaq 1270). M uham m ad b. 'U m ar 130-207/747-823 (cf. G A L , I, 135 f.).
282 a s - s a h Aw 1 s i l An TRANSLATION 283

b. Jabal ^ when M uhammad sent him as a judge to the Yem en, and tw o mosques. Or: The first child to be born in Islam ic times,
older than K a b b. Sur ^ when Um ar sent him as a judge to al- th at is, in Medina, w as A bdallah b. az-Zu bayr. ^ Or: The last
B asrah. Som ething similar happened to our teacher, Kam^l-ad-din (thing) th at happened was such-and-such, as was mentioned
b. Humam-ad-din. W hen al-Asraf B a r s b iy appointed him head of above.2 Further statem ents of historical significance are the rem ark
his College, people m ade critical rem arks to al-Asraf about K am al- concerning M onday: A n d th at is (13) the d ay on which I was
ad-din because of his youth. Therefore, when al-Asraf received bom , e t c __ Or W e used to do such-and-such a thing when
K am al-ad-din in order to invest him, he asked him about hi? age. w e went to A b yssin ia. Or: Such-and-such a thing was forbidden
K am al-ad-din replied: I am older than A tta b , and so-and-so, on the D a y of H ayb ar. There are similar remarks, such as, for
or something like this. He did not expressly tell him his age, but instance, the phrase: Before there was revealed to him . Because
anyhow, both Y a h y a b. A ktam and K am al-ad-din thus indicated of the frequency of this (type of historical information), a number
the date of their birth. of ancient scholars, and also some more recent ones, wrote special
In fact, when a l-A bbas ^ was asked who was older/greater, he works on the first things. A b u Z a k a riya b. Mandah ^ wrote on
or Muhammad, he rep lied: I am more advanced in years than he, the Last of the men around Muhammad to die. Some recent scholars
but he is older/greater than I ." Our teacher, Zayn-ad-din R i d w a n , w rote on the last things exclusively.^ Because of the frequency
made a similar reply, when he was asked who was older, he or the of such remarks in the tex t of traditions, al-Bulqini wrote a
Sayh-al-Islam Ibn H ajar. special monograph on them.
H istory also affords proof of the accuracy of a transm itter H istory m ay concern either the chain of transm itters or the text
when he says regarding the m aterial transm itted b y him : A n d of the traditions. < Instances for the helpfulness of history with
this is the first thing I learned from him .' Or: So-and-so was the regard to the chain of transm itters have been mentioned. There
last person to transm it traditions on the auth ority of so-and-so. are also cases in which history affects > both the chains of trans
Or: I saw him on Thursday doing such-and-such a th ing. Or: m itters and the te x t of the traditions, as happens in the various
I studied w ith him before he introduced his innovations. Or: cases of m anipulation of the connection between tex t and chain
...b e fo r e he becam e confused. There is much of this sort in of transmitters.'^ Or the tex t of the traditions (alone) m ay be
the te x t of the traditions. For instance: The first beginning of affected b y historical references such as: Tim e w as already revolv
M uhammad(s prophecy) was the true dream. Or: The first ing in its usual m anner on the d a y on which God created heaven
{surah) to be revealed of the Q uran was such-and-such. Or: and earth, the year consisting of tw elve m onths. "W hoever
The first mosque to be constructed, (Muhammad) replied, was the fasts during the m onth of Ram adan and continues his fast for six
M asjid al-haram (in Mecca) and the M asjid al-aqsa (in Jerusalem ), days in the m onth of SawwM . The best fast after th at of the
and he indicated the tim e interval between the construction of the
1 Cf., e.g., as-ibli, op. cit., fol. 105 b ; I^ldn, 80, below , p. 382.
Cf. IHdn, 8, above, p. 274.
^ D. 18/639 (an-N aw aw i, op. cit., 559-61). Y a h y a b. 'A b d -al-W ah h ab , a grandson of A b u 'A b d a lla h b. M andah, d. 512/1119
D. 36/656 (Ibn SaM , Tabaqdt, V II, i , 65 f. S a c h a u and others). (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, I X , 204), or 511/1118 (Ibn R a jab , D a y l tabaqdt al-Handbilah, I,
Muham,nxad b. 'A b d -al-W ah id , about 790-861/1388-1457 (Daw^, V I I I , 127-32). He 154-66 a d - D a h h a n and L a o u s t [Dam ascus 1370/1951); Ibn H allikan , IV , 57 trans. D e
w as appointed in B a rsb a y s College in 829/1426 (Daw^, V I I I , 130). S l a n e ). T h e date 484 for his birth , w hich we find in the M untazam, is, of course, a m istake,
* A l-'A b b a s b. 'A b d -al-M u ttalib , the P ro p h ets uncle, d. 32/652-53, or 34 (an-N aw aw i, since Y a h y a s father 'A b d -al-W ah h ab died in 475/^082 {Muntazam, I X , 5)- Y a h y a was born
op. cit., 330-32). Cf. A b ii Z u r'ah ad-Dim,aqi, H istory, Istan b u l ms. F atih 4210, fol. io 8 b ; in 434/1043-
al-Hakim, an-N isaburi, Mustadrak, III, 320 (H yderabad 1334-42/1915-23); P. A . G r y a z n e - * Cf., for instance, Ibn al-L u bu d i {Daw^, I, 293).
v iC H , Arabskiy Anonim X I veka, fol. 238a (Moscow i960); Usam ah b. M unqid, al-Badt^ f t T h is m ay be <^Abd-ar-Rahman b. '^Umar, d. 824/1421 (cf. G A L , I I, 112), b u t neither
naqd aS-Si'-r, 285 (Cairo 1380/1960). The p la y on the double m eaning of akbar m eaning both for him nor for the other tw o prom inent m em bers of his fam ily does the Daw^ list a w ork
older and greater is, of course, lost on us. of the kind described.
R idw an b. M uham m ad, 769-852/1368-1448 {Daw\ I I I , 226-29; G A L , II, 77). Th e suggested reconstruction of the te x t is not certain.
Cf., e.g., Ibn HiSam, Strah, 151 W t) s x E N F E L D ; al-Buhari, Sahth, I, 4 f. K r e h l ; a- For the terms mudtarib and maqlub, cf., for instance, Ibn as-Salah, Muqaddimah,
Sibli, M ahdsin al-wasdHl, Phot. Cairo T a ^ h 5 5 5 7 , fol. 42a. chs. 19 and 22.
Cf., e.g., Y a q u t, Mu^jam, IV , 592 W O s t e n f e l d ; Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, I I, 298, where * Cf. Concordance, I I, 158a.
reference is m ade to the tw o Safiihs. Cf. Concordance, I, 261b.
284 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN
TRANSLATION 285

m onth of R am adan is (in) the m onth of al-Muharram, the fast of


the reasons for the form ation of dynasties, their success as well as
ta su a" and a su ra \ and the opinion of Ibn A bbas ^ th at ta s u 'a
the reason for their dissolution, about the adm inistration of affairs b y
was the tenth (of al-Muharram). A m onth consists of th irty and
m ilitary men and wazirs, and about related circum stances which in a
tw enty-nine (days). ^ ,,F asting is com m anded on the white
similar fashion recur continually in the world.^ He who knows
d a y s , and forbidden on the Id festival, and on Saturday, except
this aspect of history is like a m an who has lived through all ages,
in connection w ith a d a y before or after it . ^ There is an unlim ited
has experienced everything, and has personally tried out all those
number of similar statements. F or instance: The pilgrim age is
circumstances. His m ind grows. He becomes experienced and free
(fulfilled only if it includes the sojourn at) A ra fa h . ^ God
from all ignorance and inexperience. This idea has been expressed
created the earth on Saturday, the m ountains on Sunday, the trees
in a verse which will be m entioned below. ^
on M onday, darkness on Tuesday, ligh t on W ednesday, the beasts
A certain auth ority v e ry ap tly rem arked: There are tw o in
of burden on Thursday, and A dam on F rid a y . M uham m ad's
tellects, the one (given) b y nature, and the other (acquired) b y
statem ent near the end of his life: In a hundred years, nobody
studying. The latter is of no use where the former is lacking. ^
w ill be left of those who w alk on earth to d a y .
H istorical reports about fine, generous, faithful, virtuous, brave,
A ll this shows the need for a knowledge of history or constitutes
or chivalrous men are also h igh ly instructive and very useful. The
one of its useful aspects. Thus, as will presently be mentioned,
enjoym ent w hich high-m inded and gifted persons fee] when th ey
it has been stated on the authority of Ibn A bbas th at God men
stu d y those stories molds their natures. T h ey become inclined to
tioned history in the Q u ran in the verse: T h ey will ask you about
follow and im itate the heroes of those stories, because th ey wish to
the new moons. Tell them : T h ey are fixed dates for men and the
partake in th at fame and glory to which the elite of m ankind
pilgrim age. On the authority of Qatadah, this verse was ex
aspires. God thus stated w ith regard to the most pious Ibrahim,
plained as follows: God made the new moons fixed dates for the
His friend, th at he said: A nd prepare for me truthful speech
fasts, the breaking of the fasts, and the pilgrim ages of the Muslims,
among p osterity. ^ God further said graciously regarding several
as well as for the Hddah periods of their wives.
of His prophets: W e preserved something about them among
A great gift of obvious usefulness is the inform ation which history
p osterity. ^ A nd regarding His choicest creature (Muhammad),
m ay give about the prophets and their habits {sunnah), together
He said: W e exalted your m em ory for yo u . Behold, it is
w ith the inform ation about scholars and their schools, sages and
a m em ory for you and your people.
their sayings, ascetic and devout men and their sermons. This
The extraordinary desire of noble-minded men for histor(ical
serves to prepare man better for the life after death and for his
fame) finds expression in the following rem ark of the author of
religion. It helps him to improve his religious convictions and his
the Risdlat as-Sukut and other works, A b u A li al-Hasan b. Ahm ad
approach to religious m atters as well as his approach to the practical
b. A bdallah b. al-B ann a al-Qurasi al-H anbali: I wish that al-
problems of this world (14).
H atib al-Bagdadi had mentioned me in his History, even if it
G reat usefulness and much instructiveness are also to be found
had been as an untruthful [hadit scholar).
in the historical inform ation about kings and their politics, about

* 'A b d allah b. A b b as, the P roph ets cousin, d. 68/787-88, or 69, or 70. 1 Cf. al-B ayh aq i, Ta^rih-i-Bayhaq, 8 (Teheran 13 17): There is no even t w hich did not
^ Cf. Concordance, I, 272b, 298b. occur sim ilarly before.
Cf. Concordance, I, 243b, and II, 390a. ^ The reference is to the verse b y a l-B a ^uni (IHdn, 15 and 95, below , pp. 286 and 409).
Cf. Concordance, I, 420b. Cf. also al-B uhar!, Ta^rth, I, 2, i i i , e tc.; Ibn S a 'd , Tabaqdt, ^ T h is extrem ely com m on statem ent is often a ttrib u ted to 'A li b. A b i Talib. It is quoted
V I I , 2, 104 S a c h a u and others. again I'^ldn, 24, below , p. 299. A s-Sah aw i here seems to think of an ^Alid as its author.
^ Cf. Concordance, I I , 390. Cf. also a l-K a fiy a ji, below , p . 563. In the nam e of 'A li, the statem ent is quoted, for instance, b y al-(^azzali, Ihyd^, I, 76;
Cf. Concordance, I, 207a. Cf. also, e.g., al-B uhari, Sahih, I, 150 f. K r e h l . I I I , 14 (Cairo 1346).
Q u r an ii 189 (185 FI.). Cf. S ib t Ibn al-Jaw zi, Ms. T o pkapu saray, A h m et I I I , 2907, * Qur^an x x v i 84 (84 FL).
fols. 3b-4a. ^ Qur^an x x x v ii 78, 108, 119, and 129 (76, 108, 119, and 129 FL).
Q a tM a h b. D i'am ah , d. 117/735 (Y a q u t, IrSdd, X V I I , 9 f. Cairo = V I, 202 M a r g o - Q u r an xciv 4 (4 FI.).
l io u t h ). Q u r an xliii 44 (43 FI.).
Cf. al-Q ifti, Inbdh ar-ruwdh. I, 276 (Cairo 1369/1950 ), quoted in a footnote b y the
286 A S -SA h 1 w I s I LAN TRANSLATION 287

A person who thought th at I would restrict m yself to biographies the moon a Ught, and who made fixed stations for the moon, so
of deceased persons sim ilarly sa id : W ould th at I died in the lifetim e th at you m ight know the number of years and (time-)reckoning.
of as-Sahawi, so th a t he would w rite m y biography. God created this for a good reason, establishing distinct signs for
A ll this indubitable usefulness and laten t advantage of history people who are understanding. Indeed, the change of night and
which we have mentioned expressly and im plicitly has come to d a y and the things which God created in heaven and upon earth
the attention of m an y well-known religious leaders, and the reali are signs for people who fear G od. ^ God did all th at out of kindness
zation of it determ ined them to propagate (the knowledge of) to His creatures, and as a favor and boun ty granted t h e m. . ^
history among men. If there are ignorant persons who dislike history, and so on, in a t-T ab aris original and instructive manner.
th ey m ight thus be checked, and (on the other hand) all h igh ly Indeed, there is a tradition on the authority of Ibn Abbas,
qualified men m ight get the benefit of historical knowledge. Our saying th a t God m entioned history in the Q uran. M uad b. Jabal
greatest rehgious leader (15) and chief authority, as-afii, made the asked M uhamm ad w h y the moon appeared thin like a line, then
following statem ent, as reported b y the religious leader am s-ad-din w axed and grow ing bigger and bigger becam e a semicircle and
M uhammad b. ihab-ad-din a l-B a uni, who endorsed the statem ent a circle, then waned and becoming thinner and thinner finally
as authentic: returned to its first condition. In reply, there was revealed
(the verse of the Q ura n ): T h ey will ask you about the new moons
The knowledge of history increases m ans
{ahillah, plural of hildl new m oon). Tell them : T h ey are fixed dates
intellectual capacity.^
for m en. This means (that th ey are to indicate the dates of) their
It w ill be quoted again later. religious (observances), their fasts and the breaking of them , the
The verse of the Q uran: W e made night and day two signs. duration of the Hddah period and pregnancy of their wives, the
W e darkened the sign of the night, and we made the sign of the paym ent of their debts, and the paym ent of the wages of their
d a y luminous, so th at you m ight desire excellence from your Lord hired men, and similar conditions, until a well-known term, m ature
and know the number of years and (time-)reckoning. W e have wisdom, and patent bounties are reached.^
everything divided system atically, ^ was comm ented upon b y the According to Q atM ah , the expression new moons must be
religious leader A b u J a 'fa r b. Jarir at-Tabari, along the following interpreted in the sense th at God appointed them as fixed dates
general lines: Men should acquire through history a knowledge for the fasts, the breaking of the fasts, the pilgrimages, and the
of the various time (-units), such as the hours of night and day, the devotional exercises of the Muslims as well as the Hddah periods
months and years, at which their religious obligations, such as of their wives, and so on. God knows better w hat is best for His
prayers, ch arity taxes, the pilgrimage, fasts, and other obligations creatures.
m ust be discharged and at which their debts m ust be paid and col In fact, there is the clear statem ent of the tw o Sahihs on the
lected. God thus said: T h ey will ask you about the new moons. au th ority of Ibn Umar. He said: W hen the new moon was
Tell them : th ey are fixed dates for men and the pilgrim age, ^ mentioned in the presence (i6) of Muhammad, he said: Do not
and again: It is He who made the sun a lum inary, and fast until you see it, and do not break the fast until you see it. If you

editors of Y a q u t, Irsdd, V II , 265 f. (Cairo); Yaqiat, IrSdd, V II , 268 (Cairo = III , 25 M a r -


g o l i o u t h ). A l-Q iftis source appears to h ave been as-S a in 'an is Supplement to the History
o f Bagdad. ^ Q u r an x 5 f, (5 f. FI.).
For Ibu a l-B an u a (369-47i/ioo5(6)-io78), cf. above, pp. 83 and 174. Cf. at-Tabari, Ta^rih, I, 3 f. D e G o e j e and others.
^ M uham m ad b. A h m ad a l-B a 'u n i (d. 871/1465, cf. G A L , I I , 4 1 ; Daw^, V II , 114), Tuhfat Q u r an ii 189 (185 FI.).
az-zurafd^, Paris ms. ar. 1615, fols. 2b-sa, and Paris ms. ar. 3412, fol. 75b. Three more verses * T he tradition of Ibn 'A b b a s is quoted in a shortened form b y Ibn ad-D aw ad an , K a n z
from al-Ba'^uni are quoted I'^ldn, 95, below, p. 409. T he verse also appears in Ibn a d -D ayb aS ad-durar, Phot. Cairo T a rih 2578, I, 81 f. A lread y H alifah b. H a y y a t, at the beginning
Bugyat al-mustafid, Ms. Cairo T a rih iim , fol. la , and al-G um ri, Dahtrah, Ms. Cairo T a M h of his Ta^rih, explained the significance of ta^rih in a sim ilar m anner.
104, fol. 2a. Cf. P la n , 13, above, p. 284.
2 Q u r an x v ii 12 (13 FI.). * 'A b d allah b. 'U m ar b. al-H a ttab , d. 73/692-93, or 74 (Ibn S a 'd , Tabaqdt, IV , i , 105-38
^ Q u r an ii 189 (185 FI.). S achau and others).
288 AS-SAH AW ts I LAN TRANSLATION 289

cannot see it, count the m onth of a ban com plete w ith thirty- reahzed th at it was the result of divine revelation. T h ey therefore
days, and thereafter begin the fast. ^ believed in M uhammad and trusted him. It was one of the miracles
In the introduction of his History, al-Janadi reported the fol which confirm ed his prophetical vocation. Before it, he was
lowing tradition which was transm itted b y a thorough scholar: ignored and rejected out of en v y and spitefulness.^
God revealed in the Torah a special book containing (information (2 These stories) serve as an incentive (for the reader) to im itate
about) the conditions of past peoples and the respective length of their heroes in all those things for which th ey found G ods praise,
their lifetim e. ^ and, on the other hand, th ey serve as a warning against the actions
In fact, God, in the Q uran, told m any stories w hich contain which God censured.
a good deal of inform ation {ahbdr) about the peoples of the past, (3 These stories) serve to confirm M uham m ad(s position) and
such as the people of Niih and Hud, M adyan, and Tam ud. There to m ake known his glory and th at of his people. He and his people
further are stories about Musa, Harun, Fir'aw n , and Qarun, were spared m any afflictions which those before them had suffered.
about the Sevensleepers, and about Nam rud and Ibrahim . God (God) gave them less severe religious laws and singled them out
said, and w hat H e says is the truth: W e shall tell you all the sto for acts of divine grace which th ey alone experienced. The verse
ries of the messengers (of old) through which we shall steady your of the Q uran: A nd he liberally bestowed upon them open and
heart. Y o u will find in them the truth, and an exhortation, and concealed favors, ^ has been interpreted in the sense (17) th at
something to be remembered for the believers. An interpretation open favors refers to the imposing of less severe religious laws
which finds a reference to history in the verse: A nd He gave him and concealed favors refers to the doubled (reward) for good deeds.
added excellence of knowledge and b o d y, ^ is ascribed to a certain (4 These stories) serve to im prove and educate M uhamm ads
Q ur an comm entator. This is debatable. people. This was indicated in the following verse of the Q uran:
A ll this is sufficient proof of the great excellence of history and Signs for those who ask.^ A n d a lesson for the understanding. ^
the eminent position and qualification of the historian. A nd an exhortation for those who fear G od. In this sense,
A b u Ishaq A hm ad b. M uhammad b. Ibrahim at-Ta*^labi said as-Sibli used to say regarding these verses: The common people
th at G ods wisdom in telling Muhammad the stories of the prophets occupy them selves w ith listening to stories, the elite, on the other
of the past and of bygone peoples had several aspects: hand, w ith learning from them .
( i These stories) are a clear indication and proof of Muham (5 These stories) serve to keep alive the m em ory and the deeds
m ad's prophetical vocation. Muhammad was illiterate. He had no of their heroes. This constitutes a stimulus for the righteous to
tutor or teacher. He never left his coun try long enough to go to a increase their activities, since th ey m ay hope for a speedy reward
scholar from whom he m ight have learned these stories. M uham and the perpetuation of their m em ory and good deeds. Such was
m ads acquaintance w ith these stories became known. Those among the desire of the Friend of G od, Ibrahim, when he said: A nd
his com patriots who were intelligent thought about it, and they prepare for me truthful speech among p osterity.
People are ( = liv e on as) tales. It was thus said: No one is dead
1 Cf. Concordance, II, 202a; T B , V II, 210. T he reference apparently is to Muslim, Sahth,
V , 50 ff. (B ulaq 1304. Margin of al-Q astallani, Irsdd). whom m emory keeps a live, and: The kings and the rich spent
Th e preceding three paragraphs appear in the same sequence in S ib t Ibn al-Jaw zi (Ms. m oney on buildings, fortresses, and castles only for the perpetuation
T o pkapu saray, A h m et III, 2907, fol. 4a), p robably the im m ediate source of as-Sahaw i, cf.
above, p. 272, n. 2. of their m em ory.
^ M uham m ad b. Y a 'q u b b. Y u su f al-Jan adi (d. 732/1332, cf. G A L , II, 184), Suluk,
Ph ot. Cairo Ta^rih 996, p. 3. Cf. V ldn , 134 , b elow , p. 4 84; iHdn, 29, below , p. 306, where
the nam e of the author is M uham m ad b. Y u su f b. Ya'^qub. Th e Cairo ph otostat and H a jji ^ For the gram m ar of the passage, cf. the te x t of at-T a 'la b i.
H alifah, K a^f az-zunun. III , 6 13 F l u g e l , have Y u su f b. Y a 'q u b (w ithout M uham m ad b.). ^ Q u r an x x x i 20 (19 FI.).
Cf., further, Diya^-ad-din b. al-A tir, al-W asy al-marqum, 66 (Beirut 1298). Q u r an xii 7 (7 FL).
^ Qur^an x i 120 (121 FL). * Q u r an xii i i i ( i n FL).
Q u r an ii 247 (248 F L). ^ Q u r an ii 62 (66 FL), iii 138 (132), v 46 (50), and x x iv 34 (34).
The follow ing passage, down to the verse on p. 290, is an abb reviated version of the F v id e n tly , the fam ous Siifi, A b u B akr, d. 334, or beg. 335/946 (cf. G A L , I, 199 f.).
introduction of the Qisas al-anbiya^ b y a t-T a 'la b i (d. 427/1035, cf. G A L , I, 350). Q ur an x x v i 84 (84 FL).

R o senth al , History of Muslim Historiography 19


290 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 291

A tale is all a person leaves behind. to follow the aim (i8) aspired to and followed after b y scholars
Strive th at your tale be known as good and kind. ^ and sages, and the wish to leave in the world a praiseworthy^ memory
and ready, well-arranged know ledge. ^
I say: L ook at the traditions, and you will find in them m any In the introduction of the Agdni, A bu 1-Faraj A ll b. al-H usayn
instances th a t illustrate the afore-m entioned (remarks of at-Ta'^labi). b. Muhammad al-Isbahani al-K M ib said: The reader who studies
For instance: M ay God show m ercy unto Musa, he suffered greater the ideas and the like contained in this w ork will constant
dam age than that.^ Consolation and the like: O God, let those ly progress from one instructive passage to the other. He will find
be for them years like the years of Y u su f. ^ "O God, Ibrahim , a m ixture of the serious and the humorous, reports on notew orthy
your servant and friend, prayed to you for Mecca, and I shall things {dtdr) and events {ahbdr), biographies {siyar), poems on the
p ray to you for M edina. Im itation and consolation: If there famous battle days of the A rabs and the memorable events con
were not the prayer of m y brother, Sulaym an. ^ Castigation, which nected w ith them, and stories of the pre-Islam ic kings and the
does not leave out men of high positions; in fact, he said: God caliphs of Islam. The knowledge of these things is esteemed b y
will show m ercy unto Musa, if he were p atien t, and told us the all educated persons. It must be acquired b y young people, though
story of the tw o. A isah also found consolation in these stories. their elders are not beyond learning a certain amount of it. The
She said: The only example I can find for m yself and for you is m aterial presented constitutes a selection of the very best historical
the father of Y usu f who in the Q ur'an is stated to have said: inform ation and has been gathered from experts. ^
Therefore, patience is good, and God must be invoked for help A rem arkable story is th at of a certain member of the tribe of
against (the calam ity) which you describe. Juhaynah, one of the boon-companions of al-Muhallabi.^ H e used
A b u 1-H asan "Ali b. al-H usayn b. A li al-M as'udi as-M ii said: to talk m uch nonsense. Once conversation was about the mint plant.
H istory is a branch of knowledge enjoyed b y both scholars and The Juhani said th at in such-and-such a country there existed a
ignorant persons and relished b y both the stupid and the intelli m int plant which grows to be a tree, and ladders are made from
gent. E veryth in g remarkable becomes known through history. its wood. A bu 1-Faraj grew im patient when he heard this story and
E ve ry m arvel achieves appreciation through it. Noble and sublime said: Indeed, there are m any m arvelous things in the world. This
character qualities are derived from it. (Our) knowledge of the is not improbable. E veryth in g is possible. However, I know a story
political wisdom of kings and others is based on it. H istory collects which is even more remarkable. I take two eggs of a pigeon aw ay
for you (information on) the first and the last (of persons and from it and put in their place a w eight of one hundred and a w^eight
things), insufficiency and abundance, nomadic life and city life, of fifty. W hen the hatching period is over, the weights break open,
(persons and) things of the present and of the past. M any judgm ents and a basin and pitcher come out. The people who were present
(regarding the moral and legal character of things) are based upon laughed, and the Juhani realized th at A bu 1-Faraj intended to
history. The knowledge of it is considered an asset in any gathering m ake fun of him. In consequence, he refrained a good deal from
and statio n. (Al-M as'udi continued that) his incentive to w rite telling his stories.
works on history [ta^rih) and world events [ahhdr) was the desire I say: Som ething similar happened to a person whom we sus
^ The verse is taken from the Maqsurah of M uham m ad b. al-H asan b. D u rayd (d. 321/ pected of (baselessly) expanding (his stories). W hile we were
933, cf. G A L , I, I I I f.), cf. the edition Coustantiuople 1300, 115 (verse 180 in the edition of together w ith Ibn H ajar, that person told us th at in Aleppo th ey
A g g a e u s H a i t s m a , 1773, and verse 171 in th at of E v e r a r d u s S c h e i d i u s , 1786). Cf. Ibn
Isfandiyar, Ta^rih Tabaristdn, I, 13 Ab b a s E g h b a l (Teheran 1320/1942); M ix o v i, had a man who had forty male children who participated w ith
Tansars Epistle, 2 (Teheran 1311/1932). him in his business trips. One of our colleagues who was present
^ Cf. al-]?uhari, II, 358 K r e h l ; Concordance, I, 49a.
^ Cf. al-Buhari, op. cit.. I, 255; IV, 158.
* Cf. (Concordance, II, 134.
^ A l-M as'udi (d. 345/936, or 346, cf. G A L , I, 143-45), M uruj, I, 9 Paris ed. = I, 4 (Cairo
^ Cf. Concordance, II, 235 b; al-Buhari, op. cit., II, 358. 1346). A new edition and translation of the w ork b y C. P ellat is in the course of publication.
Q u r an xii 18 (18 M.). The statem ent was made in connection with the story of the ^ A b u 1-Faraj (d. 356/967, cf. G A L , I, 146), Agdni, I, 2 (Bulaq 1285).
necl<lace, cf. Ibn I.lanbal, M usnad, V I, 197 (Cairo 1313).
^ A l-H asan b. M uham m ad, d. 352/963 (cf. E l , s.v. al-M uhallabi).
2 Q2 AS-SAH AW IS 1 l A n TRANSLATION 293

w as just starting to say: "E v e n more rem arkable than this is. . In the year 538/1143-44, A bii 1-Qasim Muhammad b. Y u su f
when Ibn H ajar smiled, broke up the gathering, and started to al-Madani al-Hanafi, a resident of B alh and the author of the Ndfi*^
pray. I was (later on) often together w ith th at other man, and on H anafi jurisprudence,^ composed a History o f Balh. H e wrote
strangely enough, it happened several times that when I asked him this history as a semi-popular [mutawassit) work, because of the
w hat story he had intended to tell he was somehow interrupted. little interest and feeble understanding of the public, and kept it
A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. Salam ah b. J a far al-Q udai as- down to the level of his readers, using a language which th ey would
M ii, the E gyp tian judge, said th at he collected a certain am ount understand. A t the end, he added his autobiography and a list of
of m aterial on the stories {anhd^) of the prophets, the history of the his writings. Concerning the usefulness of his History he m ade the
caliphs, and the reigns of princes and am irs, down to the year (19) following remarks (which are quoted here) w ith the addition of some
422/1031 " B r e v ity has been observed. Thus, whoever so desires words in a number of passages: " I t keeps alive the m emory of the
can easily m aster the contents of the work. Its contents th a t early and recent scholars of B alh and those who came there from
is, its usefulness, if it is com pletely m astered, consists in the fact abroad Rem em bering is (giving) new life, and restoring this (new
th at it "is am ply sufficient for entertainm ent and conversation. life ?) is like reviving all mankind.^ It also revives the impression
In his Supplement to the History of Ibn Jarir, M uhammad b. th ey made, the acquaintance w ith their actions, their asceticism,
A bd-al-M alik b. Ibrahim al-H am adani (Hamdani ?) al-Faradi their austerity {wara^), their religiosity, their aversion to and con
as-SM ii said th at "h istory was eagerly studied b y the leaders of tem pt of the world, and their patient trust in God in the face of great
peoples and tribes and b y men of praisew orthy and excellent quali trials and tribulations. Their character qualities w ill be adopted b y
ties, such as the 'A bbasids and others, no doubt . . . "T h e in those who look (at their history). The circum stances of their life
stances of success recorded in history serve as a m emento of (divine) will deeply impress those who hear (about them). N ature is docile,
favors, and the instances of trouble observed in it serve as an aw ak and m an a slave to custom. A t times, the ear falls in love before
ening and a warning. It has been reported that when someone the eye. The reason of salvation is straightforwardness in ones life
m entioned to S a'id b. al-M usayyab ^ th at he saw the Prophet in (20) and activities. In order to achieve it, a certain stimulus and
his sleep, S a id said: 'H ey you, God sent His Prophet to encourage guide is needed, such as the com pany of pious men or when it
and to warn (mankind). He encourages those who act righteously, is difficult to enjoy their personal company, the stud y of their life
and tells them to increase their activities. H e cautions those who and accomplishments. The soul can thus picture for itself their
do evil, and tells them to repent. The stud y of history [ahbdr an-nds) essential qualities and gain an idea of their teachings.
is a mirror for the observer. It tells the truth and thus arouses in Of actual vision nothing remains but a m em ory in the mind.
him the desire for good deeds and m akes him afraid of evil ones. Therefore, hearing and seeing are equivalent, and the report (of a
It serves to im prove men of insight and natural qualifications. His third person) is equivalent to actual vision although in reality there
tory is the means through which G od keeps alive the m em ory of is a great difference between them.* If there is no downpour, there is
those of His servants who in His opinion merit that and deserve (at least) dew. The m em ory of pious men is a source of (divine)
His fine reward and com pensation. m ercy, an instructive memento for later generations. W ithout

^ A ccordin g to G A L , I, 381, the author of the Ndfi^ died in 656/1258 and is different
^ A l-Q u d a 'i (d. 454/1062, cf. G A L , I, 343), ^Uyun al-ma^drif, Bodleian ms. Maresc. 37, from, his nam esake G A L , I, 413, w ho died in 556/1161. Cf. also IHdn, 124, below , p. 463.
introduction. Th e te x t is sligh tly different in the Bodleian rns. Pocock 270, fol. 3b. ^ Cf. IHdn, 28, below , p. 304 f.
2 D. around 100/718-19 (al-Buhari, Ta^rth, II, i, 467 f.; ad-D ahabi, Ta^rth al-Isldm, IV , = Cf. Agdnt, III , 67 (B ulaq 1285).
4-7, Cairo 1367 ff.; Ibn H allikan , I, 568 f. trans. D e S l a n e ). Th e re strictiv e afterth ou gh t is due to the fact th at the Prophetical tradition states th at
3 A l-H am adani (d. 521/1127, cf. G A L , I, 142), Tafanilah, i K a n ' a n (Beirut 1961). the report of a third person is no( like actual observation, cf. a l-K a fiy a ji, above, p. 258, n. i.
Ibn H allikan, in addition to al-H am adanis h istory of w azirs (cf. below, p. 412, n. 6), also Cf. also IHdn, 28 and 50, below , pp. 305 and 338. In IHdn, 32, below, p. 311, and
quotes a continuation of M iskaw ayh s Tajdrib al-umam (?, Ibn H allikan, I, 464 trans. D e 'ly a d , M addrik, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2293, fol. 4b, this sayin g is quoted in the nam e of Su fyan
S l a n e , in fact, a supplem ent to A bu Suja^s supplem ent to M iskaw ayh, cf. below, p . 489 b. 'U y a y n a h (d. 198/814, cf. T B , I X , 174 ff.), whereas Ibn *^Abd-al-Barr, Jdmi^ baydn al-
and a s-S a fa d i, W afi, IV , 38 D e d e r i n g [D am ascus-W iesbaden 1959], and another historical Hlni, I I, 162 (Cairo, n.y.) ascribes it to (Sufyan) at-T aw ri. Cf. also fi. L e v i- P r o v e n 9 A l,
w ork, al-Ma'^drif al-muta^ahhirah (Ibn H allikan, I, 280, 399). Les Historiens des Chorfa, 46, n. 2 (Paris 1922).
294 a s-sa h a w ! s i 'l A n TRANSLATION 295

books, most historical inform ation [al-ahhdr wa-l-ahwdl) would champions astonishingly zealous, and the time one of noble vigor,
be forgotten. A fter a short while, the m emory of any human must one not have the same fear in our tim e (21), a tim e of
being, w hatever his condition, would be lost. A cherished pearl and retrogression in zeal and persistence ^? The author also mentioned
treasured jewel is the science of traditions. It is the foundation of the graves of the religious leaders and the places where th ey had
Islam, the basis of the laws, the science which decides w hat is per lived and slept, because their bodies and forms serve as a cure for
m itted and w hat is forbidden, the model to be followed b y both terrible afflictions and diseases, for God endowed th at body with a
the elite and the common people, the explanation of the ambiguous special quality which serves as a cure for afflictions, and through it,
statem ents of the Q uran, and the center of truth and correctness. whether it is alive or dead, there is blessing (tabdraka ?) in the
T h at is, the author goes on to say th at this branch of learning world. (The fact of the miraculous qualities of the saints) is Gods
(history) leads to the science of traditions and serves to solve those greatest kindness and gift. Proof of it is found in the tradition of
of its problems which are referred to it for their solution . The au B uraydah, according to which Muhammad said: 'On the D a y of
thor further explained that one of the reasons w hy he wrote the Resurrection, each of the men around me will be the leader and light
History of Balh was th a t he needed a rest from his w ork on the of the people of the place where he died. ^ W e pray that through
Kitdb at-Tahqiq al-jdmi^ usul masdHl al-fiqh al-jalU minhu wa-d- Islam and the strength of evident truth, God m ay keep us and that
daqiq and to this end occupied himself w ith that interesting, en He m ay preserve for us truthful speech am ong posterity. ^ He
joyable, and h ighly useful branch of learning "w ith which I had has the power to do w hatever He w ants to do, and He can be
been fam iliar in m y early manhood and upon which I based m y expected to grant any request.
efforts to achieve accuracy. Another reason for w riting the History In the introduction of the Muntazam, the hadit expert, A bu
of Balh was the wish to recompense, as far as it was in m y w eak 1-Faraj b. al-Jaw zi ^ said; Biographies (siyar) and histories are
power to do so, the people of B alh for the kindness shown to me v ery useful, especially in two respects:
when I first settled there. A third reason was m y great zeal for the 1 The story of the life of a prudent man and the description
trusted scholars of the Muslim nation. Much of the historical of the result he achieved will lead to the good m anagem ent and
inform ation [ahbdr) about them is disappearing. Their very names prudent handling of ones own affairs. On the other hand, the story
and (the knowledge of) their noble accomplishments are being lost. of the life of an imm oderate person and the description of the end
The author (then stated that) in the work, (he) drew upon books he found will generate a fear of immoderation. This, then, is an
which he m entioned and upon (information from) contem porary education for the powerful and a lesson for the thoughtful. It im
authorities, outstanding and influential men who knew (Balh?) plies a sharpening of the intellect. It is a garden for pleasure seekers
and had inform ation about it. He nam ed a number of them. H e in the realm of traditional knowledge.
also mentioned young and m iddle-aged men, because if a t the time 2 The student of history becomes acquainted w ith wondrous
they were young and unimportant, they m ight in another generation affairs, the changes of time, the vicissitudes of destiny, and (the
become im portant. enjoym ent of) listening to stories [ahbdr). A bii A m r b. a l-A la
He undertook to compose his w ork because he was afraid th at asked a man of (the tribe of) B akr b. W a il who had become so
difficulties m ight come up and because he wanted to preserve old that he could no longer enjoy the pleasures of eating, drinking,
(religious) scholarship from the disappearance and decay which and sexual intercourse, whether he would not like to die. No, he
were caused b y the death of the inform ants who were conspicuous
' Tabdtind, as suggested b y Ms. Leiden.
through their comprehensive scholarly activity. Um ar b. Abd-al- ^ B u raydah b. H usayb al-A slaini, d. betw een 60-64/680-83, cf. al-Buhari, Ta^rih, I, 2,
A ziz had written to the people of Medina: Look for the extant 140 f., where the tradition is quoted, on the a u tlio rity of B u ra yd a h s son, 'A b d allah .
Cf. also I B , I, 128; al-B ayh aq i, Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq, 22 (Teheran 1317).
traditions of the Prophet and w rite them down, for I am afraid ^ Q u r an x x v i 84 (84 FL).
that scholarship m ay disappear and scholars pass a w a y . If such Th e beginning of tlie Muntazam of 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. A li b. al-Jaw zi (d. 597/1200,
cl. G A L , I, 499-506; 'A b d -a l-H a m id a l - 'A l u j i , M w aZ/fl/ai Ibn al-Jawzi, B a gd a d 1385/1965)
was the fear in the days when Islam was young and fresh, its has not y e t been published. Cf. above, pp. 143 f. and 210.
2 Q6 AS-SAHAW IS I'LAN TRANSLATION 297

replied, and when asked w hat pleasure was left to him, he said; history) th a t there is as little room for him before the end of his life
I am still able to listen to wondrous stories. ^ and before he descends into this grave, as there is between a fold
Ibn al-Jaw zi further said in the beginning of the Sudur al-Hiqud and its opening, and let him have in one (life) time the experience
f i ta^rih al-'-uhud, his own abridgm ent of the Muntazam: "H istories of ten. He traversed one life after the other and traveled through
and biographies are a relaxation for the mind and a diversion as one age after the other (through history). H e was laid to rest and
well as an intellectual stimulus. The story of the m arvels of creation resuscitated in a thousand graves. He was m aking his appearance at
shows the greatness of the Maker. The explanation of the biography night until he became visible at dawn (??). W ithout history, the
of a prudent person leads to the good m anagem ent of ones own efforts of the representatives of good pohcies would be lost. There
affairs. Telling the story of an imm oderate person generates a fear would be no praise to distinguish between them and the represen
of the w ant of prudence. The description of the life of a w it provokes tatives of bad policies. It would be difficult to learn from the good and
amazement at the acts of destiny and constitutes an entertainm ent bad outcom e of events. The fact th at easy times follow upon difficult
similar to th at of entertaining evening causeries. ^ ones, and vice versa, would remain unknown. The author then
In the Fath al-Qudsi, the history of the conquest of Jerusalem m entioned the short-lived eras of m any (peoples) of the past, such
b y Salah-ad-din A bu 1-Muzaffar Y u su f b. A yyu b , starting with as the (era of the) deluge, the inundation, and astronom ical obser
the year 583/1187, 'Imad-ad-din M uhammad b. Muhammad vations. He stated th a t the era [ta^rih] of the hijrah abolished
b. H am id al-Isbahani as-SM ii al-K M ib ^ said; (22) Histories every previous era and destroyed all the (sins) which were not re
custom arily start with the beginning of creation or with some pented in it 1 b y those who com m itted them. It, therefore, gives
dynasty. There is no nation or dyn asty without a history/era reliable inform ation about and protection against adopting the
{ta^nh) to which reference m ay be had. It is transm itted from discrepancies (which occur in the eras) of bygone people. Tim e
generation to generation, from the men of the past (who had con was already revolving in its usual manner on the d ay God created
nections w ith a certain dynasty) to those of the present. It holds fast heaven and earth. ^ God commanded His servants to spend the
the fleeting events of the day, and it clearly shows the significance possessions He had assigned to them and even their lives in the
of notew orthy men. If this were not the case, connections would be anticipation of a tw ofold recompensation for w hat they would
interrupted. No knowledge of (past) dynasties would exist. The g iv e , and so on, in the authors fine, poetic style.
m em ory of men of the past would be dead in the days of later gen In the Ahbdr ad-duwal al-Isldmiyah, Jam al-ad-din A bu 1-Hasan
erations. Hum an beings would not realize th at th ey are deeply ^Ali b. A b i 1-Mansur Zafir b. H usayn al-Azdi al-Misri al-Maliki
rooted in the soil,^ that they are drops th at come from the dark said: " I f the usefulness of history were to consist only in the lesson
recesses of the spine in a long process, th at their lives begin in the it contains th at tim e does not stand still and th at change is its
remote past of Adam , and that the Lord took their progeny out only persistent quality, it would be enough to fulfil all expectations.
of their backs to let them have as much preeminence as He before H owever, the various aspects of its usefulness and unique (in
hand w anted them to have. L et it thus be known to man (through structiveness) are innumerable. The student of history combines
1 A b u 'A m r died betw een 154/771 and 159/775-76, cf. G A L , I, gg. instruction (23) extracted from its lessons w ith enjoym ent obtained
^ The passage is found in the Phot. Cairo Ta^rih, 994, p. 3.
from its rich contents. The author then enumerated the different
Th e correct form of the name of the ^Imad (d. 597/1201, cf. G A L , I, 314-6) is found
in M s . Leiden. Cf. C. L a n d b e r g s edition of the A rab ic text, pp. 3-5 (Leiden 1888. Th e dynasties and referred to them at length.
edition Cairo 1322 is a mere reprint of L an db ergs text). L a n d b e r g announced his future
translation of the w ork, b u t this exceedingly difficult enterprise appears n ot to h ave been
executed. A French translation has been announced b y H . M a s s e , and another edition
h a s been published in Cairo 1965.
^ Cf. Lisdn al-^Arab, X I I , 114 (Bulaq 1300-8), w ith reference to a verse b y Imru^ul-qays. ^ The last half of the sentence is not contained in the edition of the Fath.
The te xt of the I^ldn which was followed in the translation is more difficult bu t m ay ^ Cf. IHdn, 13, above, p. 283, n. 8.
be b etter than th at of the edition (cf., how ever, a phrase such as th at used b y a l-B a d i' al- T h e G otha m anuscript of al-A zd is (d. 613/1216, cf. G A L , I, 321) Duival al-munqati^ah,
H am adani, according to al-Q alqasandi, Subh al-a'^sd. I, 459: wa-n-nds li-Adam wa-in kdn which I consulted in the ph otostat copy of the Fondazione Caetani in Rom e, does n ot
al-'-ahd qad taqddam). T h e Q u r anic reference is to siira/i vii 172 (171 FI.). contain the beginning of the work.
298 AS-SA H A W l'S I'LAN TRANSLATION 299

In the Tadwin, Imam-ad-din A bu 1-Qasim A b d-al-K arim b. If such were to be the only useful aspect of histor}^ it would be
Muhammad b. A bd-al-K arim ar-R M ii said: ^ glorious enough. In addition, history gives man experience and a
(Blank space in the m anuscript left b y the author for the later knowledge of events and their outcome. It also teaches him that
insertion of the quotation). nothing can happen to him which did not happen before, or some
In the Kam il, Izz-ad-din A bu 1-H asan A li b. Muhammad b. thing similar to which did not happen before. His intelligence in
M uhammad b. A bd-al-K arim b. al-Atir^ said: The instructiveness creases, and he becomes w orthy of im itation. It was righ tly said: (24)
of history has m any aspects and its usefulness, both in this world
I found th at there are tw o intellects.
and the other world, is very great. Here, we shall m ention only
The one (given) b y nature, and the other (acquired) b y
as much of th at as we see fit. W e shall leave it to the natural in
The latter is of no use [studying.
telligence of the student of history to m ake himself acquainted
W hen the former is lacking. ^
w ith the rest.
As to the usefulness of history for this world, for instance, it is The intellect (given) b y nature refers to the natural intellect
no secret that human beings like to remain alive and prefer to be which God created for man, and the 'intellect (acquired) b y stu d y
among the living. W ould that I knew w hat difference there is ing' refers to the grow th of the natural intellect through experience.
between things seen or heard yesterd ay and things read in books This increase (of intellectual capacity) is called a second intellect,
which contain historical inform ation about the men of the past. in order to extend and stress its importance, though it m erely is
Reading about them is like being their contem porary, and knowing additional to the first intellect.
events is like being present when they took place. A ll this is referred to in the following tradition, according to
Furthermore, kings and persons in auth ority m ay find the biog which Muhammad said: " I f you are told th at a man strayed from
raphies of oppressors and tyrants treated in books which circulate his nature, do not believe it. ^
among the people and which are transm itted from generation to (Another aspect of the usefulness of history) is the fact th at
generation. T h ey look at the ill fame and disgrace th a t were the in parties and gatherings, it is very becoming for a person to mention
consequence of oppression and tyran ny, the resulting destruction some historical inform ation and to tell some interesting anecdotes.
of countries and human lives, the financial loss and the general A ll ears can be observed listening to him and all eyes looking at
corruption. Thus, they come to disapprove of and avoid practices him, and everyone w ants to hear all he has to say and is very
of oppression and injustice. Likewise, th ey m ay see the biographies appreciative of his remarks.
of just governors. T h ey read about the good reputation th at survived A s to the usefulness of history for the other world, there is, for
them after their death, and the developm ent and financial pros instance, (the following asp ect): T ru ly intelligent persons who
perity of their countries and realms. Thus, they come to approve reflect about (the lessons of history) will notice that the world
of their exam ple and to desire to practice perm anently w hat th ey did turns its people up and down and plays havoc w ith its most promi
as well as to omit all that works to the contrary. Kings and persons nent inhabitants. It takes aw ay their lives and treasures and an
in authority derive an additional advantage from the stud y of nihilates the young as well as the old. It spares neither the great
history. T h ey learn through history about the wise counsels that nor the humble, and neither the rich nor the poor are safe from its
served (their predecessors) to avert dam age at the hands of enemies, misfortunes. Intelligent persons (who realize all that) will become
to escape disasters, and to protect (?) rich cities and great realms. ascetics and turn aw ay from the world. T h ey will proceed to using
1 The Phot. Cairo T a rih 2648 of the work is incom,plete in the begiiiuing as is the Istanbul
this world for preparing their journey to the other world. T h ey will
m anuscript V ch b i K f. 1058 (which is presum ablv the original of the Cairo photostat). T h e feel a desire for a home which is free from all those (worldly) pe
incipit from Ms. Laleli 2010 is cited b y H . R i t t e r , in Oriens, I I I , 76 f. (1950)- as-Suyuti,
Nazm al-'^iqydn, 8 H i t t i (New Y o rk 1927). culiarities and whose people are safe from those shortcomings.
^ 555-630/1160-1233 (cf. G A L , I, 345 f.). The q uotation from the Kam il, I, 4-6 (Cairo
1301), exten d s to p. 300, line 23. Th e second M uham m ad in his genealogy did n ot exist, ^ Cf. IHdn 14, above, p. 285, a. 3.
according to II. R i t t e r , in Oriens, V I, 73 {1953). ^ The tradition forms no part of the quotation from Ibn al-A tir.
300 AS-SAHAW IS I'LAN TRANSLATION 301

Someone m ight object th at nobody ever saw a student of history you and spoke to you, and were known to be e x a ctly as th ey are
who became an ascetic and turned to the other world and said to be. Those who never saw them personally will read their mes
felt a desire for its glorious heights. I would like to ask the sage. Those whose age did not permit them to see them will witness
person (who m akes this objection) how m any people he has observed their good actions. Their rank and position will thus be known. It
reading the Q uran, the most powerful and eloquent (book of) will be known who among them was conversant w ith the knowledge
exhortation, yet, still searching for a little w orldly gain. M ankind acquired through tradition and understanding and who excelled
does have a passionate love for this passing world. in the knowledge acquired through observation and through books.
Furtherm ore, the study of history leads to the acquisition of It will become clear who was well educated and equipped for leader
two very good quahties, patience and resignation (lit. consolation). ship. G reat zeal w ill be displayed, in order to reach them and share
Intelligent persons who notice th a t no noble prophet or m igh ty their status.
king, in fact, not a single human being, was safe from the evils A bu Ishaq Ibrahim b. A bdallah b. 'Abd-al-M umin b. A b i
of the world will realize that th ey them selves m ay experience the d-dam al-Faqih a s-a fii, the Judge of Hamah,^ said; The useful
same m isfortunes and adversities which the other experienced. ness of Muslim history, in addition to (the fact th at it is) closest
to accuracy, lies in the fact th at it is concerned w ith the scholars
Just one of the tribe of C aziyah I am.
of this M uhammadan nation and reports their good actions and
W ith them led astray, led aright w ith them.^
qualities, their knowledge, sermons, wise sayings, and their w ay
F or the same reason, stories were included in the Q u ran; T h at of life. The biography (of Muslim scholars) serves active people
is a reminder for a person who has feeling, or is able to listen, as a guide in their own affairs and as an object of reflection and
being present as an o b s e r v e r .I f th at person who objects (to m y m editation. These people will thus benefit from the sayings, as
statements) thinks th at God intended the stories to serve as en pirations, and the good actions and qualities reported of scholars,
tertainm ent, he just shares the essence of (25) the argum ent of both in this world and in the other w o rld . . . . This branch of learn
those doubters who are upon the brink of a w eak undermined ing (history) is like a superstructure on top of the religio-legal
sand dune ^ concerning these stories who said; (These are) the sciences which are the basis of our (study), and the different fields
fables of the ancients which he copied.' ^ of traditional and intellectual learning which we pursue.
In the introduction of the History of Mdlaqah {Malaga), A bu B ak r ams-ad-din A b u 1-M uzaffar Y u su f b. Qizoglu al-H anafi Sibt
M uhamm ad b. M uhamm ad b. A li b. Hamis said; "N e x t to the Qur Ibn al-Jaw zi 2 said: (People of a) sound disposition and straight
an and the sunnah, the most deserving subjects of assiduous study are forward mind strive eagerly to obtain a knowledge of the origins
h istory and biography. The}/ serve to remind (man) of the fact that and the causes of growth. B y pondering the currents of destiny
tim e turns its children up and down. T h ey show the rem arkable and the origins of night and day, th ey come to be like persons
events [anhd^) which happened in former times. T h ey call attention who them selves lived in the times and experienced the events
to the (religious) scholars whose activities must be foUowed and (which th ey have been studying). God, through Muhammad, re
whose qualities and stories [ahbdr) m ust be w ritten down. These ferred to (history) in the Q uran and said, and w hat He says is the
scholars will thus be (as fam iliar to you) as if they were standing truth; In fact, we shall tell you . . . for the believers .^ H e further
before you together with other (living) men, were in contact w ith
^ The Bodleian m anuscript of Ibn A b i d-dam (d. 612/1244, cf. G A L I, 346, see above,
p. 148, n. 3) does n ot contain the quoted passage. Th e q uotation m ay have been derived
1 This is a verse b y D u rayd b. as-Sim,m,ah (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 938), cf. Agdnt, from his large biographical Ta?rih al-M uzaffari.
I X , 4 f. (B ulaq 1285); al-H uw arizm i, Kasd^il, 168 (Stam bul 1297); Lisdn al-^Arab, X I X , 361 ^ Th e first volum e of S ib t Ibn al-Jaw zi (d. 654/1257, cf. G A L , I, 347 f.; the correct
(Bulaq 1300-8); Ibn Bassam,, Dahirah, I, 2, 141 (Cairo 1361/1942). arabicized pronunciation of his fa th e rs name is said to be Q uzugli, cf. Ibn K afiS Muntaljab
2 Q u r an 1 37 (36 FL).
al-muhtdr [Ta^rih ^idamd'^ Bagdad] 237, B agdad 1357/1938) is not included in the Kopriilli
3 Q u r an ix 109 ( n o FI.), not in the Kam il. m anuscript (Phot. Cairo T a rih 551) which I used originally, b u t the passage quoted appears
^ Q ur an x x v 5 (6 FI.). Cf. above, p. 28.
in the Ms. T o pkapu saray, A h m et I II , 2907, fols. ib-2b.
D. after 636/1239, cf. IHdn, 129, below, p. 474.
Q u r an xi 120 (121 FL).
302 TRANSLATION 303
AS-SAH AW tS I LAN

said: (26) T h is belongs to the news of the villages. W e shall tell it to confusion leaves a heritage of confusion and distortion. An acquaint
you. Some of them still stand and (others) are mown dow n.i ance w ith these scholars is an acquaintance w ith models most
(He w ent on) in very m any verses. It was a favor of God to give w orthy of im itation. [Hadit) students who do not know them will
Muhammad (historical) inform ation {ahbdr) about the nations of be asked about the large and small details of their life in the case
past ages. People follow different purposes in their occupation of a difference of opinion among them, and th ey will not be able
with history, according to the varyin g habits of preference they to distinguish between true and false. In this connection, the
have. Some prefer to read the biographies of the ancients and the following story was transm itted on the auth ority of Muslim, the
sages. Others are inchned to study the stories {anbd^) of the prophets, author of the Sahih. He said: The first requirem ent for friends
caliphs, kings, wazirs, htterateurs, and poets. Others again choose and students of the science (of tradition) is to get acquainted with
to read the biographies [siyar) of virtuous men, ascetics, pious the different quality and degree of authoritativeness of hadit schol
persons, and servants of God.^ The purpose of some is to become ars. A n acquaintance w ith the elite estabhshes a kind of relation
acquainted w ith the biographies of either prudent or incom petent ship between them and those who know them. On the D a y of
persons, respectively, in order to learn the good m anagem ent of Resurrection, such a relationship will be helpful in securing their
affairs or to learn thoroughly how to avoid incompetence.^ Herein intercession. Now, the relationship of a scholar to (27) his pupil
hes the real significance of biography for those who know and un is hke the relationship between father and son, in fact, it is some
derstand w hat it is about. The author further said; Histories thing more sacred.^ A pupil who does not know his teacher is hke the
as a rule are a hodgepodge of miscellaneous (information) and pre son who does not know his father, in fact, he is even more wrong. A
sent a useless repetition of an amount of m aterial of unmanageable jurist who is asked, for instance, about al-Muzani ^ and al-Gazzali
proportions. Therefore, with God's permission, I (composed this and does not know the interval of time between them and the dis
w ork), and so on. tance between the places where they lived certainly reveals a truly
A t the beginning of his alphabetically arranged edition of Ibn disquahfying lack of knowledge. Concerning the transm itters of
as-Salah s draft of the Tahaqdt a l-fitq a h d ^ M uhyi-ad-din A bu traditions, the hadit scholars have long appreciated the truth of
Z a k a riya Y a h y a b. Saraf an-N awawi said: The knowledge of this and drawn the consequence: T h ey have w ritten monographs
the details of the life {ahwdl) of (rehgious) scholars graces students on personality criticism, and they have also dealt w ith this subject
and scholars, and ignorance of them disgraces them. A ll those who in the works which go under the title of History. The jurists, on
are (intellectually) awake know th at the knowledge of this subject the other hand, have ceased to realize (the im portance of) this sub
leads to greatly im proved standards, while ignorance in this respect ject. Thus, their previous awareness of the different degrees of
is one of the reasons of baleful incompetence. These scholars are accuracy and accom plishm ent among their leaders, and experts
the keepers of religion which is the foundation of enduring hap ceased to exist. Since the days of m y youth, I have continuously
piness. T hey are the transm itters of the science (of traditions) which occupied m yself with this subject. I have searched for it in promi
leads up to high rank (in the other world). The perfection of one of nent and obscure places. I have hunted for unusual facts and col
these scholars gives perfection to his scholarly production, and his lected stray notices. I have derived m aterial from the histories b y
hadit scholars of the main cities of east and west w ith their compre
1 Qur^an xi lo o (102 FL).
^ a . l^ldn, 51 and 162, below, pp. 339 f. and 515.
hensive inform ation about the prominent native inhabitants of
^ Cf. I -ldn, 21, above, p. 295. those cities and their settlers from abroad. I have further derived
^ Th e introduction of "Utm an b. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. as-Salah (d. 643/1245, cf. G A L , I,
m aterial from numerous mu'-jams concerning the names of the
358-60) breaks off w ith the statem ent th at he had arranged his w ork according to classes
when he realized th at an alphabetical arrangem ent would be better. A t this point, an-N aw teachers of hadit scholars, from catalogues (lists) and some histories
awi (d. 676/1277, cf. G A L , I, 394-97) sets in with an explan ation of his alphabetical arrange
m ent. Ih e m anuscript of the w ork, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2021, which I consulted, was finished ^ On this topic, cf. F . R o s e n t h a l , in Orientalia, N .S . X X V I I , 42 (1958).
on \\ eduesday, Ram adan 20th, 742/February 27th, 1342, b u t the first tw en ty folios have been 2 Isma<^il b. Y a h y a , d. 264/878 (cf. G A L , I, 180).
replaced b y a copy in a poor modern hand. The quotation is found on fols. ib -2a of the 3 M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 505/1111 (cf. G A L , I, 419-26). A n -X aw aw is w ork
n;anuscript. Cf. also I ^ldn, 98, below, p. 415. contains an interesting biography of al-C azzali.
304 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 305

b y hadit scholars. I have also derived some occasional m aterial him. Restoring this (new life?) is like reviving all mankind.
on jurists from works on jurists. There are few such works, and Through visiting a saint, one assures oneself of Gods kindness
th ey contain little and unim portant (information). O nly the mis in Paradise. The person who receives a visit must needs honor the
takes and unrehable statem ents they contain are not few. The hand visitor. Another tradition: Speaking of pious men who are deceased
books on jurisprudence and m any diverse, not further specified, is (like) m ercy shown to dear ones who are alive. The person who
recondite sources from which I have derived m aterial, and so on. records the story of the life {arraha) of a number of men m ay hope
In the A ^mdl al-ihtimdl which I believe to be the title of a book th at the blessed among them w ill intercede for the unfortunate.
A bu 1- A bbas Ahm ad b. A li b. A b i B ak r b. Isa b. M uhammad A tradition says: To each of them (a reward is given) according to
b. Z iy M al-M ayuraqi ^ said: The author who in a historical w ork his intention. Actions (are judged) b y in te n tio n s .S o m e version
writes about a saint of God as an expression of his love of God reads: The m em ory of God is a source of (divine) pleasure. The
will share the rank of that saint w ith him on the D a y of Resurrection. m em ory of Muhammad is a source of (divine) love. The memory
The person who reads the name of a saint in a history as an expres of pious men is a source of (divine) mercy. In the happiness (of
sion of love of Him is Hke one who visited ^ that saint. God forgives the other world) th ey will keep com pany w ith those who spoke of
all the sins of a person who visited one of His saints, provided th at them. H e who loves something mentions it frequently. Man (is kept
his visit did not cause harm to him, or indirectly to any Muslim, together with) those whom he loves. To him (a reward is given)
because such harm would cancel (the merit of the visit). Muhammad according to his intention.
said; He who loves something mentions it frequently. Man (is Taj-ad-din A b u Talib A ll b. A n jab al-H azin * said: The most
kept) together w ith those whom he loves, and he will be resurrected restful subject for the tired m ind to read about and to study,
together w ith those whom he loves. the most useful and instructive means to chase aw ay outside
worries, the best entertainm ent and m ost pleasant inform ation
Record the story of their lives.
(ought to) be something th at is a sermon and a lesson, and th at is
Y o u r gain will then be handsome.
the knowledge of history. H istory also shows the shifts of dynasties
and how quickly th ey take place, and how their end comes about.
Religion, awe, and saintliness
The same author said in the Ahbdr al-wuzard^ f i duwal al-aHmmah
A re but to understand them.
al-hulafd^ th at he considered this to be the most instructive, prof
itable, impressive, pleasant, entertaining, and fruitful (aspect of)
I t s happiness for any man
works on history. (Historical works) are an incentive to practice
To find love in his Master,
virtue and to shun evil. The catastrophes of prominent men, of
the favorite children of time and the owners of great property,
W hile w rath in Him is sure to spell
contain a lesson for the receptive and an experience for the thought
For m ankinds state disaster.
ful. Upon becoming aware of them, intelligent persons approve
(28) A nother ^ tradition: W riting the history of the life [warraha) of noble character qualities, despise evil action, see the rewards
of a Muslim is like reviving him. Reading his history is like visiting of virtue, and shun the results of evil. High-minded and spirited

^ D. in or before 678/1279-80, according to a m arginal note in Ms. Leiden. He is


m entioned in T aq i-ad -d in s Sifd^ and ' - I q d (in the introduction and the b iograph y of Ibn 1 Cf. I ' ^ l d n , 19, above, p. 293.
Sab'^in). Cf. above, p. 165, and below, p. 481, n. 2; G A L S u p p l e m e n t I, 635. ^ The fam ous second sentence, according to A bu D aw ud one of the four m ost im portant
^ I.e., made the pilgrim age to his tom b or another place sacred to him. traditions ( T B , IX , 57), is con stan tly quoted, cf., for instance, Usam ah b. M unqid, L u b d b
^ The second of the three sentences is quoted in al-Bnhari, S a h t h , I V , 5 K r e h l ; Muslim, a l - d d d b , 333 (Cairo 1354 /19 35); 1 ^ l d n , 46 f. and 56, below , pp. 332 and 347; I. G o l d z i h e r ,

S a h t h , X , 68 (Bulaq 1304. Margin of al-Q astallani, I r s d d ) ] T B , II, 16 (biography of al- M u h a m m e d a n i s c h e S t i u l i e n , II, 178 ff. (Halle 1889-90).

Buhari), IV , 250; X I , 227; X I I I , 86, 455; A b u Sam ah, R a u ' d a t a y n , 7 (Paris 1898, R e c u e i l Cf. above, p. 304, n. 3, and H. as-Sandubi, R a s . a l - J d h i z , 304 f. (Cairo 1352).
d e s h i s t , d e s C r o i s a d e s , H i s t . O r . , 4). Cf. also below, pp. 305 and 426. Also known as Ibn as-S a'i, 593-674/1197-1276 (cf. G A L S u p p l e m e n t I, 590, and the
^ T he collection of traditions appears to have been derived from the same work. introduction of M u s t a f a J a w a d to his edition of Ibn as-Sa is N i s d ' ^ a l - h u l a f d ^ [Cairo, n. y.]).

R osenth al , History of Muslim Historiography 20


3 o6 A S-SA H A W lS I LAN TRANSLATION 307

men have alw ays studied good historical m aterial (ahbdr), in order past. It is a relaxation which cheers the heart of the reader and
to use it for the entertainm ent of their minds, the sharpening loosens his tongue.
of their understanding, the stim ulation of their thinking, and the In the introduction of the TdW as-saHd, KamM -ad-din J a 'fa r
training of their inteUigence. The contem plation of history leads al-Udfuw i ^ said: H istory is a necessary branch of learning, and
to the recognition of the oneness and uniqueness of the Creator, there is no w ay of getting around it. H istory acquaints later gener
because reflection about the currents of destiny, the shifts of pe ations w ith the details of the life {ahwdl) of the men of the past. It
riods, the change of night and day, the continuous succession teaches them how to distinguish (the scholars of the past) who deserve
and rotation of nations and dynasties (29) contain an exhortation honor and praise from those who are most unim portant and in
for the receptive and earnest advice for the negligent. God said: significant, as well as how to distinguish those who are adjudged
W e shall cause those days to take turns among m en.^ If the only reliable from those who are adjudged unreliable. H istory also shows
aspect of the usefulness of history were to be a diminished con the methods th ey used, the character qualities they possessed,
fidence in this passing world and an increased desire for the lasting and the truths th ey found for mankind. Furthermore, history
other world, it would suffice for the good deeds which conscience is most helpful for the smooth preservation of genealogical lines.
urgently desires (man) to practice. E xp ert scholars and (intellectually) awake religious leaders wrote
In the History of al-Qayrawdn, A bu Z ayd A bd-ar-Rahm an b. historical works as numerous as the stars of heaven. Some arranged
M uhammad b. A li al-Ansari al-Qayraw ani ^ said that he restricted their works chronologically, others alphabetically, so th at they
himself to the religious scholars and pious servants of God. This m ight be grander and more exalted.^ Some chose a particular
is more (than anything else) fitting, beautiful, distinguished, perfect, country, others dealt w ith all regions and groups. ^
and effective in obtaining a great reward and bountiful compen The following statem ent was made b y M uhammad b. Ibrahim
sation (in the other world). Their m em ory is a source of abundant b. Sa'id b. al-Akfani in the valuable IrM d al-qdsid ild asnd (30)
blessings and a means to attract m any (divine) favors. The mem al-maqdsid'^ Books on history afford the opportunity to study
ory of pious men is a source of (divine) m ercy. the history [ahhdr) of kings, scholars, prominent men, and the m ani
A statem ent of B a h a -ad-din A b u A bdallah M uhamm ad b. fold events of the past. This is a relaxation for the mind and a lesson
Y u su f b. Y a 'q u b al-Janadi has been mentioned before in connection for the thoughtful. The best history to be found in our tim e is that
w ith a passage from Ibn Jarir.^ compiled b y Ibn al-Atir al-Jazari. Some works combine the most im
Alam -ad-din A b u Muhammad al-Qasim b. M uhammad al- portant historical inform ation w ith (excerpts from) the best poetry,
BirzMi said: H istory is one of the best and most desirable which makes them fine literary products. Such works are, for in
branches of learning, one of the most useful and splendid objects of stance, the Tadkirah of Ibn Hamdun,^ the Rayhdnat al-adah b y
study, and one of the most perfect and brilliant topics of con
versation. It is a w ay to instruction and a path leading to insight.
It is a precious gift th at makes one actually see the nations of the
^ J a 'fa r b. T a^ ab (?) al-U dfuw i (d. 748/1347, cf. G A L , II, 31), at-Tdli^ as-saHd, 4 (Cairo
1333/1914).
^ The A rab ic te x t here has an ingenious and not in frequ ently used play on words.
1 Q u r an iii 140 (134 FL). At-TdW- as-saHd has a more lik e ly w ad is, instead of groups.
2 T he Ma^dlim al-iman (Tunis 1320-25), Ibn an -N ajis edition of the w ork of al-Q ayra ^ A l-A k fa n i (d. 749/1348, cf. G A L , II, 137), Irsdd, 15 (Cairo 1318/1900). Cf. also the fatwd
w ani (d. 696/1297, cf. G A L Supplement II, 337) apparently docs not contain the passage of 'Izz-ad -d in al-K inan i, ed. F. S a y y i d , in Revue de Iln stitut des Manuscrits Arabes, II,
quoted. A l-A n saris w ork on m ystical love, MaSdriq anwdr al-qulub, has been edited b y 1746-9(1375/1956).
H. R i t t e r (B eirut 1379/1959). M uham m ad b. al-H asan b. Ham dun, d. 562/1167 (cf. G A L , I, 280 f.). The section on
^ For the last sentence, cf. above, p. 293, n. 5. history is to be found in the forty-n in th chapter of the Tadkirah (Vol. X I I , fols. ib -i8 8 b ,
* Cf. above, p. 288. I96a-205a of the Ms. T o pkapu saray, A h m et III , 2948). The author says that, since h istory,
* 665-739/1267-1339 (cf. G A L , II, 36, to be corrected and supplem ented b y E l , 2nd ed., the best exh ortation [maiv^izah] for m an, is here on ly part of a larger w ork, he has been
s . V. al-Birzali). T he passage appears at the beginning of al-B irzalis History in the two- brief. The treatm ent of pre-Islam ic h istory is follow ed b y th at of M uham m ad and the caliphs
volum e copy in Istan bu l, To pkapu saray, A hm et III , 2951 (written in 1321 b y Ibn al-H ububi to the end of the U m ayya d d y n a sty. There follows an annalistic h istory down to the year
[d. 722/1322, cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 198 f.] and collated w ith the author). 553/1158, which is interrupted, anno 132, b y a coherent treatm ent of the 'A b b asid d yn asty.
3 o8 AS-SAH AW tS I "LAN
TRANSLATION 309

Ibn S a id / the 'Iqd b y Ibn Abdrabbih,^ the Fast al-hitdh b y


The never ceasing change of days b y one so wise.
at-Tifasi, the Natr ad-durar b y a l-A b i/ and others.
So fair to His creation, not unfair.
I found the following statem ent in the Kitdh ad-Dm r an-nazim
f i l-Hlm wa-t-taHim, (the work) of some (unknown author, based)
H ow m any lessons history contains for him
upon b. al-Akfani;^ Books on history afford the opportunity to
W ho w ants to learn, is cautious, circumspect.
study the history {ahhdr) of scholars and intelligent men, the hap
penings th at concerned them, the m anifold events (of the past),
W hom constant change of time taught prudent abstinence
the biographies [siyar] of people, and their virtues and vices which
From m atters which concern another one,
time perm itted to live on after they themselves were dead.
Afif-ad-din a l-Y a fii, the famous saint, called his history, which
W ho is content w ith w hat H e-that-knows-all decreed.
is chronologically arranged according to the years of the hijrah,
Abiding b y His judgm ent, free from grudge! (31)
M ir'at al-jandn wa-'-ahardt al-yaqzdn, On the knowledge of instructive
events, the shifting circumstances of human beings, and the dates of
O Lord, protect us from calam ity and sin
some very prominent men. In the beginning of the work, a l-Y a fii
In a world so full of sinners of all sorts.
has the following verses:

A book which will not irk you, friends of history. A bout to drown in its ocean m any reached the shore-
Through too great brevity, or tiresome length. W hat shall he do to whom no shore is left ?

Here you will find it, keeping to the middle path. In the Nasihat al-musdwir wa-ta^ziyat al-mujdwir, Badr-ad-din
W hich, as the proverb says, is best of all. A bu Muhammad A bdallah b. M uhammad b. Farhun al-Madani
al-Mahki refuted those who disapproved of (the custom of ) putting
Here yo u ll encounter brilliant poems, anecdotes, up a stone or the like in the Prophets Mosque (in Medina), in order
A nd stories, fit to mention or to drop. to m ark the place where a judge, m ufti, or scholar sat (in the
exercise of his functions). He spoke in his w ork of a number of his
Of precious, w itty saws those which are meaningful. contemporaries and their divinely inspired deeds. In this manner,
Of fine remarks the choicest to be found. their m em ory would be kept alive, and their learning would be
spread. The author further added some good things from the
It is a lesson for the student who beholds histories of (data about) previous reliable (scholars). T h ey can here
Tim e which lifts human beings up and lets them down, be found, he said, b y the student who enjoyed them but was not
sure of the correctness of the transm itted text. A person in the right
^ 'A l i b . Musa b. Sa'^id, seventh/thirteenth cen tury (cf. G A L , I, 336 f.). Cf. H a jji H alifah,
K a s f az-zunun, III , 524 F l u g e l . The te x t of the I'^ldn, stran gely enough, has Tajdrib frame of mind m ight notice these (stories), and thereby come to
al-iimam, the title of M iskaw ayh s famous h istory. Th e correct title appears in IHdn, 162,
adopt the sublime character qualities of those scholars and to
below , p. 516, and in al-A kfan i. Th e last tw o item s of a l-A k fa n is list also are corrupt in
the te x t of the I'^ldn. T h e y are here corrected in accordance w ith the te x t of al-A kfani. reach their high level of education. ^ He (further) said: God
Since the same corruptions appear IHdn, 162, below, p. 516, as-Sahaw i either used a fa u lty
increased the reward of the scholars on account of the ignorant
copy of the Irsdd, or his lim ited knowledge of adab w orks misled him.
^ A hm ad b. M uham m ad, d. 328/940 (cf. G A L , I, 154 f.). persons who dom inated them , ^ especially those who thought
A h m ad b. Y u su f, d. 651/1253 (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 904).
* Mansur b. al-H usayn, d. 421/1030 (cf. G A L , I, 351).
5 C t.G A L , II, 137. ^ Ibn Farhun (cf. G A L Supplement II, 221), Nasihat al-musdwir, Ms. Cairo T a rih 6s,
* For the last sentence, cf. I'-ldn, 38 f., below, p. 32of. p. 3. Accordin g to Ibn H aja r, Durar, I I, 300, an 'A b d allah b. M uham m ad b. Farhun died
'A b d allah b. A s 'a d (d. 768/1367, cf. G A L , II, 176 f.), Mir^dt al-jandn, I, 3 f. (H yderabad in 769/1368, b u t according to the m anuscript, the w ork w as finished on R am adan 21st,
777/February 13th, 1376 {GAL Supplement II, 221: 774/1372). Th e Cairo m anuscript was
1337-39). G A L reads wa-'^ibrat, instead of laa-'^abardt.
* A l- Y a fi'i; al-halq. w ritten in 1093/1682, b u t its first h alf is a later addition.
This part of the quotation appears on p. i of the Cairo m anuscript.
310 AS-SAH AW ts I LAN TRANSLATION 311

that th ey were qualified for the high position (of scholars) in the one on account of the obscurity of his authorities, as well as any
repulsion of doubtful (opinions) while in fact th ey fell far behind attem pt b y others to consider them little known.^
it. MMik said very correctly; It is not a good sign if someone Sufyan b. U yayn ah said; The m em ory of pious men is a source
thinks th at he (ought to) occupy a position for which people do of (divine) mercy.
not consider him qualified. I never sat down in the mosque (in A bu H anifah said; I like stories about scholars and their good
order to teach), unless seventy learned sayhs testified to m y qual quahties and actions better than a good deal of jurisprudence.
ification (to occupy a certain place). ^ Those stories educate the people.
In the Tahaqdt al-Hanafiyah, M uhyi-ad-din A bii M uhamm ad Inform ation on the tribulations suffered b y some (scholars),
Abd-al-Q adir al-Qurasi al-H anafi ^ said w hat is quoted here in a which m ay be found mentioned, is a consolation in tribulations
shortened form ; It is very instructive and extrem ely im portant (which one m ight suffer oneself) and an indication of their firm
for a number of reasons to discuss the biographies of (religious) position within (the ranks of) pious men.
scholars w ith the details of their life, their qualities, the times in Inform ation about the countries in which the (religious) scholars
which they lived, and their position (in scholarship). One of the lived and were at home is also very useful.
reasons, for instance, is that it gives one confidence in himself. In the introduction [hutbah) of the Tahaqdt al-M dlikiyah, Burhan-
The verse of the Q uran; Does not the m em ory of God give con ad-din A bu Ishaq Ibrahim b. A li b. Farhun,^ a nephew of the
fidence ?,3 was interpreted b y a number of ancient scholars as re afore-mentioned Ibn Farhun, said; The noble character of the
ferring to the m em ory of the men around Muhammad. This is knowledge of this field (history) ^ is well-known, and ignorance
well possible. These men were distinguished above all others b y the of it is subject to blame. It is not a branch of knowledge to which
privilege of having seen the Prophet, b y the fact that th ey were the (proverbial) saying m ight be applied; To know it is of no use,
his faithful followers, and b y the fact th at they (alone) were in the and not to know it does no harm. It has indeed been applied to
possession of the knowledge (of the Prophetical traditions). A nother genealogy, a field which is different from h istory.
reason is that (the discussion of the biographies of religious scholars) H owever, genealogy should not be neglected. It is very useful.
enables the student to reach the educational level of those (scholars) Ibn A bd-al-Barr spoke of it, and Sihab-ad-din al-Qalqasandi
and to learn from their good actions and qualities. Furtherm ore, has most of it in his work.
it serves to put every (scholar) in his proper place and to avoid W ali-ad-din Ibn H aldun al-Mahki said in his H istory:
assigning inferior positions to im portant (authorities) or elevating (Blank space in the m anuscript left b y the author for the
others beyond their proper positions. He is more learned than any later insertion of the quotation).
scholar.^ Muhammad referred to this in the tradition; L et the 1 Istijhdl, to majhul, for w hich technical term cf. al-H atib al-Bagdadi, K ifdyah, 88 f.
(H yderabad 1357). T he last sentence does not appear in the printed te x t of the Jawdhir.
patient and intelligent men among you be close to m e.^ A further
^ Cf. P la n 20, above, p. 293, n. 5 -
reason is th at (the discussion of the biographies of religious scholars) " A b u H anifah an-N u'm an b. T a b it, d. 150/767-68, or 151 (cf. G A L , I, 169-71). The
statem ent is quoted b y A b u B a k r ij. a l-'A rab i (cf. G A L , I, 412 f., and Supplement I, 632 f.,
enables the student to rely in the case of contradictory opinions 663, 732 f.), Mardqt az-zulfd, in Ibn al-H ajj al-'A bd ari, M udhal (madhal) as-sar'^ as-sarif. I,
upon the most learned and austere (authorities). Furthermore, it 56 f. (Cairo 1320).
D. 799/1397 (cf. G A L , II, 175 f.). Cf. his Tahaqdt al-M dliktyah, 2 (Fes 1316).
gives inform ation about (32) their publications and helps to evaluate
Ibn Farhu n : al-fann.
their usefulness. L astly, it stops any criticism directed against some Y u su f b. 'A b d allah (d. 463/1071, cf. G A L , I, 367 f.) defines genealogy as a knowledge
w hich to know is of no use and which not to know does no harm , cf. his Jdmi'^ baydn al-Hlm,
II, 23 (Cairo, n.y.) and his Inbdh, 43 (Cairo 1350). He follow ed a prophetical tradition, cf.
1 T h is part of the quotation, appears on, p. 2. also Ibn H azm , Jamharah, 3, 5 (Cairo 1948); as-Sam 'aui, Ansdh, fols. 3b-4a; al-G azzali,
2 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. M uham m ad (d. 775/1373, cf. G A L , II, 80), al-Jawdhir al-mudiyah Ihyd^, I, 27 (Cairo 1334); Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, I, 236 Paris; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, III, 104.
f t tahaqdt al-H anafiyah, I, 3 aud 6 (H yderabad 1332). A hm ad b. '"Ali, d. 821/1418 (cf. G A L , II, 134). The w ork referred to m ay be the
3 Q u r an xiii 28 (28 FI.). Subh al-a'^sd which has a chapter on the ansdh al--Arah, unless al-Q alqasandis w ork on the
Q u r an xii 76 (76 FI.). A rab tribes (cf. iHdn, 109, below, p. 434) is m eant.
Cf. T B , I X , 281; X I , 192; X I I , 150; A b u 'A w a n a h , M usnad, II, 41 f. (H yderabad * 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. M uham m ad, 732-808/1332-1406 (cf. G A L , II, 242-45). As-Sahaw i
1362-63); Taskdpriizadeh, M iftdh, 1, 67 (H yderabad 1328-56). Ms. Leiden has the correct text. p robab ly intended to quote from the first pages of the Muqaddimah.
312 AS-SAHAW IS I'LAN TRANSLATION 313

The following statem ent was made b y Muwaffaq-ad-din A bu wrote to A bu Muhammad the following verses in which he chided
1-Hasan A li b. al-Hasan b. A bi B ak r al-H azraji ^in the introduction him:
of the History of the Yemen: 1 was m oved to compile this History
Consider again the things you wrote, and you better dont
b y m y observations concerning the prevailing indifference tow ard
Begin w ithout proper preparation and arms the fight.
history. (This indifference exists) in spite of the fact th at there is
much need for historical knowledge. In m any m atters, one ought Y o u are not prepared to teach a true scholar anything.
to have reference to historical inform ation, and there is a need To follow behind him in his steps is for you just right.
for the edifying and literary m aterial and the detailed inform ation
Y o u thought, Ibn R usd was like the others you met before!
about com plicated genealogical relationships which are contained
Y o u ll find, he is stronger than a lion w ith all his might.
in historical works. W ithout a knowledge of h istory, the author said,
no inform ation would exist about former generations in later
A bii J a far b. W addah ^ repUed for A bu Muhammad, in the
ones. It would not be possible to tell superior individuals (of the
same metre and rhym e:
past) from inferior ones and to distinguish well-known men from
little known persons. Go slow, you are certainly not causing a stir round here.
ams-ad-din Muhammad b. Am m ar al-Misri al-Maliki ^ said: W h y do you not learn, if you are able to see the light!
If the only instructive aspect of history were the critical exam ina
tion of old stories and uninterrupted traditions, (it would suffice), If learning were given just to those who are fit for it.
for distress about the evil that reigns in this sad time is alleviated Y ou would not rely upon the points made to win your fight.
b y the realization (gained from such a critical exam ination of his
tory) that disappointm ents are an old story. If we were together in one room for the argument.
In the Tuhfah, Professor A bu (33) A bdallah b. al-Abbar, the W e would give you deadly poison quickly to end your p ligh t.
Spanish litterateur,^ told the following story: On one of the ex
peditions of the Am ir Tam im b. Y usu f b. Tasfin,^ his entourage in Ibn Am m ar also told this story in a different connection, but
cluded M aymun al-Hawwari, a jurist and dignitary of Cordoba, b y telling it here, I w anted to show how perfectly well one m ay
and the judge A bu 1-Walid, the real power among them. rely on (history), in order to find consolation. He (further) said:
They stopped outside Murcia where th ey were met b y A bu No doubt (also) in former times, non-scholars participated in
Muhammad b. A b i Ja'far. A t their gathering, they discussed the scholarship. I do not mean b y participating th at they competed
question of the respective merit of the form ulas: There is no God w ith scholars in the zeal for serious stud y as a means to reach
but G od and Praised be G od. A bu 1-W alid preferred the former the heights of true scholarship. No, b y m aking unfair use of their
formula, and A bii Muhammad the latter. On this occasion, M aym un rank and wealth, th ey forced their w ay into the positions which
of right belonged to real scholars, and donned scholarly robes and
1 D. 812/1409 (cf. G A L , II, 184 f.).
^ It would seem, th at the quotatiou from, Ibn 'Am.mar (cf. above, p. 280) extends to p. 315, (wore the) ends of turbans (as scholars did). If th ey were exposed
line 17.
to the light of truth, they would be found to have assumed an ap
M uham m ad b. ^Abdallah, d. 658/1260 (cf. G A L , I, 340 f.; ' A b d -a l - ' A ziz '^Ab d - a l -
M a j I d , Ibn al-Abbdr, haydtuh wa-kutubuh [Tetuan 1373/1954]; and the introduction b y pearance which was not theirs ^ and to have clothed themselves
S A lih a l - A s t a r to his edition of Ibn a l-A b b a rs IHdb al-kuttdb [Damascus 1280/1961]).
w ith the garm ents of falsehood and fraud. T h ey would become the
Ibn al-A bbar refers to this sto ry in the brief notice d evoted to M aym un al-H aw w ari,
in the Takmilah, 3 9 5 C o d e r a (Madrid 1 8 8 9 , Bibl. Arabico-Hispana, 6 ) . It appears in his butt of the scornful and the laughingstock of observers. In fact,
Tuhfat al-qddim, cf. al-Masriq, X L I , 3 4 1 f. (1947); al-Muqtadab min Kitdb Tuhfat al-qddim,
3 4 a l - I b y a r i (Cairo 1957). 1 A hm ad b. M aslamah, died about 530/1135-36, cf. E . L e v i - P r o v e n ^ a l , La Peninsule
* D. 520/1126 (cf. Ibn A b i Zar*-, 106, trans. 145 T o r n b e r g , Uppsala 1843-46). Iberique, 32, n. 2 (Leiden 1938). Th e last of Ibn W ad d ah s verses apparently refers to
M uham m ad b. A lnnad, the grandfather of the fam ous philosopher, d. 520/1126 (cf. d e a d ly argum ents.
G A L , I, 384). 2 Th e reading of the Ms. Leiden; tasabba'-u th ey gorged on things w hich were not theirs ,
Unidentified. m a y be preferable.
314 AS-SAH AW IS I ' l A n TRANSLATION 315

th ey would become a frequently quoted and very effective histor(ical confused and thought th at Ibn MMik had talked to him in a foreign
example, ta'rih). In ancient and recent tim es, he said, frauds language. H e enum erated the letters of the alphabet from beginning
were practiced on people, and they actu ally died although th ey lived to end. The audience, all partisans of him, w ildly applauded him.
on (34) in books and stories. Sibaw ayh, the foremost gram m arian He had given tw enty-nine answers to (but) one question! JamM-ad-
who evolved A rabic gram mar from oral inform ation received b y him din found nobody to take his side. Hum iliated, he died a few days
from Bedouins and the outstanding expert in the sciences which he later.
chose to m aster was killed b y a fraud and the intrigues of his rival Ibn A m m ar told m any such stories at great length. H e thus
a l-K isa i. In the presence of the Barm ecides, a l-K isa i asked Si said: For all his greatness, Ibn a r-R a fah ^ did not even become
baw ayh about the question of the wasp.^ Sibaw ayh gave the correct a tutor, let alone a professor. Ignorant persons become professors
answer, (citing the phrase) which conformed to the nature and through m oney or b y m ixing w ith contem ptible office seekers.
speech of the Bedouins. Al-Kisa^i, however, did not w an t it The best position which Ibn al-H ajib ^ could find in Cairo and
(to be true) and used his influential position at ar-Rasid(s court) A lexandria after his return from Damascus was th at of an official
as a weapon. Bedouins were brought in, in order to decide who of witness, although (he was a great scholar) according to the following
the two was correct. Out of regard for al-K isai s position, or statem ent of Ibn Hallikan in his History. He cam e to me several
possibly because th ey had been bribed, they just stated th at the times to register depositions, and I asked him about (35) difficult
w ay a l-K isa i said it was correct (but did not pronounce the phrase problems of the A rabic language, and he was able to answer them
itself). T h ey would have been unable to pronounce the (incorrect) m ost exhaustively, w ith great calmness and com plete firm ness.
gram m atical form which a l-K isa i suggested. Sibaw ayh, (knowing Ibn A m m ar m entioned much of that. It has altogether nothing
that), said to Y a h y a b. HMid al-Barmaki;^ Tell them to pronounce to do w ith our subject here, but a discussion leads from one thing
it, and their tongues will not be able to . This affair left Sibaw ayh to the other. ^ Moreover, there is a detailed treatm ent of these
no choice b ut to leave al-Basrah for Persia (Fars) against his will as and similar m atters in another publication of mine entitled al-Fur-
the victim of a fraud, and he staid there until he died. In his Gram jah.^
matical Poem, Ibn H azim al-Andalusi ^ mentioned the affair in Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi said: Know ledge in general falls into
connection w ith the problem of the w asp. (Ibn Ammar) here the tw o parts of intellectual and traditional knowledge. A fter the
quoted Ibn H azim s verses. acquisition of a sufficiently thorough understanding of both of
Jam al-ad-din b. Malik, the transm itter of all the gram m atical them, one should take tim e out to study history and to ponder its
and lexicographical knowledge of Arabia,^ died of late the victim of lessons. Through such study, a person whose blindness of heart
a fraud. In spite of his great qualities and the fact th at he was in and vision was rem oved b y God will learn about the destruction
great need and reduced circumstances, his position as a preacher and final disappearance which fell to the lot of his fellow-men
in one of the suburbs of Damascus was contested and taken aw ay after the handling of w ealth and m ilitary power. He will come to
from him b y a local ignoramus. H e nearly died, especially when
he attended the F rid ay prayer and asked that ignoramus after the ^ A p p aren tly, A hm ad b. M uham m ad, d. 710/1310 (cf. G A L , II, 133 f.). He was, how ever,
service about the articulation of the (sound) alif. The man became a v e ry successful man.
^ ^Utman b. 'U m ar, d. 646/1249 (cf. G A L , I, 303-6).
^ F o r the fam ous gram,marians of the second/eighth cen tury, 'A m r b. ^Utman Sib aw ayh ^ A hm ad b. M uham m ad b. H allikan (d. 681/1282, cf. G A L , I, 326-28), Wafaydt, II, 194
(cf. G A L , I, 100-2) and 'A ll b. H am zah al-Kisa^i (cf. G A L , I, 115), and for the question of trans. D e S l a n e .
the wasp, cf. A . F i s c h e r , D ie Mas^ala Zunburija, in A Volume of Oriental Studies presented * For this proverb, cf., for instance. L a n e , 1509b, s. rad. sjn, or ^Umarah al-H akam i,
to E. G. Browne, 150-56 (Cam bridge 1922); idem, in Islam ica, V , 211 ff. (1931); J. B l a u , in an-Niikat al-'-asriyah, 6 D e r e n b o u r g (Paris 1897, Publ. de VEcole des langues or. viv.,
Journal of Sem itic Studies, V I I I , 42-51 (1963). IV e Serie, V ol. 10).
2 D. 189/805. W ith its full title: al-Furjah bi-kd^inat al-Kdm iliyah allatt laysa fihd li-l-m u-drid
^ H azim b. M uham m ad, d. 684/1285 (cf. G A L , I, 269). The poem is quoted b y Ibn Hi.sam, hujjah {Daw^, V I I I , 17, line 24 f.).
M ugni al-labib. I, 75 f. (Cairo 1317). Al-fand^, according to the te xt of the Hitat.
* A p p aren tly, M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah , the author of the A lfiyah, d. 672/1274 (cf. G A L , A h m ad b. 'A li al-M aqrizi, 766-845/1364-1442 (cf. G A L , II, 38-41). Up to this point,
I, 298-300). the q uotation agrees w ith H itat, I, 4 (Bulaq 1270).
3i 6 AS-SAHAW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 317

abstain from this world and to wish for the other w orld. Then, own time witness it. He presents the virtuous men (of the future)
al-Maqrizi said; How bad does it look if a person, who is considered with (other) lives and prepares for their ears and eyes places to
a scholar and who thinks of himself as an educated and learned live in which had not been their places.^
man, is able to answer a question about G ods prophets, in whom
he is to believe, b y m erely giving their names, b ut does not know I failed to see those houses with m y eye.
w hat those names im ply. How bad does it look if a man who under M ay-be, F ll see them w ith m y ears (through tales).^
takes to teach and give fatwds or to function as a judge does not
know the details of M uhamm ads life, his genealogy, his beautiful Praise is due to Him who is alw ays in power.
w ay of life, his exalted position, and his essential and accidental In the preface of the 'JJqud al-fandah, (al-Maqrizi) said; God
virtues, things which every believer m ust know and everyone who organized m ankind so th at one generation would come after the
is considered a scholar must have studied. Such a person would other and each group follow in the footsteps of the former. The
surely h ave to reply to the question of the two exam iners after first ones would thus leave their stories to those after them as an
death ^ concerning his opinion about th at m an (M uham m ad): I do exhortation and example, and the later ones would keep ahve the
not know. I heard people say, and I repeated^ . . . . M ay God m em ory and spread the fam e of their predecessors. As a result,
preserve us from th a t! intelligent persons will be deterred from doing things which evoke
The outstanding gram marian and lexicographer, A b u 1-H usayn criticism and which are recognized as evil. The educated will go
b. Faris,^ said; E v e ry Muslim ought to h ave a knowledge of this. after the best and finest character qualities, and so on.
Shame upon the person who thinks of himself as a scholar and does Taqi-ad-din b. Qadi Suhbah ^ said th at he spoke of (the
not know who the earliest em igrants w e re ; who cannot distinguish history of the past) for the benefit of future (generations). T h ey
betw een those who contributed and fought before the Conquest would thus be able to study the historical inform ation [ahhdr) about
(of Mecca), and those who contributed after it; who does not know (the men of the past). (Otherwise), their biographies are difficult
who those fighters at B adr were, concerning whom it w as said: to find. This, then, would be one aspect of the usefulness of (history).
Do w hatever you want. I have forgiven y o u who does not know In the beginning of the Tuhfat az-zaman f t ta^nh sdddt al-Yaman,
who those participants in the oath of allegiance and agreement Badr-ad-din H usayn al-Ahdal ^ said; H istory is a useful branch
(at H udaybiyah) were whom the F ire w ill not touch; and who of learning. Through it, later generations acquire inform ation about
does not know who those men of Medina were, of whom we are to former ones. It becomes possible to distinguish between w orthy
reward those who do good and leave unpunished those who do and useless people. The student acquires insight and a knowledge
evil, and whom to love is (true) believing. of the minds of the ancients. M any proofs (of the truth of Islam)
Al-M aqrizi said in a statem ent in his handw riting transm itted become clear. W ithout history, (past) conditions [ahwdl], dynasties,
b y Najm -ad-din b. F a h d ; The historian (of the past) m akes the genealogies, and causes would not be known. No distinction could
days (of the past) part of his own life, and the historian of his own be made between ignorant and thinking people. It was said that
period (36) m akes those future (generations) who are not of his God revealed in the Torah a special book containing (information

^ I.e., the tw o angels M unkar and N akir, cf. Lisdn al-'^Arab, X V I I , 197 (Bulaq 1300-8). ^ Lahum , added b y an-N ahraw ali (see n. 2).
2 T h is is the re p ly given b y sinners a t the ^addb al-qabr, cf. al-G azzali, Ihya?, IV , 427 ^ T h is is a verse b y as-Sarif ar-R ad i M uham m ad b. al-H usayn (d. 406/1015, cf. G A L , 1,82).
(Cairo 1352/1933); Concordance, II, 537ag; I -ldn, 47, below , p. 333. Cf. his Dtwdn, II, 82 (Cairo 1306) = 500 (Beirut 1310); Ibn al-Jaw zi, M udhis, 170 (Bagdad
A hm ad b. Faris, d. a fter 390/999-1000 (cf. G A L , I, 130). Cf. IHan, 47, below , p. 333. 1348); a l-K u tu b i, Fawdt, I I, 161 (Bulaq 1299); as-Safadi, W dfi, I, 190 R i t t e r ; Muham m ad
T he quotation m ay have come to as-Sahaw i through al-M aqrizi. b. Ahm ad an-N ahrawtdi (d. around 990/1582), History of Mecca, in F. W i j s t e n f e l d ,
* C f. I b n H isam , Strah, 8 1 0 W u s t e n f e l d . D ie Chroniken der Stadt M ekka, I I I , 4 (Leipzig 1857); Ibn Bassam , Dahtrah, IV , i, 194
* F or the hay'-at ar-ridu'dn, cf. Ibn Hisam , Strah, 746 W i j s t e n f e l d . (Cairo 1945); Ibn al-Jaw zi, Adkiyd^, 2 (Cairo 1306).
Cf. Concordance, I, 401a; al-Buhari, Sahih, III , 9, 6 K r e h l ; T B , I, 295; Ibn H azm , ^ A b u B a k r b. A h m ad , d. 851/1448 (cf. G A L , II, 51). T he q uotation m ay be from his
Jamharah, 3 (Cairo 1948); Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, I, 350 Paris. IHdm bi-ta^rih ahl al-Isldm.
U m ar b. M uham m ad, 812-885/1409-80 (cf. G A L , II, 175 ; Daw^, V I, 126-31). A l-H u sayn b. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an , d. 855/1451 (cf. G A L , II, 185).
3i 8 A S - S A H A w i s I'LAN TRANSLATION 319

about) the conditions [ahwdl] of past peoples and the respective and lessons and includes interesting m aterial on good actions and
length of their lifetim e, as well as an exposition of their genealogical qualities. W ithout history, no inform ation about or trace of the
relationships. ^ past would reach us. H istory is a nourishment for the spirit and the
M uhyi-ad-din a l-K afiya ji al-H anafi ^ the same who was kind imagination. It is a treasury of inform ation about peoples and men.
enough to say th at I was the most learned man of the tim e in both I t is a mine of wonderful and rem arkable things, traditions, and
intellectual and traditional knowledge sent me a w ork of his proverbs. It adorns sm art men and sustains the thoughtful. It aids
on the subject (of history), which he had finished in the m onth of hadit scholars and enriches the educated. Kings, wazirs, discerning
R a jab of the year (8)67/March 1463. He started out b y saying that m ilitary leaders, and other persons in im portant positions need (a
h istory is a useful branch of learning which comprises the whole knowledge of) history. It teaches kings the lesson of dynasties and
range of hum an affairs including the other life. " I t is, he said, nations of the past. It teaches wazirs the lesson of the actions of
instructive and remarkable in innumerable respects. It is an previous masters of the sword and the pen. It shows m ilitary leaders
ocean of pearls and corals. Its m any useful aspects cannot be fully war ruses and tactics (used in the wars of the past). To all others,
defined or explained. It includes the m arvels of the natural {mulk) history comes in the form of entertainm ent. A s a result, the w ay
and supernatural world [malakut). It leads near to (37) the Truth, is open to them for all kinds of good actions and closed for all the
the M ighty and Powerful One. H owever, history has been like things th at should not be done. It was, therefore, said: K ings ought
pearls which are dispersed in the deep waters of the rolling (?) to follow the exam ple of their predecessors. T h ey ought to do w hat
sea (of Um an ? ?) and not strung up on the string of fundam ental their predecessors did as far as good actions are concerned, but not
facts and clear exposition. Therefore, m y friendly interest in sm art as far as those actions are concerned which constituted a m atter
and cultured people caused me to collect (the facts about) history of regret for former kings. T h ey also ought to read the w ritten
according to the rules of scientific accuracy, as much as this was exhortations and testam ents of their predecessors. Th ey ought to
in m y power, although I am far from qualified to confront such a look at their judgm ents and legal decisions. The kings of the past
w eighty problem. I composed this Short Work on Historiography possessed greater experience and insight. Secretly and openly,
as a gift from me to m y friends, comparable to the g ift of the ant th ey were as a rule more discerning than those who came after them.
to Sulaym ^n. ^ The author then explained th at history "fu lly T h e y (38) knew how to distinguish between good and bad, and
deserved codification that is, because works on history have a th ey could tell m anifest phenomena from obscure ones. Anusarwan,
very wide circulation. Therefore, he said, he "codified history in in sp ite of his exem plary conduct, used to read the books of the
a fine and easily understandable manner. It m ight thus reach all ancients and tried to learn their stories and to follow their example.
classes of people; endure in the passing of days and years; be Thus, one cannot do w ithout history. The occupation with it and the
spoken of and be preserved in the heart; become a memento and literary fixation and transmission of histor(ical material) are neces
incentive to undertake something similar (to the things m entioned sary, One m ust, however, beware of expansions (of the transm itted
in historical works) in every place and a t every tim e; and stress material) and of stabs in the dark H istory should be treated in
the truth of the w idely known adage: E very line which is not accordance w ith the afore-mentioned (principles, enumerated in a
w ritten down on paper is lost, and every secret which passes the previous passage of a l-K a fiy a jis work). Consider the following
two (hps) is no longer a secret. ^ "H isto ry is an im portant subject. statem ent from the writings of one of the proph ets: An intelligent
It is welcom ed b y all. In a well-organized manner it contains ideas person should apply himself to his affairs, know the people of his
time, and w atch his tongue.^ In this respect, Muhammad said:
1 Cf. also above, p. 288, and below, p. 320. Guard this (the tongue) w ell! "Verses of the Q uran: The
2 See above, p. 245 ff.
A l-K a fiy a ji, below , p. 547. T h e rem ark about Su laym au and the ant refers to Q ur an 'Cf. Q u r an x v iii 22 (21 FI.).
x x v ii 18 f. (18 f. FI.). ^ The prophet from, whose w ritin gs the quotation was derived was Ibrahim , according
A l-K a fiy a ji below, p. 556. For the adage of keeping secrets, cf. the verse of Q ays b. to al-K afiya ji.
al-H atim , Diwdn, No. 12, line i K o w a l s k i (Leipzig 1914). Cf. Concordance, V I, 26a, 11. 2 and 24. A l-K a fiy a ji, below , p. 578 f.
320 AS-SAH AW IS I'LAN
TRANSLATION 321

thoughtful have found instruction in their stories; it was not an after they themselves were dead.^ In addition, history imparts
invented story but a verification of the facts before him, a specifica instruction to the receptive, serious advice to the thoughtful, an
tion of everything, a guidance, and m ercy for faithful people. acquaintance w ith the men of the past, and the realization that
W e shall tel] you the most beautiful story in that we revealed to the inhabitants of this world are engaged in a journey. The great
you this chapter. ^ Am ong them, there are those about whom importance and instructiveness of the annalistic fixation of history
we told you, and those about whom we did not tell yo u . We were in the m ind of Um ar and the men around M uhammad when
shall tell you all the stories of the messengers (of old) through which th ey invented the era (te'n/i). The author then quoted the short
we shall steady your heart. ^ The quotation (from al-K M iyaji) statem ent of his teacher, al-Maqrizi, which we have mentioned
has been slightly rearranged.
above following the long one.^
Our colleague, from whom we have also learned much, the There ^ were other historians, among them A bu A li Ahm ad
expert and auth ority (in the religious sciences), Najm -ad-din U m ar b. Muhammad b. Y a 'q u b ar-R azi M iskawayh who said th at his
b. Fahd al-Hasim i al-Makki, made the following statem ent in the critical investigation of the historical inform ation [ahhdr) about
introduction of the Durr al-kamin hi-dayl al-"Iqd at-tamin f i ta'rih nations and the biographies of kings and his stud y of the historical
al-halad al-amin, a supplement to the w ork of his teacher, the inform ation about countries and of the works on history [tawdrih]
hadit expert Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi:^ H istory is a good and useful gave him a useful experience in m atters th at will alw ays repeat
branch of learning. It is earnest advice th at is firm and constant. themselves and in a similar form can alw ays be expected to recur.
H istory teaches later generations the conditions [ahwdl) of those He, therefore, composed the four-volume Tajdrib [Experiences]
of the past. W ithout history, they would not be known. No distinc al-uniam wa- "-awdqih al-kimam.^ A supplement to it was written b y
tion could be made between scholars and ignorant men. A t all the wazh al-hadratayn, A bu S u ja M uhammad b. al-Husayn b.
times, people have been in agreement concerning (the value of)
A bdallah al-BagdM i.^
history and have written all kinds of historical works. It was said A nother (historian) was A bii 1-F ath Ahm ad b. M utarrif al-
that God revealed in the Torah a special book containing (informa Kinani. He said th at he extracted (?) from his works a monograph
tion about) the conditions [ahwdl) of past peoples and the respective
on specific clearly established historical dates [tawdrih], things
length of their lifetime, as well as an exposition of their
which (religious) scholars should know well and should not be
genealogical relationships. ^The author then quoted the rem arks of ignorant of and which are needed b y scholars who occupy them
Ibn al-Akfani in the Durr an-nazim,^ and those of Izz-ad-din al- selves with the (history of) religions and biography and b y all
H anbali in his Fatwd.^
those who know the vicissitudes of time.
Najm -ad-din further said in the introduction {huthah) of his book A nother (historian) was A bii 1-H usayn A li b. A hm ad as-Sallam i.
on the history [hawddit) of Mecca entitled Ithdf al-ward bi-ahhdr
Umm al-Qurd\ There can be no doubt about the great value
1 Cf. IHdn, 30, above, p. 308, and iHdn, 44, below, p. 330.
and im portance of history. It is useful to study the events of Cf. above, p. 316 f.
(past) times, the biographies [siyar) of people, and the historical 3 Th e follow ing quotations, down to p. 325, m ay be indirect ones.
Cf. the in troduction of M iskaw ayh s (d. 421/1030, cf. G A L , I, 342 f.) work.
inform ation about them which tim e peim itted to live on (39) ^ D. 488/1095 (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 583; Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, I X , 90-94).
He m ay be identical w ith the w riter who died in 413/1022-23, cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, V, 63 f.
(Cairo = II, 1 1 5 ! . M a r g o l i o u t h ) .
He lived around 950, cf. G A L Supplement, I, 571, to be supplem ented through W .
^ Q ur an xii i i i ( m FI.) and xii 3 (3 TL), from a l-K a fiya ji, below , p . 553.
B a r t h o l d , Turkestan doivn to the Mongol Invasion, 11 and 21 (London 1928, E . J . W. Gibb
^ Q u r an xl 78 (78 FI.) and xi 120 (121 FI.), from, a l-K a fiy a ji, below, p. 561 f.
M em. Series, N .S . 5). B a r t h o l d recognized as-Sallam i as the source of the relevan t sections
3 M uh am m adb. A hm ad, 775-832/1373-1429 (cf. G A L , II, 172 f.). For Ibn Fahd, cf. above,
of al-G ardizi, Zayn al-aJjbdr (cf. M. N a z i m s edition of the sections on the B u n d s, Sam anids,
p. 316, n. 7-
and C azn aw id s, Berhn 1928, E. G. Browne Mem. Series, i), and Ibn al-A tir, Kdm il.
Cf. I^lan, 16, above, p. 288.
Cf. above, p. 307. Th e correct form of his nam,e is A b u 'A li al-H usayn b. A hm ad as-Sallam i. A l-B a y h a q i,
Ta^rih-i-Bayhaq, 154 (Teheran 1317), quotes the historian himself for the form of his nisbah
* A hm ad b. Ibrahim al-K inan i, d. 876/1471 (cf. G A L , II, 57). Th e reference is to the
as-Sallam i w ith two /s. At-Ta'^^libi, Yatiniat ad-dahr, IV , 29 (Dam ascus 1304), has m erely
fatu'd quoted below , pp. 345-47.
A b u 'A li as-Sallam i, b u t the full form also appears in Y a q u t, Irsdd, III, 16 (Cairo = I,

R o sen th al , History of Muslim Historiography 21


322 a s-s a h A w I s i 'l a n TRANSLATION 323

E xcerpts from his History {ahhdr) of the Governors of Hurdsdn were In this connection, some verses m ay be quoted. T h ey were addressed
made b y the hadit expert Jam al-ad-din A b u 1-Mahasin al-Y ag- to a postm aster general (an office which at the same time was that
m uri.i From w hat he wrote, I am quoting as follows: There are of chief of the intelligence service) whose girl had gone out, osten
m any different sorts and kinds and m ethods of learning. E veryb od y sibly in order to take a bath, in fact, however, in order to visit a
who is considered educated should choose one field, in which friend of hers about whom he knew nothing;
he should compete w ith others and (try to) gain distinction. One
N u m said: I ll take a bath, and cheated you.
of the principal branches of learning is history. H istory leads to
Her w ay led her into her lovers arms.^
the acquaintance w ith the great men of all times. It explains the
events, the news, and influential occurrences that happened at all W hat happens in your own home is concealed to you.
times. H istory gives the student a knowledge of the dates of ori How, then, can you control postal affairs?
gins and of the details of the hves of great men of all times and
The same idea is expressed in the verses of Ibn Harmah:^
periods. H istorical knowledge is a safeguard against m istakes and
against the accusation of having made m istakes in statem ents H ow could I refrain from being
about great men. People can be observed telhng things whose dates generous as the noblest are!
th ey do not know. E vents are dated either too early or (40) too late. H ow could I strike w ith m y own hand
This applies especially to the people of Hurasan. Y et, Hurasanians, fhnts from which no fire comes!
more than others, had a hand in m any im portant events. ^ It is,
tw ould mean being like an ostrich
(therefore,) the du ty of Hurasanian scholars to know and to preserve
who, deserting her own eggs,
the history {anbd^ ay yam) of their country and its amirs. N othing
Hatches underneath her wings the
could be more disgraceful for them than to ignore the history
eggs another ostrich laid.
{ahhdr) of their own country, while, perhaps, th ey m ay be engaged
in the study of the history of other countries. T h at would be like This is said to be a sign of the enormous stupidity of the ostrich.
fulfilling supererogatory duties instead of the obligatory ones. There even is a proverb: More stupid than an ostrich. ^ A n
ostrich often leaves her eggs while she looks for food. Coming
118 M a r g o l i o u t h ) . Of. also W . B a r t h o l d , in Orientalistische Studien Th. Ndldeke, I,
174 f. (Giessen 1906); G. B e r g s t r a s s e r , in Z D M G , L X V , 803 ( i g n ) ; at-T aw hidi, Ahldq upon the eggs of another ostrich, she hatches them and neglects
al-waztrayn, 403 I b n T a w i t a t - T a n j i (Dam ascus 1385/1965). her own eggs, so th at th ey perish. (This habit of) the ostrich gave
Of as-Sallam is other works, only his N utaf at-turaf (al-B ayhaqi: an-nutaf wa-t-turaf)
is som etimes quoted, of. a t-T a 'alib i, Tim dr al-qulub, 487 (Cairo 1326/1908); idetn, an- rise to the expression: Country that is, desert egg. A r -R a i ^
Nihdyah f i t-ta'-rtd, 47 (Mecca 1301); Y a q u t, Irsdd (see G. B e r g s t r a s s e r , D ie Quellen von said:
Jdqut's Irsdd, in Zeitschrift fu r Sem itistik, I I, 205, 1924); idem, Mu'^jam, IV , 203, W u s t e n -
f e l d ; al-(ju zuli, Matdli'-, I, 12 (Cairo 1299-1300).
Q udaah disclaims any relationship with you.
T he passage from the M u -jam was adduced b y E . S a c h a u in connection w ith a S alam i
who is quoted b y al-Biriini, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 332 (Leipzig 1878, 1923). The Ms. Istanbul A nd so do the tw ain sons of Nizar. Y ou are a country egg.
^Umum.i 4667, pp. 370 and 372, shows th at as-Salam is w ork was entitled Kitdb at-Ta^rth
and dealt w ith dates concerning M uham m ad and the b irth d a y of al-H asan (al-Husayn) 1 For the situation , cf. also F. R o s e n t h a l , Ahmad b. at-Tayyib as-Sarahsi, 96 (New
b. ^Ali. It would be tem pting to ascribe this History (Chronology) to the author of the H aven 1943, American Oriental Series, 26).
History of the Governors of Hurdsdn, but as long as there is no more positive evidence for an 2 Ibrahim b. H arm ah, eighth cen tury (cf. O. R e s c h e r , Abriss der arabischen Litieratur-
identification than the id en tity of a not uncom,mon nisbah, this is very uncertain. T B , X , geschichte, I, 296 f., K on stan tin opel-P era 1925). For the verses, cf., for instance, A b u A hm ad
148 f., has a hadit scholar, historian, and poet as-Salam i, A b u 1-Hasan 'A b d allah b. Musa al-'Askari, M asun, 110 ^ A b d - a s - S a l a m M. H a r u n (K u w ait i960); A b u H ilal al-'Askari,
(d. 374/984). He could be the Salam i of al-Biruni, who, how ever, m ight have been an Sind^atavn, 109 (Cairo 1320); Ibn Q u tayb ah , Ma^dnt as-si^r, I, 213, 359 (H yderabad
astronom er. 1368/1949); Lisd n al-^Arab, III , 326 (Bulaq 1300-8).
The quotation, which is om itted in Ms. Leiden, m ay have stopped w ith the facetious => A n illustration of the proverb m ay be seen in O. L o f g r e n , Ambrosian fragments of
verses, below, p. 323, b u t it could also have included the verses of the three ancient poets. an illuminated manuscript containing the Zoology of al-Gdhiz, pi. X \ I (U ppsala-Leipzig
1 \ usuf b. A hm ad, d. 673/1274-75 (cf. ad-D ahabi, History of Islam, Bodleian ms. or. 1946, Uppsala Univ. Arsskrift, 1945, 5).
Laud. 279, fol. 80a, and R . S e l l h e i m , in the introduction to his edition of the K ur al-qabas * 'A bid ( U b a yd ?) b. H usayn, a seven th-cen tury poet (cf. O. R e s c h e r , op. cit.. I, 166 f.),
[below, p. 422, n. 7]). See also IHdn, 126, below, p. 467. F or the verses, cf. at-Ta"alibi, Tim dr al-qulub, 392 (Cairo 1326/1908); Lisdn al-^Arab,
The first al-wdpb of the te x t m ust be replaced b y some word m eaning e v e n t. V I I I , 394 (Bulaq 1300-8).
324 A S-SA H A W lS I ' l A n TRANSLATION 325

The expression: Y ou are a country egg, signifies th at neither entertainm ent, in order to be strengthened for the tru th . This
th ey them selves nor their father were (of) known (origin), just as is the end of the quotation from al-Misri. (His remarks are) em
it is not known (which ostrich laid) the eggs found neglected in phasized b y the further aspects of the usefulness of history reported
the desert. Such an egg is called tankah, in the sense of the passive b y us.
participle (deserted), pi. tardHk. A l- A sa ^ said: Another (historian) was a scholar whom A bu 1- A bbas al-M ayu-
raqi credits w ith rehgiosity and learning. He said: The occupation
Y a h m a a desert where wild asses stray
w ith the dissemination of historical inform ation {ahbdr) about
A nd where fine (ostrich) eggs deserted lie.
the outstanding men of the age, even if it is concerned (only)
Another (historian) was al-Misri, the author of the Book of the w ith the dates of their lives {tawdrih), indicates a state of happiness
Two Dynasties, entitles Zuhrat al-'-uyun wa-jaW al-quluh.^ He said in this world and in the other world. These men are Gods witnesses
in this book: H istorical and related inform ation is a sure guide to on earth. If th ey are hated, it is because of a hatred of God. L oving
the most im portant m atters and the noblest character quahties God is loving them. The hatred of evildoers indicates th at God
(41) and actions. It is a deterrent to meanness and ughness, a
hates them.
challenge to (exercise a) correct adm inistration, good judgm ent, and M ay God show m ercy and kindness to these men, whether they
smooth policies, and an enlightenment for the educated, a memento liv ed in the past or in recent years, and m ay He bless them and
for sm art people, for all others an education, and a recreation for
forgive them . ^
kings. H istory enlivens gatherings in serious and humorous m atters. Other (historians) were our teachers al-QayM ,^ Ibn H ajar,
H istorical exam ples clarify arguments. H istory helps one to achieve a l-A y n i ,3 Ibn ad-Dayri,^ and Tzz-ad-din al-Hanbali, whose state
very easily w hat he wants. It gives the student a m astery of the m ents I shall report later on in a separate paragraph. ^
affairs (of the past) as if he had seen them with his own eyes. A li In fact, all the authors of historical works or representatives of
said: H earts are fatigued just as bodies are. Therefore, procure personality criticism, m an y of whom I shall discuss, would not have
for them choice bits of wisdom . ^ A good book can take the place bothered w ith (history) if th ey had not known its usefulness in this
of friend, storyteller, and companion. It is a help for the thoughtful world and in the other world. It is clear th at history leads to the
and a memento for the educated. It is stated on the auth ority of acquaintance w ith most m atters of relevance. Professor A bu
Ibn A bbas th at he used to say when his companions entered into 1-Qasim al-Junayd said th at stories are one of G ods armies through
a conversation after (the occupation with) the Q uran and its which H e steadies the hearts of His saints. Abked about the basis
interpretation: Ahmidu, th at is, ta lk about poetry and other for this statem ent, he quoted the verse of the Q ur an: W e shall
things.^ A tradition of some (au th ority): Hearts get rusty, just tell you all the stories of the messengers (of old) through which we
as iron does. Therefore, polish them w ith the m em ory (of G od). shall steady your h eart.
A tradition of A bu d-D arda :I refresh m y heart w ith some light The annalistic fixation of history is useful (42) in m any respects.
' M aym un b. Q ays (cf. G A L , I, 37), Dtwdn, 65, No. 1 1 , verse 5 G e y e r (London 1928, It shows the period of the va lid ity of privileges, the changes in
E . J . W. Gibb M em. Series, N .S . 6). In the Dtwdn, as w ell as in Lisdn al-'^Arab, X I I ,
286 (Bulaq 1300-8), the te x t of the first hem istich differs considerably from the te x t of the
IHdn.
Cf. G A L Supplement I, 587; IHdn, 159, below , p. 5 1 1 , from al-M as'udi. 1 It is n ot clear w hether the last paragraph belongs to the quotation, or is an addition
Cf. K a h j al-baldgah, II, 181 (Cairo, n .y .) ; al-K ulini, K d ft (ch. on fadilat al-Hlm) ; al-JMiiz, b y as-Sahaw i.
M ufdharat al-jaudri iva-l-gilmdn, 9 P e l l a t (B eirut 1957), in the nam e of as-Sa'^bi; Ibn ^Abd- ^ M uham m ad b. 'A li, 785-850/1383 (i384)-i446 (cf. Daw^, V I I I , 212-14).
al-B arr, Jdmi'- baydn al-Hlm, I, 105 (Cairo, n .y.); Ibn al-Jaw zi, Ahbdr al-hamqd, 10 f. (Cairo ^ M ah m M b. A hm ad, 762-855/1361-1451 (cf. G A L , II, 52 f.).
1347); A hm ad b. M uham m ad a l-A s^ari, Luhh al-lubdb, beg. (Ms. or. Princeton 242 = 366B); * Sa'^d b. M uham m ad, 766 (767, 768)-867/i367-i463 (Jan. ist) (G A L Supplement, II,
F. R o s e n t h a l , Humor in Early Islam, 5 (Leiden 1956). 144; Daw^, I II , 253).
^ Cf. Lisdn al-^Arab, V II I , 410 (Bulaq 1300-8). IHdn, 54 ff., below , pp. 343-47.
^ Cf. T B , X I, 85; Ibn 'A ra b i, al-Futuhdt al-M akkiyah, I, 91 (Cairo 1329/1911). T h e fam ous m ystic, al-J u n ayd b. M uham m ad, d. 298/910-T1 (cf. G A L , I, 199; A . H.
A b u d -D ard a (^Uwaymir b. Zayd), d. about 34/654-55 (al-Buhari, T a M h , IV , i, 76 f.). A b d e l - K a d e r , The L ife, Personality and Writings of al-Junayd [London 1962, E . J. W.
Cf. al-H usri, Zahr al-dddb, I, 157 (Cairo T305, in the m argin of the '^Iqd). A slightly different Gibb Memorial Series, N .S ., 22]).
version appears in al-Jahiz, Buhald^, 170 (Cairo 1948); idem, Mufdkarah, loc. cit. Q u r an xi 120 (121 FI.).
326 A S-SA H A W lS I LAN TRANSLATION 32 7

coinage, and the term s of waqf donations.^ Furthermore, it makes There must alw ays be someone who wishes to learn, to investigate,
the student acquainted with the best generations {qarn), as indi and to be enlightened. M ay God give us an understanding heart
cated in the following statem ent of M uhamm ad: The best people and a truthful, inquisitive tongue. M ay H e help us to speak and
are m y generation; then, those who im m ediately follow (my gen act righteously, and m ay He, at the end, grant us the desired
eration) ; then, those who im m ediately follow (that second gen (reward in the other world)
eration). 2 Using this (him = M uhamm ad?) as guidance dis Hereafter, we s a y : W e have mentioned th at the merits of history
tinguishes a person from all others, even if in practical details are innumerable. B u t, in addition, th ey do not only concern (re
he does not live up to all requirements,^ and the m erit, therefore, ligious) scholars. (All) learned and intelligent men share w ith the
results from the consideration of the whole picture. (Annalistic speciahsts in the exploitation of the precious jewels of h istorys
historiography is also useful in that) it shows the end of the period mine. N ot only scholars but also others such as kings and courtiers
of the first four caliphs whose exam ple we are to follow. It clarifies are desirous to know history. The com pany of historians is
the dates of (religious) innovations and news {hawddit). There are sought b y m ystics (?) and debaters. A ll of them go to read his
m an y more aspects to the usefulness of history than can be enu torical works or to attend (the lectures of) historians. T h ey show
m erated. In the words of a l-'A yn i, which will be quoted below: their respect for historians b y referring to them, even regarding the
T he instructive aspects of history would fill volum es. ^ most obvious and simplest m atters. W henever the great and original
H istory, then, creates a desire (for good actions) and a fear scholar Taqi-ad-din b. D aqiq-al-id ^ was tired after his lectures, he
(of evil deeds). It engenders energy (to do good deeds) and stim ulates said to his pupil, the hadit expert Ibn Sayyid-an-nas;^ O Sayh
im itation. It im parts earnest advice and instruction. It gives com Fath-ad-din, entertain us with the biographies of those m asters.
fort and consolation, counsel and success. It m akes one feel ill and According to a story of unproven authenticity, Judge (43) A bu
(at another time) healthy. These effects (of the study of history) Yusuf, notw ithstanding his great knowledge (in religious matters),
cannot be nulhfied b y the lim ited num beis of those who care to was an expert in the stories of the raids and b attle days of the
learn its lessons. This situation reminds one of the following verses Arabs, and similar historical facts. He once went to attend, or give,
b y an ancient poet: lectures on the b attle days, and for some days his regular sessions
were disorganized. W hen he (finally) came, someone asked him:
H ad you called one of the living. W ho was the standard-bearer of G o h a th ? A bu Y usu f realized
He would hear your call. th at he was being teased. He got angry and replied: Y o u better
B u t the m an whom you are calling refrain from such remarks, or I shall ask you in front of everybody
Has no hfe at all. about the first rencontre at Badr or Uhud. Y o u would not know
that, although it is one of the easiest historical questions.
B low into the fire and w atch how
B right its glow will be.
71 (Cairo, n. y. [1954]); M iskaw ayh, Jdwiddn Hirad, ed. B a d a w i , intro, p. 6 i (Cairo 1952).
Y o u blow into ashes. Surely, In connection with the quotation of the verses in the Arabskiy Anonim X I veka, 186, n. 479
(Moscow i960), P. A . G r y a z n e v i c i i refers, am ong other sources, to the Dtwdn of K u ta y y ir.
No fire you w ill see. Agdni, X I I I , 153 (Bulaq 1285), and as-Safadi, al-6ayt al-musajjam, II, 70 (Cairo 1305),
ascribe the verses to 'A b d -a r-R ah m an b. al-H akam {GAL Supplement I, 84), whereas ar-
^ Cf. IHdn, 44, below , p. 329. R agib al-Isfahani, Muhddardt, I, 345 (Cairo 1287), speaks of Bassar b. Burd.
2 Cf. Concordance, II, 96b. Cf. al-H atib al-B agdadi, K ifdyah, 47 (H yderabad 1357); 1 M uham m ad b. 'A ll, 625-702/1228-1302 (cf. G A L , II, 63).
al-H um aydi, Jadw'at al-Muqtabis, Bodleian ms. or. H unt. 464, fol. 2 b. * Fath-ad-din M uham m ad b. M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, 671-734/1273-1334 (cf. G A L ,
3 O r: even if some individuals, in practice, do not , . . (? ) . I I , 71 f.). A ccording to Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 210, Ibn Daqiq-al-'-id, in class, relied upon
^ IHdn, 55, below , p. 345. the biographical knowledge of Ibn Sayyid-an-nas, w henever the need arose. For historical
^ Cf. a l-K a fiy a ji, above, p. 251. works in the lib rary of Ibn Sayyid-an-nas, cf. a l-K u tu b i, Fawdt, II, 345 (Cairo 1951).
Cf. at-T ab ari, II, 930; Ibu Bassam , Dahirah, I, i, 115 (Cairo 1939); Ibn ^Abd-al-Barr, T he fam ous H anafite Y a 'q u b b. Ibrahim , d. 182/798 (cf. G A L , I, 171). For his historical
Jdmi'^ baydn al-Hlm, II, 173 (Cairo, n .y .); W . P o p p e r , History of Egypt, trans. Ibn Taghrt know ledge, cf. T B , X I V , 246 f. T h is is indeed a strange story to tell about a person of the
B irdi, V I, i i i (B erkeley and Los A ngeles i960); ' ^ A b d - a s - S a t t a r A . F a r r a j , Ahbdr Juhd, second/eighth century.
328 AS-SAHAW IS I LAN TR A N SLA T IO N 329

The Am ir Sanjar ad-D aw adari ^ happened to ask the hadit expert an excellent and great am ir and a student of mme, kindly asked
araf-ad-din ad-Dimyati,^ who certainly was a great scholar, about me to do for az-Zahir Husqadam ^ w hat a l-A yn i had done for
the date of the death of al-Buhari, and ad-D im yati just was not others. However, I did not com ply w ith his wish. The Daw'M ar
able to produce the answer. Then, Ibn Sayyid-an-nas came, and after him, Y asb ak min Mahdi Azim-ad-dawlah,^ who had consider
Sanjar asked him the same question. Ibn Sayyid-an-nas answered able taste especially in this respect, (later on) asked me (44) to
it right away, w hereby he greatly gained in the esteem of Sanjar and w rite for him a supplement to al-M aqrizis Suluk. A fter much
was given a position of greater honor at the court. dehberation and consultation, I com plied w ith his request and
Judge Jalal-ad-din al-Bulqini once w ent out and told one of compiled the Tihr al-masbuk. Y asb a k was very h appy w ith the work.
his com pany in public to go to Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi and ask him He took (the parts) that had reached him along w ith him on his
about some historical question. This was a great honor for al- travels. H e made his com pany read the book and showed how
Maqrizi coming from a scholar of such standing. An even greater proud he was of it to courtiers, chiefs, and even more highly placed
honor was Ibn Ha ja r s repeated visits to Taqi-ad-din. He went to persons, who were interested in being praised and gaining for
his home, in order to converse w ith him, although al-Maqrizi owed themselves a good m em ory and who would draw to themselves
much in scholarly m atters to^ Ibn H ajar. B oth had good reasons those who, th ey suspected, would report on them in detail (in
for w hat they did. histories ?). A ll this is a thing of the past. Nothing now remains but
Ibn H ajar told us th at az-Zahir T atar had told him th a t the night stupidity, boorishness, and an interest in w orldly trifles.
al-M ua yy a d died, he (az-Zahir) was financially in a v ery tight In the introduction of the Tibr, I made the following remarks:
spot. He did not even have five dinars to p ay a m an for the food "H isto ry forms part of the science of Prophetical traditions. The
he brought him, and he had nobody to lend him th at much. Y e t, occupation with it, according to correct and sober methods, is an
az-Zahir succeeded faster than any one else in becoming ruler of honor and a pleasure. H istory occupies an im portant position in
the realm and its treasures. Az-Zahir then ordered Ibn H ajar to religio(us scholarship). It definitely is useful for the religious law.
insert this rem arkable story in his history.^ A s this is well known, no further explanation is needed. H istory
Our teacher Badr-ad-din a l-A yn i used to lecture on history enables great scholars to tell abrogated (traditions) from those
and related subjects before al-Asraf B arsb ay and others. (His th at took their place. It exposes fraudulent claims of personal
lectures impressed) al-Asraf so m uch th at he made something like acquaintance as well as irregularities in the chains of transm itters
the following statem ent; Islam is known only through h im . b y showing, for instance, th at a transm itters alleged authority
A l-A yn i and others, such as Ibn Nahid and others, com piled died before the transm itter himself was born, th at his authority
biographies for (of) the kings (the Mamhik rulers of E gyp t), since became deranged or confused, or never left his place which, in turn,
th ey knew th at th ey liked to have it done. the transm itter never visited. H istory, correctly applied and under
The elder D awadar, the jurist Y asb a k al-M u"ayyadi, who was stood, also serves to preserve (the knowledge of) genealogical lines
which determine the degrees of relationship, the shares of inherit
^ D. 699/1299-1300 (ad-Dahabi, Duwal, II, 156, second edition, H yd erab ad 1364).
T he Mam,luk title dawdddr corresponds approxim ately to M inister of the Interior. ance, and all m atrim onial equality.^ H istory also serves to indicate
^ 'A b d -a l-M u W n b. H alaf, 613-705/1217-1306 (cf. G A L , II, 73 f.; G . V a j d a , in E l , 2nd the period of the va lid ity of privileges, the changes in coinage, and
ed., s.v. al-D irnyati). Muhamrnad b. Ism a 'il al-B u h an , d. 256/870 (cf. G A L , I, 157 ff.).
^ O r; had freq u en tly atten d ed the classes of . . . ? . the stipulated terms of waqf documents.* Furthermore, it is useful
A l-M u a y y a d died a t the beginning, and T a ta r near the end of 824/1421. The story is also for the study of the inform ation {ahhdr) about (rehgious) scholars,
quoted in Datej^, IV , 8.
Cf. Ibn Tagrib irdi, N ujiim , V I, 774 f. P o p p e r (B erkeley 1 9 1 5 ff., trans. b y the sanae, ^ D. 872/1467 I l l , 175 f.).
History of Egypt, IV , 1 5 7 f., B erkeley and Los A ngeles 195 8): W ithout Judge a l-'A y n i, we * D. 885/1480 {Datv^, X , 272-74; M. W e i s w e i l e r , Der islamische Bucheinband des Mittel-
would not be a good Muslim, and would n ot know how to h an d le the realm . T h is shows th at alters, 83 [W iesbaden 1962]). A n oth er m anuscript from his lib ra ry is a philosophical w ork
the pronoun in the te xt of the IHdn refers to him, (al-'A yn i), and not to h isto ry . b y Ibn Sab'^in, in the Istan bul m anuscript B agdath Vehbi E f. 833.
M uham m ad b. N ahid, w ho died in 841/1438 (Daw^, X , 67), wrote a b iograp h y of al- F or a brief stu d y of kafd^ah, see F. J. Z i a d e h , in The American Journal o f Comparative
Mu^ayyad.
Law, Ml, 503-17 (1957).
Y a s b a k min Salm an Sah, d. 878/1473 (Daw^, X , 270-72). Cf. above, p. 325 f.
330 AS-SA H A W is I l A n TRANSLATION 331

ascetics, outstanding men, caliphs, kings, amirs, and nobles, as well SaJiih, whose chapters he wrote alternately at M uhamm ads grave
as for the study of their biographies, their achievem ents in and the pulpit (of the Mosque of Medina) and for each of which he
war and peace, their virtues and vices which time perm itted to live prayed two rak'-ahs.^ (Even disregarding this fact,) I would say
on after their n ovelty had worn off and the men themselves were th at the equal im portance of history and the science of traditions
dead.i Their good activities will be im itated. F acts about them th at is obvious. H istory alone decides (the accuracy and significance of)
are repulsive to critical minds will not be hstened to. (Historical traditions.
works with) their useful exhortations and instructive anecdotes, Moreover, history im parts inform ation which rather belongs to
their scholarly research problems, and their poems, which constitute other fields of learning, such as political science which is concerned
the m ain m aterial for literary disciplines such as lexicography, w ith the different types of governm ent, political leadership, and
semantics,^ and the A rabic language, offer constructive recreation social organizations, the ideal ones and the corrupt ones, and related
for curious souls. Therefore, quite a few (45) qualified legal authori (m atters); or ethics which deals with the various virtues and vices
ties have stated th at (the study of) history is a com m unity d u ty and the possibilities of their acquisition and avoid an ce; or econom
which, however, comes close to the higher status of an individual ics which deals w ith the proper relationship between the husband
duty, since its fulfilm ent defends others against (possible) accusa and his wife, children, and servants.
tions leveled against them. Indeed, history has often been the ju rists W e have heard th at one of the boon-companions of al-Asraf
only and specific means to show him who was in the clear. In ad B arsb ay praised the latter because, w ith the construction of a
dition, it is part of his field and belongs to his required subjects of college in Cairo, in the desert, and in the Hanqah, etc.,^ he had done
study.^ I know of excellent poems in praise of history. I like more for the jurists than m any of his predecessors. A l-Asraf B arsbay
m any of the verses which show the desirability of an unrelenting oc replied: Since the jurists of our predecessors did not ^ agree with
cupation w ith history. The clearest are those of Judge al-Arrajani.^ them, they did little for them. Our jurists, on the other hand, do
T h ey are original both in form and in contents: not contradict us. Therefore, the least we can do for them is to
provide them with such w orldly trifles. Those times are gone.
A man who knows the record of the past
Nowadays, there still are agreement (46) and subservience but no
Seems to have alw ays Jived, since time began.
more w orldly trifles. ^ The rulers of tod ay even try to infringe
upon the income that was prepared for the jurists b y their predeces
His hfe will last as long as time will last,
sors.
For he preserved the noble deeds of man.
Tw o additional notes:
I ^Izz-ad-din b. Jama'^ah said: One m ust know, though it is difficult, the
The good and kind and men of knowledge vast difference betw een (annalistic) histor(iography) and tabaqdt (historiography), and
For ever live. Gain thus lifes longest span. ^ the difference in the ob ject and purpose of the tw o kinds (of historiography). I am
con vinced , he said, th at essentially both are the same, b u t in the m anner of presen
tation the difference betw een them becomes n oticeable. I sa y: T h ey are identical,
It is an indication of the im portance of history that al-Buhari and su perficially different. B oth agree on the use of transm itters. The difference is
composed his History in Medina at M uham m ads grave. He wrote th at (annalistic) histor(iography) is concerned w ith events, while tabaqdt (historiography

it in m oonlit nights. He put the History on the same level as the 1 T B , II, 9 shows th at in the relative clause, the reference cannot be to the biographies
of the Ta'^rth, as one m ight exp ect, but to the chapters of the Saluh.
^ Cf. above, p. 320 f. 2 The reference is to the College of B arsb ay, his m ausoleum in the desert, and his mosque
^ F or al-ma'^dm, cf. Ibn H aldun, Muqaddimah, trails. F. R o sen th al, I I I , 399 in the H anqah Siryaqus, w ell-know n m onum ents of a n tiq u ity in the Cairo of today. Cf.
(New Y o rk 1958). Daw^, III , 9. The anonym ous boon-com panion was, according to the Daw^, the historian
^ Th e parenthetic passage is n ot found hi the Tibr and is alm ost certain to be an addition a l-'A yiii.
in the I'-ldn, and not one of the m any omissions in the edition of the Tibr. Th e negation is on iitted in the edition of the T)ait<^.
A h m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 5 4 4 / 1 1 4 9 - 5 0 (ef. G A L , I, 253 f.). T h e verses are quoted b y * The A rab ic te x t here has a p la y on words.
as-Safadi, W dfi, I, 4 R i t t e r . T he first verse also appears in Ibn a d - D a y b a S Bugyat al- He w ould be ^Abd-al-'Aziz b. M uham m ad (d. 767/1366, cf. G A L , II, 72) rather than
mustafid, Ms. Cairo T a rih i im , fol. la . M uham m ad b. A b i B akr (d. 819/1416, cf. G A L , II, 94).
^ A s-Sahaw i, Tibr, 2 f. (BCilaq 1315). Som ew hat more litera lly: w ith regard to w hat is considered.
332 A S-SA H A W lS I LAN TRANSLATION 333

does not observe the chronological sequence of events, but) if, for instance, a person
acquainted w ith the abrogation and substitution of traditions;
who participated in the b attle of B adr died later than sonieone who did not participate
in it, he w ould, in a tabaqdt work, still have to be m entioned before. T h is is the under and to learn about genealogical relationships which determine
ly in g principle. H ow ever, most la ter authors of, for instance, Tabaqdt of S afi'ites
h ereditary succession and all m atrim onial equality. This is the
deviated from it. W ithin each tahaqah, th ey paid atten tion to the p ro xim ity of the
dates of death (of the scholars mentioned). I t happens often th at someone in a tahaqah reason w hy some scholar has declared th at it is history which
is lum ped together^ w ith those m entioned in it because he died early, even if his scholar determines (under which of) the five degrees of classification
ly career was less significant than theirs (as he had a later sta rt and m ore recent
teachers). A recent author distinguished betw een (annalistic) and tabaqdt histor(iogra- (something falls). Quite a few scholars have declared th at history is a
phy) b y saying, th at the former is concerned essentially w ith the dates of the birth com m unity duty. Another scholar has stated th at history is a m ust.
and the death (of scholars and great men), and on ly in cid en tally w ith conditions
[ahwdl), while w ith the la tte r it was ju st the opposite. H ow ever, the first opinion is the However, not all of them ^ belong exclusively to the necessary
m ore lik e ly one. category. Depending on rank and transmission, part of them belong
2 For he who d ied, one has the choice betw een the passive participle mutaivaffd
and the active participle mutawafft. Mutawafft is he who com pletes the duration of to the desirable category. H istory is (also) often applied to the per
his life. T h is explanation is based upon the verse of the Qur^an: A n d those of you
who die (yutaw affaivna.)^ according to the reading of 'A lt, which is yatawaffawna missible category.
com plete their term s. On the other hand, there is the sto ry of A b u 1-Asw ad ad- A l-H atib devoted a special chapter to the subject th at it is
Du^ali^ who w as asked b y someone at a funeral: W ho is the d eceased ? (Th at m an
necessary to expose the details of the life {ahwdl) of fraudulent
used the active participle mutawafft. Thus,) ad-Du^ali (understanding the expression
to m ean: He who takes to him self ) replied: G od . T h is is said to h ave been one of (transmitters) and to disavow them and denounce them to the
the reasons w h y 'A li ordered ad-Du^ali (to set down the rules of) gram m ar. In order
authorities. ^ H e (?) told the story of the religious leader, Ahm ad
to be able to assume th at this story (which contrasts w ith the aforem entioned rem ark
th at 'A ll considered the use of the active in the in tran sitive sense as correct) is correct, (b. Hanbal), and his preoccupation w ith history. W hen he said
one m ust think of the statem ent th at (ad-Du^ali) had to restrict him self to w h at he
good-bye to A bu A li al-Hasan b. ar-Rabi',^ he sat down w ith him,
(apparently the som eone at the funeral, or ad-Du^ali?) was able to grasp and under
stand. It w as he (apparen tly 'A li) who said: T e ll the people w hat th ey can under took out his notebooks, and asked him to tell him the date
sta n d .
*
of the death of Ibn al-Mubarak,^ which he did. Ibn al-M ubaraks
death took place in the year (1)81/797. A sked w hy he w anted to
( V T H E G O A L O F T H E O C C U P A T I O N W IT H H I S T O R Y )
know this, A hm ad said something like: 'T w ant to know about
The goal of (the occupation with) history is hope for G ods fraudulent (transm itters).
kindness. God will not fail to reward those who did something w^ell. A s was mentioned above, A bu 1-H usayn b. Faris said; E very
A ctions (are judged) (47) b y intentions.^ Muslim ought to have a v e ry thorough knowledge of the biography
of M uhammad in all its details. ^ This statem ent is confirmed b y
( v i T H E L E G A L O F C L A S S IF IC A T IO N O F H IS T O R Y ) the following rem ark: It is to be feared th at a person who does
not know the biography of Muhammad would have to reply to the
The classification of history varies.
question concerning his opinion about th at man (M uhammad):
Some of its aspects are classified as necessary, nam ely, inasmuch T do not know. I heard people say something, and I repeated it.
as history turns out to be a means to ascertain the continuity M ay God preserve us from th a t. ^A corresponding idea is expressed
and so on (of the chain of transmitters) of a tra d itio n ; to become in the statem ent th at the faith of a person who depends on w hat
1 Leg. yalt. he is told is not the right kind of faith.
^ Qur^an ii 234 (234 FI.) and 240 (241).
The following statem ent of A bu M uhammad b. Hazm, in the
^ T h e nam e of ad-Du\'ili, who supposedly died in 69/688-89 (cf. G A L , I, 42), is uncertain.
The m ost comruon form seems to be Zahm b. *^Amr, cf. Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, V I I I , 312. Mardtih al-'-ulum,^ is fu lly acceptable: Seven different branches
W ith o u t reference to ad-Du^ali, the story occurs in Ibn al-Jaw zi, Ahbdr al-hamqd, 106
(Cairo 1347/1928); as-Safadi, W dfi, I, 44 R i t t e r . For ad-Du^ali, cf. also J. F u c k , in E l ,
2nd ed., s.v. A b u 1-Asw ad al-Du^ali, and the edition of his alleged Diwdn b y M. H. A l ' A s-Sah aw i appears to think of the degrees of classification of history.
Y a s i n , Nau'ddir al-mahtiUdt, II, 5-51 (Bagdad 1373/1954), which appeared sim ultaneously ^ The reference m ay be to the H a tib s Jdmi'-.
w ith another edition of the w ork b y ' A b d - a l - K a r i m a d - D u j a v l i . D. abou t 220/835 { T B , VTI, 307).
This statem ent is attribu ted to M uham m ad in P la n , 64, below, p. 360. Cf. Concordance, ^Abdalkih b. al-M ubarak { T B , X , 152 ff.; G A L Supplement I, 256). His Kitdb ar-RaqdHq

I, 434a. exists in A lexan d ria 7314, a m anuscript from the year 466. The story appears T B , VTI, 308.
* Cf. above, p. 305, n. 2.
^ Cf. IHdn, 35, above, p. 316.
* H ardly: and the doubts concerning the co n tin u ity . ^Ali b. A hm ad, d. 456/1064 (cf. G A L , I, 399 f.). A s-S aM w i did not quote Ibn H azm
334 AS-SAH AW IS I'LAN
TRANSLATION 335

of learning are cultivated tod ay b y each nation and in every place al-M usayyab, with a chain of transm itters stopping w ith a man of
and at every tim e: The religious law, the relevant historical infor the second generation after Muhammad. A t-T abarani ^ transm itted
mation {ahbdr) this includes history , and the relevant linguistic a similar tradition, w ith a w eak chain of transm itters on the author
ity of Usam ah b. Zayd, according to which M uhammad said:
science. . . . Ibn H azm then m entioned the remaining branches of
learning, as was necessary. W hen a believer is praised, the faith in his heart grow s.
Other aspects of history are classified as forbidden. This is the
In the QawdHd, Izz-ad-din b. Abd-as-Salam ^mentioned person
a lity criticism as an exam ple of a necessary innovation, because it case w ith the well-known m aterial of m any ignorant historians
relying m ainly on (authors) who quote from the (alleged) books
serves to distinguish sound (traditions) from unsound (traditions).
of the ancients. One such book is the Mubtada^ of W^ahb b. Munab-
The fundam ental principles of the religious law im ply th at a
bih,^ whose author said: I read th irty books which were revealed
specialized knowledge of the religious law beyond a certain minimum
(which all Muslims m ust know) is a com m unity duty. Such special to th irty prophets. (He also said) that A bdallah b. Salam and,
after him, Ka'^b al-ahbar ^ were the most learned men of their
ized knowledge can come only from m atters which we have men
tioned. Tzz-ad-din thus included personality criticism among the times, and th at he collected w hat th ey knew. (The classification
innovations. This, however, is not right. (It w as practiced by) as forbidden also applies to other such) inform ation which is not
better than idle talk but which is presented w ith great assurance
M uhammad (who) said; W hat a good man is A b d allah , ^ and:
B ad is the brother of the group. ^ There are similar expressions and w ithout any reference to the fact th at it is worthless and that
it is (such) m aterial quoted from the books of the ancients. This
of the extremes of positive and negative personality criticism. (48)
applies, especially, to stories told in connection w ith the biographies
In the //a/, ad-D araqutni ^ reported the following tradition of
{siyar) of the prophets. Then, there is the inform ation about dis
Ibn al-M usayyab, on the authority of A bu Hurayrah, according to
putes among the men around Muhammad (which is also forbidden),
which Muhammad said: W hen someone among you knows
because the historical inform ants [ahhdri) who report it as a rule
something good about his friend, he shall tell it to him. This will
increase his desire to (do) good. A d-D araqutni said th at (the exaggerate and m ix things up.^
The classification of forbidden also applies to the reporting of
chain of transm itters of) this tradition was not sound on the author
meaningless and uninstructive events, which is something odious
ity of az-Zuhri.^ I t w as (also) transm itted on the auth ority of Ibn
to intelligent people. It further applies to reports about kings and
d irectly b u t through the fatwd of '^Izz-ad-diu al-K iiiaiu , cf. F. S a y y i d , iu Revue de Vlnstitut great men who are described as winebibbers and debauchers.
des M anuscrits Arabes, II, 174 (1375/1956). Cf. M. A s i n P a l a c i o s , in A l-A n dalus, I I, 51 f.
(1934), and the edition of the Mardtib (above, p. 36, n. 6), 78. Th e quotation is telescoped Those things if true are a grave matter.^ The historian (who reports
and distorted. Ibn Hazm, speaks of the religious law , history, and language of each nation
1 Sulaym an b. A hniad, d. 360/971 (cf. G A L , I, 167).
as three branches of learning th a t differ am ong the variou s nations. T h e A ra b ic suffix,
^ W ahb supposedly died in 114/732 (cf. G A L Supplement I, l o i ; a d - D u r i , Baht, 103-17,
translated above through relevan t, should refer to n ation , b u t in both the fatwd
152-58, who considers W ah b s role insignificant for the developm ent of Muslim h istoriog
and the I H d n , its o n ly possible antecedent is religious la w .
raph y). His pseudepigraphical Mubtada^ is also quoted b y an-N uw ayri, Nihdyat al-arab,
1 ^Abd-al-'^Aziz b. ^Abd-as-Salarn, d. 660/1262 (cf. G A L , I, 430 f . ; R. ^A. N a d w i , Al-^ lzz
Paris ms. ar. 1573, fol. 96b ('A b d a lla h b. al-M ubarak, in the Kitdb al-Mubtada^ on W ah b s
b. ^Abd-as-Saldm [Dam ascus i960] [not seen]). It rem ains to be seen w hether the qu otation
auth ority). W ah b s lf,rd^iliyat probab ly are only another name fo r the Mubtada^ (cf.
is from the large or the sm all Qan'dHd.
J. H o r o v i t z , in Islam ic Culture, I, 556); th ey are d irectly a ttested through a m anuscript
^ Cf. an-N aw aw i, Biographical Dictionary, 560 W u s t e n f e l d ; Ibn K a tir, Biddyah,
of the year 229/843-44, cf. C. H. B e c k e r , Pa pyri Schott-Reinhardt, I, 8 f. (H eidelberg 1906,
V II , 113, amto 21.
Veroffentlichungen cuts der Heidelbergcr Papyrus-Sammlung, 3). Cf. also M. L i d z b a r s k i ,
Cf. Concordance, I, 141a; al-Buhari, Sahth, IV , 121, 126, 142 K r e h l ; a l-H atib al-
D e propheticis, quae dicuntur, legendis arabicis (Leipzig 1893).
B agdad i, K ifdyah, 39 f. (H yderabad 1357); I'-ldn, 52, below, p. 341. This is considered one
In the beginning of the Kitdb at-Tijdn (H yderab ad 1347), which is ascribed to Ibn Hisam ,
of the basic texts ju stify in g the practice of personality criticism , cf. the fatwds published b y
W ahb is said to have read a much larger num ber of the books revealed to the prophets,
F, S a y v i d (above, p . 333, n. 6), 166, 172, 176.
nam ely ninety-three. A tradition which is repeated several times in ar-R azi s History of
* ^Ali b. 'U m ar, d. 385/995 (cf. G A L , I, 165).
San^d^ (Bodleian ms. or. 736, fol. 126b. T h e m anuscript w as w ritten in 980/1572) has
^ D . 57/676-77, o r 58.
Cf. Concordance, II, 98b, for a sim ilar tradition. n in ety-tw o, if m y notes are correct.
^ E a rly Jewish converts to Islam and transm itters of traditions of doubtful h istoricity.
M uham m ad b. Muslim b. Sihab, d. betw een 123-25/740-43 (al-Buhari, Ta^rih, I, i, 220 f.;
Ka'-b is said to have died in 32/652-53, or 34.
Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, I X , 340-48; Aiio- AL- ^\ ziz a d - D u r i , in B S O A S , X I X , 1 -1 2 [1957],
* Cf. I'-ldn, 64, below , p. 359.
and idem, B a h tfi naPat 'ihn at-ta^rih, 76-1 02, 1 4 3 - 1 5 1 [B eiru t i 9 6 0 ] ; S . a l - M u n a j j i d [ed.],
^ O r: These reports are difficult to v e rify ?
Rasd^il -wa-nusus. III , 17 ff. [B eirut 1963], cf. above, p. 130 f.).
336 AS-SAH AW is I LAN TRANSLATION 337

such stories) is wrong in either case. If the report is true, he has given perpetuated in writing. This applies to remarks such a s Such-
pubhcity to debauchery. If it is not true, he has (com mitted the sin and-such a Jew or a Christian was given a robe of honor. The
of) slander.^ Especially, it also implies m aking it easy for other daily price increased. So-and-so speaking of some criminal
(kings and great men) who comm it the same errors. H owever, was honored, and so-and-so speaking of a Mushm leader of exem
historical inform ation {ahbdr) is never free from (at least) some such p lary character was hum iliated. ^ (Mentioning) such (evil prac
(bad things). tices) m ay cause their application to other cases, as will be men
Rulers and amirs commit one of their greatest m istakes if th ey tioned later. ^
look at the policies of their predecessors, act accordingly but w ithout Other aspects of history are classified as permissible, as they are of
considering the requirements of the rehgious law, and then call no use for this world or for the other world. Thus, the great re
their actions, which are not in agreement w ith the rehgious law, ligious authority, al-Gazzali, declared in the Ihyd^:^ "T h e per
policy. The religious law is (the only) policy, and not the arbitrary missible sciences are poetry, unless it be frivolous, and history
actions and opinions of the ruler. Their obvious error lies in the [tawdrih al-ahbdr), and related m atters. In another passage, al-
fact that according to their claim, the religious law does not in (jazzMi said, and he was followed b y an-Nawawi in the section on
dicate the w ays tow ard a satisfactory policy and therefore, it is ch arity [sadaqdt) of the Rawdah:^ Books are needed for three
thought that we need something supplem entary. T h ey kill those who purposes: Teaching, relaxation through reading, and instruction.
ought not to be killed. T hey do th at which ought not to be done. R elaxation is not considered a need. This applies to the possession
A nd that th ey call policy! This is a high-handed use of the religious of books on poetry and history and similar subjects which are of
law, which is similar to spiteful abuse. It reminds one of the verse no use either in this world or in the other world. T h ey (must be)
of the Q uran; W e found our fathers in a certain condition, and sold, (in order to pay) for expiation m oney or for the paym ent
we follow in their steps. ^ of the special ta x due after the end of the fast of Ram adan {zakdt
The classification of forbidden applies further to reporting bad al-fitr), and their possession excludes (the apphcation of) the label
things (49) of this kind concerning im portant men in the guise of p overty (to their owner). Sim ilarly, al-Gazzali said in the first
of praise and as if those things were signs of nobility and greatness, chapter of the FaddHh al-Bdtiniyah th at he studied the books
with no regard to their unlawful character. on the subject (of the B atiniyah) and found them full of tw o kinds
Som ething else which puts historical inform ation into the for of m aterial; i. H istory and conditions {ahwdl) of the B atin iyah
bidden category is unneccessary negative criticism and the failure from their first beginnings to the time when their erro(neous doc
to bestow all the praise upon (a person which he deserves). trine) made its appearance, the names of all their missionaries in
Other aspects of history are classified as desirable. This applies all regions of the world, and an exposition of w hat happened to
to history as leading to the im itation of good qualities and actions them in the past. I consider the occupation w ith this m aterial
and to the omission of unqualifiable evil deeds, to reflection about equivalent to an occupation w ith entertaining evening causeries.
the consequences (of actions and events), and to little assurance It should rather be left to the historians/ and so on. He then men
about the life of a relative or friend. There are other such things tioned the second kind of m aterial and declared that he (also)
to which we have referred in (the chapter on) the usefulness of did not think much of the occupation with it. (50) In spite of the
history.
Other aspects of history are classified as undesirable. As Ibn al-A tir
said, m any (historians) blackened the paper with unim portant ^ Ibn al-A tir, K am il, I, 2 f. (Cairo 1301), with some variations.
things which should better be disregarded and should not be ^ Cf. below, p. 369.
^ I, 15 (Cairo 1334, 1346, K i t d h a l - ^ i l m , b d b 2). x\l-Gazzali seems to be at the basis of al-
^Almawi, f i a d a b a l - m u f t d t c a - l - n i u s l a f i d , 25 (Dam ascus 1349).
1 C f. H. R i c h t e r , En^lische Geschichtschreiber, 88 (Berlin 1938), with reference to ^ Cf. Ihyd^, I, 199 (Cairo 1334, Kitdh asrdir az-zakdh, fast 3).
W illiam of M alm esbury, Memorials of St. Dunstan, 252 Stubbs. ^ 1. G o l d z i h e r , D ie S treitsc h rift d es G a z d li ^ c g e n d i e I k i t i n i j j a - S e k t e , A rab ic text, 3
^ Q u r an xliii 23 (22 FI.).
(Leiden 1916).

R osenth al , History of Muslim Historiography 22


338 A S-SA H A W !S I LAN TRANSLATION 339

objections against it, the first (kind of material) is thus definitely century the usefulness of the science of personality criticism ended.
considered permissible. He and others who did not know w hat they were saying m umbled
something about hadit scholars deserving blam e in this respect.
( v i l T H E E V I D E N C E IN F A V O R O F H I S T O R Y )
One of them declared th at the statem ents of m any recent historians
The evidence (from the basic religious sources) in favor of history and scholars in related fields, such as ad-D ahabi and, after him,
m ay be gathered from the preceding chapter on the usefulness of Ibn H ajar, constituted fault-finding and consequently, in connec
history and from the m aterial soon to be mentioned. tion w ith hadit scholars, would be pure calum ny. Because of a
disparaging reference to a certain poet, Ibn as-Sam ani was crit
(V III T H E BLAM EW ORTHINESS OF THE CRITICS OF H ISTOR Y) icized b y Taqi-ad-din b. D aqiq-al-id who said: Unless th at dis
paraging reference was transm itted to Ibn as-Sam ani (together
The critics of history either restrict their criticism to some special w ith the rest of his m aterial), so th at he was forced to report it,
points, or th ey generalize. he was not perm itted (to m ention it).
(1) The former restrict themselves to criticizing the historians (5) Others think th at certain historians fell short of their task
who filled their books with the inform ation which ought not to and were biased when th ey did not give complete inform ation about
be mentioned and which we have classified as forbidden. persons whose opinions were divergent from theirs, but om itted
(2) Others generalize. T hey think th at they possess solid knowl m any lau datory references to them, while th ey had complete and
edge and are able to undertake thorough research. T h ey b itterly unabridged reports about all others.
malign the works on history and turn aw ay from and repress them (6) Others are carried aw ay b y sheer stupidity to criticize (the
in the belief th at the best th at those works have to offer is stories historians).
and entertaining anecdotes.
(3) Others think th at certain historians fell short of their task A d ( i ) : (51) Restriction (to such inform ation w ith the exclusion
when they did not devote themselves to personality criticism which of other things) is no doubt forbidden. W e have dem onstrated that.^
is the most useful historical subject, or to the (biographical) in A d (2): In refuting ^ this opinion, Ibn al-A tir expressed himself
form ation [ahhdr) about religious leaders, ascetics, and (religious) to the effect th at those who restrict themselves to the shell and
scholars, whose memory is a source of (divine) m ercy, ^ or to neglect the core do not notice the jewels which (historical in
the explanation of the legal schools in current use, which is a sub formation) contains, because of their bias. (On the other hand),
ject of general interest, but restricted themselves to wars, conquests, all those to whom God gave a sound constitution and whom He
and similar subjects, although all right-thinking persons know that guided on a straight path know th at the instructiveness of history
the knowledge of the year in which a certain country was conquered, has m any aspects, and its usefulness both in this world and the
or the knowledge of the strength of a particular arm y, constitutes other w orld we quoted this before ^ is very great.
no part of (religious) scholarship. A d (3): Such restriction of the contents per se is no shortcoming.
(4) Others think th at historians who in recent times practiced Historians pursue different purposes. Some restrict themselves to
negative personality criticism did something which m ust be con accounts of the beginning (of creation) or of kings and caliphs.
sidered forbidden, on account of its leading to calumny. T hey think Those interested in traditions prefer accounts of (rehgious) scholars.
that all inform ation that m ight legitim ately be used for personality Ascetics love stories of pious men. Litterateurs inchne tow ard
criticism is found in (existing) books and that all further efforts antiquarians/philologists and poets.^ It is well-known that every-
are useless. A bu Am r b. al-Murabit ^ declared himself in favor of
1 Cf. above, p. 335 f.
this opinion. He said: "W ith the beginning of the fifth/eleventh
^ Ms. Leiden; raddahu.
IHdn, 23, above p. 29? The additional sentences were derived from the same con text
1 Cf. above, p. 293, n. 5.
of the Kam il.
^ M u h a m m a d b .'U tm a n , 680-752/1281-1351 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 45).
* Cf. above, p. 302.
340 A S-SA H A W lS I LAN T R A N S L A T IO N 341

thing is worth collecting and all subjects deserve to be appreciated ness) is beyond doubt, the religious leader A hm ad (b. Hanbal),
and pursued. E ve ry one who is interested in a certain subject is because of his negative personality criticism. He said to him:
most hkely to stick to it, even though he m ay not be able to m aster Do not find fault w ith the people (the religious scholars). The
all of it. He is lucky who succeeds in putting his subject in book reply was: For heavens sake, this is advice, and not calum ny.
form w ithout too m any m istakes and shortcomings. God alone is In fact, he said th at negative personahty criticism is better than
perfect. fasting and prayer. God said: A nd say: The truth comes from
A d (4): Our reply to the critics is th at the justification of (con your L ord . 1 In (another) verse of the Q uran, God stressed the
tinued personahty criticism) lies in the fact that it is advice, some necessity of full exposure of the affairs of a wicked man: If a
thing not lim ited to the transmission (of traditions). There are wicked man brings you some news, strive to get clarification. ^
cases in which it is perm itted to state discreditable facts about a B y w ay of negative personality criticism, Muhammad said: B ad
person, and this is not considered calum ny but necessary advice. is the brother of the group, and b y w ay of positive personality
For instance, an office holder who does not discharge the duties of criticism , he said: A bdallah is a pious m an. ^ There are other
his office in the w ay he should, either because he is not fit for the sound traditions which contain extrem e expressions of positive
office or because he is wicked or negligent or the like, should be and negative personahty criticism. N egative personahty criticism,
exposed so th at he m ay be rem oved and his place be taken b y a per therefore, is excepted from being classified as forbidden calum ny.
son fit for it. A person who is observed frequenting an innovator of A ll Mushms agree th at it is permissible. In fact, it is counted among
Sufi or other leanings, or some wicked man, for study and guidance, the necessary (duties), because it is needed.
and who is in danger to suffer harm on account of that, should be This point of view was taken b y an-Nawawi and Izz-ad-din
told the truth about the condition (of his mentor). Further cases b. Abd-as-Salam , whose remarks wih be, and in fact have already
(which must be exposed) are those of men who are so accom mo been quoted.^ Personahty criticism was practiced b y very austere
dating as m uftis, authors, judges, witnesses, transmitters, or preach (fair) modern scholars, such as the hadit expert Abd-al-Gani
ers that they publicly m ake false and untenable statem ents. al-Maqdisi. Am ong ancient scholars, it was A hm ad (b. Hanbal),
There also are men who are accom m odating in m aking statem ents as w^as just mentioned, and Ibn al-Mubarak, who said: If I had
about (religious) scholars, or in giving and accepting bribes in that been given the choice between entering Paradise and meeting A b d
th ey either practice bribery or permit its practice although they allah b. al-Muharrir,^ I would have chosen to meet him and then
would be able to prevent it, or in appropriating other peoples entered Paradise. B u t, when I (actuahy) saw him, I would have
possessions through legal tricks and fraud. There are those who preferred a piece of dung to him . (Among the ancient scholars
take scholarly books aw ay from their owners, or th ey take them who practiced personality criticism , there also was) Ibn M ain,
aw ay from mosques, even inalienable waqjs, and m ake them (their) who, however, used to say: W e are now to talk about people who
personal property. There are other cases of illegal a ctivity. (52) rest in Paradise, and al-Buhari, who said: I did not calum niate
A ll of that should be exposed, in order to prevent any harm from anyone, since I learned th at calum ny is forbidden. In his History,
arising. Such exposure is either permissible or necessary. It is thus
obvious th at (the practice of) negative personality criticism did 1 Q u r an x viii 29 (28 FL).
^ Q u r an x lix 6 (6 F L ).
not stop (at a certain moment) and that under the prevailing C f. a b o v e , p . 334, n n . 3 an d 2.
conditions, it is necessary advice. Those who dispense it will be iH d n , 47, a b o v e , p . 334, a n d iH d n 55, b e lo w , p. 346.
* D . b e tw e e n 150/767 a n d 160 /776-77, cf. Ib n H a ja r , T a hd ib , V , 389, w h ere th e s to r y is
rewarded (in the other world).
q u o te d .
A bu Turab an-Xahsabi ^ censured a man whose austerity (fair- Y a h y a b . Ma'^in, d . 233/848 (cf. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 259; T B , X I V , i 77 ff-)- A r ijd l
w o rk lis te d G A L S u p p lem en t I I , 934, u n d e r th e n am e of I b n M a 'in s tr a n s m itte r I b n M u h riz
1 D. 245/859-fio. H is nam e is doubtful, perhaps, ^Askar (b. Muhaiuniad) b. H usayii, is cla s s ifie d as a w o rk b y Ib n Ma'^in in Y . a l- 'Is s , F ih r is m aM utdt D d r al-kutub a z-Z d h irty a h ,
cf. 'I B , X I I , 315-17; as-Saia'aiii, A n sd b , fol. 556b. The story is reported b y al-H atib al- 231 (D a m a sc u s 1366/1947). T h e s ta te m e n t is q u o te d in th e fativd o f 'I z z - a d - d in a l- K in a n i
B agdadi, K ifd y a h , 45 (H yderabad 1357), and T U , X I I , 316. Cf. also 1. ( S o l d z i i i e k , M u h . (b e lo w , p. 343, n . 5), I75a.
S tu d ien , II, 354 f. (Halle 1888-90).
C f. Ib n H a ja r s fatw d (b elow , p. 343, n. 5), 169.
342 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 343

al-H atib transm itted the following story from B ak r b. Munayyiri^ appeared (to someone) in a dream and w as asked: W hat did God
I heard al-Buhari say: I hope th at when I meet God, He will not do to y o u ? He replied: He pardoned me, gave me gifts, and
take me to account for possible calum n y. A l-B u h aris copyist, showed me His favors, married me to three hundred Huris, and
Muhammad b. A b i H atim , heard him say: I shall h ave no enem y granted me two audiences. W ith reference to Ibn M a'in, it was sa id :
in the next w orld. Ibn A b i H atim remarked that some people
m ight hold his History against him and say th at it contained calum Gone is he who knew w hat was wrong w ith e v r y traditionist,
ny. A l-B u h ari replied: W e (just) transm itted those (allegedly A nd who knew each difference in the chains of transmitters,
calum niatory statements) and did not invent them . (Negative
A n d all doubtful points in tradition (texts), and the problems all
personality criticism was practiced by) Muhammad (who) said:
W hich the scholars have tried in vain to solve in the whole world.^
B ad is the brother of the group. ^
It will be m entioned (below) ^ th at al-Buhari was very careful It is all the more necessary to expose the person who is known
and discerning in this respect. He m ostly said: T h ey were silent for some of the things mentioned or the like, since, as we have
about him . H e is disputed. (53) H e w as left o u t, and explained in more than one place, there are two well-documented
similar phrases.^ He rarely said: He is a liar, or a forger. traditions to this effect: A re you refraining from exposing an evil
Instead, he said: So-and-so considered him a liar. So-and-so doer ? Expose him and his evil deeds, so th at m ankind m ay be on
accused h im , th a t is, of lying. guard against him , ^a n d : There is no calum ny as far as the wicked
I say: T h at is w hy he could say: W e (just) transm itted those are concerned. ^ Exposure is a preventive measure to avoid con
(allegedly calum niatory statements) and did not invent them . tact w ith them or someone or something similar to them.
The argument presented in defense of negative personality Some religious leaders among our colleagues asked for the legal
criticism is th at it is a means for protecting the religious law and opinion of a number of our teachers about those w^ho find fault
th a t G ods truth and (that of) His messenger come first. Y a h y a b. w ith hadit scholars who practice personality criticism.^ Our teacher
S a 'id al-Qattan, among others, expressed this point of view. Some and guide (Ibn Hajar) said: Hadit scholars are roots that branch
one asked him : Are you not afraid th at on the D a y of Resur out through personality criticism. Those who find fault w ith hadit
rection those men (whom you criticized) will be your enemies scholars who expose a known evildoer or person of the mentioned
before G o d ? A nd he replied: I prefer to have them as m y ene qualities are either ignorant or try to cover up something, or th ey share
mies, and not to have the Prophet as m y enem y for not having the qualities of that person and are, therefore, afraid th at th ey will
protected his traditions. also be exposed. I say: This (54) is obvious. Most opponents of
A t the death of Ibn M a'in, someone saw (in a dream) the Prophet the exposure of evildoers have either enough dirt of their own to
and the men around him hold a meeting. He asked for the reason conceal, or th ey are afflicted b y jealousy, envy, and similar vices.
of their meeting. The Prophet replied: I have come to p ray for 1 Cf. T B , X I V , 187.
this man who used to protect m y traditions against lies. A t ^ Cf. T B , X I V , 186; Ibn H allik an , IV , 27 trans. D e s l a n e .
^ This statem ent is a ttribu ted to al-H asan al-Basri (d. 110/728), in IH dn, 56, below,
the bier of Ibn M ain, it was publicly announced that He is the p. 347. A s a P roph etical tradition, it is quoted in al-H atib al-B agd ad i, K ifd y a h , 42 (H yder
m an who used to free the Prophet from lies. L ater on, Ibn M a'in abad 1357); T B , I, 382, III , 188, V II 262 f., 268. Cf. also al-G azzali, Ihyd^, III , 132 (Cairo
1334); al-B ayh aq i, Ta^ rih -i-B ayh a q, 149 (Teheran 1317).
* Cf. al-Buhari, Ta^rih II, 2, 304; al-H atib al-B agdadi, K ifd y a h , 42 f. (H yderabad 1357).
1 Cf. T B , II, 13. The form M uiiayyir (Munir) is found repeated ly in T B in the b iograph y T he question addressed to five em inent authorities w'as w hether in the biographies of
of al-B uhari, instead of the M unabbih of the te xt of the IHdn. people (religious scholars), the historian m ay m ention all the good and bad inform ation he
2 Cf. above, p. 334.
has about th em . T he original te x t of both the question and the five answers has been
^ IH dn, 69, below , p. 367. published b y F u ^ a d S a y y i d from a m aim script in H yderabad, in R evu e de V I n s titu t des
Cf., for exam ple, al-B uhari, Ta^rih, I, i , 64, 232, e tc. I, i , 86, 162, etc. I, 2, 191, M a n u scrits A ra bes, I I, 162-77 (1375/1956). A s-Sahaw i reproduces the statem ents of al-
343, etc. a lia r I, 2, 297. Accused him of ly in g II, i, 158. Q a ya ti and Ibn a d -D a yri alm ost verbatim . H e quotes on ly a v e r y sm all part of those of Ibn
D. 198/813-14 ( T B , X I V , 135 ff.). The sto ry appears in al-H atib al-B agd ad i, K ifd y a h , H ajar and al-'A y n i. In the case of 'Izz-ad -d in a l-K in a n i, he p a rtly quotes and p a rtly sum m a
44 (H yderabad 1357). Cf. also the fativds (below, p. 343, 11. 5), 166, where the id entical rizes his fa tw d . The q uotation ends on p. 347, line 25. Cf. also above, pp. 307, 320, and 325.
rem ark is cited in the nam e of Y a h y a b. Ma'^in.
* Op. cit., 1691-3.
344 AS-SAH AW IS I'LAN TRANSLATION 345

Often, th ey are also unaware of the statem ents of the (rehgious) m itters of information. One must distinguish between those whose
scholars regarding personahty criticism or of the fact that it falls word can be trusted and whose transm itted m aterial can be relied
under general advice. upon, and those whose condition (as unreliable transmitters) must
Ibn H ajar was accused of cahm iny in connection w ith a statem ent be known. No disapproval should be expressed w ith regard to
about one of his close colleagues, Sadr-ad-din b. al-Adami.^ He those who in their own statem ents rely upon the statem ents of
had said: Ibn al-Adam i was m orally unbalanced and know^n for scholars knowm as careful and free from prejudices {hawd). On the
a behavior not becoming a jurist. H e experienced several m isfor contrary, such action deserves praise and will be rew^arded, if it
tunes and reverses. W hen God was generous to him and showered is undertaken w ith honest intentions (55) and straightforward
him w ith His bounty, he did not accept it g ratefu lly, Ibn H aja rs m ethods. ^
reply to the accusation of calum ny was: Personality criticism is The outstanding historian, al-A yni, said that it was necessary to
not calum ny. He once even said: If the person who considers punish 2 (not the scholars who use personality criticism but rather)
this calum ny is (just) ignorant, he should be taught to know better. those who disapprove. ^ He said: A s to the remarks in the more
If he perseveres, he should be properly admonished, until he desists modern historians, such as al-H atib, Ibn al-Jawzi, his grandson
from attacking the innocent and protecting the arrogant. He who (Sibt Ibn al-Jawzi), Ibn Asakir,^ and others, it should be stated
practices (personality criticism) M ay God help him w ill be th at these men m erely wanted to draw the attention of (religious)
rewarded for it. scholars to (the facts of personality criticism), in order to enable
This is an authoritative statement. A l-Q ayati followed Ibn H ajar them to distinguish between cases in which the results of personality
in his Fatwd. Personality criticism is advice. He who dispenses it criticism are positive, and those in which they are negative. Con
will be rewarded. He fulfils a com m unity duty. He has done a tem porary historians report things which they themselves have
necessary thing, through which he has freed someone else from the witnessed and seen w ith their own eyes or which th ey have learned
sin of non-fulfilm ent. He continued: A nd on this basis it has been from reliable authorities. There is nothing wrong w ith that. It has
said that the fulfilm ent of a com m unity du ty is more meritorious mau}^ instructive aspects which are obvious to the thoughtful
than the fulfilm ent of an individual duty.^ observer and which would fill volum es. ^
Ibn ad-D ayri al-Hanafi said: No disapproval should be expressed Tzz-ad-din al-K inani al-Hanbali, the greatest scholar of his
w ith regard to the (critics) who follow the method of thorough tim e, said: There can be no doubt as to the importance of history.
scholars, avoid the (baseless) expansion (of the transm itted material), It occupies a significant place in religion. It is greatly needed b y the
and are careful. (Personality criticism), in principle, is a necessary religious law. The religions dogmas and juridical problems stem
thing not to be tampered with and a basic requirement to be guarded from the statem ents of (Muhammad), the leader from error to the
and observed. Religious affairs are more im portant than w orldly right path and the giver of vision in blindness and ignorance. The
ones. W ith regard to property rights, the law prescribes the observ transm itters of these statem ents are the intermediaries between
ance of justice and the maintenance of accepted standards. This him and us. T h ey must, therefore, be investigated. Their condition
is required to an even greater degree \vith regard to questions of m ust be scrutinized. This is generally agreed upon. The branch of
the religious law, in order to preserve it from alteration and dis learning charged w ith this task is history. Therefore, history has
tortion, which it suffers especially at the hands of men dom inated been said to be a com m unity duty. There is a difference of opinion
b y their prejudices [hawd] and led astray b y them from the right as to whether duties of this kind are more meritorious than individ-
path, such as religious innovators and false propagandists. This
necessitates the precaution of revealing the conditions of the trans- 1 op. cit ., 1709-19-
Lec^. at-ta'-zir.
1 'A ll b. :\Iuhammad, d. 816/1413 (Daiv^, V I, 8 f.). Accordiria; to the Daw^, Ibn H ajar ^ O p. cit., 17213-19. In the question, m ention was m ade of someone who objected to the
made the statem ent in his Mu'^jam. The nisbah Adam? refers to the preparation and sale of im partial use of personality criticism, and called it slander deserving the ta'-ztr punishm ent.
leather goods. ^ ^A.li b. al-H asan, the historian of Dam ascus, 4 9 9 -5 71/110 6 -76 (cf. (iA L , I, 331).
2 Cf. op. cit., 1703.5. O p. cit., 17213-19.
346 AS-SAHAW IS I'LAN T R A N S L A T IO N 347

ual duties, because in contrast to the latter, one is under no obli one, but a recension going back to Muslim has (instead of: never....
gation to fulfil com m unity duties. ^ shoulder) :'. . . is a wife beater. A certain (religious) scholar con
(Al-Kinani) then mentioned a number of the instructive aspects sidered this (tradition) a justification for the statem ent of al-Hasan
of history. He also enum erated those absolutely blameless lum i al-Basri:^ A re you refraining from exposing the evildoer? Expose
naries who w rote historical works. A t the end of his enumeration, him and his evil deeds, so th a t m ankind m ay be on guard
he referred to ad-Dahabi, our teacher Ibn H ajar, and al-'Ayni.^ against them . A d vice in religious affairs is more im portant
He then refuted those who say ^ th at (the use of personality criti than advice in w orldly affairs. If the Prophet advised a woman
cism b y historians) is calumny. A n d supposing th at one would as to her w orldly affairs, advice in religious affairs is more
adm it it to be calum ny, he said, not every calum ny is forbidden. ^ im p ortan t. ^ (Ibn Abd-as-Salam ) then m entioned m any passages
He quoted (the passages) where calum ny is declared permissible: according to which calum ny is permissible.
A n-N aw aw is Riydd,^ Ibn Muflih, and others, whose remarks go Follow ing the quotation from an-Nawawi,^ he (al-Kinam) stated:
back to the great religious authority, al-Gazzali,'^ as well as the Such a historian ^ is considered to be in good shape, since no other
following statem ent of Izz-ad-din b. Abd-as-Salam in the QawdHd: (procedure) has been specified, and thus it is something necessary.
Criticism of the transm itters is necessary. It serves to put the One is to have a good opinion of him. He is best informed concerning
religious law upon a firmer basis. Its omission can be harm ful to his intention.^ K now ledge of it can come to us only from his di
the people in connection with problems of w hat is forbidden and rection. Thus, there can be no objection, since his procedure is at
w hat is perm itted, and other questions of classification. Also, least permissible, if not desirable oi necessary. H e deserves reward
everything beneficial th at the religious law considers permissible to and remuneration, if his purpose is to give advice. A ctions (are
rely upon and refer to is necessary. Judges and good adm inistration judged) b y intentions. Those who consider this branch of learning
consider the exam ination of witnesses necessary. It is of even more as something to be avoided and those who find fault with it deserve
general im portance for the protection of rights in cases of bloodshed b la m e .H o w could it be proper to find fault w ith a branch of re
and attacks upon property, commodities, sexual m atters, descent, ligious learning which, as reported b y Ibn Hazm , has generally
and so on. (56) Proof of the fact th at (personality criticism) is been accepted at all times and in all places, and how could one find
advice is contained in the verse of the Q uran: A nd say: T ru th is fault w ith the orthodox religious leaders whose fairness and model
from your L o rd . It has been reported th at Fatim ah, the daughter character are generally recognized?
of Qays,^ sa id : I came to the Prophet and told him th at A b u Jahm^ A d (5): A d-D ahabi was accused of such bias b y his pupil, Taj-ad-
as well as M u'aw iyah had asked for m y hand. W hereupon he said: din as-Subki.^ Now, supposing th at one were to adm it the (fact of
M u'aw iyah is a beggar who has nothing, and A bii Jahm never takes ad-D ah abis bias), his bias would be m uch less pronounced than
the stick from his shoulder. This recension is the generally accepted
1 C f. a b o v e , p. 343, n. 3.
1 op. cit., 1733-10- 2 Op. cit., 1759-22-
' O p. cit., i 7 4 u - i 7- ^ A n - N a w a w i, R iy d d a^-sdlihin, 538 ff. (C a iro 13 57/19 3 9 ): 2 7 4 (C a iro 1325), a s in d ic a te d
^ Referring to the objection m entioned in the question. op. cit., 176 , u. 3.
^ O p. cit., I7 5 ,.g . ^ In th is p a ra g ra p h , th e d is tin c tio n b e tw e e n th e h is to ria n a n d h is a c t iv it y , w h ic h is
^ C f. b e lo w , p. 347, n. 3. p e r s o n a lity c r itic is m , is n o t a lw a y s b r o u g h t o u t c le a r ly in th e A r a b ic te x t.
M u h a rn n iad b, M u flih , d . 763/1362 (cf. G A L , II, 107). ^ Ms. L e id e n h a s ahbaru b i-n iy a tih t, as in th e t e x t of th e fativd.
In this particular con text, neither an-N aw aw i nor al-G azzali is m entioned in the * C f. a b o v e , p. 305, n. 2.
original fatw d. Y u ld m u , as in Ms. L e id e n a n d th e fatw d.
Q u r an x viii 29 (28 FI.). C f. IH dn, 4 7, a b o v e , p. 333 f. In th e e ig h th / fo u rte e n th c e n tu r y , th e re la tio n s b e tw e e n
* She was m arried to A b u Amr b. Hafs and then to Usam ah b. Zayd. For the story, a n - N a w a w i a n d Ib n H a z m w ere so im p o r ta n t fo r s c h o la rs th a t an a u th o r co u ld d re a m a b o u t
cf., for instance. Concordance, II, 45b; al-H atib al-B agd ad i, K ifd y a h , 39 f. (H yderabad th e m , cf. Ib n K a tir , B id d y a h , X I V , 291.
1357); Jbn H ajar, Isd ba h, IV , 62 f. (Calcutta 1856-73, Bibliotheca In d ica ). The m eaning Op. cit., 17623-177,.
of the statem ent concerning A b u Jahm is a m atter of discussion. 'A b d - a l- W a h h a b b. ^Ali, 7 2 7 (7 2 8 )-7 i/ i3 2 7 (i3 2 8 )-7 o (cf. G A L , I I , 8 9 1.).
T h e nam e of A b u Jahm b. H u dayfah is n ot know n w ith certain ty, cf. Ibn H ajar, T h e s to r y of a s - S u b k is a n d a d - D a h a b is b ia s is le n g th ily d iscu sse d la te r on , cf. IH dn,
loc. cit. 76, b e lo w , p. 375 f.
348 AS-SAHAW IS I LAN T R A N S L A T IO N 349

that Ugly bias of which Taj-ad-din showed himself guilty. I read through which he provoked the w rath of the Lord. R ig h tly so!
the following rem ark b y him added in his own handw riting to the The reason for Ibn al-M urabits attitud e tow ard ad-D ahabi is said
biography of the ascetic, Salamah as-Sayyad al-M anbiji; O Mus to have been his annoyance at (ad-D ahabis) stand in favor of
lim, be ashamed in the sight of God! H ow much (baseless) expansion something which he had declared nonsense. ^
(of the material) you have practiced! H ow greatly yo u have dis A similar story is th at of ams-ad-din M uhammad b. A hm ad b.
paraged those orthodox Muslims, the A s'arites! W hen did the Bashan ad-Dim asqi, the Q uran reader. H e w as angry at ad-
H anbalites ever exist, and did they ever have any im portance! D ahabi because of some of the things the latter had said about him
This is the most astonishing expression of bias. Indeed, it is a very in his biography. Upon the page in question which was in the hand
wrong sort of statem ent. Some tim e afterwards, the leading con w riting of ad-Dahabi, Ibn Bashan wrote in thick letters some v i
tem porary judge and head of the (Hanbalite) school, Izz-ad-din tuperative remarks directed against him. This made ad-D ahabis
al-Kinani, wrote the following rem ark underneath the statem ent handwriting for the most part illegible. W hen ad-D ahabi saw
of as-S u b k i: Sic\ B y God, those who deny the existence of positive that, he revenged himself b y incorporating a biography of Ibn
attributes in God (i.e., the A s'arites, here designated b y a word Bashan in the Mu'-jam of his teachers. H e described w hat had
which has about the connotation of atheists) never had (57) any happened and concluded: A nd he himself wiped out his name
im portance.' Then, he described Taj-ad-din in the following term s: from the list of Q ur an readers. ^
He is uneducated, unfair, and ignorant of the position of orthodox In the biography of Ibn al-Murabit in the Durar, Ibn H ajar
Muslims. H is statem ent is proof of th a t. said th at he came across a publication (of traditions) b y Ibn al-
A d (6); Man is hostile to the things he does not know.^ Ignorant M urabit from which one could learn nothing. There was so much
persons are the enemies of scholars.^ W e have thus seen th at m any confusion in it, which was caused b y a lack of understanding and of
of those who find fault with history are very unimportant. accuracy.^ H ow can a man of this caliber stand up against a man
A certain contem porary leveled a good deal of futile criticism (such as ad-Dahabi) who represents the greatest (possible) ex a ct
against a number of biographies in Ibn H ajars Mu^jani. This did ness and correctness. Ibn H ajar even expressed the wish, while
not prevent the Mu^jam from being very m uch in demand and from drinking the w ater of the Zam zam (fountain in Mecca), th at he
being used b y everybody, and it still is. Th ank God, on the con m ight reach ad-D ahabis station and become as intelligent as he
trary, that criticism brought down the man who published and open
ly spread it. It served to extinguish his m em ory and obscure his
fame. W hen he died, he had become a warning exam ple and was Cf. IHdn, 58, below , p. 351.
Ibn, Bashan (668-743/1269 [i27o]-i343) has biographical notices in the Tabaqdt al-qurrd^,
full of bitter regret. Phot. Cairo T a M h 1537, p. 223, an d the Mu^jam, Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 65, fol. I 2 ia - b .
As-Safadi, N a k t a l-him yd n , 239-41 (Cairo 1329/1911), quotes most of the inform ation given
A d-D ah ab is History and related writings caused A bii 'A m r b.
in the T h e form Bashan is assured b y its occurrence in the D ahabi m anuscripts
al-M urabit to revile him. He rejected him altogether and left nothing (although th at of the fol. 38b, has h ) ; as-Safadi, N a kt, 239; Ibn H ajar, D u ra r, III,
bad unsaid about him. (Ad-pahabi) did not care, but (Ibn al- 309. Cf. below , pp. 580-82.
Th e sto ry quoted above, w'hich is repeated again in IH dn, 76, below , p. 376, and hi Ibn
M urabits) attitude (toward ad-Dahabi) w^as the reason that he H ajar, D u r a r ,I I I , 310 f., is not contained in the Cairo m anuscript of the M u^jam . A clue
to the explan ation of this fa ct m ay be sought in the statem ent, which we find on fol. i9 ia ,
was considered a liar, attacked, and accused of excessive prejudice,
th at ad-D ahabi told 'A b d a lla h b. A hm ad az-Zarandi (d. 749/1348, cf. Ibn H ajar, D u ra r, II,
1 Cf., for instance, A b u H ay y a n at-T aw hkli, Im ta -, II, 17 (Cairo 1939-44), and B a x d 'ir, 247), when he studied the Mu'^jam with him, to om it certain m arginal notes concerning
1, 307 K e i l a n i (D atn ascu s 1 9 6 4 ); Ib n ' Abd-al-Barr, Jdini'- baydn al-^ilm, I I , 160 (C airo, pupils (ashdb) of Ibn al-Buhari. In the sam,e m anner, ad-D ahabi m a y h ave occasionally
n .y .) ; a l- Q ift i, Inhah, I, 336 (C airo 136 9-74 /1950-55); I b n a l- F iiw a ti, suggested to liis students to om it the bitin g ren^ark about Ibn Bashan from the text.
I V , I, 399 Ja w .^ u (D a m a sc u s 1962). T h e re are s lig h t v a r ia tio n s in th e m a n n e r in w h ic h Th e o b je c tio n a b le p a s s a g e in th e Tabaqdt a.l-qurrd^ w a s p r o b a b ly a refe re n ce to th e tro u b le
th is id ea is ex p re ssed . Ibn Bashful h a d in D a m a sc u s in co n n e ctio n w ith his re a d in g of Q ur an x\'i 8 (8 h'l.), u n less
^ This is a verse which occurs in a poem b y M uham m ad b. ar-Rabi"- al-M awsili (ca. 900) it is th e s ta te m e n t th a t he w a s fo r a tim e a m e rch a n t in l-^gypt.
who, how ever, was ce rta iid y not its originator. It has also been ascribed to 'A h . Cf. 'A b d -a l- Cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, l \ , 45, where a ]iamphl('t against ad-D ahabi and a very vitu p er
Q ahir al-Jurjani, A srd r al-bald'^ah, 243 R i t t e r (Istanbul 1954 ), tratis. R i t t e r , D ie G eheim - ative biograi-thy of th at scholar is m entioned as well as Bnrhan-ad-din b. Ja in a'a h s m arginal
n isse der W ortkim st, 285 (W iesbaden 1954 ); al-G azzali, I h y d ', I, 7 (Cairo 1352/19 33); Ibn note of censure dirc'cted against Ibn al-M urabits a tta cks against ad-D ahabi. Cf. also as-
'A ra b i, a l-F u tu h d t a l-M a k k iy a h , ehs. 386 and 580. Sahaw i, al-Jaii'dhir lia-d-durar, Paris ms. ar. 2105, fol. 297a, below , p. 605.
350 TRANSLATION 351
AS-SAH AW IS I'LAN

w as.i (Ibn al-Murabit) was taken to task b y Izz-ad-din al-K inani *Izz-ad-dins rebuff of Ibn al-Murabit has been mentioned above. ^
for his division of ad-D ahabis History into four parts, of which Ibn al-Murabit had criticized ad-D ahabi for his vilification of the
one (he said) was pure calumny. A l-K in an i said: Alm ost every people (the religious scholars) and the recording of their negative
historical w ork has those four parts. Ibn al-M urabits statem ent traits. H e had said: This is calum ny which is not permissible.
that one part is pure (58) calum ny is no correct description of N egative personality criticism lost its usefulness w ith the beginning
that part. It has numerous useful aspects. It enables (the reader) of the fifth/eleventh cen tu ry. Follow ing the passage quoted,
to learn from the conditions of the personalities mentioned, to be Izz-ad-din said: W h y does he commit the same great sin for which
assured of their virtues, and to be w arned of their vices, and so on. he criticizes someone else ? If his attitud e is excusable, th a t of
A certain hadit expert w rote a m onograph against the greatest ad-D ahabi would likewise be excusable.
of them all, A b u B ak r al-H atib, w ith reference to certain passages 'Izz-ad-din also told us the following story in which he used a
in the la tte rs History. T h at m onograph achieved no circulation. similar argum ent: A n enem y of mine happened to be mentioned
N obody appeared to express agreem ent w ith his views, and nobody in a conversation I had w ith a certain person. I complained to
took his side. I t was a w asted and unrewarded effort. th a t person about th a t enem y of mine and m entioned some of
Professor A b ii H ayyan ^ made the following entirely unproven his (bad) qualities. He countered me b y saying th at m y remarks
remarks about the stalw art critic, Y a h y a b. M a'in: w ere calum ny. I could not do anything (at the moment) but be
silent. Our conversation continued. E ventu ally, it turned to one
Let Y a h y a as transm itter exist or not exist (?); of his enemies, and he began to disparage him. Now, I could counter
T h at Y a h y a has no knowledge for which he will be missed, him w ith the same rem ark which he had (before) used against m e.
There are, indeed, remarks such as the statem ent of a certain
E xcep t m ahgning people w ho V e long since passed away. religious leader: People w ith no faults came to Medina (59) and
He will account for all th at when there has come the D ay. talked about the faults of other people. In consequence, people
ascribed invented faults to them. Other people came who had
There are more such remarks which it w ould be boring and of faults but were silent. In consequence, people were silent regarding
little use to m ention here. A t no tim e did anyone in the least rely their fau lts. In this sense, a certain poet said:
upon them. (Muhammad), the fountain of truth, said: Lies laid
on th ick are ineffective." ^ Truth deserves most to be followed.* K eep aw ay from the people if you w ant
The head of an untruthful person should be kicked, if it is not cut To be safe from the ta lk of stupid fools.
off. There is general agreement th at one should occupy oneself
w ith h istory and shun those who a tta ck the historians. He who charges the people w ith faults th ey have
Is charged b y the people w ith faults he has not.
^ T he custom of drinking Zam zam w ater and expressing a wish is traditional. A l-H atib
a l-B agd ad i is said to h ave been one of those w ho follow ed it, cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, IV , i6 ; Ibn
Jama'-ah, Tadkirat as-sdmi'-, 139 (H yderabad 1353). Cf. also I'. R o s e n t h a l , D ie arabische
Autobiographie, 36, n. 2 (Rom e 1937, Analecta Orientalia, 14); I^ldn, 76, below , p. 376;
Strangely enough, ad-D aylam i, in his Musnad,^ with his own
Ibn H ajar, D urat, I, 92. chain of transm itters which leads back to Ibn 'U m ar, quoted the
2 M uham m ad b. Y u su f, d. 745/1344 (cf. G A L , II, lo g f.), if the te xt is correct and he is
indeed the person m eant here. story as a tradition of M uhamm ad: There were people in Medina
Ibn M a'in s sharp rem arks were m entioned b y Ibn '^Abd-al-Barr, Jdmi'- baydn who had faults but were silent regarding the faults of other people,
II, 149 (Cairo, n.y.). Ibn 'A b d -a l-B a rrs source w as the Kitdb ad-Du^afd^ of A b u 1-F ath
al-A zdi (below, p. 406, n. 5). etc.
T h is a p p r o x im a te ly seem s to be th e m e a n in g in w h ic h th e w e ll-k n o w n tr a d itio n is
a p p lie d iu th is c o n te x t. C f. Concordance, I I, 6 b ; L a n e 6 4 7b, s. rad. hml-, T B , X I I I , 405,
^ The phrase is rem iniscent of Qur^an x 35 (36 F I . ) . Cf. also above, pp. 231 and 250 1 I^ldn, 57, above, p. 348 f.
(below, p. 548), as well as I'^ldn 76, below, p. 375; Agdni, X V , 1002 (Bulaq 1285); A b u S iraw ayh b. Sahridar ad-D aylam i (d. 509/1115, cf. G A L , I, 344; cf. IHdn, 82, below ,
H a y y a n at-Taw hidi, al-Isdrdt al-ildhtyah, 42 B a d a w i Cairo (1950). p. 385), Firdaivs, Ms. Cairo H ad it 355, s.v. kana. Cf. DawP, I, 106.
352 A S-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 353

Someone else said; Keep aw ay from evil. Then, evil will keep b y tw o groups of people, hadit scholars and judges. ^ and the other
aw ay from y o u . ^ b y someone else; W hoever w ants (to do) me evil is m ade b y God
A ll such remarks should either be understood as something said (60) a hadit scholar or a ju d ge. B oth statem ents require some
as a joke w ith no sound and legitim ate purpose behind it, or as an definite interpretation. In general, in as far as he who makes critical
exaggeration that would not be necessary to achieve the purpose. remarks starts w ith a well-considered and discerning effort, he can
Likewise, no literal interpretation should be given to the rem ark not be accused of a crime in (making his criticisms) but can expect
th at the flesh of scholars is poisonous,^ as it is well known that a reward for it.^ This was previously mentioned b y us on the author
God is in the habit to put to shame those who are unfair to scholars, ity of the Muslim religious leaders.
and there exists the danger of spiritual death for those who oppose There are some (scholars) who had trouble because th ey used
and slander them. their loose tongues w ithout any basis or grounds for suspicion.
Ibn 'A sakir ^ put it very well indeed: It is a grave m atter to One of them was the religious leader and teacher of an-Nawawi,
atta ck scholars for faults th ey do not have. It is an unhealthy pas Abiji Samah.^ He was a solid scholar in the religious disciplines,
time to defame them fraudulently and deceitfully. It is a nasty habit a Qur^an reader, hadit scholar, and gram marian. He wrote a nice,
to m ake unw^arranted statem ents against those whom God has accurate hand. H e also was modest and unassuming and the author
chosen to be depositories of knowledge. On the other hand, it is a of m an y works. Nevertheless, he often assailed and reviled scholars,
fine quality to im itate the attitude which was lauded b y God pious persons, and great men and m entioned their negative traits.
of the latecom ers who asked forgiveness for those who preceded H e himself thought h ighly of this a ctiv ity of his, but as
them. God praised them in His book He certainly knows about a result, he lost prestige in the eyes of m any people who knew
good and bad character qualities: Those who came after them about it, and th ey talked (critically) about him. This, finally,
say: Our Lord, forgive us and our brethren who preceded us in caused the calam ity which befell A bu &.mah. Tw o big men entered
the faith. Do not put into our hearts resentm ent against his house in the guise of persons having come to ask for a legal
those who have become believers. Our Lord, you are kind and opinion and gave him a painful beating. H is patience gave out,
m erciful. ^ but nobody came to help him. H e recited some verses in which he
A hm ad b. Nasr ar-Ruyani, an im aginary transm itter, handed asked God for help.
down the following tradition ascribed to M uhammad on the author It is m entioned in the biography of ams-ad-din A b u 1-*^A bbas
ity of al-Asajj A bu d-dunya,^ on the authority of A li: If a m ans M uhammad b. Musa b. Sind th at at the end of his life his mind
heart gets accustom ed to turning aw ay from God, God afflicts him became confused and he forgot most of the things he knew b y
(and the affliction expresses itself) in attacks b y him against pious heart, even the Q uran. This was said to be a d ivin e punishment
persons. This tradition is not sound. If it were, the above-men- for his m any a ttack s against the people (the religious scholars).
tioned explanation would apply to it. T he same thing, however, happened to Burhan-ad-din al-H alabi,
There are two statements, one b y Ibn D aqiq-al-id: The honor
^ Cf. IHdn, 72, below, p. 370. According to as-Subki, Tabaqdt aS-SdfiHyah, I, 190 (Cairo
of the Muslims is one of the pits of (Hell) fire, and its rim is occupied 1324), the statement goes back to Ibn D aqiq-al-'ids Iqtirdh.
* For the Arabic idiom, cf. L isd n al-^Arab, V II, 145 (Bulaq 1300-8).
Cf. IHdn, 52, 54, 56, above, pp. 342 ff.
1 C f. al-M ubassir, M uhtar al-hikam, 204 B a d a w i (M adrid 1958) (Aristotle). * Abd-ar-Rahm an b. Ism a'il, d. 665/1267 (cf. G A L , I, 316 f.).
I n a l - 'A l r a a w i , a l - M u H d f i a d a h a l - n m f id iv a -l-m iista ftd , 14 (D a m a scu s 1349), this r e m a r k A bu Samah did not die the first time, but he did not want to complain about the
is a s c r ib e d to A h m a d b. H a n b a l, w h ile the e n tire p a ssa g e iu q u o ta tio n m a rk s is c i t e d ia th e men who had given him the beating, and recited some verses. He was killed when the
n a m e o f Ib n 'A s a k ir .
assassins returned another time, cf. Ibn Katir, B iddyah, X I II , 250 f.
^ T a h y m ka d ib a l-m u fta ri, 29 (D a m a scu s 1347). * 729-792/1329-90, cf. Ibn Hajar, D urar, IV , 270 f., which is the source of the statement
^ Q u r an lix 10 (10 F I.).
of the IHdn. The vocalization of the last name is uncertain.
^ I 't m a n b. a l-H a tta b , d. 327/938-39 [T B , X I , 2 9 7 ff.; Ib n H a ja r, L isd n , IV , 134 ff., Ibrahim, b. Muhammad, Sibt Ibn aI- Ajam i, 753-841/1352-1438 (cf, G A L , II, 67;
a n d \ I, 376). Daw^, I, 138-45; numerous autograph ijdzahs, b y him in Muhammad b. A b i Bakr b. Zurayq
T h a t n o lite ra l in te rp re ta tio n is a d m is s i b le . [Daw^, V I I, 169-71], Tabat, Brit. Mus. ms. or. 9792). Nothing is said in the Daw'^ about the
T h e w h o le p a r a g r a p h is d e riv ed fro m Ib n I.laja r, L isd n , I, 318. scholars loss of memory.

R osen th al, History of Muslim Historiography 23


354 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 355

although he never opposed anyone b ut was austere (fair) and ascetic. had a fine voice for the chanting of the Q uran. B u t when he came
However, he recovered from his loss of m em ory before his death. to the passage: Behold, God and H is angels p ray for the Prophet, ^
The situation is similar with regard to the statem ent: Liars lose he recited: . . .p ra y for A li, the prophet. He turned mute, got
their m inds. Others who are not accused of being liars also lose elephantiasis and leprosy, lost his sight and his ability to walk.
their minds occasionally. There he is now .
I was told on the authority of JamM-ad-din Muhamm ad b. There are m any similar stories.
A b i B ak r al-Misri ^ th a t he w as present when Judge Jam^l-ad-din There are also those scholars of great learning, austerity, and
A b u A bdallah Muhammad b. A bdallah b. A b i B a k r ar-R aym i asceticism whom people avoided and whose knowledge th ey were
al-Yam ^ni as-afii ^ died. His tongue was black and hanging careful not to utilize, because of their loose tongue and lack of tact,
out of his mouth. It was thought th at this was the consequence which caused them to talk and to criticize excessively. Such men
of his opposition to and m any attacks against an-Nawawi. were Ibn H azm and Ibn Taym iyah.^ T h ey were among those who
A story on the authority of Sayh A b u Ishaq as-irazi, which suffered calam ities and injuries. W ith the exception of M uhamm ads
Ibn an-N ajjar tells in the continuation of his (al-H atib al-Bagdadi's) statem ents (which are fully acceptable), the rem arks of any Muslim
History, is of a higher order.^ A s-irazi heard Judge A b u t-T a yy ib are only p a rtly acceptable, and p a rtly not.^
at-T abari say: W e were attending a class in the Mosque of al- There are a number of other authors, the value of whose publica
Mansur, when a H anafite from Hurasan came and asked for the tions has been nullified for the uninformed, not b y the circumstance
proof of the question of (the sale of) animals not m ilked for some just mentioned, but b y their overzealousness in their works to drive
time.^ The lecturer quoted the proof (as provided b y a tradition) home their point. Such an author is al-Hakim.^ In his Mustadrak,
on the auth ority of A b u H urayrah. The Hurasanian, however, said in which he proposed to use the criteria of al-Buhari and Muslim, or
that A b u H urayrah s traditions were not acceptable. The Judge of one of them (for judging the acceptability of traditions not con
said: He had not y e t finished (6i) th at rem ark when a big snake tained in the two Sahihs), he was so lax th at he included not only
jum ped down on him from the roof of the mosque. He fled, but the w eak but supposititious traditions. A nother exam ple is Ibn al-Jawzi.
snake followed him paying no regard to anyone else. One shouted to In his Mawdu^dt (on supposititious traditions), he widened the
him : R epen t/ and he said: T repent. W hereupon the snake dis scope of his investigations so far as to include not only w eak tra
appeared, and no trace of it w as seen afterw ards. ditions but even sound ones. Those two authors represent the
Ibn B askuw al reported the following sto ry w ith a chain of tw o opposite extremes. M ay God show m ercy to all of them and
transm itters going back to A hm ad b. M uhammad b. U m ar al- to us and give us the benefit of their blessings.
Y am am i who said: W hen I was in S a n a , I saw a man and people In general, historians are like other authors. Their statem ents
gathered around him. I asked them w hat it was, and th ey said: are in part leavened, and in part rotten. H ap p y is the man whose
This man used to lead our prayer in the m onth of Ram adan. He m istakes can be counted and whose errors are unimportant.^

^ Qur dn xxxiii 56 (56 FI.).


1 D. 820/December 1417 [Daw^, V II, 181 f.). * Ahmad b. 'Abd-al-H alim , d. 728/1328 (cf. G A L , II, 100-5).
* D. 792/1389-90, or 791 (Ibn Hajar, D urar, III, 486; G A L Supplement, II, 971, no. 21a). ^ Cf. al-K afiyaji, above, p. 259, n. 2.
Ibn lia ja r is the source for as-Sahawis information. The nisbah ar-Raym i is correctly * Muhammad b. 'Abdallah, 321-405/933-1014 (cf. G A L , I, 166), M ustadrak (Hyderabad
written in Ms. Leiden. 1334-42). Cf. T B , V , 474; Ibn Hajar, L isdn , V, 233.
Ibrahim b. 'Alt, d. 476/1083 (cf. G A L , I, 387 f.). This extremely common proverb (cf. also IHdn, 76, below, p. 376) is quoted, with
* The expression used here can hardly have its technical meaning of being connected slight variations, for instance, in al-Jahiz, K itm d n as-sirr, in Majmu^ RasdHl a l-Jdhiz, 38
with the source of the story b y a small number of transmitters, being closer to the Prophet. K r a u s and a l - H a j i r i (Cairo 1943); Ibn Qutaybah, ^Uyun, 273 B r o c k e l m a n n ; al- Askari,
The reference is to the traditions mentioned in Concordance, I, 244a. Cf. also J. S c h a c h t , Ta shif, 6 ' A b d - a l - ' A z i z a h m a d (Cairo 1383/1963); at-Ta'alibi, Yaim a/j, I, 79 (Damascus
The Origins o f M uham m adan Jurisprudence, 123, 299, 327 (Oxford 1950). 1304), ibid.. I, 105, in a verse of al-Mutanabbi; idem, I^jaz, 67 (Cairo 1897); idem, A b u
* Cf. also Ibn al-Jawzi, M untazam , IX , 154 f., in the obituary notice for Yusuf b. 'A li t-Tay y ib al-M utanabbi, 7, 46 (Cairo 1343/1925); al-Iiusri, Zahr al-dddb. I, 59 (Cairo 1316,
az-Zanjani. in the margin of the ^Iqd)', Ibn Isfandiyar, History o f Tabaristdn, 67 B r o w n e ; Yehudah
y a la f b. <^Abd-al-Malik, d. 578/1183 (cf. G A L , I, 340). hal-Lewi, H a za ri, 42 f. H i r s c h f e l d (Leipzig 1887); as-Suhrawardi, Hikm at al-iSrdq, 10
* Third/ninth century (T B , V , 65 f.; Ibn Hajar, L isd n , I, 282 f.). (Teheran 13 13 -15); Ibn Katir, B iddyah, IX , 193, anno l o i ; Lisan-ad-dm b. a l-y a tib , Mi^ydr
356 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 357

The rem arks of any man, except for special cases, are p a rtly ac not b y a long shot. T h ey support him, because he follows the same
ceptable, and p a rtly not.^ Here in this world, nothing is perfect. line (of research) and the same methods (as his predecessors),
No w ork (author?) is free from the need for correction. A ccording especially in th at he uses the same notions and expressions as are
to a sound tradition, Muhammad said: God must not lift up some not liked b y a n y sensible person and accepted only b y stupid
thing of this world unless He put it down (before). ^ P uttin g fools. This goes so far th at those people esteem his writing more
dow n (in this tradition) does not refer to annihilation and destruc highly than th at of Ibn H ajar and our other authorities. N ever
tion b u t to imperfection. theless, since the author whom I have in m ind was very fam ihar
Indeed, a great m any defects have become apparent, and re- w ith outstanding rulers, amirs, great political figures, and wazirs,
provable attitudes of the ugliest sort have spread. (62) This noble I suspected th at he would have well-considered inform ation on
branch of learning (that is, history) has been cultivated b y those them, although I knew about his shortcomings in dealing w ith
who accept misspellings and misreadings, because th ey do not have other types of persons and knew the absolutely incredible nonsense
an exact knowledge of the rules of transmission and trust he spoke. I restricted m yself to taking down the dates of death
transm itters who are not recognized as trustw orthy and sensible. which I needed in every case, and briefly quoted events and (daily)
T h ey have come to write down both substantial and inconsequen occurrences. A fter his death, I noticed strange things also in this
tial things as well as both proven and shaky, unsound traditions. respect, and I heard those asked about him characterize him as
If I were here to set down w hat happened to the leading historian, unusually blam eworthy. Then, I regretted (to h ave used him as a
Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi, you would be amazed, and you would source). B u t w hat is the use of regret, when I should have investi
avoid looking for his works. T he same applies to other religious gated the inform ation while he was alive, and so much tim e has
leaders, our teachers, the cream of hum anity. Ibn H ajar hinted elapsed. Perhaps, the good thing in it was th at (I) thus had more
at some instance of this sort of thing in the preface of the tim e for w hat is m ore im portant, nam ely, the far-flung science
He restricted himself to m erely intim ating it. of traditions, which is an ocean w ithout shores, a subject which
T h ey m ake me feel sad. B u t th ey h ave successors who, even if nobody can com pletely m aster in its general principles, let alone
th ey tried, would not reach them. This applies especially to one its details.
self-styled historian in this age who has dared to plunge into the (In spite of all m y bad experiences, however), would th at that
m aze of (historical) methods. One sees people who (merely) on ac m an had lasted. H e was no honest scholar, but he was succeeded
count of th at am ply support him w ith money, clothing, and m any b y one of those common people who are known for their stupidity
other desirable things, although he does not reach (his predecessors), and intrepidity. His descriptions of the people (the religious scholars)
are lies which deserve to be exploded. He tells ridiculous stories
al-ihtiydr, in A. M. a l - ^ A b b a d i , MuSdhaddt Lisdn -ad-din , 70 (Alexandria 1958); al-Ibihi,
M ustatraf, I, 80 (Bulaq 1268). Cf. also al-Mubarrad, K a m il, 477 W r i g h t , and ya lifah ,
(63) which must be eradicated. A n austere scholar put it very
K a f az-zunun, I, 42 F l u g e l . well, as he said when th at m an was described to him as a historian;
^ Above, p. 355, n. 3. The reference is to Muhammads correct remarks.
* Cf. Concordance, II, 281a. B y God, he himself is clear h istory. This was an allusion to his
* As-Sahawi refers to Ibn Ilajars criticism of al-'A yn i and Ibn Duqmaq. In enumerating experiences w ith w icked scoundrels.^
the sources of the Inbd^, Ibn Hajar said (Bodleian ms. or. Hunt. 123):
. . . and the }},adit expert Mahmud al-'A yn i who mentioned the H istory of 'Im 4 d-ad-
It is absolutely certain th at person? of his typ e will not reach
din b. Katir as his source. This is so. After Ibn Katir breaks off, his source is the H istory the scholarly heights of exact and pious scholars. His a ctiv ity
of Ibn Duqmaq. He literally copied whole pages of Ibn Duqmaq and often blindly followed
him in doubtful information. He even went so far as to copy obvious grammatical mistakes,
will scon come to an end, and it will not be long that he will be
such as ahla^a ^ald (instead of hala'^a ^ald to give a robe of honor to). I t is even stranger held to account for his statem ents, even if he were to have m any
that Badr-ad-din al-'A yn i literally copied an event which Ibn Duqmaq had mentioned as
witnessed b y himself personally and which took place in E g y p t at a time when al-'A yn i virtues and not only such a h ttle bit.
was still in 'Antab. However, I did not bother to follow up his mistakes, but copied from
him all the information which I did not have and which I think he observed (personally), ^ Elsewhere, as-Sahawi spoke in this vein about the historian *^AK b. Dawud al-Jawhari,
whether we were absent or present when the events in question took place. Cf. below, cf. Daw^, V , 218; above, p. 247. In rhymed prose, the idea was well expressed b y Ibn Habib,
p. 582 f.
in the introduction of his D urrat al-asldk.
358 as-sa h a w ! s i 'l A n TRANSLATION 359

A nother person of the same typ e whom we know well is one of which we have traditions w ith uninterrupted chains of transm itters
our contemporaries. He m ade -unconsidered and im m oderate a t going back to Muhammad.^
tacks against the people (the religious scholars). He had to leave the Someone asked (64) the religious leader, Malik, about the Psalter
place, and he suffered increasingly painful and unpleasant ex of David.^ M alik rephed: H ow stupid and careless you are! Do
periences. In spite of it, he did not stop. E ventually, he m ade a w e not have in the traditions of NMi',^ on the authority of Ibn
nuisance of himself for everybody. H e soon died, uncured of his Um ar, on the auth ority of our Prophet, enough m aterial to keep
troubles. us busy w ith its correctness,^ so th at we do not have time to bother
There are other (destructive) historians, such as, for instance, w ith our relationship to D a vid . Inform ation on th at (story)
some Jerusalem ians who are known as fellow students and col can be found in m y book, al~Asl al-osU.^
leagues of the devil (?), if we m ay say so. Most of that, in general, is rather silly. In the Kitdb at-Tawwdbin
of the ayh-al-Islam M uwaffaq-ad-din b. Qudamah, there are
( iX T H E Q U A L IF IC A T IO N S R E Q U IR E D O F H IS T O R IA N S ) indeed things I wish he would not have mentioned, especially since
the respective chains of transm itters are confused. The same applies
The necessary qualifications ^ required of those who occupy
to the opinions he expresses regarding certain cases of trouble
themselves w ith history are fairness, together w ith complete
am ong some of the most distinguished and oldest men around
correctness which generates extraordinary accuracy, and discretion,
Muhammad. W e h ave been commanded to exercise restraint
especially w ith regard to m any of the statem ents m ade b y the ^
w ith regard to incidents am ong them and to interpret those incidents
biographers of the prophets. In his Jdmi\^ al-H atib said; T h e y "
in a m anner not discreditable to them.
th at is, the hadU scholars (should?) also collect traditions
M uhyi-ad-din an-Nawawi, the reorganizer of the (afiite) school,
of the ancient Muslims which contain inform ation about the nations
deserves the divine m ercy for the following statem ent which he
of the past and the stories and biographies of the prophets. We
made while praising the m anifold useful aspects of the Isti^db of the
would consider it desirable if nobody were to devote himself to
leading hadit expert, A bu U m ar b. A b d -al-B arr: . . .if he only
such m atters who did not finish his study of the traditions of Muham
had not reported the quarrels among the men around Muhammad
m ad. A l-H atib then reported the following statem ent on the
and told stories on the authority of historical inform ants {ahbdri)
authority of Ibn A y y a s al-Q attan:* W hen I said to A hm ad (b.
who as a rule exaggerate and m ix things up.
Hanbal) th at I w anted to collect the stories of the prophets, he
In the presence of unintelligent people, (a discussion of) this
replied: N ot before you have finished your study of the traditions
(type of material) should definitely be avoided, unless the proper
of our P rophet. Thus, he and others stated it clearly th at care
interpretation is added. This was stated with regard to the traditions
fulness is required in connection w ith the literary use of inform ation
on the (divine) attributes and similar traditions. I say: It also
about the ancients and derived from ancient books, as well as
applies to the story of A isahs necklace. A lls statem ent in this
inform ation about the events and battles (of the Last D ay). It is
connection requires a special interpretation, as I h ave shown in one
here a question of declaring rejection (of such material) permissible
of the Responsa [al-ajwihahl). Also, in view of (A lls) exalted po-
or m andatory. This apphes, for instance, to the book ascribed to
Daniel. In the case of the expected battles and outlined( ?) troubles 1 Cf. also as-Sahawis disapproval of the Israelite stories, 1 ldn, 150, below, p. 495 f. The
predictions {maldhim) of Daniel have a long history in Muslim literature, cf. above, p. 112.
(to come), only th at little m aterial m ay safely be m entioned for * Apparently, the very common Arabic pseudepigraph, cf., for instance, G. L e v i d e l l a
V i d a , Elenco dei manoscritti arabi islam ici della Biblioteca Vaticana, No. 889 (Citta del
^ In this connection, it is not uninteresting to compare what Lucian had to say about Vaticano 1935, Studi e Testi, 67).
the qualifications of the historian, in Ilw (; 8 e i l o x o p t a v C T u y Y p a 9 S i . v , 54 f. Cf. also * D. 117/735, cf. al-Buhari, Ta^rih, IV , 2, 8 4 !.; Ibn Hajar, Tahdib, X , 412-15.
C i c e r o , D e Oratore, II, 1 5 , 62 f.
* Ms. Leiden: tasMhuhH.
^ Ms. Leiden has jum lah, instead of the jahalah of the edition. Cf. also I'^ldn, 150, below, p. 496. A copy of the work is said to exist in private possession,
3 The Alexandria manuscript of the probably very important work was not available cf. P . S b a t h , A l-F ih r is , Supplem ent, 55 (Cairo 1940).
during my visit to that city. * 'Abdallah b. Ahmad, d. 620/1223 (cf. G A L , I, 398).
* Probably, Y ah ya b. 'A yyaS, d. 26 9/882-83 [T B , X IV , 2 1 9 ! . ) ? Cf. IHdn, 48, above, p. 335.
36o A S -S A H lw ts I*l A n TRANSLATION 361

sition, a certain rem ark which refers to the fact th at he was one of statem ent: I renounce but your nam e, ^ gives the right idea of
the blessed ^ B ad r fighters and which is mentioned shortly before w hat is m eant b y renunciations (ruptures) among (the men around
the (book on) Ikrdh in the Sahih of al-Buhari,^ requires special Muhammad).
interpretation and must not be understood literally. (It read s): (References to) discussions among religious leaders in debates
I know w hat emboldened your companion that is, A li to and research belong into the same category (of subjects which
shed blood. should be passed over in silence). There are some statem ents re
T h e same applies to al-A b b as statem ent to A li when the two garding the merits of certain authoritative religious leaders in the
cam e to U m ar in connection w ith the (disposition of the) property Kitdh as-Simnah of the hadit expert A bii s-ayh b. H ibban ^ which
of the B anu Nadir, and to some of the things in the story which I wish he had not made. There are sim ilar statem ents in the K am il
require interpretation unless th ey are accom panied b y proofs. of the hadit expert A bu A hm ad b. Adi,^ the History of Bagdad
A ll this is governed b y (the traditions); Tell the people w hat of the hadit expert A b u B ak r al-H atib, and in the works of their
th ey can understand. W ould you w ant God and His Messenger predecessors, such as Ibn A bi Sayb ah s Musannaf,^ al-Buhari,
to be considered lia rs? ^ Anyone telling people a story which and an-N asai. Y e t, all of them were scholars of independent judg
is above their heads becomes a tem ptation for som e. ^ The re m ent, and their intentions were good. In this respect, one must
ligious leader, a l-L a y t b. S a d, p ut it v ery well when he said th a t not follow in their steps. Therefore, one of our teachers, a distin
a person who hears the tradition: If M uhamm ads daughter, guished judge, reprim anded (a certain scholar) who was supposed
Fatim ah, com m itted a theft, her hand would be cut off, should to have discussed such m aterial. W hen we studied al-H araw is
exclaim : H eaven forbid, w hat an idea! Kitdb Damm al-kaldm w ith Ibn Haj ar, he even forbade us to transm it
A bu D aw iid reacted very cleverly at the mention of the tradition traditions on its authority, because it contained such material.
in which the Prophet (65) said to his daughter, F atim ah: If you W hen a certain respectable scholar heard the story of H atib
did that, you w ould not enter Paradise until your fath ers forbear b. A b i B a lta ah,^ he was carried aw ay b y his zeal and disregarded
sees it. H e made the m eaningful rem ark; A nd M uhammad Ibn A b i B a lta a h s dignity as one of the men around Muhammad.
bolstered his statem ent b y an awful condition. Because of the unconsidered remarks he m ade on th at occasion,
As-Suhayli said: It is not up to us to say such things about the he was scolded b y one of the audience, and he had to hide one
parents of M uham m ad, and he gave reasons for this statem ent. month. It was a divine punishment. He had previously taken
It is m y opinion that it is the correct attitude to m ake neither offence at the biography of one of his friends b y a student of Ibn
positive nor negative statem ents w ith regard to the parents of H ajar and had attacked th at (student) so violently th at he was
Muhammad, unless this should be necessary (and then only) in alm ost ruined. He had no other choice but to hide in the Mosque
the com pany of persons who are firm in their faith. AMsahs of A m r a whole month until the affair had quieted down. His

1 Cf. iH dn, 35, above, p. 316, n. 4.


Al-Buhari, SaM h, IV , 33 2 f. K r e h l , c f . a l s o Concordance, II, 14 8 b. 1 Cf. al-B u h M , SaM h, IV , 131 K r e h l ; Ibn Hanbal, M usn ad , V I, 61 (Cairo 1313).
* Cf. I. G o l d z i h e r , M u h . Studien, II, 102 (Halle 1888-90). ^ Abdallah b. Muhammad b. Ja'far, d. 369/979 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 347; Ibn Hajar,
* Cf. al-GazzMi, Ihyd^ I, 32 f. (Cairo 1334). For the first half of the tradition, cf. I^ldn, L isd n , V I, 395; A bu N u'aym , H istory o f Isfahdn, II, 90 D e d e r i n g , where we find H ayyan
46, above, p. 330, n. 4. instead of Hibban).
Cf. al-GazzMi, op. cit., I, 32. 2 'Abdallah b. 'A d i, d. 365/976 (cf. as-Sahmi, Ta^rih Ju rjd n , 225-27, Hyderabad 1369/
* Cf. Muslim, SaM h, II, 2 1 5 (Calcutta 1 2 6 5 / 1 8 4 9 ) ; Ibn Hanbal, M usnad, V I, 41 (Cairo 1950; G A L , I, 167).
1 3 1 3 ) ; A bu Bakr b. al-'Arabi, 'Aridai al-ahwadt, X , 1 4 9 (Cairo 1350-52/1931-34). Cf. also * 'Abdallah b. Muhammad, d. 235/849 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 215).
al-Bayhaqi, al-M ahdsin -wa-l-masdwi, 39 5 f. S c h w a l l y (Giessen 1 9 0 2 ) ; A bu 1-Hasan al- Ahmad b. 'A li, d. 303/915 (cf. G A L , I, 162 f.).
Amiri (?), as-Sa^ddah u'a-l-is^dd, 244 f. M i n o v i (Wiesbaden 1957-58); Ibn Katir, B iddyah, Abdallah b. Muhammad, d. 481/1089 (cf. G A L , I, 433; ad-Dahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz,
II, 144. 14th tab., No. 27 W u s t e n f e l d ; S. d e B e a u r e c e u i l , in M el. de I'ln stitu t D om in ica in
^ Sulayman b. al-A at, d. 275/889 (cf. G A L , I, 161). d ' t. Or. du Caire I, 9-38, II, 5-70, IV , 95-140, V, 47 - n 4 > V I, 55-122, V II, 1-20, 219-35
Cf. Concordance, I, 324a, line 27.
[1954 fT.]).
'Abd-ar-Rahm an b. 'Abdallah, d. 581/1185 (cf. G A L , I, 413), Raw'd al-u n uf. I, 113 D. 30/650-51 (Ibn Ka.^\v, B iddyah, V II, 156). On his treasonable activities, cf. Ibn HiSam,
(Cairo 1332/1914). Strah, 809 W u s t e n f e l d .
362 AS-SAHAW ts I l A n TRANSLATION 363

attacker (who had caused that affair) now had an even more unpleas (One should be careful w ith remarks about persons) with whom
ant experience. one is connected b y close ties, such as father or son. W hen Ibn
In addition to all this, a person is inclined to prefer those whom al-Madini ^ was asked about his father, he replied: A sk someone
he likes, because th ey are his models, or he is their friend in God, else. A nd when he was asked again, he looked down and reflected
or (they do him) a favor or the like, as a natural liking is felt for for a while. Then, he looked up and said: It is the religion (that
those who do one a favor,^ which goes so far th at it has been said: is involved). W ell, he is a w eak transm itter.
" 0 God, do not let the evildoer bestow a favor upon me which m ight The father of W a k i' b. al-Jarrah ^ was a director of finance.
give him control over m y feelings. Therefore, W aki*, in his traditions, used to quote a second authority
Ibn M ain was extrem ely careful. W hen he came to Harran, together w ith his father (and never his father alone).
A bu S a id Y a h y a b. Abdallah b. (66) ad-Dahh^k al-B ab lu tti ^ A b u D awud, the author of the Sunan, said: M y son, Abdallah,
w anted him to visit him, and he sent him a purse w ith gold and is a liar. W e (as-Sahawi) interpreted this in the B a il al-majhud
fine food. Ibn Ma^in accepted the food b ut returned the purse. {fi hatm as-Sunan li-A hi Ddwud).
W hen Ibn M ain was leaving, he was asked about (al-B 4 blutti), and Sim ilarly, ad-D ahabi said w ith regard to his son, A bu Hurayrah,^
he said: Indeed, his gift is good, and his food fine, b u t he did not th a t he knew the Q uran b y heart b ut diverted his interest to other
leam any (tradition) from al-AwzS,*!. ^ things and even tually forgot it.
Al-A^mas reportedly said when he heard about the appointm ent A ccording to the introduction of the Sahih of Muslim, Z ayd b.
of al-Hasan b. Um arah ^ to the (court of) mazdlim (injustices) A b i U naysah said: Do not take any m aterial from m y brother,
of al-K ufah : He who treats us unju stly and who is the son of him YahyS., who is known for lyin g.
who treats us u n ju stly has been appointed to our (court of) injus There are other such remarks. T h ey are incom patible w ith the
tices. W hen, after a while, al-Hasan b. Um arah provided some tradition (which, therefore, should not be relied upon) of Ishaq
thing for him, a l-A mas reportedly said: He who has our in b. Ism ail al-Jiizajani which ad-D araqutni reported in the GardHh
terest in mind and who is the son of him who has our interest in M dlik , on the auth ority of Sa'id b. Isa b. M an (Ma'in ?) al-A sjai,
m ind has been appointed to (the adm inistration of) our interests on the auth ority of Malik, on the authority of N M i , on the authority
[masdlih). A sked about this (change of opinion), a l-A mas report of Ibn Um ar, leading back to Muhamm ad: The p urity of love for
edly m entioned the tradition: A natural liking is felt for ones your Muslim brother shows itself in the fact th at you are better
benefactor. The whole story, I think, is not correct, especially to him in his absence than in his presence. Moreover, ad-D ara
since it has been said th at in no salon did rulers, kings and rich qutni said the tradition was worthless, and after Malik, the transm it
men appear to be more hum ble than in th at of a l-A mas, in spite ters were w eak ones.
of his great need and poverty. W e m ay assume that (al-A m ass According to ad-D ahabi, there were among the caliphs, their
characterization of (al-Hasan b. Umarah) underwent a change
when (the latter) turned to honoring the (religious) scholars. B u t how 1 Ali b. Abdallah b. Ja'far, d. at the end of 234/849, or 235 [T B , X I, 458 ff.). For the
remark on his father, cf. the biography of the latter in Ibn Hajar, Tahdtb, V, 176. The last
could the characterization of his father change ? ........ sentence is not found in Ibn Hajar. For a list of Ibn al-Madinis works, cf. al-Hakim an-
Nisaburi, M a^rifat ^ulum al-hadtt, 71 M. H u s a y n (Beirut, n. y. [1965 ?]).
* Cf. below. * W aki' died in 197/812-13 (T B , X I II , 496 ff.). On his father, al-Jarrah b. Malik (d.
D. 2 18 /8 33 (al-Bu^iari, Ta^rih, IV , 2, 2 8 8 ; as-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 56a). Cf. T B , V II , 175/791-92, or 176), cf. T B , V II, 252 f.; Ibn Hajar, Tahdtb, II, 66 ff.
391. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. 'A m r, d. 157/774 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 308 f,). * 'AbdallElh b. Sulayman, d. 316/929 [T B , IX , 464 ff.; G A L Supplem ent I, 329). The
D. 153/770 [T B , V II , 345 fl.). strange remark of the father who appears to have been very fond of his prodigy son was
On the mazdlim, th at is, cases th at do not fall under the jurisdiction of Sart^ah courts, cf. discussed b y Ibn Hajar, Lisd n , III, 294.
E. T y a n , Histoire de I'organization judiciaire en pays d 'Isla m , II, 1 4 1 ff. (Paris 1 9 3 8 -4 3 ). * D. 799/1396 [Durar, II, 341).
* F or him is fou n d in the te x t of Ms. Leiden. T h e te x t of the edition of th e iH dn Zayd died in 1 2 4 / 7 4 1 - 4 2 (al-Buhari, Ta^rih, II, i, 3 5 5 ; ad-Dahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz,
would suggest th at the gifts were provided for the religious scholars in general. 4 t h tab., no. 30 Wx )S TE NF E LD , has 12 5 ). Al-Buhari, Ta^rih, IV , 2, 26 2, has no date for
A shorter version of the sto ry which is even less creditable to al-A 'm as is in T B , V II , Y ah ya. Cf. Muslim, Sahih, I, 1 5 7 (Bulaq 13 0 4 , margin of al-Qastallani, IrSdd).
34 6 f. Cf. T B , I X , 8 ; Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, IV , 22 3 f. * This paragraph is derived from Ibn Hajar, Lisdn , I, 352 f. For al-JuzajSni and al-
* Th ere seems to be an omission in the te xt here. A ja% cf. Ibn Hajar, L isd n , I, 352 f., and III, 40.
364 A S - S A H A w t s I* l A n TRANSLATION 365

forbears, and families some whose condition the exponents of Sim ilarly, divergences of opinion exist among Sufis and (ortho
personahty criticism refrained from revealing. T h ey were afraid dox) jurists {ashdh al-furu^). There have been disputes among
th at they would suffer bodily harm. Said ad-D ahabi: This has them which caused remarks on both sides. I say: There are, for
alw ays been true w ith regard to every dyn asty in power (67). instance, the remarks of Ibn Hiras ^ about A hm ad b. A b dah ad-
Historians used to describe their good sides and close their eyes to D ab b i .2 Nobody, however, paid any attention to them, because
the bad ones. Ibn Hiras was a R afidi or a Hurrami.
So it was when the historian was a religious and good man. If this is so, (the historian) should not exalt those whom he likes
However, when he w as a sycophantic flatterer, he did not bother beyond their station b ut follow the afore-mentioned examples.
about m orality. H e often mentioned the bad sides and shortcom ings A s a rule, however, hum an beings cannot keep aw ay from (partiali
of a great m an in the guise of praise and as if those things were an ty). Loving something m akes one blind and deaf.
indication of nobility and greatness. I s a y : In fact, in the biography The eye of love is blind to every fault.
of such a man, he often passes over something (negative) and says The eye of hatred every vice uncovers.*
the contrary, and he does not write the same things about him after
(It would suffice,) if exaggeration were harm ful only in the sense
his death which he had w ritten during his life. It is better to
indicated b y our religious leader as-M ii (68) when he said: W hen
exercise discretion regarding the expressions (one uses) and to
ever I exalted someone more than he deserved, I lost as much, or
steer clear of outspokenness beyond secret allusions.
more, esteem in his eyes. Or sim ilarly: Three scorn you when
Discretion is also indicated (in the case of the historian) who
you honor them : W omen, peasants, and slaves. This, too, is
harbors enm ity and hatred against (the person on whom he writes)
a rem ark b y as-Mi"i. (The second remark) lim its the first rem ark
w hich are the result of the existence of jealousy (among them)
in its application to the hum ble and low ly and excludes from it
concerning their respective ranks. This is a frequent cause of
the noble (respectable classes). Consider, furthermore, (the tradition ):
differences and dissensions among contemporaries. In the Jdmi'^
L o ve your friend w ith restraint. Perhaps, one day, he will be
al-Hlm, Ibn A bd-al-Barr inserted a special chapter on "statem ents
your enemy. A nd hate your enem y w ith restraint. Perhaps, one
made about each other b y contem porary rival scholars, T h ey
day, he will be your friend.
are not acceptable, even if each of the scholars concerned is thor
H atred should (at least) not cause the historian to adopt unfair
oughly trustw orth y b y himself.^ Often two contemporaries have
methods, even if he is as a rule untrustw orthy (because of the
something to do w ith each other, w ithout an y enm ity existing
existence of hatred). This is w hy one hesitates to accept (traditions)
among them, which some consider a different case (?). In this
of people of such habits.
case, the same rule applies. (Even) if the tw o agree, non-acceptance
is better. ^ 'Abd-ar-R ahnaan b. Y u su f, d. 283/896 (ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, lo th tab., no. 5 1;
Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, I II , 444). If there was an y concrete m eaning connected w ith the expression
Such enm ity is based upon the wrong assumption th at ones ^iurram i in the m ind of as-Sahaw i, it w as the sam e as th a t of R afid i, Ism a'ili.
D. 245/859-60 (Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, I, 59).
opposition is directed against the opponents religious beliefs which Cf. Concordance, I, 409a. Cf. also a l-B u M ri, T a M h , I, 2, 107; al-W assa^ MuwaSSd, 61
he supposes to be wrong. Here is something which m ay vitiate B r O n n o w (Leiden 1886); a l-'A sk a ri, Sind^atayn, 133 (Cairo 1320); idem, Dtwdn al-ma^dnt,
I, 228 (Cairo 1352); cil-Mawardi, Adab al-waztr, 24 (Cairo 1349/1929, ar-RasdHl an-nddirah,
the cause of negative personality criticism. It m ay lead to m utual 5); Usam ah b. M unqid, Lubdb al-dddb, 231 (Cairo 1354/1935), w ith n. 2; A h m ad b. al-
charges of heresy and innovation and create a bias which is believed H u sayn a l-B a yh a q i, Kitdb al-Addb, ch. on ^asabtyah, Ms. Cairo H ad it 43; Ibn a l-A tir,
to be religiosity, a means to appear religious and come near to God. K dm il, anno 182.
* C f . F . R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach o f M uslim Scholarship, 32 (Rom e
This results in the accusation of heresy and innovation. Taqi-ad-din 1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24).
The te x t m ust be corrected in this sense.
b. D aqiq-al-id called attention to this (situation). In ancient and Cf. T a k 6 p r u z a d e h , M ifidh as-sa^ddah. I I I , 169 (H yderabad 1328-56), w ith some
modern times, m any instances of it are found. variation s; Jam al-ad-din al-Q azw ini (cf. G A L Supplement I, 914), M u fid al-^uliXm, 138
(Cairo 1310).
1 Cf. Ibn 'A b d -a l-B a rr, Jdmi^ baydn al-Hlm, II, 150 ff. (Cairo, n.y.). Of. also as-Subki, Cf. Usam ah b. M unqid, Lubdb al-dddb, 25 (Cairo 1354/1935), and the references given
M u H d an-ni'-am, 106 M y h r m a n (London 1908). there in n. 5 ; aI-W aga , MuwaSSd, 26 f. B r O n n o w (Leiden 1886).
366 AS-SAHAW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 367

Taqi-ad-din b. D aqiq-al-id deserves the divine m ercy because there exists a need for them should be restricted to the requirements
of his firm refusal to sign the affidavit against Taqi-ad-din b. B int of the purpose.
a l-A a z z / in spite of the bitter enm ity between them. H e w ent even Al-M uzani told the following story which has been transm itted
further and scolded the men (who had come to him w ith the affi to us: W hen as-afii once heard me say: So-and-so is a liar, he
davit). He said: It is not permissible for me to sign it, and he said to m e : O < A b u > Ibrahim, use only your nicest words. Do not
returned the document. This added to his greatness and was an say: 'L ia r', but rather: 'H is tradition is nothing.
other indication of his abundant religiosity and faith. It was to In his exceeding austerity (fairness), al-Buhari, likewise, rarely
be expected (that Ibn D aqiq-al-id w ould act in this manner), used the expressions liar or forger. Instead, he often said: T hey
considering that it was he who had made the following statem ent: were silent about him . He is disputed. H e was left ou t,
I never said or did anything unless I had prepared a justification and similar phrases. He also often said: So-and-so considered
for it (for the day when I would stand) before G od. him a liar. So-and-so accused him of lyin g . ^
Ibn H ajar wrote a biography of al-QayM i after his death, in In the introduction of the SaMh, Muslim reports th at A y y u b as-
which he said, in spite of his previously expressed low opinion of him Sahtiyani 2 disapproved of someone b y saying: He is super
and disregard of the fact that he was his teacher: (As a M iite num erary. This expression was meant to be another name for
judge) he practised restraint and m odesty. He adm itted only a lying.
small number of substitutes (in court). He was very strict in legal If (the person about whom inform ation is received) is susceptible
questions and in all his a f f a i r s . M a y God guide us in m atters of (being considered as) being between the tw o extremes, the
of anger and love. historian should not pronounce himself for one extrem e. H e should
The fear th at m ost of the afore-mentioned restrictions will not w ait and be careful. In such cases, sound interpretation m ay save
be observed caused Ibn A bd-al-Barr to express the opinion that him from pitfalls.
in the case of (religious) scholars, negative personality criticism I t happened th at a certain judge was hesitant to accept some
was acceptable only if it was accom panied b y a clear proof and was ones testim ony. T h at person came to him in secret and asked
clear itself.^ him for the reason of his hesitation. The judge explained th at he
A s- a fii showed very clever discretion when he said: W e were had seen him in the vice-ridden Tabbalah district.^ The man replied:
told b y Ism ail who is called Ibn U la y y a h . ^ He knew th at Y o u r honor, I had to be there on honest business. B u t w hat did
(Ism ail) disliked to be called b y th at name. H owever, as-Safii you have to do th ere? The judge accepted him and entered his
was allowed to use it, since (Ism ail) was not generally known b y testim ony.
any other name. (The historian) should not use invented nicknam es The historian m ust be acquainted w ith the process of trans
such as Ibn at-Tarraq or Ibn Gafir as-sam a\ He should heed mission. He m ust pronounce himself only with regard to w hat
the statem ent of Muhammad: An unconsidered word causes he has found to be true. W ithout a reliable authority, he is not
the man who uses it to smart in the fire of Hell seventy autumns perm itted to transm it a tradition. This is required b y the statem ent
(years). of M uhammad: A man is enough of a liar if he reports all he
If the historian is able to express (his) negative criticism (69) hears. The historian should thus protect himself against the
b y means of an inform ative hint or a minimum of outspokenness, unconscious commission of (baseless) expansions, vilifications,
he is not perm itted (to say) more. Things which are allowed because vituperations, and (acts of) hostility. Otherwise, intelligent people,

1 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. Abd-al-W ahhab, d. 695/1296 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 346). iHdn, 52 f., above, p. 342.
> Cf. Daw \ V II I , 213. * A y y u b b. A b i Tam im ah, d. 131/748-49 (al-Buhari, Ta^rth, I, i , 409 f.).
Cf. Ibn 'A b d -a l-B arr, Jdnii'- baydn al-'-ilm, II, 152 (Cairo, n.y.). Muslim, SaMh, I, 136 (Bulaq 1304, m argin of al-Q astallani, IrSdd).
Ism a 'il b. Ibrahim , iio-93/728(729)-8o9 {TB, V I, 229 ff.; Fihrist, 317, Cairo 1348). * Cf. al-M aqrizi, Hitat, II, 125 f. and 165 f. (Bulaq 1270).
H is dislike for being called Ibn 'U la y y a h is m entioned in T B , V I, 230 f . ; Daw^, V I I I , 2, n. 5. Cf. M uslim, SaM h, I, 97 ff. (B ulaq 1304, m argin of al-Q astallani, IrSdd)', al-M izzi,
Cf., sinularly, aI-Bu{jari, SaMh, IV , 225 f. K r e h l . Tahdtb al-Kam dl, introduction (Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 25).
368 AS-SAH AW ts I LAN TRANSLATION 369

scholars, persons of noble birth, and sages will avoid his history, The historian should report only w hat he is forced to tell in the
and only people of a similar or worse (character) will like (to see) case of beatings, prison terms, humiliations, and the like which
it. (Baseless) expansions m ay also often cause him to be rejected and persons of dignity and auth ority m ay h ave suffered a t the hands of
to lose esteem. 1
the ruler (of their tim e). If possible, he should indicate wherever
The historian should not be satisfied w ith the dissemination disapproval is required. (His report) would then not serve as an
(of material), especially if the m aterial entails a detestable a tta ck encouragement or excuse for those who m ight like to do similar
against the m erits of a pious scholar. In fact, if an incident contains things. Thus, it happened to the accursed H a jjij in connection
something detrim ental to the merits of a respectable person, the w ith the story of the Uranis. According to the (chapter on) Tibb
historian should m ake no effort to publicize it. A hint should suffice of a l-B u M ris Sa h ih } Sallam b. Miskin ^ said; I have heard
him. Otherwise, an indiscretion com m itted b y the person involved th a t al-H ajjaj th at is, Ibn Y u su f at-T aqafi said to Anas b.
m ight be definitely traced (70) to th at person, and he would be M^lik; Tell me, w hat was the most severe punishment ever m eted
disgraced for all time. This is indicated in the statem ent of (Mu out b y the Prophet ?' and A nas told him. W hen al-Hasan th at
hammad), the law giver; Forgive the m istakes of respectable is, al-Basri heard that, he said: T wish he had not told him . "
persons." ^
In general, the qualifications which a historian must possess
The historian should avoid devoting his attention to discredit are (as we have said); Fairness; exactness, (the power to) distin
able incidents which took place in the youth of a person who, guish, whenever necessary, between (reports which are) acceptable
w ith G ods help, later on becam e a model for others. W ho is w ith and (reports which must) be rejected, and between personalities of
out fau lt (in this respect)! The Lord m arveled at a youth who was high and low rank; and a lack which was described b y someone
not lusty. Y o u th is a kind of folly,^ and one (should rather) con as avoidance of (preconceived) purposes and tendencies of w orldly
sider his present condition. S a id b. al-M usayyab put it very w ell: enm ity or of predilection which would lead to bias (in favor of
There is no noble, learned, or distinguished person" w ith the someone). In addition, the historian should have an adequate
exception of the prophets, th at is who is entirely free from faults. understanding of the different kinds of learning, in particular the
There are, however, people whose faults must not be mentioned. special cases and basic principles. He should understand the (tech
In the case of the m an whose virtues are greater than his short nical) phrases and how th ey are used. (Otherwise), there is danger
comings, the latter should be thrown in w ith the form er. th a t he m ay use phrases not befitting the particular person with
This leads to another qualification required of the historian. whom he is dealing, and he m ay become the target of accusations
He should know the different merits, conditions, and stations of of detraction and vicious censoriousness. In spite of their qualities,
people. He should not exalt men of low ly rank (more than th ey this happened (71) to the great M ugultay ^ and the very w orthy
deserve), and he should not give men of high rank less honor (than Ibn D uqm aq who held the right religious convictions and made
th ey deserve). H e should follow the statem ent of M uhamm ad: no evil use of tongue and pen. It also happened to Ibn A b i H ajalah,
Assign people to their proper stations," th at is, the respective even if he, in particular, was (not) free from blam e ( ?). A ll of them
good or bad (stations they deserve in view of their qualifications). felt the bias of the enem y and (were threatened) b y the snares of
* Leg. al-Jtsn, instead of al-hS. en vy he set up for them.
* Cf. Concordance, IV , is o jif .
1 Th e reference is to al-Buhari, Sahth, IV , 58 f. K rehl, bu t the H ajja j story is, of course,
Cf. al-M uhasibi, Ri^dyah, ig S m i t h (London 1 9 4 0 , E . J . W . Gibb M em. Series, N .S ., 15);
n ot derived from al-Buhari.
Ibn F u rak, Baydn muSkil al-ahddit, para. 6 1 R o b e r t (Rom e 1 9 4 1 , Analecta Orientalia, 2 2 ) ;
D . 164/780-81, or 167/783-84 (al-Buhari, Ta^rth, II, 2, 135; Ibn S a 'd , Tabaqdt, V II, 2, 40
a l-C azzali, Ihyd^, IV , 44 (Cairo 1334).
S a c h a u and others).
* Cf. Lisdn al-^Arab, I, 481 (B ulaq 1300-8); A b u H ay ya n at-Taw hidi, Imtd^, I I, 96
(Cairo 1939-4 4 )- * D. around 91-93/109-11 { E l, s . v . ) .
Cf. a l-y a tib al-B agd ad i, K ifdya h, 79 (H yderabad 1357). * M u gu ltay b. Q ilij, d. 762/1361 (cf. G A L , II, 48).
Ibrahim b. M uham m ad, d. 809/1407 (cf. G A L , II, 50).
* F or this im,portant precept, which also appears in the furstenspiegel literature, of., for
Th e correct reading m ay be ma'-zuran, if the person referred to is the well-known
instance, Muslim,, Sahth, in the beginning; as-Saljaw i, al-Jawahir wa-d-durar, Paris ms. ar.
2105, fol. 2a. A h m ad b. Y a h y a (d. 776/1375, cf. G A L , II, 12 f.), who got into trouble because of his im ita
tion of Ib n al-Fari(J.

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 24


370 A S - S A H A W f s I LA N T R A N S LA T IO N 371

The hadit expert and ascetic, Nur-ad-din al-H aytam i/ could fair. He must be acquainted w ith the condition of the persons
not enough disparage W ali-ad-din b. Haldun, the M ahkite judge, whose biographies he writes. There should be no friendship between
because he had heard that Ibn H aldun had mentioned al-H usayn him and the subject of his biography, which would m ake him
b. A ll in his History and had used the following words: He was biased in his favor, and no enm ity, which would cause him to
killed b y the sword of his grandfather (Muhammad). Ibn H ajar disparage him. A frequent m otive causing him to disparage the state
said: W hen our teacher' th at is, al-H aytam i m entioned this ments of others is the difference of religious convictions and the
remark, he w ept and cursed and abused Ibn H aldun. Ibn H ajar belief th at th ey are in error. He therefore attacks them or does not
added: This rem ark is not to be found in the History as it exists give them enough praise. L ater on, as-Subki said: Some (his
today. Ibn H aldun would seem to have mentioned it in the m an torians), in legal cases, are seized b y a zeal for a certain juridical
uscript which he later revised. ^ However, in connection with school and go through all possible stages of bias. This is one of the
(the history of the) cahphs below, I shall quote a statem ent from worst traits of (historians). I have seen adherents of a particular
Ibn Haldun which almost appears to confirm the fact th at he made juridical school who were so biased th at th ey refused, for instance,
such a remark. W e ask God to keep us safe (= th is is an unpleasant to p ray behind members of the other schools. There are more such
subject). things too repulsive to be mentioned. W oe unto them! How do
Another qualification required of the historian is (moral) austerity th ey stand w ith God! If as-afii and A b u H anifah were alive, they
(fairness, wara^) and the fear of God. He will thus refrain from would strongly disapprove of such p e o p le .. . , and so on.
resorting to guesswork and disputed combinations. (Otherwise), In the biography of A hm ad b. Salih al-Misri^ in the Tabaqdt al-
there is danger th at he m ay fall under the statem ent of Muham kubrd, as-Subki said:^ Historians often either give the people
m ad: Beware of conjectures, for conjectures are the greatest less honor (than they deserve) or exalt them (more than th ey de
lie. 3 If the historian is known as learned but is not austere, it serve). The reason is either bias, or ignorance, or blind reliance
is a greater misfortune than vice versa. A usterity and the fear of upon the m aterial of an untrustw orthy transm itter, or some other
God will restrain him and require him to investigate, (72) to do such reason. A s-Subki continued: Ignorance is greater among
independent research, and to desist from (baseless) expansions. historians than among the exponents of personality criticism.
I have made this plain in several passages of m y works. The same applies to bias. I have rarely seen a historical w ork free
Taj-ad-din as-Subki referred to some of these qualifications from it. The History of our teacher, ad-D ahabi m ay God pardon
(of the historian). I n ih e Kitdh MuHd an-ni''am,'^\iQmd.^Qt)\e follow and not punish him is a fine w ork full of m aterial. However, it
ing statem ent which in itself (in certain respects) is open to crit is overloaded w ith bias. A d-D ahabi often attacks the men of re
icism: T h ey that is, the historians are upon the brink of a ligion th at is, the Sufis {al-fuqard") who are the cream of hu
weak undermined sand dune. T h ey have power over the honor of m anity. He makes slanderous remarks against m any M iite and
the people. Often (73) they transm it either false or true reports H anafite religious leaders.
just as they heard them. The historian m ust be a scholar. He m ust be As-Subki continued: He was too much against the A s'arites
and gave too much praise to the anthropomorphists. Such is the
^ ' A H b. A b i B akr, d. 807/1405 (cf. G A L , II, 76; Supplement I I , 81, no. 6a, and 82, no. 10). case w ith ad-Dahabi, the model hadit expert and respected religious
2 T h is passage, as well as IHdn, 94, below , p. 407, is derived from Ibn H ajar, Raf^ al-isr,
3 4 7 f- H a m i d ' A b d - a l - M a j i d and I b r a h i m a l - I b y A r i (Cairo 1 9 5 7 - 6 1 ) . Cf. also Daw^, I V , leader. W hat, then, can be expected from common historians?
147.
In our opinion, their praise and censure should only be accepted
A s is also indicated in a footnote in the edition of the IHdn, the statem ent occurs in the
published recensions of the Muqaddimah (1 0 6 , B u laq 1 2 7 4 ; 3 92 Paris; trans. F . R o s e n if th ey possess the qualifications stipulated b y him th at is, as-
t h a l , I, 44 6 , n. 353 [New Y o r k 1958]) as a quotation from al-^Awdsim wa-l-qawdsim of A b u
B akr b. al- A ra b i and is branded as erroneous b y Ibn H aldun. The te x t of the Muqaddimah 1 D. 248/863 {TB, IV , 195-202; as-Subki, Tabaqdt aS-SdfiHyah, I, 186 ff., Cairo 1324;
does not have sw ord but Sar'^\ in accordance w ith the religious la w . Ibn H ajar, Tahdib, I, 39-42).
Cf. Concordance, I, 436a. * IHdn, 7 3 io-7 5 ii (to, below, p. 374, line 13), is derived from Tabaqdt ai-SdfiH yah, I,
* 105 f. M y h r m a n (London 1908), trans. O. R e s c h e r , 66 f. (Constantinople 1925). 197-99 (Cairo 1324). ^
' Cf. IHdn, 59, above, p. 352 f. Q ur an ix 109 ( n o FI.). IHdn, 75i3-76, (below, p. 374, line 14, to p. 375, line 28), is derived from Tabaqat, 1, 190 f.
372 A S-SA H A W f's I l A n
TRANSLATION 373

Su bkis father. 1 He said: A historian m ust possess truthfulness. hates, he reports all his blam ew orthy traits and omits m any of the
praisew orthy ones. In the case of his friends, he does just the oppo
W hen he transm its a tradition, he m ust stick to the wording, and
not (merely) to the meaning. His m aterial must not contain things site. The unfortunate man thinks th at he does not commit a sin,
since he is not required to w rite a long biography and to give a
which he picked up in conversation and wrote down afterwards.
com plete list of the praisew orthy traits of his subject. Misguided
He m ust name the person on whose auth ority he reports (a story).
as he is, he does not realize th at shortening a biography in such an
These are four qualifications required (of the historian) regarding
intention is an expression of contem pt for the subject of the biography
the transmission (of historical material) from others. Statem ents
and a fraud perpetrated against God, His messenger, and all Mus
of his own and possible additions or omissions of his own in the
transm itted biographical m aterial require the following qualifica lims, as there exists the obHgation to report all praise and blame
tions: (The historian) m ust know the position of the subject of the which an individual is said to deserve.
I s a y : Such a (historian) is comparable to a student of philosophy
biography in scholarship, (74) religiosity, and other things. This
is very difficult. He also must possess a good style, a knowledge and similar m atters who tells (others) only the bad things he has
learned. (Muhammad,) the law giver compared him to a person
of the exact m eaning of (technical) phrases, and a good imagination,^
so as to be able to grasp in his m ind the whole picture of the indi who came to a shepherd and said to him : L et us have one of your
animals for slaughtering. W hen the shepherd repHed: T ake
vidual whose biography he writes and to present it (to the reader)
whichever you w an t, he headed for the sheep dog and took it.^
w ith no more and no fewer words (than necessary). He m ust not
Taj-ad-din (as-Subki) continued: (The historian) who does
be overcome b y prejudice {hawd), or he will be misled b y it to giving
the afore-m entioned thing is like someone who says, when a certain
too insistent praise to his friends and to treating others w ith too
individual is mentioned in his presence: L et us not mention him ,
great brevity. To this end, he m ust possess enough fairness, in order
or: He is strange, or: God improve him , and still thinks th at he
to overcome his prejudices {hawd) and to be im partial. Otherwise,
does not calum niate th at person through the use of these expres
it is difficult to avoid prejudice {hawd). These are four more quali
sions. In fact, however, it is one of the worst kinds of calum ny.
fications (required of the historian). One m ight m ake them five,
(As-Subki) continued: Also, he was very right to say: (75)
inasmuch as the possession of a good im agination and knowledge
H e m ust not be overcome be prejudice. Prejudice overcomes
does not necessarily im ply the presence of im agination a t the time
everybody, except those whom God protects. However, the histo
of writing. Therefore, a ready im agination should be added (as
rian does not avoid prejudice b y just thinking, in his stupidity or
another qualification) to good im agination and knowledge. There
under the influence of a spirit of innovation, th at it is not prejudice
are thus altogether nine qualifications required of the historian.
The most difficult one is the insight into an individuals position but the truth. In this case, he will not look for something w ith which
he m ight subdue his prejudice, being convinced th at he is right.
in scholarship. It requires that the historian himself be an active
This happens to m any who quarrel because of differences in religious
scholar in the same field (as his subject) and be close to his subject,
convictions. The word of nobody who is in such a situation should be
so th at he is able to ascertain his rank as a scholar. Here ends
as-Subkis quotation from his father. accepted at its face value, unless it be a reliable person who reports
something of proven accuracy which he had either seen w ith his
A s-Subki continued: He put it very well and very ably. He
own eyes or which he had verified. The expression: of proven ac
referred to an im portant point neglected b y m any and respected b y
cu racy, was chosen, in order to guard ourselves against the ad
successful (scholars), nam ely, the (arbitrary) lengthening and short
mission of trifles of unestablished accuracy which in no detail
ening of biographies. M any a cautious (historian) mentions only
would stand up to investigation and verification. The expression:
the m aterial he finds transm itted, but, coming to a person whom he
which he had either seen w ith his own eyes or which he had veri
1 'A ll b. 'A b d -a l-K M i, d. 756/1355, or 755 (cf. G A L , II, 86-88). Cf. as-Safadi, W dfi, 1,4 6
R it te r . fied, is (to stress the need for) elim inating m aterial transm itted
Tasawwur, cf. above, p. 256, n. 2.
Cf. the te x t of as-Subki, Tabaqdt, I, 198,. 1 Cf. Concordance, I, 343b.
374 A S -S A H A W t s I l A n T R AN S LAT IO N 375

on the authority of those who either exaggerate or m ake under hand, their outstanding good sides and did not report all of them.
statem ents, in order to promote their own religious convictions. W henever he encountered something wrong in them, he mentioned
He also was right in considering as one of the required qualifi it. He did the same w ith our contemporaries. If he was not able to
cations learning and knowledge of the exact meaning of the (tech say (something derogatory) against (76) someone openly, he said in
nical phrases). Ignorance caused m any to express unnecessary his b io grap h y: A nd m ay God im prove him ,i or something similar
negative criticism. In fact, the books of the ancient authors con expressions prom pted b y differences in religious convictions.
tain such criticism of A hm ad b. Salih al-Misri, A bu H atim ar-Razi,^ Taj-ad-din as-Subki rem arked to th a t: The situation w ith
and others for (their occupation with) philosophy, because it was ad-D ahabi is much more pronounced than he th at is, a l-A la i
thought that theology [Him al-kaldm) was philosophy. The critics describes it. A d-D ahabi was our teacher and guide. However,
were refuted b y a reference to their lack of knowledge of both truth deserves most to be followed.^ His bias was excessive to a
disciplines. Som ething similar applies to ad-D ahabis statem ent ridiculous degree. I fear for him for the D a y of Resurrection. Most
th at al-Mizzi knew the intricacies of the speculative sciences. Muslim scholars w ill be against him .
None of them knew anything about it . L ater on, Taj-ad-din (as-Subki) said; The scholarly authorities
As-Subki then said th at it is not permissible to rely upon his h ave made us aware of the fact th at it is forbidden to look at his
teacher, ad-Dahabi, whenever he blames an A s'arite or praises a remarks and to use his statem ents. He did not dare to show his
H anbalite .2 A s-Subki reported th at a l-A la i^ described ad-D ahabi historical works to anyone, except those of whom he could be rea
as a man whose religiosity, austerity (fairness), and discretion in his sonably certain th at th ey would not transm it any objectionable
remarks about the people (the religious scholars) nobody would passages.
doubt. A fter that, al-A la i said th at (ad-Dahabi) firm ly held to the (As-Subki) then contested a l-'A la is description of ad-D ahabi
doctrine of the existence of positive qualities in God and rejected as a man of austerity and discretion. He himself used to believe
(allegoric) interpretation and the doctrine of the remoteness of God. that. He often considered (his statements) an expression of religios
He was filled w ith a strong aversion for the representatives of the ity. He then had doubts about him when he saw him telling some
doctrine of the remoteness of God and a strong inclination tow ard thing which proved convincingly th at he knew th at it was a lie.
the representatives of the doctrine of the existence of positive He did not invent it but just loved to tell it (in spite of the fact
attributes in God. W henever he wrote the biography of one of the th at he knew th at it w as a lie and should not have been told).
latter, he persistently described all his good sides and exerted all In addition, ad-D ahabi had little knowledge of the exact m eaning
his efforts to describe him in terms of high praise. He overlooked of (technical) phrases and lacked practice in the religio-juridical
his m istakes and whenever possible interpreted the facts in his disciplines, and so on.
favor. On the other hand, whenever he mentioned someone of the A s-Subkis remarks are very extreme. He himself relied upon
other group, such as the Im am al-H aram ayn,* al-CrazzMi, and ad-D ahabi in most of his biographies, and, as I have stated before
others, he did not try to describe them in praising terms. He m en w ith the (appropriate) expression of disapproval, was extrem ely
tioned attacks against them at great length. He repeated that, made biased against the H anbalites. H e was as biased and as suspect of
(the attacks) appear prominent, and, in complete ignorance, con calum ny as he claim ed ad-D ahabi was. I do not absolve ad-Dahabi
sidered this (procedure) religiosity. He disregarded, on the other of some of the accusations which (as-Subki) m ade against him.
He accused Ibn al-Jaw zi of having mentioned, in his book on Weak
1 M uham m ad b. Idris, d. 277/890 [TB , II, 7 y 7 7 ', Ibn H ajar, Tahdih, I X , 31-34).
^ Cf. I -ldn, 56, above, p. 348. Transmitters, those who attacked a transm itter, while om itting
* H alil b. K a y k a ld i, d. 761/1359 (cf. G A L , II, 6 4 !.). A s an illustration of as-Su b kis those who declared him trustw orthy. Ibn H ajar said this in the
relationship to a l-'A la i, it m ay b e noted th at a m anuscript belonging to the la tte r (al-
A m id is Abkdr al-afkdr, Ms. A y a Sofya 2165-66, cf. top left of the title-page of 2166) passed
a fter his death into the possession of as-Subki (bottom right of the title-pages of b oth * A s-Subki has the correct text.
volum es, with the date 763/1361-62). IHdn, 58, above, p. 350 n. 4.
* <^Abd-al-Malik b. 'A b d allah , d. 478/1085 (cf. G A L , I, 388 f.). * IHdn, 56, above, p. 347 f-
376 AS-SAH AW IS I LAN TRANSLATION 377

biography of A ban b. Y a zid a 1- A tta r ^ in the Tahdib.^ I assume in him b y people who were no more austere, learned, or ascetic than
his favor th at he did not come across assertions of trustworthiness. he. T h ey closed their eyes to the sins and transgressions of their
O nly God is perfect. For us, it is sufficient proof of ad-D ahabi's colleagues and friends. B u t God did not give them power over him
greatness th at Ibn H ajar expressed the wish, while drinking the because of their fear of God and their own importance, but because
w ater of the Zam zam (fountain in Mecca), th at he m ight reach of his sins. Gods support of him and his followers was greater (than
ad-D ahabis station. This has been m entioned above.^ H ave people His support of his enemies). T h ey suffered only part of w hat they
used an y other books on the subject (of history) than those of deserved. ^
ad-D ahabi from his time on and until the present day ? H ap p y is (Ad-Dahabi) said w ith regard to the H anbalites: T h ey possess
the one whose m istakes can be counted.^ useful knowledge, and, in general, th ey have religion. T h ey have
A t any rate, the dissatisfied often did not have the recognition little luck in this world. Some scholars speak (badly) of their creed
from ad-D ahabi which they thought was due to them. The reason and accuse them of anthropomorphism which (they say) belongs
was th at in their biographies, he either gave them a lower rank than to them. T h ey are, however, free from it. M ay God forgive them .
th ey thought th ey deserved, or something similar. A n exam ple is In the (chapter on) basic principles of religion, ad-D ahabi said
(the story of) ams-ad-din Muhammad b. A hm ad b. Bashan, the th at religion revolves around the knowledge of the Q uran and the
Q uran reader, whom ad-Dahabi mentioned in the Tahaqdt al-qurrd\ sunnah. These tw o are the indispensable basic principles of the
W hen Ibn Bashan saw w hat ad-D ahabi had said, he wrote in religion of Islam. B u t custom differs in w hat is called (the science
th ick letters some vitu p erative rem arks directed against ad- of the basic principles of religion) according to the different religious
D ahabi upon the page in question which was in the handw riting groups. In the opinion of the early generations, these basic principles
of ad-Dahabi. This made his handw riting for the most part illegible. were the belief in God, His books, messengers, and angels, in His
W hen ad-D ahabi saw (77) that, he incorporated a biography of attributes, in predestination, and in the Q uran as the uncreated
Ibn Bashan in the Mu'^jam of his teachers. H e described w hat had word of God, as well as the acceptance of (the exem plary character
happened, and concluded: A nd he himself wiped out his name of) all the men around Muhammad, and other basic principles
from the list of Q uran readers." of the sunnah. In the opinion of the later generations, religion is
I h ave seen an excellent creed b y (ad-Dahabi) and an epistle their own bookish constructions built upon intellect and logic just
w ritten b y him to Ibn T aym iyah w hich is a useful argum ent against the things which in the eyes of the early generations degraded the
the accusation of excessive bias (which has been leveled against persons devoted to them and stam ped them as innovators. Am ong
him). On one occasion, ad-Dahabi swore th at his eyes had never the later generations, there are great differences w ith regard to
seen anyone more learned and quickw itted than (Ibn Tajrm iyah.). questions which ought to be disregarded b y good Muslims.^ Such
He also was austere in m atters of eating, dress, and women, and differences generate spiritual disease. W hoever doubts th at can
he alw ays tried to be fair. (Ad-Dahabi) then said that he spent leam it from experience. W ar reigns among fundam entalists
long years in weighing and investigating him. He found th at the {usuliyah). T h ey declare each other unbelievers or misguided. The
only things th at caused the setback to his (reputation) among fundam entalist who sticks to the plain meaning of the words
the E gyptian s and Syrians who hated and vilified him and called and traditions is declared b y his adversaries to be an anthropo-
him a liar were haughtiness, vanity, pretentiousness, an excessive morphist, a haswi,^ and an innovator. In turn, the fundam entalist
desire for occupying the first place among scholars, an inclination to who (78) promotes (allegoric) interpretation will be declared
v ilify the great, and a love of prominence. This led to attacks against
^ A d -D ah abi, Baydn zagal al-Hlm, 17 f. (Dam ascus 1347). Th e editor of the w ork, M
1 D. 160/776-77, according to L. C a e t a n i , Onomasticon Arabicum, 12 (Rome 1915). Z a h i d a l - K a w t a r i , says th at the Nasihah ad-Dahabtyah li-Ibn Taym iyah w hich he pu b
Ibn Hajar, Tahdtb, I, lo i f. lished together w ith the Baydn zagal al-Hlm is the epistle to which as-Sahaw i refers.
IHdn, 57, above, p. 349 f. * A d -D ah abi alludes here to the w ell-know n tradition; An indication th at a man is a
* IHdn, 61, above, p. 355, n. 5. good Muslim is th at he disregards w h at does n ot concern h im .
* IHdn, 57, above, p. 349. A discussion of the term w as undertaken b y A . S. H a l k i n , in J A O S , L IV , 1- 2 8 (1934).
378 AS-SAHA w i s I LAN TRANSLATION 379

b y others to be a Jahm i and a M u'tazili and to be in error. of Anas th at the (Muslim) era originated with the arrival of the
(The fundam entalist) who adm its (the existence of) some Prophet in Medina.^
(positive) attributes in God and rejects others and also perm its A l-A sm ai likewise said: The era started w ith R a b i I, the
(allegoric) interpretation in certain cases (and not in others) month of the hijrah.
is called a person who contradicts himself. It would be better to In the Iklil, al-H akim reported through Ibn Jurayj,^ on the
go slow. Y o u m ay excel in the basic (religious) principles and the authority of A bu Salimah,^ on the authority of Ibn Sihab az-Zuhri
logic, philosophy, and opinions of the ancients, and the speculative th at upon arrival in Medina, Muhammad ordered the introduction
ideas connected w ith (those principles). Y o u m ay, further, hold of the (Muslim) era. It began in R a b i I.
on to the Q uran, the sunnah, and the basic principles of the early This, however, is problematic. In accordance w ith Ibn Asakir,
generations. Y o u m ay, moreover, combine the speculative and it is believed th at the (Muslim) era was introduced in the time of
traditional sciences. Y et, I do not think th at in these respects, Umar. This is generally assumed to be correct. Indeed, it is correct
you will reach the station of Ibn T aym iyah . Indeed, you will not and well-known th at (the event) took place during the caliphate
even come near it. A nd you have seen how he was degraded, aban of Um ar and th at he chose, as the epoch (of the era), the hijrah
doned, and considered to be in error, to be an unbeliever, and to of the Prophet and the m onth of al-Muharram of the year of the
be a liar, righ tly or wrongly. Before he entered upon this business, hijrah. Al-Buhari,^ on the auth ority of al-Q anabi ,5 the authority
he was brilliant and shining, with the m ark of those early Muslims of A b d -al-A ziz b. A bi Hazim, on the auth ority of Salimah b.
on his face. Then, he was wronged and exposed (to disgrace). His D inar, on the auth ority of Sahm ahs father, reported the following
face was blackened (?) in the opinion of some people; he was an statem ent of Sahl b. S a d as-Saidi: T h ey did not count from the
impostor, fraud, and unbeliever in the opinion of his enemies; time when the call first came to the Prophet, or from the time of
an excellent, correct, and outstanding innovator in the opinion his death. T h ey counted from the time of his arrival in M edina.
of m any intelligent and excellent m en ; and the bearer of the banner According to (79) the report of al-Hakim , through M usab az-
of Islam , the guardian of the realm of religion, and the reviver of the Zubayri, A b d -al-A ziz said: The people missed the count. T h ey
sunnah in the opinion of the great m ajority of his followers. ^ did not count from the time when the call first came to the Prophet,
or from the time of his arrival in Medina, but th ey counted from
(X T H E IN T R O D U C T IO N OF TH E M U S L IM ERA) ^ the time of his death . A l-H akim remarked (to this) that it was
Opinions differ as to who was the first to institute the (Muslim) fantastic and then reported the tradition correctly, exa ctly Uke
era {ta^rih). al-Buhari: . . . and not from the tim e of his death, but they
In the History of Damascus, Ibn A sakir reported on the authority counted from the time of his arrival in M edina. The expression:
The people missed the count, means: T h ey neglected and om itted
1 B aydn zagal al-Hlm, i8 a n d 21-24 (D a m a sc u s 134 7).
T h is v e r y im p o r ta n t s u b je c t a lw a y s in te re s te d M u slim sch o la rs, a n d th e tr a d itio n s it, then corrected themselves in this respect. It was not m eant to
m e n tio n e d b y a s -S a h a w i are fo u n d in m a n y w o rk s. O n ly a fe w referen ces m a y b e g iv e n h e re :
A l- B u h a r i, Ta^rth, I, i , g i .; idem, Sahth, III, 59 K r e h l ; H a lifa h b . H a y y a t , Ta^rih, b e g . * I did not succeed in tracing this quotation in the History of Damascus in precisely the
[Ms. R a b a t 1999]; a t - T a b a r i, Ta^rth, I, 1250-56 D e G o e j e an d o th e rs ; a l- J a h s iy a r i, Wuzard^, same form in which it appears above. As-Sahawi appears to have derived it from Sibt Ibn
fo l. 9b M z i k ; a s-S u li, Adab al-kuttdb, 178-86 (C airo 1 3 4 1 ) ; Ib n D u r u s ta w a y h , Kuttdb, 79 f. al-Jawzi, fol. 5b of the manuscript cited.
(B e ir u t 19 2 7 ); a l- 'A s k a r i, AwdHl, P a ris m s. ar. 5986, fo l. 76 a -b , an d o th e r awdHl w o rk s, * 'Abd-al-M alik b. '^Abd-al-'Aziz, d. 149/766-67, or 150 (T B , X , 400-7).
s u ch as a s-S ib li, M ahdsin al-wasd^il, P h o t. C a iro T a M h 55 57, fo ls. 9 3 a -9 5 a ; a l-M a s 'u d i, 3 Abu Salimah b. 'Abd-ar-Rahm an, d. around 100/718-19 (Ibn Hajar, Tahdib, X II,
Tanbth, 196 ff. (on p re -Is la m ic eras), 290 D e G o e j e ; H a m z a h a l-Is fa h a m , History, I, 7 115-18).
G o t t w a l d t ; a l-B iru n i, al-Atdr al-bdqiyah, 29 ff. S a c h a u ; Ibn ^Asakir, Ta^rth Dima.^q, I, Sahth, III, 49 K reh l.
18 f f . ; a d -D a b b i, Bugyat al-multamis, 8-10 C o d e r a an d R i b e r a (M a d rid 1885, Bibliotheca 5 Abdallah b. Maslamah, d. 221/836 (as-Sam'ani, Ansdb, fol. 459 b)-
Arabico-Hispana, 3); S ib t Ibn a l-J a w z i, Mir^dh, M s. T o p k a p u s a r a y , A h m e t III, 2907, fols. ' D. 182/798-99, or 184 (Ibn Hajar, Tahdtb, VI, 333).
3a-6b (a so u rce o f a s -S a h a w i); a l-M a r z u q i, Azm inah, II, 271 ( H y d e ra b a d 13 3 2 ); a l-M a q rizi, D. around 140/757-58 (al-Buhari, T a M h , II, 2, 7 9 ; Ibn Hajar, Tahdtb, IV , 143).
H itat, I, 284 (B u la q 12 70 ); a s -S a h a w i, Tibr, 3 (B u la q 1 3 1 5 ) ; a s - S u y u ti, Samdrih, ed . S e y b o l d D. 88/706-7 (al-Buhari, T a M h , II, 2, 98 f.).
(L e id e n 1894); a n d d o w n to a t- T a h a n a w i, KaSSdf istildhdt al-funun, 56 ff. ( C a lc u tta 1862, Mus'ab b. 'Abdallah, d. 235/851, or 233/848 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 212; T B , X III,
Bibliotheca Indica) = 83 f. (C airo 1382-/1963-), an d 'A b d - a r - R a h m a n a l- J a b a r t i, ^Ajd^ib 112). The following 'A b d-al-'A ziz may, or m ay not, be identical with the one just mentioned
al-dtdr, I , 3 f . (C a iro 1301, in th e m a rg in of I b n a l- A t ir s Kam il). (n. 6).
38 o AS-SAH AW IS I l A n
TRANSLATION 381

im ply th at the correct procedure should be different from w hat


year 17/638. A fter th ey had agreed upon that, one of them suggested
th ey did. It is, however, possible th at this actually was m eant and
to start w ith Ram adan. Um ar, however, said: No, rather with
th at (the author of the statement) was of the opinion th at it would
al-Muharram. It is the m onth in which people return from the
have been more appropriate to begin (the Muslim era) with the tim e
pilgrim age. A nd th ey agreed to (U m ars proposal).
when the call first came to the Prophet, or w ith his death. Tnis is a
The first to institute the (Muslim) era is said to h ave been Y a la
possibility, b ut the other assumption is preferable.
b. U m ayyah ^ when he was in the Yem en. From there, he wrote to
It is correct th at the (Muslim) era started w ith the first of the
U m ar (80) a letter th at was dated [mu^arrah). Um ar liked it,
year.
and the (Muslim) era was instituted. This report was published
A certain scholar showed the propriety of starting w ith the
b y A hm ad b. H anbal. The chain of transm itters is sound. There is,
hijrah. There are four events in the life of M uhamm ad which
however, a break in the chain between A m r b. D inar ^ and Y a la.
m ight be used as epoch years of the era: His birth, (the year)
A ccording to al-H aytam b. Adi, too, the first to institute the
when the call first came to him, the hijrah, and his death. The
(Muslim) era was Y a la.
selection of the hijrah was considered preferable. There are differ
It was reported b y A hm ad (b. Hanbal), b y A b u Arubah*
ences of opinion w ith regard to the exact year of his birth as we)l
in the AwdHl, b y a l-B u h ariin th e. 4 <ia6,^andby al-H.kim, through
as the year when the call first came to him. The year of his death
M aym un b. Mihran, th at the latter said: A n I.O .U . payable in
was considered unsuitable because of its sad associations. T he
a ban was presented to U m ar.^ U m ar said: W hich S a ban,
choice, thus, was restricted to the hijrah. (The beginning of year one)
last a ban, or this one, or the coming one ? G ive the people
was dated back from R a b i I to al-Muharram, because the resolution
something th at th ey can understand. Here follows something like
to em igrate [hijrah) came (to Muhammad) in al-Muharram. The
the first story.
oath of allegiance took place in D u l-Hijjah,^ and this was the prel
The same story was also told b y A bu 1-Yaqzan, on the authority
ude of the hijrah. The new moon of al-Muharram was the first
of Umar.
after the oath of allegiance. The resolution to em igrate thus coin
A l-H akim reported th at S a id b. al-M usayyab said: U m ar
cides w ith the new moon of al-Muharram. It was therefore quite
called the people together th at is, the em igrants and others and
proper to m ake al-Muharram (the month) in which (year one of)
the era began. Ibn H a jar said th at this was the most convincing de ^ No date is given in al-Buhari, Ta^rth, IV , 2, 414; Ibn Sa'^d, Tabaqdt, V , ^37 S achau
fense of the propriety of beginning w ith al-Muharram he h ad come and others; Ibn Hajar, Tahdtb, X I, 399 f.
D. 126/743-44 (Ibn S a'd, Tabaqdt, V , 353 f. S a c h a u and others).
across. D. 206/821-22, or 207 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 213; al-Qifti, Inbdh, Phot. Cairo T a rili
The reason for the introduction of the (Muslim) era is differently 2579, II, 303-7; a d - D u r i , B aht f t naPat Him at-taM h, 319-25 [Beirut i960]). As-Saljawis
information is derived from Sibt Ibn al-Jawzi, Mir^dh, Ms. Topkapusaray, Ahmet III, 2907,
given. In his History, A bu N u 'a y m al-Fadl b. D u k ayn and, fol. 6a.
through Ibn D ukayn, al-H akim published this version, through * AI-Husayn b. Muhammad b. Mawdud al-Harrani, d. 318/930-31 (G A L , new ed., II, 663;
F ih rist 322, Cairo 1348 = 230 F l u g e l ; Y . al- Iss, F ih ris mahtutdt Ddr al-kutub az-^dhiri-
as-Sa'bi:^ A bu Musa al-A sari wrote to Um ar th at th ey were yah, 169, Damascus 1366/1947). His Kitdb al-Awd^il was studied b y as-Sibli, Mah,dsin al-
receiving letters from him which were not dated [ta^rih). W hen wasdHl, Phot. Cairo T a rih 5557, fol. 5a, and quoted b y Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, ^ifd^ al-gardm,
I, 206 (Mecca-Cairo 1956). Cf. also F u a t S e z g i n , in Isldm Tetkikleri Enstitusu Dergisi,
Umar, thereupon, called the people together, one man suggested II, 255 f. (i960).
the year when the call first came to Muhammad as the epoch of the Apparently, neither in the Saiith nor in the A dab al-M ufrad (Cairo 1375)-
* Born 40/660-61, died 118/736, or 117 (al-BuM ri, Ta^rih, IV , i, 338 f.).
era (to be introduced), while another one suggested the hijrah. The fact that the document [sakk) was an I.O .U . is expressly stated b y Ibn Katir,
Um ar said: The hijrah has separated truth from falsehood. There Biddyah, V I I, 73. Ibn K atirs source is al-Waqidi. Cf. above, p. 251.
For another story about a check or draft involving 'Umar, cf. G. J a c o b , D ie dltesten
fore, let it become the epoch of the era. This happened in the Spuren des Wechsels, in M itteilungen des Seminars fiir or. Sprachen, Westas. Studien, X X V II I,
^ The event is known as the Second 'Aqabah. 280 f. (1928).
* His name is supposed to have been Suhaym, or 'Amir b. Hafs, d. 190/805-6 (Fihrist,
'Amir b. Sarahil, or b. 'Abdallah b. Sarahil, d. between 103 and 106/721-25 (T B , X I,
227 ff.). 138, Cairo 1348 = 94 F l u g e l ). His Kitdb an-Nasab is quoted b y Ibn Hallikan, IV , 244
* 'Abdaliah b. Qays, d. between 42/662-63 and 52/672. trans. D e S l a n e . As-Saljawi derived his information from Sibt Ibn al-Jawzi, fols. 5b-6a
of the manuscript cited.
382 a s - s a h Aw 1 s i l a n TRANSLATION 383

asked them which d ay should be chosen as the beginning of the of the Prophet as the epoch of the era. Ali, however, suggested
(MusHm) era. A li suggested the day of M uham m ads departure the hijrah, because (8i) the hijrah has separated truth from false
from Mecca, the territory of polytheism th at is, his departure hood and given victory to Islam. The Muslims, (consequently),
for Medina. U m ar followed A lls suggestion. ^ generally agreed to use the year of the hijrah as the beginning
Ibn A bi H aytam ah ^ reported, through Muhammad b. Sirin, of the era, since it was the year in which Islam and the Muslims
th at the latter said: "Som eone arrived from the Yem en and said (first) showed their strength.
that he had seen there something which was called b y the Y em en Then, there was some disagreement w ith regard to the month.
ites ta^rih and used b y them (to date) documents from a certain year A bd-ar-Rahm an b. A w f ^ suggested R ajab, because it was the
and month. W hereupon Um ar said; T h is is fine. L et us institute first of the sacred months. Ali, however, suggested al-Muharram,
an era {anihu). W hen this was agreed upon, some people suggested because it was the first m onth of the year and one of the sacred
the year of M uhamm ads birth as the epoch of the era. Others months. U m ar followed A lls suggestion, and this usage spread
suggested the year when the call first came to him, or the year to all Muslim territories.
when he em igrated (from Mecca to Medina), or the year of his A report on the authority of Ibn A bbas states th at there existed
death. Um ar decided to use the year when M uhammad left Mecca no era in Medina when the Prophet arrived there. People came
for Medina as the epoch year of the era. to use an era a m onth or two after his arrival. This continued
Then, (Umar) asked: W ith which month shall we b egin ? until M uham m ads death. Then, the use of an era was discontinued,
Some people suggested R ajab, and someone Ram adan. U m ar said: and there was none during the caliphate of A b u B ak r and the first
L et us use al-Muharram as the beginning of the era. Al-M uharram four years of the caliphate of Um ar. Then, the (Muslim) era was
is a sacred month. It is the first month of the year, and the m onth established. ^
in which people return from the pilgrim age. This happened in Um ar is reported to have said to the assembled dignitaries
R a b i I of the year 17/638. among the men around M uhamm ad: The income is considerable.
W e learn from these combined reports th at al-Muharram (as W hat we have distributed has been w ithout fixed dates. H ow can
the first m onth of the Muslim era) was indicated b y Um ar, Utm an, we rem edy th at ? One answer came from al-Hurm uzan. He had
and All. been king of al-Ahw az. A fter his capture during the conquest of
W e also have the following report on the authority of A m r b. Persia, he had been brought to Um ar and had become a Muslim.
Dinar, on the authority of Ibn A bbas: The era originated in the He said th at the Persians had a (method of) calculation which they
year in which the Prophet arrived in Medina. In the same year, called mdhroz and which they ascribed to their Sasanian rulers. The
A bdallah b. az-Zubayr was born. Before that, the Y ear of the word mdhroz was arabicized as mu'^arrah, and the infinitive ta^rih
Elephant was used b y the A rabs as the epoch of their era. This is was formed from it. It was also used in all the other forms. Al-
the year in which Muhammad was born. H urm uzan then explained to them how to use it. Umar, (how
S a d b. A bi W aqqas ^ suggested to Um ar the year of the death ever,) said: G ive the people an era which th ey can use in busi
Cf. Halifah b. H ayyat, p. 6 of the Rabat manuscript 199?. ness and which perm its them an exact indication of the date in their
^ Ahmad b. Zuhayr, d. 279/893 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 272). He is also quoted as the m utual deahngs. A Jewish convert to Islam who was present said:
authority for this story b y Ibn al-Furat, Paris m. ar. 1595, fol. 127a. Ibn al-Furats source
was the Ta^rih a l-M uza ffart b y Ibn Abi d-dam. The manuscript of Ibn A bi ^laytam ahs W e (Jews) have a similar calculation which we ascribe to A le x
Ta'^rih in Fez, Qarawiyin (now numbered 244/40 I), containing the third book, is dated in ander. The others, however, did not like th at era, because it was
610/1213 and was supposedly collated with the original manuscript of the first transmitter
of the work, Qasim b. Asbag (d. 340/951). Part of the work, beginning with Murrah b. too remote. Some were for the adoption of the Persian era. It was.
Sarahil and ending with ar-R abi' b. H utaym , also exists in Rabat, 2 671k (Kattani). The
R abat manuscript is written on parchment with a study note dated 322/933-34 of Qasim
b. Asbag. It may, however, be a later copy, as the date of parchment manuscripts is always 1 D. 32/652-53, cf., for instance, Ibn Sa d, Tabaqdt, III, i, 87-89 S a c h a u and others.
particularly difficult to judge. * Cf. Sibt Ibn al-Jawzi, fol. 5b of the manuscript cited.
3 D. 110/728-29 (cf. G A L , I, 66). ^ A similar famous story attaches to the introduction of government bureaus, cf., for
D. around 5 2 - 5 5 / 6 7 2 - 7 5 (al-Buhari, T a M h , II, 2, 44; Ibn Katir, B iddyah, V I II , 72-78). instance, al-Baladuri, F u tu h , 449 D e G o e j e ; as-Suli, Adab al-kuttdb, 190 (Cairo 1341).
3^4 AS-SAH AW tS I LAN TRANSLATION 385

how ever, objected th at the Persian era had no fixed epoch year There is one d a y in al-Muharram on which repenting sinners are
and alw ays started entirely anew w ith the ascension (to the throne) forgiven.
of each new king. A n agreement was reached to institute the era A tradition regarding the first m onth of the year being al-
of the rule of Islam, beginning w ith the hijrah of the Prophet M uharram , ascribed to Muhammad, appears in ad-D aylam is
from Mecca to Medina. There are no such differences of opinion Firdaws. A d-D aylam is son reported the same tradition on the
w ith regard to the date of the hijrah as there are w ith regard to authority of A ll w ithout the indication of a chain of transmitters.^
the time when the call first cam e to M uhammad and w ith regard This much has been said about the Muslim era. A s to pre-
to the d ay and year of his birth. And although the date of his death Islam ic eras, Ibn al-Jaw zi reported through Am ir as-Sabi th at
is fixed, it is no pleasant thought to use (such a sad event) as the the latter said: W hen the children of A dam m ultiplied and
beginning (82) of the era. The hijrah, moreover, coincided in time spread upon earth, th ey used an era which started w ith the fall
w ith the success of the religion {millah) of Islam, the frequent of A dam and covered the period from A dam to the D elu ge; from
arrival of embassies, and the Muslim ascent to power. It is a time there to the Fire of Ibrahim (into which he was thrown and from
of blessings and a very impressive (historical) event. The hijrah took which he was saved b y God);^ from there to the period of Y u su f;
place on Tuesday, R a b i I, 8th. The first of that year th at is, from there to the exodus of Musa and the children of Israel
al-Muharram fell on a Thursday according to the average (cal from E g y p t ; from there to the period of D a w u d ; from there to the
culation?). A fter this had become generally ^ known, it was con period of Sulaym an; and from there to the period of Isa.
sidered (the correct date). However, according to observation (of This story was reported b y Muhammad b. Ishaq,^ on the authority
the new moon) and astronomical (?) calculation, the d ay fell of Ibn Abbas.
on a Friday. The author of the Nihdyat al-idrdk ^ said th at (the There are different versions. One of them runs: The era after
hijrah) was used, and for all future times the era was counted A dam covered the period from A dam to the D eluge; from there
from it. Agreem ent on this m atter was reached in the year 17 of to the period of the Fire of Ibrahim ; from there (83) to the building
the hijrah, the fourth year of the cahphate of Umar. U ntil then, of the K a bah an epoch introduced b y the children of Ism ail ;
each year (after the hijrah) was called after its main event, and from there to M aadd b. A dnan ; from there to K a b b. L u 'a y y ;
this was used for dating purposes. The first year of the P rophets and from there to the Y e ar of the E lep h an t. This story was re
residence in Medina was thus called: T he permission to tra v el ported b y al-Waqidi.
th at is, from Mecca to Medina. The second year was called; The According to a certain authority, the children of Ibrahim used
year of the command to fig h t. The third year; The year of the an era covering the period from the Fire of Ibrahim to the con
test, and so on. Afterwards, the custom of naming the years after struction of the K a bah b y Ibrahim and Ism a'il. Then, the children
the m ain events w as abandoned. of Ism ail introduced an era which covered the period from the
U b ayd b. Um ayr^ said: Al-M uharram is the month of God. construction of the K a bah to their dispersal. W henever a group
It is the beginning of the year. It is used as the beginning of the era. of people left the Tiham ah (in which Mecca was situated), th ey
In al-Muharram, the K a bah is clothed, and m oney is coined. introduced a (new) era which began w ith the year of their respective
exodus. Those of the children of Ism ail who remained in the
Probably referriug to the religious scholars, according to the text of the N ih ayah
(n. 2).
Tiham ah used an era which covered the period from the exodus
* Mahmud b. M as'ud a-irazi (d. 710/1311, cf. G A L , II, 211 f.), N ihdyat al-idrdk, of the B anu Zayd, S a d, Fahd, and Juhaynah from the Tiham ah
third maqalah, tenth hah. I consulted the Bodleian ms. or. Marsh 133. This whole paragraph
was derived b y as-Sahawi from as-Sirazi, not directly, however, but through al-K afiyaji, F irdaw s, Ms. Cairo H adit 355, s.v. awwal.
see above, p. 251. As-Sirazis source, in turn, m ay have been the M untahd of al-IIaraqi * Cf. Qur an xxi 68-69 (68-69 FI.).
Ibn al-Jawzi, Talqih fu h u m ahl al-atar, Paris ms. ar. 734, fol. 49. For this and the
(cf. G A L , I, 473), or any other of the astronomical works which customarily included a
section on ta^rih. following paragraph, as-Sahawis immediate source was Sibt Ibn al-Jawzi, fol. 4b.
* The author of the Sirah, d. 150/767, or 151 (cf. G A L , I , 134 f.; H. R. I d r i s , in Studia
Al-Biriini, al-Atdr al-hdqiyah, 30^ f. S a c h a u , suggests that the pronoun here refers to
the era of the hijrah (and should probably be feminine also at the first occurrence). Islam ica, X V II, 23-35 [1962-63]).
* Cf. Ibn Sa'd, Tabaqdt, V, 341 f. S a c h a u and others. Muhammad b. 'U m ar, d. 207/823 (cf. G A L , I, 135 f.).

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 25


386 as-sah Aw ! s i *l A n TRANSLATION 387

to the death of K a b b. L u a y y , Then, th ey introduced an era which A period of growing length affects the chronology of a nation.
covered the period from the death of K a b b. L u a y y to (the Y ear Through the transcription from one book to the other and the
of) the Elephant. Then, there was an era which covered the period translation from one language into the other, errors creep in.i The
from (the Y e a r of) the Elephant to U m ars introduction of the era (tim e intervals) are figured either too long or too short. Such error
of the hijrah. This took place in the year i6 , 17, or 18/637-39. (84) can be found in the indication of the number of years which
A nother ^ (story about pre-Islam ic eras) states that the H im yar- elapsed between A dam , Nuh, and the prophets. T he Jews in this case
ites used (the reigns of) the T u b b a s as the epoch years of their differ considerably (in their figures). There is much similar confusion
era; the Cassanids (the break of) the D am (of M arib) and the in in the histories of the Persians, in spite of the continuity of their
habitants of S a n a (first) the victo ry over the Yem en b y the rule right down to its end. ^
Abyssinians, and later on the Persian conquest (of the Yem en). The proof of the correctness of A bu M a'sar's rem ark is found
The A rabs then used the fam ous b a ttle days, such as the w ar of in the statem ent of M uhamm ad: Do not go beyond Adnan. The
al-Basus, Dahis, and al-6abra*, the d a y of D u Qar, al-Fijar, and genealogers (who w ent beyond A dnan in the genealogy of Muham
so on. Betw een the w ar of al-Basus and the year when the call mad) are lyin g .
first cam e to the Prophet, there was an interval of s ix ty years. This Ibn al-A tir said:^ E ach A rab (Bedouin) group used their most
story was told b y M uhammad b. S a d, on the auth ority of Ibn al- fam ous event as the epoch of an era. T h ey had no common era.
Kalbi.^ This is shown b y the verse of a certain (ancient A rab poet)
A nother (such story) states th at the Persians had (four) eras
(which started w ith the first rulers of the) four classes of their I hope to live forever. M y mind
kings: K ayu m art, or Tayum art, w ith t instead of k, also called A nd the year of m y birth date back to Hujr.
Gil ,h, K in g of C lay, who is believed to be identical w ith Adam ,
Also b y the verse of a l-Ja d i:
Y azd jard , A rdasir b. B^bak, and Anusarw an the Just. This (story)
was told b y Hisam b. al-K albi, on the auth ority of his father. W hoever asks about me I was
(Ibn al-Kalbi) said: The B yzantines (Rum) used an era which A young m an in the days of the cam el disease.
covered the period from the death of D ara b. D ara to the victory
of the Persians over them. The same idea was expressed more concisely b y al-Hamawi, at-Ta^rih a l-M a n s 4 r i,
fol. 3a-b G r y a z n e v i c h (Moscow i960).
The Copts used an era which covered the period from Buhtnassar * According to at-Tabari, I, 353 f. d e G o e j e and others, no nation except the Persians
to Cleopatra, mistress of E gyp t. (and the Israelites) can be known historically (chronologically), because such knowledge
requires a period of consecutive rule as existed only among the Persians and the Israelites.
The Jews used an era which began w ith the destruction of the Cf. Ibn Katir, B id dya h, II, 194; E . B r a u n l i c h , Beitrage zur Gesellschaftsordnung der
Temple. arabischen Beduinenstdmme, in Islam ica, V I, 72 (1933).
* K d m il, I, 6 f. (Cairo 1301), whose source is at-Tabari, Ta^rth, I, 1254 D e G o e j e and
The Christians used an era which began with the ascension of others.
Isa the Messiah. The poet is said to be ar-Rabi b. Dabu*^ al-Fazari, a contemporary of Im ju u-l-qays.
Cf. al-Marzuqi, A zm in ah , II, 276 (Hyderabad 1332).
A b u M asar said: Most histor(ical dates) are fau lty and corrupt. * Hujr b. Amr, the father of Imru u-l-qays.
A n -N 4bigah al-Ja'di, d. 65/684 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 92 f.), one of the macro
The following information, down to p. 387, line 13 ( are lying ), is again derived from biotics. His verse is quoted b y Ibn Sallam al-Jumahi, Tabaqdt aS-Su^ard^, 26 H e l l (Leiden
Sibt Ibn al-Jawzi, fols. 4a-5b. 1916); Ibn Habib, M uhabbar, 8 L i c h t e n s t a e d t e r (Hyderabad 1361/1942); as-Suli, Adab
* Cf. al-Mas'udi, Tanbth, 202 D e G o e j e , and especially, 'Imad-ad-din al-Isfah^ni, al-kuttdb, ly g (Cairo 1341); al-Mas'udi, Tanbth, 204 D e G o e j e ; A g d n t, IV , 129 (Bulaq
P ath, 5 L a n d b e r g
(Leiden 1888). 1285); al-'Askari, Aw dH l, Paris ms. ar. 5986, fol. 76a; al-Marzuqi, loc. cit.; Ibn al-Barizi,
^ The author of the Tabaqdt, d. 230/845 (cf. G A L , I, 136 f.). op. cit. (above, p. 88, n. 2), fol. 4oa-b, with a long discussion of the meaning of hundn; as-
* HiSam, b. Muhammad, d. 204/819-20, or 206 (cf. G A L , I, 138-40). Safadi, W d fi, I, 10 R i t t e r ; al-Marzubani, N u r al-qabas, 127 S e l l h e i m . Cf. also M. N a l l j n o ,
Muhammad b. a s -S a % , d. 146/763 (G A L Supplem ent I, 331 f.; F ihrist, 139 f., Cairo in R S O , X I V , 429-31 (1934). The first half-verse is also used in other connections, cf. G .
1348 = 95 F l u g e l ). L e v i d e l l a V i d a , L e s Livres des chevaux , 75 (Leiden 1928, Publications de la Fondation
* Ja^far b. Muhammad, d. 272/886 (cf. G A L , I, 221 f.). The same quotation is found in D e Goeje , 8).
Hamzah al-Isfah 4ni, H istory, I, 9 If. G o t t w a l d t , who presumably was the source of Ibn * The time of al-hundn (glanders) of which many camels died is placed b y Arabic
al-Barizi, op. cit. (above, p. 88, n. 2), fol. 50b. tradition in the period of al-Mundir b. M^ -as-sam^ .
388 a s - s a h Aw 1s i l A n TRANSLATION 389

A nd b y the verse of another:^ (85) of H uwarizm and Syria, the kings of the Tatars, and all those
She was b u t in skirt and blouse quite young when it happened (others) who were called kings.
6 The history of the wazirs. The first of them was Harun (the
th at
B iblical Aaron), then, A b u B akr, and Um ar, and m any others.
The son of Ham m am went on a raid gainst the H a tam tribe.
Some of them fall under (the history of) the prophets, caliphs, etc.,
E ach of the poets used a fam ous event as the epoch of his partic and kings.
ular era. If there had been a common era, they would not have 7 The history of amirs, high officials, governors of the realm,
used different ones." and great secretaries. A number of them were executives, and
others were litterateurs and poets.
( x i T H E W O R K S O N H IS T O R Y )
8 The history of jurists and members of the (juridical) schools,
The works on history are very m any and cannot be com pletely the religious leaders of the different periods, and the legal experts
enumerated. In the Kitdh Isldh Ihn as-Saldh, as I read in the in inheritance m atters. I say: Independent scholars who became
authors handwriting, the hadit expert A la -ad-din M ugultay al- authorities and others fall under this (category).
H anafi said: I have seen someone who owned about a thousand 9 The history of the Q uran readers who were versed in the seven
works on h isto ry. different readings.
10 The history of the hadit experts {huffdz).
(A. H istorical works according to ad-D ahabis 1 1 The history of the leading hadit scholars.
classification) 12 The history of historians.
13 The history of grammarians, litterateurs, lexicographers,
I have seen the following statem ent in the handw riting of the
poets, stylists, metricians, and computers.
hadit expert and authoritative historian, A bu Abdall&.h ad-Daha-
14 The history of G od's servants, ascetics, saints, Sufis, and
bi:^ (These are) the different kinds of historical works which enter
devout men.
into m y great comprehensive H istory and I did not especially
15 The history of judges and governors, as well as the history
exert m yself, but if I had done it, th ey would have come to six
of official witnesses and law officials.
hundred volum es:
16 The history of teachers, bookdealers (or copyists), story
1 The biography of our Prophet.
tellers, itinerant (charlatans),^ and mountebanks.
2 The stories of the prophets.
17 The history of predicants and preachers, chanters, boon-
3 The history of the men around Muhammad.
companions, and m usical entertainers.
4 The history of the caliphs from among the men around
18 The history of the noble, generous, intelligent, quickw itted,
Muhammad, the U m ayyad s and Abbasids, as well as the history
and wise.
of the M arwanids in Spain and the U baydids in Northwest A frica
19 The history of physicians, philosophers, heretics, geom etri
and E gyp t.
cians, and so on.
5 T h e history of kings and dynasties and of the Persian and
20 ^The history of theologians [mutakallimun), Jahmis, M uta-
B yzantine rulers as well as the history of the kings of Islam , such
zilah, A s arites, K arram ites, and anthropomorphists.
as the Tulunids, Ihsidids, Buyids, Saljuqs, and others, the kings
2 1 The history of the different sects of the Si'ah , the extrem ists
1 According to at-Tabari, loc. cit., the poet was a contemporary of the other poets, but {guldh, rdfidah) and others.
he has been identified with the early Islanaic poet H um ayd b. Tawr (cf. also al-Mubarrad,
K a m il, 115 W r i g h t , Leipzig 1864). The second half of the verse is quoted in A gdn t, V II,
22 The history of the different kinds of H arijites, A n ti-Alids,
119 (Bulaq 1285 = V I II , 175, Cairo 1935); L isd n al-A rab, X I I, 141. and the various groups of innovators and sectarians.
* According to the end of the quotation (IHdn, 86, below, p. 391), as-Sahawi seems to
have gotten it indirectly through Ibn Hajar. I t is also not from the History o f Islam of
ad-Dahabi.
1 Cf. Ibn Katir, Biddyah, V, 252.
390 A S-SAH AW fs I l A n T R A N S LA T IO N 391

23 The history of the orthodox religious scholars, Sufis, jurists, fake invalids,^ homosexuals, dissolute and facetious persons, rich
and hadit scholars. men, persons of inherited wealth,^ and untruthful people.
24 The history of misers, spongers, bores, gluttons, fools, 37 The history of the intelligent insane, bedeviled, lunatics ( ?),
coxcombs, and dunces. I s a y : He did not bother w ith the opposite brainsick, and bewitched.
typ e of persons, the magnanimous and generous. He apparently 38 The history of alms men, mendicants, supplicants, and
felt th at the above-m entioned (reference to) generous men (18) vulgar {hardfisah) * and troublesome elements.
was enough. I have a collection of instances of cases (of the m agnan 39 The history of those who were killed through the Qur^an,
imous and generous). through love, music, and fear {al-faza^), and those who died in
25 The history of the blind, invalid, deaf, mute, and hunch stantly. A nd
backed. 40 T he history of (pre-Islamic) soothsayers and wicked workers
26 T he history of astrologers, sorcerers, alchemists, treasure of miracles and revelations which look like acts of the divine
hunters, and prestidigitateurs. grace, and others.
27 The history of genealogists, antiquarians [ahbdri), and B ed (Ad-Dahabi) said: These are fo rty kinds of histor(ical works).
ouins. A w ork containing all of them would be extrem ely lengthy and
28 T he history of courageous men, knights, footmen, and m ake up a camel load (in weight). To a large part, th ey have been
messengers. 1 treated in monographs b y excellent scholars. A m an m ay be versed
29 ^The history of merchants, rem arkable travels on land and in tw o (fields of) history, or three, or more. A n y outstanding scholar
on the sea, m ountebank (foreign ?) sailors ( ?),^ and gym nosophists( ?). in a particular field of history, if approached, w ill be found to know
30 The history of rem arkable artisans and workers, skilful rem arkable stories and anecdotes connected w ith his field, which
inventors, and producers of various kinds of objects. can scarcely be found in a n y h istory. This is the end of the quota
3 1 The history of monks, recluses, hermits, (86) and exponents tion of the passage in ad-D ahabis handwriting.
of perverted m ysticism . Ibn H ajar, as I have read in his handwriting, rem arked th at
32 The history of those who led the prayers, called to them, and (ad-Dahabis) words: A cam el load, contradict his first statem ent
fixed their hours, dream interpreters (?), and the common people. concerning six hundred volum es. The latter figure constitutes
33 The history of highw ay robbers, assassins [fiddwiyah), and more than two cam el loads.
chess, checkers, and dice players. I s a y ; He om itted the shooting 1 also read at the beginning of an autograph copy of ad-D ahabis
of arrows. History o f Islam th at he compiled the w ork w ith great effort
34 The history of p retty ones, lovers, passionate inam orati, from a number of sources which im part (to the student) a knowl
dancers, winebibbers, bad women (?),^ debauchers, pimps, liars, edge of past history from the beginning of Islam to the tim e of
and effeminate men. writing. This includes the dates of death of the great caliphs,
35 -The history of clever, resolute, economic, resourceful, cun Q uran readers, ascetics, jurists, hadit scholars, (religious) scholars,
ning, and crafty people. rulers, wazirs, gram marians, and poets. I t also includes the knowl
36 The history of beggars (?),^ swindlers, confidence men, edge of their classes, their times, their teachers, and some historical

Cf. al-Jahiz, B u h a W , 39 and 44 (Cairo 1948), cf. trans. C. P e l l a t , 65 and 73 (Beirut-


P a ris i9 5 i); al-Bayhaqi, a l-M afidsin wa-l-masdwt, 626 S c h w a l l y (Giessen 1902), where the
1 Taken b y themselves, the last two words could also mean other things. word is read qrsy.
6 urabd^ al-bahrtyah. According to al-Jawbari, al-M uhtdr f i kaSf al-asrdr, i6, 39 (Cairo 2 Ms. Leiden: at-tildd, but the translation of the last two words seems very doubtful.
1316), bahriyah are master thieves, and gurabd^ are a kind of diviners. Ms. Leiden: al-mqmryn, but the dictionaries s. rad. qmr moon know of no derivation
A bu D ulafs Qastdah as-Sdsdniyah has a du l-gzr which is not clear to me (of. at-Ta'alib!, from this root in the meaning of lunatic.
Y attm ah, III, 185, Damascus 1304), but m ay have some connection with al-'-rr of the IHdn. * Cf. W . M. B r i n n e r , The Significance o f the hardftsh and their Sultan, in Journal of
* Leg. al-m ukaddtn ? the Econom ic and Social History o f the Orient, V I, 190-215 (1963); E l , 2nd ed., s.v. harfush.
Ms. Leiden; wa-l-musdniHn who try to get money through cajolery or bribery. H istory o f Islam , I, 13-17 (Cairo 1367). Cf. also IHdn, 160, below, p. 512.
392 a s -s a h a w ! s i *l a n T R A N S L A T IO N 393

inform ation about them, all of which is presented in the briefest (b. Hanbal), the History of al-Mufaddal b. Gassan al-Gallabi,^ and
and most concise manner. It further includes the fam ous conquests, and the works on personality criticism b y Ibn M ain and Abd-ar-
memorable battles, and notable affairs. No unnecessary lengthiness Rahm an b. A bi Hatim.^ I also consulted the Tahdib al-Kamdl
(was tolerated) nor completeness (intended). I m ention (only) of our teacher al-Mizzi. In excerpts, I used the histories of A bu
famous and near-famous men, and I omit those who are unknown Abdallah al-Hakim , Ibn Yunus,^ al-H atib, Ibn A sakir on
(87) or as good as unknown. I refer only to the great events. If I D am ascus , A b u S a 'd b. as-Sam am also his Ansdh , Judge
were to deal fu lly w ith all biographies and events, the w ork would ams-ad-din b. H allikan, the great scholar Sihab-ad-din A bu a-
require a hundred volumes, in fact, more than that. It contains mah, and ayh Qutb-ad-din b. al-Yunini * the latters History
a hundred souls w ith whom (alone) I would be able to fill fifty is a continuation of the Mir^'dt az-zamdn b y the preacher ams-ad-
volum es. din Y usu f Sibt b. al-Jaw zi; I also used a good deal of the Mir'^dh
H e said; I consulted m any books for this work. Its m aterial itself; both works are arranged according to events and years.
is derived from al-B ayhaqis DaldHl an-nuhuwah} Ibn Ish aq s I w idely used the histories of at-Tabari, Ibn al-Atir, Ibn al-Faradi,
Biography o f the Prophet, Ibn A"id al-K M ib s Magdzi,^ the the continuation of Ibn al-Faradis history b y Ibn Baskuw al,
Tahaqdt al-kuhrdoi Ibn Sa'd, al-W aqidis secretary, and al-B uharis the supplement to the latter b y Ibn al-Abbar, the K am il of Ibn
History. Use was also made of the histories of A bu B ak r A hm ad b. A di, and m any other books and numerous pam phlets.
A bi H aytam ah, Y a 'q u b al-Fasawi, M uhammad b. M utanna al- I s a y : A d-D ahabi has given a sum m ary description (of the various
A nazi ^ which is a small w ork , A bu H afs al-Fall 4 s, A b u B ak r fields of history and the works written in them). I have tried to
b. A b i Saybah, al-W aqidi, al-H aytam b. Adi, H alifah b. Hayyat m ake a detailed list of the works on m any (of these subjects).
whose Tahaqdt were also used , and A bu Z u r'ah ad-Dimasqi.'^ No all-inclusiveness has been attem pted, because this would have
(Use was further made of) the Futuh of S ayf b. Umar, the Nasab been impossible. For m any subjects there exists no history. It can,
{of the Qurays) b y az-Zubayr b. Bakkar,^ the M usnad of A hm ad however, be derived from the works on those (particular) scientific
* A h m ad b. al-H usayn, d. 458/1066 (cf. G A L , I, 363). fields, or from (their) description, or the hke, although it has (so
* M uham m ad b. 'A^id ad-Dim asqi, cf. al-B uhari, Ta^rih, I, i , 207, apparen tly identical
with the author m entioned in Fihrist, 158 (Cairo 1348 = 109 F l u g e l ). H is R aids were
far) found no specialist treatm ent (?).
still used b y Ibn Sayyid-an-nas, 'Uyun al-atar, II, 344 (Cairo 1356).
^ Y a 'q u b b. S u fyan , d. 277/891 (cf. above, p. 72; as-Sam 'ani, A n sd b ,io l. 428b; G A L
(i. The history of Muhammad)
Supplement I II , 1195, ad I, 174; G A L new edition II, 662; H ajji H alifah, KaSf az-zuniin, II,
139, no. 2269 F l u g e l ). According to the iHdn, both Ibn A b i H ay ta m a h s and a l-F a saw is
The biography and raids of the Prophet as well as the rest of
H istories were used in part only. According to ad-D ahabi, only the form er w ork w as used
on ly in part. his history, th at true guide (88) to his (model) w ays, were compiled
D. 252/December 866-January 867 {TB, III , 283 ff.). He was known as A b u MusA
az-Zam in. b y numerous scholars, such as
'A m r b. 'A li, d. 249/864 {TB, X I I , 207 ff.). Musa b. U qbah al-Asadi, of the second generation.
* D . 2 0 4 /8 19 -2 0 , cf. Fihrist, 32 4 (Cairo 1 3 4 8 ) ; ad-D ahabi, Tabagdt al-huffdz, 8th tab.,
M uhammad b. Ishaq al-M uttalibi as a client of (Qays b. Mah-
no. 2 2 , and idem, ^Ibar, has 2 4 0 ; IHdn, below, 4 4 8 , n. 2. T h e last en try in his Ta^rih (see
above, p. 7 1 ) concerns the year 232. Therefore, 2 4 0 /8 54 -5 5 m ust be preferred as the date of
his death. He w as known as Sabbab (not Sabib, as in the Fihrist) al-'U sfuri. Under this name, ' L ived in the third/ninth cen tu ry, cf. T B , X I I I , 124. He is quoted b y A b u N u 'a ym ,
his Ta^rih is quoted b y A b u B akr al-M aliki, Riydd an-nufus, I, 1 1 (Cairo 1 9 5 1 ) . In addition History of Isfahdn, I, 69 D e d e r i n g (Leiden 1931-34).
to the m anuscript of the Ta^rih preserved in R ab at, p a rt of his Tahaqdt are preserved in * D . 327/939 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 278 f.).
Dam ascus, cf. Y . Fihris mahtutdt Ddr al-kutub az-Zdhiriyah, 19 9 (Dam ascus 136 6 / The E gyp tia n historian, 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. Ahm ad, A b u S a'id , d. 347/958 (Ibn
19 4 7 ). His grandfather, b y the same nam e, who died in 1 6 0 / 7 7 6 - 7 7 (as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. K a tir, Biddyah, X I , 233).
3 9 2 b ) , is m entioned b y al-B uhari, Ta^rth, II, i, 1 7 5 . [Tw ice ed. in 1967J. * Musa b. M uham m ad, 640-726/1242-1326 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 589). H is continuation
'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. 'Am x, d. 282/895 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 208 f.). For a description of the Mir^dh has been published in H yderabad 1374-80/1954-61.
of the Istan bul m anuscript F atih 4 2 1 0 of his Ta^rih, cf . S . a l - M u n a j j i d , in Revue de Ilnstitut A bd allah b. M uham m ad, d. 403/1013 (cf. G A L , I, 338).
des M anuscrits Arabes, I I, 65-67 (1956). ' D. 141/758-59 (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 205; J. S c h a c h t , in Acta Orientalia, X X I ,
* D. 180/796-97 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 2 1 3 1 .; a d - D u r i , Baht f t naPat Him at-ta^rih, 288-300 [1953]; A . G u i l l a u m e , in the introduction to his translation of the Strah, pp.
248-55 [B eirut i960]). X L I I I - X L V I I [Oxford U n iversity Press 1955]; Ao-DuRi, Baht f t naPat Him at-ta^rth,
D. 256/870 (cf. G A L , I, 141, and his biograph y in M a h m u d M . S a k i r s edition of 159-65 [B eiru t i960]). A s-Sah aw i m ight have also m entioned A bu M a'sar N ajih (d. 170/
Jamharat nasab Qurays [Cairo 1381/1962]). 787), cf. Ibn S a 'd , III, I, intro, p. X X V , and E l , 2nd ed.
394 A S - S A H l w f s I LA N TR AN S LAT IO N 395

ram ah b. al-M uttalib) al-Madani, who also belonged to the ments of the Rawd. B oth the Sirah and the Rawd served as the
second generation, because he had seen Anas. basis of M ugultays Zahr al-bdsim. Ibn H ajar published separately
Judge A b u A bdallah Muhammad b. Um ar al-Aslam i as a the traditions of the Sirah which have breaks in the chains of
client of the Aslam al-Madani al-W aqidi after his grandfather, transmitters. A large section of the Sirah was commented upon b y
W aqid. His secretary A bu A bdallah Muhammad b. S a d al-Bag- our teacher Badr-ad-din al-A yn i. On his authority, the {Sirah)
d M i also has a long biography of M uhamm ad a t the beginning was transm itted b y several men. A ll this was clearly described
of the Tahaqdt al-kuhrd. b y m ein a pam phlet I wrote upon completion of ih.t Sirah in m y class.
A b u B ak r A bd-ar-R azzaq b. H am m am al-H im yari as a client The raids were transm itted b y Ibn L a h iah,i on the authority
of the H im yar as-Sanani.i of A bu 1-Aswad, on the auth ority of U rw ah b. az-Zubayr;^ further,
A b u A hm ad Muhammad b. A id al-Qurasi ad-Dim asqi al-K a- b y az-Zuhri, on the auth ority of Urwah b. az-Zubayr, on the
tib. auth ority of the la tters father; and b y H ajjaj b. A b i Mani ,*on the
A b u U tm an S a id b. Y ahy^ al-Um awi al-Bagdadi.^ A nd authority of az-Zuhri.
A b u 1-Qasim at-T aym i al-Isbahani. The (pre-Islamic battle days and other events) witnessed b y the
The first w ork (that of Musa b. Uqbah) is the most correct one, Prophet were transm itted b y Y un us b. Yazid,^ on the authority
according to M usas pupil, the Im am MMik,^ and others. of az-Zuhri, The biography was transm itted b y A bu 1- A bbas
A s to the second w ork (that of Ibn Ishaq), as-Safii said that al-W alid b. Muslim al-Qurasi ad-Dim asqi who, according to
every thorough student of the Raids depended on it. On (Ibn A b u Z u r'ah ar-Razi, knew more about the raids , on the author
Ish aqs) authority, Salamah b. al-Fadl ar-R azi transm itted the ity of al-A w zai, b y M uhammad b. A b d -a l-A la (89), on the
Beginnings and the Raids, Jarir b. H azim and Y a h y a b. Muham authority of M utam ir b. Sulayman, on the auth ority of the la tte rs
m ad b. A b bad b. H^ni the Raids (alone). (Ibn Ish aqs) famous father; b y Abd-al-M alik b. H abib < . . . > al-M usayyab b. W a-
book was transm itted b y several people, among them the two dih;^ and b y A b u A m r M uaw iyah b. Amr,^^ on the authority of
Kufians, A b u Muhammad, or A b u Zayd, Ziy^d b. A bdallah b. A bu Ishaq al-Fazari.^^
a t-T u fayl al-Bakka"i a l-Amiri, who is the more reliable of the The raids w ere transm itted b y al-Hasan b. Sufyan,i^ on the
two, and Y un us b. B u k ayr as-Saybani.^ The religious leader A bii auth ority of A b u B ak r b. A b i Saybah.
M uhammad Abd-al-M alik b. His^m^^ studied Ibn Ish aq s w ork
^ E ith er 'A b d allah , d. 174/790-91 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 256; R . G u e s t s introduction
w ith Z iyad a l-B a k k a i, on the authority of Ibn Ish iq , and took to his edition of al-K ind i, The Governors and Judges of Egypt, 31 f., London 1912, E . J . W.
Gibb M em. Series, 19), or his brother, Isa (Ibn H aja r, Lisd n , I V , 403 f.). Cf. also below ,
it and corrected and revised it. Ibn H isam s {Sirah) becam e the
p. 518, n. I.
standard reference work. A bu 1-Qasim as-Suhayli w rote the Rawd Cf. al-Buhari, Ta^rih, IV , i , 31 f.; ad-D ahabl, T a M h al-Isldm, IV , 31-34; J. H o r o v i t z ,
in Islam ic Culture, I, 535 ff. (1927); a d - D u r i , B aht f i naPat Him at-ta^rih, 61-76, 137-42
al-unufon Ibn H isam s work. A d-D ahabi and others composed abridg-
(B eirut i960). Cf. also above, p. 130 f.
H a jja j b. Y u su f, d. after 216/831-32 (Ibn S a 'd , Tahaqdt, V I I , 2, 175 S a c h a u and others;
^ D. 211/827 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 333). al-B u h ari, T a M h , I, 2, 376 f.; Ibn H ajar, Tahdib, II, 208).
* D. 249/864 (T B , I X , 90 f.). * D . (1)59/775-76 (al-Buhari, Ta^rih, IV , 2, 406). Cf. a d - D u r !, op. cit., 83.
Ism a 'il b. M uham m ad, d. 535/1141 (cf. G A L , I, 324; Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, X , 90). D. 195/810-11 (al-B uhari, T a M h , IV , 2, 152 f.).
Cf. J. H o r o v i t z , The Earliest Biographies o f the Prophet, in Islam ic Culture, II, 165 'U b a yd a lla h b. Abd-'al-Karim , d. 264/878 (T B , X , 326-37)-
(1928). T h e translation is based upon Ms. Leiden which om its wa- before as-siyar.
F or this often quoted rem ark, cf. T B , I, 219, and X I I I , 24611 fi., and the other b iog D . 245/859-60 (al-Buhari, T a M h , I, i , 174).
raphers of Ibn I s h iq , in F. W C s t e n f e l d s edition of Ibn H isam , Sirah, II, p. I l l ff. D . 187/Decem ber 802-January 803 (al-Buhari, T a M h , IV , 2, 49).
* Cf. N . A b b o t t , Studies in Arabic Literary Pa pyri I, 94 f. (Chicago 1957)- I t is tem pting There appears to be some disorder in the te xt which I did not succeed in clearing up.
to assume here an omission and to read: Salam ah b. a I-F a d l< a n d > ('A li b. M ujahid) ar- I do not know w hether 'A bd-al-M alik b. H abib could be the Spanish historian who we
Razi, F or the la tter, cf. below , p. 410, n. 3. know w rote on the biograph y of the Prophet. A l-M usayyab died in 246/860-61 (Ibn H ajar,
D. 170/786-87 (ad-D ahabi, Tahaqdt al-huffdz, 5th tab., no. 34 W u s t e n f e l d ). Lisd n , V I, 40 f.).
* Cf. al-B uhari, Ta^rih, IV , 2, 304; Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, X I , 273. D. 214/829 {TB, XIII, 197 f.).
D . 183/799-800 (TB, v i I I , 476 ff.). ** Ibrahim b. M uham m ad, d. 186/802 (a l-B u h M , T a M h , I, i , 321; Ibn K a tir, Biddyah,
D. 199/814-15 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X , 245). X , 200, anno 188).
D . 218/833 (cf. G A L , f, 135). D . 303/916 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, V I, 132-36).
396 A S -S A H A w is I LAN TRANSLATION 397

Biographies of M uhammad are found in the Histories of Ala*-ad-din A ll b. M uhammad b. Ibrahim al-Bagdadi al-H 4 zin,
A b u B ak r b. A b i H aytam ah. the author of the Maqbul al-manqul} has a len gth y biography
A b u 1-Qasim b. Asakir. Further in of Muhammad.
Ibn A b i d-dam. Others were w ritten b y
A b u Zakariya* an-Nawawi, Tahdib al-asmd* wa-l-lugdt. Zahir-ad-din A li b. M uhammad b. Mahmud al-K azaruni Plater
A b u 1-H ajjaj al-Mizzi, Tahdih al-Kamdl. on al-Bagdadi who is earlier than (A la -ad-din).
A b u A bdallah ad-Dahabi, History {of Islam). M uhibb-ad-din at-Tabari.
Im ad-ad-din b. K a tir,i in the introduction of the Biddyah. Judge Izz-ad-din b. J a m a ah. A nd
A b u 1-H asan al-H azraji, in the introduction of the History of ams-ad-din al-Birmawi.* (Each of the tw o last-m entioned schol
the Yemen. A nd ars) wrote tw o works on the subject. A l-Birm aw i himself w rote
Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, History o f Mecca, and others. glosses to one of them. These glosses were separately published
Some authors, such as Ibn A sakir, have a long biography, others in connection w ith the original w ork b y Taqi-ad-din b. Fahd, who
a brief one. himself is the author of a tw o-volum e Sirah.
Monograph biographies of M uhammad were composed b y Ali*-ad-din A li b. U tm an at-Turkm ani al-Hanafi.
A b u S 'S a y h b. Hibban. A bu Um am ah b. an-Naqq&,l
A bu 1-H usayn b. Faris al-Lugawi. Sams-ad-din b. Nasir-ad-din, in a substantial, accurate volume.
A bu U m ar b. Abd-al-Barr, ad-Durar f i ihtisdr al-magdzi wa- Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi, Kitdh al-Imtd',^ in which there is much
s-siyar. to be criticized.
A bu M uhammad b. Hazm. U tm an b. Isa b. D arbas al-Marani^ wrote al-FawdHd al-mu-
araf-ad-din A bu A hm ad ad-D im yati. tirah^^ f i jawdmi'- assirah.
Abd-al-Crani al-Maqdisi Qutb-ad-din al-H alabi ^ w rote on it ihab-ad-din A hm ad b. Ism ail (90) al-Ibsiti as-Safii al-W aiz,i2
the very useful Mawrid al-hani. who died in the year 835/1432, also w rote a comprehensive book
A bu A bdallah ad-Dahabi. of which he w rote about th irty fascicles. His book includes the
A bu 1-F ath b. Sayyid-an-nas, 'Uyun al-atar a very fine w ork Sirah of Ibn Ishaq and the rem arks on it b y as-Suhayli and others,
to which Burhan-ad-din al-Halabi w rote two volumes of notes the m aterial contained in Ibn K a tir s Biddyah and al-W aqidis
entitled N ur an-nihrds Light of the Lam p and N ilr al-'-uyun, Magdzi, and other sources. H e w as concerned w ith establishing
Ibn Sayyid-an-nas own abridgment of the 'Uyun. Ibn al-Q aw ba ^ (the correct meaning of) technical phrases occurring in the (biog
said that (Ibn Sayyid-an-nas) gave him the '^Uyun to stud y with rap h y of Muhammad). He was very fond of that.
the result th at he m arked about more than a hundred passages
* D. 741/beginning 1341 (cf. G A L , I I, 109).
in it as doubtful. A nd * D . 697/1297, or after 700 (Ibn H aja r, Durar, I I I , 119). Cf. C. C a h e n , in R I , X , 342
(1936), M u s t a f a J a w a d , in his edition of Ibn al-F u w ati, Talhis Majma^ al-dddb, IV , I,
A bu r-R a b i a l-K a la i,^ who added to the biography of Muham
299, n. I (D am ascus 1962), and IHdn, 96, below , p. 410.
m ad the biographies of the (first) three caliphs and called his w ork A hm ad b. A b d allah , d. 694/1295 (cf. G A L , II, 95 f.).
al-Iktifd\ * M uham m ad b. 'A b d -a d -D a im, d. 831/1428 (cf. G A L , I, 361 f.).
* M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, 787-871/1385-1466 (cf. G A L Supplement I I, 225).
* b. 'U m ar, d. 774/1373 (cf. G A L , I I, 49; H . L a o u s t , in Arahica, II, 42-88 * D. 750/1349 (cf. G A L , II, 64).
[1955]). M uham m ad b. 'A li, d. 763/1362 (cf. G A L Supplement I I, 95 f.).
A bd -al-K arim b. Abd-an-N ur, 664-735/1266-1334 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 398 f.). M uham m ad b . 'A b d allah , d. 842/1438 (cf. G A L , I I, 76 f.), Cf. also Ibn Tulun, Luma^dt,
Cf. also fi. A m a r , in J A , X , 19, 255, n. 5 (1912). 43, 48 (Dam ascus 1348); H . L. G o t t s c h a l k , Islam ic Arabic M anuscripts (Mingana Collec
Or Ib n a l-Q u b a', M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 738/1338 (as-Safadi, Wd/i, I, 238-47 tion, Birm ingham ), IV , I, no. 166 (Birm ingham 1948).
R i t t e r ; Ibn H aja r, Durar, IV , 181-84; R . B r u n s c h v i g , LaBerbSrie Orientale, I, p. X X X V I * A n edition prepared b y M a h m u d M . S a k i r began to appear in Cairo 1941.
f., Paris 1940). The reported rem ark is foim d in both the W aft and the Durar, b u t as-Sahaw is D. 602/1206 (Ibn y a llik a n I I, 187 f. trans. D e S l a n e ).
source is the Durar. S ic Ms. Leiden, and as-Sahaw i, al-Jawdhir wa-d-durar, below , p. 587.
* Sulaym an b. Musa, d. 634/1237 (cf. G A L , I, 371; K . A . F a r i q , in Islam ic Culture, 76o-835/i358(i359)-i432, cf. Daw'^, I, 244, where the above-m entioned passage, excep t
X X X I I I , 160-68 [1959]; ar-R u 'a yn i, Barndmaj, 66 ff. S a b b u h [Dam ascus 1381/1962]). for the last sentence, is also found.
398 A S -S A H A W i S I* l A n T R A N S L A T IO N 399

T he biography of Muhammad was versified b y There are m any monographs on the birth of Muhammad, for
A l-F ath b. Mismar> instance, b y
ihab-ad-din b. Im M -ad-din al-Aqfahsi.^ A bu 1-Qasim as-Sabti,^ in the two-volum e ad-Durr al-munazzam
A l-B iq a i.^ E ach (of these three) wrote a com m entary on his f i al-mawlid al-mu'-azzam, in which he made m an y digressions
own versification. from the subject.
Izz-ad-din ad-Dirini> A l-T raqi.
Fath-ad-din b. as-ahid,^ in some ten thousand verses with Ibn al-Jazari. ^ A nd
additions which show his great scholarly qualifications. Ibn Nasir-ad-din.
Zayn-ad'din a l-Iraqi, in his A lfiyah, in which he followed a A monograph on M uham m ads forbears was written b y Mu
Short Sirah b y Ala^-ad-din Mugult^y. A l-Iraqi used M ugultays ham m ad b. Ishaq al-Musayyabi.
Short {Sirah), on which ams-ad-din al-Birm^wi and Saraf-ad-din Monographs on M uham m ads names, in verse and prose, were
A bu 1-F ath al-Maragi had written notes. Taqi-ad-din b. Fahd written b y
presented this (material) b y itself in monograph form. A bu l-HattS-b b. Dihyah.^
A com m entary on the versification (of al-Ir^qi) was w ritten b y A l-Q urtubi and others. These names number about five hundred.
ihab-ad-din b. Raslan,^ and before him, b y M uhibb-ad-din b. T h ey adm it of further additions. Most of them are epithets,
al-H aim,^ th at singularly ingenious scholar. This is a very lengthy A monograph on M uhamm ads circumcision and the fact th at he
work. I saw a volum e of it which the author of the versification was born circumcised was w ritten b y Kam al-ad-din b. Talhah.
(al-Traqi) and others had used, noting upon it the favorable im Against him, another w ork was w ritten b y K am al-ad-din A bu
pression th ey had formed (of the work) Ibn Haj ar comm ented upon 1-Q&,sim b. A bi JarMah.
some of the verses from the beginning. I have completed his work. (Monographs on predictions of A rabic soothsayers, etc., concern
I hope to m ake it ready and publish it. ing the appearance of M uhammad are)
The Sirah of M u g u ltiy was further versified in more than a thou A b u B a k r al-H araiti,'^ Hawdtif al-jdnn wa-'-ajih md yuhkd 'an
sand verses b y ams-ad-din a l-B a uni ad-Dim asqi, th e brother al-kuhhdn mim-man bassara bi-n-nabi bi-wddih al-burhdn.
of Professor Burhan-ad-din.^^ I studied part of it w ith him. H e enti Ibn A bi d-dunya, al-Hawdtif.
tled it M inhat al-lahih f i sirat al-hahih.
A p p aren tly al-F ath b. Musft, d. 663/1264-65 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 206; F. W O s t e n - * (A l-'A b b as? ) b., M uham m ad b. A hm ad, seventh/thirteenth cen tury (cf. G A L , I, 366;
f e l d s introduction to his edition of Ibn Hisam,, Sirah, I I, p. X L V I I f.). P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 280 f.).
^ A hn ;ad b. 'Im.ad, d. 808/1405 (cf. G A L , II, 93 f.). ^ S ic Ms. Leiden and as-Sahaw i, al-Jawdhir wa-d-durar, loc. cit., not Ibn al-Jaw zi. For
Ibr&him. b . 'U iu a r, d. 885/1480 (cf. G A L , II, 142 f.). H is signature appears in the Y a le Ib n al-Jazari, see above, p. 276, n. 9, and below , p. 421, n. 2.
m anuscript S-53-54 ( N e m o y 389) with a date coinciding w ith the date of the w riting of the D . 236/850 {TB, I, 236 f.).
m anuscript. * U m ar b. al-H usayn, d. 633/1235 (cf. G A L , I, 310-12). In his Qawl al-badt^, 54-57 (A llaha
* 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A hm ad, d. around 697/1297 (cf. G A L , I, 451 f.). bad 1321), cis-Sahawi has some more inform ation on Ibn D ih y a h s w ork which he had not
M uham m ad b. Ibrahim , d. 793/1391 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, I II , 296 f.). F or a m anuscript seen him self b u t knew , it seems, through M ugultay. L a te r on, he cam e across an abridgm ent
of p a rt of the w ork, cf. A . J. A r b e r r y , in Arabic and Islam ic Studies in Honor of H . A . R. of Ibn D ih ya h s w ork b y Judge N asir-ad-din (M uham mad b. A b d -ad -D a im) b. (bint) al-
Gihh, 64-72 (Leiden-Cam bridge, Mass., 1965). M aylaq {G AL, I I , 119 f.). A t the tim e, he also had no direct knowledge of A b u 'Abdall&h
'A b d -ar-R ah im b. al-H usayn, d. 806/1404 (cf. G A L , II, 65 f.). al-Q u rtu b is (iden tity?) w ork, w hich w as a rajaz poem w ith com m entary. T h e names
M uham m ad b. A b i B a kr, 775-859/1374-1455 {Daw^, X V I I , 162-65). enum erated b y as-Sahaw i am ount, he says, to about 430.
* Leg. fawdHd (instead of wa-fawdHd), cf. as-Sahaw i, al-Jawdhir wa-d-du*ar, Paris ms. A few incom plete pages on the nam es of the Prophet ascribed to A hm ad b. F 4ris are
ar. 2105, fol. 293a, below , p. 587. preserved in Ms. A y a S o fy a 496, fols. 76b-79b.
A h m ad b. al-H usayn, d. 844/1441 (cf. G A L , II, 96). A p p aren tly, M uham m ad b. T alh ah , d. 652/1254 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 186).
M uham m ad b. A h m ad b. M uham m ad b. Im ad, died at the end of the eighth/four * T he historian of Aleppo, 'U m ar b. A h m ad b. a l-'A d im , d. 660/1262 (cf. G A L , I, 332).
teenth cen tury (Daw^, II, 157; G A L Supplement II, 70). T h e w ork appears to be id entical w ith the one quoted b y Ibn H aja r, Lisdn, V , 309,
T h e phrase used here often occurs in as-Sahaw is time in order to denote the favorable under the title of al-M ulhah f t r-radd ^ald A b i (leg. Ibn) Talhah, although the quotation
reception, in sch olarly circles, of a new publication ; y e t, I am not quite svure about its exa ct concerns the fam ous m ystic al-H akim at-Tirm idi.
significance. M uham m ad b. J a 'fa r, d. 327/938 (cf. G A L , I, 154; J-C. V a d e t , in Arabica, V II ,
A ccording to the Jawdhir wa-d-durar, as-S aM w i had not seen the w ork a t all. 140-66 [i960]).
Ibrahim b. A h m ad , d. 870/1465 {Daw^, I, 26-29). A b il B a k r 'A b d allS h b. M uham m ad, d. 281/894 (cf. G A L , I, 153 f.).
400 AS-SA h A w 1s I LAN T R A N S L A T IO N 401

Ibn D u ru staw ayh / on the story of Quss b. Sa^idah. (91) Hisam (about the subject?), were collected b y Ibrahim b. al-H aytam
b. Amm^r ^ wrote on how the call came to Muhammad. al-Baladi.^
A bu 1-H attab b. D ihyah and others wrote on M uham m ads On the signs of prophecy, there are works b y
ascension [miWdj). A bu M uhammad b. Qutaybah.^
M any (scholars) w rote on the proofs of prophecy, among them A b u Dawud, the author of the Sunan.
A bu Z u rah ar-Razi. A bu 1-H usayn b. Faris.
Tabit as-Saraqusti. A bu 1-Hasan al-Mawardi, the jurist.^
A b u 1-Qasim at-Tabarani. Chief Judge A b u 1-M utarrif al-Magribi.^ A nd
A t-T aym i, Ala-ad-din M ugultay.
A b u A bdallah b. Mandah.* On the prophetical characteristics, there are works by
A bu s-Sayh b. Hibban. A bu Isa at-Tirmidi.^
A b u N u 'aym al-Isbahani. A bu 1- A bbas al-Mustagfiri. A nd
A bu B ak r b. A b i d-dunya. A bu B ak r b. Tarhan al-Balhi.
A b u A hm ad [b.] a l-AssM. I wrote a fragm ent of a com m entary on the first work, and I
A b u B ak r an-Naqqas, the Qur^an com m entator. h ave seen a draft fragm ent in the handwriting of Jamal-ad-din
A b u 1- A bbas al-Mustagfiri. b. az-Zahiri,"^ which appeared to have been derived from (at-Tirm idis
A bu 1-A s w ad Abd-ar-Rahm an b. al-Fayd. w ork).
A b u D arr al-Maliki. A nd On the (physical) appearance of the Prophet, there are works b y
A b u B akr al-Bayhaqi. A l-B ayhaq i's w ork is the m ost comprehen A bu 1-Bahtari.s And
sive one, as I have stated in a pam phlet upon completion of the A bu A li Muhammad b. Harun.
stud y of the work. On the character qualities of the Prophet, there is a w ork b y
The proofs of prophecy, together w ith exceptional traditions Judge Ism ail.^
On the description of his noble shoe, there is a work b y A bu
1-Y um n b. Asakir.^i
* 'A b d allah b. J a 'fa r, d. 347/958 (cf. G A L , I, 112 f.). Th e w ork is quoted b y Ibn K a tir,
B iddyah, II, 231.
* D . 244/858-59, or 245 (Ibn Ka^^v, B iddyah, X , 346; F l O g e l s notes a d F ih rist, 29 and 37).
T a b it b. H azn;, d. 313/925 (Ibn al-F aradi, 88, no. 306 C o d e r a ), who conipleted the ^ D . 277/890-91, or 278 { T B , V I, 206-9).
DaldH l of his son Qasim a fter the la tte rs death in 302/914-15 (cf. G A L Supplem ent III, ^ 'A b d a lla h b . M u slim , d. 276/889, or 270/884 (cf. G A L , I, 120-23).
1196; Ibn al-Faradi, 293 f., no. ro6o). Qasina had a son T a b it, d. 352/963, who transnutted ^ 'A ll b . M u h a m m a d , d. 450/1058 (cf. G A L , I, 386).
the Dald?il (Ibn al-F arad i, 89, no. 308). T h is T a b it had a grandson also nam ed T a b it, * A p p a r e n tly , 'A b d - a r - R a h m a u b . M u h a m m a d b. F u ta y s , d. 402/1012 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s ,
and he again had a grandson T^bit, who died in 514/1120-21 (Ibn BaSkuw al, S ila k, 126, E n sa y o , 101-3).
no. 283 C o d e r a ) . ^ M u h a m m a d b . 'I s a , d. 279/892 (cf. G A L , I, 16 1 f . ; J. R obson , in S S O ^ S , X V I , 258-70

M uham m ad b. Ishaq, d. 395/1005 (cf. G A L , I, 167, Supplement, I, 281), or 396/1005 [ i 9 5 4 i).


(Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam , V II , 232). 310/922 as the ye ar of his birth {G AL) can h ard ly be IH d n , 142, m e n tio n s M u h a m m a d b . 'A li b. T a r h a n fro m B a lh , b u t this m ig h t ra th e r

correct, since his son 'A b d -ar-R ah m an w as born in 381 or 383 (ad-Dahabi, Ta^rth a l-Isld m , b e M u h a m m a d b . T a r h a n a t-T u rk i, d. 5 1 3 / 1 119 (Ib n a l-J a w zi, M u n ta za m , I X , 2 15 ; as-

anno 470, Ms. ar. Y a le U n iversity L-612 [ N e m o y 1176], fols. 206b-207b; M untazam , V I I I , S u b k t, a t-T a b a q c it a s-S d fiH y a h , IV , 70, C a iro 1324). H e ap p ea rs as th e last tra n sm itte r of

315, has 388) and died on Saw w al i6 th ,4 70 /M ay 2nd, 1078. A nother son, 'A b d -al-W ah h ab , th e M s. C a iro M u st, al-h a d it 54 of Ib n ' A d i s K a m il th a t w a s w ritte n for Ib ra h im b. Y u s u f

was born in 386 (Ibn IJallikan, IV , 57 trans. D e S l a n e , cf. above, p. 283, n. 3). 316/928-29 b . T a sfin .
(Ibn lia ja r , Lisdn , V I, 71) m ay still be too e arly a date. A b u 'A b d a lla h s children were, A h m a d b . M u h a m m a d , d. 696/beg. of 12 9 7 (a d -D a h a b i, Tabaqdt a l-h u ffd z, 2 0 th ta b .,
how ever, those of his old age, as he is said to h ave m arried late in life. no. 8 W u s te n fe ld ).
A hm ad b. 'A b d allah , d. 430/1038 (cf. G A L , I, 362). * W a h b b. W a h b , d. 19 9/8 14 -15, or 200 (T B , X I I I , 4 8 1; F ih rist, 14 6 f., C a ir o 1348 = 100

M uham m ad b. A hm ad b. Ibrahim , d. 349/960 (Ibn al-JawzJ, M untazam , V , 398; T B , F lu g e l). C f. also Ib n H a b ib , M u n a m m a q , in tro ., 10 H . A . F a r iq (H y d e r a b a d 1384/1964).
I, 270; ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 12th tab., no. 4 W' u s t e n f e l d ). D . 353/964 (Ib n H a ja r, L isd n , V , 4 11).
M uham m ad b. al-H asan, d. 351/962 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 334). Is m a 'il b . Ish a q , d. 282/896 (cf. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 273). C f. Y . a l-'I ls , a l-H a tih al-

J a 'fa r b. M uham m ad, d. 432/1040 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 617). T he follow ing Ibn al- B a ^ d d d t, 106 (D a m a scu s 1364/1945).
F ay d seems to be unidentified. 'A b d -a s -S a m a d b . 'A b d -a l-W a h h a b , 6 14 -68 6/12 17-8 7 (Ib n R a fi', M u n ta h a b a l-M u h td r,

* M us'ab b. M uham m ad b. M as'ud, d. 604/1207 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 206) ? T a ^ rih '^ u la m d ^ B a g d a d , 96 -9 8, B a g d a d 1357/1938).

R osenth al , History of Muslim Historiography 26


40 2 A S -S A H A W I S I 'L A N TRAxNSLATION 403

On the Prophetical guidance, there are works b y Ibn al-Q ayyim ^ There are monographs on the huthat al-wadd'^ (the Farew ell
and others. Sermon), accorchng to Ibn (92) B askuw al M uham m ads last sermon.
On the medicine of the Prophet, there are works b y There are even works on individual statem ents of Muhammad.
A b u N u'aym . On the genealogy of the Prophet, there are works b y
Al-M ustagfiri. A nd A t-Tabarani. A n d
D iy a -ad-din al-M aqdisi.^ A bu A bdallah b. Mandah.
Judge lyad^ wrote as-SifcV hi-ta'^nf huquq al-Mustafd. I com On M uhamm ads correspondence w ith chiefs and kings, there is
m ented upon its substance and indicated those who wrote remarks a w ork b y Um arah b. Zayd.^
on it, in a w ork of mine upon completion of the study of the work. Others wrote on the death of the Prophet.
A bu r-R ab i' Sulaym an < . . . > b. S a b as-Sabti ^ w rote the A l-B ayh aq i WTote on the life of the prophets in their graves.^
Sifd'' as-sudur, in several volumes. His work was abridged b y a On the m erit of the prayer for the Prophet, there are works
certain religious leader. It contains m any objectionable passages. b y men such as
A b u 1-Faraj b. al-Jawzi, al-Wafd^ bi-t-ta"nf bi-l-Mustafd. Judge Ism a'il.
Ibn al-Munayyir,^ al-Iqiifd\ A b u B ak r b. A b i Asim,^ as well as those whom I have enumerated
A bu S a 'd an-Xisaburi,* Saraf al-Mustafd, in several volumes. in the final chapter of m y book al-Qawl al-badi^ f t s-saldh ""aid
Ja' far al-F aryab i, wrote on the miracles and Takrir at-ta'-dm l-habib as-sajV.^
wa-s-sardb. Others also wrote on the miracles. As w ill be m entioned below, m any people w rote on the men
On the special qualities, there are works b y several scholars, around Muhammad. There are, moreover, as will be indicated,
such as authors of monographs on his comrades; on his w ives there is
Al-M awardi. ad-D im yatis com pilation ; [on his secretaries;] on his clients;
Ibn S a b . A nd and on his secretaries there is the com pilation of Abdallah b.
JalM-ad-din al-Bulqini. A ll b. A hm ad b. H adidah ^ wiiose w ork is entitled al-Misbdh
On the sermons of Muhammad, there are works b y al-jmtdi^ f i kuttdb an-nabi.
A bu A hm ad a l-AssaI. And There are m any other such things. If it were proposed to collect
A bu s-Sayh b. Hibban. them all in one work, that w ork would fill tw en ty volumes, and
more.
1 M u h a m m a d b. A b i B a k r , b . Q a y y in i a l-J a \v ziy a h , d. 751/13 50 (cf. G A L , 11, 105 f.).

T h e w o r d ha dy K m id a u ce is fre q u e n tly u sed in Jln i O a y y i m a l - J a \ v z i y a l i s M cd ic in e o f the

P ro p h et {a t-T ib b a u -n a b ir a i), w h ic h is s t a l e d t o bi> a n e x c e rp t fro m h is Z d d a l-n ia ^ d d f t h a d y


(2. The stories of the prophets)
Ija y r a l-'-ib d d (cf. tlie in tro d u c tio n to the e d itio n of a t-T ib b a n -n a b a u 'i, p p. tr-z [ M e c c a - C a i r o

I 377/ t ( ) 5 7 ;)- A lth o u g h on e \vo u ld e x p e c t a l-h a d y a ii-n a b a rci to b e s o m e th in g d iffe re n t fro m The stories of the prophets are contained in the Mubtada'' of
th e fo llo w in g m ,e d icin e , it seen is to r< f e r to tlie sa m e su b ject. C f. (z A L S u p p lem en t 11,
126 f., nos. 12, 20 (an d 3 3 ?) of the w o rk s of Ib ir O a y y im a l-J a w ziy a h .
M uhammad b. Ishaq b. Y asar al-Muttalibi, the author of the
]\ lu h a m n ia d b . ^ A b d - a l - W ' a h i d , d . 643/1245 (cf. G A L , 1, 398 f.; A . J. A r b e r k y , in Bio;^raphy of the Prophet, and of A bu H iidayfah Ishaq b. Bi.sr
T h e Isla m ic Q u a r te r ly , 111, r6 -4 i [k)56|.

M yfu l b. M u sa a l- \ a h s u b i, d. 544 /1149 (cf. (,A f., I, 369).


al-Buhari.'^ Monographs on the subject were w ritten b y
A c c o r d in g to l.la jji H a lifa h , K a s f a z-zitn ih i, 1\ , 52, no. 759 4 F L r-G E i,, th ere are tw o

p erson s in x o h 'e d lie re: A b u r-R a b i'^ S u la y m a n b. M u sa a l- K a la 'i (cf. a b o \ e , p. 396, n. 4), ^ C )m ,itte d in M s. L e id e n , l-'or H .'n u 'ira h , S('e b elo w , p. 5 0 4 (? ).
a n d a c e rta in ib n S a b ' as-S ab ti. C f. b elo w , p. 588. ^ C f. (). S rrE s, iti Z D M i r , X C , 11 3 (1036), w h ere o n e n u ist r c a < l b a '^ d , i n s t e a d of w a -b a '^ d .
^ A h m a d b. M u h a n u n a d , d. 6S3/1284-85 (H a jji H a lifa h , K a s f a z-zu n u n , 1, 377, no. 1054
' A h m a d b. A n n ', d. 287/Qoo (Ib u i.la ja r, L isd n , \ l, 349 f . ; Ib n K a tir, B id d y a h , X I , 84).
h'Lt A lla h a b a d 1321, p. 197 ff. A n e w e d itii.m h as a p p e a re d iu 1963.
'^ A b d -a l-M a U k b . M u h a m m a d , d . .jo 6 / io i5 - i( ) , o r 4 0 7 (cf. G A L , I, 2 0 0 , S u p p l e m e J i t 1, 361). ^ A rd d f, thos(> w h o sh are d a ca m e l w ith h im on exp ed itio u s.
J a M a r b. M u h a m m a d , d. 301/1)13 {'I'U , \ II, !( )( ) f f . ) . A w o r k b y h im is p re ser\ -< 'd in a la g lith / fo u rte e n fh c e n tu r y (cf. G A L , 11, 72). T h e referen ce to h is w o rk an d th a t of ad-
m a n u scrij)t of the C h e ster Ije a tty co lle ctio n , cf. .A. j . A rh errv, in R evue de I'A c a d e m ie
D im x 'a ti is m issin g in M s. L e id c 'n .
ciriibc de D a tiia s, X X 1\ ' , 234 ff. (1049). A l A \ A (|id i w ro te a K itd b tu '^ u m an -n a bi, on the 1) . 206/821 (V 7) , \ 'I, 326-28). l-'or the q u o ta tio n s fro m h is K itd b u T T -'n tiik iu 'I'i'u iu t,
g r a n ts for su b sisten ce w h ich the I r o p h e t m ad(' to h is fa m ily a n d fo llo w e rs, cf. Ib n S a 'd , M u '-jiin i,c \ . J. l l f ' ; i ' ; K , D i e h i s t o r i s c h e n u n d f! ,e oi : ,r a p h i s c h e u Q i t e l l e n i n J d q u t s ( u ' o g r a p h i s e h e m
T a baqdt, \ 'I I 1, 32 S a c iia u an d others.
\V orterbu ch , ro (S tra ssb u rg 1898).
404 as-sah aw ! s i l A n
T R A N S L A T IO N 405

W atim ah b. Musa b. al-Furat,^ in two volumes.


supplem ents to it, for instance, Abir Ishaq b. al-Am in and A bu
A b u Ishaq a t-T a Mibi (at-T alabi).^ A nd others, such as B ak r b. Fathun,^ who were (93) contemporaries. (The w ork of)
A bu 1-Hasan M uhammad b. A bdallah a l-K isa i.^ the latter is the better one. An abridgm ent of the Istl^dh was
The subject is also found treated in the Histories of Ibn Jarir w ritten b y Muhammad b. Y a qub b. Muhammad b. A hm ad al-
(at-Tabari), and Ibn Asakir, the Biddy ah of Ibn K atir, and b y
Halili,^ under the title of I Ham al-isdbah bi-aHdm as-sahdbah.
Jam al-ad-din A b u 1-Hasan A ll b. (Abi l-)Mansur al-MMiki, the There are other authors who w rote on the subject. It would be
author of the BaddH'^ al-badd^ih.
difficult to give a complete list. There are, for instance,
(3. The history of the men around Muhammad) A bu 1-H asan M uhammad b. Salih a t - T a b a r i .
A bu 1-Qasim al-Bagawi.^
On the men around Muhammad, there are m any works, for
instance, A bii 1-Qasim a l-Utmani.^
A b u 1-Husayn b. Q ani ,^ in their Mu'-jams.
A ll b. al-Madini, Kitdb Ma'^rifat man nazala min as-sahdhah
A b u 1-Qasim at-Tabarani, especially in the Mu'-jam al-kahir.
sdHr al-bulddn. According to al-H atib, the w ork consists of five
Izz-ad-din A b ii 1-Hasan b. al-Atir, the brother of the author of
parts th at is, small ones.
the Nihdyah,^ in the Kitdb Usd al-gdbah which he compiled from a
A l-B uhari who, according to Ibn H ajar, was the first (scholar)
number of earlier books, such as Ibn Mandah, A b u N u aym , Ibn
known to have written on the subject.
A bd-al-Barr, and the Supplement to (Ibn Mandah) b y A bu Miisa.
A t-Tirm idi.
The Usd becam e the standard reference w ork for later scholars.
Mutayyan.^
A n-N aw aw i and al-K asgari abridged it. A d-D ahabi restricted
A b u B ak r b. A b i Dawud.
himself to m aking a short version of it. A l-Iraqi added a number
Abdan.^
A bu A ll b. as-Sakan, in the Huruf.^ of names to it.
A b u l- A bbas J a far b. Muhammad b. al-M utazz al-Mustagfiri.
A b ii H afs b. Sahin.
A b u A hm ad a l-A skari w rote a w ork on the men around Mu
Abu Mansur al-Barudi.
ham m ad arranged according to tribes.
A b ii H atim b. Hibban.
A bu 1-Qasim Abd-as-Sam ad b. S a id al-Himsi ^ w rote on the men
Abu 1- A bbas ad-Duguli.
around Muhammad who resided in Hims (Emesa on the Orontes).
A bu N u aym.
A bu A bdallah b. Mandah, to whose w ork A bu Musa al-Madini^ 1 M u h a m m a d b . H a la f, d. 519 /112 5-2 6 , or 520 (cf. P on s B o ig u e s, Ensayo, 178 f.; GAL
w rote a supplement. Supplem ent I, 279). C f. Ib n H a ja r , Durar, I I I , 4 4 5 .
E ig h th / fo u rte e n th c e n tu r y (cf. G A L Supplement I, 628).
A b u U m ar b. A bd-al-Barr, Several (scholars) w rote
C f. Ib n H a ja r , Lisd n , V , 2 0 0 f. ?
^ ' A b d a l l a h b . M u h a m m a d , d . 3 1 7 / 9 2 9 ( c f . T B , X , 1 1 1 - 1 7 ; Y . a l - ' I s s , F ihris mahtutdt
^ D . 237/851( Y a q u t , IrSdd, X I X , 2 4 7 f . C a i r o = V I I , 2 2 5 f . M a r g o l i o u t h ; W . H o e n e r -
Ddr al-Kutub az-Zdhirtyah, T a h ih , 2 1 9 , 2 7 5 [ D a m a s c u s 1 3 6 9 / 1 9 4 7 ] ; A . J . A r b e r r y , i n The
BACH, Watfmas Kitdb ar-Ridda, i n Abh. d. Ahad. d. W iss. und d. Literatur, Geistes- und
sozialu'iss. K L , 1 9 5 1 ) . Islam ic Quarterly, I I I , 2 0 [ 1 9 5 6 ] ; G A L Supplement I , 2 7 8 ) . T h e m a n u s c r i p t o f t h e Mu'-jam
as-sahdbah l i s t e d i n G A L i s n o w i n C h i c a g o , c f . M . K r e k , A Catalogue of Arabic Manuscripts
^ A l-Q ifti, Inbdh, P h o t. C a iro T a M h 2 579, I, 112 , in d ica te s th e a u t h o r s nisbah as b o th
a t-T a '^ la b i a n d a t - T a 'a l i b i .
in the Oriental Institute o f Chicago, 1 9 ( N e w H a v e n 1 9 6 1 ) .
T h e kunyah i s o m i t t e d i n M s. L e id e n .
^ L iv e d a ro u n d 400/1009-10 (cf. GAL, I, 350 ).
^ 'A b d - a l- B a q i b. Q a n i', d. 351/962 ( c f . G A L Supplement I , 2 7 9 ) .
* M u h a m m a d b . 'A b d a lla h , d. 298 /910-11 [Fihrist, 323 f., C a iro 1348 = 232 F l u g e l ).
* T h e a u th o r o f th e N ihdyah i s M a j d - a d - d i n a l - M u b a r a k b . M u h a m m a d , 5 4 4 - 6 0 6 /
^ P r o b a b ly ^ A b d a n b. M u h a m m a d a l-M a rw a zi, d. 293/906 (TB , X I , 1 3 5 f . ) .
11 4 9 -1 2 1 0 (cf. GAL, I, 3 5 7 f . ; H . R i t t e r in Oriens, V I , 7 1 f f . [ 1 9 5 3 ] ) .
S a ' i d b . ' U t m a n b . S a ^ i d , d . 3 5 3 / 9 6 4 ( a d - D a h a b i , Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 12th tab., n o . 3 8
I b r a h i m b . ' U t m a n , d . 6 4 5 / 1 2 4 7 ( c f . I b n a l - ' I m a d , Sadardt, V , 2 3 0 f . ) ?
W u s t e n fe ld ) , one of the sources of Ib n A b d - a l - B a r r s Isti'^db.
A l - H a s a n b . ' A b d a l l a h , d . 3 8 2 / 9 9 3 ( c f . G A L Supplement I , 1 9 3 ) .
' U m a r b . A h m a d , d . 3 8 5 / 9 9 6 ( c f . G A L , 1, 1 6 5 ) .
D . 3 2 4 / 9 3 5 - 3 6 , c f . I b n a l - ' I m a d , Sadardt, I I , 3 0 2 ( C a i r o 1 3 5 0 - 5 1 ) ; L . C a e t a n i , Onomasti-
M u h a m m a d b . A h m a d , d . 3 5 4 /9 6 5 (cf. GAL, I, 1 6 4 ) .
con Arabicum , 6 0 6 ( R o m e 1 9 1 5 ) . I d o n o t k n o w o n w h a t g r o u n d s E . A m a r , i n J A , X , 1 9 , 2 5 4 ,
M u h a m m a d b . 'A b d - a r - K a h n ia n , d. 3 2 5 / 9 3 6 - 3 7 , cf. F . W u s t e n f e l d , Der Imam el-
n. I (19 12 ), b a s e d h is id e n tifica tio n of th e a u th o r w ith 'A b d -a s -S a m a d b. 'A b d -a l-W a r it
Schdfi^t, 1 3 3 ( G o t t i n g e n 1 8 9 0 ) .
b. S a 'id (S a 'd ), w h o d ie d in 20 7/8 22-23 or 206. F o r th e H istory o f Kmesa
q u o ta tio n s fro m h is
M u h a m m a d b. 'L 'm a r, d. 5 8 1/118 5 ( c f . G A L Supplement I , 6 0 4 ) .
in Y a q u t , Mu'-jam, cf. F . J. H e e r, D ie historischen und geographischen Quellen in Jdquts
N e w ed itio n b y 'A iJ M . a l-B a ja w i (C a iro 1380/1960).
Geographischem Worterbuch, 31 (S tra ssb u rg 1898).
4 o6 A S - S A H A W l S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 407

Muhammad b. ar-R ab i al-Jizi ^ w rote on those who resided in grandson of U m ayyah), (94) there were fourteen Urnayyad caliphs
E gyp t. until Marwan. Down to our time, there have been some fifty
Muhibb-ad-din at-Tabari wrote ar-Riydd an-nadirali f i mandqih A bbasid caliphs. There were a number of M arwanid caliphs in
al- '-ascirah.
Spain.
A bu Muhammad b. al-Jarud ^ wrote on those who transm itted There were eleven U baydid-F atim id caliphs in E gyp t, not
only one tradition. counting the three in the Magrib. The first of them was A bu A bd-
A bii Z ak a riya ' b. Mandah wrote on the comrades [arddf) of allah Muhammad b. al-H usayn al-Mahdi. He came forth from
Muhammad and on those who h ved one hundred and tw en ty years. al-Qayrawan and appeared during the caliphate of the A bbasid
On M uhamm ad's wives, there are works b y al-M uqtadir bi-llah in B agdad. Allegiance was sworn to him in the
A b u U baydah M a'm ar b. al-Mutanna.^ A nd year 298/910-11. He established his d yn asty in the Magrib. His
Zuhayr b. a l-'A la al-'Absi,"^ and others, such as successors w'ere al-Qa"im bi-llah and the la tters son al-Mansur.
M uhibb-ad-din at-Tabari, as-Simt at-tamm Ji mandqib imimahdt The rest of the d yn asty resided in E gyp t. The first of them there
al-mu"minin. was al-M uizz li-din-Ahah A bu Tam im al-M aadd b. al-Mansur
Others w rote on M uhamm ads chents or his secretaries. Ism a'il b. Muhammad al-Mahdawi. Allegiance to him as successor
A l-H atib wrote on those of the men around M uhammad who of his father al-Mansur was sworn to him in al-Mahdiyah in the
transm itted traditions on the authority of men of the second gen year 341/952-53. H e then w ent to E g y p t in the year 358/969 and
eration. took possession of it. He built Cairo which was called after him
A b u I'F ath al-Azdi wrote on those who had only one transm itter. al-Qahirah al-M uizziyah. H e was born in the year 319/931. He lived
The hadit expert 'Abd-al-Gani b. 'A bd-al-W ahid al-Maqdisi forty-five years and nine months, and he died in his bed in the
w rote a good-sized volum e entitled Rectification of Doubts in Ahu month of Rabi'' II of the year 365/975. He was buried in QarMat
Nu'^aynis Ma'-fifat as-sahdbah. Misr.i The last of the Eatim ids was al-A did li-din-Allah. He died
W orks which '.vere not restricted to the men around Muhammad in his bed in the year 567/1171 and was buried in the Castle, at
but also included later personalities were w ritten b y the place known as B a r ad-darb in Cairo. (Since) I have dealt
H alifah b. H ayyat. w ith this (subject) in a (special) paper, we do not have to go into it
Muhammad b. Sa'd. here.
Y a 'q iib b. Sufyan.
N o te ; Ib n H a k lfin d e cid e d in fa v o r of th e A lid d e sc en t of th e U b a y d i d s w h o

A b u B ak r b. A b i H aytam ah, and others. w ere ca lip h s in h 'g > p t a n d b e c a m e k n o w n u n d e r th e n a m e of th e F a tiu u d s. In th is

resp ect, h e co n tra d icte d oth ers. H e re je c te d the rep o rted attack ^ of r< -ligiou s sch o la rs
In the Isdbah, Ibn H ajar collected and verified the dispersed upiotL the Ia tiu u d g(>ueaIo"y. H e said th a t re g a rd for tlie 'A b b a s id ca lip h ca u sc d

(information) on the subject, but the w ork was not completed. (those s c h o la rs) to m a k e th eir d e p o sitio n (ag ain st th e "^A lid d e sc en t of th e F a tiin id s).

Ib n H a ja r r e m a rk e d (to th is ): Ib n H a ld u n co n sid ered A lid d e scen t of th e I 'a tim id s

as e sta b lish e d , b e c a u s e he w a s so a v ('r s e to the f a n x i l y o f A H . F a t i m i d relig io u s c o r r u p t

(4) The history of the caliphs n ess is k n o w n . S o m e of tlu- F atim id s, su ch as a l-H a k im , w ere con sid ered h eretics an d

cla im e d to b e d iv in e. O th e r s w ere, th e m o st a rd e n t S i'-a h e x tre m is ts [rd fid a h ), w h ich

N ot counting Ibn az-Znba\T, there were six caliphs who belonged led th e m to n in rd erin g m a n y o r th o d o x M u slim s in th eir tim e. In th eir m ,osq u es

a n d a ssen d )lies, t h. c- m e n a ro u n d M u h a m m a d w ere o p e n ly ab u sed . X o w , if t h e F a tin vid s


to the men around Muhammad.^ N ot counting Utm an (who was a are m e n of this ca lib er an d if it is tru e th a t th e y b elo n g to th( fa m ily of ^ A l i , su ch a

rela tio n sh ip co n stitu te s a sta in on th e fa in ily of ^ A l i a n d (95) a reason, to sh u ii thenx.

W c a sk G o d to k ci-p us safe (th is is a n u n p le a sa n t su b je c t). ^


1 T h e w o r k q u o te d b y al-M a r|riz , 5 D trd'^ a s-s d ri, cd. C. 1) . M a tth e w s, in J o u r n a l
o f the P a le stin e O rien ta l S o ciety , X I X , ifi6 (1939-40).
Biographies of the caliphs were written, among others, b y
^ 'A b d a lla h b . A li, d. a ro u n d 320/932 (cf. ( iA L S u p p lem en t II, 9 3 ; 77 >, II, 47). H is
K ita h a l-A sn icP w a -h kittia is q u o te d in T]}, X IV ', 298.

^ 1) . b et\ ve ('ii, 2 0 8/8 23 -24 an d 213/828 -29 (cf. G A L , I, 103 f.). ^ I 'o r th e c('U ietery of a l-Q a ra fa h , cf. al-M a q ri/,i, H ita t, II, 443-4 3 (B n la q 1270).
C f. Ib ii I.Iajar, JJxchi, II, 492. ^ O f th e y e a r 4 0 2 / 1 0 1 1, cf. Ib n H a ld u n , M iiq a d d iin a h , I, 33 f. P a ris; 15. L ew is, T h e

^ T \ h il ia T n r u a d h . a l-l.lu s a v u , d. 3 C iy lq y 7 -y 8 , or 374/984-85 (cf. G A L S u p p le m e n t I, 280). O rig in s o f L sn u i'^ ilisn i, 6 0 f. (C a n d irid g e rg4o).


N a m e ly , A b u B a k r , '^ U in a r , H 'tm a u , 'All, a l-Ijasaii, b. A l i , a n d M u '^ a w iy a h . Cf. I'-ld n , 71, abo^i'e, p. 370.
4o 8 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 409

A b u B isr M uhammad b. A hm ad b. H am m ad ad-Dawlabi.^ ams-ad-din Muhammad b. Ahm ad a l-B a i^mi ad-Dimasqi,


A b u B akr b. A b i d-dunya. Tuhfat az-ziirafd^ f i tawdnh al-muluk wa-l-hulafd\ H e stopped with
A bu B ak r Muhammad b. Zakariya" ar-Razi,^ the author of the al-Asraf B arsbay. A t the beginning, he saidi^
Mansuri. A nd others, supposedly.
N ow : H istorys nobility
A m ong the more modern scholars, there are
R anks high among hum anity.
Nasir-ad-din b. Duqm aq.
Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi, Itti'-dz al-hunafd^ hi-ahbdr al-hulafd\^ Its usefulness so evident
These two men were followed b y some am ateur historians. Led S afii to this statem ent
(Further,)
Of doubtless authenticity;
A b u 1-Hasan A li b. Muhammad b. A b i s-Surur A b d -al-A ziz
It adds to m ans sagacity.
as-Saruji, Bulgat az-mrafd? f t ta^nh al-hulafd\^
B ayb ars ad-Dawadar,^ al-LatdHf f t ahhdr al-haW if, in several This is a true, not devious
volumes. Rem ark whose sense is obvious.
A bu 1-Fadl A hm ad b. A b i Tahir al-M arwazi al-Katib, Ahhdr
al-hulafd\ A l-B a unis nephew, B a h a -ad-din Muhammad, a son of Judge
As-Suli, al-Awrdq f i ahbdr hulafd" B ani WAhhds wa-as^drihim. Jam al-ad-din Yusuf,^ wrote a supplement to the Tuhfah, in which
There are monographs on several Abbasids. I referred to them he dealt lengthily w ith the deeds of our present Sultan (al-Asraf
when I wrote on the qualities of the A bbasids a l-A bbas and al- Q a itbay). He started w ith the following verses;
M am un (?). There are two m onographs on A bu l-A bbas al-M u-
tadid. Now then; H istory is a science
On which all Muslims m ay place reliance.
The (history of the) Abbasids was versified b y
A bu Muhammad J a far b. A hm ad b. al-H usayn as-Sarraj, in Sufficient proof of this found
an ufjuzah. In the stories which in the Q uran abound.
A d-D ahabi, in a few verses.
Ibn A b i 1-B a q a w rote a one-volume urjuzah on the caliphs.
^ D. 320/932 (as-Sam 'aui, A n sd b , fol. 233b, whose source is A b u S a 'id b. Y u u u s, w ho A hm adr b. Y a qiab al-Misri ^ and A b d (96) all ah b. al-H usayn
also stated th at ad-D aw labi came to E g y p t i n 260/873-74; Ibn H ajar, L is d n , V , 41 f., who has
310 as the y ear of his death, which w ould agree b etter w ith the statem ent th at he was born
i n 224/838-39; ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt a l-huffdz, lo th tab., n o . l o i W u s t e n f e l d , has 301; ^ Cf. IH d n, 15, above, p. 286.
G A L S u p p lem en t I, 278). ^ D . 910/1505 (cf. G A L , II, 54). Cf. al-Lam hah a l-A sra fty a h w a-l-bahjah a s-san tyah
^ T h e fam ous philosopher and physician, d. 313/925 (cf. G A L , I, 233-35). As the author of jt-m d li-m aw ldnd a s-S u ltd n a l-n id lik a l-M a lik a l- A s r a f Q d itbdy m in al-a'^mdl a z-za kiya h
a h istory, he is known ordy from as-Sahaw is source, al-Mas'^udi, M u r u j, I, 17 Paris ed. = wa-l-aqw'dl al-qaunyah, Paris ms. ar. 1615, fol. 31a.
I, 6 (Cairo 1346), cf. IH dn, 158, below, p. 509. Al-Mas'-udi can be assumed to have also been ^ T h is m ay be a l-Y a ^qubi, who died in 284/897-98 (cf. G A L , I, 226 f.) or after 292/904-5,
the source of as-Safadi, W d fi, I, 51 R i t t e r , cf. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 421. I t w ould h ard ly if the q uotation in al-M aqrizi, to which D e G o e j e refers in his edition o f a l-Y a q u bis
be possible to assume th at al-Mas'-udi confounds the philosopher-physician w ith the Spanish B u ld d n , 372 (Leiden 1892, B ib liotheca Geographorum A ra bicoru m , 7), actu ally goes b ack to
h istorian, A b ii B a k r b. M uham m ad ar-R azi, as he is speaking of contem poraries. a l-Y a 'q u b i, which seems quite uncertain. A s-S ah aw is inform ation is derived from al-
^ A new edition b y J. a s - S a y y a l w as published in Cairo 1367/1948. A further edition b y M as'iidi, M uruj, I, 18 Paris ed. = I, 6 (Cairo 1346), cf. 1 ^ldn, 154, below , p. 502. Since
A S - S a y Y A L on the basis of the Istan bul m anuscript is in preparation (cf. R evista del In stitu to al-M as^udi refers to the Abbdsid H istory of the author, one could hard ly think of A hm ad b.
E g ip c io de E stu d ios Isla m ico s V', 221 [Arabic] [1957]). A b i Y a 'q u b Y u su f b. ad-D ayah al-;\Iisri, the well-know n litterateu r and w riter on T u lun id
* A ccordin g to *^Abbas Azzk\wi, at-Ta'^rif bi-l-mu^arrihm, I, 67-69 (B agdad 136 7/19 57), h istory (d. 330/941-42, or 340/951-52?, cf. C iA L , I, 149). It m ay be noted th at al-Ya'^qubi
the w ork w as printed in Cairo 1327/1909. The author died after 648/1250-51. His nam e was is the oral source for a num ber of stories in Ibn ad -D a yah s K itd b al-M tikdfa^ah. T h is
'^Ali b. '^Abdallah b. M uham m ad. fa ct, howe\'er, does not help to cla rify the d ate of a l-Y a 'q u b i, since Ibn ad-D ayah at any
5 D . 725/1325 (cf. G A L , I I , 44). rate appears to have been born before 260/873-74, the approxim ate date of his fa th ers death
Ahm ad b. A b i T ah ir T a y fu r, d. 280/893 (cf. G A L , I, 138). The A hbd r al-hulafd^ is who b y then w as about eigh ty years of age (cf. the in troduction of the Cairo 1332/1914
identical w ith the H isto r y o f Bagdad, cf. IH dn, 123, below , p. 462, n. 2. edition of the M ukdfa^ak. The. 1940 and 1941 editions of the w ork, cf. Revue de V A ca d em ic
T h e author of the M a s a r i^ al-''nssdq who died in 500/1106, or 501, or 502 (cf. G ^ L , I, arabe de D a m a s, X I X , 32-40, 1944, were not available). Thus, even if a l-Y a 'q u b i died at
3 51; Ibn al-Jaw zi, M u n tazam , I X , 151 f.). the earlier date, he could h ave had con tact w ith Ibn ad-D ayah .
410 A S -S A H A W i s I 'L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 411

b. S a d a l-K atib ^ wrote onthe history [ahbdr) of the Abbasids and b. H ilal as-Sabi\^ Al-M aqrizi wrote some comments on the Fatim id
other rulers. d y n a sty . . . .w rote on the Saljuq dynasty, which came to an end
Further, the historian [ahhdn) and genealogist M uhammad b. in the year 590/1194.^
Salih b. Mihran b. an-N attah ^ w rote on the history {ahbdr) of the A bdallah b. al-M utazz ^ compiled the Poems of Caliphs and
A bbasid and other dynasties. He is said to have been the first to Kings.
wTite on the history {ahbdr) of the dynasty.
Others w rote on the history of the caliphs and the tw o dynasties, (5. The history of the kings of Islam)
the U m ayyads and the 'Abbasids.
(Histories of) kings and dynasties were compiled b y Muhammad
A ll b. M ujahid ^ and H alid b. H isam al-Um awi wrote on the
b. 'Abd-al-M ahk al-Hamadani.
history {ahbdr) of the U m ayyads and other (rulers).
Jamal-ad-din A bu 1-Hasan A li b. A bi 1-Mansur al-Azdi, ad-Duwal
Several authors wrote monographs on Um ar b. A b d -al-A ziz. al-niunqati'^ah, a very useful w ork on the subject. A l-A zd i also wrote
Jam al-ad-din Muhammad b. A li a l-Im rani ^ compiled al-Inbd"' the BaddH'^ al-baddHh and the Asds al-baldgah, as well as the afore
f i ta'^rih al-hidafd^. < A supplement, up to the end of al-M ustasim
mentioned Ahbdr al-niuluk as-Saljuqiyah and the Ahbdr as-hij'-dn,
bi-llah was written b y Zahir-ad-din al-Kazaruni. A l-K aza ru n is >
to be mentioned later on.^
son, Sadid-ad-din Yiasuf b. (Zahir-ad-din Ali), wrote a supplement Ibn Hisam, at-Tijdn f i ahbdr muluk az-zamdn. H e also wrote a
to it.^
supplem ent to this work.
Others wrote on the Fatim id caliphs.
Muhammad b. al-H arit at-Taglibi,^ Ahldq al-mulUk, composed
A bli Talib A li b. Anjab al-Bagdadi al-Hazin compiled the
for al-Fath b. Haqan, and other works.
Mandqih al-hulafd,\ as well as a history of the wives of the caliphs ZMir b. Hasan al-A zdi,^ Ahbdr ad-dui&al al-Isldmiyah.
and a biography of the caliph an-N asir.
Al-O arnati, al-Ihbdr wa-l-iHdm f i duwal al-Isldm f i Ribdt al-
On the history of the Saljuqs, there are the works of
Muwaffaq.
Im ad-ad-din al-K M ib, Nusrat al-fitrah wa-Htsrat al-fitrah f i The unbeliever Ibrahim b. H ilal as-Sabi , History {ahbdr) of the
ahbdr Bani Saljuq wa-dawlatihim. A nd
B uy id Dynasty, w ritten for Adud-ad-dawlah.
A bu 1-Hasan 'i\li b. Abi 1-Man.siir al-Azdi al-MMiki, Ahbdr al- A b u Muhammad b. Zulaq al-Mi.sri, Biography of Ibn Tulun (97)
miduk as-SaljuqiyaJi.
and of his son, H um araw ayh, in two separate works.
The history of the Lam tunah dyn asty (the Alm oravids) was Several authors wrote biographies of the Ihsid Muhammad b.
compiled b y A bu B akr Y a h y a b. M uhammad b. Y u su f al-Ansari
Tugj and Salah-ad-din Y iisu f b. A yyu b .
al-Garnati.
IT.
The history of the D aylam ite Biiyids, w^hose dyn asty came to D . 38 4 /9 9 4 (cf. G A L , I, 96, S u p p le m e n t I, 15 3 f . ; V a q i i t , I r s d d , I I , 2 0 ff. C a i r o = I, 3 2 4

M a r g o l i o u rn).
an end in the year 432/1040-41, was C(mipiled b y A bu Ishaq Ibrahim ^ A c c o r d in g t<i the te x t of the I'-ld n , a s -S a b i w o u ld h a v e w ritte n a w o rk ou th e I'a tin L id s,
a n d a l-?^ Iaq rizi o n tlie H u y id s a n d S a lju q s. T h e abo\ e c o rre ctio n is th erefore in d ic a te d .

* F r o m a l-IM a s'u d f, M iir u j, I, i8 P aris ed . = I, i (C a iro 1346), cf. IH d n , 1 5 5 , b e lo w A n o th e r fa m o u s S a lju q h isto ry w a s w ritte n b y a l-Q ifti w h o is also cre d ited w ith a B u y id (?)
p. 504.
h is to ry (cf. p. 22 of the in tro d u c tio n to th e ed itio n of th e Itih d it) a n d m m iy o th e r h isto rica l

- L). 232/866-67 (cf. ( j A L S u p p lem en t I, 2 16 ; IB, V , 357 f.; J-'ilirist, 156, C a iro 1348 w o rk s w h ich u n f()rtu n a te ly see m to be lo st. C f. also Ib n a l- h 'u w a ti, T a lM s M a jin a '' a l-d d d b ,

= 10 7 1 -1 ,1 -g e l; a l-M a s 'u d i, M u r u j, 1, 12 P a ris cd . = I, 5, C a iro 1346). C f. a b o v e p. 89. IV , III, 13 f. Jaw ad.


D . 182/798-gc) ( 77 )', X I I , 106 M u r u j, I , 1 2
f . ; a l-.M a s'^ u d i, P a ris ed. I, 5, C a iro 1346). ^ I). 296/908 (cf. ( ,A L , I, 8 0 f.).
^ S ix th / lw e lfth ( ('r itu r y (rf. GAL Su p p lcin etit 1, 5 8 6 ) . ^ I'-ld n , 108, b elo w , p. 432.
^ 'r h e tex t h a s S ad id -a d -d iii W is u f b . a l-M u ta h h a r. T lie u n certa in co rre ctio n of the ^ T lie fo rm o f the nish a h is th e o n e fo u n d in a l-iM a 's u d i. C f. F ih r ist, 2 12 (C a iro 1348),

tex t w a s suf^ K cstcd b y 'A b b a s A i,-^ \ zzA w i, in Revue de 1' A ca d em ic arahe de Danicis, X X I l l an d I- 'i.i'GE i. s n o te s to h is e d itio n of the F ih r ist, 148.
4 9 f. (1948 ). l'h (' au th o rs lu e u tio u ed b y ( ,A f ., I , 4 6 6 , a n d S u p pleiiient 1, 8 2 5 , c a n n o t b e C f. (). P in to , in K S O , X l l I , 133-49 (1931-32).
m e a n t h ere. T h is w o u ld be the fa th er of the a fo re -m e n tio n ed ^ \li b. A b i 1- M a n s f u ' Z afir b. a l-H iisa y n

C f . t h e ( ' d i t i o n o f ,\';',syP al-hiilafd^ al-m usavinid J ihdt cd-cPiunnah al-liulafd^ iiiin al-hard^ir al-.-\/,d i (cf. \ a q u t , Irsdd, X I I I , 264 17. C a iro ^ \', 228 M a k g o i.io u tu ) , the a u th o r ol the

ic'ct-l-iiiuV b y M u s t a f a J a w a t) (C a iro , n. y.) a n d th e e d i t o r s r e m a rk s o u p. 26. D u a o l a l-in n n q cd i^ li. Z a fir d ie d in 59 7/120 1, cf. a s-S u y u ti, IJ iisn cil-iiiu h d d u riih . I, 258

^ C ited b\- Ib n a l-b 'u w a ti, 1 cdhts Majma'^ al-dddb, IV ', I, 78 f. J a w a d (D a m a s c u s 1962). (C a iro 1299). T h e referen ce h ere s e e n i,s to b e a d u p lica tio n a n d m istak e.

* ]). 55 7/116 1-6 2 (H a jji H a lifa h , K a s f a z-zun un , II, 104 F lC g k l). " A l-H a s a n b. Ib ra h im ,, d. 387/997 (cf. G A l., I, 149).
412 T R A N S L A T IO N 4 13
A S -S A H A W I S I LA N

A biography of az-Zahir B aybars was w ritten b y 'Izz-ad-din A bii 1-Hasan A li b. al-Hasan b. al-Masitah ^ also wrote Ahbdr
b. Saddad,^ and his secretary, M uhyi-ad-din b. Abd-az-Zahir.^ al-wuzard'' which stopped w ith the end of the days of ar-Radi.
A bu Samah, ar-Rawdatayn f i ahhdr ad-dawlatayn. Further authors of histories of wazirs are
Ibn D uqm aq, Biography of az-Zahir Barqiaq. A bu 1-Hasan A li b. al-H asan b. al-Fath al-K atib , known as
A l-A yn i, B iography of al-M u"ayyad. Others also wrote on him. Ibn al-M utaw w aq .2
Several authors wrote biographies of az-Zahir Tatar, ^ al-Asraf A b ii 1-H usayn Hilal b. al-Muhassin b. Ibrahim as-Sabi\^ Further,
B arsbay, and az-Zahir Caqmaq. for instance,
Some authors wrote on the qualities and characteristics of the Ibrahim b. Musa al-W asiti. In his work, al-W asiti em ulated
Sultans. Muhammad b. D aw ud b. al-Jarrah(s History of Wazirs).
M uhammad b. al-H aytam b. Sababah w rote Kitdb ad-dawlah.^ Ibn al-M utawwaq wrote the history of a number of wazirs of al-
M uqtadir.
A b ii T alib b. A n jab al-Hazin, Ahbdr al-wiizard^ f t duwal al-
(6. The history of) wazirs
aHmmah al-hulafd''. (A cop y of the w ork is) in the possession of
A b u B ak r as-Sulis work on the wazirs contains special inform a az-Zayni (?) b. Zuhayrah. A t the beginning of the work, Ibn
tion and m any remarkable stories not found in any other author, A n jab said th at the ^Abbasid cahphs were the first to em ploy
because as-Suli had personally witnessed the events described. wazirs. The U m ayyads entrusted the financial adm inistration and
M uhammad b. Abd-al-M alik al-Ham adani wrote a supplement the collection and apportioning of taxes to local secretaries through
to as-Sulis work. their provincial governors. The governm ent offices in Syria used
Greek, those in E g y p t Coptic, and those in the Iraq Persian.
A ll officials, w ithout exception, were either Christians or Magians.
^ M uham m ad b. 'A li b. Ibrahim , d. 684/1285 (cf. G A L , I, 482). H is biograph y of B ayb ars During the reign of Abd-al-M alik b. Marwan, the switch to A rabic
is m entioned b y him self in his A'-ldq and b y al-Y un in i, D a y l Mir^dt az-zamdn, I, 497, 535
was accomplished b y Sulaym an b. S a 'd in the governm ent offices
(H yderabad 1374-80/1954-61); Ibn K atir, Biddyah, X I I I , 305. P art of the w ork is preserved,
cf. C. C a h e n , in R E I , X , 342 (1936), and S. a d - D a h i i a n s introduction to his edition of the in Syria. The U m ayyads did not em ploy wazirs, but, for advice
AHdq, 18 f. (Dam ascus 1375/1956).
and guidance, th ey used to consult some educated A rab of distinc
2 'A b d allah b, ^Abd-az-Zahir, d. 692/1293 (cf. G A L , I, 318 f.). T h e w ork is also quoted
b y al-Y u n in i, op. cit., I, 540, 556. An edition of the preserved portion of the biograph y tion.
of B ayb ars has been published b y S . F. S a d e q u e , Baybars I of Egypt (D acca 1956). The
A bu 1-Qasim A li b. Munjib b. as-Sayrafi wrote a m onograph
Paris m anuscript of Ibn '^Abd-az-Zahirs h istory of al-M alik al-M ansur Qala^un has been
published b y M u r a d K a m i l (Cairo 1961, cf. above, p. 119 , n. 5). A s-Safad is Tadkirah on the wazirs of E gyp t.
cites his Faltat al-yard^ah (Ms. India Office 3829, fol. 112b) and his Tawqi'^ bi-riydsat al-
Yahild f i l-ayydrn al-M ansuHyah (Ms. B rit. Mus. Suppl. 1017 [Or. 1353], fols. io 4 b -io 6 b ,
q uoted from the History of Ibn al-F u rat in the edition of the h istory of Q ala un, 216 f.
K a m i l ). 1 D. after 310/922-23 (Y a q u t, Irsdd, X I I I , 15 f. Cairo = V, 113-5 M ar g o lio u t h ; F ihrist,
F urther details on the historical works dealing with B a yb a rs m ay be found in the in tro 195, Cairo 1348 = 135 F l u g e l ) .
duction of the w ork b y S . F. S a d e q u e . ^ A contem porary of al-M as'udi, cf. F ihrist, 187 (Cairo 1348 = 129 F l u g e l ) ; as-Safadi,
W dfi, I, 52 R i t t e r . H is name is given also as Ali b. (Abi) 1-Fath. Cf. A. W iener, in Der
Al-'^Aynis little w ork on T a tar, entitled ar-Katcd az-zdhir f i strut al-M alik at-Tdhir (ed.
Islam , IV , 404 (1913). H is Mandqib al-wuzard^ is quoted in ar-R asid b. az-Zubayr, ad-
M. Z. a l - K a w t a r i , Cairo 1370/1950, and H. E r n s t , Cairo 1962), is no true b iograph y b u t a
kind of fiirstenspiegel com bined w ith a flatterin g analysis of the ru lers n ation ality, nam es, Dahd^ir wa-t-tuhaf, 229 H a m i d u l l a h (K u w ait 1959).
^ D. 448/1056 (G A L , I, 323 f . ; D. S o u r d e l , in Arabica, V , 272-92 [1958]).
and circum stances. T he same applies to Ibn 'A ra b sa h s biograph y of Caqm aq (cf. G A L , II,
^ Ibn al-Jarrah, d. 296/908 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 2241.). The inform ation is derived
29) w hich stresses ethical-philosophical ideas and, for the most part, takes hard ly any
cognizance of the existence of its professed subject. from al-Mas'^udi, M uruj, cf. Y a q u t, Irsdd, II, 20 (Cairo = I, 324 M a r g o l i o u t h ) . His
^ Th e inform ation is derived from al-M as'udi, M uruj. A b u Tam m ara wrote poems for Wuzard^ is quoted b y ar-R asid, Dahd^ir, 180 f. H a m i d u l l a h .
^ For the vocalization Zuhayrah, and not Zahirah, cf. F. W i : s t e n f e l d , D ie Chroniken
him, cf. H. R i t t e r , D ie Geheimnisse der Wortkunst, 275, 360 (W iesbaden 1959).
The inforniation is derived from al-M as'udi, M uruj. der Stadt M ekka, II, X V I I ; Daw^, X I , 214. T his Ibn Zuhayrah m ay be identical w ith Zayn-
ad-din ^Abd-al-Basit ('Um ar) b. M uham m ad, born 951/1448 {Daw^, IV , 29 f.) ?
Unwdn as-siyar, cf. IHdn 144 f., below, p. 488 f.; Ibn al-'A dim , Biigyat at-talab, in
Cf. al-Jahsiyari, Wuzard^, fol. i8 a M z i k (Leipzig 1926, Bibliothek arabischer Historiker
Recueil des historiens des Croisades, Hist. or. I l l , 706 (Paris 1884); Ibn H allikan, I, 405, I I I ,
und Geographen, i) ; as-Suli, Adab al-kidtdb, 192 f. (Cairo 1341); al-M awardi, al-Ahkdni as-
220, 257, 273 trans. D e S l a n e ; as-Suyuti, H usn al-muhddarah, II, T49 (Cairo 1299). As-
S afad i, W dfi, IV , 38 D e d e r i n g (Dam ascus-W iesbaden 1959), refers to the 'Unwdn and Sultdniyah, 3 49 !. E n g e r (Bonn 1853). T h e te x t has S a ^d al-qudah (?).
a History {Ahbdr) o f Wazirs, the latter being a supplem ent to Ibn as-Sabi^s w o rk . D. 542/1147 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 489 f.).
414 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 415

A certain E gyp tian wrote a biography of the wazir of (theFatim id) Judge A b u t-T a yy ib then composed a short w ork on the birth
al-Mustansir, A bii (Muhammad) al-Hasan (b.) A li b. 'Abd-ar- of as-Safii, at whose end he enumerated a number of the men
Rahrnan al-Yazun.^ around him.
A b u Asim a l-Abbadi^ then composed a very brief work of
(7. The history of secretaries)
a few quires on (Safiite) tabaqdt. He was followed b y
Ibn al-Abbar wrote on the secretaries. (q(S) A bii Muhammad Abdallah b. Yusuf al-Jurjani, the hadit expert.^
The hadit scholar A bu 1-Hasan b. A bi 1-Qasim al-Bayhaqi, known
(8. The history of) amirs
as Funduq,^ Wasd^il al-almaH f i JaddHl as-SdfiH.
A bu Um ar al-K indi ^ wrote on the amirs of E gypt. A b iin -N ajib as-Suhrawardi ^ made a compilation on the subject.
An author whose w ork I used wrote a history [ahhcir) of the god A bii A m r b. as-Salah wrote a book (on the subject), but he died
less Timur.
before its completion. A n-N aw aw i used Ibn as-Salahs book, short
Tm ad-ad-din b. K a tir w rote a biography of Mengeh Boga.^ ened it, and added some names. H e also died before the clean
(g. The history of) jurists copy of his w ork had been prepared, which was then prepared b y
al-Mizzi.^
W orks on the jurists in general were written b y Sayh A b h Ishaq
Im M -ad-din b. Batis.
as-Sirazi, whose w ork is very brief.
Im M -ad-din b. K a tir wrote a big volume to which Afif-ad-din
Judge A bu M uhammad A bd-al-W ahhab b. Muhammad as-
al-Matari ^ wrote a supplement.
Sirazi,^ Ta^yih al-fiiqahcV.
Jamal-ad-din al-Isnawi wrote a monograph (on SM iite tabaqdt).
Al-Baji.^ There are others.
A t the beginning of the Muhimnidt, he also mentioned a number of
M uhammad b. 'Abd-al-M alik al-H am adani as-Safii, Tabaqdt al-
Safi'ites. Sulaym an b. J a far al-Isnawi, his m aternal imcle, had
fuqahcV.*^
w ritten before him Tabaqdt as-SdJiHyah which were still in the
On Safi^ite jurists, there are works b y a number of authors.^ draft stage when he died.
The first was A bu Haf.s U m ar b. A li al-^Iutawwii a]-Adib, Taj-ad-din Ibn as-Subki wrote three works on Safi'ite tabaqdt,
al-Mudhab f i dikr hiyuh al-madhab.
large, small, and medium.
^ D . 450/1058 (Tbii M u y a ssa r, A n n a lcs d H gypte, 8 f. a n d 32 M assk, C a iro 19 19). H e is Siraj-ad-din b. al--Mulaqqini** treated the subject in an independ
n o te w o r th y f(' liis r e p o rte d p a tro n a g e of p a in t('rs, of. al-M a qrizi, llifa t, II, 318 (B iila q

1270). H is b io g r a p h y b y au a tio n yn io n s a u th o r is q u o te d b y al-M a q rizi, H ita t, I, 109.


ent book. He also used the Tabaqdt of Ibn as-Subki for a supple
{Wuzarcp az-ZciicrcP)
O il the h isto ry of tlie w azirs of JiSajV dad b y A h m a d b. M iih a n n a al-
ment to al-Isnawi.
'U b a y d a li, cf. Tbu al-lM i\v a ti, 'I'aU jls a l-d d d h , IV , I H , 104, 304 f. J a w a d ,

M u l.u iiiu n a d b. d. 350/961 (ef. ( ,A L , I, 149). Taqi-ad-din b. Qadi Suhbah and some Syrian(s) wrote mono
1\ ' ,
^ A n A ta b e k of D a m a s c u s , d. 774/1372 (U )n H a ja r, D iira r, 367).
graphs on the subject.
^ A l-h 'a m i, d. 300/1107 (Ib n al-J aw zi, M m ita r .a m , IX , 152 f.). T h e b ib h o g 'ra p h ic a l refer-

enees in I' ' . Wi 's t e x f e l d , D cr liiia in e l-S ch d JP i (G iH tin g 'cu i i8 g o ), reu L ain q u ite u sefu l iu
this e o n tc 'x t. T h e m u c h later Ib n al-IM u la qciin w h o se n a m e s aRree w ith tliat of a l-A lu ta w 'w i'^ i e x ce p t

S u h iy n ia u b. H ahaf, d. 4 7 4 /1 0 8 1 -8 2 (ef. (lA L , T, 4 1 9 ) . H is K itd b F ira q a l-fu q a h d ^ is m e n fo r th(' n isb a h an d w h o d i e cl i n 804/1401 (cf. ( i A f ,, 11, 92 f . ; D a u '^ , \ T , 100 -5), w ro te a w o rk

tio n ed b y \ 'a (iu t, ly sd d , X I , 249 (C a iro - 1\ ' , 25 2 M AR (. 0 L i0 t: T n ), a n d q u o te d in as-S afad i, w ith a n c 'a r ly id e n t ic a l title', see a b o v e , p. 4 14, n. 7. A cco rd in g to Ib n al-M u k u iq in , al-

T I / f , I, 46 f. K i t t e r . O th e r w o rl\s of ab lS aji h a \ e b ee n stu d ied a n d ('d ite d b y J. ^A r. A lu ta w w i'^ is worI< w a s a b rid g e d b\' a n -X a w a w i.

H ii,a l, in R cvistd d d In stitiito l-."ip (io de J-'.stiidins Isla m ic o s, H , 1- 3 7 , H I, 17-4 6 (19 54-55). ^ ?i)u h a m m ad b. A h n u u l, d. 458/1066 (cf. (j A L , I, 386),
C f. as-S afad i, W d fi, I\ ', D e o erin c^ ., ^ D . 489/1096, cf. as-S n b k i, Tabaqdt a s-S d fi''iy a li, H I, 2 19 (C a iro 1324).

A n u m b e r of th ese a n d th e p reeed iii.ijj a u t l i o r s are m e n tio n e d b>- a s - S u b l v i a s liis s o u r c e s ^ '.A ll b. Z a y d , d. 56 5/116 9 (cf. C tA L , I, 324), th( h isto rian of B a \-]ia q .

in the in tro d u c tio n of the T a b a q d t as-sui;fd (P xifh e ia n m s . or. M arsh 428). .M ost o f t h e w o rk s, * A b d - a l - ( , ) a h i r b. ^ A b d allah , d. 563/1168 (cf. <rA L, I, 436).

d o w n to Ib n 1> a t i s , w ere listed 1j\- M u h a n iin a d b. a l-H a sa n a i-\ \ 'a s iti (cf. (lA L S u p p lem en t C f. a b f)\ 'e , p. 302.

11, 30) in h is H isto ry o f the S d fi^ itcs, cf. (h .Spii-:s, I l e i t r d ^ e z i i r a r ( \ b i s c h e n L ite ra tu r '^ es cliiclite , Ism a '^ il b. H ib a ta lla h , d. 655/1257, cf. a s-S u b k i, o p . c it., \ , 51.

27-29 (L e ip zifj; 19 32, A K M , 19). Ibn al-M u la (](|in , at-'^ Iq d a l-iiiitd a / ilia b {a l-iim d liab ?) f i '^ .A b d a lla h b. A lu h an u n ad b. A h n ia d b . H a la f, d. 7 6 5 /D e ce m b e r 1363 (Ib n H a ja r,

tabaqdt ha n u ilat a t-n ia d lia b (B o d le ia n n is. or. H u n t. 108), also c(jn ta in s a sh o rt s u r v e y of D u ra y, 11, 284 f.).
S a f i - i t ( ' fa b a q d t. A ra b ic tex t, b elo w , p. 584. * '.\ b d - a r - R a h im b . al-Ila san , d. 772 /1370 (cf. G A I., 11, 9 0 f.).

Is h e the littera te u r m e n tio n e d b v a t-T a S 'iliI)i, Y a tim a t ad-dahr, 1\ , 311 (D a m a scu s 1X 7 5 6 / 1 3 5 3 flb ii H a ja r, D itra r, H , 145).

13 0 4 )? H is w o rk is (ju o ted b y a h l i a x i u u i i , ra ^ rih -i-B a y h a q , 158 (Teheran , 13 17). C f. a b o \ e , p. 414, ri. 7.


4 i 6 A S -S A H A W l S I L A N 417
T R A N S L A T IO N

Ibn H ajar added notes in the m argin of his copy of Ibn as-Subkis and ar-Rabi"- said; O A b il ^Ali (100), you shall spread this kind of learning th at is,
S afi'ism ^in the E ast, and I sh all spread it in the W e st. ^
Tabaqdt al-wustd. I edited these notes in a separate volum e. Qutb- Ar-Rabi*- al-M urM i said; I gave all H urasanians the permission to teach (ijdzah)
ad-din al-H aydari ^ used them in connection with the original for the books of as-Safi'-i.
Abd-al-Malik al-B agaw i said: I copied the books of as-Safi'-i for Ibn T iilun for
work, together w ith additions of his own, and edited them in a sep
500 dinars.
arate work.
H anafite jurists; A b u M uhammad A bd-al-W ahhab b. Muham
I have come to know a great number (of M iite scholars). If I
m ad b. A bd-al-W ahhab al-Fam i occupied himself w ith the jurists
were to treat them in monograph form, it would be enormous.
Perhaps, w ith God's help (I shall do it), (gg) I suppose, the H anafites, since (his work) was used in the biography
of the H anafite Ibn al-Qudiiri.^
N ote: Transm itters of the old (system) of as-Safi"-! were four; Az-Za'faranf,^ Abii
Tawr,^ A hm ad (b. H aubal), and aL-Karabtsi.^ T h e transm itters of his new (system)
M uhyi-ad-din Abd-al-Qadir b. Muhammad b. Muhammad b.
were six: Al-M uzani, ar-R ab i al-Jizi, a r-R ab i^ al-Muradi, al-B u w ayti, H arm alah , Nasr-Allah al-Qurasi, al-Jawdhir al-mudiyah f i tabaqdt al-Hanafiyah
and Y u n u s b. ^Abd-al-AHa.
The first to introduce the Safi'ite school to Dam ascus w as A b u Z u r'ah M uham m ad
on H anafite tabaqdt. The same author also wrote Wafaydt. The
b. Utrnan b. Ibrahim at-T aq afi ad-Diniasqi. Before th at, the school of al-Awza*^! Tabaqdt were abridged b y Majd-ad-din al-Lugawi, the author of
had been preponderant in Dam ascus. A b u Zur'^ah gave one hundred dinars to e v e ry
b od y who knew the Muhtasar of al-M uzani b y heart. He was < judge o f > E g y p t for
the Qdmus.^ Before al-Qurasi, H anafite tabaqdt had been compiled
A hm ad b. T u lu n and, then, judge of Dam ascus. He died in the year 302/914-15. b y the hadit scholar Ibn al-Muhandis ^ and, after him, among
In Tran soxan ia, the juridical system of as-Safi^i spread in the w ake of the au th o rity
of the religious leader M uham m ad b. A li b. Ism a 'il al-Q affal a l-K ab ir as-Sasi. He
others, b y the historian Ibn D uqm aq and Badr-ad-din al-A yn i.
died, seven ty-four years old, in l)ii 1-H ijjah 365/August 976. Al-Qurasi also w rote Tahdib al-asmd^ al-wdqi^ah f t l-Hiddyah wa-
A bu M uham m ad ^Abdan b. M uham m ad b. ^Isa al-M arwazi, the hadit expert, was
the person who b rought about the success of the Safi'^ite school u\ M arw and H urasan
l-Huldsah I believe, in im itation of an-Naw awi(s Tahdib).
after A h m ad b. Sayyar.i Ibn S a y y a r had brought the books of as-Safi'^i to Marw.
T h e people there liked theni. '^Abdan looked at some of thena and w anted to copy
them , bu t Ibn S a y y a r did not pernut it. "^Abdan thereupon sold one of his estates,
M alikite jurists; Judge ly a d occupied himself w ith them in the
went to E g y p t where he contacted ar-Rabi'- and other followers of as-Safi'i, copied Maddrik. This is a substantial tabaqdt work. He said that, following
the books of as-Safi'-i, and returned to M arw while Ibn S a y y a r w as still alive. 'A b d an
died in the night of ^Arafah of the year 293/906. a group of scholars whom he mentioned b y name, he had w ritten
A b u ^Awanah Y a 'q u b b. Ishaq b. Ibrahim b. Z a yd an-NisabCiri al-Isfarayin i, the (apart from the Maddrik) a monograph on the transm itters on
author of the Sahih following M u s lim ,w a s the first to introduce the school and works
of a s-S afi'i to Isfarayin. He had received (his information) from ar-Rabi*^ and al-
MMiks auth ority which contained more than 1300 individuals. ^
M uzani. He died in the y ear 316/928-29. (He further said) th at in spite of the need of both independent and
A b u Ism a 'il M uham m ad b. Ism a 'il b. Yrisuf as-Sulamt at-Tirm idi brought the
b ooks of a s-S afi'i from E g y p t. Ishaq b. Rahawayh^^ copied them and, on the basis of
tradition-bound scholars, jurists, and persons interested in the law
them , com posed his own Jdmi^ al-kabir. He transm itted (material) on the a u th ority for a knowledge of this subject, there has not previously appeared
of a l-B u w ayti. He died in the year 280/893-94.
In m ost regions, the S afi'ite school spread follow ing the auth ority of Ibn Surayj.*
a comprehensive treatm ent of it, nor has there been devoted to it
Ar-Rabi'^ b. S ulaym an performed the pilgrim age in the year 240/855. In Mecca, a brilliant w ork which would lead the student to the goal and give
he m et w ith A b u 'A li al-H asan b. M uham m ad az-Z a'farau i. T h e y greeted each other,
the interested person the opportunity to find w hat he wants. The
^ M uham m ad b. M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah , 821-894/1418-89 [Daw^, I X , 117-24). only exceptions (to this statement) are the compilations of the two
^ A l-H asan b. M uham m ad, d. 260/874 {TB , V I I , 407).
early (scholars), 'A bdallah b. Muhammad b. A bi D ulaym (al-
" Ibrahini b. H alid, d. 240/854 [TB , V I, 65 ff.).
A l-H u sayn b. Ali, d. 248/862-63, or 245 (7'iJ, V I I I , 64 ff.).
^ Ar-Rabi*^ b. Sulaym an , d. 256/870.
Cf. also E. W u s T E N F E i . D , DcY Imam el-SchdfPi, 76.
Ar-Rabi'^ b. Sulaym an , d. 270/884. ^ A h m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 428/1037 (cf. G A L , I, i 74 f-)- Eor the quotation from al-
H arm alah b. Y a h y a , d. 243/858. F a m is Tabaqdt al-fiiqalup, cf. A bd-al-Q adir al-Qurasi, al-Jau'dhir al-mudiyah, I, 93 (H y
D . 264/878.
Cf. (7.41. Supplem ent I, 307. derabad 1332).
^ M uham m ad b. Ya'^qub al-F iruzabad i (which, according to an -X aw aw fs Tabaqdt,
D. 268/881-82 (TB , IV , 187 ff.). For the story, cf. as-Subki, Tabaqdt as-SdfiHyah, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2021, fol. 37a, was corrcctly pronounced Ferozabadi), d. 817/1415 (cf.
II, 50 f. (Cairo 1324).
G A L , II, 181-83).
D . 316/928 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 266, II, 947). His M usnad, as his w ork is en titled, ^ ^Abdallah b. M uham m ad, 691-769/1292-1367 (Ibn I^ajar, Durar, II, 282).
was published in H yderabad 1362-63.
^ Ms. Cairo T a rih 2293, fol. 2b.
Ishaq b. Ibrahim , d. 238/852-53, or 237 (77i, V I, 345-55). Al-mutafaqqih (Maddrik). A ccording to the con text, the mutafannin of the IHdn
Cf. above, p. 279, n. 4.
m eans som ething sim ilar.

R o senth al , History of Muslim Historiography 27


4i 8 A S -S A H A W ! S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 419

Qurtubi) ^ and Muhammad b. H arit al-Qarawi,^ and the selec History of A b u U m ar as-Sadafi al-Qurtubi;^ the works of A bu
tions ^ of S ayh (Abu Ishaq) al-Firuzabadi in those passages of his A bdallah b. H arit, on the Qayrawanians and Spaniards; further
Muhtasar in which he mentions (M ^ikite jurists). A ll these more, some of the works of A b u l- A rab at-Tam im i; ^ A bu Ish iq
(books) ^ are not com pletely satisfactory and contain only small ar-R aqiq al-K atib A bu A li al-Basri (on the Q ayraw anians; notes
selections from a great amount of material. Ibn A b i D ulaym is quite in the handw riting of Sayh A bu Im ran al-Fasi, on the same
complete w ith regard to the M agribite successors of the transm itters subject; and, further, w hat I came across of the History of) ^
of Malik, E gyptians, Spaniards, and a group of Qayrawanians. A bu B ak r b. A b i A b d a llih al-Maliki, on the Q ayrawanians;
(However), he restricted himself to indicating their respective tahaqdt also some of the Spanish histories, such as the w ork of A bu A bd-
and names, w ithout any (biographical) inform ation about them al-M alikb. A b d - a l- B a r r A b u U m arb . Afif,^ al-Ihtifdl; A b u 1-Q^-
and their conditions, and he made no m ention of the M alikites sim b. Mufrih (Mufarraj), al-Intihdb; the w ork of Judge A bii 1-W alid
of the H ijaz and the East, in spite of their im portance and the b. al-Faradi ;thehistories of A bu Marwan b. H ayyan and ar-Razi;
great number of their nam es. (lo i) the w ork of A hm ad b. Abd-ar-Rahm an b. M uzahir,i on the Tole
A s A bu Ishaq an-Najiram i said, the occupation w ith the sub dans, and a number of others he mentioned.
ject (of proper names), more than anything else, requires accuracy, A ll later authors used the Maddrik as the standard reference
because the forms of proper names cannot be determ ined through work. A number of scholars w rote abridgm ents of it, among them
analogy or from the context. ly a d s pupil A b u Abdallah b. H am m M as-Sabti. For easy refer
Judge ly a d then mentioned something of the sort. He further ence, an alphabetical arrangement (index) was made b y our col
mentioned m any of the books he had read, among them the works league Ibn Fahd, about two quires. (This index falls) into two parts,
ofi az-Zubayr b. B akkar; Judge A b u B ak r b. H ayyan [; and one of which deals w ith the men around Malik, the other with the
Judge] W a k i'/ i on judges; the works of at-Tabari, as-Siili, and rest.
A bu K am il; the works of A bu U m ar al-K indi and (Abd-ar- In the Tirdz al-mudhah, Judge Burhan-ad-din A b ii Ishaq Ibrahim
Rahm an b. Ahmad) b. Yiinus (al-Misri on the E g y p tian s); the
1 A hm ad b. S a'id b. H azm , d. 350/961 (Y aq u t, Irsdd, III , 50-52, Cairo = I, 134 f. M ar-

g o l i o u t h ).
^ D. 351/962 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 68, w ho follow s Ibu al-F aradi, 192 f., no. 705, 2 Muhamnaad b. A hm ad, d. 333/945 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 228).
in vocalizin g Daltni). 3 Ibrahim b. al-Qasim, around 400/1009-10 (cf. G A L , I, 155, Supplement I, 252 and 229).
^ D . ^ 7ilg8 i (cf. G A L , I, 150). Cf. also below , p. 460, n. 4. Ib n a r-R aq iq s Qutb as-surur f t tvasf al-anbidah wa-l-humur, which I consulted in the Paris
Iqtadabahu (Maddrik). T h e Tahaqdt al-fuqahd^ b y A b u Ishaq as-Sirazi are m ean t here. ms. ar. 3302, is a h istorical m onograph on the attitu d e of the caliphs tow ard wine and
He is often called al-F iruzabadi and is listed under this nisbah in as-Sani'ani, Ansdb, fol. 435b. their w ine-drinking habits. T h e stories are arranged according to the chronological sequence
* W a-kull al-kutub [Maddrik).
of the reigns of the various caliphs.
^ M in al-kattr ilia qalilan {Maddrik).
* T he additions are from the te x t of the M addrik.
* Ft-m an dakarahu (Maddrik). ^Abdallah b. M uham m ad, first h alf of the fifth/eleventh cen tury (cf. G A L Supplement I,
M addrik, fol. 2a. The m eaning of aHdm here is established through the follow ing 210, and the introduction to the edition of the first volum e of A b u B akr al-M alikis R iydd
rem ark.
an-nufus b y H u s a y n M u ^n i s [Cairo 1951]).
Ibrahim b. 'A b d allah , fourth/tenth cen tury (cf. G A L Supplement I, 201 f.). Cf. also A hm ad b. M uham m ad, d. 338/950 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 58 f.).
S. a l - M u n a j j i d , in the introduction to his edition of M u arrij, H adf min nasab QurayS Ahm ad b. M uham m ad, d. 420/1029 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 113 f.). There can be
(Cairo, n. y. [i960]). Th e m anuscript of the w ork w as wTitten b y an-N ajiram i. little doubt th at he is the person m eant here, although his w ork is not known under the title
Cf. al-'A lm aw i and Ibn Jaina'^ah, in F. R o s e n t h a l , The Technique and Approach of of al-Ihtifdl. H is History o f the Judges and Jurists in Cordoba w as a source of Ibn B asku w al
M uslim Scholarship, 15a (Rom e 1947, Analecta Orientalia, 24). The con text of the tw o authors in his Silah. A historical w ork en titled al-lhtifdl was w ritten between 417-420/1026-29
suggests th at their inform ation w as derived from Judge 4 yad . If this is the case, I m ust have b y al-H asan b. ^luham m ad b. M ufarraj ( ?) al-Q ubbasi (d. a fter 430/1038-39), b u t he cannot
overlooked it while perusing the Maddrik. easily be identified w ith A b u 1-Qasim b. M ufrih (?), the author of al-Intihdb, because his
M addrik adds A b u '^Abdallah al-B uhari, ^Abd-ar-Rahman b. A b i H atim , and A b u kunyah was A b u B akr. Cf. also E . L e v i - P r o v e n ( ; a l and E . G a r c i a G o m e z , Una cronica
1-Hasan ad-D araqutni. anonima de ^Abd-al-Rahman I I I al-Xdsir, 21 f. (M adrid-Granada 1950). Cf. further, al-
The correct form of his nam e is M uham m ad b. H alaf. He died in 306/918 {TB, V , M aqqari, Analectes, 1, 902.
236 f.; G A L Supplement I, 225; Fihrist, 166, Cairo 1348 = 114 F l u g e l ) . H a y y a n b. H alaf, d. 469/1076 (cf. G A L , I, 338).
Waki'^s w ork on judges w as published b y ^ A b d - a l - ' ^ A z i z M u s t a f a a l - M a r a g i (Cairo 1366- Ahm ad b . M uham m ad b . Musa, d. 3 4 4 / 9 5 5 ( E . L e v i - P r o v e n ^ a l in E l, s.v. al-R azi;
79/1947-50). It is quoted in the Maddrik, for instance, fol. 105a. A w ork b}' him which includ G A L , I, 150), rather than his father.
ed a h istory from Constantine to the year 301 of the hijrah was used b y H am zah al- D. 489/1096 (Ibn Baskuw al, Silah, 72 f. C o d e r a ) . Ibn B asku w al also used Ibn M uzahir.
Isfahani, cf. above, p. 73, n. i. M addrik, fol. 5a. Leg., a t the end: wa-siwd hddihi jiim la h l
420 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 421

b. A ll b. M uhammad b. Farhun selected a number of the most Ad-D ahabi. He w rote a substantial work. Taj-ad-din b. M aktum ^
im portant M alikites, about six hundred, alphabetically arranged. w rote to it a short supplement of tw enty persons. Ibn al-Jazari ^
I m yself have written a substantial w ork on the M alikites which took ad-D ahabis book, added much m aterial to its biographies,
is in the rough draft stage, (I did so) after I had prepared an in and also added new biographies. I wrote to it a substantial supple
structive arrangement of Ibn Farhuns w ork and abstracted from ment. A d-D ahabi(s work) was alphabetically arranged b y al-Izzi
the Maddrik the persons not mentioned b y Ibn Farhun, each in one b. Fahd, the surviving member of the fam ily and pride of Mecca.
volume. 1
A b u Muhammad Abdallah b. Sahl al-Q udai wrote a pam phlet (11. The history of) hadit experts
which comprises a number of the best known Malikites. (Works on hadit experts, huffdz, were w ritten by)
Ibn al-Jawzi.
On H anbalite jurists, there are works b y A bu 1-W alid b. ad-D abbag. Also b y
Judge A b u 1-H usayn Muhammad, a son of Judge A bu Y a 'la Ibn D aqiq-al-id, who restricted himself to persons who are
M uhammad b. al-H usayn b. al-F arra .^ described in the chains of transm itters as hadit experts.
A bu A ll b. al-B ann a . A nd Ad-D ahabi wrote a book (on the subject) which was substantial
The hadit expert A b u 1-Faraj b. al-Jawzi. in comparison with his predecessors. H e arranged it according to
The hadit expert Zayn-ad-din (102) b. R ajab ^wrote a supplement tabaqdt. Ibn H ajar picked out the men not found in the Tahdib
to Ibn al-Farra\ B oth the original w ork and the supplement are al-Kamdl. A supplement to ad-I)ahabi was w ritten b y the hadit
arranged according to tahaqdt. A n alphabetical arrangement was expert Sams-ad-din al-Husayni,^ and a supplem ent to al-H usayni
made b y our colleague Ibn Fahd, in two (separate) works. was written b y our teacher Taqi-ad-din b. F ahd al-Makki. (Taqi-
The leading Hanbalite, Izz-ad-din al-Kinani, occupied himself ad-dins) son, Najm -ad-din Um ar, arranged it together w ith the
with a compilation of Hanbahtes. H e compiled a substantial book, original w ork according to the alphabet, (practically) a new work.
but he did not prepare its final revision and clean copy.^ The hadit expert Ibn Nasir-ad-din versified th at (material in a
poem) entitled Badi'-at al-baydn f i wafaydt al-a'-ydn. He himself
(10. The history of) Q uran readers comm ented on his poem in a volum e entitled at-Tibydn li-Badi'-at
(Works on Q uran readers were w ritten by) al-baydn. He added tw enty-six persons to ad-Dahabi. Ibn H ajar
A b u A m r ad-Dani. w rote a supplement of tw enty-eight persons in one quire to (ad-
A bu B akr A hm ad b. al-Fadl b. Muhammad b. A hm ad b. Muham Dahabi). I m yself have additions.
m ad b. J a 'fa r al-Batirqani. A nd
(12. The history of) hadit scholars

1 Cf. G A L S u p p l e m e n t 11,226. A bu 1-W alid Y u su f b. Abdallah b. ad-D abbag, Tabaqdt al-


^ D . 526/1132 (cf. G A L S u p p l e m e n t I, 557). H is T a b a q d t a l - H a n d b i l a h were published b y
M u h a m m a d H a m i d a l - F i q I in Cairo 1371/1952.
muhadditin. A nd
2 '"Abd-ar-Rahm an b. A hm ad, 736-795/1335-93 (cf. G A L , H , 107). His D a y l was published Ad-D ahabi, al-Mu'-jam, (the one) which is especially concerned
b y S. a d - D a h h a n and H . L a o u s t (Damascus 1370-/1951-). The introduction of the edition
contains a brief su rvey of H anbahte biographical collections. with hadit scholars.
Ibn A b i Y a n a s w ork is arranged according to t a b a q d t , w ith an alphabetical arrangem ent
1 A hm ad b. A bd-al-Q adir, d. 749/1348 (cf. G A L , II, n o ) . Cf. G A L Supplement II, 46.
w ithin the in d ivid u al t a b a q d t . Ibn R ajab uses an annalistic arrangem ent, according to the
^ A p p aren tly, M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 833/1429 (cf. G A L , II, 201-3), cf. above,
years of death of the scholars listed.
p . 276, n. 9.
It should be noted that in his S u p p l e m e n t to Ibn H a ja rs R a f ^ a l - i s r , as-Sahaw i himself
* He m ay be id entical w ith 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. '^Umar, below , p. 482, n. i. Baqtyah su rv iv
stated th at al-K inan i (born 800/1397-98) w rote a large fourteen-volum e, a m edium three-
in g also often m eans b e st, cf. A . S p i T A L E R , i n Westdstliche Abhandlungen R .Tschudi,
volum e, and a sm all one-volum e T a M h t a b a q d t a l - I I a n d b t l a h - , cf. as-Sahawi, B u r y a t a l -
138-46 (W iesbaden 1954).
' ^ u l a n u P l u a - r - r m m h f i d - d a y l ^ a l d k i t d h a s - S a y h f t l - q u d d h , Paris ms. ar. 2150, fol. 7b.
M uhanm iad b. '^Ali, d. 765/1264 (cf. G A L Supplement, II, 46; Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 61).
H 'tm an b. S a'id , d. 441/1049-50, or 444/1053 (cf. G A L , I, 407).
H e w rote the Paris m anuscript of ad-D ahab is 'Ibar.
D. 460/1067 (^ aqut, I r s d d , I \ ' , 100-2, Cairo = I I , 16 A I a r g o l i o u t h ) .
422 A S - S A H A W i s I ' L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 423

(13. The history of) historians The com pilation (of a history of grammarians) has been the occu
References to m any historians will be found later on. pation of a certain person who very often came to me (that is, to m y
classes), in order to acquire inform ation, especially on this subject.
(14. The history of) gram marians He has picked out m any original notes and rem arkable results
(Works on gram marians were w ritten by) of research from the works of (authors) whose biographies (are
A bii A bdallah Muhammad b. al-H usayn b. Um ar al-Yamani.^ found in the biographical collections), and from the notebooks
Also b y of distinguished religious leaders. H e believes th at only a person
A bu 1-Hasan A li b. Y usu f b. Ibrahim al-Qifti.^ (A l-Q iftis) who combines traditional knowledge w ith understanding is able
w ork was abridged b y ad-Dahabi. to m ake (such a com pilation as he has planned). His work, however,
As-Sirafi,^ I believe, wrote a book on grammarians. (103) has not appeared up to now, although he has published a short
A bu B ak r M uhamm ad b. al-H usayn (al-Hasan?) b. A bdallah treatise on the subject.
b. Madhij az-Z u b ayd i/ Tahaqdt an-nuhdh.
Judge A bu 1-Mahasin al-Mufaddal b. M uhammad b. M isar b. (15. T he history of) litterateurs
M uhammad al-Magribi (al-Ma'^arri) an-Nahwi,^ Ahbdr an-nuhdh (A w ork on litterateurs was written by) Yaqut.^
min al-Basfiyin wa-l-Kufiyin.
A bu U baydallah M uhammad b. Im ran b. Musa al-Marzubani, (16. The history of) lexicographers
al-Muqtahas f t ahbdr an-nuhdh. In addition to the afore-mentioned works, Majd-ad-din al-Lug-
A bu 1-Mahasin Yiasuf b. Ahm ad b. Mahmud b. A hm ad ad- awi, the author of the Qdmus, w rote a small pam phlet (on lexicog
Dimasqi, N ur al-qabas, which he took from the Qabas which, in raphers), entitled al-Bulgah f t aHnimat al-lugah. I have come across
turn, had been taken from the Muqtabas. it.
Taj-ad-din b. M aktum al-Hanafi, Al-Junta'' al-mutanndh {?, al- (17. The history of) poets
jam'- a l - m u t a n d h i f t ahbdr al-lugawiyin wa-n-nuhdh, in ten
(Works on poets were w ritten by)
volumes, of which I have seen a number of fascicles in the authors
A bu M uhammad A bdallah b. Muslim b. Q utaybah.
handwriting. A special volum e of the w ork is devoted exclusively
A bii B ak r M uhammad b. H alaf b. al-Marzuban.^
to the Muhammads. There is hardly a literary work on poetry or
A t-T a Mibi,^ Yatimat ad-dahr, dealing w ith a good m any poets.
history or the like which does not have a biography of its author
Supplements to (the Yatimah) are A b ii 1-Hasan A li b. al-Hasan
in (Ibn M aktum s) handwriting.
b. A li al-Baharzi,^ Dumyat al-qasr, and A b u 1-Hasan A li b. Z ayd
1 D . 400/1009-10 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 202).
^ D . 646/1248 (cf. G A L , I, 325). His Inbdh w as published in Cairo 1369-74/1950-55.
al-Bayhaqi, Wisdh ad-Dtimyah, or al-'-Umdah f t Kitdb al-Haridah.^
^ A l-H asan b . ^Abdallah, d. 368/979 (cf. G A L , I, 113). H is History of Grammarians w as Also b y
reprinted in Cairo 1374/1955.
* D. 379/989 (cf. G A L , I, 132 f.; Ms. Leiden: az-Zabidi). A n edition of the Tahaqdt b y
Al-M ubarak b. A b i B ak r b. Ham dan b. a s-a ar al-Mawsili,
M. A b x j l - F a d l I b r a h i m appeared in Cairo 1373/1954. ^Uqud al-jumdn f t su'^ard^ az-zamdn.
D. 442/1050-51, or 443 (Y aq u t, Irsdd, X I X , 164 Cairo = V II , 171 M a r g o l i o u t h ;
as-Suyuti, Bugyat al-wu'^dh, 396, Cairo 1326). He was from al-M a'arra. A m anuscript of the ^ Y a q u t b. A b d allah , d. 626/1229 (cf. G A L , I, 479 f.).
w ork in the H adram aw t was described b riefly b y R. B. S e r j e a n t , in Revue de I ln stitut des ^ D . 309/921-22 (cf. G A L , I, 125).
M anuscrits Arabes, I II , 342 (1957). ^ 'A bd-al-M alik b. M uham m ad, d. 429/1038 (cf. G A L , I, 284-86).
D . 378/988-89, or 384/904 (cf. G A L Supplement I, ig o f.). D. 467/1075 (cf. G A L , I, 252).
E d. R . S e l l h e i m , D ie Gelehrtenbiographien des Abu ^Ubaidalldh al-M arzubdni in der * A s-S ah aw is lack of fa m iliarity w ith this kind of literature is transparent in this para
Rezension des H afiz al-Yagmtiri (W iesbaden 1964, Bibliotheca Islamica, 23a). graph.
T h is paragraph is d erived from Ibn H ajar, Durar, 1, 175. 593-654/1196-1256 (cf .G ^ L Supplement III , 1217). Cf. also Ibn H allikan, IV , 426 trans.
A m anuscript of the w ork is listed in P. S b a t h , A l-F ih ris, Supplement, 43 (Cairo 1940). D e S l a n e . H is w ork is further quoted b y Ibn al-F uw ati, TalMs Majma'^ al-dddb, IV , I, 192,

T h e autograph m anuscript of an abridgm ent of al-Q iftis History of Grammarians b y Ibn 196, 204, 214, 218 f. 248, 286, 299, 300, 431, 538, 542, 548, 595, 599, 616, 633, also fre
M aktum exists in Ms. Cairo T aym u r Ta^rih 2069 (not seen). For further rem ains of his q u en tly in IV , I I I J a w a d , and b y al-Y u n in i, D a y l Mir^dt az-zanidn, I, 33. A s-S a ar is
a c tiv ity as a copyist, cf. G. V a j d a , Les Certificats de lecture et de transmission, 4 ff., 30 (Paris doubtful, as the article is m issing in the other references, b u t cf. also Abd-al-Q adir
1957). al-Q urasi, al-Jawdhir al-mudtyah. I, 298, II, 95, 198.
424 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 425

A bu 1-M aMi S a d b. al-Haziri a l-K u tu b i/ Zinat ad-dahr f i dikr biographies of those poets, the transmission of whose poems had
su'-ard^ al-^asr. come to him either through direct stud}^ or a (written) permission
Im ad-ad-din Muhammad b. M uhammad b. ^ H am id al-Is- [ijdzah). A one-volume abridgm ent was composed b y Ibn Ja m a ah
bahani al-K atib , Haridat al-qasr f t jaridat hi'-md^ aWasr. himself.
A bu A bdallah Muhammad (104) b. Dawud b. al-Jarrah, al- Badr-ad-din al-Bastaki, ^ al-MatdW- al-Badriyah, on poets, a
Waraqah, a history [ahbdr) of modern poets. Also b y substantial work, alphabetically arranged. I have come across a
Abdallah b. al-M utazz, Tabaqdt as-su'^afd'' al-muhdatin^ fragm ent of it.
Al-M arzubani, al-Mu'^jam as-sagir li-s-su'-ard^. A b ii 1-Faraj, the author of the Agdni, w rote on m aid servants
Abd-as-Salam b. Yusuf ad-Dim asqi, Unmudaj al-a'-ydn wa-- who were poetesses [Ahbdr al-imd' as-sawdHr).
hi'^ard^ mim-nian adraka bi-s-samd'^ aw hi-l-Hydn.^
A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. Sallam b. 'A bdallah al-Jum ahi (18. The history of) servants (of God) and Sufis
as a chent of the Jum ah al-Basri al-Ahbari, Tabaqdt as-su''ard\
(Works on Siifis were w ritten by)
A bu S a d Muhammad b. H usayn b. A ll b. A bd-ar-Rahim
A bu Abd-ar-Rahm an as-Sulami.^
al-W azir,^ Tabaqdt as-hi''ard\
A bii S a id M uhammad b. A ll b. A m r an-Naqqas.^
A b u Talib A li b. A njab al-Bagdadi al-Hazin, on the poets of
A bu 1- A bbas A hm ad b. Muhammad an-Nasawi.^
his time.
A bd-al-W ahid b. Siyah as-Sirazi.^
K am al-ad-din A bd-ar-R azzaq b. al-Fuwati,^ ad-Diwar an-ndsi'-ah
A b u S a id b. a l-A rabi.6 A nd
f i m^ard^ al-mi^ah as-sdW^ah.
Professor A b ii 1-Qasim al-Qusayri,^ ar-Risdlah. This w ork con
Lisan-ad-din b. al-Hatib,^ at-Tdj al-muhalld, on the litterateurs
tains a great number of prominent Sufis down to the time of its author.
of the eighth/fourteenth century, and al-IkUl az-zdhir fi-m d fadala
A bd-al-Gaffar al-Qusi, al-Wahid f i suluk ahl at-tawhid, in two
Hnd nazm at-Tdj min-al-jawdhir. B oth works contain biographies
of litterateurs in the Magrib. T h ey are w ritten entirely in rhym ed
prose. 1 Muhamnxad b. Ibrahim b. M uham m ad, 748-830/1347-1427, cf. Ibn H ajar, D a y l ^ald
ad-Durar al-kdminah, Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 4767, p. 208 f.; Daw^, V I, 2 77-79- The nisbah al-
Izz-ad-din A bu 'U m ar b. J a m a ah, Nuzhat al-alibbd^ f i ma'-rifat B astak i, thus to be vocalized according to Ibn H ajar, is derived from the H anqah B astak ,
or B a stak (after B astak an-N asiri, cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 477-79), betw een Cairo and
al-udabd\ in several volumes. The author restricted himself to the
F u sta t, cf. al-M aqrizi, H itat, II, 418 f. (Bulaq 1270). H e was quite a prom inent scholar
1 S a 'd b. 'A ll, d. 568/1172 (cf. G A L , I, 248). in his tim e and is often m entioned, cf., for instance, Ibn M akanis, Diii'dn, Paris ms. ar.
^ Ms. Leiden has the correct names. A n edition of the Haridah was begun as a collab 3210, fols. 35a-36a. Cf. also G A L Supplement II, 7 (no. ig), and iHdn, 115, below , p. 445,
orative enterprise of E gy p tia n , ^Iraqi, Syrian , and M agribi scholars (Cairo 195 1; B a gd a d n. 4 -
1955; Dam ascus 1955; Tunis 1966). ^ M uhanunad b. al-H usayn, d. 412/1021 (cf. G A L , I, 200 f.). Cf. the editions of the Tabaqdt
^ E d ited b y 'Ab d - a l - W a i i h a b ' A z z a m and ' A b d - a s - S a t t a r A . F a r r a j in Cairo 1953. as-Sufiyah b y N u r - a d - d I n S u r a y b a h (Cairo 1372/1953) and J. P e d e r s e n (Leiden i960),
^ N ew ly edited b y Ab d - a s - S a t t A r A . F a r r a j in Cairo 1375/1956. as well as Melanges Massignon, I I I , 185-94 (Dam ascus 1957).
^ Cf. H a jji H alifah, K a s f az-zumtn, 465 F l u g e l . T he author was a contem porary ^ D. 414/1023 (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 949, cf. also as-Safadi, W dfi, 1, 54 R i t t e r ).
of Y a q u t, cf. Y a q u t, M u -jain, I V , 119 W u s t e n f e l d . B u t a quotation, from his w ork in * G A L Supplement I, 360, has a certain A b ii l-'A b b as as-Susi, d. 396/1005-6, as the author
as-Safadi, W aft, IV , 152 f. D e d e r i n g , refers to the year 547/1152, so th at he was m uch older of Tabaqdt as-Suftyah. He is certainly identical w ith our author who is m entioned as A b u
than YaqCit. l-'^Abbas A hm ad b. M uham m ad b. Zakariya^ an-N asaw i in T B, V', 9. F'asawi in the edition
D. 231/845-46, or 232 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 165). He was, in fact, a client of Qudainah of the IHdn (the ph otostat of Ms. Leiden is not sufficiently clear here) is a m istake. N asaw i
b. Maz'-un al-Jum ahi (TB , V , 327), one of the nxen around M uhammad. A new edition was is also found in the quotation from his w ork in Ibn, an-N ajjar, D ayl Ta^rih Bagddd, Paris
published in Cairo 1953. Cf. also A . J. A r b e r r y , in B S O A S , X I I I , 7-22, 602-15 (1950-51). ms. ar. 2 13 1, fol. 99b (life of 'Ali an-N asibi), and repeated ly in as-Sularnis Tabaqdt as-
D. 439/1048 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I I I , 134). H is w ork is quoted b y Ibn al-F'uw ati, Suftyah.
Talhts Majma^ al-ciddb, IV , III , 475 J a w a d . ^ His w ork is quoted b y Ibn an-N ajjar, D a y l Ta^rih Bagdad, Paris ms. ar. 2131, fol. 33a
* Iden tical with tlic AJjhdr al-ndabd^, of which a five-volum e copy is said to exist in private (life of 'A ll b. M uham m ad b. az-Zanjani). Th e ms. has Sah.
possession, cf. P. S b a t h , A l-F ih ris, Supplement, 38 (Cairo 1940) ? A hm ,adb. M uham m ad, d. 341/953 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 358; Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam,
* 'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. A h n w i, d. 723I132S (cf. G A L Supplement II, 202). V I, 3 71; as-Sulam i, Tabaqdt as-Sufiyah, 164 S u r a y b a h ).
1 M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah , d. 776/1374 (cf. G A L , II, 260-63). 'A b d -a l-K a rh n b. H aw azin, d. 465/1072 (cf. G A L , I, 432 f.; A . J. A r b e r r y , in Studia
Th e inform ation in this paragraph is derived from Ibn H ajar, Durar, III, 472. A l-M uhalld Orientalia J . Pedersen, 12-20 [Copenhagen 1953]).
(instead of al-mu^alld) and fi-m an (instead of fi-md) is found in the Durar, the la tter also * 'A b d -a l-C a ffa r b. A hm ad, d. 708/1309 (cf. G A L , II, 1 1 7 ; H. R i t t e r , in Oriens, III, 67
in Ms. Leiden. [1950]). Th e inform ation in this paragraph is derived from Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 385.
426 A S - S A H A W i s I LA N T R A N S LA T IO N 427

volumes. In this work, its author resembled (al-Qusayri) in th at A bd-al-W ahhab b. al-Hanbali,^ al-Istis'-dd hi-man laqiyahu min
he enumerated those Sufis w ith whom he had personal contact. sdlihi al-Hhdd f i l-bildd.
Ibn A b i 1-Mansur ^ likewise w rote a Risdlah on the subject. Ibn a l-A tir ,2 al-Muhtdr f i mandqib al-ahydr.
A b u N u 'aym , Hilyat al-awliyd^ wa-tahaqdt al-asfiyd\ a substan A b u 1-H usayn (Hasan) b. Jahdam,^ Bahjat al-asrdr wa-lawdmi'-
tial work, which has been the basis for all later (authors on the al-anwdr f i hikdydt as-sdlihin al-'ulamd^ al-ahydr wa-s-Sufiyah
subject). Ibn al-Jaw zi derived from it the m aterial which, together al-hukamd^ al-abrdr.
w ith his own additions, went into his four-volume Safwat as-safwah. S a id b. A sad al-Um awi, FaddHl at-tdbiHn wa-ahldq as-sdlihin.
(Ibn al-Jawzi) also wrote Ahbdr al-ahydr and Ahbdr (105) an-nisd^ Muwaffaq-ad-din A bd-ar-Rahm an b. Maki b. Utm an as-^rii,^
(on women), each in one volume. M ursid az-zuwwdr ild qubur al-abrdr.
The s a n f M uhamm ad b. al-Hasan b. A bdallah al-H asani (al- A bu A bdallah M uhammad b. H am id b. al-Mutawwij al-Marini
H usayni?) ad-Dimasqi,^ Majma" al-ahbdb, a w ell-arranged w ork (Ms. Leiden: al-Maridini), M ahajjat an-nur f i ziydrat al-qubur.
in three volumes.
Ibn al-Mulaqqin, Kitdb as-Sufiyah, a small volum e. H e said (19. The history of) judges
that in this w ork he collected a number of tabaqdt of prominent
W orks on the judges of E g y p t were w ritten b y
scholars and great authorities (in m ysticism ) from every region
A bu U baydallah M uhammad b. ar-R ab i al-Jizi. ^
and period. H e thereby intended to take their memorable deeds
Ibn Muyassar.
as a guide and their achievem ents as a model, in the hope th at on
A b u Um ar al-Kindi. A nd
the D a y of Resurrection he m ight be adm itted to their com pany
A b u M uhamm ad b. Zulaq, who wrote a supplem ent to the work(s)
Man (is kept) together with those whom he loves ^ and whom he
of his predecessor(s).
keeps alive b y speaking of them and th at his cares and troubles
Compilations of judges were made b y
m ight find an end.
Ism ail b. A li b. Ism ail b. Musa al-Husayni.^
As-Sarji al-Yam ani, Tabaqdt as-Sufiyah.
Sulaym an b. A li b. A bd-as-Sam i .
A bu Mansur M am ar b. A hm ad b. Z iyad al-Arif,^ Tabaqdt
A bd-al-Cani b. S a id, the hadit expert.
an-nussdk.
Judge A bii 1- A bbas A hm ad b. B ah tiyar b. A li b. al-M anda'i
Our reliable and austere colleague Burhan-ad-din al-Qadiri
al-Wasiti, Kitdb f i ahbdr al-quddh wa-s-suhud (on judges and of
occupied himself w ith a special book about Sufis described as
ficial witnesses). I do not know whether this w ork is identical w ith
ascetics. He spent much effort on the w ork but did not prepare a
his Hukkdm or whether it is a different work.
clean copy of it.
A bu B akr Abdallah b. Muhammad al-Maliki, Riydd an-nufus, 1 D . 634/1236 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 146).
^ I.e., M ajd-ad-din.
on the servants (of God) of Ifriqiyah (al-Qayrawan). 'A li b. '^Abdallah, d . 414/1023-24 (cf. G A L Supplement I I, 147, n. i ; Ibn al-Jaw zi,
Nasih-ad-din A b u M uhammad Abd-ar-Rahm an b. N ajm b. Muntazam, V I I I , 14), whose kunyah was A b u 1-IIasan.
* Cf. G A L , II, 34. Supplem ent II, 30, has 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. ^IJtman b. M aki, who
w rote betw een 771/1369 and 780/1378.
^ A pp aren tly, al-H usayu b. ^Ali, the son of the historian al-A zdi, cf. G A L Supplement I, ^ The w ork on judges is quoted b y ^lyad, M addrik, Ms. Cairo T a rih 2293, i, fol. 115b.
554. T h e w ork is also quoted b y Ibn H ajar, Raf^ al-isr, 341 H am id ABD-AL-MAjiD and M uham m ad b. 'A li, d. 677/1278 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 574).
Ibrah im a l- I b y a r i (Cairo 1957-61); as-Saha\vi, Tuhfat al-ahbdb, 3 9 3 !., 396 (Cairo 1356/ H is Ahbdr quddt M isr are quoted b y Ibn H ajar, Raf^ al-isr, 103.
1937). H is son Ibrahim,, for whom the eighty-four year old author wrote his w ork (cf. the * D . 409/1018-19 (cf. G A L , I, 167 f.).
introduction, in Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 338), has a brief biograph y in Ibn H ajar, D u r a r , I, 24. A * D. 552/1157 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, X , 177 f.; Y a q u t, Irsdd, II, 231 ff., Cairo = I,
grandson, A hm ad b. A hm ad 651-724/1253-1324; op. cit., I, 99; another grandson, M uham 379 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ). Al-Manda^is Ta^rth al-hukkdm (al-quddh) is quoted b y a d-D u b ayti,
mad b. A hm ad, d. 724/1324: op. cit., I l l , 313 f.; a great-grandson, Ahm ad b. M uham m ad b. D a y l Ta^rih Bagdad, Paris ms. ar. 2133, fol. 20b, and Ibn R a jab , D a y l Tabaqdt al-Handbilah,
A ll, d. 739/1338-39: op. cit.. I, 281. Cf. A rabic texts, below, p. 584. I, 230 a d - D a h h a n and L a o u s t ; his Ta^rih (which?) b y Ibn as-Sa'i, Ahbdr al-hulafd^, Ms.
2 D. 776/1374-75 (cf. G A L Supplement II, 30). Cairo T ayin u r T a rih 901, p. 100. H is tru ly atrocious han dw ritin g can be seen in the B o d
IHdn, 27, above, p. 304,11. 3. leian m anuscript of az-Zu b ayr b. B a k k a rs Nasab Qurays which was w ritten b y him, cf.
* D. 418/1027-28 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 770). A . A h m edali in, J R A S , 1936, 55-63, and M a h m u d M . S a k i r s introduction to his edition
Ibrahim b. ^Ali, d. 880/1475 {paw^. I, 80 f.). of Jamharat nasab Qurays (Cairo 1381/1962).
428 A S -S A H A w ! s I LA N 429
T R A N S L A T IO N

A b u 1-H asan al-Musawi ar-R ida ^ and Jam al-ad-din A bdallah (21. The history of) asrdf
al-Bisbisi ^ (io6) wrote on judges exclusively. The latter w ork was
Al-H asan b. A tiq b. al-Hasan, al-Isrdf '-aid {mandqib) al-asrdf.^
the basis of Ibn H ajars one-volume Raf- al-isr f i quddt M isr.
There are several works on the excellent qualities of the asrdf.
I wrote a one-volume supplement to the {Raf'')-
I w rote Irtiqd^ al-guraf bi-hubb aqribd^ ar-Rasul wa-dawi s-saraf.
In the preface of the Kitdh al-Maddrik, Judge 'ly a d mentions
the History of fudges b y Judge A b ii B ak r b. H ayyan W a k i .^
(22. The history of) noble persons
am s-ad-din b. D aniyal al-Mawsili al-H akim ^ composed an
urjuzah on the judges of E g y p t entitled *"Uqud an-nazzdni ^ fi-m an U tm an b. Isa al-B u layti, Ahbdr al-ajwdd. A nd
waliya M isr min al-hukkdm. The w ork was brought up to date Muhammad b. Z a k a riy a al-Gallabi,^ al-Ajwdd.
A certain author w rote a two-volum e H istory [ahbdr) of the
and com pleted b y Judge Izz-ad-din al-Kinani al-Hanbali, and
again b y one of our colleagues. Barmecides.
ihab-ad-din b. al-Lubiidi ad-Dim asqi composed an urjUzah, (23. The history of) quick-w itted persons
w ith com m entary, on the judges of Damascus.
Ibn al-Jawzi, al-Adkiyd\ and also Ahbdr al-miigaffalin (on dull
persons).
(20. The history of) singers
(24. The history of) intelligent persons
(A w ork on singers was written by) A bu 1-Faraj A ll b. al-H usayn
A l-A bbas b. Muhammad b. Abd-ar-Rahm an b. Utm an al-
al-Isbahani al-K atib. A bu 1-Faraj also wrote a two-volum e w ork on
Ansari, '-JJqaW al-majdnin^
songstresses, further, the Ahbdr al-nmgannin al-mamdlik (on singers
who were slaves), and the Agdni. The Agdni are a substantial (25. The history of) physicians
w ork which treats its subject very extensively. T h ey were abridged Ibn A b i U sa yb iah wrote a substantial w ork on the physicians,
b y A bu 1-Fath Taj-ad-din Utm an b. Tsa al-B alati ^ and Jamal- which was alphabetically arranged b y Najm -ad-din b. Fahd.
ad-din A bu 1-Fadl Muhammad b. Mukarram, in the manner in
which Ibn M ukarram abridged also other great histories. A bu (26. The history of) A s arites
1-Faraj showed th at the attribution of the book on the subject
A b u 1-Qasim b. A sak ir w rote on the A s arites in the Tabyin
which is com m only attributed to Ishaq b. Ibrahim al-Mawsili ^
kadib al-muftari '-aid A bi l-Hasan (107) al-As'ari. Kam al-ad-din,
was wrong and th at (those Agdni) were collected b y Sindi (Sanadi ?)
al-W arraq for Ishaq. the imam of the Kamiliyah, took the Tabyin and made additions
to it. Before him, Afif-ad-din a l-Y M ii had done the same in the
Ibn al-Jaw zi wrote a one-volume w ork on w itty persons {az-
zurafd"'). M ar ham.
^ Cf. IHdn, 108, below , p. 433. Ibn A b i d-dunya wrote a w ork of the same title, cf. M.
K urd ' A l i , in Revue de VAcademie arabe de Damas, X I I I , 193-204 (1933-35).
^ D. after 280/893-94 {Fihrist, 1^7, Cairo 1348 = ro8 F l u g e l ; al-M as'udi, M uruj, I, 11 ,
* A r-R a d i? , b u t he could h ard ly be identical w ith the fam ous poet {GAL, I, 82).
Paris ed. = I, 4, Cairo 1346; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V , 168 f.).
^ ^Abdallah b. A hm ad, 762-820/1361-Dec. 1417/Jan. 1418 {Daw^, V, 7).
^ There were, of course, a num ber of w orks on the Barm ecides. Ibn al-^Adim, Bugyat
^ Cf. above, p. 418, n. 11.
at-talab, Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 15b, quotes the Ahbdr al-Bardmikah b y A bu Hafs 'U m ar
^ M uh am m ad b. D an iyal, d. 710/1310 (cf. G AJ., II, 8 f.).
b. a l'A zraq . Fihrist, 193 (Cairo 1348 = 134 F l u g e l ) ; Y a q u t, Irsdd, X V I I I , 269 (Cairo =
An-nizdm does not seem a possible reading; an-nuzzdm, as a plural of ndzim, would V I I , 50 M a r g o lio u t h ) , refer to a w ork on the su bject b y al-M arzubani; H ajji H alifah,
be possible as well.
K a s f az-zimun. I, 185, no. 184 Il i ' g e l , refers to one b y Ibn al-Jaw zi.
A hm ad b. H alil, 834-896/1431-90 [Datv'', I, 293 f.; G A L Supplement II, 85). ^ Old authors of works of this type, such as al-M ada ini, Ibn A b i d-dunya, and Ibn
^ Or a l-B u la y ti (see below), d. 599/1202 (cf. G A L , I, 302).
D u h aym , are m entioned b y Ibn Zulaq in the introduction of his Ahbdr Sibawayh. Cf. also
Ibn Marizur, the author of the Lisun al-'-Arab, d. 711/13 11 (cf. G A L , II, 21 f., Supplement
T B , II, 310 (Ibn Masruq).
I, 226). His inclination for abridged editions of adab works and histories is m entioned b y
Ibn H ajar, D u r a r , IV , 263. A hm ad b. al-Qasim, d. 668/1270 (cf. G A L , I, 325 f.).
M uham m ad b. M uhanunad b. ^\bd-ar-Rahm an, 808-864/1406-60 {Dan'^, IX , 93-95)-
D. 233/849-50 (cf. G A L Supplement 1, 223 f.). Cf. Fihrist, 203 (Cairo 1348 = 141 F lu - A ccording to the Daw^, he wrote A s'a rite Tabaqdt. The K an iiliyah w as founded in 622/1225,
gel); Y a q u t, Irsdd, V I, 5 7 ! . (Cairo = II, 224 M a r g o l i o u t h ).
cf. al-M aqrizi, H itat, II, 375-78 (B ulaq 1270).
430 A S -S A H A W I S I 'L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 431

(27. The history of) innovators Ad-Darimi,^ Refutation of the Jahmiyah and of the Imitator of
the Theological Opinions of B isr al-Marisi.
Al-Ahdal, al-Lum'-ah al-muqni'^ah f i ma^rifat firaq al-muhtadi'-ah, Someone else wrote a refutation of the Zaydiyah.
in about two quires.
Al-Buhari, Halq af-dl al-Hhdd.
Fahr-ad-din A b u Muhammad U tm an b. 'A bdallah b. al-H usayn W e have referred here to these works at some length, even though
(al-Hasan?) a l-Ira q i/ al-Firaq al-muftariqah bayn ahl az-zayg most of them have no bearing on the subject w ith which we are
wa-z-zandaqah.
deahng.
Professor A b u Mansur Abd-al-Q ahir b. T ah ir at-Tam im i al-
BagdM i,^ al-Farq hayn al-firaq wa-haydn al-firqah an-ndjiyah. (28. The history of) the Si'ah
Monographs on the subject were written, among others, b y
Al-Furani.^ A nd W ith the compilation of Si'ites, there have been concerned,
Ibn A b i d-dam who wrote on Mushm sects.^ among others,
In the context of larger works, the subject is taken up in works Al-H asan b. 'A li b. F udal (b. Amr) b. U nays at-T aym i as a
on rehgious groups and sects [al-milal wa-n-nihal) b y as-ahrastani, client of the T a ym al-Kufi.^
Ibn Hazm, and others. His son 'All.
A l- Y a fii, al-MarJiam. A b u J a 'fa r Muhammad b. al-Hasan b. 'A ll at-Tusi,^ the father
Ibn al-Akfani, Irsdd al-qdsid li-asnd al-maqdsid. Ibn al-Akfani of A b u 'A ll al-Hasan.
was an adherent of Ibn A rabi and his works. Therefore, I inserted 'A ll b. al-Hakam.^
his name in the separate Hst of behevers (in Ibn Arabi) prepared Abia l-'A b b as b. 'Uqdah.^
b y me so th at everything pertaining to (Ibn Arabi) m ight be A bii 1-Hasan b. Babawayh.
conveniently added to it.^ Y a h y a b. A bi T a y y .^
A bu 1-Qasim A bdallah b. A hm ad b. Mahmud a l-K a bi al-Balhi, Y a h y a b. al-H usayn b. al-Bitriq.
the head of a certain M u'tazilah group, Tahaqdt al-MuHazilah.
Al-(jazzM i, al-Qawdsim f i r-radd ^ald subah al-Bdtiniyah.^ 1 A d-D arim i, ^Utman b. S a 4 d, d. 280/894, or 281, or 282 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 342; ad-
D ah ab i, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 9th tab., no. lo i W u s t e n f e l d ; Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I , 69).
His Refutation of the Jahm iyah was edited b y G. V i t e s t a m (Lund-Leiden i960), who also
^ A round 600/1203-4 (not 500/1106-7, as in G A L Supplement I, 757). T h e woi-k has discusses ad-D arim is biography. On the occupation w ith the w ork in as-Sahaw is tim e, cf.
been edited b y Y . K u t l u a y (Ankara 1961). Daw ^,l, 15523.
2 D. 42911037 (cf. G A L , I, 385). For Bisr b. G iy a t al-M arisi (d. 218, or 219/beg. 834), cf. T B , V II , 56 f f .; G A L Supplement,
'A b d -a r-R ah iu an b. M uham m ad, d. 461/1069 (cf. G A L , 1, 387). I, 339 f. A d -D arim is Naqd '^ald Bisr al-M arist, w hich is different from his earlier Refutation
^ T h is w ork (cf. G A L Supplement I, 588) w as exten sively used b y as-Safadi in the Waft. of the Jahm iyah, was published b y M. H a m i d a l - F i q i under the title of Radd al-Imdm ad-
^ M uham m ad b. 'A b d -a l-K arim , d. 548/1153 (cf. G A L , I, 428 f.). Ddrim i 'Utmdn b. SaHd "^ald B isr al-M arisi al-^anid in Cairo 1358-59/1939.
Th e fam ous m ystic, M uham m ad b. 'A li, d. 638/1240 (cf. G A L , I, 441-48; O s m a n Y a h i a , The im itator (mu'^drid) of the title is m entioned throughout the Refutation of the
Histoire et classification de Voeuvre d 'Ibn ^Arabi [Dam ascus 1964]). A s-Sah aw i m entions Jahm iyah, and hi the original te x t m ay b etter be translated opponent (here: opponent
am ong his works the Tajrtd asmd? al-dhidin '^an Ibn 'Arabi, cf. Daw^, V I I I , 17,3 f. b y means of the theological opinions . . .).
Cf. IHdn, 121, below, p. 456. It is well-known th at for Mushm orth od oxy, the Ibn ^ D. 224/838-39 (Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, II, 225). For his son A li who wrote a Fadd^il al-
^Arabt question was the burning hitellcctu al problem of the time. A s-Sahaw i, as m ight be K u fah, cf. at-Tusi, Fihrist, 216 S p r e n g e r (Calcutta 1854).
expected, was a violent opponent of the real or alleged followers of the m ystic. Cf., D. 459/1067, or 460 (cf. G A L , I, 405).
for instance, the excerpt of as-Sahawi, al-Qawl al-munbi f t ahbdr (tarjamat) Ibn '^Arabi, * Cf. at-Tusi, op. cit., 220 f.
which follows his Umdat al-qdri^ lea-s-sdmi'^ in the Ms. Cairo H ad it 329, fols. i3 a -i4 a , ^ Alnnad b. M uham m ad, d. 332/944 (TB , V, 14-23; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, I, 263-66). Ibn
(Arabic text, below, p. 584-86), and Daw^,l, 114, III, 32 f., 222, 244, IX , 95, 194, 294, 296, 'U q d a h s Great History and Mu'^jam are quoted T B , III, 308. Cf. also N. A b b o t t , Studies
X , 84, 199, 201, 256. Cf. also Ibn Tulun, al-Mu'^izzah ft-m d qtla f t l-M izzah, 4 (Dam ascus in Arabic Literary P a p y ri I , 100 ff. (Chicago 1957).
1348, Rasd^il ta^rthiyah, 3). Cf. also the biograph y from the Sadardt ad-dahab (R. A. * Possibly, 'A li b. 'U b a yd a lla h , d. 580/1184-85 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 710). He certainly
N i c h o l s o n , in J K A S , 1906, 806-24). is identical w ith the author of the History o f ar-Rayy who had personal con tact w ith as-
D. 319/931 (cf. G A L Supplement 1,343, 619; F ihrist, ci. Z D M G , X C , 304-6 [1936]; Ibn S am 'an i (Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V , 83).
H ajar, Lisdn, III, 255 f.). No such title is found am ong his works in the bibliograpliers, nor Y a h y a b. A b i T a y y H um ayd, d. 630/1232-33 (ci. G A L Supplement I, 549; Ibn H ajar,
is his description as the head of a Mu'-tazilah group quite exact, b u t his T abaqdt al-MuHazilah Lisdn, V I, 2 6 3 1.; C. C a h e n , in Comptes rendus de I'Acad. des Inscriptions, 1935, 258-69;
are quoted b y Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, \T, 335. Cf. also II. R i t t e r , in Oriens, III, 328 (1950). M. H . A h m a d , in B. L e w i s and P. M. H o l t , Historians of the M iddle East, 90 f . ; M. J a w a d ,
Th e well-known w ork p u b l i s h e d b y I. G o l d z i h e r , cf. G A L Supplement I, 747, no. 23a. in his edition of Ibn al-F u w ati, Talhis M ajm a- al-dddb, IV , i , 543, n. i [Dam ascus 1962]).
432 A S -S A H A W l S I LA N T R A N S L A T IO N 433

The sarif A b u 1-Qasim A li b. al-H usayn b. Musa a l-A law i (34. The history of) lovers
al-Murtada al-M utakallim ar-Rafidi al-M utazili.i
J a far as-Sarraj, Masdri'- al-Hissdq. Someone wrote an abridgment
A r-R asid S a d b. Abdallah al-Qummi.^
Ibn an-Najasi.^ A nd of the Masdri'-.
Ibn A b i d-dunya wrote on the passionate inam orati {al-mutay-
A bu 'A m r al-Kassi.^
yamun'^), and so did Muhammad b. H alaf b. al-Marzuban.
I t should be checked whether some of (the afore-mentioned
persons and works) might not belong here (?).
(B. H i s t o r i c a l w o r k s a c c o r d i n g t o a s - S a h a w l s o w n
(29. The history of) misers (and spongers) c l a s s i f i c a t i o n i n t e n d e d m a i n l y to s u p p l e m e n t t h a t of
ad-Dahabi)
The hadit expert A bu B akr al-H atib, al-BuhaW , and also, Ahbdr
at-tufayliyin, two nice books (108). (i. M uhammad and the prophets)
A bu 1-Faraj al-Isbahani, Ahbdr at-tufayliyin. In sum, some historians took pride in restricting themselves to
the prophets, in particular, Muhammad. Occasionally, th ey com
(30. The history of) courageous men
bined with (the history of the prophets the history of) the beginning
A b u 1-Hasan A li b. A bi 1-Mansur al-Azdi al-MMiki, Ahbdr of creation, or th ey restricted themselves to one of these two subjects.
as-suj'-dn.
A l-H alil b. al-Haytam, al-Hiyal wa-l-makdyid f t l-hurub (on (2. The men around Muhammad)
w ar ruses).
Or they took pride in restricting them selves to the men around
(31. The histor}^ of the) one-eyed, w'eak-sighted, Muhammad, as indicated above.
blind, and hunchbacked
Salah-ad-din as-Safadi,^ several works. (3. The asrdf, descendants of A bu Talib, and
descendants of Ali)
(32. The history of) monks
Or to people of a not (narrowly) specified descent, such as the
A bu 1-Qasim Tam m am b. M uhammad ar-Razi.
a irdj (descendants of 'A bd-al-M uttalib).
(33. The history of) those killed Al-H asan b. 'A tiq b. al-Hasan al-Qastallani, al-Isrdf '-aid mandqib
by the Q uran al-asfdf, does not (deal with) any particular group among them.
A b d -al-A ziz b. al-Ahdar,^ Ma'-dlim al-Htrah an-nabawiyah wa-
A t-T a labi, the Q uran interpreter.^
ma'-drif ahl al-bayt al-Fdtimiyah al-'Alawiyah.
^ D. 436/1044 (cf. G A L , I, 404 f.). Or th ey restricted themselves to people of some specific descent,
^ I). 299/911-12, or 300, or 311 (cf. G A L S u p p lem en t 1, 319).
* A h m ad b. ^\li, d. 450/1058-39, or 455 (cf. G A L Su p p lem en t 1, 556; W . I v a n o w , T h e such as the descendants of A bu Talib.
A lleged F ou n d er o f Ism a ilis m , 19 f., J^ombay 1946).
A l-J iabi.^
^ M uham m ad b. 'U m ar, fourth/tenth century, cf. B . L e w i s , T h e O rigin s o f Ism d H lism ,
13 (Cambridge 1940).
^ O r: . . . be id entical w ith each other? 1 Ibn A b i d-dunya was v ery popular in the fourteenth and fifteen th centuries. A w ork
W rote for al-Ma^miin (F ih rist, 437, Cairo 1348 = 314 F l l g e l ) . Th e inform ation here b y him with the above-m entioned title is n ot known to me from other sources. Could it be a
i s derived from al-M as'udi, M u r u j, cf. I^ldn, 154, below , p . 503. Cf. the edition, b y ' A b d -
m isreading and m isunderstanding of K i t d h a l - M u t a m a n n l n l
a r - R a i'jf ' A w n and ^ L M. Z i y a d a h , of the M uh ta sa r f i siy d sa t al-hurub li-l-H a rt am i A K i t a b a l - M u t a y y a m l n b y Ibn .Masruq at-Tusi, the author of the above-m entioned
(Cairo, n. y. [1965]).
(p. 429, n. 4) ' U q a W a l - m a j d n i n , is quoted T B , V , 313.
H alil b. A y b a k , d. 764/1363 (cf. G A L , II, 31-33). ^ 'A b d -a l-A ziz b. M ahm ud, d. 611/1214-15 (Ibn K w r , B i d d y a h , X I I I , 68; H a jji H alifah,
D. 414/1023 (cf. G A L , 1, 166). h'or a w ork on m onks b y Ibn A bi d-dunya, cf. T B , I, K a s f a z - z u n u n , V , 612, no. 12317 I L t x . E i , ) . His work is quoted b y Ibn as-Sabbag, a l - F u s i d
288, and S. a l- M u n a jjid , in Revue de I ln s titu t D o m in ica in d 'L t. Or. du C aire, II, 349-58 a l - m u h i n i m a h f i m a ' ^ r i f a t a l - a ^ i m m a h , Paris ms. ar. 2022, fols. 67a, 73b (the edition, Teheran
(1956). 1303, cf. G.4 L S u p p l e m e n t II, 224, was not a\-ailable).
* For his Qatld al-Qur^dn, cf. as-Sahm i, Ta^rih J u r jd n , 515 (H yderabad 1369/1950). ^ M uham niad b. HJmar, d. 355/966 [ T B , III , 26 ff.).

R o sen th al, H istory of M uslim H istoriography 28


434 AS-SAHAW IS I l A n TRANSLATION 435

M uhammad b. A s ad al-Jaw w ani.i (5. Clients)


Sihab-ad-din A hm ad b. A ll b. al-H usayn b. A ll al-Hasani,
known as Ibn U tbah (Inabah), ^ 'JJmdat at-tdlib f i nasab dl Abi Or (historians restricted themselves to people whose origin was)
Tdlib, and the authors own abridgm ent of the work. connected w ith the status of client, such as A b u Um ar al-Kindi,
A b u 1-Faraj, the author of the Agdni, Maqdtil at-Tdlihiym, and al-MawdliA
also Nasab Bant Saybdn and Nasab al-Mahdlibah^ because he (6. Reliable and w eak transmitters)
was attached to the wazir al-Muhallabi.
Or (they restricted themselves to) a special aspect, such as w eak
sightedness, one-eyedness, and blindness, quick-wittedness and
(4. The Qurasites and other special families)
dullness, intelligence, wealth,^ the love of passionate inam orati,
On the Qurasites, lovers, and those killed through the Q uran, nobility (generosity),
A z-Z u b ayr b. B ak kar b. A bdallah b. M us'ab az-Zubayri, in miserliness, spongerdom ^ reliability and weakness.
two volumes.^ It has been said with regard to this w ork; This (As to reliable transm itters [at-tiqdt], there are the works by)
is a book of conceit, and not of genealogy, because it reports A bu H atim b. Hibban. This is the most substantial work on the
so m any good actions and qualities. subject. It is arranged according to tabaqdt. A l-H aytam i ^ made
(There are, further, the works of) it into an alphabetical work.
Afif-ad-din Utm an b. Um ar an-Nasiri, on the Nasiris. A l-Ijli .5
Our colleague Najm -ad-din b. Fahd, on the Tabaris, Zuhayris, Ibn Sahin.
Nuwayris, Qastallanis, and Fahds, five (separate) works. A bu l-A rab at-Tam im i. A nd
Um m-al-huda A isah, a daughter of the preacher Taqi-ad-din Sams-ad-din M uhammad b. A y b a k as-Sariiji, a modern author.
A bdallah, son of (109) the hadlt expert Muhibb-ad-din A bu J a far However, he did not finish his work. Complete, it would have been
A hm ad b. A bdallah at-Tabari, History of the Banu at-Taban. a w ork of more than tw en ty volumes, in (the authors) accurate,
The w ork contains instructive notes. exquisite handwriting. The Ahm ads alone fill one volume.
Sihab-ad-din b. Fadlallah a l-Umari,^ Fawddil as-samar {sum- Ibn H ajar wrote a m onograph on the reliable transm itters who
mar}) f i faddHl dl Umar, in four volumes. are not in the Tahdib. He, too, did not finish his work.
Sihab-ad-din A hm ad b. (A li b.) A bdallah b. A hm ad b. A b d
allah b. Sulaym an al-Qalqasandi as-Safii, Nihdyat al-arab f i 1 A l-K in d is MawdU is quoted b y as-Sulam i, Tabaqdt as-Suftyah, 15 f. S u r a y b a h (Cairo
1953); ly a d , M addrik, Ms. Cairo T a rih 2293, fols. 88b, 115 b ; Ibn H ajar, Raf^ al-isr, 1 15 ;
ma'-rifat qabdHl al-'-Arab, in one volume. He composed the w ork furth er, al-M aqrizi and Ibn D uqm aq, c f . R h . G u e s t s in troduction to his edition of al-
for Jam al-ad-din al-UstMar. K in d is Governors and Judges of Egypt, 10 (London 1912, E . J . W. Gibb Mem. Series, 19);
G A L , I, 5 17 T h e anonym ous MawdU ahl M isr (Y aq u t, Mu^jam, I, 734 W u s t e n f e l d ) m ay
also be al-K in d is work.
^ D. 588/1192 (cf. G AL; I, 366; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V , 74-76). A list of his works from, al- As-Safadi, W dfi, B odleian ms. or. Seld. Arch A. 29, fols. 2b-3a and 7b, quotes al-J i'ab i
M aqrizis Muqaffd, apud C. H. B e c k e r , Beitrdge zur Geschichte Agyptens unter dem Islam , from, the chapter on hawdrij of the Kitdb al-Mawdlt. Cf. also T B , III , 362.
I, 27 f. (Strassburg 1902). For his m anuscript (K opriihi of az-Z u b ayr b. B a k k a rs F or the Kitdb A'^ydn al-mawdlt b y Ahm ad b. M uham m ad ar-R azi, cf. G A L Supplement
Jamharat nasab Qurays, cf. M. M. S a k i r s intro, to the edition, 32 ff. (Cairo 1381/1962). I, 231. For a w ork on Medinese mawdlt, cf. Y . al-'Iss, al-Hatlb al-Bagdddi, i n . The Kitdb
Cf. also S. a l - M u n a ] j i d s edition of his Muhtasar m in al-kaldm f t l-farq bayn man ism abthi al-M awdll of al-Jahiz is quoted in the m argin of a rnanuscript in F ez, Q araw iyin 369/80^,
Salldm wa-Saldm (Dam ascus 1382/1962). pp. 28, 73, 99, 120, 124 (cf. Liste de manuscrits arabes precieux, exposes a la Bibliotheque de
^ D. 828/1424, or 836/1432-33 (cf. G A L , I I, ig g ). V Universite Quaraouyine d Fes, 52 [R ab at i960]).
Cf. TB , X I , 398. A n edition of tlie ai-Tct/tftfyw b y A . S a q r appeared in Cairo Or song ?; gabd^ stu p id ity ?
1368/1949.
^ Since all the preceding subjects were dealt with above, th ey are passed over here, and
^ Cf. also the list of genealogical works in Ibn 'A b d -al-B arr, Inbdh, 45 f. (Cairo 1350). as-Sahaw i is b ack at his favorite subject, the science of traditions.
^ 804-848/1401-45 V, 134 f.). The title of his w ork was al-Bustdn az-zdhir f i Cf. above, p. 370, n. i.
tabaqdt ^ulanid^ B am Ndsir. The correct form of his name is in Ms. Leiden. Ahm ad b. Abdallah, d. 261/874-75 {TB, IV , 214 f . ; ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 9th
D. after the 760S/1358-67 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 236).
tab., no. 21).
Ahm,ad b. Y a h y a , d. 749/1349 (e.f. G A L , II, 141). 7I4-744/i3I4(i3I5)-43, cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 58 f. T he inform ation of the I'^ldn is
His brother, .Sams-ad-din, becam e head of the S a 'id as-su'-ada'^ in 820/1417-18 (as- derived either from the Durar, or from, as-Safadi directly.
S u yu ti, H usn al-muhddarah, II, 188, Cairo 1299).
Leg.-, as-sari'^ fa st [Durar).
436 A S -S A H A W l S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 437

Some of our distinguished colleagues worked on the subject. H ajar, in the Lisdn al-Mizdn, picked out (of the Mizdn) the (per
I m yself wrote (copied) several volumes of it. sons) who were not in the Tahdib al-Kamdl, adding the (information
(As to the w eak transm itters [ad-du^afd^], there are works by) on) transm itters ^ that had escaped (ad-Dahabi) and some new
Y a h y a b. M a'in. biographies together w ith his criticisms and rectifications. I revised
A b u Zu r'ah ar-Razi. (the Lisdn) under (Ib n H a jars) direction, and I have some additions
A l-Buhari, who wrote a large and a small work. to it. Ibn H ajar wrote two more books on the subject, the Taqwim
A n-N asai. al-Lisdn and the Tahrir al-Mizdn. Ad-D ahabi, too, w rote (two
A b u Hafs al-Fallas. And more works on the subject), a brief w ork on w eak transm itters
A b u A hm ad b. Adi, al-Kdmil. The Kdm il exceeds its predeces entitled al-Miigni, and another w ork entitled ad-Du'-afd^ wa-l-
sors in completeness and importance. However, (the scope of the matrukin. He (himself) wrote a supplement to it. Someone picked
work) was extended to include all disputed hadit scholars, even out of (ad-D ahabis) Du'-afd'' the inventors of supposititious
if th ey were reliable. He called his w ork al-Kdmil, although it is traditions, another the m anipulators [mitdallisun), and a third the
not proper to give the name of al-Kdm il "th e perfect one to confused {hadit scholars). A d-D ahabi also wrote MaWifat ar-
defective persons. A supplement to the K dm il is A bu 1-Fadl b. ruwdh al-mntakallam fih im bi-md Id yujib ar-radd.
Tahir,^ Takmilat al-Kdmil. There are other works which are concerned w ith both reliable
A bii J a 'fa r al-'Uqayli.^ His w ork is found as waqf property in and w eak transm itters, such as the w ork of
the S a id as-su'ada".^ A n accurate copy was in the possession of Ibn A b i H aytam ah. His w ork contains much instructive material.
M uhibb-ad-din b, as-ihnah.^ Ibn S a d, at-Tabaqdt. A nd
A bu H atim b. Hibban. A l-Buhari, in his three Histories, the great one which is alphabeti
Ad-D araqutni. cally arranged and begins w ith the M uham m ads; the medium one
A bu Z a k a riya as-Saji.^ which is arranged according to y e a rs ; and the small one. Maslamah
Al-H akim . b. Qasim ^ wrote a one-volume supplement to (al-Buharis) Great
A bu 1-F ath al-Azdi. [History), entitled as-Silah. I have found it thus stated b y Ibn
A bu A ll b. as-Sakan. And Hajar. (However,) I possess the Kitdb as-Silah, and, according to its
Ibn al-Jawzi. A d-D ahabi abridged (Ibn al-Jaw zis work) and preface, it is a supplem ent to a w ork b y its author, entitled az-
also wrote a supplem ent to it. Most of the m aterial was taken Zdhir. A d-D araqutni wrote a special supplem ent just to the Mu
over into the M izdn which became the standard reference w ork hammads (of al-B uharis History). Ibn M uhibb-ad-din then w rote
for all later (scholars). He followed, however, Ibn A di in that he another supplement. A l-H atib censured ^ (al-Buhari) in the one-
mentioned every disputed hadit scholars, even if he was reliable. volum e M udih li-awhdm al-jam^ wa-t-tafriq. Before (al-Hatib), Ibn
B u t he undertook to omit any m ention of the men around Muham A b i HMim had w ritten a good-sized fascicle, which I possess, in
m ad or of the authoritative religious leaders, (n o ) Zayn-ad-din which he criticized al-Buhari. (Ibn A b i Hatim ), however, (also)
al-Iraqi w rote a one-volume supplement to (the M izdn). Ibn w rote a several-volum e Jarh wa-t-ta'^dil,^ in which he followed
in the steps of al-Buhari. Some (scholar) picked out from (al-
^ M uham m ad b. Tah ir, d. 507/1113 (cf. G A L , I, 355 f.). Buhari) the persons who are not in the Tahdib al-Kamdl, but did
2 M uham m ad b. -Amr, d. 322/934 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 278). His great h isto ry is not finish (his work). A l-H usayn b. Idris al-Ansari al-Harawi,
quoted b y Ibn A b d -a l-B arr, Jdmi^ baydn II, 147 (Cairo, n.y.).
A Siifi house in Cairo estabhshed in 569/1173-74, cf. as-Suyuti, Husn al-muhddarah, II,
187 f. (Cairo 1299). 1 T e x t and translation are not quite certain (leg. min ar-ruwdh), especially since the
^ ^luham m ad b. Muhamn^ad b. M uham m ad b. M uham m ad b. M ahmud, 804-890/1402-85 introd u ction to the Lisdn itself has no reference to this one item .
(Daii'^, I X , 295-305 ; G A L , II, 42 f.), rather than his father, who died in 815/1412 (cf. G A L , 2 D. 353/964 (Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V I, 35 f.). Ibn H ajar quotes the Silah in his Raf^ al-isr,
II, 141 f.). P aris ms. ar. 2149, fol. 107a.
^ T his m ay be A b u Y a h y a Zakariya^ b. Y a h y a as-Saji, d. 307/919-20 (Fihrist, 300, Th is, rather than follow ed, is the m eaning of ta^aqqaba here, cf. IHdn, 50^7.
Cairo 1348 = 213 I-' l C' g e l ; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, II, 488 f.). Cf. above, p. 152, n. 3. * Published in H yd erab ad 1360-73/1941-53.
438 A S -S A H A W l S I 'L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 439

known as Ibn H urram / wrote a history of the typ e of the Great I have also com pleted (the sifting of) the Tiqdt of a l-Ijli, regarding
History of al-Buhari. which I have kept to the arrangement of as-Subki and al-H aytam i,
A ll b. al-Madini wrote a History in ten small hadit-size fascicles. and the Tiqdt of Ibn H ibban in the arrangement of al-H aytam i,
Ibn Hibban, Awhdm ashdb at-tawdrih, likewise in ten fascicles. although it is full of m istakes. B u t I have a m anuscript of the
A b u Muhammad A bdallah b. 'A li b. al-Jarud, al-Jarh wa-t-ta^dil. Tiqdt which was w ritten b y the hadit expert A bii A li al-Bakri.
Muslim, Ruwdt al-iHihdr. The Du^afd" of A bii J a 'fa r a l-U qayli, from the beginning of the
An-Nasa^i, at-Tamyiz. letter hd^ to the beginning of the Muhammads, (I have) from the
A bu Y a la al-Halili,^ al-Irsdd. m anuscript of the S a id as-suad a . It remains necessary to consult
Im M -ad-din b. K atir, at-Takmil f i ma^rifat at-tiqdt wa-d-du^afd^ the m anuscript of Ibn as-Sihnah, with regard to the biographies of
wa-l-majdhil. (Ibn Katir) combined the Tahdib of al-Mizzi and the Sarik b. A bdallah an-N ahai,i Safwan al-Asamm, ^ (a transmitter)
M izdn of ad-D ahabi, together w ith additions of his own and cor on the authority of some of the men around Muhammad, and
rections ( i l l ) concerning personality criticism. He said th at per A bdallah b. Z iyad b. S am an,^ and to insert the correct data in
sonality criticism is most useful for outstanding jurists and also m y work.
for hadit scholars. (I have also com pleted the sifting of) the Du^afd^ of Ibn H ibban
Salah-ad-din as-Safadi, al-Wdfi hi-l-wafaydt, alphabetically ar and of a small part of the Jarh wa-t-ta^dil of Ibn A b i H atim and of
ranged, in about th irty volumes. A t the beginning of his career, the Great History of a l-B u h M as well as the whole of ad-D araqutnis
Ibn H ajar made an abstract (of the Wdfi), and at the tim e of his Corrections {and Additions) to {the Great History) for the Muham
death, he was occupied with m aking another. mads, in particular, from a m anuscript consisting of one quire,
In the biography of Nasir b. A hm ad b. Y usu f al-Biskri,^ one of of which part of the beginning and part of the end are lost and
the men whom he had met and from whom he had acquired in the Corrections {and Additions) of Ibn M uhibb-ad-din to ad-Dara-
formation, Ibn H ajar mentioned th at he had compiled a History qutni which concern a few biographies.
of Transmitters in one hundred volumes, but the w ork was dispersed (I have also com pleted the sifting of) a small part of the History of
(and it was) as if it had never been. He also did not finish it. Bagddd of al-H atib and of the second and third volumes of Ibn an-
I have compiled a substantial, alphabetically arranged w ork for N a jja rs Supplement to it, from M uhammad b. H am zah b. A li
which I used ad-D ahabis History of Islam as a basis, w ith m y b. Talhah b. A li to the end of the Muhammads. (A copy of) the
own addition of a number of (persons) whom ad-D ahabi had neg whole work, in fifteen volumes, was the property of the Mosque
lected or who had come up after his time. Up to now, I have not of al-Hakim . E x ta n t are the first four volumes which end w ith
yet com pleted the w ork in the w ay I w ant to do it.^ Ahm ad b. A li b. Miisa; (112) part of the sixth volum e which
I have completed (sifting) for th at w ork (al-Mizzis) Tahdib, (Ibn begins w ith . . . and from which the part containing the biographies
H ajars) Tahdib at-Tahdib, (ad-D ahabis) M izdn, and (Ibn H ajars) of J a far b. Y a h y a b. Ibrahim b. Y a h y a to al-H usayn b. A hm ad b.
Lisdn al-Mizdn, Isdbah, and Durar. Much of the additional m a M aym un is m issing; the seventh and eighth volum es which end w ith
terial to the original (of the Durar) I have noted briefly and skilfully Abdallah b. M uhammad b. A li b. A hm ad; the ninth volum e which
in its proper place. contains (the biography of) Sayh Abd-al-Q adir ^ I believe that
this is the volum e which was in the possession of Taqi-ad-din al-
^ 1^- 351/962-63 (Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, II, 272 f., which is the sourcc of the IHdn).
2 A l-H alil b. 'A b d allah , d. 446/1054-55 (cf. G A L , I, 362).
^ 781-823/1379-1420 {Daw^, X , 195 f.). A ccordin g to the Dmv^, the nisbah should have an ' D. 177/793-94, or 178 [T B , I X , 279 ff.).
a vow el in the first syllable. W hen Nasir came to Cairo as a political refugee, he w as a protege ^ T he name of his father is uncertain, cf. al-Buhari, Ta^rih, II, 2, 307; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn,
of Ibn H aldun. T h e above paragraph, according to the Daw^, is deri\'ed froin, Ibn H a ja rs III , 191 f.
M u'-jam . L ived in the time of al-M ahdi {TB, I X , 455 ff.)-
* A s-S ah aw is report on the progress he had m ade w ith his w ork at the time of w riting * A p p aren tly, the fam ous ^Abd-al-Qadir b. 'A b d allah al-Jilani, d. 561/1166 (cf. G A L ,
is continued down to IHdn, 115, below, p. 446. I, 435 f.; Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, X , 219).
440 A S -S A H A W I S I 'L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 441

Q alqasandi/ b u t his nephew^ denied it ; part of the eleventh A small part of A bu N u 'aym , History o f Ishahdn.
volum e from, which a few quires ^ containing the beginning up to Ibn A sakir, History of Damascus.
(the letter hd"") ^ are missing. . . and which ends ; and the four Ibn Yunus, on the E gyptians.
last volumes which begin with . . . . Altogether, the fifth, part of The biographical dictionary of al-Fasi.
the sixth, the whole tenth, and part of the eleventh volum e are The beginning of the Ihdtah (of Lisan-ad-din b. al-Hatib).
missing. I had (once) noticed some parts of the w ork among the The first five of nine (books) of the Takmilah b y Ibn (113) Abd-
property of the Jam aliyah but later on did not see them any al-M ahk,i and down to the passage in the sixth (book) where he
more. speaks of Muhammad b. A hm ad b. U tm an al-Qaysi.
I have also com pleted for (my book) the study of the one-volume Al-U dfuw i, at-Tdli^ as-saHd.
autograph draft of the supplement to Ibn an-N ajjar b y Taqi-ad-din As-Silafi, Mu'"jam as-safar, a very instructive volume, in the
b. Rafis but m any of the biographies and some of the things stated handwriting of M uhammad b. al-Mundiri.^ (Ibn al-Mundiri) stated,
in the biographies happen to have been deleted in the draft copy. on the authority of his father Zaki-ad-din, th at the w ork had come to
(Ibn R M i), however, had w ritten the following note on (the draft (Zaki-ad-din) on separate leaves in the handwriting of as-Silafi.
m anuscript): There is much missing in this (volume) as compared E ach piece of paper contained one biography. (Zaki-ad-din) pre
to the clean copy, and (on the other hand), there are a few additions pared a clean copy and arranged (the scraps of paper) as they came,
in it. The clean copy consists of three volum es. In the preface, and not as would have been proper. The arrangement of the work,
(Ibn R M i) said: In this book, I shall mention the (religious) therefore, is not as it should be. Not one Isfahan! is found in it.^
scholars, jurists, hadit scholars, wazirs, and litterateurs who visited The M u'jam of ad-Dimyati,^ in forty-four hadit-slze fascicles.
Bagdad. A ll who were not m entioned b y the tw o or b y one of (For) the second half (of the work, I have used) a m anuscript written
them that is, al-H atib and Ibn an-N ajjar have been men b y Taj-ad-din b. Maktiam, in the Surgatmisiyah,^ and (for) the rest,
tioned b y m e. The draft m anuscript carries the following rem ark another manuscript.
in the handwriting of ad-D ahabi; Kitdb at-Tadyil wa-s-silah ''aid The Mu''jam of Badr-ad-din al-Gariqi, from an autograph m an
Ta^rih Bagdad, composed and digested b y one who is in need uscript. The w ork was edited b y Ibrahim b. Qutb-ad-din al-
of God, the rehgious leader, the hadit expert, teacher of students
and auth ority of transmitters, Taqi-ad-din Muhammad b. R a fi 1 T he reference is to ad-Dayl wa-t-takmilah li-kitdbay al-M awsul wa-s-Silah b y Muharum,ad
b. M uham m ad al-M arrakusi (below, p. 460), as was noted b y A b d - a l -'^A z i z M. a l - A h w a n i ,
as-SM ii. In this work, (Ibn R afi') continued the great History of in Revista del Instituto Egipcio de Estudios Isldinicos, III , 5 (1955). Ibn 'A b d -al-M alik s
the leading hadit expert of the Traq, Muhibb-ad-din b. an-N ajjar, biograp h y (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 414; G A L Supplement I, 580) has now been clarified
b y a l - A h w a n i . He w as born in 634/1237, and he died in 703/1303.
which was w ritten as a supplement, w ith corrections and additions, ^ M uhanim ad b. Abd-al-'^Aztni,. His father, ^Abd-al-'Azim b. Abd-al-Qawi, d. 656/1258
to the History of the hadit expert A bii B ak r al-H atib. Our col (cf. G A L , I, 367). F or 'A b d -a l- A zim s autograph from Ms. K opriilii 114 1, cf. the edition
of az-Zu b ayr b. B a kk ar, Jamharat nasab Qurays, intro. 47, pi. 4 S a k ir (Cairo 1381/1962).
league Najm -ad-din b. Fahd told us th at he had come across the The fragm ent of the Mu'^jam of Ahm,ad b. M uham inad as-Silafi (d. 576/1180, cf. G A L ,
clean copy of the w ork but could not remember where it was. I, 365), Phot. Cairo T a rih 3932, often contains the rem ark: He said on another lea f ,
or the like (pp. 57, 110, 372, etc.). In one place, we find an addition b y 'A b d -a l-'A zim
(I have also com pleted the sifting of) al-M undiri (p. 102). It also seems to be correct th at no reference is m ade to Isfahanis (and
Bagdadis) in the w ork, b u t the places m entioned are A lexan d ria, Siraz, H ainadan, Damascus
etc. It should, how ever, be noted th at as-Sahawi, IHdn, 118 f., below , p. 451, credits as-
' A bu B akr b. Muhatnni,ad, 783-867/1382-1463 [DaiiP, X I, 69-71). Silafi w ith special M u -jams of Isfahan (quoted b y Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V, 83) and Bagdad
^ A pp aren tly, ^Abd-al-Kariiu b. ^Abd-ar-Rahiuaii, 808-855/1405-52 (Jan. ist) {Daw^, (cf. G A L ). The Mti^jam as-safar is also quoted b y Ibn as-Sabuni, Takmilah, 48, 105, 151,
I V , 3 1 7 f-)- 185, 203, 316 f., 338 f., 348 J a w .Xd (B agdad 1377/1957); Ibn al-F u w ati, TalMs Majma'- al-
Ms. Leiden: two quires. dddb, IV , I , 554, 556, IV , III, 33, 60, 73,-94, 194, 450 J a w a d (Dam ascus 1962-65); as-Sahaw i,
* Doubtful. Ibtihdj, 60 (Cairo 1371/1952), etc.
D oubtful, leg. d hiruhu l Cf. G. V a j d a , Le Dictiomiaire des autorites de 'Abd al-Mu^min ad-Dimydti (Paris 1962).
M uhanunad b. Rafi*^ 704-774/1305-72 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, III, 439 f.). Taqi-addin Th e four-volum e Mu'-jam is also nientioned b y Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 417.
al-F asis abridgm ent of the work was published b y A b b as a l-'A z z a w i under the title of ^ T h is college w as constructed in 756-57/1355-56, cf. as-Suyuti, H usn al-muhddarah,
Muntahab al-muhtdr, Ta?rih 'tdamd? Bagdad (Bagdad 1357/1938). Ibn Rafi'^s introduction II, 192 (Cairo 1299).
is not preserved in it. Leg. M uham m ad (b. A b d -al-K arim , Taqi-ad-din), 711-773/1311-71(72), or 772, cf.
442 A S - S A H A W i s I LA N TR AN S LAT IO N 443

H alabi. There are m any biographies in it. Also, a fragm ent of whether or not the Cairo m anuscript (of Ibn H aja rs notes) is his
the Muhammads from the History of Egypt of his father Qutb-ad- autograph (?).^ E veryth in g in it is ascribed (by me) to its author.
din, 1 and the beginning of the History of Egypt b y al-Maqrizi. Burhan-ad-din al-Q ayrati wrote (the following verses) upon the
The Mu'-jam of M ajd-ad-din A bd-ar-Rahm an b. 'U m ar b. A h Tabaqdt:^ (114)
mad b. H ibatallah b. al-'Adim,^ in the edition of the hadit expert
From the Tabaqdt of Taj-ad-din,
Jam al-ad-din A b u 1- Abbas b. az-Zahiri.
One is Hfted to celestial heights.
The Mu'-jam of A bu 1-M aali al-Abarquhi,^ in the edition of
On the seven layers of heaven the charm
S a d-ad-din M asiid al-Hariti,^ from a m anuscript written b y Ibn
Of those Tabaqdt for protection alights.
az-Zahiri.
Ad-D ahabi, al-Mu'-jam al-kabir, in his autograph in the Mah- Ibn R ajab , Tabaqdt al-Handbilah, a supplement to A bii 1-H usayn
m udiyah. b. al-Farra .
The Mu'-jam of Taj-ad-din as-Subki, in the edition of Muhammad M uhyi-ad-din A bd-al-Q M ir al-Qurasi, al-fawdhir al-mudiyah
b. Y a h y a b. M uhammad b. Y a h y a b. S a 'd al-Maqdisi w ritten b y him f i tabaqdt al-Hanafiyah, together w ith the notes to it and (additional)
self, in the M ahm udiyah, in two slender volumes. The w ork deals biographies w ritten b y JamM-ad-din Muhammad b. Ibrahim al-
with 172 men w ith whom as-Subki had studied and from whom Mursidi al-Makki.^
he had received ijdzahs. The first half of the History of the Yemen of Muwaffaq-ad-din
The biographies which A bu 1-H usayn A hm ad b. A y b a k ad- al-H azraji, from an autograph m anuscript. It ends with a l-A la
D im yati ^ selected from the Mu'^jam of Ibn Masdi, about four and consists of two volumes. It begins w ith a biography of Muham
strong quires which contain a lot (of biographies). mad, then deals with the caliphs down to al-M ustasim A bdallah
Taj-ad-din b. as-Subki, at-Tahaqdt as-SdfiHyah al-wustd, and b. al-Mustansir al-A bbasi and his successors down to az-Zahir
notes on it consisting of biographies m entioned b y al-Isnawi. B arquq. H e touches upon events and dates of death. The author
Also (the notes of) 'Afif-ad-din A bdallah b. M uhammad b. A hm ad wrote the following verses upon his work;
al-Madani al-Matari, being his corrections of Im ad-ad-din b. This is a book which treats its subject thoroughly
K atir, and biographies from other authors, all th at w ritten b y A n d which comprises all distinguished Yem enites.
Salah-ad-din al-Aqfahsi. Further, biographies and addenda to the
Im agine it to be a pearl and hyacinth:
Tabaqdt of Ibn as-Subki, written b y Jamal-ad-din b. Musa al-
Y o u ll have a necklace that adorns the neck of time.
Marrakusi.^ T h ey are fewer than those of al-Aqfahsi. Further,
the (notes to the Tabaqdt) written b y Ibn Hajar. I do not know I hope for its collection to receive a p ray r,
In secret or in public, th a ts acceptable.
Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 23, where we find al-F aru qi instead of a l-6 ariq i (a l-F M q i? ).
^ Cf. abo\e, p. 396, n. 2. From one who profits from the book or studies it.
^ A son of the historian of Aleppo, 6i4-677/i2i7(i8)-55(56) (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , L et him whoever he is, for me and for himself
282). 'A b d -al-Q ad ir al-Qurasi, al-Jawdhir al-mudiyah, I, 303 (H yderabad 1332), where the
date of his death appears w ron gly as 699, refers to the ten-volum e edition of his Mu'^jani Thus pray: O Lord, forgive and pardon and be good
b y Ibn az-Zahiri.
A hn iad b. Ishaq, d. 701/1302 (Ibn R a fi', Muntahab al-muhtdr, Ta^rih ^ulamd^ Bagddd,
A nd kind and gracious and benign to me and t o . . .
20-23, B agdad 1357/1938; Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 102 f.).
* Mas'^ud b. A hm ad, d 711/1312 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 347 f ). A number of volum es of the History of Aleppo b y Kam al-ad-din
^ I). 749/1348 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 108; ( lA L Supplement I, 563). A bu H afs U m ar b. A hm ad b. a l-Adim, entitled Biigyat at-talab.
M uham m ad b. Y iisu f, d. 663/1264-65 ( P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 301 f.; ad-D ahabi,
Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 19th tab., no. 3 W 'f'S tkn-feld ). The vocalization Masdi (Musdi?) does
not seem to be certain. H is Mu'-jam is repeatedly quoted b y Ibn Rafi"-; cf. also as-Safadi, * Since Ibn H aja r s scholarly han dw ritin g is unm istakable, the reference m ay be to as-
al-Gayi al-imtsajjam, II, 231 (Cairo 1305). S u b ki ?
H alil b. M uham m ad, d. 820/1417-18 (Daw^, H I, 202-4; cf. also Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, 2 Ibrahim b. M uham m ad, d. 781/1379 (cf. G A L , II, 14). T h e verses are contained in
al-^-lqd at-tamin, in the autobiography of the author). his Diwdn, Ms. Cairo A d ab 103m (no pagination).
* M uham m ad b. Musa, 789-823/1387-1420 {Daw^, X , 56-58), 770-839/1368-1436 {Daw^, V I, 241 f.).
444 A S -S A H A W I S I LA N T R A N S L A T IO N 445

Our colleague Jam al-ad-din b. as-Sabiq al-H am aw i ^ had an auto I h ave also com pleted (sifting) the four-volume supplement to
graph copy copied b y our colleague Ibn Fahd. (The contents of (Ibn a l-Adim) b y A la -ad-din b. H atib-an-Nasiriyah. ^
the volumes are as follows:)^ I have further com pleted (sifting) for (my work) the works of
Vol. I: A hm ad b. J a 'fa r b. M uhammad b. U baydallah b. al- Ibn Fahd on the Zuhayris, Nuwayris, Tabaris, Qastallanis, and
Munadi ^ to Ahm ad b. i\.bd-al-Warit b. Halifah. Fahds,^ and other works which I do not recall now.
Vols. II and III, which do not follow upon each other: A hm ad b. A t the end of the thirtieth tahaqah (of ad-D ahabis History of
M uhammad b. M attaw ayh to the middle of the biog Islam) which comprises the years from 291/903-4 to the end of the
raphy of U m ayyah b. A bdallah b. A m r ^ b. Utm an. century, the end of the tenth volum e (of the work),^ the part
Vol. IV ; A l-H ajjaj b. Hisam to the end of al-Hasan b. A li b. al- after Mahmud b. Ahm ad b. al-Faraj, is missing. Badr-ad-din al-
H asan b. Sawwas. B astaki ^ does not have it in the m anuscript w ritten b y him, in
Vols. V and V I : A l-H usayn b. U baydallah al-H M im to the the B asitiyah. It looks as if this part was missing before he wrote
middle of D i'lij b. Ahm ad b. D i'hj. the m anuscript. Another m anuscript should be consulted for it.
Vols. V II and (115) V I I I : Middle of R ajih b. Ism ail al-Asadi to Some copyist prepared the m anuscript of (the w ork in) the Madrasat
S a id b. Sallam. as-Sultan in Mecca.
Vol. I X : Musarriq b. A bdallah al-H alabi to the middle of al- (Also,) another m anuscript of Ibn A b i H atim s Jarh should be
W alid b. A b d-al-A ziz b. Aban. The volum e does not consulted for the Muhammads having grandfathers with names
contain any person whose name begins w ith the letter beginning w ith the letter sin for checking the biography of Mu
h d \ m accordance w ith the wide-spread custom of placing ham m ad b. Abdallah b. al-H aytam al-Attar. I heard m y father
ha" after wdw. I have come across the autograph draft say that.
of this particular volum e in the possession of Ibn Fahd. From the Tabaqdt al-Hanafiyah, the biographies between al-
There, the author himself calls it the fourteenth (part of M uam m al b. Masrur and M aym iin b. A hm ad b. al-Hasan must
his work). be checked.
Vol. X : Patronym ics and gentilics. ^ A ll b. M uham m ad, d. 843/1440 (of. G A L , I I, 34). Cf. Revue de IAcademie arabe de Damas,
X V I , 184-87 (1941). A com plete four-volum e m anuscript of the w ork w ritten in 876 is
I have seen another volume of the w ork which deals with geo preserved in the L ib ra ry of Merton College in O xford, codd. or. X I - X I V . T h e G oth a m anu
script has a readers note b y as-Sahaw i, cf. M. W e i s w e i l e r , Der islamische Bucheinband,
graphical data. In the possession of Muhibb-ad-din b. as-Sihnah,
128 (W iesbaden 1962).
there were some parts of the w ork in the handwriting of the author ^ IHdn, 108, above, p. 434.
^ T h is m ay refer to the juz^ division of the author which consisted of tw enty-one juz^
which I have not examined.
of the auth ors autograph and a tw enty-second jiiz^ which al-B astak i copied from a m anu
script w ritten b y Sam s-ad-din b. N ubatah, cf. Bodleian ms. or. L au d 305, fol. 124a.
1 M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, 811-877/1409-73 (Daw^, I X , 305 f.). His ow ner s note in ^ Cf. above, p. 425, n. i. Th e Bodleian m anuscripts L au d 286, 244, 304, 305, and 279
the Istan bul m an u script Topkapu saray, A h m et III , 2925, Vol. IV , is d ated Cairo 856/1452. of the H i s t o r y o f I s l a m were copied froni a m anuscript which al-B astak i had copied from
^ The volum e division is alm ost the same as in the cop y in Istanbul (Topkapurasay, the autograph of the author (cf. also the preceding n.).
A h m et III , 2925, eigh t vols.) w hich w as b riefly described b y J. S a u v a g e t in R^.1 , V I I , 395 These m anuscripts also are a fine exam ple of how such works were sifted b y other
(1933)) cf. also M. R a g i b a t - T a b b a h , in Revue de I A ca d em ic arabe de D a m a s, X X I I I , 251-58 authors in their research. A t its end, each volum e contains a note to the effect th at in the
(1948). Vols. I V and I X are missing in the Istan b u l set, and V ol. V II starts w ith R ajih year 859, Y u su f al-'A sqalani, the grandson [siht) of Ibn H ajar, w ent through them in
b. al-H usayn, thus being som ewhat more incom plete at the beginning than as-Sahaw is copy. connection w ith the research for his w ork Rawnaq al-alfdz bi-mu^jam al-hufjdz (cf. G A L
The volum e division has nothing to do with the juz^ division. The m anuscript of the Supplement II, 76).
geographical section contains the third juz^, e tc .; according to the Paris ms. ar. 2138, F or another M'ork copied b y a l-B astak i and read b y Ibn H ajar, cf. F. B e n A c h o u r , in
fol. 74a, the eigh ty-th ird juz^ of the w o rk started w ith Isma'-il b. ^Abd^al-Majid. P r o c e e d i n g s o f t h e T w e n t y - S e c o n d I n t e r n . C o n g r e s s o f O r i e n t a l i s t s , II, 187 f. (Leiden 1957).
^ T h e correct form, of the nam e i s in dicated b y S a u v a g e t . ^ T he alphabetical arrangem ent w as extended b y Ibn A b i H atim to encompass the names
* S a u v a g e t ; l^mar. Am ong 'U tm a n s sons, there w as an A m r and an 'Umar, cf. of grandfathers. H ow ever, it is difficult to see how this could apply to the names of the m en
Ibn K atir, B id d y a h , V II , 218.
tioned al- A ttar.
S a u v a g e t : 'A b d allah . A l-H um raki, d. 516/1122-23 (as-Sam'^ani, A n s d b , fol. 207a; 'A bd -al-Q ad ir al-Qurasi,
S ic Ms. Leiden.
a l-J a -u 'd h ir a l - m u d i y a h , II, 188 f. [H yderabad 1332]). In the J a u ' d h i r , the biography of
T h is p rob a b ly is the most \ aluable part of the w ork (A ya S o fya 3036, Ph ot. Cairo Maym,un (4 4 2-5 i3/io5 of5i]-iii9 [2 ol) follows im m ediately upon th at of al-Mu^ammal.
T a rih 1566).
A s-Sahaw i apparently assumes th at some biographies are missing.
446 A S-SA H A W lS I LAN TRANSLATION 447

The (preceding) remarks (about the status of m y revision of Ibn al-H adda ,^ Rijdl al-Muwatta^.
ad-D ahabis History o f Islam) are an aide-memoire for me and for H ibatallah b. A hm ad al-Akfani, R ijdl al-Muwatta\ and Tasmiyat
those who m ay come across m y work. man rawd al-Muwatta'' '-an M alik.
A bu Nasr al-Kalabadi,^ al-lrsdd, on the men of al-Buhari.
(7. Men connected w ith the science of hadit) A bu B a k r b. Manjawayh,^ on the men of Mushm.
H ibatallah b. al-Hasan a l-L alakai,^ on the men of both al-
B asic (books) on men (connected w ith the science of traditions)
B uhari and Muslim.
are a w ork on Names and Patronymics b y the Im am
A bu 1-Fadl b. Tahir, id.
A hm ad (b. Hanbal) which was transm itted on A h m ads auth ority A l-H akim , id., according to Ibn Nuqtah,^ at-Taqyid.
b y his son S ah h / and a history concerned w ith persons b y Y a h y a A b u A ll al-Jabayini, on the men of A b u Dawud.
b. M ain which was transm itted on Ibn M a'ins auth ority b y A number of Magribites wrote on the men of at-Tirm idi and
'A bbas ad-Diiri.^ There are, further, Questions from Ibrahim b.
an-N asai.
al-Junayd ^ on his authority; from U tm an b. S a 'id ad-D arim i; Abd-al-Gani al-Maqdisi, al-Kamdl, on the men of the six (author
from A b u J a 'fa r Muhammad b. Utm an b. A b i Saybah ^ to A ll b. ita tiv e hadit collections). Al-M izzi, Tahdib al-Kamdl, is a correction
al-Madini; from A bii U bayd al-Ajurri to A bu D aw ud; from the of the Kamdl. A number of scholars wrote abridgm ents (of the
B ag d M is; from Mas'rid (116) as-Sijazi to al-H akim ; from A bu Kamdl), among them ad-Dahabi, at-Tadhih and al-Kdsif, and Ibn
1-Qasim H am zah b. Y usu f as-Sahmi ^ to ad-D araq u tn i; and from H ajar, at-Tahdib and at~Taqrib. A supplement to al-Mizzi was
al-Barqani to ad-Daraqutni, on persons, (transmitted) b y hadit ex written b y M ugultay. Taqi-ad-din b. Fahd combined the text of
perts on the auth ority of a number of individuals. These (questions al-Mizzi and Ibn H ajar, w ith additions (of his own), in a work
of al-Barqani?) are different from those which h ave been studied entitled Nihdyat at-Taqrib wa-takmil at-Tahdib bi-t-Tadhib. Ibn
w ith us.
K a tir combined the Tahdib and the M izdn, as has been mentioned
Or (historians) restricted themselves to specialists in certain
above.
fields, such as Q uran interpreters; Q u ran readers; hadit experts Ibn Asakir, as-Suyuh an-nubul,^ on the teachers of the six
and others concerned with the science of traditions; jurists of the religious leaders (the authors of the six authoritative hadit col
common (four) schools, and others; Sufi servants (of God), devout
lections) .
persons, and ascetics; lexicographers; gram m arians; ancient and Ad-D ahabi, on the names of the authorities of the authors of the
modern poets; physicians; and calligraphers. six books in their other publications, whom he had not mentioned
Or (they restricted themselves to holders of) a particular office, in the Kdsif.
such as caliphs, Abbasids and others; judges; (law?) officials; Zayn-ad-din al-T raq i wrote monographs on the men of Ibn
amirs; and wazirs.
Hibban and ad-Daraqutni.
Or (the}^ restricted themselves) to the transm itters of particular
books such as
^ M u h a m m a d b . Y a h y a , d. 416/10 25 (cf. P ons B oigues , E n sa y o , 1 0 9 f.). H e m a y be
1 D . 266/880, o r 265 [T B , I X , 317 ff-)-
id e n tica l w ith th e a u th o r w h o se w o r k is sa id to h a v e b ee n c o m p le te d in 674 /1275-76 (cf.
2 (A l-)^ A .b b a s b. M u h a m m a d , d. 271/884 [T B , X I I , 144 ff.).
G A L S u p p lem en t I, 298).
^ Ib r a h im b. 'A b d a lla h , cf. T B , V I, 120. H e c o u ld c o n c e iv a b ly b e id e n tica l w ith th e tra n s
^ A h m a d b . M u h a n u n a d , d. 398/1007-8 (cf. G A L , I, 167).
m itte r m e n tio n e d in th e A g d n t, cf. F. R o sen th al , H u m o r in E a r ly Is la m , 54, n. i (L e id e n
1956). ^ A h m a d b. ^ A l i , d. 428/10 36-37 (cf. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 280, III, 1199).

^ D . 4 1 8 / 1 0 2 7 (cf. I, 18 1).
* D . 297/909 [T B , III, 42 ff.; Ib n H a ja r, L isd n , V , 2 8 0 f,). C f, Y . a l-'I s s , a l-H a tib a l-
M u h a im n a d b. ^ A b d - a l - G a n i , d. 629/1231 (cf. G A L , I, 355, 358, S u p p lem en t III, 12 19 ,
B a g dddt, 109 (D a m a scu s 1364/1945).
a n d th e e d itio n of Ib n a s - S a b u n i s T a k m ila h , see b elo w , p. 525, n. 3).
^ M u h a m m a d b. A lt b. ^ U t m a n . F o r q u estio n s d ire cted b y h im to A b ii D a w iid , cf.
G A L , I, 16 1. IH d n , i i o f . , a b o v e , p. 438.
Y a q u t, Irsdd, X I I I , 79 (C a iro = V , 142 M ar g o lio u th ) : M u ^ ja m a s-S iiy u h a n -n u b a ld ^ ;
M a s '^ u d b . 'A l i, d . 4 3 8 / 1 0 4 6 -4 7 , cf. Y a q u t , M u ^ ja m , II, 891 W usten feld .
a l - \ I i z z i , T a h d ib a l-K a m d l, in tro d u c tio n (M s. C a iro M u st, al-h ad it 2 5): A l-M a s d y ih an-
D . 427/1036 (cf. G A L , I, 334), the h isto rian of Ju rja n .

A h m a d b. M u h a m m a d , d. 425/1034 (cf. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 259). n u b u l.


448 A S-SA H A W !S I LAN TRANSLATION 449

A bd-al-Q M ir al-Hanafi, al-Ilmdm, on the men of the '-JJmdah the Muwatta' (in the recension) of Muhammad b. al-Hasan (as-
(of Abd-al-Gani al-Jam m aili). Saybani), ^ of the last mentioned scholars Atdr, of the Musnad
Someone w rote on the names of the persons who are mentioned of A bu H anifah (in the recension) of Ibn al-Muqri\^ and of
or from whom a tradition is reported in the M iskdh (Asmd^ man the men whom the M im atta\ the Musnad of as-SMi'^i, and the
lahu dikf aw riwdyah f i l-M iskdh ^). Sunan of ad-D araqutni have in addition to the six (authoritative
An-N aw awi, Tahdib al-asmd^ wa-l-lugdt (correction of names hadit collections).
and idioms) which occur in certain (Safi'ite) books. (117) H e said A b u Ishaq as-Sarifini,^ on the men of the ten books.
th at he used "th e works of the outstanding rehgious leaders and Ibn al-Mulaqqin, id.
hadit experts known for their leadership in the field and relied upon M uin-ad-din A bii B ak r b. Nuqtah, at-Taqyid, on the biographies
b y all scholars, such as al-Buhari, History; Ibn A b i H aytam ah ; of the transm itters through whom there is transm itted m aterial
H alifah b. H ay y at, known as Sabbab;^ Muhammad b. Sa'd , the common to the six books and other works and Musnad?,. Taqi-ad-
secretary of al-W aqidi, at-Tahaqdt as-sugrd and al-kubrd, whose din al-Fasi al-M akki wrote a supplement to (the Taqyid). B oth
author is reliable, even though his teacher al-W aqidi was w eak; (the Taqyid) and its supplem ent consist of one volum e each.
furthermore, Ibn A b i Hatim , al-Jarh wa-t-ta^dil) Ibn Hibban, at- Ibn H ajar, Ta'^jil al-manfa'^ah bi-zawd^id rijdl al-aHmmah al-
Tiqdt] al-Hakim , History of Nisabur; al-H atib, History of Bagddd] arba'^ah, in one volume. Sams-ad-din al-H usayni had preceded
a History of Hamaddn whose author an-Nawawi did not spec him in the Tadkirah f i rijdl al-'-asarah. (Al-Husayni) abridged the
ify ; Ibn Asakir, History of Damascus', and other great histories. Tahdib, threw out (the men) who are not in the six (authoritative
(I also used books) on the names of the men around Muhammad, hadit collections) (ii8 ), and added those who are in the Muwatta\
such as the Isti'^db of Ibn A b d -al-B arr; the books of Ibn M andah; the Musnad of A hm ad (b. Hanbal), the M usnad of as-Safii, and
A bu N u 'a ym ; A bu Musa; Ibn al-Atir, and others. (I further used) the Musnad of A b ii H anifah in the recension of al-Hariti.^
works on the raids and the biography of the Prophet and books on There are other (such works on the men connected w ith the
the exact forms of names, such as the M uH alif wa-l-muhtalif of science of traditions). Their complete enumeration would be a
ad-D araq u tn i; Abd-al-Gani b. S a'id ; al-H atib; Ibn Makiila,^ and lengthy and difficult undertaking.
others. (I used) the books on the tabaqdt of jurists b y A b ii Asim In the fd m i\ al-H atib said: Am ong the things that are of
al-A bbadi; A bii Ishaq; and A bu A m r b. as-Salah. The last men concern for the student, there is the study of the histories of hadit
tioned w ork consists of fragments which I have begun to correct scholars and of w hat th ey have to say about the conditions of
and to arrange. It is a valuable work. Nothing like it or approaching transmitters. There are, for instance, the works of Ibn M a'in which
it has ever been written. No other book can take its place, if one were transm itted b y al-H usayn b. H ibban al-Bagdadi,^ 'A bbas
wants to know about jurists. Ignorance of the work is unbecoming ad-Duri, and al-Mufaddal al-Gallabi; the History of Ibn A bi H ay
for one who claims to be a S a fi'ite . ^ tam ah; Hanbal b. Ishaq; Halifah b. H a y y a t; Muhammad b.
Badr-ad-din al-A yni, on the men of the Sarh mu'-dm al-dtdr
b y at-Tahawi.^ 1 D . 189/804-5 (G A L , I, 17 1-7 3 , Su p p lem en t, I, 291).

^ S ee b elo w , p. 453, n. 7.
Zayn-ad-din Qasim al-Hanafi, on the men of at-Tahaw i, of ^ A p p a r e n tly , Ib ra h im b. M u h a m m a d , d. 641/124 3 (Ib n R afi*-, M u n ta h a b a l-m u h td r,

T a ^ rih ' u l a m d ^ B a g d d d , 14 -16 , B a g d a d 13 57/19 3 8 ; G A I^ S u p p le m e n t I, 623, w h ere A b u

1- H a s a n is a m istak e).
^ A p p a r e n tly , th e fa m o u s M isk d t a l-M a sd b th b y M u h a in ,m ,a d b. A b d a l l a h a l-H a tib
T h e a d d itio n a l fou r b o o k s are m e n tio n e d a fe w lin es later.
at-T ib rizi, d. 743/1342 (cf. G A L , I, 364, II, 195).
* L e g .: li-l-H a riti, "^ A b d allah b. M u h a m m a d , d. 340/952 (cf. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 286;
^ C f. a b o v e , p. 392, n. 6.
'A b d -a l-Q a d ir a l - Q u r a s i , a / -/ K ' /rtr a l-in u d iy a li, II, 2 8 9 1., H y d e r a b a d 1332).
'^ A li b . H ib a ta lla h , d. a ro u n d 485/1092-93 (cf. G A L , I, 3 5 4 f . ) . .A. p u b l i c a t i o n o f h is w o rk
T h e d e sc rip tio n of a l - H u s a y n i s w o r k is n o t d e riv ed d ire ctly fro m th e in tro d u c tio n of
o n the su b jec t, e n titled a l-Ik m d l, w as b e g u n b y ^A b d - a r -R ahman n. Y a h ya a l -M u '^a llam I
th e T a '-jU b u t fro m Ib n H a ja r, D u ra r, I\ ', 61. A cco rd in g to th e D tira r, Ib n K a tir m ig h t
in H y d e r a b a d 1962. T lie e d itio n co n ta in s a lo n g b io g ra p h ica l in tro d u c tio n b y th e ed ito r.
h a v e b e e n th e sou rce o f h is in fo rm a tio n , b u t Ib n K a tir (B id d y a h , X I V , 3 0 7 f.) d oes n o t
^ C f. a n -X a w a w i, Liin ^ ra p hical D iction a ry , 7 f. W 'C 's t e n fe ld (G (')ttin g e u 1842-47).
h a v e it.
A h m a d b. M u h a m m a d , d. 321/933 (ei. G A L , I, 1 7 3 f.).
D . 232/847 (T B , V lI I , 36).
Q asin i b. Q u tlu b u R a , d. 879/1474 (cf. G A L , II, 82).
I). 273/886 (T B , V I I I , 2 8 6 f.).

R o s e n th a l, History of Mushm Historiography 29


450 AS-SAHAWI S I LAN TRANSLATION 451

a : ' l U n i Kr/vst.:! a z a ' l c i Abu ZarSih a d - A tta r ,'in al-l^ld:::\ ou tbo-'a a;bo traa;aiiitto(l tiaidUions on the
iJiCr, the e\'e' .'i ;e.)i Ae"; a n ib ra a y 1 i' a b A a ;- a.el :A ab ai, ia bao v/or.;a, b y \}iyr<.drdm
-j a \; ; ...: -i l - . . i . /^^rry ih a ri.' (ablUacjbisi).
I'-' ] ;-e -e' .\,;.)a A " - .'v > a s b.
(8 . .Aa A a a s e:aa a,byaA{/^s)
l ;- ' r ' . . - . ., .-i- . (: e-; v / o u ld

1 K ; l ,v ' r .. 1,
(V A .r:-,
fvvb b ' ' *' .a :n:bLcrs
w.' ;,L y.a'aca.lar . 7.:' '
7bed,
a-'b V
si^^::e .. . , ;" ' -'.'e ,.e ' ; .
I ii' .':.''a!. , ' .7 ' batcr
ter,_A V -'- -e:-- a a pro-
n o :.:.'. . . .. rs of) i .7

, ' . a bic
b-. v:..'
ite.'e-a ./ ... ;il-
(' b '<: ' :,:wae
T'L... , . :e -. ; . . . :<i . ndt, 7, a;re
e ; a : ,

':il- ................ : ae aers,


ti;a': a ' , ,' ' : ; . 7 ;3TL-
n i:> ' > ^ r '' (heir lb.. - - . , ^ ^ , .'-A.

tc;,v: . r,T ;.:i , :o::. lliOSe r...


\V . ' , . _ ,r . i t y u. cai' ai'rson , .A'-l'f-
oi
. A- .-^A,. .A y of sh: y . : A' ''^ e s e

t h A :- ^ ; -e; {';a :' w h o (aa . ,7 )


trev, e a 'r ; ^ . :.L a-
- sach
a s Yii^' V'.e,' e ('a . : aa ruaii
a s - : 7 ./
o f tn>-^ : , ; ; . .1 e ae. 'h.- . e:lior-
i t y c.i ;. i; a wa e 1 . ; i A i e
iiK-ii ai'; I A _a.e e i - .. _ v . b u ; r -

i t ,' O! a':.-.::. e e !' s^>. e . :^"a ,r.v


)V v y
5

on (i,.'/ :.: v a ...' i ;,a - ' :. a v - laiik,


by a<l- .a - , ; a^-^-.. A' ':. i r:.;:-a =i..lars) ai m

is lA " j -
. e^a^al b, leias;
b '-
A ba ;-( A-..;:.- " . a ,/ a ^ - i.;^ /.Ja'i -^.;asim
Isa b. 'a-a;-'./:.Z 'Z b, b s r a.!r a:,;/^'A A ('Snid^ 7 7 >7 .-:; b . ^ ' 7 i, d, r; - : a a ' {!b . ! /
' ' ' - ' *a
aslidb a'-;Uiiiyi Md^.ik, ir: :rv y .wA^b;.,-s-dai) ab 2 (T. : ' 'm!i, A ' - '' ' . ' V. V 'i'l / i n s t e a d

Oi 7 -I' ' -a7 - ,7 7..'


' Iitnla-
lu: , Ml i . ... ' 7 ' . ^. . . : '
il.F.R,
' l.a 3! ( 7 7 j, !, 2j 8 l;.i, H!-> < t/j; is lar'it i - !, 25c',.,.
^ A a K a s a i; h. a 'tn ia u , <1. :..i (//, V II, ! - f a i . ; ; a .:7,a, a>o, C^airo 1318 = n o
;tn.a;7 d. ' '.j'loqh
F li'g li., 1i h > 4-i ;/.':57 !. ; t i a ' q u o l- d .v/urrc oi I I a:icl tin- o ld e r h i.sto riaiis.

^ C f. 'b u Ija j.i-'. V ih ,J ib , 1' , / .


7 , -/i:'2i
r . , 7 tllier
* A sc-Iio la r (>' t i n - th ird l;i"; ra iid ii w h o (h e;! i:i 1 1 , S . ' 7 ^6 (a l-P n i!ja ri, T cP rih , \\ , i, 237; (- .. Mv:
Tbu I'ajar, 7 a l h h b , V I i !, j , 8 iT.j, c.f. u u - \ a w a \ v i , l i l o ^ n i N i t c a l D ictio n a ry , 476-78 W C s t e n - Wi". 7. I
FEi . i ).
a ! ' a-.!era-
" ! i u h , 03, a b o \ c, p. 406.
^ i a a . 7 ,. :, . 7a)Liii,
^ A p p a rc 'n tu , ;'\bLi b H ,i;.a u '.',b i b. a!-!(a sa;i h. A avliau iiu a d b. F ih .r al-ld b ri w h o is i . ! i >'
. . ., i
lU L 'n tio u i'u b y a ^ - S a ' n a ' . \ i, u l- jiH aniv ica -J-a ir^ A r. h i-'o w , u. 591. 7 ,.'.
.
w d 7 '' - a , : \' M ' - ' ' a : I , (;r ; . :a . i o' ^ ' -i.l r.-nre-
A n A b u Ish a i) A lu lia in m a d n. ai-O a siia b. .'.a S ):u i a p p c 'a rs in the Jaivdhir. H e d ie d

in 33. s/ q('<> , ('f- I n u b 'a r h u n , D ib 'ij, 231 f. (I'l-z :3 i6 ). S ; ' : i . t a L ' \ , . . ' ^ 7 r, . ;7 '................. ' ^

\ I 7 :
i| \ i,r;7 ; . ; 7 ,, f .uui T' i^ai:I a ' , a-, a;;aiiist
* \ 'a h y a b. ^ A l i , d. 4 16 /10 2 ,5 -2 6 (of. G A L S u p p lem en t I, 571).

D. 629/1231-32 (cf. ('7 a / . I, 303). Sa arra i i;, I !,


452 A S -S A H A W I S I LA N T R A N S L A T IO N 453

The hadit expert Izz-ad-din b. al-H ajib al-Am ini.i This w riter (as-Sahawi) compiled his own [Mu'jam) in three
Al-Mundiri. volum es and those of ar-Rasidi,^ Sihab-ad-din al-'Aqabi,^ Taqi-
A r-R asid (Rasid-ad-din) a l-A ttar. ad-din as-Sumimni,^ and others.
Ibn Masdi. Ancient authors of such works were
Ad--Dimyati. A b u Y u su f Y a qub al-Fasaw i, who arranged (his teachers)
Qutb-ad-din al-Halabi. according to the countries visited b y him.
Al-Birzali. The hadit expert A b u Y a la al-Mawsili.^
A b u H ayyan. A b u Ishaq Ibrahim b. Muhammad b. H am zah al-Isbahani.
A d-D ahabi w rote three Mu'^jams, the big, the slender, and the A t-T abarani, in tw o Mu'-jams, medium and small.
abridged one. H e also edited the Mu'^jam of A la -ad-din A li b. A b u A hm ad b. A di al'Jurjani.
Ibrahim b. D aw iid b. a]-Attar.^ A bu B a k r al-Ism aili.
Ibn Habib,^ al-M u ~jam, of which (a copy) is found w ritten b y A bii s-ayh.
ad-Dahabi in the M uayyadiyah.^ A b u A hm ad al-Assal.
Ibn a l-Adim. A b u B ak r b. al-M uqri and others of their class. A fter them.
Taqi-ad-din b. R a fi. there were
M ajd-ad-din Ism a'il al-Hanafi. A bu N u aym al-Isbahani.
Jam al-ad-din b. Zuhayrah,^ in the edition of al-Aqfahsi. A bu 1-H usayn b. J u m a y .
Burhan-ad-din al-Halabi, compiled b y Ibn H ajar, and b y Ibn A bii D arr al-Harawi.
Fahd.6 A bu A li b. Sadan.i
Ibn H ajar compiled his own [Mu'-jam), and those of at-T aniihi, A bu 1-H usayn b. al-Muhtadi bi-llah.i^A nd
al-Qibabi, M aryam al-A d raiyah, and otheis. A bu Abdallah al-Q udai.
Jam al-ad-din b. Musa compiled (the Mu'-jam of) Zayn-ad-din
A bu B ak r al-Maragi.^ 1 M uham m ad b. ^Abdallah, 767-8 54 /136 6 -14 50 {Daw^, V I I I , l o i f.).
^ A h m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 86111457 {Daw^, I I, 2 12 f.).
Ibn Fahd compiled his own and those of his father, A h m a d b . M u h a m m a d , 801-872 /13 99 -14 6 9 (cf. G A L , II, 82).
* A pp aren tly, A hm ad b . 'A li b . al-M utauna, d. 307/919-20 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 258).
Ibn al-Maragi,^i and a number of other (scholars). ^ D . 353/964 (Abu N u 'a y m , History o f Isfahan, I, 199 f. D e d e r i n g , Leiden 1931-34).
A hm ad b. Ibrahim , d. 371/981-82 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 275).
^ 'Um,ar b. al-H ajib . H is Mu'-jam is q uoted b y Ib n R a fi', Muntahab al-muhtdr, Ta^Hh M uham m ad b. Ibrahim , d. 281/894 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 272) ? H e should, how ever,
^ulama^ Bagdad, 120, 132 (Bagdad 1357/1938). h av e lived in the tenth century.
D. 724/1324 (cf. G A L , II, 85, Supplement II, 100, where the attribu tion of the Watd^iq * M u h a m m a d b . A h m a d , d. 4 0 2 /10 11-12 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 2 59 ; T B , I I , i4io)- H is
to him m ust b e corrected w ith reference to J. S c h a c h t , in Etudes d Orientalisme E . Levi- Mu^jam is re fe rre d to b y a s -S a m ^ani, Ansdb, fo l. 3 1 5 b , 5 2 1 b ; O . L o f g r e n , op. cit. (a b o v e ,
Provetifal, 276 [Paris 1962]). Th e te xt of the I'-ldn which says th at '^Ala^-ad-din edited p . 56, n . I ), II, 164. G A L , L o f g r e n , an d W i j s t e n f e l d s e d itio n o f Y a q u t , Mu'-jam,
the Mu'-jam of ad-D ahabi m ust be correctcd as indicated, cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, III, 6. I I I , 434, 440 h a v e J u m ay '-, a n d th e sam e v o c a liz a tio n is in d ic a t e d in a fo u rte e n th -c e n tu ry
^ A l-H asan b. ^Umar, d. 779/ i377 (cf. G A L , II, 36 f.). As he was the teacher of Ibn m a n u s c r ip t of I b n a l-^Adim, ad-Dardrt f t dikr ad-dardrt ( I s ta n b u l, N u ru O s m a n iy e 3790,
H atib an-N asiriyah, his works are often quoted, and he has a long biography, in the Durr fo l. 2 ib ) . M u h a m m a d 'A la m - a l-h u d a (in a t - T u s i, F ihris, 243 S p r e n g e r , C a lc u t ta 1854)
al-muntahab f t takmilat Ta^rth Halab. m e n tio n s a ce rta in *^Amr b . J u m a y ' a l- A z d i (th u s v o c a lize d ). T h e n a m e o f th e w e ll-k n o w n
^ The M u^ayyadiyah, still a famous m onum ent of Cairos past, was com pleted in 819/ tw e lft h -c e n tu r y p h y s ic ia n is re a d J u m a y ' b y B r o c k e l m a n n , G A L Supplement I , 892, a n d
1416-17, cf. as-Suyuti, H usn al-mithddarah, II, 194 f. (Cairo 1299). J u m a y y ( i) ' b y G . L e v i d e l l a V id a , Elenco dei manoscritti arabi Islaniici della Biblioteca
= M uham m ad b. ^Abdallah, 751-817/1351-1414 [Daw^, V III, 92-95). Vaticana, n o. 308 (C itta d el V a tic a n o 1935, Studi e Tcsti, 67). T h is v o c a h z a tio n (J u m a y ')
Cf. I, 140. a p p e a rs also in th e co lle c tio n o f h is w o rk s in th e o ld I s ta n b u l m a n u s c r ip t, T o p k a p u s a r a y ,
Ibrahim b. Ahm,ad, 709-800/1309(1 o)-98 (Ibn Ila ja r, Durar, I, i i f.). A h m e t I I I , 2136 . H o w e v e r, a v e rse b y Ib n a l-M u n a jjim in I b n A b i U s a y b i'a h , I I , 1 1 4
* A bd-ar-R ahm an b. 'T n ia r 749-838/1348-1434 {paw^, IV , 113 f.; G A L , II, 69). Cf. M i j l l e r , su g g e s ts th e re a d in g J a m i', b u t th is is n o t a b s o lu te ly ce rta in (cf. J u v a y n i-ja v in t,

J. S u B i . E T , in A nnuaire de Vh'.cole Pratique des Hautes Etudes, 1964-65, 425 f. in J u w a y n is Ta^rih-i-jahdngusdy, tra n s. J . A . B o y l e , 520 [M a n ch e ste r 1958]). A s a n a m e ,
9 M aryam bint Ahm ad, 7i9-8o5/i3i9(2o)-i402(3) {])aie^, X I I , 124). J a m i' w o u ld co rre sp o n d to J a m a 'a h . I t is p o ssib le th a t b o th fo rm s e x is te d sid e b y sid e in
A bu B akr b. al-H usayn, d. 816/1414 (cf. ( lA L , II, 172). w h ic h case it w o u ld b e d iffic u lt to d(;cide w h ic h fo rm is a p p lic a b le in a g iv e n case.
A pp aren tly, M uham niad b. A bi Bakr (above, p. 398, n. 7), as l)aw ^ ,\\\, 164, m entions 'A b d b. A hm ad, d. 434/1043 (T B , X I , 1 4 1 , cf. J . F u c k , in Z D M G , X C II, 72 ff.).
his Mu'-jam b y Ibn Fahd. Dari^, \ 'I 1, 161, how^ever, says that his brother of the same name A l-H asan b. Ahm ad, d. 426/1034 (Ibn al-Jaw'zi, Muntazam, V I I I , 86 f.).
was known as Ibn a l - M a r a g i . Ms. Leiden reads: of the two Ibn al-^Iaragi. M uham m ad b. 'A li, an auth ority of al-H atib al-B agdadi (cf. T B , III, 8, 235), who
454 A S -S A H A W I s a "LAN
TRANSLATION 455
(g. W orks on men of a particular name)
Sim ilarly, there are works restricted to particular dynasties,
(Works) on men of a particnkir n^ime ;ire, among others, such as
A t-Tabarani, on those called "A ta .^ A bu Samah, ar-Rawdatayn f i ahbdr ad-dawlatayn, and the
A d -D in iy a ti, on th o se c a lle d A b d - a l - M t i m in .
authors own supplement to it.^ B oth works also deal w ith events.
(An iinnar-ied author) on those called 'Iw ad, in a w ork entitled Lisan-ad-din b. al-H atib, T u rf at al-'-asr f i dawlat Bani Nasr,
'Iwad Ufa" al~niarad fi-m an mmimiya hi-^-Iwad. in three volumes, and the urjuzah poem Raqni al-hidal f i nazm
Ibn H ajar, on those called Abi:i 1-Fadl Ahmad. ad-duwal.
(lo. Macrobiotics and young men) A bu B ak r b. A bdallah b. x\ybak ad-DawadM ,^ an-Nukat al-
mulukiyah ild ad-dawlah at-Turkiyah. His one-volume autograph
Or (liistoriaiis resiricted [heiaselves) to the m acrobiotics in pre-
of the w ork is in the hbrary of the Ibn Fahds.
Islam ic and t^arly Islam ic th:ics. Several liistorians [ahbdri) w rote
Badr-ad-din Hasan b. Um ar b. Habib, Diirrat al-asldk f t dawlat
on them. Or the m acr 1-iotics in Islam ic times. A d-D ahabi and
al-Atrdk, written throughout in rhym ed prose. The authors son
Ibn Ijajar, fr>r insLafiCd, w nne on them, the former one quire.
Tahir wrote a supplement to it.
Or (cue iv.,u cccd liicmselves) to young men {subbdn), a s d i d
Al-M aqrizi, as-Suluk, in four volumes. In the work, al-Maqrizi
Ibn (120) in a pamphleL.
restricted himself to the rulers of E gyp t after the final disappearance
(11. W orks on men 01 a particular period or dynasty) of the Fatim id dynasty, th at is, the x-lyyubid K urds and the Turkish
Or (tl!''\^ i:> a parlieuiar time. (Such works and Circassian Mamluk Sultans. He included a brief treatm ent of
are), for ia a;..'.-a the events in their days. For each year, he m entioned the cases of
Sal . - V I - i p S r . f . , v l a or A"^7&dn, an-nasr f i a^ydn death which God had willed to happen (in th at particular year).
al-^a^r, ia : ; / :a: He continued the w ork to the year of his own death. I wrote a sup
Al)ti V A ' /i a:-\isr. A bu H ayyan plement to (the Suluk), af-Tibr al-masbuk. Several untrustw orthy
also wr^a:r:
. '::;Va,!; ' .a ':!-idr, his daughter, an and unreliable bunglers (or nobodies ) also wrote supplements to
instrac^a , :P ^ .
> ?a';':a,2 (the Suluk).
S iat - al -_aa 'aaliall / a;- a a'ydn al-Uisr.^ (12, Biographies of particular individuals)
T a :-- . . \ a ^ ;a . r,h, iu Avo volumes.
Ibn p:,; a, ^ ' -' A'f v' -.-' I /.'-a i,'.'./; rvJ i a'_-ldminaJi. Or (historians) restricted themselves to monographs on particular
T]i:; ' ' ' ' ' ii-aiy di-qarn at-tdsi'-. iadi^uduals. I have devoted the final chapter of the fawdhir i&a-d-
appear^ U, -ivc ilurar to this subject. No one else had done something like it before.
'i-^- jau zi, M u n t a s a m , \ ' I I 1 , 2 8 - cf also
171, ivr, ...Sa.rv f'-i. ;,u;^ ^h;iL ch?arL:;r deals with the monographs on the biography of
V. u,i t:
their
rospcc pS -.'-i >'i a' - ! U jr.v . w o rk s cl< a l w ith th e n a m e s of
Vliihammad and the biographies of other prophets, on the men
A d -

Q ariir L:-'A b . i - a l - M v-^ q u o t e d b y ^ A b d - a l - around Muhammad, on caliphs, authoritative religious leaders,


kings, and others, such as (religious) scholars, hadit experts, Jiadit
h a d S ciii : ,0 I
an d tl-it lii .
o r r i .i. a, a a - , , 1 ,^ scholars, ascetics, an;! poets, (in connection with this subject),
; . (' f i l e r -,a;i b . t l u
A.- :uh/i,a .aiit . M ' - . M ' - ; . a - i . a (i I reference ma\- be h id to ihat chapter.^
Cf. ii,:; ; J - f: n; i j \ .
'ai pr'Mi.-'<->->ors o f tiiis t y p f o f w o r k s ,
/ a - - a a ; v;
SuppL : ^A-.n (cf. (j A L . 1 T ill* h . - n r j d t a y ; i a:id the w ere p u b ia h e d in C a iro 19 56 h.
i L .A.
p h ii.-r : a; ' vaii, .c , \\' i ^- , ei Ui : ' Ui f Un, V 'i eu ua ,
a .!/ , S u p t li'U h 'iA , l a 11- f\nn", dif-iltirar w as bef^ nn in 709/130Q . B efore, he h a d

' . ' Lc K, u. d ; . i 111 w ritte n a n tJ io lo tx ifs a lio t. L a iro 'i'.i'r ih , 237S, I, 2 .17).
'.j'lc I.;.' r -f -r.iice htT<- is to the Rihlah
< 1. 'At:-: > J - A b. i o . i , p. 3 j, 3 i). so.s/i.j.of) i ! \', 5-3, wi i c n - h is f,uh>>rs !iaim* is al-Husavn). . \ o c o r d i u g t o a
. arc q r.n te cl h y !iv i Ilu jjit-, h u v i . r , 11, 4 11 f., I f ,, z V), 4 .(0 f.
m ar.t'ina! n o t e t o il ic - r a r 77.S. t n e i ] o d ! c i a ii r i s . or . M a r s h 3 1 9 is (a c o p y f rom ,?) T a h i r s
aiitM:;r,'i:)!i. t!i^ s ' j p o i c n i 'lii i> ijnoti-;! in- ibu i fatib an-.\asiriya h .
* p n o t- a, f.-.r !)V H .iiar, !>iti\:r, 71, ^39, ; i(>, . 1 7 3 , 5 ji f., II, 40, 45, 105 f.,
an d , a p p ar:,;;itl\ -, iii m o s t of the ca s< -^ i;i w h ich Ib u F a d la ila h ir, ( [ m j t c d . * i ari> !;is. ;\.r. 2 1 0 3 , to:s. 2c.2]i-20f'a ( n o t d a t -d, b u t w r i t t e n din'iu,:^ a s - S a h a w i s li fe t in re
a n d , a p p a r e n t l y , ver',- clo^e to tiie d.iii- of tli e c o m p o s i t i o n of t h e w o r k in 871/1466), a n d
456 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 457

Am ong works of this type, I m ay mention m y monographs on A nd m any other things, such as the Patronymics and the N ick
The authors of the six books (the authoritative hadit collections) names, each of them in one volum e. I have m entioned this in all
(i2 i), (written) upon completion of the (study of the w ork of) hum ihty and m odesty.
each of them.
(13. L ocal histories) ^
Ibn Hisam, upon completion of the Sirah.
Ibn Sayyid-an-nas, upon completion of his w ork on the biography Or (historians restricted themselves) to the people of a particular
of Muhammad. locality. I have arranged here the authors on the subject whom I
A l-B ayhaqi, upon completion of the D aW il. know of, according to the alphabetical sequence of the localities
T yad, upon completion of the Sifd''. (with which their works are dealing).
An-N aw awi, a substantial work. Abiward: According to Ibn al-Adim , A bii 1-Muzaffar Muhammad
Adud-ad-din.^ b. Ahm ad b. M uhammad b. A hm ad b. M uhammad b. Ishaq al-
Ibn Hisam, the grammarian.^ Abiw ardi al-Adib ^ (dealt w ith Abiward) in a nice work, entitled
Ibn H ajar, a very fine work, in two volumes, and in one. A nd Nuhzat (?) al-huffdz. W ith A biw ard, he combined Nasa, Kiifan,
The above-m entioned final chapter (of the Jawdhir wa-d-durar). C aziyan , and other cities of the region. The author, perhaps, is
I also w rote a monograph on Ibn A rabi in one volume,^ with identical with the one mentioned under Hurasan.
a sum m ary of one quire, and other works, all this in addition to Adarbayjdn: Ibn A bi 1-H ayja ar-Rawwad.^
m y works on the subjects here under discussion which I have Arran: A l-B a rd a i.^
m entioned in various places (of this work), such as 1 A s-Sahaw i was not the first to dress a list of local histories. H ow ever, this was hardly
A t-Tibr al-masbuk f i d-dayl '-aid s-Stduk. This w ork deals with done b y anyone prior to the la tter half of the sixth/tw elfth cen tury, even if it could
happen th at already an eleven th -cen tu ry scholar such as Ibn H azm would m ake a list of
the cases of death and the events from the year 845/1441-42 on to local histories, in order to show how few of them existed, cf. Ibn H azm s letter in al-M aqqari,
date, in several volumes. Analectes, II, 108-21 D o z y and others (Leiden 1855-61), cf. above, p. 150. A l-B a yh a q i,
Ta^rih-i-Bayhaq, 20 f. (Teheran 1 31 7 ) , m entions some local histories. Ibn al-F u w ati had a
W ajiz al-kaldm f i d-dayl 'aid Duwal a/-7 s/am, [a sum m ary and list of local histories in one of his historical w orks (cf. Ibn H aja r, Durar, II, 365). A s-Subki
continuation of and the authors supplement] in one or tw o volumes has one in the introduction of his Sm all Tabaqdt w ork (Bodleian Ms. or. Marsh 428) as well
as Ibn H ajar, in his Mu'-jam al-inufahras (Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 82, pp. 152-56).
to (ad-Dahabis) Duwal al-Isldm. The w^ork is very brief except Ibn a l-H a tib s list of local histories, in the in troductioji of the Ihdtah, I, 5-7 (Cairo 1319),
for the later years. It covers the years from 745/1344-45 on down to was as-Sahaw is m ain source for the local histories of the west of the Muslim world. The
most com prehensive list before as-Sahaw i, and the one upon which he largely bases himself,
the present. is th at of as-Safadi, Wcift, I, 47-49 H i t t e r , cf. the translation b y E . A m a r , Prolcgomenes a
A one-volume supplement to Ibn al-Jazaris Qur^dn readers. Vetude des historiens arabes par K ha lil Ibn Aibak as-Safadi, in J A , X , 17, 251-308, 465-531
(1911); X , 18, 5-48 (19 11); X , 19, 243-97 (1912). Cf. also H. R i t t e r , in Oriens, III , 70 ff.
A one-volume supplement to Ibn H aja rs fudges of Egypt.
(1950).
Ad-Daw^ al-ldmi" li-ahl al-qarn at-tdsi\ in five volumes. A more detailed and b etter arranged list than th at of as-Sahaw i was probably never made.
T his includes the later H ajji H alifah, K a sf az-zuntm, II, 1 0 6 ff. F lt' j g e l , who has in certain
As-Sifd^ min al-alam f i wafaydt hddayn al-qarnayn al-dhirayn respects more, in others inuch less inform ation than as-Sahaw i. Nevertheless, as-Sahaw is
min al-'Arah wa-l-'-Ajam. list is far fronx being com plete. It could have been enlarged b y as-Sahaw i himself, if he had
taken the trouble to go carefully through the sources at his disposal. He even om its to
A Mu^jam of (my teachers) who authorized me to transm it m ention works to which he refers in the Daw^. It m ust, how ever, be noted th at as-Sahaw i
m aterial they taught me, in three big volumes. him self considered his list unfinished, cf. above, p. 2 6 4 f.
^ D. 507/1113 (cf. G A L , I, 253). Y a q u t, Irsdd, X V I I , 253 (Cairo), has, as different from
the History, a Kitdb Xuhzat al-hdfiz. I'^ldn reads bahrat, which w as distorted in G A L to
Istanbul, T o pkapu saray, A h iu et III , 2991, M s . 338b-345b (written, in 895/1490). T h e Paris bahjat. Bahrat, or buhrat, are possible forms.
m anuscript has preserved the older and, possibly, first text. Its m arginal notes are in cor Or rather: thin ? As-Sam'^ani, Ansdb, 559a, describes the w ork as consisting of
porated hi the te xt of the Istan bul m anuscript. The la tter also has numerous additions one fascicle.
doubtlessly going b ack to as-Sahaw i himself. It con stitutes w hat m ay be called a second ^ A ccordin g to M in o r s k y , Hudud al-^dlam, 395 f. (Oxford-London 1937, E. J . W .
edition. A translation of the text here m ight have been useful. H ow ever, as-Sahaw i goes to (xibb Mem. Series, N .S . 11), he is identical w ith an Abu 1-H a y ja b. R aw w ad who lived in
a large e xten t over w ell-know n territory. A rabic text, below, pp. 586-610. the second half of the fourth/tenth century, h'or Isma'^il b. al-M utanna at-T ibrizi (d. ca.
* P robably, ^Abd-ar-Raliman b. Ahm ad a l-lji, d. 756/1355 (cf. G A L , II, 208 f.) ? 580/1184) and his H istory of A d a r b a y ja n , see Ibn al-P'uwati, Talhis Majma'- al-dddb,
^ 'A b d allah b. Y u su f, d. 761/1360 (cf. G A L , II, 23-25).
I V , III , 1 1 7 f. J A W A D .
Cf. above, p. 430, n. 7. ^ T h e author who is also m entioned in the Waft has not yet been identified. Th e form
458 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 459

Irbil: Abu 1- B a r a k a t a l-M iib a r a k b. A hm ad b. a l-M u b a r a k b. the description of the conquest of the city (at the beginning of
M a w l i u b b . a l - M i i s t a w f i / ( a v a i l a b l e in ) t h e a u t h o r s a u t o g r a p h , in Islam ?), and he tarried so m uch that in comparison with the other
f i v e v o lu m e :'. T h e w o r k is m a i n l y c o n c e r n e d w i t h l i t t e r a t e u r s a n d things he mentioned, the event (of the year 767) is hardly noticeable.
k in g s . S u k iy r n a n b . A b d a lla h b. A b i 1- H a s a n a z -Z a n ja n i a l-M a k k i Sevilla'. A b u B ak r Muhammad b. i\.bdallah b. Ibrahim b. Qassum
w rote a n a b r i d g n K 'n l o f it . (1 2 2 ) al-Isbili,^ M ajdlis al-abrdr f i mu'-dmalat al-hiydr, a history {ahbdr)
Astardhdd: Abu S a 'd A b d -;ir -R a h m a n b. M uham m ad b. M u- of the pious men (of the city).
h a m m n .d b . A b d : i l ! a h b. I d r is a l-ld r is i a l-A s ta r a b a d i.^ Isbahdn: A bu 'AbdallM i H am zah b. al-H usayn al-M u addib.^
Abu I-O a s im y ia n iz a h b. Y C is iif a s -S a lim i w r o te a Completion A b ii B ak r A hm ad b. Musa b. Mardawayh.^
{Tahnilah) of i h e lii.s to r y (o f t h e c it y ) .^ A b ii Z a k a riya Y a h y a b. A b i A m r Abd-al-W ahhab, a son of
Alexandria: A b i i i - M u z a t f a r M an sur b. S a lim ,^ in fo u r v o lu m e s . the Juidit expert A b ii A bdaliah Muhammad b. Ishaq b. Muhammad
A b u 1- F a d a ' i l (?).^ b. Y a h y a b. Mandah, both A bu Z a k a riya and his grandfather
A b u ' A l l a l - H a s a n b . U m a r b . a l - H a s a n (b.) a s -S a b b iig c o m p i l e d (Abu V\bda]lah ).4
the p r a is e {faddHl) o f ( t h e c it \ ') . A b ii s-Sayh b. Hibban.
M uham m ad b. 0 - 1 -im b. I 'l h a m m a d a u -N n w a y r i a s -S ik a n d a r i A bii Nu'a5^m A hm ad b. Abdallah. His alphabetically arranged
a l - M a l i k i ^ v .t o /e a t h r o e -v 'o h im e d e ,-:cr ip iio n of th e m a jo r a f f a ir w ork of two volum es is the most complete (history of the city).
w h ic ii tJie b e .y ^ r 'i n g o f t h e ^;ear (7)^ )7/13 6 5 , w h e n t h e A b ii B akr Muhammad b. Abi 'A li Ahm ad b. 'A bd-ar-Rahm an
Fran ks - A le :" v '- 'r ia . a n d cv:p;:;>red it s ^vom on a n d m e n . al-Mu"addil.^
H e { li:y
O o s :? jd h ' fr ';( i_/r;c t h i n <
g-> t h e o t r-r. " i e b e g>a n w i t h Lisbon (Ms. Leiden; Estepona)'. Ibn Idris.
o f tiiH ',n > o a h is nr.c. r;

' O. -r (-.r. I'7 .-'.I. S:\'^''lei>;e!>t I, H i s H i i<>rv i~\ a l s o qi! > i m \ t M u '-ja m ,
ct. !'. j. I)'- /:! > r ' e n i-i ' i ip h isch em ' ]). 6 3 9 / 1 2 4 2 (cf. P o n s i o iG t'E S , I ' . n s a y o , 2 8 6 ; I b n a ! - A b b a r , 7 5 3 , no. 2 1 4 2 ( ad di tio ns )
Wo f i ! ,'Or. Vi ' . ' i r ..')8 ; . t . - . ' . f i ! ' , \'-'a{i. >, ... .' ^; t s k' ; . ..'o-iiOiaTi nis. or. CoDF.RA, M a d r i d 18 86 -8 9 , H i h l i o t h e c a /: r a b i c o - H i s p a n a , 6). G A L S u p p l e m e n t 1, 73 2 f., co n-
Selii. ',r ,1. '. 2 )i. I = . )i ,
: , r' i i i \. i i>. ' i. . ; T'.ii ,i' uV : ''Ifiiim i'- f o u i u l s t h e a u t li o r of worl< w i t h th.' l.u uou s j u r i s t I b u al-'-.Vrabi ;il-lsbili.
a l-'it 1 , 1 f., 57C), i V 11 ! . 5;.- ' \ v \ i ) ; i ! . u - Ii i i d .u rriycih, T h e v .('ll-);!io \ \ii a c th o r o f tlu- (oii;-th /tctitii c n U u r y (cf. G A L , I, 1.15).
I'iio; : .1.0 !, wh-i-^c' S . H a t u z a h hi ii is tif re-ftTS to his U i d o r y o f I s f n l u b i iu his U U d o r y , 1, 1 8 7 G o t t w a l d t (St.
i !,. ' ( ' p ' :ii: t o ; ' ; :r ! i , i 71 ; ;.s- i :i.'a ri .i , P e U : r s b u r L i ' i p y . i g 184 4-48 ), a n d , in addiiii.vu to Hit* q u o t a t i o n s f r o m t h e / / i s t n r y o f I s f a h a n
)i , ; .' :! is . l lLk > i'- i. >' i'oi, VJa, m en tio i. e'd in G A f . S u p p le , iicni, !, 222, t h e \'.-ori< is a ls o q u o t e d l) y at-Ta'^aiibi, Y a tim a t
a u ' l H O I ' 1, 10 .; ' t' : V ' 'o u tilC a d - d a h r , H I , 12 5 ( D a ii i a s c u s 130.1); . 'diii'.'iddai b. Sa'^d a:-?vlafaiTuhi, K i t d h M a h d s i n L s b a l i d n
Hi i o! r j _- y I. ' ' ' ' ' i t v y '<f i; i i ,i ^^ i . . . ' ' v i I'i (Teheran 1U2/1033); ar-]<afi"i, f heit. Caii'o 'i'a^riii 2648, p. 4 7 1.
! Lc \ , h i x r v - r . . nr . i! l'
:i.v :t s * li :i:i > r- ji i >r i H , >>r i ist i n c o , ^ 323-410 /9 ")5 -i(jio (;o ), or 4 1 6 / 1 .0 2 5 -2 '), cf. ii. .d i r T \ \'o cii, iii a [ iU c ilu n g c n des S e m in a r .';

fi.i i-;i, ''i.


) ., ; . ..i-i.ij.'.), fiir or. S p !-ii,d -r:;, 5J V . * r . . jd ijn , X IF , ii(> (1909); G A L S 'ip p le m e n t I. 4 1 1 . ills H isto ry o f

4i3h. . /'.I ' 7 '.), -7 I; 4 '' '> a, a (> -'h, . J . . F. ;. . o p .c U ., \ o \I s f a h a n w.-ts r ., =. od < . - ; t ( j ' i s i v l y b y a s-:% a -ii'a u i, A n sd b , for iiistaiic.", fols. 38a, 126a, 13 2b ,

279a, 3 0 7 ! I, 3 I 2 - 1 , 3 2.gb, 3 7 . ; . I, H 3 i), f33.a, .jS S b , 5 f2a, 58 7a, C f. also V iiq u t, Mu'-jam,
a p u d I ' . . ! , f l i r.ij, o ! \ c i , 37.
* A b u c i r : ) i\- s w ;k yuoced, for iiV 'td u ^ e , b y al-(jii'ti, I n h i i i , li, 27 (C a iro 1369-

74 /19 S .J-3 5 ); a ,-S ,iin 'a , ,J.>, tor i;i-a a :ic '', fo 's , 6- a , ().)a, -j-Soa, 4 / 7a , 530 a; V a q u t,

M u ' i a : " , a p u d F . j . il i . :it.. 37, w h o d ct^ibts tiie e :xistcn ci o f A . n i 'A b d a l l a l is w o r k ;

(I L i.:i o t: .i Ib n Jj a l li k a u , 1I T , 145 tr.ias. ; -^ la .n k . \b ii 'A b d a ila l'.s L h sio ry " is (lu oti-d b y a s-S ain -

^ani, A n G b , iui. T7;,h.


l u i t b r , .it i) Mt t..-' ^ .r : / ;, : ' I :V i '!'!'.( G i l d h Q : i G / i : i (!s-S; :ra f f ! i i i a f d h i r I s f a l u h i % c( .-a hh ari ha u y 'A h ' b. ll a n i / . a h a l - I s t a -

th.- i- ^ \ i :^ ., I, , ) : ; :)!i liani, cf. I ' a q i u , G ' . G d . X i l , 204 :'-Jdir'o \ , 201 . M . i U o o i . j o l ' r n ) , is o i i r o f t iie w o r k s n o t
r n c n l i o u e d L)'. as-San.'r,' pr'ih.;u,'ly b e c a u s e it h a d l i t t l e t o d o w i t h fiadit s ch o la rs and,
t h e r e f o r e , (^' a p c d t h e a! t e i i t i o i o f e.>-Saha\v? a u d h is s o ir c es . Hut he should not h av e
o m i t t e d ai-1 iru/.-'ihidf s //. u'o; y o f ! < f a h d n , o f . D-.r.:^, X , iJ i..
** H e coiii(_! ii a r d l. bi- id.eiiliLal A iiii the .author c4 lin' Hi.^tori''s of A s t a r a b . i d a'nd S .u u a r -
.tl) i-; s/u q a n d , b u t fie e. rt.uid'.- i> i d l u i c a l \'dtli th e a u t l e 'r 01 llu- l l i ^ b i r v o f S e - u i ' n , l.)ele >, p. 470.
' t t i! P o x s !5()ic.:';-s, / ii:.a vo. ,93, hno.v:. ; i;e ant co r 1 d v f.-i e a t h e ! n d i a l i . 'i'ie- v r fauit\- e d i t io n
I .o t o f tlie I h d U i h i n i-i n i: the J l i . d o r y o f !. . t c p o n a b.; .Xi'U i><a';r Ab.ihaiiLiuad " j . bl'-i.^, v.iiose
ii. r o r
in .)/- autl'.or (d. 707/13,07), h o v . e w r , do es ;i.ot se e m to ha\'e h a d th e I b n P h i s in his n a m e ,
... illc-U .r y ( on:ir:L',j'oi\!ii(ni I u lu tr c , 5 f. f.Xii^arii cf. P o n s P o io uk s, Ensayo, 314.
460 A S -S A H A W I S I L A N 461
T R A N S L A T IO N

Ifriqiyah: Ibrahim b. al-Qasim b. ar-Raqiq al-Qayraw ani al- wrote two works on the subject, the larger one, al-Mubin, in s ix ty
Katib,^ in several volumes.
volumes, and the other, al-Miiqtabis, in ten volumes.
Muhammad b. Y u su f al-Warraq.^ A bu 'U m ar b. At,^ Rayhdnat at-tanaffus f i Htlamd' al-Andalus.
Ibn ad-D abbag al-Ansari,^ an author of the seventh/thirteenth A b u Am ir M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Am ir al-Balaw i at-Tarasusi
century of the same generation as al-Mundiri. (atTurtusi),^ Durar al-qald^id wa-giwar al-fawd^id f i ahbdr al-
A b u l- A rab M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Tam im at-Tam im i al- Andahis wa-umard^ihd wa-tahaqdt ^ulamd^ihd wa-hi'^ard'^ihd.
Q ayrawani, the hadit expert, on the tahaqdt of the people of (the city). A b u H ayyan , on Spanish heretics (?).
A b u B ak r al-MaHki dealt w ith the (religious) scholars (of the A b ii A bdallah b. H arit made a compilation of Spaniards.
city) and also w rote a monograph on its servants (of God). ^ The first U m ayyad-M arw anid ruler of Spain was A bd-ar-Rahm an
Spain: ^ Abia Cxalib al-Garnati. b. M u'aw iyah b. H isam b. Abd-al-M alik b. Marwan b. al-H akam
A bu A bdallah al-Humaydi,'^ Jadwat al-Muqtahis. b. A b i l-A s al-Um awi al-Marwani. He ruled thirty-three years.
A bu 1-W alidb . al-Faradi, al-Ihtifdl f i tardjim ar-rijdl, th at is, per A fter him, his son H isam becam e the ruler. His descendants re
sons who were (either born) in Spain or who settled there, from the mained in power until the beginning of the fifth/eleventh century. ^
beginning of the second to the end of the fourth century. Supple Bdb al-abwdb: Mamsiis (??) ad-Darbandi. ^
m ents to Ibn al-Faradi are Ibn B askuw al, as-Silah', A b ii J a 'fa r Bajdyah (Bougie); Ibn al-Hajj.^
b. az-Z u b ayr (123); A bu A bdallah Muhammad b. al-Abbar Al-Cjubrini w rote a monograph on (Bajayah's) excellent men.
al-Q udai al-Andalusi, at-T akmilah \ and Chief Judge A bu Buhdrd: Gunjar Muhammad b. Ahm ad al-Buhari, the hadit expert.'^
Abdallah M uham m ad b. M uhammad b. Abd-al-M alik al-An- His w ork was abridged b y as-Silafi. The original is in m y possession.
sari al-M arrakusi, ad-Dayl wa-t-takmilah li-kitdhay al-MawsuL
Al-Basrah: Ibn D ahjan.
wa-s-Silah, a substantia] work, in several volumes.
A bu M arwan H ayyan b. H alaf b. Husajm b. H ayyan al-Andalusi ^ A h m ad b. H aruu, d. 609/1212 (cf. F . L ev i -P ro ven ^;a l , La Peninsule Iberique, 165,
n. 3, Leiden 1938).
^ D. 559/1164 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 226; G A L , I, 499).
1 Th e w ork is also q uoted b y Ibn Farhuri, Dibdj, 119 (Cairo 13 51); Ibn H ajar, Raf^ al-isr ^ I -ldn has the 400(5). Som e furth er quotations from Spanish histories; 'ly a d , Maddrik,
Paris ms. ar. 2149, fol. 40b.
Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2293, r, fol. 129b, quotes ar-R azi, on the gen ealogy of the Spaniards.
^ D . 363/973-74 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 233). Th e biographers (ad-Dabbi, Bugyat al- T h e History of Spa in b y M uham m ad b. Salih al-M a afiri al-Q ahtani, w ho died some time
multaniis, 131, M adrid 1885, Bibliotheca Arabico-Hispana, 3; al-M aqqari, Analectes, I I, 113 a fter 370/980-81 (cf. also P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 93), is referred to b y as-Sam ^4ni, Ansdb,
D o z y and others, Leiden T885-61) mention works on various N orthw est A frican cities b y
fol. 443b, and quoted b y Sibt b. a l-'A ja m i (d. 884/1480, cf. G A L , II, 70), K u n u z ad-dahab
this author. T h e y m ay be m eant here, b u t cf. also P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 80 f.
f i ta^rih Halab, Ms. Cairo (T aym u r ?) T a M h , 837, p. 27.
* H e appears to be identical w ith the author of the History of al-Qayrawdn, A b u Zayd ^ F or q uotations from an anonym ous h istory of B ab al-abw ab com pleted around 500/1106,
'A b d -a r-R ah m an b. M uham m ad, although the la tte r died nearly half a cen tu ry a fter al-
Mundiri. cf. V . M i n o r s k y , Studies in Caucasian H istory, 3 ff., 1 6 3 ff. (London 1 9 5 3 ) .
^ M uham m ad b . M uham m ad, d. 7 7 1 / 1 3 7 0 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 333; A . G o n z a l e z
* For al-MMiki and his works, cf. above, p. 419, n. 5. Th e Ta?rih. al-Afdriqah, or Ifriqiyah, P a l e n c i a , Historia de la literatura Ar.-Espanola, 194, Barcelona-Buenos Aires 1928; Ibn
b y M uham m ad b. al-H arit (cf. above, p. 418, n. 2), G A L Supplement I, 232, was overlooked
H ajar, Durar, IV , 1 5 5 - 5 7 ) (al-Ballafiqi).
b y as-Sahaw i. It is also q uoted b y 4 yad , Maddrik, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2293, fols. 163b, 167a.
Sic leg. Ahm ad b. A lm iad, d. 714/1315 (cf. G A L , II, 239).
^ For Ibn S a 'id s list of Spanish histories, cf. al-M aqqari, Analectes, II, 122-24 D o z y D . 410/1019-20, or 422/1031, or, according to H ajji H alifah, K a sf az-zunun, II, 117
(Leiden t 8 5 5 - 6 i ) . Cf. also C. P e l l a t , in B. L e w i s and P . i\ f. H o l t , Historians o f the M iddle
F l u g e l , in 412/1021-22, cf. Y a q iit, Irsdd, X V 'II, 2T3 f. (Cairo = V I, 329 M a r g o l i o u t h ) ,
East, 122 f.
from as-Sam ^ant, Ansdb, fol. 4 1 1 b ; E l , 2nd ed., s.v. G hundjar.
H e m ay be id entical w ith Ibn G a lib whose Farhat al-anfus f i ahbdr ahl al-Andalus is G u n ja rs History is quoted, for instance, b y TB, X , 27; Ibn Baskuw al, as-Silah, 205
quoted b y al-M aqqari and whose name is said to be M uham m ad b. A y y u b a l-C a rn a ti C o d e r a ; as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, for instauce, fols. i8 a, looa , 227b, 374b, 443b, 508a, 555a;
(al-M aqqari, Analectes, II, 104, 276, 4 1 7 ) - Cf. Ibn a l-F u w ati, Talhts Majma'^ al-dddb, IV , ad-D ahabi, Tabaqat al-huffdz, gth tab., no. 23 W 'i'S t e n f e l d ; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, I, 355.
II I , 536 f. J a w a d ,
I t w as used by a l-H ayd ari (cf. I X , iig ) . C f . also TB , I, 296, X , 149, 297, X I I , 256.
M uham m ad b. F u tuh , d. 488/1095 (cf. G A L , I, 338).
Th e Additions to C u n ja r s History of Buhdrd b y A hm ad b. M uham m ad al-M am ani
IHdn\ the 40o(s).
(d. 436/1045) are m entioned b y as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fols. 487a, 504a; cf. Y a q iit, Irsdd,
* Al.nnad b. Ibrahim , 627-708I1230-1308 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 733, no. loa). Cf. the X V I I , 213 (Cairo = \T , 329 M a r g o l i o u t h ) , and ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 14th tab.,
edition of his Silat as-Silah b y E . L e v i - P r o v e n ^ a l (R ab at 1938).
no. 2 W ' l S T E n f e l d , where the auth or is called (Ahmad) b. Mama al-Isfahani,
The correct te x t in Ms. Leiden.
M uham m ad b. Ja'-far au-N arsahis History of Buhdrd (cf. above, 160, n. 7; cf. also
" D . 469/1076 (cf. G A L , I, 338). I^ldn reads h icorrectly Abu Surur, instead of A b u as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 74b) was not known to as-Sahawt. Al-P>ayhaqi, Ta^rih-i-Bayhaq,
M arwan. A l-M u b in , according to G A L , appears elsewhere as al-M atin (cf. also as-S afad i,
21, m entions the history of Bu hara and Sam arqand b y a certain SaV l b. Janah.
W dfi, I, 49 R i t t e r ; ad-D ahabi, ^Ibar, III, 270 F u a d S a y y i d [K u w ait 1961]).
* D ihqan ?, cf. below , p. 473, n. 8? H ajji H alifah has Whjdn.
T R A N S L A T IO N 463
462 A S - S A H A W l S I L A N

librarian of the M iistansiriyah Lilrrary in B agdad. (1 2 4 ) Another


U m a r b. S a b b a h .^ H is w o rk is in th e lib r a r y of M u h ib b -a d -d in
thre(ovol;;Tne so*)|oeoo.-oI. wo-, wriLtei; b y Toqi-adoln!, b.
b. a s-S ih n a h .
A bu S a (l (os-Sani'aV'') \v-olo also rho An<;ao ari-l i;u;
B a g d a d : A h m a d b. A b i T a h ir.^
j
whicii C'?ntain ijiogioj'h'ias. Ibn Rafi'^ wrcne a ' 'm i a n d
Ib n Isfa n d iy a r.

A b u B a k r a l-H a tib . H is te n -v o lu m e w o rk is th e m o st co m p re Wafaydl.


/lOLi laokr lo\.",\L:ooii I). . \H cA-a/'Oio ')aoca-j al-
h e n sive one. It h a s b een u sed as th e sta n d a rd referen ce w o rk b y a ll
1si<'-y>i li'l-ii ".''Oj,Iij i.'j.'.', av.o-,. ^'Oo/..a-aa o oai.. o y ^^-lao . , which
la te r (sch o la rs). S u p p le m e n ts to th e H a t i b s w o r k w ere w ritten b y
h e d ii,lv .'0 [033 ,.0 oa'-i^.oavor', .;i-OLOS l. ; aa' thor
A b ii S a 'd 'A b d -a l-K a r im b. M u h a m m a d a s -S a m 'a n i a l-M a rw a zi, in

ten vo lu m .e s, or le ss;"^ b v x\bu S \];)d a lla h M u n a m n i a f *. b . S a i'l b.


of tllV' v a - a > a.; r .
,
ay SA V w oil r c i o ; lo v w io :-o (-rs ,
A li a d -l)u b a y ti, (a co])y of) w h o se wr>rk is in th e p ossi^ ssicm
s u c h ca' 00 ' .'.; r a .3 ^ ; 3/ l
of a s-S ib t ( ? ) , a n d th ere are tw o c o m c s o f il in M c c c a ; b y a l - Q a t i i ;
I s a l h: / . h i . i: ...I. ' r ' / o' aa .
la rbi-ahiio b. A hiriad b.
a n d b y Ib n a n -N a jja r . ( I ' b n a n - N a j i a r s) w o r k is th e m o st su b s ta n
Dn-'-ra-: ...OA^a , ":gaA^:
tia l one. H e in c lu d e d th e m a i iiria ;
i 1 . " ' n a r.i a n -1 Ib n a d -
; ", ''/ :/' " ^ ad in i a l-
D u b a y ti. W ith iiis ov/n a d d d itio 'ii^ r,: ^ i- U ie ( :< r ,ii e to
HaOAn, tao'io' a ' - i A
a ' , ./ ' ; '/U'p ;v-: g vA'i) j 300S o r r - " 0 o r 0 , 3y'A)te a
s e v c n t('o n v o lu m e s iu ilio o. az-
of ;-;i?b. 1 i: i- b a ' lib a A ^ : o r b I b o AAbd. 'ihe
Z a h iri, a p o sse ssio n of tlie of :U
lA k h .i. nf tlie
on(^--voiu'no o' d
a,./"' i3'''A'a:(''b ' :oo'i aa''':'3'a 3 b l ' i : A .d llh ^ m -
a u H ' > ' : a : o ' ; ' : ........ .
w o rk is m issin '^ - A s u n p ic n u 'ii' 'i i '> r.,^1 . of i'l'n / v o l

u m es v.a s ''A 'fitte u T u .i~ a d -d l : S V ii ]\ -'..'riab I). th e


mdais vb o :'.ro o;.: oao'^o w'
incliulc'a o o ' 1 ' O- V, f' a-o o A -;, o ,a ai.o) " a ' a

oi (iV iC crU b. We saoJ t'A 't /:C -A .w b as


D . 2 63/876-77, o r 264 (cf. C / : I . i'T.i !, 2 cr.;. F i n l l i ( . r c r . f . t a t i i ' i . s o f h i s Ji:4 o r y
mofo:giO'Oi; o:' asc ^
o f a l-E a sra h in Y a q u t , < ' i. )'. J . (>/>. c i l . . '< 2: Ib n i la llik a n , 11, 587, IJ I, 632

traw^. D v S l a : \ f . ; i h u lU ij a r , lO , i; ' ; , sou rces k)r ^ i: a, i e o


A._! ; ' b b y a r i
Ibu I ja zi ii w so'-i'- i.ioi'.' \,()i',s (hi i! ( ii ' '1 ( a'l-Aj:u|<}ari, A iia-
'bb"' / ,Aaa; ^xm
l e c l e s , l i , - 1 3 D o z y a ,i d otji 1 I rs 1 1 ti o i >' p , , a.
;:L il?
- Q u o t a t i x a s I'roai (hr '[i 1 u / \ ( i 1 -.Ui v o u . - v i-i Drs^^vrved
-;U U
(cf. abovi , p. \ -;v. !'.; i:c', c i ' ii < 1 / iti,
for instaiif ,', 1 IS, j, it 7; n i 1 1 'iDi.a.i.Aii
(K u w a it io , " o ) ; ' / 11 1 . I 1 al -.\/,ra(i, citio s (of tu;- A ' V . .A. : A i >A b )

H i : ;t o y v o j I: y y ' . t \ . W. . . . 1 i i , '''.j.S, 1 j , ' 'i aMM, ^s .i'JO,


V - toU
II [, {i.j.?, I\ , \V r ! t .\r, O ,' 1 I., ar. 2 1 3 1 ,
IsIpa/, m e o '!io o o ^ l oi b io oo w a a a 'i I'a'i aa :a ;,' AiAA,
ab^ka-
fol. 52.1 ( ill- nl' '//il 1 1 ................1 a ;; i.)a 1, . I, ;i 1 ; ; )).
(/!!<>,..l u . - w > l t/,. ; =- i :il i a ; < ' ;I Ia ; ;/ () 2 5 - a, [ a -p a l )0i. ' i o O ; a'a a aaoa).
b e lA w h o iO A i Al W oW O A.-
A a -b -'a a : oA 'ai: ( ' v ^ b ) o '- bbli b. a l-
app-aai' a: ''iii ai of / '>! ; , a ' - a > i u aa a ' iilat' r, n p . r i ! . , 53; Tipa r b -r a o '--; w rw (<
ai-i\/.ca, ll/a ra',, !, ; .. I, 1 , 11 , \,. aaoa^ :/
>; am. .iaali,.an,
' Cf . a a e a , a, ,i v , a. a.
l\ ', 3 1 : tiaais. i'i- '-I iiai 1, /.'/.a ', i, a/; ( !''.cla(| 1270'j; !Im O a j i r , / i-iin, 1, i-a'aij, I, 3^A^ f-
190, 3,,,:. I. A'ai-is ia>-ia).
M iO a .a a ; d ,,. a . a ' r , !,: - Ail : 3 A. O r ;
* As-Safad i, W cifi, lucutioas a i b a l-^faai liv a r al-'.\a'i/. as tha a\Ul.<>r o f a h i s t o r y
I b u a s - S i S wToti' a / 'a '' ; to lii> w o r. ;, at. l O ' r
of til.- Ora a . I' , -a , f i t . , 4 o ; I b a au-
I Sis l i i Ht n r v III />i:.a 'S ' u o f d i'l a
]uL, ./
ri!', -...ir \\a> used ( x t a a a N i 'K - n v il i- O a i f a l ilO Oa!aa^; i,i tlu' //a.'a'<'-. a (O'. ai.a) l h a r, I , h . O ia - a a a u ) .
\ajja r, f.i'vf (I' l' " ' O r ; '.u'is la.-,. ai', I
a l- la iw at i, / (O/'a'x .i/r//a;a- ul-iul/:!), ! V', t, ;o'a o o a I'a-. J' .Oi>, aa.d a!i'i.,-{-, t>, u. 8. /a f .'f) / clmqiU
| iii ..ao.a 1 ^ 9 .'., i v i ' ra to - '- a
^ i). 6 3 7 / 1 2 3'". (i.-lL , i . 33<a. '.'iiM l'M iio ii o f a d I > I 'a a l i i s a b r id " a a i'it ol' ih a w o r k w a s a I -,a.r- o; Aa!h b y
o f Irie SChoi.ti S of I ;,li ,. .1
b e g u a b y Mu^'i Aia\ J a w .\d i 1 i a O i a t i . i i \ ' . i a 1 ! , ^1. ( O a a d O i iir- e d ito r ua a' a !i. a\'.:;l or A M i s
M u i i a a a lai! h. r'.'ai aiO ,a.i'^,
arg u es f o r I ) a b a \ - t i ^ l o t D a b a ' a i ) a-' t h e ori a a e 'T: 1 ni' liia h i s a i r i n / s iia aca u Lad b. " ' ^ aa 'a 'airi al-
Kraiidl tti.i'f. O a b a a a a a a 'a. >.e 1;, fii.i iie : o ra c- .1.
* lV / .ssib !y tbe Siljt b . a l- ' - A a a a i (ab o\aa a oai ,r ot ' a / A- ef. .irW af ad i,
HaiiA w^lio d i r d ill 3 a /rj2r-2a a r d w ho, .aacar.; o . a r- r n
Mnl aa ta n ia d La A l i n i a d b. ; lar, 3 lao.;.; l/t , 3 236 lO;/) (Wacii'iL, '.i / ' / 1'i , 11-2
I W 071'. l a a a : . a a , ; i : 1 ; . J - o a L . a i , Aa.a. a.. , l A a y . ; .
W fa sT KX ia oa) ; ad-i_)alaibi, D i i w u l ( i ! - l , II, i )<, I h d . a a i b a d i3 r ,!- o 3) . o i^ ania-; i . ".noted '* h i s \ or a ir b A m aaA'-'aofa', o ; A i . r , fol. a ^ b ; 'i'aoat, l/a^/,- a;, 1\ , 6 59
b y I b a Kajalj, P a y ! a l - I J (HiiJInlnh, 1, 0 V> ' a O ^ A i i u A N ;iad I . a o i t s f O ' a i a a s a i - . 13,70/
W fS'ia''.Nlaa. 1a A eeo rda a.; to tlie iudiiaaioa.s fouaei a i \ ;A|aA (e,i. t h e iu d e a lo tlie M u 'jn.>),
1931); Ibu alO '''awat;, I 'a lh h a l - d ih ih , i\ ', 1, 291 f,, -192, 534, s p , j \ 7 , iV ',lIT ,
he h\a-d ai'oi;ad 3ro'ni2.
81, ()(), 472 , 48(), 321 f., 381 j A w a v u ; 'I'aqi- ad -di ii a l- F a s i, iil-'^Iqcl a t - l j i i n h t , ef. .M. A m a k i ,
^ ?, I.e itleu: al -a ^ sd r .
B i b l i u t i ' c a A r a b o - S i c u l a , 659 f. (Leipzig 18 5 7).
464 A S -S A H A W IS I LAN T R A N SL A T IO N 465

F adl b. Tahir al-Balhi ^ who hved close to the time of the afore Elvira: S a id b. Sulaym an b. al-H usayn al-Cafiqi.^
mentioned A bu Ishaq and who had arranged his w ork according Bayhaq: ^Ali b. Zayd.^
to tahaqdt. Takrit: *Abdallah b. Suw ayd at-Takriti, on the scholars {suyuh)
The Kitdh al-Bahjah which was composed about A b u H anifah of (the city).
and his tw o famuh, A bii Y usu f and M uhammad (b. al-H asan as- Tlemcen: between B a ja y a h (Bougie) and F ez
Saybani) and some of their circle, because m ost of them were from Ibn al-Asfar.
Balh. Those of them who would pass the requirements for ac Ibn Hudbah.
ceptance in the w ork are about thirty. The last of them is Tinnis: A b u 1-Qasim Abd-al-M uhsin b. U tm an b. O anaim al-
the ascetic A bu 1-L a yt as-Samarqandi.^ A source (of the Bahjah ?) Hatib,^ al-'-Arus f i faddHl Tinnis, in praise of (the city).
was again the w ork of A bu Ishaq. Tihdmah and al-Hijdz\ Ibn Calib, on the history [ahhdr) of both
The Kitdh al-Kasf^ of "Abdallah b. Muhammad b. Y a qub al- (regions).
Hariti, because it contains a number of Balhis around A bu Hanifah T u n is '. a city in Ifriqiyah in the w est A t-Tam im i, on the jurists
and his chains of transm itters connected w ith (Balh ?) (also was of (the city).
a source of the Bahjah?). fu rjd n : H am zah b. Y u su f as-Sahmi. (His work) is in m y posses
Valencia'. Ibn Alqamah.^ sion. A n abridgm ent was composed b y D iy a -ad-din al-Maqdisi.
Jemsale^n: A b u 1-Qasim M aki b. Abd-as-Salam b. ar-R um ayli A l-fazirah: A bii A rubah al-H u sayn b. M uhammad b. A b i M asar
al-Maqdisi, the hadit expert,^ compiled the history and praise al-Harrani.^ Also his pupil
[fadd^il] of Jerusalem but did not complete (the work).
f i m asjid l liy d b y Ibn an-Najjar (ad-Dahabi, H istory o f Islam , Bodleian ms. or Laud 304,
A bii B akr Muhammad b. A hm ad b. Muhammad al-W asiti al-
foL 194b).
H atib compiled the praise [faddHl, of the city), in one quire. A great history of Jerusalem and a sound fascicle in praise of Hebron appears to
have been written b y am s-ad-din Muhammad al-Kanji as-Sufi (d. 682/1283), cf. Ibn Rafi',
Salah-ad-din (125) Abii S a 'id H alil b. K a yk ald i al-A la i.
M untahab al-muhtdr, Ta^rih ^ulamd'^ Bagddd, 200 (Bagdad 1357/1938), and M ugultay, al-
A bu Mansur < . . . . ? > W ddih al-m ubin, 176 S p i e s (Stuttgart ig^6, Bonner Orientalistische Studien 18). For another
seventh/thirteenth century work on the fadd^il of Jerusalem, cf. H ajji ^lalifah, K a s f az-
Tm ad-ad-din Muhammad b. Muhammad b. Hamid al-Isbahani
zu n u n , I, 454 F l u g e l . Cf., further, Ibn Hajar, D urar, IV , 251.
al-K M ib, al-Fath al-Qussi f i l-fath al-Qiidsi, in two volumes. 1 Mutarrif b. 'Isa al-6assani wrote on the poets of Elvira, cf. E l I a s T e r s , in A l-A n d a lu s,
X I , 138 f. (1946). Mutarrifs Ta^rih of Elvira is quoted b y Ibn Farhun, Dthdj, 174 (Cairo
The hadit expert Abri B ak r b. Muhibb-ad-din abstracted those
1 351). A H istory o f (the Scholars of) E lv ira b y A bu 1-Qasim Muhammad b. Abd-al-W ahid
who settled in Jerusalem. al-Gafiqi al-Mallahi (d. 619/1222) is mentioned b y his student ar-Ru'ayni, B arndm aj, 64
S a b b i j h (Damascus 1381/1962), in as-Safadis W dfi, IV , 68 D e d e r i n g , and in the Ihatah
Burhan-ad-din Ibrahim b. Taj-ad-din Abd-ar-Rahm an b. Ibra (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , En sayo, 273). A work on the jurists of Elvira was supposedly written
him b. Sab ba' al-Fazari b. al-Firkah,^ BdHt an-nufus '-aid ziydrat b y Isa b. Muhammad (d. 403/1012, cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , E n sa yo, 108).
al-Quds al-mahrus, in one quire. ^ Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq (Teheran 1317/1939).
^ Abdallah b. ^Ali b. Suwayd, who was mentioned b y Ibn an-Najjar, cf. IJajji ^alifah,
K a s f az-zunun, II, 122 F l u g e l , died 584/1188. I^ldn has Suwaydah.
* Wrote before 413/1022-23 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 548).
1 D . 323/934-35 X I I , 47 i-)- E . A m a r , in J A , X , 19, 261, n. 4 (1912), referred in this connection to a H istory b y
^ A p p a r e n tly , N a sr b. M u h a m m a d , I m a m al-h u d a, fo u rth /teu th ce iitu ry (cf. G A L , I, A bu G alib Humam b. al-Facjl b. al-Muhaddab al-Magribi, but according to Y aqut, Mu^jam
195 i-). (cf. also Ibn al-'Adim, B ugyat at-talab, Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 13a), that work had nothing
^ K a s f a l-d td r. I'o r a l- H a r iti, cf. a b o v e , p. 449, n. 4. to do with this particular area. I do not know whether C, C a h e n , L a Syrie du N ord, 44, n. 3
^ M u h a m m a d b. al-H a laf, d. ^ o g liiG (Ib n a l-A b b a r, 145, no. 5 14 C o d era , M a d rid ^Paris 1940), in ascribing a history of the H ijaz to Humam, had A m ars suggestion in mind,
1886-89, B ih lio th eca A ra b ic o -H isp a n a , 6; E . L e v i-P ro v e n ^ a l, Isla m d O c cid cn t, 192 ff., or whether he had independent information.
P a ris 1948). His work is also quoted b y as-Sam'ani, Ansdb, passim-, Ibn al-'Adim , Bugyat at-talab,
D . 492/1099 (as-S am '^ an i, A n sd b , fo l. 259b). Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 45a; ad-Dabbi, Bugyat al-multamis, 462 (Madrid 1885, Bibliotheca
Id e n tica l w ith M u h a m n ia d b. '^ A b d a lla h , 7 1 2 or 713-78 9 /13 13 -8 7 (Ib n l.Ia ja r, D u r a r , III, A ra bica -H ispa n a, 3). The incomplete text of the unique Bodleian manuscript was published
4 6 5 ; G . V a jd a , L es C ertifica ts dc lecturc 35 [P a ris 19 57]), a n d w ith the Ib u M u h ib b -a d -d ia in Hyderabad 1369/1950. A work on the tunnd^ (landholders, doubtful reading) of Jurjan
m e n tio n e d a b o v e , p p . 4 3 7 an d 439. b y A bu YaHa Muhammad b. al-Husayn is mentioned b y as-Sahmi, 411 f.
D . 729/1320 (cf. G A L , II, 130). I'o r h is sources, cf. th e e d itio n b y C . D . M a tth e w s, The F ih rist (above, p. 381, n. 4) states that he wrote only one work and does not men
in J o u rn a l o f the P a le stin e O rien ta l S o ciety , X I\ ', 284-93 (1934), X V , 51-8 7 (1935). tion his histories of the Jazirah and ar-Raqqah, but the Ta^rth al-Jazartyin is quoted b y
O n e m ig h t e x p e c t a s-S a h a w i to m e n tio n h ere a w o r k su ch as th e K a ifd a t a l-aw liy d ^ as-Sam'am, A nsdb, fols. i6 ia , 306a; Y aqut, Mu^jam, cf. F . J. H e e r , op. cit., 35.

R o sen th al , H istory of Muslim Historiography 30


466 A S -S A H lw fs I l A n TRANSLATION 467

A b u 1-H asan A li b. al-H asan b. A llan al-Harrani, the hadit A l^-ad-din b. H atib-an-N asiriyah, in several volum es, and, be
expert, 1 on the history of (the region). fore him, b y Ibn A s a ir.^
Algeziras: in Spain Emesa {Hims): A hm ad b.
Ibn Hamis.2 A bd-as-Sam ad b. S a id, on the men around M uhamm ad who
Ibn a l-Q a tta ,^ on the poets of (the Island!). settled there.
A b u 1-H asan A li b. BassS-m/ ad-Dahnah f i mahdsin ahl al- A b u B a k r b. Sadaqah.
Jazirah, in w hich he used as his basic w ork of reference the History Hurds an: A l-Abiw ardi.
of A b u Marwan b. H ayyan, in several volumes. A l-H akim , on the history {ahhdr) of Hurasanian (religious)
Harrdn: A b u t-T a n a H am m adb. H ib a ta M h b. H am m ad b. al-Fadl scholars.
A b u Z ayd al-Balhi, on the good qualities and actions of the Hu-
al-Harrani,^ on the history of (the city). A b u 1-Mahasin b. Salam ah
b. H alifah al-H arrani completed (H am m ads) work. Sayf-ad-din rasanians.^
A b u 1-H usayn A li b. A hm ad as-Sallami,^ on the history of the
A b u M uhamm ad A bd-al-Gani b. M uhammad b. T aym iyah al-
H arrani w rote (a copy of) it in his own handwriting. governors of (Hurasan). I h ave come across the abridgm ent of the
w ork b y the hadit expert Jam al-ad-din A b u 1-Mahasin Y u su f b.
Aleppo: A b u 1-Faw aris H am den b. A bd-ar-Rahim b. H am dan
Ahm ad b. Mahmud al-Yagm uri, the autograph (copy of the author),
at-Tam im i al-Ataribi, later al-Halabi, al-Qut, a history of (the
in several quires.
city) from the year 490/1996-97 on. T he w ork comprises the history
[ahhdr], times, and Syrian expedition of the Franks, from the ^ M uham m ad b. 'A li, d. 789/1387 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , 85 f.). H e w as also the author
of a History of Qinnasrin, en titled an-Nastartn f t ta^rih Qinnasrin (H ajji ^lalifah, Ka^f az~
mentioned year on.
zunun, I I , 94, no. 2059, and I I , 142, no. 2283 F l u g e l : Tajan-nisrtn). T h e w ork is m entioned
KamM -ad-din U m ar b. A hm ad b. a l-Adim , Bugyat at~talab, b y (M uham mad b. Ibrahim ) Ibn al-H anbali (d. 971/1563, cf. G A L , I I , 368), Durr al-habab,
Paris ms. ar. 5884, fol. 4b, from the d raft of S ib t b. a l-'A ja m i s KunHz ad-dahab. A s Ibn
a substantial w ork on the history of (the city). I have come across H aja r did not m ention it, the w ork escaped as-Sahaw is attention.
a large part of the work. Supplements to it were w ritten (126) b y A l-H asan b . 'U m ar b. H abib w rote Lladrat an-nadtm m in Ta^rih Ibn al-^Adim, as he
him self says in his Durrat al-asldk, Bodleian ms. or. M arsh 223, fol. 43b, anno 660. There
were a num ber of other works on the h istory of Aleppo w hich as-Sahaw i m ight h ave m en
^ Ibn A lla n s w ork is quoted b y as-Sam 'am , Ansdb, fol. 442a. The author is m entioned tioned. Some notes on the historians of Aleppo are also to be found in 'A b b a s a l-'A zzaw i,
in T B , I I , 1333 i-
at-Ta'-rif bi-l-mu^arriMn, I, 77 ff.
2 On the a u th o rity of H a jji H alifah, P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 187, thought of 'A b d -al- A h m ad b . M uham m ad b. 'Isa , third/eighth cen tury {TB, V , 63). H is w ork is quoted
J a b b a r b. A b i B a k r b. H am dis (cf. G A L , I, 269 f., cf. also the edition of his Dtwdn b y
b y a s-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 380a.
I h s a n ' A b b a s [B eiru t 1379/1960]). Ensayo, 331 f., refers to A b u B a k r b. ^ am sin (?), ^ Th e nam es could refer to Ju d ge W a k i' w ho is un likely to be m eant here. W hether this
from the Ihdtah and H a jji FJalifah. Th e author of the History of Malaga {IHdn, 25, above, author of the history of Em esa is identical w ith Judge A b u B a k r b. Sadaqah
p. 300) is probab ly m eant here.
(d. 490/1097) of M ayyafariqin who figures in the h istory of M ayyafariqin b y Ibn al-A zraq ?
3 'A li b . J a 'fa r , d. 514/1120, or 515 (cf. G A L , I, 308, Supplement I, 540). T h e Island * No such w ork b y A b u Z a yd al-B alh i is m entioned in the rather exten sive bibliographies
is Sicily!
of the F ihrist and Y a q u t. Y a q u t, it is true, has a FaddHl Balh am ong A b u Z a y d s works
* D . 542/1147-48, or 543 (cf. G A L , I, 339).
{IrSdd, I I I , 68, Cairo = I, 143 M a r g o l i o u t h ).
H e died in 598/1202 (Ibn a l-'Im M , Sadardt, IV , 335, Cairo 1350-51; Ib n K a tir, Bidd yah , I t should, how ever, be noted th at as-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fols. 212a, 245b, (and al-B ayhaq i,
X I I I , 33 f.). A m anuscript of Ibn 'A b d -a l-B arrs Istidkdr was w ritten for him in 573/1177-78 TaM h-i-Bayhaq, 21, 138, 154, 255), quote a M afdhir Hurdsdn b y the fam ous M u'tazilah
(cf. Y . a l-'Iss, F ih tis mahtutdt Ddr al-Kutub az-Zdhirtyah, 274, Dam ascus 1366/1947), A b u 1-Qasim al-B alh i (cf. above, p. 430, n. 8), and as-Safadi, W dft, Bodleian ms. or. Seld.
and in the same year, the History of ar-Raqqah w as studied under him in A lexan d ria, accord Arch. A . 24, fol. 19b, m en tion s such a book among his works. T he F ihrist {ZDM G, X C , 305
ing to the stu d y notes in Phot. Cairo T a ym u r T a rih 2490, p. 28. The w ork is quoted b y [1936]) does not have this inform ation in the list of the works of A b u 1-Qasim b u t cites his
Ib u a l-'A d im , Bugyat at-talab, Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 9b (life of Ishaq b. Nasr). M ahdsin H urdsdn in connection w ith Ibn ar-R aw an di, according to the fragm ent published
C f . also C. C a h e n , La Syrie du Nord, 36, n. 12 (Paris 1940); H ajji H alifah, K a S f az- b y M. T . H o u t s m a , in W Z K M , IV , 217 ff. (1890), and republished as an appendix to the
zunun, II, 125 F l u g e l . T h e W dft has M ahasin b. H alifah. Cairo 1348 edition of the F ihrist. In Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq, 21 an d 255, the title is Ta^rih Nisdbur
A n older w ork is A b u 'A m r as-Sulam is (?) History o f the Harrdnians, q uoted b y as-Sam 'ani, and M afdhir Nisdbur, respectively.
Ansdb, fol. 134 b.
It is w ell possible th at there existed such a w ork b y the M u'tazilah A b u 1-Qasim and
581-639/1185-1241 (Ibn al-'Im ad , Sadardt, V , 204 f.). He is the son of the Ibn T a y m iya h th at his w ork w as e r r o n e o u s l y ascribed b y Y a q u t and as-Sahaw i to the fam ous A b u Z ayd
m entioned in G A L Supplem ent II, 1024, and the father of 'A bd-al-Q ahir w ho died in 6 y il whose geographical interests were well-known.
1272-73 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 264). Cf. above, p. 321, n. 7. A n other h istory of H urasan, w ritten not m uch later than as-
D. after 554/1159 (Y aq u t, Irsdd, X , 272-74, Cairo = IV , 143 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ) . H is S allam i, w as the Farid at-ta^rih f t ahhdr Hurdsdn b y a certain A b u 1-H asan M uham m ad b.
History is quoted b y Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talab, Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 185a (life of Aqsun- S ulaym an b. M uham m ad. It is quoted b y Y a q u t, IrSdd, I V , 192 (Cairo = II, 60 M a r g o
qur b. Abdallah), cf. also C. C a h e n , La Syrie du Nord, 41 f. (Paris 1940).
l i o u t h ).
468 AS-SAH AW t s 1 l A n TRANSLATION 469

Hebron'. M aki b. Abd-as-Salam ar-Rum ayli, on the pilgrim age A b u Ism ail M uhamm ad b. A bdallah al-Azdi al-Misri and al-
{ziydrah) to (the city).^ W aqidi w rote on the Conquest (of the c ity b y the Muslims).
Huwdrizm: The rehgious leader and hadit expert A b u Muhammad A b u 1-H asan A ll b. M uhamm ad b. S u ja a r-R a b a i ^ and Ibrahim
M ahmud b. Muhammad b. A bbas b. Arslan al-Huwarizmi,^ the b. Abd-ar-Rahm,n al-Fazari ^ w rote on the praise {faddHl) of
author of the Kitdb al-Kdfi f i l-fiqh, a contem porary of A b u 1-Qasim (the city).
b. Asakir. His w ork (on Huwarizm) consists of about eight v o l A b u H udayfah Ishaq b. B isr al-Qurasi,^ The Conquest o f Syria,
umes. The hadit expert ad-D ahabi derived m aterial from it.^ A sia M inor {Rum), Egypt, the '-Irdq, and the Magrih.
Muzhir-ad-din al-K asi> A hm ad b. al-M ualla ad-D im asqi, a fascicle on the main
Ddrayyd: A b u A ll A bd-al-Jabbar b. A bdallah al-Hawlani. mosque of Dam ascus and its construction.
Damascus'. Ibn Asakir, in eigh ty volumes. The m anuscript in the Dunaysir: A b u H afs U m ar b. al-H idr at-T urki al-M utatabbib
M ahm udiyah has fifty-seven volumes. The author starts w ith ad-D unaysiri, H ilyat as-sariyin min hawdss ad-Dunaysiriyin.
inform ation {aJihdr) about the city. This is followed b y a biography Ar-Raqqah: A b u A li Muhamm ad b. S a id b. Abd-ar-Rahm an
of the Prophet which ends w ith a chapter on the prayer for him. al-Qusayri (127) al-Harrani.
This fills three volumes and something. The author then goes into A b ii A rubah al-H usayn b. M uhammad b. M awdud al-Harrani.
the names, starting with the Ahm ads. His son al-Qasim w rote Ar-Rayy: A b u 1-H asan b. Babawayh.^
a supplement to (the work). Abridgm ents of the History of Ibn A b u Mansur al-Abi.^
A sakir were w ritten b y al-Fadili; A bu Sam ah who also wrote Zabid: Um arah b. (Abi) al-Hasan al-H akam i al-Yam ani as-
a supplem ent to it , in two recensions, a large one and a small M ii al-Faradi, the p oet,ii al-M ufid f i ahbdr Zahid.
one; U m ar b. al-H ajib, in five volumes, of which the last, a big Sdmarrd: Ibn A b i l-Barakat.^^
volum e, e x ists; and ad-Dahabi, in ten fascicles in his handw riting. 1 In the edition of ar-R ab a ^is FaddHl as-Sa^m wa-DimaSq b y S. a l -M u n a j j i d (D am ascus
1950), the d ate of his death is in d icated as 444/1052-53, as again st G A L , I, 330 f., where
^ Daw^, II, 276, m entions a sim ilar w ork b y Ishaq b. Ibrahim at-Tadm uri, d. 833/1430. 435/1043-44 is given.
* D. 568/1172-73 (cf. G. B e r g s t r a s s e r , in Zeitschrift fu r Sem itistik, I I, 205, 1926). H is H is w ork, en titled al-IHdm bi-fadd^il aS-Sa^m, is a faith fu l abridgm ent of a r-R a b a 'is
w ork is quoted b y Y a q u t, Mu^jam, I I I , 343 W u s t e n f e l d ; IrSdd, I X , 191 (Cairo = III , w ork, cf. the edition o f the la tter. In his w ork on Jerusalem (above, p. 464, n. 7), he used,
212 M a r g o l i o u t h ) ; ad-D ahabi, History o f Islam , Bodleian ms. or. Laud 304, fol. 251a, according to G A L Supplement II, 161, the Fadd^il al-Quds wa-S-Sa^m of A b u 1-M a'ali al-
am ong the biographies of the year 562; as-Safadi, W afi, IV , 179 D e d e r i n g ; as-Subki, M usarraf b. al-M urajja al-M aqdisi (cf. G A L Supplement I, 567).
Tabaqdt as-SdfiHyah, V , 10, 305 f. (Cairo 1324); 'A b d -al-Q ad ir al-Q urasi, al-Jawdhir al- T h e FaddHl a^-Sa^m, Ms. Cairo (TaM h) Majami*^ 519, fols. i3b-24b, is ascribed to as-
mudtyah, II, 372 (H yderabad 1332); al-Fasi, al-^Iqd at-tamin (life of M uham m ad b. A h m ad Sam^ani (cf. G A L Supplement I, 565), b u t this ascription seems to be rather doubtful.
b. A b i S a 'id ); Ibn a l-F u w ati, TalMs Majma^ al-dddb, IV , I I I , 468 J a w a d . ^ A b u H u dayfah w as a client of the B anu Hasim , and his nisbah u su ally is Buh&ri,
T h e inform ation on Ibn A rslan s w ork we h ave here is found in al-F asi, loc. cit., who or B a lh i, or Hur&sani.
quotes ad-D ahabi. Third/ninth cen tury, if he is identical w ith the scholar of th is nam e m entioned b y
^ T h is seems to be the reading of the nisbah in Ms. Leiden, b u t only id entification of the Y a q u t, Mu^jam, cf. W i j s t e n f e l d s index. H e died in 286/899, cf. S. ad-D ahhan s edition
author can decide w hether it is correct. A l-H asan b. al-M uzaffar an-N isaburi, who died in of Ib n Saddad, al-AHdq al-hatirah, 33 (intro.), 269, n. 2 (D am ascus 1375/1956); S. al-M imaj-
442/1051, w rote Ziydddt ahbdr Huwdrizm (Y aq u t, Irsdd, I X , 193, Cairo = III, 213 M a r g o jid , in Revue de IInstitut des M anuscrits Arabes, II, 68 (1956).
l i o u t h ). A l-B iru n i, too, is said to h ave w ritten stories on H u w arizm (Y aq u t, Irsdd, X V I I , * Al-M aqrizi, Hitat, I, 177, 184 (B ulaq 1270), refers to a History o f Damiette, which,
185, Cairo = V I, 311 M a r g o l i o u t h ; M u ^jam, II, 483 W i j s t e n f e l d ), b u t no such w ork is how ever, m a y be a conquest novel.
m entioned b y al-B irun i in his Risdlah f l fih rist kutub Muhammad h. Zakariyd^ ar-Rdzi. W rote around 610/1213-14 (cf. G A L , I, 333. T h e w ork is quoted b y al-Q ifti, 290 M u l l e r -
A l-B a y h a q i, Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq, 2 1, mentioixs tw o m ore histories of H uw arizm . L ip p e r t .
D . betw een 365/975-76, and 370/980-81 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 210), above, p. 168. * D . 334/945-46 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 210; as-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 257b, also i8 ob,
A d -D ah abi states th at he had studied the History of Ddrayyd, cf. his Tabaqdt al-qurrd^, 440a). A ph otostat of the Dam ascus m anuscript of the w ork is in Cairo T a y m u r Ta^rilj 2490.
Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 1537, p. 234. I t has been published in H am ah 1378/1959.
A l-Q asim b. 'A li, d. 600/1203 (cf. G A L , I , 331). A volum e of his D a y l is preserved in the * F req u en tly quoted b y Ibn H ajar, Lisd n , for instance, IV , 81, V , 70, 83, 87, 89, 103,
Z ahiriyah , cf. the catalogue b y Y . a l - ' I s , 129 f., and the introduction of the new edition 105, 388, 394. Ibn B a b a w a y h s D a y l (Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V , 317) m ay be a supplem ent to the
of the Ta^rih Dimasq b y S. a l -M u n a j j i d which began to appear in Dam ascus 1371/1951. History of ar-Rayy.
F or a m anuscript in his handwriting, cf. Islam ic Culture, X V I , 352 f. (1942). H is H istory" is m entioned b y at-T a'M ibi, Yatim ah, I, 100 (D am ascus 1304); Y& qut,
A s-Safad i m entions a supplem ent b y Sadr-ad-din al-H asan b. M uham m ad al-B akri, Mu'-jam, IV , 431 W u s t e n f e l d .
d. 656/1258, which apparently is not identical w ith a n y of the works m entioned here (cf. U m arah b. ^Ali, d. 569/1174 (cf. G A L , I, 333 f . ; S . M. S t e r n , in Oriens, I V , 212, n. i
E . A m a r , in / . 4 , X , 19, 253, n. i, 1912). Th e autograph m anuscripts of Ibn M anzurs abridg [1951]). F or the w ork w ith an identical title b y JayyaS b. N ajah , cf. above, p. 159.
m ent are in Istan b u l, K op riilii 1148-51, cf. M. W e i s w e i l e r , Der islamische Bucheinband, A History of Sdmarrd is quoted b y as-Safadi, W dft, Bodleian ms. or. Seld. Arch.
160 (W iesbaden 1962). A . 29, fol. 138a (life of Y u n us b. A y y u b al-'A skari), through Ibn as-Sa'^i.
470 a s - sa h Aw ! s i l A n T R A N S LA TIO N 471

Ceuta: lyad.^ Sinhdjah:


Samarqand: A b u 1- A bbas al-Mustagfiri. Tyre: 6 a y t al-Arm anazi.^
A b u S a d Abd-ar-Rahm an b. Muhammad b. 'A b d aM h b. Idn s Tdbah: I.e., Medina.
al-Idrisi al-Astarabadi, the hadit expert. Tripolis: In the Mu^jam as-safar, as-Silafi said: A b u 1-H asan
U m ar b. M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Ism ail an-Nasafi,^ al-Qand A li b. A bdallah b. M ahbub at-Tarabulusi * w rote a little history
f t dikr 'ulamd^ Samarqand. The w ork was abridged b y D iy a -ad-din of (Tripolis). I h ave come across it and selected from it the things
al-Maqdisi. I considered remarkable. T h e author has taken down much m ate
Segura: a district in Spain in (near?) Cordoba rial (on various subjects) on m y authority. He (orally) communi
Ibn Idris. cated to me (the History of Tripolis).
Sirdz: A b u A bdallah Muhammad b. A b d -al-A ziz b. A hm ad b. Toledo: Ibn Muzahir.
A bd-ar-R ahm an as-Sirazi al-Qass^r. Also Al-'-Irdq: Ibn al-Q&.tuli.^
A b u 1-Qasim as-irazi,^ who combined (Siraz) w ith (the whole A hm ad b. (Abi?) Tahir.
of) Fars. As-Siili.
upper Egypt: A li b. A b d -al-A ziz al-K,tib. 'Asqaldn: A b u M uhamm ad A hm ad b. M uhamm ad b. U b ayd
K am al-ad-din J a far al-Udfuwi, at-Tdli^ as-saHd al-jdmi^ li-l- b. Adam, on the praise {faddHl) of (the city).
fu d a W wa-r-ruwdh hi-aHd as-SaHd, in one alphabetically arranged
volume.
a n y h istorical inform ation a t all in the m anuscript. I t m ay, how ever, be observed th at al-
Safad: M uhammad b. A bd-ar-R ahm an a l-Utm ani, Judge of Jan ad i, in the introduction o f the Suliik, describes Ishaq s w ork as a slender [lattf) w ork
(Safad ).5 w hich has a num ber of useful notes. A l-Jan ad i does n ot give the im pression (which appears
to be intended b y as-Sa^iawi, below , p. 484) th at Ish aq s w ork contained chronologically
Sicily: A b u Z a y d al-Camri. arranged h istorical inform ation. H ow ever, unless a com parison of the A lexan d ria m anu
script w ith al-Janadi should prove me w rong, I am inclined to believe th at the ascription
San'-d^: Ishaq b. Jarir az-Zuhri,'^ a slender, instructive work.
of the m anuscript to Ishaq is n ot correct. Its relationship to a r-R azis History o f San^d^
1 T h e w ork, en titled al-Funun as-sittah, w as left unpublished according to the Ihdtah. rem ains to be investigated .
For a w ork on the scholars and pious men of the c ity b y M uham m ad b. A b i B a k r al-H adra- ^ T h e b lank space here, as w ell as under L am tfln ah and al-M asam idah, m a y h ave its
m i, cf. G A L Supplem ent I I, 338. origin in the fa c t th a t as-Safadi m entions an anonym ous History o f Three Berber Tribes.
D . 537/1142 (cf. G A L , I, 427 f.. Supplement I, 762, X I I ). T h e Qand is v e ry often quoted, ^ G a y t b. 'A ll, d. 509/1115 (Y aq u t, Mu'^jam, I, 218 W u s t e n f e l d ; as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb,
for instance, in al-B undari, History o f Bagdad, Paris m s. ar. 6152, fol. 8b (life of A h m ad b. fol. 26b). He is a different person from the G a y t b. 'A lt as-Suri who w as a teacher and
Ism a 'il b. N asr); as-Sam ^ani, Ansdb, fol. 194b. C f. also W . B a r t h o l d , Turkestan down to colleague of the IJatib al-B agdad! (cf. Y a q u t, Ir^dd, IV , 15, 21, Cairo = I, 246, 249 M a r
the Mongol Invasion, 15 f. (London 1928, E . J . W . Gibb M em. Series, N .S ., 5). ; Ib n al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I I I , 266).
g o l io u t h
Ib n a l-F u w ati, TalM s Majma^ al-dddb, IV , I II , 555 J a w a d , quotes his Tabaqdtahl Sirdz. Ph ot. Cairo Ta^rih 3932, p . 299. In the Mu^jam, the la st sentence of the above quo
H is History o f Pars is q uoted b y as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fols. 28b, 141b, 193b, 428b. tation properly precedes the one before it.
* H ib atallah b. *^Abd-al-Warit, d. 485/1092-93 (Ibn al-Jaw zt, Muntazam, I X , 74 f.; Ibn * D . 522/1128 (Y a q u t, Mu^jam, I I I , 523 W u s t e n f e l d ).
K sith , B iddy ah, X I I , 144; cf. as-Safadi, Wdfi). Cf. F. J . H e e r , op. cit., 38. H e e r s ascription S ic W dfi. Ms. Leiden: A l-'A tu b i (?).
of a H istory o f Strdz to A b u H assan az-Ziyadi, on the strength of Y a q u t, Mu'-jam, III , Ibn H ajar, Mu^jam al-mufahras, Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 82, p. 157, m entions a
350 WtrsTENFELD, is erroneous. pam phlet (juz^) containing the praise (fadl) of 'A sq a lan w hich w as studied w ith {quri^a ^ald)
' W rote around 780/1378-79 (c f. G A L , II, 91). Cf. also G A L Supplem ent, I, 568. A b u M uham m ad A h m ad b. M uham m ad b. 'U b a y d b. A d am a l-'A sq a la n i. Ibn H aja rs
* C i.M . A u A m , Storia dei M usulm ani d i S icilia , I, 37 f. (2nd edition b y G . L e v i d e l l a choice of words leaves it open w hether Ibn A d am w as the author of the w ork or one of its
V i d a and C. A . N a l l i n o , Catan ia 1933-39). For quotations from Ibn al-Qgitta^'s History o f transm itters. Th e form er a ltern a tiv e is b y fa r the m ore lik e ly one. A d am al-'A sqalan i
S icily (Y aq u t, IrSdd, X I I , 282, Cairo = V , 107 M a r g o l i o u t h ), cf. F. J . H e e r , op. cit., 43; died 220/835 (al-Buhari, Ta^rih, I, 2, 39 f.; T B , V I I I , 27-30). H is grandson M uham m ad is
Ibn al-F u w ati, Talhis Majma'- al-dddb, IV , i , 114, 301, IV , III , 557 J a w a d . See also m entioned b y as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 390a; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V , 276.
above, p. 466, n. 3. F or Ib n H aw q als S icily w hich was no h istorical w ork, cf. F. A w ork on the fadaHl of 'A sq a lan is m entioned b y as-Silafi, Mu^jam, Phot. Cairo T a rih
G a b r i e l i , in R S O , X X X V I , 249 (1961). 3832, p. 30: W e heard him , i.e. (al-H usayn b. 'A li b. Ahm ad) al-Jizi (?), sa y: Ibn at-
Ms. Leiden: San'a^: M entioned below under the Y e m e n . T arju m an (i), the h ead of the S ufis in D am ascus-Syria, used to transm it a book on the
Cf. IHdn, 134, below , p. 484, and G A L Supplement I I I , 1268. The A lexan d ria m anuscript faddHl of 'A sq a lan w hich contained m an y traditions. W hen 'A b d -a l-'A z iz (b. Muhammad)
7225 (T aM h 3682g), to w hich G A L refers, is incom plete a t the beginning, although perhaps an-N ah sabi cam e there, he studied the book w ith Ibn at-Tarjum an(i) and sta ted th at it
no m ore than one folio is missing. It is dated S afar 992/1584. On the fly-leaf, it has a modern contained on ly tw o sound tradition s. M uham m ad b. al-H usayn b. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b.
lib ra ry note to the effect th a t the author of the w ork is Ishaq b. Jarir as-San'ani. In the at-T arju m an i died after 440/1048-49 (as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 105a). According to the slightly
m anuscript, there is no reference to the author, as far as I could ascertain in the short garbled notice in Ibn al-'Im ad , Sadardt, I II , 278 (Cairo 1350-51), he died in 448/1056. I t
tim e I had at m y disposal for stu dying the m an u script. The w ork ends more or less w ith is possible b u t not lik e ly th at this w ork is identical w ith th at of A h m ad b. M uham m ad
the tim e of the m en around M uham m ad. T h ere is no later h istory; in fact, there is h ard ly b. 'U b a y d . A rab ic te x t, below, p. 610.
472 a s -s a h a w ! s i l An T R A N S LA T IO N 473

'Askar Mukram: A bu Ahm ad al-H asan b. A b d a M h b. S a id Before (ar-RM ii), A b ii Y a la al-H alil b .Abdalia.h al-Halili ^
a l-Askari. (wrote a History o f Qazwin).
Gdziydn: Under Abiward. QaVat Yahsub: Ibn S a id should be checked w ith at-Tdli'^ as-saHd
Granada: Lisan-ad-din b. al-H atib, al-Ihdtah, a valuable work. f i ta'^rih \Qal'-at'\ Bant Sa^^id.^
(128) A n autograph (copy of the work) is waqf p roperty of the Al-Qayrawdn: A b u l- A rab as-Sinhaji.^
Sa^id as-suad a \ Badr-ad-din al-B astaki m ade an abridgm ent Ibrdhim b. al-Qasim al-Qayrawani.^
of it, Markaz al-Ihdtah f t udahd^ Garndtah.'^ A b u Z a y d Abd-ar-Rahm.n b. Muhammad a l-A n sm , Ma'-dlim
A bu AbdalM h Muhammad b. M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Mu al4 mdn wa-rawddt ar-ridwdn min 'ulamd^ al-Qayrawdn. In the pref
ham m ad b. Ju za y y al-C>arn^ti al-Adib,^ who died in 756/1355, on ace, (the author) said th at among the Q ayrawanians, A b u B akr
the history of (the city). The larger portion of the w ork is available. Abdall^h b. M uhammad al-Maliki w rote the Riydd an-nufus,
He is earlier than Ibn al-Hatib. and A b u B ak r A tiq b. H alaf at-T ujibi w rote al-Iftihdr. A b u 1-
Fdrs: Mentioned above under Siraz. Q^sim A bd-ar-R ahm an b. Muhammad b. R asiq and others, such
Fez: Ibn *Abd-al-Karim. as A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. S a dun, (also w rote works on
Ibn A b i Z a r . the Qayrawanians).^
A z-Zulayhi (?). Kass: A b u l-A bbas J a 'fa r (b. Muhammad) b. al-Mu'^tazz al-Mus-
C airo: tagfiri, the hadit expert.
Cordoba: Az-Zahr&,wi.^ K ufan: Under Abiw ard.
Ibn Mufrih (?). should be checked w hether he (it) is different A l-K u jah: Ibn MujMid.
from the former. Um ar b. Sabbah.
Ibn H ayyan , on the jurists of (the city). A b u 1-Hasan M uhammad b. Ja 'fa r b. Muhammad b. Harun
A b u A bdallah b. H arit, on the Q ayrawanians (?). b. Farw ah at-Tam im i al-K ufi an-Nahwi b. an-Najjar.
Qazwin: Im am -ad-din A b u 1-Qasim a r-R a fii, at-Tadwin. The m an 1 A b u Y a 4 a is an often quoted source of ar-Rafi^i, Tadwin, who also m entions (Phot.
Cairo Ta^rih 2648, p. 297 f.) th a t A b u Y a 'la w as a source of the H atib al-B agd ad i and w as
uscript which is at the basis (of the known copies) was in the
m entioned b y Ibn MMiula, Ikm dl (II I , 174), and Siraw ayh, History o f Hamaddn.
library of A la -ad-din b. H atib-an-N asiriyah. Ibn H ajar copied 2 Ihdtah: T h e H isto ry of Q a l'a t Y ah su b called at~Tdli^ as-sa-dt (!) b y A b u 1-Hasan b.
Sa'-id. The w ell-know n historian (above, p. 308, n. i) w as born in Qal*-at Y ah su b (Alcala la
several quires of excerpts from the m anuscript when he w as in
Real) and w rote the fam ily h istory, cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 308.
Aleppo in the year (836/1432-33). I t then cam e into the possession T h e reference is clearly to al-Jam^ wa-l-baydn f i ahbdr al-Qayrawdn b y 'Izz-ad -d in
A b u l-*^Arab ^Abd-al-'^Azfz b. Saddad al-Q ayraw ani, w ho studied in D am ascus w ith Ibn
of Muhibb-ad-din b. as-ihnah, and several copies were m ade from it.
'A sa k ir in 5 6 7 / 1 1 7 1 - 7 2 and who died after 60 0/12 03 (Ibn a l-F u w ati, Talhis Majma^
al-dddb, IV , i , 2 1 3 , IV , I I I , 2 5 2 J A W A D . Cf. G A L Supplement I, 5 7 5 , where A b u
1 A l-B a stak i as the author of the Markaz is m entioned b y P o n s B o ig u e s, Ensayo, G a rib p ro b a b ly ought to be A b u 'A ra b . The History of al-Qayrawdn b y A b u l-'A ra b as-
461 f., b u t n ot in G A L , II, 262, Supplement I I, 372. Siq illi, cited b y Ibn H aja r, Lisdn, I II , 2 3 3 , m ay be the same w ork. Cf. Y a q u t, Mu'-jam, IV ,
^ Cf. Ibn H aja r, Durar, IV , 165 f., where the editor states in a note th at Ibn al-H atib 8 4, 6 3 3 W u sT E N F E L D . According to the date of death (3 3 3 /9 4 4 -4 5 ) he indicates, E . A m a r ,
and al-M aqqari (cf. Azhdr ar-riydd, III , 189 [Cairo 1358-61/1939-42]) place the auth ors death in J A , X , 19 (1912), identified A b u l-'A ra b as-Sinhaji w ith the aforem entioned (above,
in th e y e a r 758. Cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 328 f.; G A L Supplem ent I I, 366. p. 4 1 7 , n. 2) A b u l-'A ra b at-Tam im i w ho w rote on the sam e su bject (Ifriqiyah). There m ay,
*^Ali b. 'A b d allah , d. a fter 726/1326 (cf. G A L , I I, 240 f.). indeed, be a conflation of the tw o nam es in this passage of the IHdn.
^ A p p aren tly , reference w as to be m ade to E g y p t. A s-Sah aw i was n ot able to id en tify F or the historians of the city , cf. also D e S l a n e s note to his translation of Ibn H allikan,
A b u 1-H asan al-K ^ tib who is m entioned as the author of a History of Cairo in as-Safadi, H I, 3831.
W d fi, I, 49 R i t t e r , and, therefore, om itted his name. * Cf. above, p. 419, n. 3, and p. 460, n. i ; C. H . B ecker , Beitrdge zur Geschichte Agyptens
^ 'U m a r b. 'A b d allah ('U b ayd allah ?), d. 454/1062 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 123). unter dem Islam , I, 10 (Strassburg 1902).
* Cf. above, p. 419, n. 7. Q asim b. 'IsA does n ot seem to h ave taken over this passage in to his enlarged recension
C f. Ibn B a lk u w a l, S ilah, 154, no. 342 C o d e r a . of the Ma^alim (Tunis 1320-25).
* Ms. Leiden: al-Qarawtyun. Or should w e read; Al-QurtuM yun? A sad b. H am daw ayh al-Waratmi (d. 310/922) w rote on the Competition of the Inhabit
F or the H istory o f Cdrdoba b y A hm ad b. M uham m ad ar-R azi, cf. above, p. 153. ants of KaSs and N asaf, cf. as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 580b. For a History of KdSgar b y 'A b d -al-
* Ibn H ajar states in the introduction of the Inhd'^ (Bodleian ms. or. H un t. 123) th at G a fir (Gafiar) b. H u sayn al-A lm a 'i, cf. W . B arthold, Turkestan, 18.
in th at y ear he studied w ith Ibn y a tib -a n -N a siriy a h the la tte rs History o f Aleppo, which IHdn: al-H usayn.
h ad ju st been finished. Cf. T>aisP, II, 36, V , 333; Ibn al-H anbali, Durr al-habab, Paris ms. * D . 402/1011 (T B , I I, 158 f . ; Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V II , 260). Y a q u t, Irid d , X V I I I ,
ar. 5884, fol. 3a. 104, Cairo = V I, 468 M a r g o h o u t h ), m entions his History o f al-K ufah which I h ave
474 A S-SAH Aw ts 1 l A n TRANSLATION 475

Lamtunah: Medina: According to his biography, U m ar b. Sabbah wrote


Mdzandardn: Ibn A b i Muslim. ^ a History of Medina. (A copy of) it is in the possession of our col
Malaga'. (129) A b u l-A bbas A sbag b. A li ^ b. H isam b. A bd- league Ibn Fahd. H e copied it from a m anuscript in the hand
all&,h b. A b i l-Abb^s, (on the city and) its prominent men and w riting of Ibn H ajar, which was in the possession of Ibn as-Sayyid
litterateurs. Afif-ad-din.i
A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. *Ali b. H idr b. A skar al-C^ass^ni ^ A z-Zu bayr b. Bakkar.^
w rote a history of M alaga which he did not complete. I t was M uhammad b. Y a h y a al-Alawi, a slender volume, which, I
com pleted b y his sisters son, A bu B ak r M uhammad b. M uhamm ad suppose, is the w ork to which as-Silafi refers at the end of his
b. A ll b. Hamis, who entitled the w ork Matla'- al-anwdr wa-nuzhat Fihrist. Furthermore,
al-basdHr wa-l-absdr fi-m d htawat 'alayh Mdlaqah min al-aHdm A s-arif an-Nassabah.^
wa-r-m^asd^ wa-l-ahydr wa-taqyid md lahum min al-mandqih wa-l- A b u B a k r J a far b. M uhammad b. al-H asan b. al-M ustafad al-
dtdr. A s sources for his work, he used the History of Ibn al-Faradi, F aryabi. H is w ork was m entioned b y A b u 1-Qasim b. Mandah
the Silah of Ibn BaskuwM, the History of al-H um aydi, ar-R azi, and in his Wasiyah.
Ibn H ayyan as well as the Personalities o f Malaga which had been M uhammad b. al-Hasan b. Zabalah, a big volume.
composed for al-H akam al-Mustansir.^ The w ork of Ibn Hamis, (Medina's) praise {faddHl) was compiled b y al-Mufaddal b.
a slender, alphabetically arranged volume, ends w ith the year M uhammad al-Janadl and the sarif Y a h y a b. al-Hasan al-Hasani
639/1241-42. al-Alawi.
A b u Z a y d A bd-ar-Rahm an b. M uhamm ad al-Ansari, on the On (Medinas) praise (faddHl), relics, and monuments, there is
fam ous (religious) scholars of Malaga. H e arranged his w ork ac Muhibb-ad-din b. an-N ajjar, ad-Durrah at-taminah f i ahbdr al-
cording to tabaqdt. He said th a t the works of Qayrawanians which Madinah. A supplem ent to (the Durrah) of one quire was written
are also concerned w ith (the men of) other (cities) are the Riydd b y A b u l- Abb^s al-Garraqi.
an-nufus of A b u B akr Abdallah b. Muhammad al-M^liki, the A b u 1-Y um n b. A sakir, Ithd f az-zdHr.
Iftihdr of A bu B ak r A tiq b. H alaf at-Tujibi, the History of A bu A b u Muhammad al-Qasim b. Asakir, al-Anbd^ al-mubinah f i
1-Qasim Abd-ar-Rahm an b. M uhammad b. Rasiq, and the History fa d l al-Madinah.
of A b u A bdallah Muhammad b. S a dun.
^ A m on g the m em bers of the fam ily, the one p rob a b ly m eant here is M uham m ad b.
M uham m ad b . M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah , 814-880/1412-75 {Daw^, I X , 232 f.).
seen, where the first person m a y refer to Y a q u t s source, the w azir al-H u sayn b. 'A li ^ Q uoted also b y as-Su yu ti, al-Wasd^il ild musdmarat al-awd^il, 1 4 , 16 (B agd M 13 6 9 / 19 5 0 ).
al-M agribis (d. 418/1027) additions to Ibn an-N adim s H ow ever, Y a q u t also quotes F or his Kitdb al-'-Aqtq, c f . F. J . H e e r , o p .cit., 29 f .
the w ork in his Mu'-jam, IV , 633 W u s t e n f e l d . H e m ight possibly be a son of Y a h y S b. al-H asan w ho is referred to b y Ib n Inabah as a
F ih rist 159 (Cairo 1348 = n o F l u g e l ) m entions the FaddHl al-Kufah b y A b u 1-IIasan genealogist, see below , n. 8.
M uham m ad b. 'A li b. al-F adl ad-Dihqan. * P robab ly, M uham m ad b. A s 'a d al-Jaw w 4ni (?).
^ Cf. IHdn, 96, above, p. 410, and p. 471, n. i. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. M uham m ad, d. 470/1077-78 (cf. above, p. 400, n. 4).
^ Th e form of the nam e is uncertain. Cf. also th e introduction of B . D o r n , Sehir-eddins W rote 199/814 (cf. G A L , I, 137).
Geschichte von Tabaristan, R ujan und Masanderan, 6 (St. Petersburg 1850), who had no D. after 310/922-23, cf. as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 137b, who m entions onXy Fadd^il M akkah
additional inform ation. b u t, on fol. 477a, refers to Fadd^il M akkah wa-l-Madinah. Cf. Y a q u t, Mu^jam, II, 809 W u s
Ihdiah: al-'-Abbas?
te n fe l d .
* D. 636/1239 (cf. G A L , I, 413). * H e w ould seem to be identical w ith A b u 1-H usayn Y a h y a b. al-H asan b. J a 'fa r b.
Al-M ustansir II died in 366/976. The author m a y b e Ishaq b. Salam ah al-Q ayni. H is H is 'A b d a lla h al-H asim i whose w ork on the h istory (ahbdr) of M edina is quoted in as-Subki,
tory (ahbdr) of Reiyo, the province of M alaga, w as w ritten for al-M ustansir. It is described Fatdwt, I, 290 f. (Cairo 1355-56). Since the q uotation shows th a t he lived in the ninth
b y al-H um aydi, Jadwat al-Muqtabis, Bodleian ms. or. H unt. 464, fol. 72b, cf. also Ibn al- cen tury, he m ay possib ly be id entical w ith the 'A lid genealogist whose great-grandfather
Faxadi, I, 69, no. 236 C o d e r a (Madrid 1890-1902, Bibliotheca Arabico-Hispana, 8), and w as 'U b a y d a lla h [sic, not 'A b d allah ) b. al-H usayn b. 'A li b. al-H usayn b. 'A li b. A b i
Y a q u t, Mu^jam, II, 892 W u s t e n f e l d ; P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 100. T a lib , cf. at-Tusi, F ihrist, 360 f. S p r e n g e r (Calcutta 1854 = 208 [an-N ajaf 1380/1961]);
There is also a H istory of the Jurists of Reiyo b y Ibn S a'd a n which is quoted b y Ibn al- Ib n 'In a b ah , 'Umdat at-talib, 331 (an-N ajaf 1381/1961) (?).
F arad i and w hich P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 66 f., ascribes to Q asim b. S a 'd a n w ho died in * 7 '/an: al-G arrafi. Th e Durrah has been published as an appendix to the edition of
347/958- Taqi-ad-din al-F asis 5 ifd ' (Mecca-Cairo 1956), where reference is also made to an earlier
Cf. above, p. 473.
edition (Cairo 1366/1947).
476 A S -S A h A w ! s I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 477

Jam al-ad-din Muhammad b. (130) A hm ad b. H alaf al-M atari/ A bdallah b. A li b. al-H asan as-Sahtiyani,^ on the auth ority of
an instructive work, A b u Ism ah Muhammad b. A hm ad b. A b b ad al-Marwazi, on the
M uhammad b. Abd-al-M alik al-Marjani.^ auth ority of (the author) A b u R a ja M uhammad b. H am daw ayh
M uhammad b. Sahh.
as-Sanji al-Huraq.ni.2
Razin.^
A b u 1-F adl a l-A bbas b. M usab b. B isr also w rote a history of
Zayn-ad-din A b u B ak r b. al-H usayn al-Maragi, Tahqiq an-nusmh (the city).
hi-talMs ma'-dlim Ddr al-Hijmh.^ A b u S ^ ih al-M uaddin,^ (of whose work) A bu S a d as-Sam am
Majd-ad-din al-Firuzabadi al-Lugaw i, al-Magdnim^ al-mutdhah said th at the draft w as in his possession.
f i faddHl Tdbah.
A hm ad b. Saj^ar.^
Badr-ad-din A bdallah b. M uhamm ad b. A b i 1-Qasim b. Farhun, A b u S a d as-Sam ^ni, in more than tw en ty volumes.
Nasihat al-musdwir wa-ta'-ziyat al-mujdwir. The one-volume w ork A b u 1- A bbas b. S a id al-M ad.ni, alphabetically arranged.
contains the biographies of a number of Medinese. Ibn Farhun Almeria: Ibn H atim ah.^
was preceded b y ;
Ibn al-H ajj.
A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Am in al-Aqsahri, ar- Al~Masdmidah:
Rawdah, containing the names of those buried in al-B aq i .(This Egypt'. A b u S a id b. Y un us w rote a history of (Egypt) and also
work) was taken over b y Qutb-ad-din al-Halabi. the Gurahd^ (on the foreigners who came to E gyp t). A bu 1-Qasim
Afif-ad-din A bdallah b. Jam al-ad-din M uhammad b. Ahmad b. at-Tahhan w rote one supplement to both works.
b. H alaf al-Matari, al-IHdm fi{bi?)-m an dahala al-Madinah min Ibn Abd-al-Hakam,^ The Conquest o f {Egypt).
al-aHdm.
A b u Ishaq Ibrahim b. Ism ail b. S a id al-Hasim i al-Ahbari,
The sayyid Nur-ad-din as-Samhudi^ w rote a w ork on the history al-Bugyah wa-l-igtibdt fi-m an waliya M isr al-Fustdt.
of (the city), which needs checking and criticism.
I, too, have compiled a w ork on the people of Medina. It is in the
^ H e came to B a gd a d in 368/978-79, cf. T B , loc. cit.
draft stage. P art of it has been clean-copied. [Few people I know ^ D . 306/918-19 (as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 593a, follow ing al-M a'dani). His w ork is quoted

w rote m onographs on the ( M e d in e s e ) .W h a te v e r I have m arked Ansdh, fol. 74a.


A h m ad b. 'A b d -al-M alik, d. 470/1078 (Y a q u t, Irsdd, I II , 224-26, Cairo = I, 219 f.
(here) has the approval^^ of our colleague Ibn Fahd. M a r g o l i o u t h ), where the passage of as-Sam 'an i, to w hich the IHdn refers, is quoted.

Mardgah: Ibn al-Mutanna. Cf. T B , IV , 18822.


A s-S u b ki w as unable to fin d th is w ork in E g y p t and S yria. Therefore, he w rote to
Marw: According to al-Hatib,^^ the Kitdh Ta^rih al-Mardwizah B agd ad w hether it m ight be availab le there, cf. Bodleian ms. or. M arsh 428, introduction.
A h m ad b. S a'id , d. 375/986 (as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 536a). H is w ork is quoted Ansdb,
(of al-Huraqani) was transm itted b y A bu 1-F adl M uhamm ad b.
4 17 b , 498a, cf. also above, n. 2.
Accordin g to as-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 421b, a certain M uham m ad b. 'A li b. H am zah
1 D . 741/1340 (cf. G A L , II, 171).
al-Furahinani w rote on the hadit scholars of Marw.
^ H a jji y a lifa h , Ka^f az-zunun, II, 144 F l u g e l : A b u M uham m ad 'A b d allah b. A b i ^ A h m ad b. ^Ali, d. 770/1369 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 331; S . M . S t e r n , in A l-A ndalus,
'A b d a lla h al-M arjaui. 'A b d allah b. Abd-al-M alik al-M arJanis History of M edina is quoted
X V , 85, n. 2, 1950).
b y Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, Sifd^, I, 53, 91, 284 f. (M ecca-Cairo 1956). * Cf. G . S . C o l i n , E I , s .v . M asm uda. Here the history of the Alm ohads is m eant. Al-
^ = Ibn an -N att4h ?
M arrakusi who w rote on them sta ted th at he knew of an earlier w ork about the M asm udah
* R azin b. M u 'a w iyah , d. 524/1129-30, or 535/1140-41 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 630). on ly from h earsay [Mu'^jib, 3 D o z y , Leiden 1847, 1881 ; trans. A . H u ic i M i r a n d a , Colleccion
Cf. G A L , I, 360. Q uoted also b y as-Sarji, op. cit. (above, p. 52, n. 2), fols. 152b, 156b, de cronicas drabes de la reconquista, IV , 2 (Tetuan 1955). Cf. also above, p. 471, n. i.
and edited in M edina 1955 (not seen).
* F or the w ork of Ibn Y u n u s w hich was used v e r y w idely, cf., for instance, Ibn H ajar,
S ic Ms. Leid en ; Daw^, X , 82.
R a f^al-isr, Paris ms. ar. 2149, fol. 128b, and Taskopriizadeh, below , p. 533. His Ourabd^ is,
D . 731/1330-31, or 737, or 739, cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, III , 309, from w hom the in fo r for instance, quoted in T B , V I, 22, 362, and b y as-Sam 'ant, Ansdb, fols. 21a, 519a, as w ell as
m ation in this paragraph is derived.
b y Ibn H allikan. It would seem th at m an y, if n ot all, of the v e r y numerous quotations in
T h e fam ous cem etery in Medina.
as-Sam 'ani from Ibn Y u n u s and his History of Egypt {the Egyptians) are also derived
b. A h m ad is added b y Ms. Leiden.
from the Ourabd^, b u t the History of Egypt, as different from the dfurabd, is, for instance,
'A ll b. 'A b d allah , d. 911/1506 (cf. G A L , I I, 173).
quoted b y al-M aqrizi, Daw^ as-sdri, ed. H. D. M a t t h e w s , in Journal of the Palestine
M issing in Ms. Leiden, and apparently m isplaced here. Oriental Society, X I X , 160 (1939-40). Ibn at-T ah han s History is also quoted b y al-Q ifti,
?, leg. ra^aytu I have seen at ?
him self the author of a History of Egypt, in his Inbdh, II, 159 (Cairo i369-74/i95o-55)-
T B , V , 460.
A b d -ar-R ah m an b. ^Abdallah, d. 257/871 (cf. G A L , I, 148).
478 AS-SA H A w t's I l A n T R A N S LA T IO N 479

Ibn ZMaq, on (E g yp ts) history [ahbdr) (131) and praise {faddHl). al-hunafd^ bi~ahbdr al-Fdtim iyin al-hulafd^, ^ contains the whole
A b u U m ar M uhammad b. Y u su f b. Y a qub al-Kindi, id.^ story of the amirs and caliphs who ruled E gy p t, the events and
A b u M uhamm ad al-Fargam,^ id. happenings th at took place in their days, from the time of the
[Abu M uhamm ad al-Hasan b. Ibrahim b. Zulaq, id.] (Muslim) conquest of (Egypt) until the disappearance of the Fati-
Ibn H ajar, al-isr 'an quddt M isr. I w rote a supplem ent m id dynasty. Al-M aqrizi continued (the history of E gypt) w ith the
to it. Before these (authors), the history of E g y p t was w ritten b y Suluk, as has been m entioned above. ^ He also com piled the topog
S a id b. A b i Maryam.^ rap h y [Hitat) of (Egypt-Cairo) as well as some inform ation about
S a 'id b. U fayr,* and others. the men around M uhammad who came to E g y p t and those who
M uhammad b. U baydallah b. A hm ad al-Musabbihi combined died there, also the names, burial places, and relics of pious men,
all (their works) in a great history. M uhammad b. A li b. Y u su f the wonders of (the country), and the (things) referred to as E g y p
b. M uyassar w rote a two-volum e supplem ent to (al-Musabbihi). tian b y al-Q udai ^ and A b u Um ar al-Kindi.
The first volum e is in the possession of Muhibb-ad-din b. al-Am a- M uhammad b. A s ad al-JawwS.ni as-Sarif, an-Nuqat "-aid l-hitat.
nah, and the second in th at of Badr-ad-din as-Sadili.'^ Al-M aqrizi also compiled the topography [Hitat) of (Egypt-
Qutb-ad-din al-H alabi compiled a substantial, alphabetically Cairo), a very instructive work. Ibn H ajar told us that (al-Maqrizi)
arranged history of E gyptian s which w as not completed. More had found the draft (of a hitat work) b y his neighbor, ihab-ad-din
than ten volum es of the autograph draft of the w ork are in m y A hm ad b. A bdallah b. al-Hasan al-Aw hadi ^ in fact, part of
possession. There exists a clean copy of th e Muhammads, in four (al-Awhadi's work) was already clean-copied , taken it, made
volumes, which are also in m y possession. (Qutb-ad-dins) son, additions to it, and given it out as his own work.
Taqi-ad-din Muhammad, has m any additions to (the work). [Ibrahim b. Ism ail, b. S a id, al-Bugyah wa-l-igtibdt f i ahbdr
Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi wrote a substantial w ork on the subject M isr wa-l-Fus 0 t.]
in more than fifteen volumes. In fact, (al-Maqrizi) said something Al-Magrib: The History of Abd-al-M ahk b. Habib.
like: If he h ad intended to, the w ork would have come to eighty Ibn S a id, Tabaqdt (132) al-fuqahd^ wa-faddHluhum; The Western
volum es. Al-M aqrizi also is the author of '"Iqd jawdhir aUasfdt Dynasty, a completion of the Umayyad Dynasty in the West',
[min ahbdr Madinat al-Fustdt].^ This work, together w ith the tqdz{\) al-Mugrib f i huld al-Magrib;^ and also al-Mugrih f i mahdsin al-
Magrib. Some of these works are in the M uayyadiyah. Ibn S a id
H is sou 'U m ar is credited w ith a w ork of th is title w hich he w rote for K a fu r (cf. G A L w rote also al-Musriq f i ahbdr al-Masriq.
Supplement I, 230; Istan bu l ms. K ilic A li P asa 756). A s-Silafi appears as the final transm itter Mecca'. The praise (faddHl) of Mecca, in the manner of al-Azraqi
in the m anuscript m entioned, w hich presum ably explains the occurrence of a Fada^il M isr
am ong his works in G A L Supplement I, 624. and al-Eakihi,^ was compiled b y
A FaddHl M isr b y a certain Ibn Jd r ( ?) is quoted in ar-R asid b. az-Zubayr, ad-DahdHr
wa-t-tuhaf, 226 H a m i d u l l a h (K u w ait 1959). 1 Cf. above, p . 408, n. 3.
^ Cf. above, p. 82. 2 IHdn, 120, a b o v e , p . 4 55.
S a 'id b. al-H akam , cf. F ihrist, 139 (Cairo 1348 = 95 F l C g e l ), where n othing is said A l-Q u d a 'is H itat M isr are also quoted b y Ibn Farhun, D ibdj, 133 (Cairo 1 3 5 1).
about a h istory of E g y p t. * 7 6 1-8 11/13 5 9 -14 0 8 [Daw^, I, 358 f.). C f. G A L , I I , 39, n. i . A l- A w h a d i on ce o w n e d th e
^ S a 'id b. K a tir b. 'U fa y r, d. 226/840-41 (as-Suyuti, Ilu sn al-muhddarah, I, 168, Cairo p r e s e rv e d m a n u s c r ip t o f a l- K in d i s Governors and Judges of Egypt, cf. th e in tr o d u c tio n
1299; M a h m u d M a k k i , in Revista del Instituto Egipcio de Estudios Isldmicos, V , 185 ff. o f R . G u e s t s e d itio n , p . 47 a n d p la te fo l. 13 4 a (L e id e n -L o n d o n 1 9 1 2 , E .J .W .G i b b
[1957]; ar-R asid, op. cit., 90). H e also w rote a History of Spain. M em . Series, 19). H is r e a d e r s n o te in th e T o p k a p u s a r a y m a n u s c r ip t A h m e t I I I , 26 3 1,
^ D . 420/1029 (cf. G A L , I, 334). fo l. 1 3 7 a (co n ta in in g th e Hafawdt o f G irs -a n -n i'm a h M u h a m m a d b . H ilM as-Sabi^) is d a te d
M uham m ad b. M uham m ad b . A h m ad b. ^Abd-al-'Aziz. T h e te x t of the Daw^ is in in 784/1382. F o r an a p p e n d ix b y h im to a r - R a s id b . a z - Z u b a y r s DahdHr wa-t-tuhaf (w h ich
disorder in the place where his biography should h ave been. in its p re s e rv e d fo rm seem s to b e an a b rid g m e n t p re p a re d b y a l-A w h a d i), cf. M, H a m i d u l
H u sayn b. 'A li, 805-89i/i402(3)-86 [Daw'', III , 149 f.). l a h , in Arabica, V I I , 281-300 (i9 6 0 ), a n d th e e d itio n p re p a re d b y the sam e (K u w ait 1959)-
A ccording to Ibn H ajar, Raf'- al-isr, beg., the w ork consisted of tw e n ty volum es, F or th e o w n e rsh ip o f a l- A w h a d i (an d la te r , th a t o f a l-B a s ta k i) o f a m a n u s c r ip t in th e V a t ic a n ,
and there were four volum es available in a clean-copy. The often quoted w ork was cf. G . L e v i d e l l a V i d a , in Collectanea Vaticana, I I , 142 f. (C itta d e l V a tic a n o 196 2, Studi e
e xten sively used b y Ibn IJatib-an-N asiriyah. Testi 219-20 ).
L e g .: . . . f t dikr muluk M isr wa-l-Fustdt, according to a m arginal note in Ms. Leiden E d ited b y S aw qi D a y f (Cairo i 953)-
and Daw , II, 22^1. A t the beginning of the Itti'^dz, al-M aqrizi has . .. f i ahbdr M adinat M uham m ad b. 'A b d allah , d. after 244/858-59 (cf. G A L , I, 137).
al-Fustdt. M u h a m m a d b . Is h a q , w ro te in 272/885-86 (cf. G A L , I, 137).
480 AS-SAHAW IS I ' l A n T R A N S L A T IO N 481

Abu S a 'id al-Mufaddal b. Muhammad al-Janadi.^ Nasih, known as Ibn al-M uaddin, M utir al-gardm ild l-balad
A bu S a id a s-abi should be checked w ith the former. al-hardm.
A bu 1-F araj(?) Abd-ar-Rahm an b. A b i Hatim . L ater on, Al-H^di (b.) Ibrahim b. A li b. al-M urtada al-H asani az-Zaydi,^
The hadit expert, D iy a -ad-din al-Maqdisi. a teacher of Taqi-ad-din b. Fahd, Zahrat al-huzdm f i faddHl al-bayt
A bu A bdallah [b.] Muhammad b. al-Qayyim,^ Tafdil Makkah. al-hardm.
Tw o poets com peted in praising the respective glories of the Z a y d b. H asim b. A li b. al-M urtada al-Hasani,^ (133) wazir
two h oly cities. An T jli poet acted as m ediator between the two of Medina, on the history of (the city).
b y virtue of a poem in which the following verse occurs: Ibn-al-Jaw zi, M utir al-'-azm as-sdkin li-asraf al-amdkin.
O man from Medina, your land is above every other land. A bd-ar-R ahm an b. A b i H atim , Kitdb Makkah.^ Also
A n d Mecca can claim higher praise for its virtue and excellence. A b u S a id b. a l-A rabi. A nd
A b u 1-Qasim A bd-ar-Rahm an b. A b i A bdallah b. Mandah.
The history of (Mecca was written) b y
These three (works) were indicated b y the just mentioned A b u 1-
A b u 1-W alid M uhammad b. A bdallah b. A hm ad b. Muhammad
Qasim in his Wasiyah.
b. al-W alid b. U qbah b. al-Azraq al-Azraqi.
M ajd-ad-din al-Firuzab&,di, M u h ij al-gardm ild l-balad al-hardm,
Muhammad b. Ishaq b. a l-A bbas al-Fakihi. B oth men lived
and Itdrat al-hajun ild ziydrat al-Hajun.^
in the third/eighth century. A l-F akih i is presum ably som ewhat Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, Sifd"" al-gardm bi-ahbdr al-balad al-hardm,^
later than al-Azraqi. His w ork comes in tw o volumes.
the most comprehensive w ork (of all), and Tuhfat al-kirdm, each
A b u Z a y d U m ar b. Sabbah an-N um ayri. A l-Fasi did not come of the two works in one volume. (Al-Fasi) w rote an abridgment
across (the work).^ Our colleague Ibn Fahd, (however), copied of the also entitled Tuhfat al-kirdm. Other abridgments, all
it in one volum e. He said: It is in the manner of the works of al- b y al-Fasi himself, are Tahsil al-mardm; Hddi dawi al-afhdm]
A zraqi and al-Fakih i.
az-Zuhur al-muqtatafah min ta^rih Makkah al-musarrafah; Tarwih
A z-Z u b ayr b. B akkar.
as-sudur bi-htisdr az-Zuhur] and one more work. A l-Fasi also
Razin b. Mu^awiyah as-Saraqusti.^ His w ork is an abridgm ent w rote the four-volum e '-Iqd at-tamin f i ta^rih al-balad al-amin, on
of the History of al-Azraqi.
(Meccan) personalities, a subject rarely treated before in monograph
Sa'dallah b. Um ar al-Isfarayini, Zuhdat al-a^mdl wa-huldsat form. He abriaged the {"-Iqd) in the Ujdlat al-qird li-r-rdgib f i ta'^rih
al-af'dl, on the praise (faddHl) of Mecca and Medina, an abridgm ent Umm al-Qurd and in two more works. A l-Fasi also wrote on the
of the History of al-Azraqi, as the author himself m entioned in the
governors of Mecca in pre-Islam ic and Islam ic times.
preface of the work. Abd-al-Qadir b. A b d -al-A ziz b. F ah d has Jamal-ad-din as-aybi, as-Saraf al-aHd f i dikr maqbarat Bdb
a copy of the w ork which he himself had copied.
al-Mu'-alld.
M uhibb-ad-din Muhammad b. Mahmud b. an-N ajjar al-Bagdadi, Our colleague Najm -ad-din b. Fahd, ad-Durr al-kamin bi-day I
Nuzhat al-ward f i dikr Umm al-Qurd.
al-'-Iqd at-tamin and Ith d f al-ward bi-ahbdr Umm al-Qurd. A sup-
Jam al-ad-din Muhammad b. M uhibb-ad-din at-Tabari al-M akki
a s-afii, at-Taswiq ild ziydrat al-bayt al-'^atiq. ^ D. 822/1419 (Daw^, X , 206). IH dn : az-Zabidi; Ms. Leiden and Daw^ have az-Zaydi.
According to H ajji ya lifa h who evidently derived his information from al-Fasi, he
Jam al-ad-din A bu Abdallah M uhammad b. A li az-Zabidi an-
was alive around 676/1277-78. A l-Fasi says in the introduction of the ^Iqd at-tamin that this
was the pedigree given to Zayd b y his contemporary al-Mayuraqi (above, p. 304, n. i),
^ Cf. above, p. 475, n. 7. His FaddHl M akkah are quoted b y Taqi-ad-din, al-Fasi, Sifd^, I, cf. above, p. 165.
201, 292 (Mecca-Cairo 1956).
Above, p. 480.
^ Ibn Qayyiin al-Jawziyah? ^ His a l-W a sl{l) wa-l-mund f i fa d l M in d is quoted b y Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, al-^Iqd at-
3 In the introduction of the ^Iqd at-tamvn, al-Fasi states that he believes he once saw tamin, ch. 21; idem, Sifd^, I, 199, 323.
a note of one of his colleagues to the effect that ^Umar b. Sabbah had written a work on the Published in Mecca-Cairo 1956.
history [ahbdr) of Mecca. * The first Tuhfat al-kirdm, the Tarwih, and the work without a title are later than
^ Thus correctly Ms. Leiden. al-Fasis autobiography in the ^Iqd at-tamin, as they are not mentioned there.
^ G A L , II, 172, calls the author 'A li b. Nasr Sa'd-ad-din. He wrote in 762/1360-61. Muhammad b. 'A li b. Muhammad, d. 837/1433 (cf. G A L , II, 173).

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Histriography 31


482 AS-S A H A W ts I l A n TRANSLATION 483

plem ent to each of the two works w as w ritten b y his son Izz-ad-din Nisdbiir: Al-Hakim.^ A supplem ent (to al-H 4 kim was written)
b. F ahd .i b y A bd-al-G afir .2 (Copies of) both works are in m y possession,
M osul: Ibn Batis. the first one in six volum es, the second in one big volume.
Ibrahim b. M uhammad b. Y a z id al-Mawsili.^ Hardt (Herat): Siraw ayh.
A b u Z a k a riy a Y a z id b. M uhamm ad b. ly a s al-Azdi,^ on the A b u Nasr al-Fami. ( i 34 ) H is w ork was abridged b y D iy^ -ad-din
hadit scholars and hadit experts of (the city). al-Maqdisi.
Izz-ad-din b. al-Atir, the author of the Kam il, began a history A b u Ishaq A hm ad b. M uhamm ad b. Y asin (?) al-H araw i al-
of (Mosul) b u t died before he cou]d com plete it.* H addad * w rote tw o works (on the history of the city), one alpha
M ayydfdriqin: Judge A hm ad b. Y u su f b. A li b. al-Azraq. betical, and the other < . . . >^ A b u A bdallah al-Hasan b. Mu
N a sd : Under Abiward. ham m ad al-K utu bi, I suppose.
Nasaf: A b u l-A b b is J a far b. M uhamm ad b. al-M utazz al-Mus- Hamaddn: Ibn Mansur (?) Sahrdar b. Siraw ayh.
tagfiri al-Hanafi, the hadit expert. Siraw ayh b. Sahrdar b. Siraw ayh ad-Daylami.
N isibis: Someone whom I do not remember wrote a m onograph A b u 1-Fadl Sahh b. A hm ad b. M uhamm ad b. A hm ad b. Salih
on (the history of the city). al-Ham adani, the hadit expert.^
Nafzah: Ibn al-M uaddib.
^ Th e w ork is con stan tly quoted b y as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, and m an y other authors. It
is, for instance, also quoted b y as-Safadi, W dfi, B odleian ms. or. Seld. Arch. A . 2 1, fol.
'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. Um ar, 850-921/1447-1515(16) (cf. G A L , I I, 175). A collection of as- 65b. Cf. also S ib t b. al-A ja m i, K u n u z ad-dahab, Ms. Cairo (T aym u r?) T aM ^ , 837, p. 16,
S ah a w is treatises w ritten b y him. exists in Ms. L-234 of Y a le U niversity. A reproduction of the o n ly preserved m an uscript of the Persian abridgm ent b y a certain
A ccordin g to al-F asi, Sifd^, 61 W u s t e n f e l d {Die Chroniken der Siadt M ekka, II) (cf. y a lifa h an-N isaburi has been published b y R. N. F r y e , The Histories of N ishapur (Cam
above, p. 165), al-M ayuraqi m entioned to the y e ar 676/1278 th at he had begun to w rite a bridge, Mass. 1965, Harvard Oriental Series, 45). F r y e refers to an earlier edition published
h istory of M ecca and had finished about fiv e quires of it. A l-F asi states th at he had n ot seen in T eheran 1961.
the w ork. ^ 'A b d -a l-G afir b. Ism a 'il, d. 529/1134-35 (cf. G A L , I, 364 f., Supplem ent I, 623). H is
A b u Z a y d al-B alh i w rote F a d P il M akkah ^ald saHr al-biqd^, cf. Fihrist, 199 (Cairo 1348 = Siydq to al-H akim is also quoted, am ong others, b y a l-'Im a d al-Isfah&ni, Haridat al-Qasr
138 F l u g e l ). F o r the M andzil M akkah b y Ib n a l-K M i (d. 348/959-60), cf. H u s a y n ^AlI (E gyp tia n poets), I I, 2 17 (Cairo 1370/1951), through a s-S am 'an is Supplement to the History
M a h f u z , in B u lletin o f the College o f Arts (B agh d ad U n iversity), V I I I , 243 ff. (1965). F or o f Bagddd; Ibn H allikan , I I, 89 ff., IV , 56 trans. D e S l a n e ; Ibn K u tii, Biddy ah, X I I , 40).
other relev an t w orks b y m em bers of the Ibn F ah d fa m ily, cf. E l , 2nd ed., s.v. Ibn Fahd. Cf. also al-B a yh a q i, Ta^rth-i-Bayhaq, 21. T h e A n k ara m anuscript of the second part of
2 H e lived in the second h alf of the third/ninth cen tury. H is w ork is quoted b y 'A b d -al- the Siydq is reproduced in F r y e , op. cit. F r y e also reproduces the K op riilii m anuscript
Q adir al-Q urasi, al-Jawdhir al-mudtyah, II, 200 (H yderabad 1332). of the M untahab of the Siydq b y as-Sarifini (above, p. 449, n. 3).
Cf. above p. 153 f. H e died 334/945-46, (ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 12th tab., no. 14 'A b d -ar-R ah m an b. 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r b. 'U tm an , d. 549/1155 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I,
W u s t e n f e l d ; cf. G A L Supplement I, 210). T w o fragm ents of the w ork are said to h ave been 571). A n -N am i appears to be a m isprint in the Tabaqdt as-SdfiHyah. T h e Bodleian ms. or.
published in Lugat al-^Arab, V ol. V I, cf. M. C a n a r d , Histoire de la dynastic des H amdanides, Marsh 428 of as-Subki also has al-Fam i. T h e History of Hardt is quoted b y an-N aw aw i,
I, 17 (Algiers 1951). Th e w ork seems to be m entioned b y al-M as udi, M u r u j,1 , 6 Paris ed. = I, Tabaqdt, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2021, fol. 50b (life of Isma'^il b. al-F u d ayl), and Ibn R a jab , D a y l
18 (Cairo 1346), if A b u Dkw (r)h al-M awsili who w as the author of a Kitdb at-Ta^rih wa-ahbdr tabaqdt al-Iiandbilah, I, 79 f. a d - D a h h a n and L a o u s t (Dam ascus 1370/1951). A ccordin g to
al-M aw sil is to be identified w ith A b u Zakariya^. It is quoted b y T B , V , 417, V I, 132 as-Subki, it w as used b y Ibn A sakir.
(Tabaqdt al-'-ulamd^ min ahl al-M awsil) ; as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 405b-406a; Y fiq u t, Mu^jam, * D . 234/848-49 (Ibn H aja r, Lisdn, I, 291). T h e w ork is quoted b y Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V I,
III , 114, IV , 223, 685 {Kitdb Tabaqdt muhadditi ahl al-M awsil), cf. F. J. H e e r , op. cit., 316. A s-Safad i, W dfi, I, 48 R i t t e r , h as A b u Ishaq a l-B a zza z, cf. n. 5.
35 f . ; 'A b d -a l-Q a d ir al-Q urasi, al-Jawdhir al-mudiyah. I, 343; Ib n H ajar, Lisdn, I I I , 257, A lth ou gh Ms. Leiden has wa-dhar w ithout the article, the assum ption of a lacuna
261 f. {Tabaqdt al-^ulamd^ bi-l-Mawsil). Cf. Ibn H ajar, Tahdib, I, g [sahib Ta^rth al-M aw sil). seems indicated, b u t as-Sahaw i e vid en tly used the Ihdtah which does n ot have anythin g
* Cf. above, p. 154. about tw o works b y Ibn Y asin . A l-B a yh a q i, Ta^rlh-i-Bayhaq, 21, explains the confusion.
A s-S ah aw i overlooked the History of M osul b y the brothers S a 'id and M uham m ad b. T h ere were tw o histories of H erat, one b y A b u Ish. A . b. M. b. Y u n u s al-B azzaz {TB,
H asim a l-y a lid iy a n (cf. G A L , I, 14 6 f.), w hich was also quoted b y Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat V, 126), and the oth er b y A b u Ish. M. b. S a 'id a l-H a d d M .
at-talab. Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 1 5 6 6 , p. 6 9 f . ; Ibn Saddad, al-AHdq al-hattrah, Ms. Topkapusa- ' Y a q u t, Irdd, IV , 260 f. (Cairo = I I , 86 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ), m entions a Kitdb Wuldt
ra y , R evan K o sk 1 5 6 4 , fol. lo b ; Y a q u t, Mu^jam, III , 3 6 3 W u s t e n f e l d . Hardt b y A h m ad b. M uham m ad al-Basani (d. 501/1011). A s-Su bki, Bodleian ms. or.
D . after 577/1181 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 569 f., and the introduction to the edition of M arsh 428, refers to a History of Hardt b y A b u R aw h al-H araw i (d. 544/1149-50).
the p a rt of the w ork dealing w ith the h istory of the M arwanid d yn a sty of D iya rb a kr b y Cf. an-N aw aw i, Tabaqdt, Ms. Cairo Ta^rih 2021, fol. 56b.
B a d a w i ^Ab d - a l - L a t i f ' I w a d [ A w a d ] [Cairo 1379/1959]). H is History of Hamaddn{ian Scholars) is also quoted b y al-Q ifti, Inbdh, I, 129, 325, II,
F or a H istory o f Majorca b y al-M ahzum i, cf. al-M aqqari, Analectes, II, 765. Cf. above, 165 f., 2 i6 (Cairo 1369-74/1950-55); a r-R M i'i, Tadwin, Ph ot. Cairo T a V ih 2648, p. 229 f.;
p. 155, n. 2. Ib n H ajar, Lisdn, I I I , 430, V , 200; Ibn Q adi Suhbah, cf. Revue de ITnstitut des Manuscrits
The w ork is qu oted b y as-S am 'an i, Ansdb, for instance, fols. 19b, 21b, 29b, 30b, 162b, Arabes V , 352 (1959).
305a, 322a, 328b, 339a, 340b, 363b, 382b, 473a, 474a, 480a, 485a, 491a, 493a, 517a, 523b He came to B a g d M in 370/980-81 {TB, I X , 331) and died in 374/end of 984 (ad-Dahabi,
598a, 6 o ib ; Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V I, 100. Cf. also R. N. F r y e , in Melanges F u ad Kdpriilii, 166 Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 12th tab., no. 66 W i j s t e n f e l d ; Y a q u t, Mu^jam, IV , 329 W u s t e n f e l d ,
(Istanbul 1953)- has 384/994). H is Tabaqdt al-Hamaddniytn is quoted b y T B , I I, 286, V , 4 4 6 !., X , 340;
484 A S -SA H A w 1 S I LAN TRANSLATION 485

Im ran b. Muhammad b. 'Im ran al-Ham adani, Tabaqdt ahl H e was not interested in the arrangement of the work, so th at
Hamaddn.
it is difficult to find something in it. It is the standard reference
Wdsit: A bu A bdallah Muhammad b. S a id b. Y a h y a ad-D ubayti, w ork for later (scholars). H e (?) then was interested in it ^ (in
the hadit expert and historian.^ Before him, sert ?) after the w ork of U m ar b. A li b. Samurah, Fuqahd"" al~Yaman.
A bu 1-H asan Aslam b. Sahl, B ahsal al-Wasiti.^ A supplem ent Muwaffaq-ad-din A b u 1-Hasan A ll b. al-Hasan b. A bi B ak r
to (Bahsal) was written b y A bu 1-H asan A li b. M uhamm ad b. al-H azraji, al-'-Iqd al-fdhir al-hasan f i tabaqdt akdbir al-Yaman, in
M uhammad b. a t-T ay yib al-Jullabi. two volumes, a good work, although (al-Hazraji) om itted m any
T h eY em en : Al-Himyari.^
(who had been mentioned) b y al-Janadi.
B aha'-ad-din A bu A bdallah M uhammad b. Y a 'q u b b. Y u su f al- Badr-ad-din H usayn al-Ahdal, Tuhfat az-zaman f i ta^rih sdddt
Janadi, as-Suluk, a w ork arranged according to tabaqdt. In the al-Yaman, either two volum es or one big volume.
preface, (the author) said th at w ith regard to the biographies of A bd-al-B aqi b. Abd-al-M ajid al-Qurasi,^ Bahjat az-zaman f i
the (personalities) of the past, he relied upon:
ta^rih al-Yaman.
The jurist A b u H afs U m ar b. A li b. Samurah,^ {Tabaqdt) A l-A fd al A bbas b. al-Mujahid A li b. D aw ud b. Y u su f b. Um ar
fuqahd^ al-Yaman. In the (work, Ibn Samurah) m entioned most b. A ll b. Rasul, a ruler of the Y em en and descendant (135) of
(Yem enite jurists) from the appearance of Islam (in the Yem en) to Yem enite rulers,^ (wrote on Yem enite history). H e abridged the
the 5 8 0 S /1 1 8 4 - 9 3 . History of Ibn H allikan and wrote Nuzhat al-'-uyun f i ta^rih tawdHf
A b u 1- A bbas A hm ad b. A bdallah b. Muhammad ar-R^zi as- al-qurun] Bugyat dawi al-himam f i ansdb al-'-Arab wa-WAjam)
S an ani, History of the Yemen, or of San'^d^, which ends around dJidKitdb al-'-Atdyd as-saniyah which contains the story of the out
460/1067-68. A nd standing individuals of the Yem en. It has been said th at all these
Ishaq b. Jarir az-Zuhri as-Sanani, History of San'-d^, and other (works were written) w ith the active help of Radi-ad-din (ar-Rida ?)
sources.'^
A b u B ak r b. M uhammad b. Y usuf, judge of T a izz.
(Al-Janadis work) ended after 730/1329-30. Furtherm ore, the following (authors), for instance, occupied
as-Sam ani, Ansdb, fol. 369b (cf. 490b, s.v. al-K u m u l4badi). them selves w ith the (religious) scholars of the Yem en:
^ A ccording to one of the stu d y notes reproduced in the Ms. Cairo T a ym u r Ta^rih 1483 Qutb-ad-din al-Qastallani.^
of B a h sa ls History o f W asit, ad-D u b ayti stu died th a t w ork in 573/1178 (573, and n o t 593,
seems clearly indicated). H ow ever, he w as then ju st fifteen years old, and, even though the Afif-ad-din a l-Y a fii.
age of another stu den t of the w ork is in dicated as four years and two m onths, a d -D u b ayti Jam al-ad-din M uhammad b. A b i B akr b. al-Hayyat.^
ought to have been older at the time, since he w as called Sayh and imam.
^ D. sh ortly before or after 288/901 (Y aq u t, IrM d, V I, 127, Cairo = II, 256 M a r g o l i o u t h , A b u Abdallah M uhammad b. Ism ail b. A bi s-Sayf, al-Maymun
from as-Silafl), or 292/904-5 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 210; ad-D ahabi, History o f Islam , al-mudamman li-ba'^d a l-[l)fu d a W ahl al-Yaman.
quoted in a footnote to Y a q u t, loc. cit.). Th e form of the nam e is B ahsal, w ith b, and n ot
with n. The stu d y notes of the Ms. Cairo T a y m u r T a rih 1488 alw ays have b. See also above,
p. 166 f. p. 6), al-Jan ad i states th at he w as w riting in the year 722/1322.
^ I t w ould be logical to refer the pronoun it to arrangem ent, and n ot to the Y e m e n .
^ D . 534/1139-40 (T a j al-^Arus, I, 186, Cairo 1306).
Or one m ight translate the last sentence as: L ater on, the w ork . . ., occupied itself w ith
* ?. For h istorical works on the Y em en, cf. M. K u r d ^Ali, in Revue de VAcademic arabe it . . . H ow ever, none of the possibilities which I considered seems plausible. Ms. Leiden,
de Damas, X V I I , 535 f. (1942), on the m anuscripts in the A lt E m iri L ib rary in Istan b u l; am ong its m an y omissions, leaves ou t the q uotation from al-Jan ad i concerning his sources.
R. B . S e r j e a n t , in B S O S , X I I I , 281-307, 581-601 (1950).
^ D . 743/1343, or 744 (cf. G A L , I I, i7 r ; as-Safadi, A'-ydn al-^asr, Paris ms. ar. 5859,
Born in 547/1152-53, he died in or after 586/1190, cf. G A L , I, 391, further the edition of fol. 58a, who judges his History of the Yem en and History of Grammarians a dversely; Ibn
his w ork b y F . S a y y i d (Cairo 1957), and G. C. A n a w a t i , in Melanges de I'ln stitu t Dom inicain
H aja r, ZJwrar, I I, 315-18). In spite of as-Safadi, the Bahjat az-zaman is qu ite an interesting
d Et. Or. du Caire, IV , 236-40 (1957)-
w ork. A s-Sah aw i read 'A b d -al-H am id instead of the correct Abd-al-M ajid. T h e Paris ms.
Cf. G A L , I, 333. A l-Jan ad i adds th at a r-R azis w ork is frequently found. E ach m anu
5977 of the Bahjat az-zaman w as evid en tly n ot know n to M u s t a f a H i j a z i when he
script contains the third p a rt of the w ork, b u t the te x t of the variou s m anuscripts differs in published an abridgm en t on the basis of a n -N u w ayris N ihdyah (n. p. [Cairo ?], 1965),
certain passages. Cf. also H. C. K a y , Yaman, X I V (London 1 8 9 2 ) ; H ajjf H alifah, Ka^f
w ith a biographical notice on pp. 146-69.
az-zunun, II, 1 5 9 F l u g e l . A ll the m anuscripts enum erated in G A L , to w hich there m ay
D. 778/1376-77 (cf. G A L , II, 184).
be added the B odleian ms. or. 736, appear to contain the th ird part, and the other parts, * A p p aren tly, M uham m ad b. A h m ad b. 'A li, d. 686/1287 (cf. G A L , I, 451). Cf. above,
if th ey ever existed , m ust have been lost at a v ery early date.
Cf. above, p. 470, n. 7. p. 150, n. 4-
786-839/i384(85)-i436 (D aw , V I I , 1941.).
In the Suluk, from w hich the above passage is d erived (cf. Phot. Cairo T a rih 996, * H e died in 609/1212-13, cf. F . S a y y i d s note in his edition of Ibn Sam urah, 247- His
486 TRANSLATION 487
a s - s a h Aw ! 's i l A n

Abu Bakr Muhammad b. Abd-al-Hamid b. Abdallah b. Halaf and afterwards under the caliphs. (Al-Baladuri) described the
al-Qurasi al-Misri compiled forty traditions in praise of the Yemen. countries in the east, west, north, and south. Al-Mas*udi said:
[Ahmad b. A bdallih b. Muhammad ar-Razi, Ta^rih San'-d^.] We know of no better geographical work. ^ This was, we must
Umarah, al-Mufid f i ahbdr Zahid, mentioned above.^ say, before Yaqut.
(An unnamed author), Dawlat al-Muzaffar, ruler of the Yemen.^ Someone else wrote ar-Rawd al-miHdr f i ahbdr al-aqtdr^ in two
Al-Hazraji also wrote al-'-Uqud al-lu*lu^iyah f i ahbdr ad-dawlah volumes.
ar-Rasuliyah. A l-Udri, Tarsi'- al-ahbdr f i l-bulddn.
Taqi-ad-dm al-Fasi, Taqrib al-'-amal wa-s-sul min ahbdr saldtin Someone else wrote Nazm al-marjdn f i l-bulddn.
Bam Rasul. Al-Fasi later on wrote an abridgment of the work. Al-Muayyad, the ruler of Hamah ^ (136), Taqwim al-bulddn,
Other (authors) restricted themselves to the pious men of the in the form of tables, in one volume, a very valuable work.
Yemen, and the like. Al-Bakri, also wrote Mu'-jam md sta'-jam.
Y aqut al-Hamawi and someone else wrote on countries which
(14. Geographical works) look alike in writing but have different locations {al-Mustarik
wad'-an wa-l-muftariq saq'an) and the like, about countries with
Then, there are geographical works which give information about
countries, their outstanding features, and their conquest (by identical names.
the Muslims) but as a rule do not have any biographies of the . . . . (136-144)
people of those countries. There are very many such works. The I say; The entire (preceding) section (pp. 136-144, on the vicissi
most substantial works of the type are tudes of religious scholarship in the various cities and regions) is
Yaqut, Mu'^jam al-bulddn. derived from a monograph by ad-Dahabi which he prefaced with the
Al-Bakri,^ al-Masdlik wa-l-mamdlik. M ain Cities in which traditions were cultivated [al-Amsdr dawdt al-
"^Ubaydallah b. Abdallah b. Hurradadbih,^ id. This work is dtdr). Little supplementation was needed, except for the changes
different from the History (of the same author). I made b y w ay of selection (and omission) or correction (and
Sihab-ad-din b. Fadlallah, Masdlik al-ahsdr f i l-aqtdr wa-l-amsdr, addition). In Asia Minor (Rum), with the capital of Istanbul,
in more than twenty volumes. The work is in the Muayyadiyah and the cities of Adanah (Adana), Brussa (Bursa), and other neigh
and in the College of our Sultan (Qaitbay) in Mecca. boring places, there are (religious) scholars and excellent thinkers
Ahmad b. Y ahya al-Baladuri, on the history [ahbdr) of the (scholars in the non-traditional disciplines). Most, indeed all, of
countries and their conquest by surrender or by force since the ^ M uru j, I, 14 Paris ed. = I, 5 (Cairo 1346). A l-M as'u d i has futufi al-bulddn.
^ Cf. E . Li;vi-PR0VEN9AL, L a Peninsule Iberique (Leiden 1938), w hich is a p artial edition
hijrah, (that is,) the story of the conquests in (Muhammads) days
of a w ork of this title b y M uham m ad b. M uham m ad b. 'Abd-al-M un^m al-H im yari;
nam e is said to have been M uham m ad b. 'A li b. Ism a 'il. H is w ork is quoted b y al-Janadi in S . a l- M u n a jjid , in Revue de I ln stitu t des M anuscrits Arabes, V , 57 f. (1959); T . L e w ic k i,
the in troduction of the Su lu k. in F o lia Orientalia, I, 322-26 (i960), etc.
^ IHdn, 127, above, p. 469. * A h m ad b. U m ar b. A n as, d. 478/1085 (cf. Y a q u t, Mu^jam, IV , 582 f. W O s t e n f e ld ;
^ A p p aren tly, the first ruler nam ed al-M uzaffar w ho died in 694/1295. T h e la ter M uzaffar . L ^ v I 'P r o v e n ^ a l, o p .c it., X X I V , n. 2; I. Y . K r a c h k o v s k y , Izbrann'ie Sochineniya,
liv ed in the ninth/fifteenth cen tury {Daw^, X , 326). IV , 273 f. [M oscow-Leningrad 1957]). T h e Tuhfat al-'-ajdHb of Isma*^il b. Ahm ad b. al-A tir
* 'A b d a lla h b. M uham m ad, d. 487/1094 (cf. G A L , I, 476). (?, cf. G A L Supplement I, 581) m entions am ong its sources the Kitdb al-M asdlik wa-l-
* F irst h alf of the third/ninth cen tury (cf. G A L , I, 225 f.). Cf. below, p. 505. Ms. Leiden mamdlik ai-Sarqtyah and the K itdb al-M asdlik wa-l-mamdlik al-garbtyah of a l-'U d ri, cf.
adds the b. 'A b d a lla h . Th e form H urdadbih is preferred b y R . N . F r y e , in Speculum, Bodleian ms. or. O useley 97, introduction. Under the title Tarsi^ al-ahbdr wa-tanwt^ al-dtdr
X X I X , 315 (1954). wa-l-bustdn f i gardHb al-bulddn wa-l-masdlik ild jamt^ al-mamdlik, the w ork is quoted b y
F urther quotations from his History m ay be the passages II, 15 1, V I, 51, 89, of al-M utah- Ibn ad-D aw adari, K a nz ad-durar, Phot. Cairo T a rih 2578, I, 233. Cf. also Ibn H aldun,
h ars Beginning and History (ed. C. H u a r t , Paris 1899-1919, Publications de r co le des Muqaddimah, trans. F. R o s e n t h a l, I, 116 (New Y o rk 1958), and A b d - a l- 'A z iz a l -
langues or. vivantes, I V e Serie, vols. X V I - X V I I I , X X I - X X I I I ) . In the first passage, H u a r t A h w A n is edition o f the preserved fragm ents of al- U d ris w ork w hich appeared under
corrected the te x t to Ibn ^iurradadbih. In the other tw o passages, he read H u rrazad and the title of N usus ^an al-Andalus in M adrid 1965.
Stra n g ely enough, Y a q u t lists the title of al-^Udris w ork as N izam al-marjdn w hich seems
equated him w ith ^ u rra za d b. Darsad, a m ath em atician who is b riefly m entioned in the
Fihrist, 385 (Cairo t348 = 276 F l O g e l ), b u t is not known as the author of a h istory. Cf. to b e id entical w ith the title listed b y as-Saljaw i as th at of the w ork of someone else.
also Ibn Saddad, al-A^ldq al-hatirah, 25 f. a d - D a h h 1 n (Dam ascus i375/r956). * Ism a 'il b. 'A lt, know n as A b u 1-Fida^ d. 732/1331 (cf. G A L , II, 44-46).
' D. around 279/892-93 (cf. G A L , I, 141 f.). A l-F iru zab ad i w rote a w ork w ith a v ery sim ilar title , cf. Daw^, X , 821,.
488 A S -S A H A W I S I l A n TRANSLATION 489

them are H anafites. W e hear only very h ttle about them. and a supplement to the history of the w azir A b u Suj& Muhammad
b. al-H usayn b. Abd-al-M alik b. Ibrahim al-Bagdadi which he
(15. Straigh t historical works)
had entitled Ahbdr as-siyar at-tdliyah 'aid T a j drib al-umam al-
O r (historians restricted themselves) to straight history w ithout hdliyah, being a supplem ent to M iskaw ayhs Kitdb Tajdrib al-umam.
a n y further qualification. There are various types (of straight There is another supplement to at-T abari which was abridged
historical works).
b y as-Salih Najm -ad-din b. al-K am il al-Ayyubi.^
(a. Histories of events) A b u 1-Hasan 'A ll b. al-H usayn b. *Ali al-M asudi wrote a great
Some restricted themselves to events, as was done, for instance, w ork entitled Ahbdr az-zamdn which ended w ith the caliphate of
by al-M uttaqi li-llah, in the year 332/943-44. H e also w rote DahdHr
Qutb-ad-din Muhammad b. A hm ad b. A li al-Qastallani ^ when al-'-ulum wa-md kdna f i sd lif ad-dahr] al-Istidkdr li-md marra f i
he w rote a slender volum e, entitled Jum al al4 jd z f i l-i'-jdz bi-ndr l-a'-sdr', and at-Ta^rih f i ahbdr al-umam, all this in addition to his
al-Hijdz. fam ous M uru j ad-dahab wa-ma'-ddin al-jawhar f i tuhaf al-asrdf
Others w rote on earthquakes or on insurrections. min al-muluk wa-ahl ad-dirdydt.^ A ll these are original works.
A nother representative (of this typ e of straight history) is the The last m entioned one is the one in common use. In its introduction
great History of the religious leader A b ii J a 'fa r at-Tabari which (al-Masudi) m entioned a great number of histories. Then, he
has remained the standard w ork of reference in the field for all said: O nly those works on history, biography, and memorable
later (scholars). A t-T abari, a religious leader of independent judg antiquities have been m entioned whose authors are prominent and
m ent, who had a greater knowledge (of the religious disciplines) well-known. W e did not endeavor to mention works on the history
than an y of his fam ed contemporaries, collected the various chains of hadit scholars and on the knowledge of the names, times, and
of transm itters for the traditions and for the inform ation about the tabhqdt of persons (connected w ith the science of traditions). This
world (contained in it) but restricted his w ork to its purpose, nam e w ould be too wide a subject for me to m ention in this book.
ly, history, wars, and conquests. He rarely bothered w ith personality (Al-M asudi) excused himself for possible shortcomings (in his
criticism and the like, so th at he has no complete inform ation work) and justified oversights th at m ight have occurred w ith the
about any one rehgious leader. H e was only concerned w ith the length of his travels, on which he commented, and his associations
exp licit and detailed, and not the sum m ary story of wars and con w ith kings, which he explained.* (He further said) that books
quests and the history {ahbdr) of the ancient prophets and kings of are of tw o kinds, good and defective, and prolix and too short.
old, of past national entities and bygone generations, for w hich he H istorical inform ation [ahbdr) increases from day to d ay and comes
also indicated the various w ays (of transmission) and numerous up anew w ith the progress of time. The most outstanding part of
different chains of transmitters. He had an inexhaustible knowledge it often remains unknown to sensitive and intelligent (historians).
of this and other subjects. (As to biographies of individuals), he was E ach one has his part to which he devotes his special interest. Each
satisfied w ith his history of men (of the science of tradition).^ (At- region has its own rem arkable features whose knowledge is restricted
Tabari himself) w rote a supplement to the History and also a to its inhabitants. There is a difference between a person who
supplem ent to the supplement. M uhamm ad b. A bd-al-M alik al- has alw ays remained at home and is satisfied ^ w ith a knowledge of
H am adani w rote a supplement (to at-Tabari) from the days of
1 A y y u b b. M uham m ad, d. 647/t249. G A L Supplem ent I, 217, is based upon the I^ldn.
al-M uqtadir to A dud-ad-daw lah A b u u ja at the beginning of the T h e second part of the title origin ally did not belong to it, cf. al-M as'udi, M uruj, I,
year 360/970.^ A l-H am adani also w rote the 'Unwdn (145) as-siyar 21 f. Paris ed. = I, 8 (Cairo 1346), b u t appears already in the F ihrist, 219 f. (Cairo 1348
= 154 F l u g e l ).
1 S ic Ms. Leiden. H a jjl H alifah, K a f az-zunun, IV , 197 F l u g e l , m entions a w ork o n M uruj, I, 20 f. Paris ed. = 1 , 7 (Cairo 1346).
the su b ject b y al-Q astallani under the title 'Urwat at-tawtiq f t n-ndr wa-l-hartq. M uruj, I, 5 f. Paris ed. = I, 3 (Cairo 1346).
* T h e reference apparen tly is to a t-T a b aris D a y l al-mudayyal. I do n ot th in k th at A ccordin g to the te xt of the MurHj, the adjectives do not refer to w orks b u t to
it is m erely m eant th at the History did n ot deal w ith biographies of in dividuals as such. auth ors. T he first couple of them m eans productive and in cap ab le.
Cf. above, p. 82, n. 4, and, for the ^Unwdn, p. 412, n. 6. Cf. M uruj.
490 A S -S A H A w t s I LAN T R A N S L A T IO N 491

his own region, and the person who used his hfe to traverse the b. A hm ad b. A bdallah b. Isa al-Yunini, a brother of the hadit
world, who spent his days tossed around on his travels, who w ent expert A bu 1-H usayn Ali.^ (A copy of the w ork of Qutb-ad-din),
to the place of origin of every detail, and who stirred every precious who died in the year 726/1326, is in the M ahm udiyah, in four vol
thing from its resting place, ^ although, al-M asudi added, the umes.
memorable antiquities of the world h ave disappeared, and its Ibn al-Jaw zi w rote another history, the four-volum e Durrat
beacon has been extinguished; m ediocrity is plentiful in (the al-ikUl.
world), and understanding is rarely found; and all th at can be The hadit expert and great scholar Professor Izz-ad-din A bu
observed is ignorant sophists or well-intentioned but incapable 1-Hasan A li b. A b i 1-K aram M uhammad b. Muhammad b. A bd-
persons who are satisfied w ith guesswork and are blind to real al-K arim as-SaybS.ni al-Jazari b. al-Atir, the author of the {Usd
knowledge. ^ (146). al-gdbah fi) ma^rifat as-sahdbah and the Ansdh and other works,
Judge A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. S alim ah b. J a 'fa r al- a brother of the great scholar Majd-ad-din, the author of the
Q udai w rote a short history, in five quires, from the beginning Jdmi^ al-usul, and also of the w azir Diya^-ad-din Nasrallah,^
of the world to his own days. the author of the Matal as-sdHr, wrote a history entitled al-Kdm il
(The Perfect one). It is w hat its name says. Ibn H ajar said that
(b. Histories of events and dates of death) (the Kam il) is the best of all histories in recording the happenings
Others combined events and dates of death, w ith the latter either clearly and distinctly. The student as a rule has the feeling to be
m erely added (in the context) or (added after the events) as biog present when th ey took place. In addition, (the work) is well or
raphies in special paragraphs. ganized and (from the stylistic point of view) skilfully executed.
A bu 1-Faraj b. al-Jawzi, al-Muntazam, in ten big volum es. (Ibn Ibn H ajar continued; I t therefore occurred to me to w rite a
al-Jaw zi himself) wrote an abridgm ent in one small volum e, Sudur supplem ent to it, from the year in which (Ibn al-Atir) stopped,
al-'-uqud f i ta 'n h al-'-uhud. I have come across an autograph copy nam ely the year 628/1230-31, th at is, two years before his death.
of the work. A supplement (to the Muntazam) is M uhamm ad H owever, Ibn H ajar was not able to execute his plan. A supplement
b. A hm ad b. M uhammad al-Farisi, al-Fdhir f i dikr hawddit ayydm to (the Kdm il) was w ritten b y A b u Talib A li b. A n jab al-Bagdadi
al-imdm an-Ndsir, in several volumes. A nother supplement to the (147) al-Hazin, who also w rote the big fdmi"- al-muhtasar f i "-unwdn
Muntazam w as w ritten b y Izz-ad-din A b u B ak r Mahfuz b. MaHuq at-tawdrih wa-'-uyun as-siyar and who died in the year 674/1276,
b, al-Buzuri. Jam al-ad-din Muhammad b. Ibrahim b. Y a h y a al-K utubi, known
A bu 1-Muzaffar Y usu f b. Qizoglu, Sibt b. al-Jaw zi (a grandson as al-W atwat,^ w rote instructive notes to the Kdm il.
of Ibn al-Jawzi), Mir'^dt az-zamdn f i tawdrih a l-a y d n * The name T he great independent, all-round scholar A bii am ah Abd-ar-
somehow fits the contents, as the author himself said; I t should Rahm an b. Ism ail b. Ibrahim al-Maqdisi, later ad-Dimasqi, as-
be a name th at agrees with the thing named, and an expression a fii w rote Kitdh ar-Rawdatayn f i ahbdr ad-dawlatayn, on the reigns
th at fits the meaning it expresses. The w ork was abridged to about of Nur-ad-din and Salah-ad-din. (Abu Sam ah himself) w rote a
one-half its original size and then provided w ith a supplem ent supplement to it.^ H e began his w ork w ith the year 590/1194, and
b y Qutb-ad-din Musa, a son of the jurist A b u A bdallah M uhammad he died in the year 665/1267 the year in which the hadit expert
Alam -ad-din al-Qasim b. Muhammad al-Birzali was born. (Al-
^ M u fA j, I, 9 f. P aris ed. = I, 4 (Cairo 1346).
^ MuriXj, I, 6 Paris ed. = I, 3 (Cairo 1346). ^ 'A ll b. M uham m ad, d. 701/1302 (cf. J. F u c k , in Z D M G , X C II, 79 ff., 1938). Cf. above,
D. 594/end of 1294 (ad-Dahabi, Mu^jam, Ms. Cairo M ust, al-hadit 65, fol. i i8 b ; Ibn
R a fi', Muntahab al-muhtdr, Ta?rih 'ulamd^Bagdad, 165-67, B agdad 1357/1938; S . M. S t e r n ,
P- 393. n. 4 -
* N asrallah b. M uham m ad b. 'A b d -a l-K arim , 558-637/1163-1239 (cf. G A L , I, 297). On
in B S O A S , X I X , 420-22 [1957]). The Supplement to the M untazam is quoted b y ad-D ahabi, t h e fam ily, cf. H . R i t t e r , in Oriens, V I, 71 ff. (1953), see above, p . 298, n. 2.
History o f Islam , dow n to the y ear 6 31; T aqi-ad -d in al-Fasi, Sifd?, I, 186, II, 232, 237 D. 718/January 1319 (cf. G A L , II, 54 f.). A s-Sah aw is inform ation is derived from Ibn
(M ecca-Cairo 1956).
H aja r, Durar, I I I , 299.
* A n edition of the w ork w as begun in H yd erab ad in the 1950s.
* Cf. above, p, 455, n. i.
492 A S - S A H lw fs I LAN TRANSLATION 493

B irzalis) work, al-Muqtafd^yNhioh. began w ith th at very same year, volum e; and al-Isdrah, a smaller work. (Ad-D ahabi himself) also
was a supplem ent to A bu Samah. It ended in the year 736/1336. w rote supplements to each of these works. Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi wrote
(Al-Birzali) has some (information), b u t not much, after th a t date, a supplement to the N uhaW and the Isdrah. I wrote W ajiz al-
A supplem ent to (al-Birzali) was w ritten b y Taqi-ad-din A bu kaldnt (as a supplement) to the Duwal. A d-D ahabi also wrote
B ak r b. Qadi Suhbah, the jurist of Syria, who died in the year al-IHdm hi-wafaydt al-aHdm, also called D u n at at-ta^'rih, and one
851/1448. E ach of these works comes in several volum es. Al- folio on the men around Taqi-ad-din b. T aym iyah , entitled
Birzali also w rote a substantial Mu'-jam. al-Qabbdn.
KamM -ad-din A b u 1-F ad ail A bd-ar-R azzaq b. al-Fuw ati w rote The law court functionary Sams-ad-din M uhammad b. Ibrahim
a great history. He did not (live to) prepare the clean copy. He also b. A b i B ak r b. Ibrahim ad-Dim asqi b. al-Jazari, who died in the
wrote another smaller one entitled Majma^ (!) al-dddh wa-mu'-jam al- middle of the year 7 3 9 / 1 3 3 8 , wrote a great, famous history which
asmd^ 'aid l-alqdh [and Durar al-asddf f i gurar al-awsdf,] ^ a very contains rem arkable and strange information.^ A n autograph copy
large w ork in fifty volumes. (The author) mentioned th at he com (of the work) is in the Mahmudiyah.
piled (the work) from a thousand histories, collections of poems, Muhammad b. Mahfuz b. Muhammad b. Galib al-Juhani as-
w orks on genealogy, and collectanea. (Ibn al-Fuw ati) also w rote a Su bayki al-M akki wrote a modest history, from the end of the
history of events. H asim ite dyn asty until after the 6 9 0 S /1 2 9 1 - 9 9 which, how
The jurist Judge ihab-ad-din A b u Ishaq Ibrahim b. A bdallah b. ever, includes years for which nothing is mentioned , as he
Abd-al-M unim b. A b i d-dam, a contem porary of Ibn as-Salah, was conscious of the fact th at previous (historians) had shown no
wrote an instructive w ork (on history) H e also wrote an alphabeti interest in th at (period). H e also w rote a history from the year
cally arranged (history), at-Ta^nh al-Muqtafd (?).* It begins w ith 7 2 5 / 1 3 2 4 - 2 5 to the end of the 7 6 0 S / 1 3 5 8 - 6 7 , which was utihzed b y
a biography of the Prophet, followed, successively, b y the caliphs, Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi in spite of the awful solecisms, colloquial
philosophers-theologians, hadit scholars, ascetics, grammarians, expressions, and other (defects of the work).
lexicographers, Q uran commentators, wazirs, (army) leaders, and The hadit expert Im ad-ad-din b. K atir, al-Biddyah wa-n-nihdyah,
poets. The Muhammads come first, then the others under each in several volumes. A t the beginning (of the work, Ibn Katir) said
name in the described sequence, from the men around Muhammad, th at w ith G ods help, he would m ention the beginning of Crea
the caliphs, etc., down to the women. I h ave come across one volum e tion, nam ely, the creation of the (divine) throne and chair, the
of the work. Three volumes were in the possession of Jam al-ad-din heavens and the earth and the angels, jinns, and devils in them
b, Sabiq, who also owned the other history (of Ibn A bi d-dam). and between them, and the manner of A dam s creation as well as the
A l-M u ayyad, the ruler of Ham ah, also w rote a history, from stories of the prophets and similar things down to the days of the
which ad-D ahabi made selections. children of Israel and pre-Islam ic (Arabia) until prophetism reached
The hadit expert A bu A bdallah ad-Dahabi, History of Islam, the tim e of our Prophet. W e shall then deal in the proper manner
(148) in more than tw enty volumes in the authors autograph; w ith the most satisfactory and wholesome subject, (Muhammads)
Siyar an-nuhaW,^ in several volum es; Duwal al-Isldm, in a small
1 C f. G A L Supplem ent II, 45; Ibn Hajar, D urar, III, 301; ' A b b a s a l - ' A z z a w i , in Revue
de V Academ ic ar. de D am as, X I X , 524-30 (1944). The Istanbul manuscript Kopriilii 1147
' The title is not mentioned in Ibn Hajar, D urar, III, 238. For the passage, cf. also the is an abridgment of Ibn al-Jazaris work (covering the years 593-698) written b y ad-Dahabi.
beginning of al-Birzalis work (above, p. 306 f.) The R abat manuscript 194^ covers the years 608-58.
^ The reference to the D urar here seems to be due to a mistake. The statement in the relative clause goes back to ad-Dahabi and was meant to be an
Cf. Ibn Hajar, D urar, II, 364; Ibn Katir, B iddyah, X IV , 106. adverse criticism, cf. Ibn Hajar, D urar, III, 301. B ut in our opinion, the value of the work is,
* A l-M u q a ffd , as we find in the IHdn, or al-M uqtafd [IHdn 152, below, p. 499) is a mistake in fact, greatly enhanced b y authentic reports from travelling merchants about a disturbance
and should be read al-M uzaffari. in Alexandria in 727, from the authors brother concerning the Volga with an excursus
Or is the reference to Ibn al-'Adim s Bugyah owned b y Ibn SS.biq (above, p. 444) ? about dogs, and from another merchant about customs and conditions in Ethiopia {Hawddit
Excerpts were published b y S a ' I d a l - A f g a n i (Damascus 1360-64/1941-45, cf. Revue de az-zamdn, Phot. Cairo Ta^rih 995, pp. 54, 147-50, and 183 f. The manuscript breaks off
VAcadem ic arabe de Danias, X V I, 387-407). Publication of the entire large work was begun with the year 734/1334). Cf. also Ibn Hajar, D urar, I, 339, II, 388 (and the note to the
in Cairo 1955-56. edition).
494 A S -S A H A W I S I ' l A n T R AN S LAT IO N 495

biography. W e shall then deal w ith subsequent events until our th at information), and we shall explain which part of it is truthful
own time. W e shall mention the insurrections, bloodshed, and and agrees w ith our (other information), and w hat contradicts it
(other) signs of the approach of the Hour, the Resurrection, and and therefore requires disapproval.
the terror of the Judgment. W e shall describe all this as well as the In the Sahih, al-Buhari mentions the following tradition on
happenings of th at D a y and the im portant, frightful things th at the authority of A m r b. a l-As:^ M uhammad said: G ive infor
w ill occur on it. W e shall describe (Hell w ith its) Fire and Paradise m ation on m y authority, even if it were a single verse, and transm it
w ith the good and beautiful (things) in it, and related m atters. stories on the auth ority of the children of Israel. There is nothing
(We shall mention) the relevant testimonies from the Q u ran, the wrong w ith th a t. ^ Transm it traditions on m y authority b u t do
sunnah, and the transm itted traditional (149) inform ation which not ascribe things to me which I did not say. W hoever does that
was accepted b y (religious) scholars, the heirs of the prophets, who intentionally will take his seat in the F ire. This tradition refers to
kindled (their light at) the lamp of the prophecy of Muhammad, the the Israelite stories not criticized (by the authorities).* W e have
blessed and chosen bearer of the prophecy. nothing to prove them or to disprove them. Their transmission,
W e shall only mention those Israelite stories whose transmission therefore, is permissible for purposes of instruction. This is w hat we
was perm itted b y the Legislator (Muhammad), which do not shall do in this book. The inform ation (from the Israelite stories)
contradict the Q uran and the sunnah of Muhammad th at part which has been proved b y our religious law to be true (150) is
of those stories which cannot be proved or disproved and which superfluous for us here, since we can be satisfied w ith w hat we have.
serves to expand inform ation which we possess (only) in a very On the other hand, the inform ation which has been proved b y our
brief form or to give a name to nameless (information) which is religious law to be untrue m ust be rejected. It is not permissible to
referred to in our religious law (but) on which it would have been report it, except accom panied b y an expression of disapproval and
useless (for the lawgiver) to give us specific data. W e shall mention a declaration th at it is not true.
those stories as a kind of ornament, and not as something necessary Through Muhammad, God, fortunately, made all other religious
and basic and reliable, the reliable basis being the Q uran and the laws superfluous for us, and through His book, all other (religious)
sunnah of M uhammad w hatever is transm itted in a sound and books. Therefore, we do not care for the m aterial which th ey (the
good w ay. W hatever is w eak we shall explain. Jew s and Christians) have, w ith its doubts, errors, lies, supposititious
It is said in the Q uran: Thus we are telling you the events additions, clerical m istakes, and changes which have made it
which took place before, and we gave you from our own something altogether disfigured and altered. Our Prophet explained to us w hat
to r e m e m b e r .G o d told His Prophet the past history of the creation we need (of such information). He commented upon it and made
of the world and the story of the nations of the past and w hat it clear. One either knows it or does not know it, and so on.
H e had done to His saints and w hat H e had visited upon His (Ibn K a tir s) remarks about the transmission of the Israelite
adversaries. Muhammad explained this to his nation in a satisfac stories are excellent. It is the full truth. How to verify and to
tory manner. In each case, we shall quote the known Prophetical transm it (this truth) has been the basis of the lengthy exposition
traditions, following upon the relevant verses of the Q u ran. He
told us w hat we need of that (information) and (what) should be
1 D. about 43/663 (cf. E l , s.v.).
om itted as useless. There is m uch m aterial which a good m any ^ Cf. Concordance, I, 4 4 5 b g ; Ibn ^Abd-al-Barr, Jami^ baydn al-Hlm, I I , 40 (Cairo, n .y .);
Jewish and Christian scholars pursue and discuss (but) which is I. G o l d z i h e r , in Revue des Etudes Juives, X L I V , 64 (1 9 0 2 ).
A l-B u hari, Sahih, II, 372 f. K r e h l ; cf. also Concordance, I, 229ai8. T he last a u th ority
of no use for m ost people. Certain Muslim scholars, too, transm it in al-Buhari is ^Abdallah b. 'A in r, and al-B uh ari does n ot h av e the sentence T ran sm it
th at entire (material). W e shall not im itate their exam ple and not traditions . . . For the v e ry com mon last sentence, cf. I. G o l d z i h e r , M uh. Studien, II,
132 (Halle 1888-90).
follow in their direction. W e shall but briefly mention a little (of Ibn K a tir: for which we have no criticism .
Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, I, 6 f.
* On the Israelite stories and hadtt scholarship, cf. I. G o l d z i h e r , M uh. Studien, I I,
Qur^an x x 99 (99 FI.). 166 (Halle 1888-90).
496 A S -S A H A W IS 1LAN T R A N SLA TIO N 497

in our w ork al-Asl al-asil f i tahrim an-naql min at-Tawrdh wa-l-In- On the contrary, several biographers of B aybars have credited
jU.^ him w ith excellence, (151) decency, praying at night, and frequent
The son of the hadit expert Im ad-ad-din (Ibn Katir) wrote a reading (of the Q uran). This makes it impossible th at (Baybars)
one-volume supplem ent to (the B iddy ah). Ibn H ajars tw o-volum e could h ave used (Ibn Kabar).
Inhd^ al-gumr f i anhd^ al-'^umr could pass as a supplement to (the Zahir-ad-din A li b. M uhammad b. Mahmud al-Kazaruni, Rawdat
Biddyah, which ended with the year 767/1365-66, while Ibn K a tir al-arib, in tw enty-seven books.
died in 774/1373), since the Inbd"" begins with the year in which Ibn ihab-ad-din A hm ad b. A bd-al-W ahhab b. Muhammad an-
H ajar was born, the year 773/1372.2 Another supplement to Ibn N uw ayri,! Nihdyat al-arab, a substantial w ork in th irty volumes.
K a tir was w ritten b y ihab-ad-din b. Hijji.^ He died when the Nevertheless, (an-Nuwayri) sold an autograph (copy) of it for
w ork was in the draft stage. Taqi-ad-din b. Qadi Suhbah took it, (only) tw o thousand dirhams.^ (An-Nuwayri) himself, or someone
prepared a clean copy, and made additions to it. else, w rote an abridgm ent (of the work).
Other (authors of historical works of this type) are Afif-ad-din a l-Y M ii, Mir^dt al-jandn the title has been men
The historian Salah-ad-din Muhammad b. Sakir al-K utu b i ad- tioned above ^ , a useful, two-volum e work.
Dimasqi,* 'Uyun at-tawdnh. Sadr-ad-din A bu 1-Hasan A ll b. A la - Nasir-ad-din Muhammad b. Abd-ar-Rahim b. A li b. al-Furat ^
ad-din A li b. M uhammad b. Muhammad b. A b i l-Izz (?) al-Hanafi, w rote an extensive history. The last three centuries (alone) were
the judge of Damascus and Egypt,^ said w ith regard to the w ork; clean-copied (by the author) in about tw en ty volumes. The author's
The noble 'Uyun at-tawdnh devotes w riting ended w ith the end of the year 803/1400-1. I suppose th at
Itself to the choicest ideas and notes. if he had completed the work, it would have come to sixty (volumes).
The subject is dealt w ith in a very instructive manner, b ut (the
I ve never seen anything black on white author) did not know A rabic gram m ar well. He therefore used awful
T h at excels the 'Uyun in charm and dehght. solecisms and very colloquial expressions. The w ork was sold in a
A l-K u tu b i also wrote Fawdt al-Wafaydt, a several-volum e sup draft copy and was dispersed.
plement to the History of Ibn H allikan. He died in the m onth Judge W ali-ad-din b. Haldun, al-^Ihar f i ta^rih al-muluk wa-l-
of R am adan of the year (7)64/1363. umam wa-l-Barbar. (A copy of the work) is in the B asitiyah. It
B ayb ars al-Mansuri ad-Dawadar, Zuhdat al-fikmh f i ta^rih al- contains a valuable Introduction {Muqaddimah) and consists of
hijrah.^ (A copy of the work) in tw enty-five volumes is in the seven big volumes. One of Ibn H alduns students, Ibn Am m ar,
M uayyadiyah , and part of it is in the library of the Ibn Fahds. praised it excessively. He said: Its introduction comprises all
A s-Safadi stands alone with his statem ent th at a certain Ibn K abar, branches of learning, and similar styhstic perfection has not been
a Christian secretary of Baybars, helped him write (that history). achieved b y anybody and cannot be attem pted to be achieved ( ?).
Indeed, it is one of the works whose titles are not descriptive of
^ Cf. IHan, 64, above, p. 359. their contents, such as the Agdni, which was the name given to
^ Cf. IHdn 160, below p. 513. In the introduction of the Inbd^, Ibn H ajar him self states
th at the w ork could pass as a supplem ent to Ibn K a tir as far as the events are concerned, the w ork b y its author (Abii 1-Faraj al-Isfahani), while, in fact,
and as a supplem ent to Ibn R a fi' as far as the dates of death are concerned. A tw o-volum e it contains inform ation about everythin g; or the History of al-
copy of the Inbd^ w ritten b y as-Sahawi is preserved in Istanbul, T opkapu saray, A h m et III,
2942.
A h m ad b. H ijji, d. 816/1413 (cf. G A L , II, 50 f.). T h e supplem ent to Ibn K a tir is
m entioned Daw^, I, 270. ^ D. 732/1332 (cf. G A L , II, 139 f.).
D. 764/1363 (cf. G A L , II, 48). * Th e inform ation is derived from Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 197.
D. 792/1389-90 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, III, 87). IHdn, 30, above, p. 308.
* F or the relationship of this w ork to B a y b a rs h istory of his own times, at-Tuhfah al- D. 807/1405 (cf. G A L , II, 50). T h e opinion about Ibn a l-F u ra ts History goes b ack to
muluktyah, cf. E . A s h t o r , in Scripta Hierosolymitana, I X , 12 f. (1961). Ibn H a ja rs cf. Daw^, V I I I , 5 1 . O n his w ork, cf. E. A s h t o r , in /fieroso^y-
For A b u 1-B ara k at Ibn K ab ar (also often vocalized Kubr), cf. G . G r a f , Geschichte mitana, I X , 13-24 (1961).
der christlichen arabischen Literatur, II, 438-45, and Recueil Cardinal Eugene Tisserant, I, T h is seems to be the m ost lik e ly translation of the sentence. It could h ard ly m ean here:
96 f. (Louvain, n. y . [1955]). It does not lea ve an yth in g to be desired .

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 32


498 A S - S A H l w f s I l A n TRANSLATION 499

H atib, which he called History of Bagdad, while, in fact, it is a quial. H e w rote about tw o hundred books on history, of his own
history of the w orld; or the H ilyat al-awliya' of A b u Nu^aym, which composition and not (of his own composition).^
was the nam e given to the w ork b y its author, while, in fact, it Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi, as-Suluk, in four volumes, as men
contains a great m any things. The religious leader, A b u U tm an tioned ab ove .2 I w rote a supplem ent to it, at-Tibr al-mashiXk, in
as-Sabuni,i even used to say: Satan does not enter a house in several volumes. Supplements (to the Suluk) were also w ritten
which there is the K ilyah.' ^ b y a number of scholars, among them Y u su f b. Tagribirdi, in
(Ibn A m m ars colleague Taqi-ad-din al-Maqrizi also praised tw o or three volumes.
the history of Ibn Haldun. He said about the Introduction: N othing Other (authors of historical works of this type) are
like it has ever been done (before), and it would be difficult for Al-Yusufi.^
anyone who m ight try to achieve something like it (in the future). ^ Al-Fayyumi. His one-volume w ork was in the possession of
He continued w ith this exaggerated praise. Ibn H ajar agreed w ith Badr-ad-(^n as-adili al-K utubi.
him only partially. He affirmed th at Ibn Haldun had not acquired H ilal b. al-Muhassin b. Ibrahim b. HilM as-Sabi , who, in contrast
through his studies a precise knowledge of historical events {ahhdr), to his father and grandfather, was a Muslim, w rote a history in
in particular those concerned w ith the east. This is clear to all who fo rty volumes.
look a t Ibn H alduns exposition. (c. Biographical works)
Before (Ibn Haldun), (a history) was compiled (152) b y Saraf-
ad-din Isa b. M as'ud al-Magribi az-Zawawi,^ the com m entator of Or (historians) restricted themselves to biographies. (Authors of
Muslim. He began w ith the beginning (of Creation) and wrote this typ e of historical works) are very numerous, for instance,
ten books of (the work). Ibn A b i d-dam, al-Muqtafd (?),^ his afore-discussed history.
Sarim-ad-din Ibrahim b. Muhammad b. Duqm aq, the historian. Judge Sams-ad-din A hm ad b. Muhammad b. Ibrahim b. A b i
(His historical work) is in the M u'ayyadiyah . He wrote the History B ak r b. H allikan, Wafaydt al-a^ydn, a five-volum e w ork which is
of Islam and the History of Prominent M en, the one arranged very generally consulted and utilized. Ibn HaUikan said th at in his
chronologically, and the other alphabetically. He further w rote a work, he m entioned none of the men around M uhammad and only
two-volum e History {ahhdr) of the Turkish Dynasty, 2i Biography of very few men of the second generation. He also mentioned no caliphs,
az-Zdhir Barquq] and Hanafite Tabaqdt. The (last m entioned work) as there existed sufficient works on them, but he mentioned a
got him into trouble. His works are useful, but their style is collo- number of excellent men whom he himself had met and on whose
auth ority he had transm itted m aterial or who were living in his
tim e but whom he had not seen. He did not restrict his (work) to
^ Ism a 'il b. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an , d. 449/1057 (cf. G A L , I, 362 f.). a special class, such as (religious) scholars, kings, amirs, wazirs.
^ Cf. Daw^, IV , 149. On Ibn 'A m m ar and Ibn H aldun, cf. above, p. 44.
T h e suffix can h ard ly refer to Ibn H aldun.
^ A s-Sahaw i derived the M aqrizi quotation from Ibn H ajar, Raf- al-isr, loc. cit. (above, 1 Th e sources of this paragraph were, in the first place, al-M aqrizi and also the Mu'-jam
p. 370, n. 2). Cf. also Daw^, IV , 147. Th e M aqrizi q uotation continues in the as follow s: of Ibn H aja r, cf. Daw^, I, 14 5 f.
It is the cream of knowledge and of the sciences and the pleasure of sound in tellects and 2 IHdn, 1 2 0 , above, p. 4 5 5 .
minds. It calls atten tion to things as th ey are. It informs about the rea lity of happenings and 3 D . 8 7 4 / 14 7 0 (cf. G A L , I I, 4 1 f . ; W . P o p p e r , History of Egypt, trans. Ibn TaghrtBirdt, I,
events. It explains the things th at are, and refers to the representatives of e veryth in g in pp. X V - X X I I I , B erkeley-L os Angeles 1 9 5 4 ).
existence in a sty le which is more brilliant than a w ell-arranged pearl and finer than w ater Musa b. M uham m ad, 696-7 5 9 (?)/i2 9 6 (9 7 ) - i 357 (58) [ c t .G A L ,\ l, 135; Ibn H ajar, Dwmr,
fanned b y the z e p h y r. IV , 381). H is History, entitled N uzhat an-ndzir f t strut al-M alik an-Ndsir, is quoted b y
These com m onplaces which show no real appreciation of the contents of the M uqaddi- Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 270, 367, II, 52, 161, 404-
mah elicit this com m ent from Ibn H ajar: T h is praise is right as far as the Jahizian style Could he be the '^Ali b. M uham m ad (after 77 0 / 13 6 8 -6 9 ) who is m entioned in G A L , II,
and p la y w ith words of Ibn H aldun is concerned. B eyon d th at, it is only p a rtia lly (in some 2 5 ? For one-volum e, Ms. Leiden has tw o-volum e.
cases, and not in others) right. The brillian t style, how ever, em bellishes the superficial D . 4 4 8 /10 5 6 (cf. G A L , I, 3 23 f.). For the inform ation about his conversion to Islam ,
appearance of the w ork, so th at we consider good w h at is not good. cf., for instance, T B , X I V , 7 6 .
D. 743/1342, cf. Ibn H ajar, Durar, III, 211 f., whence the above inform ation is derived. From the con text, it is clear th at here another subdivision of 1 5 starts, although the
' On the Nuzhat al-dndm f t ta^rih al-Isldm, cf. E. A s h t o r , in Scripta Hierosolymitana, phrasing of the A rab ic te xt w ould suggest a new subdivision of b.
IX , 27-30 (1961). See above, p. 492, n. 4.
500 A S -S A H A W t s I L A N T R A N S L A T IO N 501

or poets, but included all well-known individuals.^ He arranged successively, b y the Meccans, K ufis, Basris, Syrians, E gyptians,
his (work) alphabetically. In connection w ith each particular name, and so on. He did not give biographies of the (persons he men
he started w ith the jurists, followed, successively, b y the caliphs,^ tioned) b ut restricted himself to just m entioning them briefly.
boon-companions, poets, litterateurs, and secretaries. Poets and H alifah b. H ay y at. (The tabaqdt work) is different from the
the like are preponderant. A certain historian w rote a supplem ent w ork b y him m entioned before.
to (the Wafaydt). Another (supplement) was w ritten b y the Chris A bu H ayyawayh.^
tian Fadlallah. An autograph copy (of this work) is in the library A b u B ak r [b.] al-Barqi.^
of Ibn Fahd. A bu 1-H asan b. Sumay'.
A certain Christian even wrote a history of events. H e began w ith A bu 1-W alid b. ad-D abbag, Tabaqdt al-muhadditin.
the beginning (of Creation) (153) to the Prophet, upon him be peace. Al-W aqidi, History.
There, he used some apologetical rem ark directed to (his fellow A bu B ak r b. A b i Saybah.
Christians), so that th ey would not m ind it (?).* He then continued S a 'id b. K a tir b. U fayr al-Misri.
(the work) to his own time. A b u Musa Muhammad b. al-Mutanna al-Basri az-Zamin.
I have heard th at the m anuscript ^ has a study note in the hand A m r b. A li al-Fallas[i].
w riting of Ibn H ajar recommending the work. Y a 'q u b b. Sufyan al-Fasawi.
Taj-ad-din A bd-al-Baqi b. A bd-al-M ajid al-Yam ani m ade an A b u Z u r'ah 'A bd-ar-R ahm an b. A m r ad-Dim asqi an-Nasri.
abridgm ent of the original [Wafaydt], entitled Luqtat al-'^ajldn al- A bu s-ayh.
mulahhas min Wafaydt al-a^ydn. A b ii A bdallah b. Mandah.
Ibrahim b. A b d -al-A ziz b. Y a h y a al-Luri al-K atib , who died There are others who w rote on history and the like. I wish to
in Dam ascus in the year 687/1288-89. The third, autograph volum e enumerate them (here) in alphabetical order, w ith the inclusion
of his three-volum e w ork is in the library of the Ibn Fahds. of some (authors) whose works I have m entioned before. This ought
A b u 1-H ayr S a id b. A bdallah ad-Dihli al-Bagdadi w rote m any to be one of the two w ays to have a complete list of historians, for
biographies of prominent Damascenes and Bagdadis. those who w ant to have one.
A ll (of these authors) are agreed in calling (their works of this
type) history [ta^yih). Some (authors), however, called their (X II A N A L P H A B E T IC A L L IS T OF H IS T O R IA N S) ^
w orks Tabaqdt, such as
Muslim, at-Tahaqdt. (In this work, the author) restricted himself Ibrahim b. A b d -al-A ziz b. Y a h y a al-K atib .
to the men around Muhammad and the second generation. In each Ibrahim b. A bdallah b. A bd-al-M unim b. A b i d-dam.
section of these two (groups), he started w ith the Medinese, followed, Ibrahim b. U m ar a l-B iq a i.

^ T h is m ay be Ibn H a y y a w a y h , M uham m ad b. a l-'A b b a s, d. 382/992 {TB, I I I , 121 f.),


^ Ibn, H allikan, Wafaydt, introduction,. who copied the Tabaqdt of Ibn Sa'^d. H is biograph y from as-Safadi w as published b y G. L e v i
^ T he apparent contradiction w ith Ibn H allik an s own statem ent w hich w as ju st m en D E L LA V i d a , Les Livres des chevaux , X X X , n. 3 (Leiden 1928, Publications de laFondation
tioned m ay be explained b y the fact th at Ibn H allik an included those caliphs w ho had
De Goeje , 8 ).
m ade a nam e for them selves in literature, such as Ibn al-M u 'tazz. Of. a lread y a l-Y a fi'i, 2 A p p aren tly, A h m ad b. 'A b d a lla h who com pleted the History of his brother M uhanuaad
Mir^dt al-jandn, IV , 194 (H yderabad 1337-39).
and died in 270/884 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V , 71).
F adlallah b. AbJ 1-Fahr, d. 726/1325-26 (cf. G A L , I, 328; Ibn H ajar, Durar, I I I , 233). A d-D ah abi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 9th tab., no. 96 W C s t e n f e l d , has an A b u l-Qdsim
Or should we understand th at the author used the phrase upon him be p ea ce, and M ahm ud b. Ibraiiim b. S u m a yS d. 259/873, called the author of the Tibdq b u t in '^Ibar.
not the cu stom ary phrase God bless him and m ake him prosper, which is properly used II , 19 F. S a y y i d , he appears as A b u 1-Hasan M ahm ud b. S u m a y S author of the Tabaqdt.
for M uham m ad?
* T h e follow ing list is based m aiu ly upon th at of al-M as'udl in the introduction of his
T h is m ay be the Wafaydt or the Christian w ork. The rem ark on the Christian w ork and M uru j, I, 10-20 Paris ed. = I, 4-7 (Cairo 1346). A n asterisc indicates where al-Mas'^udi
this paragraph are om itted in Ms. Leiden. Unless this is due to mere chance, it w ould favor w as used. A s-Sah aw is additions cannot m ake the least claim to com pleteness.
the assum ption th at the reference here is to the Christian work. T h e list shows quite well how how as-Sahaw i w orked. O n ly a few of the nam es m entioned
D. 749/1349 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 134 f.). Ibn H ajar, or his source ad-D ahabi, is the b y al-M as'udl are om itted. W herever possible, as-Sahaw i added the fu ll name. Men like al-
source of the above statem ent. M. ' A w w a d , in Revue de VAcademic arahe de Damas, X I X , ja h iz whom as-Sahaw i, in contrast to the m uch earher M as'udi, w ould n ot have considered
324 (1944). m entions ad-D ihlis Biographies of Bagdadis am ong (partially) e x ta n t works. historians are m entioned because th ey appear in al-M as'udi. As-Sah^w i m ade an effort
502 as-sah A w I s 1 l A n TRANSLATION 503

Ib rih im b. M ahawayh al-Farisi who em ulated the K am il of A b ii B a k r ^ b. al-H usayn al-Maragi.


al-M ubarrad,i * cf. under Ja'far. B ayb ars al-Mansuri ad-Dawadar.
Ibrahim b. Muhammad b. Duqm aq. T a b it b. Sinan as-Sabi .^
Ibrahim b. M uhammad b. A rafah al-W asiti an-Nahw i N ifta- J a 'fa r b. M uhammad b. H am dan al-Mawsili, the jurist and
w ayh 2 of whose History a]-Mas*udi said: (154) It is well stocked author of the Bdhir, a historical work, in which he em ulated al-
w ith elegant statem ents from the books of the elite and filled w ith M ubarrads Rawdah. * The afore-m entioned Ibrahim b. M&hawayh
instructive rem arks of the leaders. Its author w as the m ost tasteful em ulated another w ork of al-Mubarrad, al-Kdmil.
critic and the most elegant w riter among his contem poraries. * Al-H asan b. Ibrahim b. Zulaq, A b u M uhammad al-Misri.
Ibrahim b. Musa al-W asiti al-K^tib. * A l-H usayn b. 'A li, A bu A bdallah al-Kutubi.^
A hm ad b. S a id b. H azm al-M untajili.* H am m ad b. A b i Layl&., A b u 1-Qasim ar-R,wiyah,^ * a very
A hm ad b. Salih b. M i al-Jili. learned historian (antiquarian, ahbdri) who was well versed in
A hm ad b. A b i Tahir, * A bu 1-Fadl al-K atib al-Marwazi, a genuine the b attle days, genealogies, events, dialects, and poetry of the
poet and outstanding stylist. He is the author of the following Arabs.
verses; H am m ad 'Ajrad, one of the greatest historians (antiquarians,
A yo u th m ust strive to gain esteem himself. ahbdri).
H alid b. Hisam, A b u 'A bd-ar-R ahm an al-Um aw i, w ho was
Ancestral pride is not enough for him.
referred to b y al-M as'udi. *
The founder of a house is not like him H alifah b. H ayyat.
W ho, as its last descendant, m arks its end. A l-H alil b. al-H aytam al-Hartam i, the author of the Kitdb
al-Hiyal wa-l-makdyid f i l-hurub (on w ar ruses), and other w orks.*
A hm ad b. Abd-al-W ahhab b. Muhammad an-Nuwayri.
D iw u d b. al-Jarrah, the grandfather of the w azir 'A li b. 'Is^ ^
A hm ad b. A li b. Abd-al-Q adir al-Maqrizi.
and the father of Muhammad who will be m entioned below. (Ibn
A hm ad b. M uhammad b. Ibrahim b. A b i B ak r b. H allikan.
al-Jarrahs) History was referred to b y al-M as'udi as a com pilation
A hm ad b. Muhammad al-H u zai al-A ntaki, known as al-H an-
of a great am ount of historical inform ation about the Persians
qani. *
and other nations. *
A hm ad b. Y a h y a b. Jabir al-B aladuri* the author of the History,
A z-Z u b ayr b. B ak k a r * al-Qurasi al-M akki, an expert in tradi-
the Bulddn, and the Ansdh al-asrdf.
Ahm ad b. A b i Y a 'q u b , or b. Y a 'q u b , al-Misri. *
1 o th e r A b ii B a k rs are m entioned a t the end am ong the patronym ics. Scholars such
Ishaq b. Ibrahim al-Mawsili. * as Ibn H aja r vacillated betw een p u ttin g such nam es at the end or entering them according
to the alph abetical order of the second element.
^ D. 365/976 (Y aq u t, IrSdd V II , 142-45, Cairo = II, 3 97!. M a r g o l i o u t h ; G A L Supple
not to repeat M as'udi quotations he had m entioned before. His m ain contribution is the m en t!, 556). H is History is quoted b y E lijah of N isibis, History, anno 320 and the follow ing
alphabetical arrangem ent and the reference list of patron ym ics and gentilics at the end. years. Cf. also above, pp. 82, 122, and a t-T a 'a lib i, Lata^if, 68 f. D e J o n g (Leiden 1867);
The arrangem ent according to the A rab ic alphabet has been retained here as it w as in ar-R asid b. az-Zu bayr, ad-DaM H r wa-t-tuhaf, 239 f. H a m i d u l l a h (K u w ait 1959); Ibn al-
the list of local histories. M atran, Bustdn al-atibbd^, Ms. A rm y M edical L ib rary; ad-D ahabi, History of Islam , cf.
1 M uham m ad b. Y a zid , d. 285/898, or 296 (cf. G A L , I, 108 f.). J . D E S o M O G v i.i n J R A S , 1932, 833 f., 8 sr.
^ D . 323/935 (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 184). H is Ta^rih is quoted in Ibn Farhiin, Dtbdj, D . 323/934-35 {Fihrist, 213, Cairo 1348 = 149 F l u g e l , has no d ate; Y a q iit, IrSdd,
242 (Cairo 1351). V I I , 190 ff., Cairo = I I, 419 ff. M a r g o l i o u t h ). A l-M as'u d isre m a rk w as quoted anonym ous
A Si'^ah allusion? ly b y Y a q u t.
* Cf. Y a q u t, IrM d, H I, 50 (Cairo = I, 134 M a r g o l i o u t k ). T h e nisbah is distorted in * He is h ard ly id entical w ith the person m entioned above, p. 478, n. 7, whose kunyak
the edition of the I'^ldn b u t almost correct in M s. Leiden. is not know n and who is not known as a historian.
520-565/1126-70 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, X , 230 f.; a d -D u b ayti, D a y l Ta^rth Bagdad, H am m ad b. Sabur, d. 155/771-72, or 156, or 158 {Fihrist, 134, Cairo 1348 = g i F l u g e l ;
Paris ms. ar. 2133, fols. i5 b -i6 b ). His History w as used b y Ibn an-N ajjar, D a y l Ta^rth G A L , I, 63 f.).
Bagdad, for instance, Paris ms. ar. 2131, fol. 66b (life of A li b. H ib atallah b. M uham m ad), H am m ad b. 'U m ar, d ., presum ably, 161/777-78 (Y a q u t, Irsdd, X , 254, Cairo = IV ,
and Ibn R ajab , D a y l tabaqdt al-Handbilah, ed. a d - D a h h a n and L a o u s t , index (Dam ascus 135 M a r g o l i o u t h ).
1370/1951). ^ D- 335/946 (Ibn al-Jaw zf, M untazam, V I, 351 ff.).
504 A S -S A H A W i s I l A n T R A N S L A T IO N 505

tions and in genealogy and the history [ahbdr) (155) of the ancients, A b dallah b. Muhammad b. A hm ad b. H alaf, Afif-ad-din al-
the author of the Nasah Qurays. Matari.
S a'id b. Aws, A b u Z ayd al-Ansari.^ A bdallah b. M uhamm ad b. U bayd, A b u B ak r b. A b i d-dunya,
S a id b. A bdallah, A bu 1-H ayr ad-Dihli. the educator of al-M uktafi bi-llah and a hadit exp ert.*
S a 'id b. Y ah y^ al-Umawi. A bdallah b. Muslim b. Q utaybah, A bu Muhammad ad-Dina-
Sinan b. T ab it b. Qurrah al-Harrani.^ * wari, * the author of the Ma^drif other works, a very prolific
Sahl b. Harun.^ * author.
Sarqi b. Qutam i. ^ * A bdallah b. al-M uqaffa .^ * This is the correct vocalization.
Sadaqah b. al-H usayn al-Faradi. One also finds the form al-M uqaffi , because he m ade and sold
A l-A bbas b. al-Faraj ar-R iyasi an-Nahwi al-Lugawi. qifd\ th at is, baskets of palm leaves. H e said: A n author sticks
A l-A bbas b. Muhammad al-Andalusi, who compiled a history his neck out. If his book is successful, he will be praised to the
beginning w ith a biography of the Prophet for al-M utasim b. skies. If it is a failure, he will be dragged through the m ud. ^
Sumadih.^ Ibn al-M uqaffa is the author of the Durrah al-yatimah. No w ork
Abd-al-B&.qi b. 'Abd-al-M ajid al-Yam ani. like it has ever been w ritten in its field. (Ibn al-M uqaffa) is even said
*Abd-ar-Rahman b. Ahm ad b. Y un us b. A b d -al-A la, A bu to h ave been the author of the Kitdh KaUlah wa-Dimnah. In reality,
S a id al-Misri. he was not the author of the w ork but its translator into Arabic
A bd-ar-R ahm an b. Ism ail b. Ibrahim al-Maqdisi, later ad- from the Persian.
Dimasqi, A b u Samah. Abd-al-M alik b. Q urayb al-A sm ai.
A bd-ar-R ahm an b. A bdallah b. *Abd-al-Hakam, A b u 1-Qasim U baydallah b. A isah. *
al-Misri. * U baydallah b. A bdallah b. H urradadbih, A b ii 1-Qasim. In
Abd-ar-R ahm an b. M uhammad b. M uhamm ad b. M uhamm ad b. the Lisdn, he is hsted under U baydallah b. Ahmad.^ A l-M asudi
al-Hasan, W ali-ad-din b. Haldun. said about him : H e was a leading author who excelled in the sweet
A bd-ar-R azzaq b. al-Fuwati. style. (156) L ater authors followed him, borrowed from him, and
A bdallah b. A hm ad (Muhammad) b. Y usuf, A b u 1-W alid b. al- im itated him most closely. His book on history is the most reward
Faradi. ing,^ most originally arranged, best informed work, and the most
"Abdallah b. al-H usayn b. S a 'd al-K atib . * com plete source of inform ation about the Persians and other
A bdallah b. Lahi'^ah al-Misri.^* nations, their kings, and w ays of hfe. (Al-M asudi) continued:
A bdallah (b. Muhammad) b. M ahfuz al-Ansari al-Balaw i, the One of his valuable works is the one on al-Masdlik wa-l-mamdlik. *
colleague of A b u Z a y d Um arah b. Z a y d al-Madani.^* A ll b. A njab, A b u Talib al-Bagdadi al-Hazin, a hadit expert.
^ D . 215/830-31 {T B , I X , 77 ff-)- A li b. al-Hasan, A bu 1-Hasan b. al-Masitah. *
D. 331/943 (cf. G A L , I, 218).
A li b. al-H asan b. al-Fath, A bu 1-Hasan al-KM ib, known as
D . 251/830-31 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 213).
* B o th nam es occxir occasionally w ith the article. H is real nam e w as supposed to be al- Ibn al-M utawwaq. *
W alid b. al-Iiu sayn . H e is said to have liv e d in the tim e of al-Mansur. No dates are given
A li b. al-H usayn b. A li al-M asudi.
in connection w ith this rather enigm atic personality. Cf. al-Buhari, Ta?rih, II, 2, 255 f . ;
F ihrist, 132 f. (Cairo 1348 = 90 F l u g e l ) ; T B , I X , 2 7 8 !.; Ib n H ajar, L isd n , I I I , 142 f. A li b. Mujahid. *
A p p aren tly, al-H addad, d. 573/1177, cf. above, p. 83, n. i.
D . 257/870 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 168; T B , X I I , 138 ff.; Y a q u t, IrSdd, X I I , 44-46,
Cairo = IV , 284 f. M a r g o l i o u t h ). H is fa th ers nam e occurs b oth w ith and w ithout the ^ D. 142/759-60 (cf. G A L , I, 151 f.).
article. T h is quotation is found in the M u ru j, I, 20 Paris ed. = I, 7 (Cairo 1346), follow ing
R uler of Alm eria, 443-484/1051-91 (M uham mad b. M a'n al-MuHasim). the criticism of Sinan b. T a b its w ork. Cf. also al-W asa , MuwaSSd, 4 B r u n n o w (Leiden
* b. 'A b d a lla h in Ms. Leiden. 1886).
* A l-M as'u d i m entioned his brother 'Isa. * 'U b a yd a lla h (sic Ms. Leiden) b. M uham m ad, d. 228/843 {T B , X , 314-18).
Cf. N. A b b o t t , Studies in Arabic Literary P a p y r i I , 50-56 (Chicago 1957); W . Ma- * Ibn H ajar, L isdn , IV , 96 f.
d e l u n g , D er Im a m al-Qdsim , 6 g i. (Berlin 1965). ?. M urHj, I, 13 Paris ed. = I, 5 (Cairo 1346), has m ost carefu l.
5 o6 A S -SA H A w 1 s I LAN TRANSLATION 507

A ll b. M uhammad b. Sulaym an an-Nawfali.^ * Muhammad b. A hm ad b. Mahdi as-Sahid.^


A li b. M uhammad b. Muhammad b. A bd-al-K arim b. al-Atir. Muhammad b. A b i 1-A zhar ^ who wrote tw o works on history,
A li b. Muhammad b. Mahmud al-K azaruni. one of them entitled al-Harj wa-l-ahddt* The afore-mentioned
A li b. M uhammad al-M adaini.^ * Sinan b. T ab it said about him (?) He undertook a task which
Um arah b. W atim ah al-Misri.^ * did not belong to (157) his special field of learning and for which
A m r b. Bahr, A b u Utm an al-Jahiz.^ * he was not qualified. He w rote a book in the form of an epistle
U m ar b. Sabbah, A bu Z a y d * an-N um ayri al-Basri, a hadit to a secretary, a friend of his. He started out w ith a synopsis of the
expert, historian (antiquarian, ahhdri), and author. H e w rote scholarly discussion about ethics and the soul and its three parts,
histories of al-Basrah, al-K ufah, Mecca, and Medina, and other the logical, irascible, and concupiscent soul. He m ade some remarks
works. about politics, following P la to s ten-book w ork on the subject,
U m ar b. M uhammad b. M uhammad b. Fahd. and about the duties of kings and wazirs. He then proceeded to
Isa b. M asud az-Zawawi al-Magribi. give historical inform ation which he supposed to be correct, al
Al-Q^sim b. Sallam , A bu U b ayd * al-Bagdadi, a religious though he had not witnessed the events (he described). Into this
leader. he fitted the history [ahbdr) of al-M utadid bi-llah. He mentioned
Qudamah b. J a far, A bu 1-Faraj al-K M ib. A l-M asudi said about his connection w ith the caliph and the old days when he was to
him th a t he was a fine and outstanding author who expressed gether w ith him. H e then treated each cahph going backward,
himself precisely and to the point. A look at his Zahr ar-rabi'- contrary to the historical-chronological order and the custom of
and al-Hardj will confirm this judgm ent. * the historians. E ven if he had written a good w ork on history
L u t b. Y ah y a , A bu Mihnaf a l-Amiri. * in the proper manner, he would deserve blam e for venturing out
Muhammad b. Ibrahim b. A b i B ak r b. Ibrahim ad-Dim asqi of his own field and for undertaking something outside his own
al-Jazari. profession.^ He should have concerned himself w ith his specialty,
Muhammad b. Ibrahim b. Y a h y a al-K utubi, known as al-W atw at, nam ely, Euclid, conic sections, the M ijisti [Almagest of Ptolem y),
M uhammad b. A hm ad b. H am m M , A b u Bisr ad-D aw labi. * and circular bodies (cylinders), and he should have investigated
Muhammad b. A hm ad b. Muhammad b. A bi B ak r al-Muqadda- the opinions of Hippocrates, Plato, and A ristotle, and he should
mi,'^ the author of the Names and Patronymics of Hadit Scholars. have talked about astronom ical problems and celestial phenomena,
M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Muhammad b. Sulaym an al-Buhari, about the natural humors, proportions, compositions, conclusions,
Gun jar, the hadit expert. propositions, operations, compound (medicines?), and about phys
M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Muhammad al-Farisi. ics as contrasted w ith m etaphysics, the substances, formations,
1 His work is repeatedly quoted in the M u r u j, and he appears as a transmitter in at-
m easurements of forms, and other philosophical topics. He m ight
Tabari and the K itd b a l-A gd n i. Since an-Nawfalis kunyah is A bu 1-Hasan [M u ru j, V ,
4 Paris ed. = II, 51, Cairo 1346), is he identical with Abu 1-Hasan an-Nawfali, an authority 1 His History is quoted b y T B , I, 99 (identity?); Ibn an-Najjar, D a y l T a M h Bagddd,
on western history, quoted b y E. L e v i - P r o v e n 5 a l , Islam d Occident, 15 f. (Paris 1948)? Paris ms. ar. 2131, fol. 76a (life of 'A li b. Y aqtin b. Musa). He is not identical with either of
D. ca. 215/830-31 (cf. G A L , I, 1 4 0 !) . the two men mentioned b y Ibn Hajar, L isdn , V, 37, because his kunyah is A bu 'Abdallah.
^ D. 289/902 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 217). The nisbah al-Basri in the IHdn is almost 2 Muhammad b. Ahmad b. M azyad al-Busanji who was thirty [leg. eighty?) years old in
certainly incorrect. An unpublished doctoral dissertation on the Qisas al-anbiyd^ ascribed 313/925-26 [Fihrist, 211, Cairo 1348 = 147 f. F l u g e l ) . His work dealt with the history of
to 'Umarah was presented b y I. B e n - D o r to the University of Rome in 1927. Cf. G. L e v i al-Musta'in and al-Mu'tazz. Cf. also M u ru j, V II, 160 Paris ed. = 11, 360 (Cairo 1346), and
D ELLA V i d a , in Collectanea Vaticana, II, 167 f. (Citta del Vaticano 1962, S tudi e Testi, F . R o s e n t h a l , H um or in E a rly Islam , 85, n. 7 (Leiden 1956). D e S l a n e assumed that this
219-20). Ibn A bi 1-Azhar was identical with the Ibn al-Azhar whose history is quoted in the biography
^ D. 255/869 (cf. G A L , I, 152 f.). of Y a'qu b b. al-L ayt as-Saffar in Ibn HaUikan, IV , 301 ff., but cf. above, p. 72 and p. 73, n. i.
5 D. around 224/838 (cf. G A L , I, 106 f.; R. S e l l h e i m , D ie klassisch-arabischen Sprich- 3 According to the text of the IHdn, the following criticism would refer to the work of
wdrtersammlungen, 57 ff. [The Hague 1954]). Ibn Abi 1-Azhar. According to the text of the M u r u j which, however, is not as clear as
* D. 157/773-74, or before 170/786-87 [Fihrist, 136 f., Cairo 1348 = 93 F l u g e l ; Y aqut, one might wish, it would refer to the work of Sinan. This alone is possible.
IrSdd, X V I I, 41-43, Cairo = V I, 220-22 M a r g o l i o u t h ; Ibn Hajar, L isdn , IV, 4 9 2 f.; * IHdn\ ma^dmhi; M u r u j: mahanatiht.
a d - D u r i , B aht f t n a Pa t Urn at-taM h, 35 f., 215-31 [Beirut i960]). ' Or Socrates?
D. 301/914 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 278). IH dn: wa-s-sabab; M u r u j: wa-nisab.
5 o8 A S -S A H A W I S I l A n T R A N S L A T IO N 509

th us have avoided failure and done something for w hich he was M uhamm ad b. H alaf b. al-Marzuban, A b ii B akr, the a.uthor of
professionally better qualified. However, the person who realizes F adl al-kildh aid katir man lahisa at-tiydb; the Hdwi Ji ulum al~
his own lim itations and knows where m istakes come in does not Qur^dn, and other works m entioned above,^ such as the Passionate
exist and cannot be found. * Inamorati and the Poets.
M uhamm ad b. Ishaq b. al-AbbS.s, A b u A bdallah al-Fakihi. M uhammad b. H alaf al-Hasimi.^ *
M uhamm ad b. Ishaq b. M uhamm ad b. H ilal b. al-Muhassin Muhammad b. D aw ud b. al-Jarrah, A b u A bdallah al-K atib ,
as-Sabi* al-K atib. the paternal uncle of the w azir A li b. Isa. A ccording to al-H atib,
M uhamm ad b. Ishaq * b. Yasar, the author of the Raids. he was acquainted w ith general history [ayydm an-nds) and the
M uhammad b. Jarir, A bu J a 'fa r at-Tabari. A l-M asudi said history {ahbdr) of caliphs and wazirs. He is the author of well-known
about (at-Tabari's) History th at it excels all other works in bril works on these subjects.
liance and substance, as it includes all different kinds of historical M uhammad b. Z a k a riya , A b u B akr ar-R^zi. *
inform ation, comprises a great va riety of memorable data, and Muhammad b. Z a k a riya al-Gallabi al-Basri. *
contains all sorts of knowledge. It is an extrem ely useful w ork. Muhammad b. A b i Sari, A bu Ja'far.^ *
(Al-M asudi) continued: This is to be expected, since its author M uhammad b. Salam ah b. J a far al-Q udai.
w as the m ost outstanding jurist and divine of his time, and he was Muhammad b. Sallam al-Jum ahi. *
in the possession of all the knowledge of the jurists of the m ain Muhammad b. Sulaym an al-Minqari al-Jawhari. *
cities and of the experts in traditions. * Muhammad b. Sakir, Salah-ad-din ad-Dim asqi al-K utubi.
M uhamm ad b. al-H arit at-Taglibi, the author of the Ahldq M uhammad b. Salih b. an-N attah. *
al-muluk and other w orks.* M uhammad b. A id al-Qurasi ad-Dim asqi al-K atib.
M uhammad b. al-H usayn b. Suwar (158), known as Ibn U ht M uhammad b. A bd-ar-R ahim b. A li b. al-Furat.
Isa b. Farruhansah.^ A l-M asudi referred to him as having collected M uhammad b. A bdallah (Ubaydallah) b. A m r b. U tb ah al-
a great am ount of inform ation about events and happenings in Utbi.6
pre-Islam ic and Islam ic times. His w ork ends w ith the year 320/ M uhammad b. Abdallah, A b u 1-W alid al-Azraqi.
932.* Muhammad b. A bd-al-M alik al-Hamadani.
M uhamm ad b. al-H usayn b. AbdallS-h b. Ibrahim , A b u u j^ M uhammad b. A li b. al-Hasan ^ a l-A law i ad-Dinawari. * His
al-Bagdadi. w ork ended w ith the caliphate of al-M utadid. It (goes) from the
Muhammad b. H alaf b. H ayy^n b. Sadaqah, Judge A b u B ak r birth of the Prophet to his death and from there to the caliphate
ad-D abbi, known a s W a k i, * the author of the Ahbdr al-qudah; of al-M utadid bi-Uah. I t includes the events and happenings of
ar-Ramy wa-n-niddl) and al-M akdyil wa4 -mawdzin. This is a those days.
specimen of his p oetry:
Ila tt ^ald talab al-Hlm, Ms. H am id iye 1464, fol. 6oa (in Istanbul), and al-M arzubani, Mu^jam
aS-Su^ard^, 314 (Cairo 1354) = 185 ' A b d - a s - S a t t a r A . F a r r a j (Cairo 1379/1960). Cf. also
W hen students come and w ant some day to learn
a l-B a yh a q i, al-M ahdsin wa-l-masdwt, 16 S c h w a l l y (Giessen 1902).
Som ething to be im m ortalized in books, 1 IHdn, 108 and 103, above, pp. 433 and 423.
* M uruj: H alid. A transm itter on the a u th o rity of M alik, nam ed M uham m ad b.
r U meet them eagerly and full of zeal, H^lid al-H asim i, is m entioned b y Ibn H aja r, Lisdn, V , 153 f.?
' s T B , V , 255.
M y ear m y inkwell, and the pad m y heart.^ * M uham m ad b. Sahl b. Bassam , an a u th ority of Ibn al-M arzuban {TB, V , 314)? B u t
there w as also a M uham m ad b. al-M u taw akkil b. A b i s-Sari al-'AsqalanJ who died in 282/895-
1 b. Farru^angah reached the height of his official career under al-M u 'tazz in 252/866. 96 (as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 390a)?
* T h e b oo k titles and th e verses are derived from, T B , V , 237. Th e first verse is transm itted H e w as the a u th ority of a m an who died in 329/940-41, cf. T B , I X , 3873, and an oral
in different form s in d icatin g disapproval of w ritten knowledge to be translated ; W hen source of al-M as'udi.
students come who h av e no knowledge excep t w h at is im m ortalized in b ook s. T h e Kitdb * D . 228/842-43 {TB, I I, 324 ff., where the nam e of his father is indicated to be U bayd-
al-Agdnt, X I I , 138 f. (B u laq 1285), quotes the verses as belonging to M uham m ad b. BaSir allah). IHdn has 'U m ar, instead of Arm:.
ar-R iya5i. H ow ever, th ey are attribu ted to A b u 'A li al-B asir in A b u H il41 a l-'A sk a ri, al- M u r u j: al-H usayn.
510 A S -S A H lw ts I l A n TRANSLATION 511

Muhamm ad b. All, A bu S u ja ad-Dahhin.^ A b u A ll b. al-Basri.


M uhamm ad b. U m ar al-W aqidi. * A b u U m ar as-Sadafi al-Qurtubi.
Muhammad b. Mahmud, Muhibb-ad-din b. an-N ajjar. A b u U m ar al-K in di: M uhammad b. Y usuf.
Muhammad b. al-H aytam b. (159) Sababah al-Huras4ni. * A b u Isa b. al-Munajjim.^ A l-M asudi said th at (Ibn al-Munaj-
M uhammad b, Y a h y a b. A bdallah b. a l-A bbas as-Suli. A l- jim s) History used the inform ation provided b y the Torah and
M asudi said about him : He possessed substantial knowledge and other inform ation about the history of prophets and kings. *
considerable learning. He produced m any and good w orks. * A b u Kam il.
M uhammad b, Y a z id al-Azdi al-Mubarrad. * Ibn A b i 1-A zhar: Under Muhammad.
M uhamm ad b. Y usuf, A bu U m ar al-Kindi. Ibn A b i d-du n ya:* Under A bdallah b. M uhammad b. U bayd.
M amar b. al-Mutanna, A b u U baydah. * Ibn A id :* Under Muhammad.
Musa b. Muhammad b. A hm ad b. A bdallah al-Yunini. Ibn A bbas: Under.^
A n-N adr b. Sumayl.^ * Ibn Q ani .
H ilal b. al-Muhassin b. Ibrahim b. HilM, A bu 1-H usayn as-S&,bi . I b n a l-K a lb i:* Under.^
A l-H aytam b. A d i a t-T a i. * Ibn M iskawayh.
W atim ah b. Musa b. al-Furat b. al-Wassa*. * Ibn al-M uqaffa :* Under Abdallah.
W ahb b. M unabbih.* Ibn W adih: Under.
Y a h y a b. al-Mub.rak b. al-M ugirah al-Yazidi. * Ibn al-W assa :* I believe th at this is W atim ah.
Y a qub b. Sufyan al-Fasawi. Ibn Y un us: Under Abd-ar-Rahm an b. A hm ad b. Yunus.
Y u su f b. Ibrahim,^ the author of the History {ahbdr) of Ibrahim A l-A sm ai: A bd-al-M alik b. Qurayb.
b. al-Mahdi and other w orks.* A l-U m aw i: S a id b. YahyS,.
Y ijsu f b. Tagribirdi. A r-R iya si:* Under al-A bbas b. Faraj.
Y u su f b. Qizoglu, Sibt b. al-Jawzi. A s-Su li:* Under M uhammad b. Y ah ya.
A b u Ishaq b. Sulaym an al-Hasimi. A l-U tb i:* Under Muhammad b. A bdallah b. A m r b. Utbah.
A b u Bisr ad -D aw lab i; * Under M uhamm ad b. A hm ad b. Hammad. A l-F ayyu m i:
A b u B ak r b. A b i A bdallah al-Maliki. Al-Misri, the author of the Zuhrat al-'-uyun wa-jaW al-qulub*
A b u B ak r b. H a y y a n : M uhammad b. H alaf. * A l-Y a z id i:* Under (i6o) Y ah y^ b. al-M ubarak b. al-Mugirah.
A b u B ak r b. A hm ad b. Muhammad, Taqi-ad-din b. Qadi Suhbah. A l-Y u s u fi:
A b u Hassan az-Ziyadi.
(d. W orks on dates of death)
A bu s-S^ib al-Mahzumi.
A b u A bdallah b. H arit (Abu Ishaq) ar-Raqiq al-Katib.^ Some restricted themselves to the dates of death {wafaydt).

nym ics, as-Sahaw i m ade use of 'l y a d s enum eration o f his predecessors in the M addrik,
cf. IHdn, l o i , above, p. 4 1 8 f. There, the tw o are clearly distinguished.
1 D. 590/1193-94 (H ajji H alifah, K a sf az-zunun, I I, 102 F l u g e l ). 1 A hm ad b. 'A li b. Y a h y a {Fihrist, 207, Cairo 1348 = 144 F l i j g e l ; Y a q u t, IrSdd,
^ D. 204/820, or 203 (cf. G A L , I, 102; Y a q u t, Irsdd, X I X , 243, Cairo = V II , 218 ff. I I I , 243 f., Cairo = I, 229 M a r g o l i o u t h ). H is brother H a r m died in 288/900-1. N o exa ct
M a r g o l i o u t h ). dates about A b u 'Isa seem to be available. His w ork was exten sively used b y A b u 1-F id a
3 D. 202/817-18 (cf. G A L , I, 109). in his pre-Islam ic h istory. T h e title of the w ork w as Kitdb al-Baydn ^an ta^rih sin t zamdn
* A p p aren tly, Ibn ad-D ayah , the father of the w ell-know n author (Ahm ad b. Yusuf) al-'-dlam '^ald sabil al-hujjah wa-l-burhdn, and it is described as a sm all {latif) volum e on
Ibu ad-D ayah , for whose dates, cf. above, p. 409, n. 3. Y u su fs close ties to Ibrahim b. al- ancient chronology (at-tawdrih al-qadimah), cf. A b u 1-F id a , Historia Anteislamica, 2
M ahdi are known from the b iograph y of his son. H is History {ahbdr) of Physicians (identical F l e i s c h e r (Leipzig 1831). T h e rh ym ed title which in this form is not known to the F ihrist
w ith the one cited am ong the works of his son in G A L Supplement I, 229 ?) is quoted b y m ay be a later addition.
Ibn H aw q al, I, 12 4 K r a m e r s (Leiden 1938-39); F. G a b r i e l i , in R SO , X X X V I , 246 (1961), ^ B oth men, the form er apparently the fam ous transm itter, and the other the younger
and it was presum ably the source of al-Q ifti and Ibn A b i U sayb i'ah w herever th ey q uote a l-K alb i, are n ot included in the preceding list.
Y u su f b. Ibrahim . Cf. E l , 2nd ed., s.v. Ibn al-D aya. A pp aren tly, A h m ad b. A b i Ya'^qub a l-Y a 'q u b i. A s Ibn W adih, he is m entioned IHdn,
^ These are two authors who were made b y as-Sahaw i into one. In the list of patro- 1 6 2 , below , p. 515.
512 AS-SAHAW t's I l A n TRANSLATION 513

In the introduction of his H istory} ad-D ahabi said: The ancients The hadit scholar ihab-ad-din A b u 1-H usayn A hm ad b, A y b a k
did not bother w ith the proper fixation of the (dates of death). ad-D im yati whose (work) ended w ith the year 749/1348-49.
T h ey rehed upon their memory. Therefore, the dates of death of Zayn-ad-din a l-Iraqi, from (749/1348-49) to the year (7)62/1360-
m any prominent men around Muhammad and subsequent (gener 61.
ations) until close to the tim e of as-Safii are lost. The more recent (Zayn-ad-dins) son, W ali-ad-din A b u Z u rah,i from (762/
scholars then concerned themselves w ith the fixation of the dates 1360-61) the year in which he was bom to the year of his
of death of (religious) scholars and other (persons). T h ey went death. H owever, his autograph cop y which I h ave come across
so far as to establish (the dates of death) of a number of persons goes down to the year (7)87/1385-86 and has (only) a few scattered
who, as far as our knowledge of them goes, are (practically) unknown pages (for the time) after th at year.
{majhul). This is the reason w h y the dates of death of m any (practi The hadit expert Taqi-ad-din b. R a fi w rote a very instructive
cally) unknown (individuals) are preserved, whereas those of cer w ork on dates of death. I arranged it.^ It is a supplem ent to the
tain well-known religious leaders are not know n. dates of death of the History of the hadit expert Alam -ad-din
Authors of (works of this type) are al-Birzali. (Ibn Rafiks) w ork stopped w ith the beginning of the
A b u 1-H usayn A bd-al-Baqi b. Q,ni' al-Bagdadi, the hadit expert, year (7)73/1371-72. Sihab-ad-din b. H ijji w rote a supplement to it.
who stopped w riting w ith the year 346/957-58. T he Inhd^ al-gumr of Ibn H ajar which began w ith the very same
A bu M uhammad and A b u Sulaym an (Abdallah) b. Ahm ad year (773/1371-72) the year in which Ibn H ajar was b om m ay
b. R a b i'a h b. Zabr al-Bagdadi ad-Dim asqi, the judge of Egypt,^ pass, according to (Ibn H ajar himself), as a supplement to Ibn
who began his w ork with the hijrah and stopped w ith the year R a fi as far as the dates of death are concerned.^
338/949-50- I have w ritten a substantial w ork on (dates of death) (161) which
(The reliability of) the two (authors) is suspect. Successive comprises the eighth and ninth centuries, as-Sifd^ min al-alam. I
supplements to them were w ritten b y hope th at its publication w ill be easy and successful.
A b u M uhamm ad A b d -al-A ziz b. A hm ad al-Kinani. A b u A bdallah M uhammad b. A b i 1-Jaw ad Q aysar al-Misri al-
A bu M uhammad H ibatallah b. A hm ad al-Akfani who treated Q attan s tw o-volum e Kitdb Iltiqdt al-jawdhir wa-d-durar min ma-
about tw en ty years. 'ddin at-tawdrih wa-s-siyar contains m ostly dates of death.
A b u 1-H asan A li b. al-Mufaddal, the hadit expert.^ A nother w ork on the dates of death was w ritten b y A b u 1-Qasim
Zaki-ad-din al-Mundiri, the hadit expert, at-Takmilah li-wafaydt A bd-ar-R ahm an b. Mandah. A d-D ahabi said: A n d I have not
an-naqalah, a large, accurate, and very instructive work. seen a more comprehensive (work) than th at (of Ibn Mandah].
The sarif Tzz-ad-din A bu 1-Qasim A hm ad b. M uhammad b. In general, the more recent supplements are more extensive
A bd-ar-R ahm an al-Husayni.^ and more instructive (than the older ones). The w ork of Ibn Zabr
(being the oldest one, as was just mentioned) is the most poverty-
^ Cf. History o f Islam , I, 17 (Cairo 1367). stricken of them all.
^ A b u M u h a m m a d A b d a lla h b . A h m a d , d. 329 /D ecem b er 940 {TB, I X , 386 f.) (Ja n . 9 4 1, A bu B ak r b. Tarhan said: I heard A bu A bdallah M uhammad
a c c o rd in g to th e Raf^ al-isr). H is so n A b u S u la y m a n M u h a m m a d b . A b d a lla h (cf. G A L , I,
167) w a s b o rn , a s h e s ta te s in h is a n n a lis tic History, in 298/910 -11, a n d h e d ie d in 377/987,
b. A b i Nasr F utuh b. A bdallah al-H um aydi th at is, the author
cf. I b n H a ja r , Raf^ al-isr, 2 71 H am id 'A b d - a l - M a j i d a n d Ib rA h im a l - I b y a r i (C airo of al-Jam'- bayn as-Sahihayn say: Three (kinds of) works of the
195 7-6 1).
Ms. Leiden has Abdallah, instead of and A b u S u laym an . T his m ay be the original ^ A hm ad b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im , 762-826/1361-1423 (cf, G A L , I I, 66 f.). T he w ork is his
te x t. In this case, the statem ent th at the reliab ility of the tw o is suspect w ould refer to D a y l to ad -D ah ab is ^Ibar and also contains events. T h e A lexan d ria m anuscript, of which
A b d allah , who, according to T B , I X , 387, w as not considered reliable, and Ibn Q an i' there is a m odern (1354/1935) copy in the E gyp tia n L ibrary, Ms. Cairo T a rih 5615, conteiins
whose on ly disqualification would be the fact th at he w as accused of confusion in the the years 762-80.
last years of his life {TB, X I , 89). ^ Sic Ms. Leiden. T h e te x t of the edition w ould h ave to be com pleted to: he arranged
3 D. 611/1214 (cf. G A L , I, 366 f.). it (alphabetically). On Ibn Rafiks Wafaydt, cf. E . A s h t o r , in Scripta Hierosolymitana,
* H is Wafaydt were repeatedly quoted b y Ibn Rafi^, Muntahab al-muhtdr, Ta^rih ^ulamd^
I X , 24-27 (1961).
Bagdad (B agd ad 1357/1938).
Cf. IHdn, 150, above, p. 496, n. 2.

R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 33


514 A S -S A h A w ! s I LA N TR A N SLA TIO N 515

science of traditions should be carefully pondered; ^ (i) W orks on (e. Miscellaneous historical works. Travels)
unsound (traditions). The best w ork on this subject is (the *-Ilal
of) ad-Daraqutni. (2) W orks on names of the identical or a similar A recent (author) gave the following sum m ary (classification
consonant skeleton. The best w ork on this subject is (the M u'talif of historical writers); H istory was w ritten in the second century
wa-l-muMaiif of) the amir Ibn Makul^. A n d (3) works on the dates b y a l-L a yt,i (162) and before him (?), b y Ibn S a d in the Tabaqdt;
of death of the authorities. There exists no w ork on the subject in the third century b y A hm ad (b. Hanbal) and the tw o authorities
th at is, no exhaustive work.^ W hen I w anted to compile a w ork (al-Buhari and Muslim), and an-N asai; in the fourth century b y
on (the dates of death), the amir (Ibn Makula) said to m e; A rrange at-T ab ari and Ibn A d i; in the fifth century b y al-H atib and ayh
it first chronologically, and then alphabetically.' T h a t is, in A b ii Ish&,q as-ir,zi; in the sixth century b y Ibn A sakir and Ibn
tw o separate works. B oth m ay contain the complete inform ation, al-Jaw zi; in the seventh century b y Ibn H allikan and al-Mimdiri;
or only one of them. (In the latter case, the whole work) should in the eighth century b y al-Mizzi and ad -D ah ab i; and in the ninth
fall into tw o parts, of which one should contain the com plete in century b y Ibn H ajar and a l-A yn i, and countless others. ^
form ation, and the other serve as an index. Under ^ayn, for instance, [Authors who w rote special works on w eak and rejected (trans
we would find: Ikrimah,^ the client of Ibn A bbas: Under such- m itters of traditions) were Ibn Mahdi;^ al-Buhari; an-N asai; Ibn
and-such a class of the men of the second generation. This would A d i: Ibn H ib b a n ; and m an y others. The last of them was ad-Da-
enable the student easily to find inform ation about a transm itter, habi in the M izdn al-iHiddl, and, then, Ibn H ajar in the Lisdn
whether he knows his class or his name. A d-D ah abis procedure al-M izdn.^\
(in the History of Islam) shows, however, that (he w rongly took Ibn al-Jawzi said: I have noticed that historians follow different
the expression tw o p arts ) to m ean th a t each class should h ave tw o purposes. Some restrict them selves to the story of the beginning
parts, of which one would contain the alphabetically arranged (of Creation). Others restrict them selves to the story of kings and
names, and the other the events. He therefore added after he caliphs. Hadit scholars prefer the story of (religious) scholars.
h ad quoted al-H um aydis just m entioned rem arks in al-H um aydis Ascetics love the stories of pious men. L itterateurs are inclined
biography in the History of Islam and after he had reported Ibn tow ard experts in the A rabic language and lore as well as poets.
T arhans statem ent th at his teacher al-H um aydi was occupied It is known th at everything is worth studying, and rejected (histor
w ith the fam^ bayn as-Sahihayn until his death and thus had no ical information) still remains desirable.
tim e for the planned (work on dates of death) This w ork of Ibn A b i d-dam m ade a similar statem ent and m entioned the
ours (that is, the History of Islam) is the h appy solution. H owever following w orks: The Magdzi of Ibn U qbah; the Histories of A b u
(notwithstanding ad-Dahabi), the afore-mentioned explanation J a far at-Tabari, al-H atib, Sayf, and Ibn W adih; the K am il of
(of the expression two p arts ) evidently is the correct one. A b u 1- A bbas al-M ubarrad; the *^Iqd of Ibn A bdrabbih; the M a-
*^drif^ of Ibn Q u tayb ah ; and the H ilyah of A b u N u aym . None of
these authors missed the object he had in mind, in spite of the

^ T h is seems to be a l-L a y t b. S a 'd who, how ever, w as earlier than Ibn S a 'd .
* Ibn as-Salah, Y a q u t, and ad-D ahabl add taqdim (at-tahammum): in the first p la ce . ^ T h e author of the statem ent, w hoever he was, does n ot seem to have been w ell inform ed
^ A l-H u m a y d is statem ent is quoted up to this point b y Ibn as-Salah, Muqaddimah,
abou t the e arly centuries.
ch. 60, p. 382 M. R a g i b a t - T a b b a h (Aleppo 1350/1931).
'A b d ar-R ahm an b. M ahdi, d. 198/813-14 {TB, X , 240 ff.).
From the beginning of this paragraph to this point, the report of Ibn T arh an , w ho w as a * T h e paragraph is out of order in the con text.
pu pil of al-H um aydi, w as quoted b y as-Sahaw i from ad-D ahabi, Ta^rih a l-Isldm , anno 488 The quotation corresponds quite closely to the one quoted in the name of S ib t b. al-
(Ms. ar. Y a le U n iversity L-612 [Nem oy 1176], fol. 296b). T h e words in parentheses are addi Ja w zi in IHdn, 26, above, p. 302. Since the original sources are n ot available, it is difficult
tions b y as-Sahaw i. The quotation from ad-D ahabi is resum ed near the end of the paragraph to decide w hether b oth authors expressed them selves in the same vein or w hether one of
(below, n. 6). Cf. also the quotation of al-H u m ayd is statem ent in Y a q u t, IrSdd, X V I I I , 284 as-S ahaw is attributions is not correct.
(Cairo = V I I , 59 M a r g o l i o u t h ). Ms. Leiden: ma^dnt. Ibn Q u ta y b a h s Kitdb al-Ma^dnt w as published in H yd erab ad
^ D. 107/725-26, or 104/722-23 (al-Buhari, T a \ ih , IV , i , 49). 1368-69/1949-50. T h e m istake of reading ma^dni for ma^drif m ay be one of as-Sahaw is
Cf. also Yaq<it, loc. cit.
origin al te x t. A new edition of the Kitdb al-Ma^drif w as published b y T a r w a t U k a a h
T h e last four lines resum e the quotation from the Ta^rih al-Isldm.
(Cairo i960).
5i 6 AS-SAH AW ts I LAN T R A N S LA TIO N 517

fact th at (these books) stopped w ith the death of their authors m any of them down to his own time. The men around Muhammad
th at is, there were m any more years to come after their death whom he cited were Um ar, Ali, Ibn Abbas, A bdallah b. Salam,
and a lot of new problems similar to those treated b y them arose U badah b. as-Samit, Anas, and A isah. According to Ibn Adi,
after th ey (had gone). I say: There is also much th at escaped them all of them m arked as liars those who do not consider them truthful.
which th ey did not mention. (Ibn A di further) enum erated a number of men of the second
There were also historians who combined in their works the generation, such as a s-abi, Ibn Sirin, S a id b. al-M usayyab, and
choicest historical inform ation w ith the best liked poems. Such S a id b. Ju b ayr.i In comparison w ith later (scholars), there is little
works are the Tadkirah al-Hamduniyah; Ibn Sa'id , Rayhdnat (to be said) about them, because there was little weakness in their
al-adab; Ibn Abdrabbih, al-^Iqd\ at-Tifasi, Fast al-hitdb; and imm ediate authorities. Most of (those authorities) were absolutely
al-Abi, Natr ad-durar.^ trustw orthy men around Muhammad, and, if th ey did not belong
In this connection, instructive works are the Travels {Rihlah) to the men around Muhammad, th ey were m ostly reliable anyhow.
of A b u 1-H usayn M uhammad b. A hm ad b. Ju b ayr al-Kinani;^ In the first period {garn) which ended w ith the men around
A b u A bdallah Muhammad b. U m ar b. R usayd^ w ith which M uhammad and the oldest (group) of the second generation, there
the Niddr of A bu H ayyan m ay be compared^ ; (163) and A lam - is h ardly a w eak (transmitter) to be found, except in individual
ad-din al-Qasim b. Y u su f at-Tujibi.^ (A t-T u jib is work) consists of instances, such as al-H arit a l-A w ar ^ and al-M uhtar al-Kaddab.
three volumes, in which he followed the exam ple of his predecessor W hen the first period {qarn) had passed and the second period
(Ibn Rusayd) who had traveled about ten years earlier than began, there were in the beginning some w eak transm itters among
he. Going beyond Ibn Rusayd, (at-Tujibi) added the biographies the members of the middle (group) of the second generation. A s a
of his authorities in the East. (Ibn R u sayd s w ork is called Travels.) rule, th ey were considered w eak w ith regard to the manner and
It fills six volum es full of much instructive (information). I have accuracy of their transmission of traditions. T h ey were observed
studied and used them. to ascribe traditions of the men around M uhammad to the Prophet
himself, to transm it m any traditions (ascribed to the Prophet) on
( x i l l T H E C H IE F R E P R E S E N T A T IV E S O F P E R S O N A L IT Y the authority of the oldest group of the second generation, and
c r it ic is m ) to comm it errors. A n exam ple is A bu Harun al-Abdi. ^
W hen, w ith their last representative, the period of the men of
The critical discussion of persons (connected w ith the science of
the second generation came < t o its close > in the one hundred
traditions) has been cultivated from the period of the men around
and fifties, a group of religious leaders entered into personality
Muhammad on b y an uncountable number of (scholars who were)
criticism. A bu H anifah said; I have not seen a greater liar than
guiding stars and lam ps in the darkness whose light helped to repel
Jabir a l-J u fi. A l- A mas declared a number of transm itters to
perdition. In the introduction of the Kam il, Ibn A di enum erated
be weak, and others to be reliable. S u bah looked into the person
alities. H e was very correct and would not transm it (traditions)
^ Cf. IHan, 30, above, p. 307 f.
^ D. 614/1217 (cf. G A L , I, 478). from any but a reliable (transmitter). The same applied to Malik.
D . 721/1321 (cf. G A L , II, 245 f.; M. a l - F A .s 1, in. Revue de IInstitut des M anuscrits
Arabes, V , 31-42 [1959]).
Cf. above, p. 454, n. 2. 1 D . 94/712-13 (Ibn S a ' d , Tabaqdt, V I, 178-87 S a c h a u and others; al-Buhari, Ta^rth
A ccordin g to ad-D ahabi, al-Mu'-jam as-sagtr, which is quoted in a footnote to the II, I, 422).
edition of Ibn H ajar, Durar, III , 240, he lived u n til 730/1329-30. For his w ork, cf. also Ibn A l-H arit b. '^Abdallah, d. about 65/684-85 (al-B uljari, T a M h , I, 2, 271; Ibn H ajar,
H ajar, Durar, III , 200, 263. Tahdtb, I I, 145-47).
* A s-Sah aw i conflated the inform ation about the Travels of Ibn R u sayd and at-T u jib i 2 A l-M uhtar b. A b i 'U b a y d , d. 67/686-87 (Ibn H ajar, Lisdn, V , 6 f.).
which he found in Ibn H ajar, Durar, IV , i i i , and III , 240. He also took over the last sen * U m arah b. Ju w ayn , d. 134/751-52 (Ibn H ajar, Tahdtb, V I I , 412 f.).
tence in which Ibn H a j ar is speaking. T he te xt of the IHan says th at it w as a t-T u jib is a c * Jab ir b. Y a z id , d. 128/745-46 (al-B uhari, T a M h , I, 2, 210). A b u H an ifah s rem ark
count of his authorities in the E ast which filled six volum es. w as cited in connection w ith the fatwds published b y F . S a y y i d , in Revue de I'Institut des
Huddn-raddn, cf., for instance, Y a q u t, Irsdd, I, 94 (Cairo = I, 25 M a r g o lio u t h ) ; Manuscrits Arabes, II, 166 (1375/1956).
Ibn Zulaq, Ahbdr Sibawayh al-M isrt, 31 (Cairo 1352/1933). * S u 'b ah b. a l-H a jjaj, d. 160/776-77 {TB, I X , 255 ff.).
5i 8 a s- sa h Aw ! s i *l A n TRANSLATION 519

In th at time, those whose statem ents were acceptable were Abd-ar-Razz&,q.


M amar.1 Al-Faryabi.^
H isam ad-D astuw ^i.^ A b u Asim an-Nabil,^ and others.
A l-A w za i. The n ext class included men such as
A t-T aw ri. A l-H um aydi
Ibn al-M ajisun .3 A l-Q anabi.
H am m ad b. Salamah.** A b u U bayd.
A l-L a y t b. S a'd, and others. Y a h y a b. Yahy^.* A nd
The n ext class included men such as A b u 1-W alid at-Tayalisi.
Ibn al-Mubarak. H ereafter, the composition of system atical works on personality
Husaym. criticism and defects (in traditions) started. It was explained who
A b u Ishaq al-Fazari. was reliable and very correct, like a pillar; who was reliable, like
A l-M uafa (164) b. Im ran al-Mawsili. an able-bodied young m an; who was so ft, like someone w ith a
B isr b. al-Mufaddal.^ headache, who contains himself and therefore is reckoned among
Ibn U yaynah, and others. those on the w ay to recuperation; who was to be described as a
A nother class in their period included men such as person w ith a fever leaning tow ard reco very ; who was to be described
Ibn U layyah. as a thoroughly ill person; and again, who was to be described as an
Ibn W ahb. A nd ill person whose strength was failing and who was about to die
W ak i'. th a t is, the person whose traditions are invalid.
In their period, the two leading hadit authorities, Y a h y a b. A fter the afore-m entioned (scholars), personality criticism was
S a id al-Q attan and Ibn Mahdi, also devoted them selves to the in the hands of Y a h y a b. M ain who was consulted about personali
criticism of personahties. Those whom th ey considered unreliable ties b y several hadit experts. His opinions and the expressions he
have h ardly a chance to clear themselves, and those whom th ey used w ith regard to certain personalities therefore varied, exactly
considered reliable are generally acceptable. The few about whom as there were variations in the judgm ent of jurists which led to the
th ey disagreed are left to individual judgm ent. existence of divergent statem ents and views. The judgm ent of those
The (scholars) after them whose statem ents were Hstened to were jurists on legal problems (was given) in the same independent w ay
Our religious leader, as-afii. as th at of Ibn M ain on personalities.
Y a z id b. Harun. A hm ad b. H anbal belonged to the class of Ibn M a'in. Several
A b u D aw ud at-Tayalisi.^ of his pupils consulted him about personalities. H e spoke about
them w ith justice and fairness, culture and austerity.
M a'm ar b. RaSid, d. 153/770 (al-Buh^ri, T a M h , IV , i , 378 L). Cf. N. A bbott, Studies
Other discussions of personality criticism were b y
in A rabic Literary P a p y r i I , 64 ff. (Chicago 1957), and M. J. K i s t e r , in Archiv Orientdlni,
X X X I I , 233-36 (1964). K i s t e r denies M a'm ars reputed authorship of the te x t of the A bu A bdallah M uhammad b. S a d, the secretary of al-W aqidi,
papjTus published b y N. A b b o t t and thinks in stead of 'A b d a lla h b. L a h i'a h (above,
p. 395, n. i) as its author.
in his Tahaqdt. (Ibn Sards) remarks are good and acceptable.
Hiam, b. A b i 'A b d aim h, d. 154/771, or 15 1, or 153 (al-Butiari, T a M h , IV , 2, 198). A b u H aytam ah Zuhayr b. H arb, whose numerous remarks
'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A b d aliah , d. 164/780-81 [T B , X , 436 fi.).
* D. 167/783-84, o r 169 (Y^qut, IrSdd, X , 258, C a ir o = IV , 135 M a r g o l i o u t h ). Cf. M uham m ad b. YUsuf, d. 212/827 (a l-B u ljM , T a M h , I, i , 2641.).
A . J . A r b e r r y , in Th e Islam ic Quarterly, III , 20 (1957). * A d -D ah h ak b. MaW ad, d. 211/826-27, or 213 (Ibn H ajar, Tahdib, IV , 450-53).
5 HuSaynx b. BaSir, d. 183/799 (al-Bubari, T a M h , IV , 2, 242; T B , X I V , 85 ff.). * A bd aliah b. az-Z u b ayr, d. 2T9/834 (Ibn S a 'd , Tahaqdt, V , 368 S a c h a u and others).
D. 184/800-1, or 185, or 186 (T B , X I I I , 226 k ) . * T his is A b u Zakariya^ an-N isaburi, d. 226/840 (al-Buhari, T a M h , IV , 2, 310), rather
^ D. 187/803 (a l-B u h M , T a M h , I, 2, 84). than Ibn K a tir al-A ndalusi, d. 234/849 or 236 (Ibn lia ja r , Tahdtb, X I , 300 f.).
* A p p aren tly, as-Sulam i, d. 206/821 (al-Buhari, T a M h , IV , 2, 368; T B , X I V , 337 ff.; H isim b. 'A bd -al-M alik, d. 227/841-42, or 226 (al-Buhari, T a M h , IV , 2, 195).
G A L Supplem ent I, 332). * Source?
* S u laym an b. D aw ud, d. 203/818-19, or 204 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 257; T B , I X , 24 ff.). D. 234/849, or 232 {T B , V I I I , 482 ff.). Cf. the edition of his K itd b al-'-Ilm b y M. N.
520 a s-sa h A w ! s i l A n T R AN S LAT IO N 521

were transm itted on his authority b y his son A hm ad and others. Muslim.
A b u J a far A bdallah b. M uhammad an -N u fayli/ ihehadit expert A b u D awud as-Sijistani.
of the Jazirah, than whom A b u D awud, as he said, had seen no B aqi b. MaMad.^
greater hadit expert. A bu Z u r'ah ad-Dim asqi, and others.
A li b. al-Madini who wrote m any works on defective (traditions, A fter them, there were
Hlal) and on personahties. Abd-ar-Rahm an b. Y u su f b. Hiras al-Bagdac^ who w rote a
M uhammad b. A bdallah b. N um ayr ^ who was called b y A hm ad brisk w ork on personality criticism like A b u Hatim .
(b. Hanbal) the pearl of the Iraq. Ibrahim b. Ishaq al-Harbi.^
A b u B ak r b. A b i Saybah, the author of the Musnad, whose Muhammad b. W addah al-Andalusi, the hadit expert of Cordoba.^
knowledge of traditions was miraculous and who resembled A hm ad A bu B akr b. A b i Asim.
in his learning. Abdallah b. Ahmad.*
U baydallah b. Um ar (165) al-Qawariri, who, according to Salih Jazarah.
SMih Jazarah,^ was the person best acquainted of all he had seen A b u B a k r al-Bazzar.
w ith the traditions of the Basrians. A bu J a far Muhammad b. U tm an b. A b i Saybah, a w eak (trans
Ishaq b. R ahaw ayh, the religious leader of Hurasan. m itter himself), yet, a leading representative of (personality criti
A b u J a far Muhammad b. A bdallah b. Am m ar al-Mawsi]i, the cism). A nd
hadit expert, who has good remarks on personality criticism. Muhammad b. Nasr al-Marwazi.
Ahm ad b. Salih at-Tabari, the hadit expert of E gyp t, like A fter them, there were
whom there were few. A nd A bu B ak r al-Faryabi.
Harun b. A bdallah al-Hammal. A ll these scholars were leading A l-B ardiji.^
representatives of personality criticism. An-Nasa"i.
The next, im m ediately following class included men such as A bu Y a la.
Ish^q al-Kawsaj.'^ Al-H asan b. Sufyan.
Ad-Darimi. Ibn Huzaymah.
A d-D u h li .9 Ibn Jarir at-Tabari.
Al-Buhari. A nd A d-D aw labi.
A l-Ijli, the hadit expert, who settled in the Magrib. A bu A rubah al-Harrani.
A fte r them, there were A bu 1-H asan A hm ad b. U m ayr b. Jaw sa .i A nd
A b u Z u r'ah ar-Razi. A bu J a far a l-U qayli.
A b u H atim ar-Razi. The next class included men such as
Ibn A bi Hatim .
a l- A l b a n i , Rasd^il arba^, 103-49 (Dam ascus, n. y . [1385/1966]).
^ S ic leg., d. 234/848, cf. Ibn al-'Im ad , Sadardt, II, 81 (Cairo 1350-51).
H e is m entioned, w ithout a date, in al-B uhari, T a M h , I, i , 144; T B , V , 429; Ibn A b i 1 D. 276/889 (cf. G A L , I, 164).
H atim ar-R azi, Taqdimat al-ma^rifak, 320 (H yderabad 1371/1952), and idem, al-Jarh * D. 285/January 899 {TB, V I, 27 ff.).
wa-t-ta^dtl. I I I , 2, 307 (H yderabad 1360-73/1941-53). Ibn A b i H atim quotes the statem ent D. 287/900, or 286 (cf. P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 49; G A L Supplement II, 978, no. 64,
attrib u ted to Ibn H an b al in both places. A ccordin g to ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 8th tab., referring to Ms. Princeton 2070 = 969 H).
no. 26 W t J S T E N F E L D , Ibu N um ayr died in 234/849. * A p p aren tly, the son of Ibn H anbal, d. 290/903 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I , 96 f.).
3 D. 235/850 (Ibn A b i H atim , al-Jarh wa-t-ta^dtl, II, 2, 327 f.; T B , X , 320 ff.). A hm ad b. 'A m r, d. 291/903-4, or 292 (cf. G A L Supplement, I, 258).
* Salih b. M uham m ad, d. 293/906, or 294 {TB, I X , 322-28). * D. 294/906-7 (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 258, 305).
D. 242/856-57 {TB , V , 416 ff.). A h m ad b. H arun, d. 301/914, or tw o years later (cf. G A L Supplement I, 949).
D. 243/857-58, or 249/863 {TB , X I V , 22 f.). * D . 303/916 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I, 132-36).
Ishaq b. Mansur, d. 251/865 {TB, V I, 362 ff.). M uham m ad b. Ishaq, d. 311/924, or 310 (cf. G A L , I, 193; Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam,
'A b d allah b. 'A b d -ar-R ah m an , d. 255/869 {GAL, I, 163). V I , 184-86 ;a l- Y a fi'i, Mir^dt al-jandn, anno 310).
* M uham m ad b. Y a h y a , d. 258/872, or 252, 256, 257 {TB, I I I , 415-20). D. 320/932 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I, 242).
522 a s-sa h a w ! s i l A n TRANSLATION 523

A b u Talib A hm ad b. Nasr a l-B a g d a d i/ 2ihadit expert and the A b u 1-Fadl al-Falaki ^ who w rote the Kitdh at-Tabaqdt in a
teacher of ad-D^raqutni. thousand fascicles.
Ibn Uqdah. A bu 1-Qasim H am zah as-Sahmi.
Abd-al-B&.qi b. Qani*. A b u Y a 'q u b al-Qarrab al-Harawi.^ A nd
A fter them, there were A b u D arr al-Harawi.
A b u S a id b. Yunus. A fter them, there were
A bu H atim b. H ibban al-Busti. A bu M uhammad al-H asan b. Muhammad al-H allal al-Bagdadi.*
At-Tabar^ni. A nd A b u A bdallah as-Suri. ^
Ibn A di al-Jurjani whose w ork on Personalities is the final A b u S a d as-Samman. And
(authority) on negative personaHty criticism. A bu Y a 14 al-Halili.
A fter them, there were A fter them, there were
A bu A ll al-H usayn b. M uhammad al-M asarji an-N isabuii ^ who Ibn A bd-al-Barr al-Andalusi.
wrote a M usnad mu'-allal in 1300 fascicles. Ibn H azm al-Andalusi.
A b u s-Sayh b. Hibban. A l-B ayhaqi. A nd
A b u B ak r al-Ism aili. Al-H atib.
A b u A hm ad al-Hakim.^ And A fter them, there were
A d-D araqutni who wrote the definitive w ork on the knowledge A bu 1-Qasim S a d b. Muhammad az-Zanjani.
of defects (in traditions, Hlal). ayh-al-Islam al-Ansari.
A fter them, there were A bu Salih al-M uaddin.
A b u A bdallah b. Mandah. Ibn Makula.
A b u A bdallah al-Hakim . A b u 1-W alid al-Baji, a very learned man and great authority,
A bu Nasr al-K alabadi. who w rote on personality criticism.
A b u 1-M utarrif Abd-ar-Rahm an b. F u tay s (166), the judge A b u A bdallah al-H um aydi. A nd
of Cordoba, who w rote the five-volum e D a W il as-sunnah in praise Ibn M ufawwaz al-M aafiri as-Satibi.'^
{faddHl) of the men around Muhammad. Then, there were
A bd-al-Gani b. S a id. A bu 1-Fadl b. Tahir al-Maqdisi.
A b u B ak r b. M ardawayh al-Isbah^ni. A nd u ja b. Faris ad-Duhli.^
Tam m am ar-Razi. A l-M utam an b. A hm ad b. A li as-Saji.
A fter them, there were Siraw ayh ad-D aylam i. A nd
A bu 1-F ath Muhammad b. A b i 1-Faw aris al-BagdM i.^ W u s t e n f e l d ).
A b u B ak r al-Barqani. ^ 'A ll b. al-H usayn, d. 429/1038, cf. as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fol. 43 ia-b . A lts grandfather
died in 384/995, H is Kitdb al-Alqdb is quoted b y as-Sam 'ani, Ansdb, fols. 420a, 483a, 484b.
A bu H atim (?) a l-Abdawi on whose authority ten persons wrote 2 Ish4 q b. Y a 'q u b (cf. G A L Supplement I, 619). For a reference to his H istory, cf.
10,000 fascicles. Ibn R a jab , D a y l tabaqdt al-Handbilah, I, 65 a d - D a h h A n and L a o u s t (Dam ascus 1370/
1951)-
H alaf b. M uhammad al-Wasiti. * 352-439/963-1047 [TB , V II , 425).
A bu M as'ud ad-Dimasqi.^ * M uham m ad b. 'AH, d. 441/1049 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 281).
* Ism a 'il b. 'A li, d. 445/1053-54 (Ibn a l-'Im a d , Sadardt, I I I , 273).
1 D. 323/935 {TB, V , 182 f.). S a 'd b. 'A ll b. M uham m ad, d. 471/1098-99 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, V I I I , 320; as-
D . 365/976 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I I , 8 i; as-Sam 'au i, Ansdb, fol. 502a). S am 'an i, Ansdb, fol. 279a).
3 M uham m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 378/988 (Ibn al-'Im a d , Sadardt, III , 93). T a h ir b. M ufaw w az, d. 484/1091 (ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 15th tab., no. 10
* M uham m ad b. A h m ad b. M uham m ad, d. 412/1022 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, Muntazam, V I I I , 5 f.). W O s te n fe ld ) .
A p p aren tly, A b u H azim 'U m ar b. A hm ad, d. 417/1026 {TB, X I , 272 f.). * D. 507/11 13 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, I X , 176). He had begun to w rite a supplem ent
D . 401/1010-11 (cf. G A L Supplement I, 281). to the History of Bagddd, cf. also as-Sam 'an i, Ansdb, fols. 73a-b, 335a.
Ibrahim b. M uham m ad, d. 400/1010 (ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 13th tab., no. 47 D . 507/1113 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, I X , 1 7 9 ^-; Ibn H aja r, Lisdn, V I, 109 f.). He
524 a s -s a h A w i s i l A n T R A N S L A T IO N 525

A b u A li al-Cassani.i Zaki-ad-din al-Mundiri.


A fter them, there were A b u A bdallah al-Birzali.^
A bu 1-Fadl b. Nasir as-Salami.^ As-Sarifini.
Judge lya d . A r-R asid (Rasid-ad-din) al-A ttar.
As-Silafi. Ibn as-Salah.
A b u Musa al-Madini. Ibn al-Abbar.
A bu 1-Qasim b. Asakir. And Ibn al-Adim.
Ibn Baskuw al. A bu Samah.
A fter them, there were A bu 1-B a q a HMid b. Y u su f an-Nabulusi.^ A nd
A bd-al-H aqq al-Isbili.^ Ibn as-Sabuni.^
Ibn al-Jawzi. A fter them, there were
A bu A bdallah b. al-Fahhar al-M alaqi> A nd A d-D im yati.
A bu 1-Qasim as-Suhayli. Ibn az-Zahiri.
A fter them, there were araf-ad-din al-Maydumi.^
A b u B ak r al-Hazimi. Ibn D aqiq-al-id.
A bd-al-Cani al-Maqdisi. Ibn Farah. ^
Ar-Ruhawi. A nd U b a yd al-Isirdi. (167)
Ibn M ufaddal al-Maqdisi. S a d-ad-din al-Hariti.
A fter them, there were Ibn Taym iyah.
A bu 1-Hasan b. al-Q attan. Al-Mizzi.
Ibn al-Anmati. Qutb-ad-din al-Halabi.
Ibn N uqtah. Ibn Sayyid-an-nas.
Ibn ad-D ubayti. Taj-ad-din b. M aktum.
Ibn H alil ad-Dimasqi. Ibn al-Birzali.
A bu B a k r b. H alfun al-Azdi.^ A nd ams-ad-din al-Jazari ad-Dimasqi.
Ibn an-N ajjar. A bu A bdallah b. A y b a k as-Saruji.
Then, there were Kam al-ad-din J a far al-Udfuwi.
Ad-D ahabi.
w as the copyist of the Chicago m anuscript of a l-B a g a w is Mu'-jam as-sahdbah (above, p. 405,
n. 3).
A bu 1-H usayn b. A y b a k ad-D im yati.
^ A l-H u sayn b. M uham rnad, d. 498/1105 (cf. G A L , I, 368). ihab-ad-din b. Fadlallah.
^ M uham m ad b. N asir, d. 5 5 0 / 1 1 5 5 (ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, i6 th tab., no. i
W u s t e n f e l d ) . He is often quoted b y Ibn al-Jaw zi as one of his authorities (cf. M untazam,
Najm -ad-din A bu 1-H ayr ad-Dihli al-Bagdadi.
index to V ol. I X , p. 18); Y a q u t, Mu^jam (cf. W u s t e n f e l d s index), s.v. K a m a d b. N asir. A l-A la i.
Cf. S. A . B o n e b a k k e r , in Bibliotheca Orientalis, X X I I , 246, n. 3 (1965).
A b d -al-H aq q b . Abd-ar-R ahm an , d. 581/1185 (cf. G A L , I, 371). 1 M uham m ad b. Y u su f, d. 636/1239 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 153 > E.I, 2nd ed., s. v.
M uham m ad b. Ibrahim , d. 590/1194 (ad-D ahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, 17th tab., no. 6
al-Birzali).
W u sten feld ).
2 D. 663/1265 (Ibn R a fiS Muntahab al-muhtdr, T a M h ^ulamd^ Bagddd, 50 f.).
M uham m ad b. Musa, d. 584/1188 (cf. G A L , I, 356). A b u H anud M uham m ad b. 'A li, d. 680/1282 (ad-Dahabi, op. cit., 19th tab., no. 12;
'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. <^Abdallah, d. 612/1215-16 (Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 69). Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 106, 411). H is Takmilat Ikm dl al-Ikm dl was edited b y M u s t a f a
'A li b. M uham m ad, d. 628/1231 (ad-Dahabi, Tabaqdt al-huffdz, i8 th tab., no. 10). J a w a d (Bagdad 1 3 7 7 / 1 9 5 7 ) . Th e Takmilah is a supplem ent to Ibn N u q ta h s (above, p. 4 4 7 ,
Ism a 'il b. 'A b d allah , d. 619/1222 (as-Suyuti, H usn al-muhddarah, I, 200, Cairo 1299). n. 5) Ikm dl al-Ikm dl, a supplem ent to Ibn M akulas Ikmdl.
Y u su f b. H alil, d. 648/1250 (ad-Dahabi, op. cit., i8 th tab., no. 12; A . J. A r b e r r y , in M uham m ad b. Ibrahim , d. 683/1284 (as-Suyuti, Bugyah, 5, Cairo 1326).
The Islam ic Quarterly, III , 22 [1956]).
A hm ad b. Farah , d. 699/1300 [G A L , I, 372).
M uham m ad b . Ism a'il, d. 6 3 6 / 12 3 9 (c f. G A L Supplem ent I , 2 9 8 ; P o n s B o i g u e s , Ensayo, 'U b a y d b. M uham m ad, d. 692/1293 (ad-D ahabi, op. cit., 20th tab., no. 6). His son
284).
A h m ad died in 732/1332 (Ibn H ajar, Durar, I, 1 9 7 f-)-
526 A S-SAH AW iS I l A n TRANSLATION 527

M ugultay. were severe and very correct in their requirements for reliability.
As-Safadi. T h ey impugned (the reliability of) a transm itter on account of
The sarif al-H usayni ad-Dimasqi. tw o or three errors. If one of them considered an individual reliable,
Taqi-ad-din b. R a fi . stick to w hat he said and consider (that individual) reliable. On
Lisan-ad-din b. al-Hatib. the other hand, if he considered a person weak, look whether some
A b u 1-Asbag b. Sahl. one else agreed w ith his opinion. If so, no sensible man would
Zayn-ad-din a l-Iraqi. consider th at person reliable. H e is definitely weak. If, however,
ihab-ad-din b. Hijji. someone considers him reliable, he is one of those to whom the
Salah-ad-din al-Aqfahsi. following statem ent applies: N egative criticism in his case is
W ali-ad-din al-Iraqi. acceptable only if it is accom panied b y an explanation. T h at is,
The sarif Taqi-ad-din al-Fasi, Ibn M ain s statem ent, for instance, th at he is w eak is not sufficient
Burhan-ad-din al-Halabi. (under the circumstances), unless the reason of his weakness is
A la -ad-din b. H atib-an-N asiriyah, explained. A l-Buhari, or someone else, m ight come and consider
Ibn Hajar. (the same person) reliable. In these cases, opinions differ as to
A l-A yni. w hether traditions of such a person should be considered w eak or
Izz-ad-din al-Kinani. sound. It was therefore said b y ad-Dahabi, th at (i68) perfectly
Najm -ad-din b. Fahd. thorough critic of personahties: It never happened that tw o that
Ibn A bi Udaybah.^ A nd is, two of the same class com petent representatives of personahty
A l-B iq a i. The latter two are of the same (rank and time). Those criticism agreed on considering a w eak transm itter reliable or on
below (later than) them are very inferior. considering a reliable transm itter w eak. An-Nasa^i therefore
A t all times, there were also other representatives of personality followed the rule th at no (ones) tradition was to be rejected, unless
criticism who declared (transmitters) to be either feeble or sound. all were agreed upon its (his) rejection. T h at is, each class of critics
Those of an earlier age are more nearly correct and less subject of personalities had one who was very strict, and one who was
to censure than the more recent ones. (Still,) the greater part medium strict. In the first class, there were Su 'b ah and at-Taw ri,
(of the relevant information) remains unknown. This w riter (as- w ith Su'bah being the stricter one of the tw o; in the second class,
Sahawi) is the author of m any works on the subject. H e has not, there were Y a h y a al-Q attan and Ibn Mahdi, w ith Y a h y a being the
however, fully devoted himself to it, and he has not revealed all stricter one; in the third class, there were Ibn M a'in and Ahm ad
his inform ation about the shortcomings of hadit scholars and (b. Hanbal), w ith Ibn M ain being the stricter one; and in the fourth
transmitters. class, there were A b u H atim and al-Buhari, w ith A bu H atim being
A d-D ahabi distinguished several categories of those who criti the stricter one. Now, an-N asai said: No one is to be rejected, as
cally discussed personalities. There were those, such as Ibn M a'in far as I am concerned, unless all are agreed upon his rejection. If,
and A bu H atim , who discussed all transm itters. There were others, for instance, Ibn Mahdi considered (a transmitter) reliable and al-
such as M alik and Su'bah, who discussed a large number of trans Q attan considered him weak, he must not be rejected, since it is
m itters. A nd there were, again, others, such as Ibn 'U yayn ah and known how very strict Y a h y a (al-Qattan) and his like were in their
as-afii, who discussed individual persons." criticism. The afore-mentioned exposition was approved b y Ibn
(Ad-D ahabi continued ?:) E ach category, in turn, has three H ajar.
subdivisions, (i) Some (representatives of personality criticism)
(2) Others, such as at-Tirm idi and al-Hakim , were lenient.
* A hm ad b. M uham m ad b. 'U m ar, 8 i9-856/i4i6(i7)-52 {Daw^, II, 162 f.). Cf. H. R i t t e r , I would include here Ibn Hazm who said th at at-Tirm idi, the
in Oriens, I, 386 (1948), who m entions m anuscripts of the auth ors historical w orks; ' A b b a s
a l - ' A z z a w i , at-Ta^rif bi-l-mu^arrihtn, I, 236-38.
author of the Jd m i\ A bu 1-Qasim al-Bagaw i, Ism a'il b. Muhammad
528 AS-SAHAW ! s I LAN
TRANSLATION 529
and, in addition, it recalls (my) nam e yalil.^
as-Saffar/ A b u 1- A bbas al-Asamm,^ and other famous scholars A l-B irzali heard the rehgious leader and S a fi'ite ju rist Badr-ad-din 'A b d -a l-L a tif b.
were (practically) unknown {majhul).^ M uham m ad b. M uham m ad al-H am aw i recite the follow ing excellent verses:
A student of traditions, w ishing to transm it
(3) Others, finally, such as A hm ad (?), ad-D araqutni, and Ibn T rad ition s when at last this w orld I ve quit.
A di followed a middle course. W ould please m e, if h ed p ray for me. So, I
W an t him to be alive when I m ust die.
T h ey all h ave m erited well in behalf of Islam and the Muslims,
If k in d ly he says prayers for m y sake.
and I hope th at they will find the divine reward. Inaudible rep ly the h e a v n ly angels m ake.

A n add ition al n o te : A student of the dates of death (of prom inent men) w as told the
I am asking God to protect us from our own badness and the
follow ing verse:
H e a lw ays loved to note the d ate of som eones death. maliciousness of our tongues, to p acify our adversaries in their
One m orn, then, he himself am ong the dead w as noted.^ attitud e tow ard us, to cleanse our corrupt hearts and intentions,
A d -D ah abi said (169): to im prove our actions to the very end of our careers, and, especially,
A stu den t of traditions who leaves free (to favor us) w ith a blessed end and the preservation of our senses
A place to add the death of a m an like me
in good health. Amen.
T h a t stu den t is not fair to me, for I
W an t him to live, and he w ants me to die.^
The author (of the work) said; (Here, the work) ends. A lthough
Z ayn -ad-d in a l-'Ira q i took over (the idea and the first hemistich) in the follow ing
v erse s: I did not com pletely achieve m y purpose, (it was clean-copied and)
A stu den t of traditions hopes to see the clean copy finished in Mecca in R a b i I or II of the year 897/
Me d ead and to live in com fort after me.
January-F ebruary 1492. The author and w riter of this is Mu
T h is is n ot fair, because I wish him here
T o sta y , w hile he w ants me to disappear. ham m ad b. A bd-ar-Rahm an as-Sahawi as-afii.
W hen Salah-ad-din IJalil as-Safadi saw the verses of his teacher ad-D ahabi, he
addressed (ad-Dahabi) in the follow ing verses in w hich he pretended to h ave before 550 W r ig h t , Leipzig 1864; Lisdn al-'-Arab, V I, 222, B u laq 1300-8; Ibn a t-T iq taq a, Fahrt,
121 A h l w a r d t , G otha i860). It w as further p u t into the m outh of 'U b a y d a lla h b. Z iy M ,
him (ad -D ah abis verses) in the han dw ritin g of ad-D ahabi w ritten upon som ething
(ad-Dinaw ari, al-Ahbdr at-tiwdl, 216, Cairo, n .y. = 251 G u ir g a s s , Leiden 1888; Ibn al-A tir,
belonging to him :
K d m il, IV , 14, anno 60; Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, V I I I , 154); of as-Saffah (al-Y a 'q u b i, History,
Y o u r friend does n ot wish {murdd) th at such an even t should happen. I II , 97, N aja f 1358 = II, 432 H o u t s m a ; al-A zdi, ad-Duwal al-munqati^ah, see above,
S ta y on like the sun that rises up high in heaven. p. 297, n. 3, beginning of as-Saffahs reign); and of ar-R asid (at-Tabari, Ta^rth, III , 690
I t s m y good lu ck th at you should live for ever. anno 187; Ibn a l-A tir, K dm il, V I, 72; al-B ayhaq i, al-M alidsin wa-l-masdwt, 547 S c h w a l l y ,
Y o u n ever are dull or boring when you d ictate. Giessen 1902; Ibn ^Abdrabbih, "^Iqd, I, 133, Cairo 1305; A b u A h m ad al- A skari, M asun, 214
'A b d -a s-S a la m M. H a r u n , K u w ait i960). (Cf. also the references in A . S a q r s edition of
A s-S afad i said: (Ad-D ahabi) liked m y use of the expression Y o u r friend Qmltluka).' A b u 1-Faraj al-Isbahani, Maqdtil at-Tdlibtyin, 31, 99, 176, Cairo 1368/1949).
It is an allusion to the verse: 1 The verses of ad-D ahabi and as-Safadis reply were quoted b y as-SaJjawi from Ibn
H av e som eone disembarrass you of you r friend from the Miurad . . . H ajar, Durar, III , 337 f.
2 Is he identical w ith 'A b d -a l-L a tif b. M uham m ad b. al-H usayn al-H am aw i, d. 710/1310-
1 D. 341/952, cf. Ib a H ajar, Lisdn, I, 432, where Ibn H azm s opinion concerning him I I (Ibn H ajar, Durar, II, 409)?
is m entioned.
* M uham m ad b. Y a 'q u b , d. 346/957 (Ibn al-Jaw zi, M untazam, V I, 386 f.).
T he sense, it seems, requires that this sentence should go w ith the previous category.
* T h e verse, w ith slight variations, is often quoted w ith reference to various scholars,
cf., for instance, as-Suli, Adab al-kuUdb, 1 8 4 (Cairo 1 3 4 1 ) ; al-Q ifti, Inbdh, II, 1 5 9 (Cairo
1 3 6 9 - 7 4 / 1 9 5 0 - 5 5 ) (Ibn Y u n u s); Y a q u t, IrSdd, V II , 2 2 6 (Cairo = III, 7 M a r g o l i o u t h ) (Ibn
Zulaq); Ibn K a tir, Biddyah, X I I I , 2 5 1 (Abu Sam ah, or al-B irzali ?), X I I I , 28 (Ibn al-
Jaw zi). It is also fou n d as a fly-leaf notation in h istorical m anuscripts, cf. the Phot. Cairo
T a rih 4 7 6 7 of Ib n H ajar, D a y l 'aid ad-Durar al-kdminah. Cf. above, p. 5 5 .
5 Cf. as-S3.faidi, Nakt al-himydn, 243 (Cairo 1329/1911); also below, and, for the last half
verse, Ibn al-A tir, K dm il, V , 35 (Cairo 1301).
T h is is a fam ous hem istich from a poem of the seven th -cen tu ry poet A m r b. M a'dikarib
(cf. Agdni, X I V , 34, B u laq 1285) said to have been addressed to U b a y y (or Q ays b. Maksuh)
al-Mxuradi. In com bination w ith the last hem istich of the verses quoted here in the nam e of
ad-D ahabi, this verse was allegedly recited b y A li b. A b i T alib when he noted his im pending
doom (cf. Agdnt, loc. c it.; Ibn S a 'd , Tabaqdt, III , i , 22 and notes, p. 10; al-M ubarrad, K dm il,
R o s e n th a l, History of Muslim Historiography 34
T R A N S L A T IO N 531

2 T R A N S L A T IO N

(204) H istory is the knowledge of the conditions of (national


or religious) groups, their countries, laws and customs, the crafts
CH APTER TW ELVE practiced b y their individual members, their genealogies and dates
of death, etc.
The object of history is the conditions of the individuals of the
t A s k Op r u z Ad e h on h is t o r io g r a p h y past, such as prophets, saints, scholars, sages, poets, kings, sultans,
and others. 1
I IN T R O D U C T IO N The purpose of it is to becam e acquainted w ith the conditions
The sixteenth-century historian, TaskopriizM eh (d. 968/1561), of the past.
The usefulness of history is (the opportunity th at it affords)
is th e author of a large and badly organized encyclopedia, entitled
to leam from those conditions, to seek advice in them, and to
M iftdh as-sa*-ddah. Its sections on history m ay be considered a late
form the habit of experience through acquaintance w ith the v i
reflex of the research on historiography which had found literary
cissitudes of time. This will serve as a protection against damages
expression in the monographs of a l-K afiy a ji and as-Sahawi. For
similar to those reported (from the past) and as a means to produce
this reason, Taskopruzadehs remarks m ay find a place here. In
similar benefits. H istory has been said to constitute an additional
themselves th ey are unim portant. T h ey are an indication of the
life for (its) students and (to give) in its domain enjoym ent of profits
decay of the living acquaintance w ith the great literary tradition
which (otherwise) come (only) to travelers.
of Islam. It should, however, be noted th at during Taskopruzadehs
lifetime, a reawakening of the interest in and the occupation w ith
Am ong the book on history, there are
history was beginning to m ake itself felt among the Ottom an Turks.
The History of Ibn K a tir .. (205). ..^
Taskopriizadeh deals w ith history on two occasions in his work.
The History of a t-T a b a r i.. (206)..
This appears to be the result of the am biguous position which histo
The history of Ibn al-A tir al-Jazari, entitled al-Kdm il, a fine
riography has alw ays occupied in Mushm learning. In the one case,
the author considers historical works in connection w ith adab b o o k .. (207)..
The history of Ibn al-Jawzi, several volum es . . . (entitled) al-
works.^ The more interesting discussion is th at of history as one
Muntazam ft tawdrih al-umam, a large w ork . . (208) ..
of the functions of language.^
The Mir^dt az-zamdn of Sibt b. al-Jaw zi . . . Ibn H allikan said:
A century later, H ajji H alifah (d. 1067/1657) devoted a long
I have seen the Mir^dt az-zamdn in his handw riting in forty vol-
section of his great bibliographical dictionary to historiography.
He quotes the introductory paragraph of Taskopruzadehs treat
1 Taskopriizadeh is quoted in part b y SaCaqlizadeh (cf. G A L , II, 370) who w rote his
ment of history but rejects his dichotom y of historiography and sub
Tarttb al-^ulum in 1128/1716 (cf. the Istan bul m,anuscript, T opkapu saray, A h m et III ,
division of historical works. His remarks are prefaced b y a definition 2682, fol. 46a; the m anuscript is dated, on fol. 63b, in 1144/1732). Sacaqlizadeh
does not m ention history in the brief enum eration of the sciences at the beginning
of the word ta^rih. Reference is made to the author's Fadlakah,
of his work, b u t later on he refers to Him at-ta^rth (fols. 31a ff.). H e quotes al-Jurjani
apparently his lost ^ Fadlakat aqwdl al-ahydr f i Him at-ta^rih wa-l- from his com m entary on a s-S akk akis M iftd h to the effect th at h istory form s part of
conversational knowledge {muhddardi). 'A li al-Q aris Gloss to the Commentary on the
ahbdr, which m ight have contained valuable remarks on histo
Nuhabah {oi Ibn H ajar, cf. G A L , I, 359) is quoted as defining ta^rih as m aking known
riography. the tim e of even ts. Sacaqlizadeh adds th at works containing stories are called historical
works, because th ey contain an indication of the time when the stories took place. Histories
of transm itters are needed b y hadtt scholars. Stories about prophets and pious men are
' Miftdl}, as-sa^ddah, I, 232-35 (H yderabad 1329-56). in stru ctive. O ther stories, such as those about raids, inspire courage. Others, again, are
O p. cit., I, 204-19. pleasant to listen to, such as, for instance, the Sdhndmah.
K a S f az-zunun, II, 95-170 F l C g e l ; I, 211-333 Y altkaya - B e l g e (Istanbul 1941-43). ^ Here as well as in the other passages om itted in the translation, Taskopriizadeh has
* Cf. G A L Supplem ent, II, 636. biographical details.
532 T A S K O P R U Z A D E H ON H IS T O R IO G R A P H Y T R A N S L A T IO N 533

um es. 1 I say: I have seen it in eight volumes, but th ey were big History of Damascus, in eighty volumes in his own handwriting,
ones in a small handwriting. an astonishing work. It has been said th at he perhaps collected
The History of . . (209) .. Ibn H allikan . . . I have seen it in five (the m aterial for) it when he first began to think. Otherwise a life
volumes in the authors own handwriting. tim e would not be sufficient to w ork it up. (217). . . .^
The History of Ibn H ajar, in two volumes, and another history The History of Egypt b y A bu S a id A bd-ar-Rahm an b. Ahm ad
b y him, Inhd'' al-gumr f i anhd^ al-'^umr, in two volumes. He also . . . . He compiled tw o histories of E gyp t, a large one concerned
wrote ad-Durar al-kdminah f i a'-ydn al-mi^ah at-tdminah . . (210). . w ith the E gyptian s themselves and a small one concerned w ith the
The History of Salah-ad-din as-Safadi, in his own handwriting, foreigners (who came to E g y p t). Supplements to both of them were
more than fifty volum es. . . . w ritten b y A bu 1-Qasim Y a h y a b. A li al-H adram i (b. at-Tah-
The History of Jalal-ad-din as-Suyuti, in three volumes. H e also han) . . . .
w rote the Classes of the Grammarians, in two volumes, etc. A very accurate, good, stylistically very attractive, and, because
The History of al-H atib al-Bagdadi, in ten volum es. . . . it stresses the im portant things, very useful history is the History
The Supplement to the History of Bagddd b y . . . Ibn an-N ajjar of a l-Y a fii, in tw o large volumes . . . . (218)
.. (211) . . It comes in th irty v o l u me s . . . . H istorical w orks are innumerable. H owever, if one has those
The history of Abia S a d as-Sam a n i . .. (that is), the Supplement which I h ave mentioned, it is all th at is necessary. If one desires to
to the History of Bagddd b y A b u B ak r [b.] al-H atib, in fifteen go deeper into historical studies, there are
volum es; the History of Marw, in more than tw en ty volum es;
further, the Ansdh, about eight volumes, which was abridged and (A list of th irty-six titles, comprising world histories, histories
corrected b y Izz-ad-din (b. al-Atir) in three volum es. . . of scholars, sages, and, in particular, histories of cities and countries.)
The Supplement to the History {of Bagddd) b y ad-D u bayti ..
(212) . . He also wrote a History of W dsit. . . . The historical works in the (219) Persian language are innum er
One of the greatest histories is the historical w ork of ad-D ahabi able. Because the (material) m entioned is sufficient, it is super
which consists of three books: The Great History, the m edium fluous for us to m ention them.
one, entitled al-'-Ihar',^ and the small one, entitled Duwal al-Isldm . . .
The Kitdb al-Bdri^ {fi ahhdr as-su'-ard^ al-muwalladin) of H arun (232) The stories of pious men are one of the branches of history
b. A li b a l-M u n a jjim .. (213). ., the Yatimat ad-dahr of a t-T a Mi- and conversational knowledge. A group (of scholars) occupied
bi . . . , the Dumyat al-Qasr of al-Baharzi .. (214) the Zinat them selves w ith the conditions of pious and good men and wrote
ad-dahr of al-H aziri . . ., the Ta^rih haridat al-qasr wa-jaridat al- monographs on them. The object, goal, and purpose of this branch
'asr of the T m M al-Isbahani . . (215) a supplem ent to the of history are obvious. Its usefulness is clearly of the greatest. Ibn
Zinat ad-dahr of al-Haziri, in ten vol umes . . . . He also w rote al-Jaw zi w rote on this subject the Kitdh Safwat as-safwah, and al-
Kitdh al-Barq as-Sa'^mi, in seven volumes, a historical w ork; al-Fath Y M i'i the Kitdh Rawd ar-raydhin f i hikdydt al-ahrdr wa-s-sdlihin,
al-Qussi f i l-fath al-Qudsi, in two volum es; and as-Sayl ^ald ad- and (there are) other books.
dayl, a supplem ent to the Haridat al-qasr. . . .^ The historical inform ation about the prophets is one of the
The History of Chief Judge a l-A yn i, said to consist of six ty branches of history. Scholars occupied themselves w ith this w orth
volumes . . (216) .. while subject and w rote system atic monographs on it (233), for
The History of the hadit expert Ibn Asakir, in fifty-seven vol instance, the Qisas al-anhiyd'^ b y Ibn al-Jawzi, etc.
umes. . . . He composed useful works. He composed the Great The raids and the works on the biography of Muhammad also are
1 Ibn IJallikan, IV , 122 f. trans. D e S l a n e . a branch of history. Scholars w rote m any books on the subject.
* E d. S. a l - M u n a j j i d (K u w ait i960-).
T he Sayl is quoted b y Ibn al-^Adim, Bugyat at-talab, Paris ms. ar. 2138, fol. 147b
(life of al-A sraf b. al-A 'azz).
1 Cf. Ibn Hallikan, II, 253 trans. D e S la n e .
T A SK O P R U Z A D E H ON HIST O RIO GRA PH Y
TRANSLATION 535
534

for instance, the Sirah of Ibn Hisam, the Sirah of Ibn Ishaq, the T he classes of grammarians. M any (scholars) wrote on them,
Sirah of M ugultay, etc. The object of these two branches of learning, such as Y a q u t al-Ham awi, M ajd-ad-din as-irazi,i Salah-ad-din
their usefulness, goal, and purpose are clear to everybody. as-Safadi, Jalal-ad-din as-Suyuti, and (there are) other books. (235)
The h istory of the caliphs is also a branch of history. Some (schol- T he classes of the sages. M any occupied them selves w ith this
ar)s wrote monograph(s) on the history of the four caliphs, A bu subject, among them [as-]Sa'id, a well-known sage, who w rote
B akr, Umar, Utm an, and All. T h ey deserve all attention. Others < . . . >^ the Kitdh Sinwdn al-hikmah on the subject. I saw it in
com bined the history of the U m ayyads and the Abbasids w ith the m y early manhood, b u t I h ave forgotten the name of the author.
four caliphs, because it is so very instructive. In this field, there I t is an interesting {latif) book.
exist great works which are well known to thorough scholars, for The classes of physicians. Scholars w rote on this subject. I have
instance, the Tuhfat az-zurafd^ f i tawdrih al-hulafd\^ seen a book on the subject, entitled "-Uyun al-anhd^ f i tabaqdt
al-atibhd^ (by Ibn A b i Usaybi^ah).
(The classes of Q uran readers are not described as a branch of A ll these m entioned class works are branches of history. Their
history, though certainly considered to be one.) respective object, goal, purpose, and usefulness are obvious to the
student of these disciplines.
The classes of Q uran interpreters are a branch of history in which
1 Al-Firuz& badi, whose Bulgah is m eant here, cf. IHdn, 103, above, p. 423.
there exist great works. * In M iftd h as-sa^ddah, I, 218, S a 'id b. A h m ad al-A ndalusis Ta^Hh al-hukamd^ (that is,
the Tabaqdt al-umam) and an anonym ous Ta^rih sinwdn al-hikm ah (that is, the fam ous w ork
of A b u S u laym an M uham m ad b. T a h ir as-SijistSni and its Tatim m ah b y al-B ayhaq i) are
The classes of hadit scholars, a branch of history in which there listed as separate w orks. Here, th e y appear to h ave been con flated b y the author. H&jji
exist great works. (234) y a lif a h s inform ation (cf. G A L Supplem ent I, 586) w as certa in ly derived from JaSkop-
riizadeh.

(The biographies of the men around Muhammad and the second


generation are not described as a branch of history.)

The classes of a fiites. Ibn as-Subki wrote the Tabaqdt al-kuhrd


and as-sugrd, a painstaking, very comprehensive com pilation of
all Safi'ites. (as-Subkis w ork? ^) contains so m any useful aspects
as can h ardly be found in a book.
The classes of Hanafites. Scholars wrote works on them, such as
al-Jawdhir al-mudiyah f i tabaqdt al-Hanafiyah (by Abd-al-Q adir
al-Qurasi), and the Muhtasar of Qasim b. Qutlubuga, entitled Taj
at-tardjim.^ This is enough on this chapter. (Those books ? ^) contain
im portant m aterial.
The classes of Malikites. The object and layout of works on them
are known from the preceding class works.
The classes of H anbalites are also defined through the preceding
remarks. No author of Tabaqdt of M alikites and H anbalites is known
to us. (However,) the good scholars of this juridical school m ay not
have neglected to w rite such works.
1 I .e ., a l-B a 'u n is versified history!
* Or rather: the su b je c t.
* N ew edition B a gd a d 1962.
PART TH REE
539

ARABIC TEXTS

1
a. Ib n Farigun, Jawdmi^ al-Hdum
(above, p . 52)

3* lj 5 (J|

.... ^ 1 *bj)/ ^ dJJu ^ ^ b j *U iilj;y Jl ^\3:^

b. Ib n F arigun , Jawdmi"- al-"ulum


(above, p. 35)

iiC i-l ^ ] J U .

4JLi- ^Ljl (_5 Ci* ^>"1 0* ^

j\ I jiw* 4ljJj j l iljlk l# jja:> (j'^ 1 cijJ^ H 1^1

j j j j j i l l i ? j !

l^p V ^ j -5 J lijl j SJlj

^ J t i 4 -aJL J1 'J J lj:> -^ J ^


_ e
j ^ j CU V \a y J j' '^i

(1) Ms. M a'arif 'am mah 527 ; ^ j> ^ j ? (2) Ms. M a'arif 'am m ah 528 : .

(3) Ms. Ma'arif am m ah 528 : J - ? (4) [ ] deest Ms. M a'arif amniah 528.

(5 5) Ms. INIa'arif 'am m ah 528 : (6 6) Ms. M a'arif am m ab 527 : .1 j ;

Ms. Ma'arif am m ah 528 ; .1 j ' j . (7) ?; Ms. M a'arif aramah 528 : L ib ? (8) Ms.

IMa'arif 'amm ah 528 : .


540 541

ijA L* L^Ja^ JC. jl>-';)/l j^ c^l > 4J j~! jl . ^ ^ :>j> j J L j C #


^3 ijj>JA j l tjlo A: ^la3 U ^a V (( 4l)l V| .... J

J (J1 y^^J ji^ J 4)& 4I1I u!jA j l ^1 . ... ^./d-.x^ 1 1 J lj3 -l 4)J j j jl J^
Ij^'^l ^ jU - j i^ L J l <j Ui?- j:> J ^ l

(^ cu>l^ jjll t>a)lj ^ ^ I jb j (_^j9 jr y 4ijA4 -CP ^1 ^ J "Jc. ^ 1 J J .5 J ^ l

^ j u l l ') J l (2 )^ ^ '3 l aJ ja ll j U x i o ij ^ jl> l J . o L lJ .... o L w L *j jl Jl.fi^'1 4._J5^ j :> (J-^^

jj^ a iij ._ i.jU n (3 jU a L d iU IjC o l L

j^ J ( jU ij iijx O^^l (Jl_j5^1^ o 3 ^ J 4 _ s a 5 ^ j .3

c jU I ^ jm j aL-3 (_^jJ J j i j (J>j <-^*rj jjij^^L.i _j .5

j U i l j JsjUII \fi Jfiry ^ J \ j^ j U 4II * ^ .s l o L t .il jllc- j j j l Jl:^ o U L -A * J .3 ^ (J~^l

^J^J j;^ I^J^J 4i j 3w . . . . d l i p jlj= ^ 0; j-ila ll jjI i^ n J u -llj

Llcjll ^llic ^LaIIj aj UsLJI j ^L*J1 v_j Ii (3 A) (j'u!U-j u U j^

Ibn al-'A dim , Bugyat at-talah


^ U lj fh j ^ o ij (a b o v e , p . 4 8 )

; C^) ; U ^ i ; W-a3 (. <-J \j5^ i L_Jp k (j \d^


4i)l) JuialJtl j ^ <^[S' (j ^^l^l ^ Cf i>**il ^Ij*
U
k* ^
. . . . l i j l t Aji.c-\ i Up-
,j?j)l JLP (j^ c> ^ l (jl J l *r^ ^

0 : j^-l Jjl (j ^_(j^ c.^1*^ Jl5 (^l^l jjll

I 'a h r - a d - d i n a r -R a z i, H a d a iq a l-a n w d r f t h a q a iq a l-a s r d r L/lj^l ti L* j'-'l <^1 ijJ^J^l J!j*l uij-*! tii
(a b o v e , p . 37f.)
{J^ Lhl^^ {^j^ I* 1ay ^ j _j5^11 '>^'^^1_? ^IsjJl (j* tjllai,ll jill

jj^ j ^ ^ j ^ J \j (J-swll (jlj (3 ^


t}S^ '^ j ' J j a I I ? Juilj < iill ^.jS'J 4aji]1 ^y 1-iJ l.^- 1 ^ L ^ j l " j ^ l c3 J V

( 1) M ss. ? ; th e a b o v e c o rre c tio n is n o t c e rta in , [t) M s. Tvla'^arii ^anmiah 4]jujl jU^lj (^Ul ^^)1J jli-1 jl-^lj j^lj J!!^l
528; O* ' (3 3) M s. M a 'a r if ^aniniali 5 2 8 : <.j"U>1 . f4 ) L eg. j _ ,0 ' or
d J i l j U <9 (jl^9 Jls ti)) S oLiljj i^L^l
o S ^ ? , or <; > . . . . j _53 ? (5 ) I\Is. M a ^ irif 'a n in ia h 527 : j U ' ((5) ]\Iss. :

<J 9 . (7 ) M s. M a 'a r if 'a m n ia h 5 2 8 ; .? (8) F ra ze r I S3 drcsL


(1) F ra z e r 182 -; j . (2 ) Fra ze r 182 decst.
542 548

5
IdjU L^j ^ < Si UU \fCaa JL-Iajm j i^ jjll w^yi JU?1
OJ al-M aqrizi, al-Habar *an al-ha^ar
ias^ -jbS^ V ^ sAjf'j j- ^ \ dU i (j JUiaJsJi .r-j5^ (above, p. 85, h. 4)

^*5j jj ^ j^ Iyi JUS**!


ji S \ Cjj^. ^ A/^ i titr i ' 3 i O j^ b
UJA W Itf
J^l
iU llj j A j . J j J i j O j :l . : J i j : J i j 5 :* -

(j lj_ A ij^ ^ j \ J la * ^ ^ y ^ j5 (3 O . o U j^ i J a I jl^ l < j J a ^ jj3 i j l ja a

UU ; J Jli 4CW 'Jl \ <jj ts^ j


O y iJ J i j fj <3j

: ctiSd ijj\^jJ'^ 0 ^ 0 '^ ti M-alir j l

(3 o j^ o^6*xd 0 ii^jl 1^ J*dl : JlSi Isj?- ^ ^ <ti J>


' J l^ j . ^ < j qW-<J1 ( j j . s ju p|l J^ 4ji
....J 1 5 ^ ^ 1 cr j ^ l
* (^ - i ; * Jp J * ' ^ ( j d U i* j j ^ b ^ O y ^

. J?-1j j U j J a ! (j-Ul <3* (1>

Ibn $in&,, ^ifa*


(above, p. 61) Q u d ^ a h b. Ja*far, Kitdb al-Hardj, chapter 8, table of contents
(above, p. 117)
t Ja jJj jjll (3 c ^ j j 5 (j^ <^-^t^ \ jft <LjUU \>^
^ 1 j ^ l 4-jtS^ <lbl 3jj^ i
(3) > ) i j j U i c^. j > ) i 5 b u 51 (i)j^

^*11 ^ j til ^ ( J ^ L-Jl o^j *s j * ^ Jj-S l v U '

Ol d-Jp -\i9 I JA j j ilj jrjii-1 J1 <U I f jiJ l J l o -U ' i iS^'^ v ! - J ' j vV '

(j j JU) L , ^ ti] ^ -.A*JI (3 tiJWl -j U1

iU:* .^ 1 ^ j j j j ^ L i lil \ 0 ) > ' 3 l 5. U J U fl ^y^ (Jl jj^Ui [4I] (^j]i .-x*J! (3 Jl t-^l
(j "<^jK* ijl J> ^*11 1JA jjl JUaaJl ^1 ^jUJi Vl
^ *J ,\- Al V--J-J1 i3 t-jUl
(i^
V
t' d

W:J.U)lj <^\j v^:*ll Jl u-'^l j o-^Ul ^\}\


(1) Poc. 117 (2) Poc. 125: j ; i' Ci>J- (3) Poc. 125: yJl cn;->.
(4) Poc. 117: , corr. to . (5) Poc. 125: LA. (6) Poc. 125 : aJ j ,
(77) Poc. 125: V (8) Poc. 125: Ji^ '. c/*l^fWj ^ J! vi-^1 j ^U vUl
644 545

AmLmJI ^ 1^ i3 O-Isll vV' .^yi -Oil ju p o; o l ^ J j ^ J j

(j .-^ l j dAiU. (j ^ U 1 v.U i : J t5 J T s j 4 - fljV ^ J * ^ <i 0 * ^ ^

o l ^ l^ U -l oj-^^ jTp- a " j* j^ v V (i*!. y * vV.-?

dX lll ^ ij-si- ^ (jjC i (J ^ (3 cjU I jL U J l ^^^(1) c/*juJl jW u;

^ * l j 5llj 1^ Uj]1 U j jUJl

o :> lj JsA^ ISl jj^Ul d lill Cj}j (3 O jij ^ c:-iP ^ C/J L^j-^

4^Lwwi 4] <L.& (^Ixli oS_/*^^_? [(3^3 IJlA (i J--a^ <^4-^ <-> . O j^ 4 j :5 t ^ l

^j 4-Jl U j *1j j j 5l (j oU l e^^lauJL ^Jbid V^ JuJl <U^ iSlj\ ^ Ji^

^ iijM l (*jl . j- * ^ 4wLJ1

A b u Z a k a riy a al-Azdi, H istory of Mosul


Ibn al-*^i\.dim, Bugyat dt-talab (above, p. 154, nu. 1 and 2)

(above, p. 125)
3 _y cy* <3 ^ j j ^ <3 ^Uyi 3 j ^ J\***
^U-jll ^jA \^1a ^J^J-l) ^ijjsdil 4*jj 11 (j OJUkLij
t>* ckJ'
>UJ\ ^jA J&J (86^ i^jUaijl V j ^ .
. cJI^ J u^ ^ lr!J-? ^j-*"
U cijL^i <^>>J ^ y^ jl <c^ J ^ *JJ^
jr j^?l <clJ1 (3 ^3 ^ ^ ^* * **
^ (3^ jL_:>tZ5l L^^iJt'
o : ( 2i 7 ) j ^ l
fi A

JU d o l ji j J iJ jj ^ J d ^ -f' ^ ___ ^
^ ^ 1j c^ O J ^ l cJJJa
dUA (3 4_ a ^ jj 0 ( 5^*3 c/ -5 jy t. j 1 :J
J Juall JP J Jpl jij o U:rJ I* 0 _^i j 5j j i
\^ J ^->1 lI <c)L-9 4 j U A i< ^ a}C 'J ^ j j l l

I jis ^ ^ j! (j J lk l! ^ \ j ^ y \ ^ :> d lU ! IJ la j

. ^ ] <Uj1j i_ y^ ) 4^ * d \ ) S .j l JU ( j j C d J l i U J j i J l ^ J ', C/*

jl^ 4ljl A ^ J j J j j p- i J J ) j l : (J J j i UjI j^ jlj d -x c " J

* ( * ^ j j 4 - ^ ^ i-i-rlk a ll jjj^

(1) M s .; . (2) S ic Ibn Q atib an-Nasiriyah ; M s. : . (1) Leg. t^ x J l, or j u J I , or t y i J \ ? (2) M s.: V j . (3) ?

R o s e n th a l, H istory of Muslim H istoriography 35


546 547

10
Al-Cum ri, Dahtrah al-Kafiyaji, al-MuMasar ft Him at-ta^nh*
(above, p . 185 ) (above, p. 249 ff.)

lV=' J L j jui ^ ( l b )

j ^Aoll j
0j U i J J jif Wf jJi 01

4Jj (? ) JaiUl! 4__ip


IjcS'il ^
j ^ j l __ ^ ^LaJ ^ U l l ^U'^1 ^
g jta ^ U j ^ U lj I j d l (i ^ U 1 ^jUJl ^ jja J ^ j
Jau<> dbw 4-_^Lyw ^jL_dl 4__Jaj2)
Jaxs^ uWj^^J j^ J*J aS \^ j dJjl^
j l jjiaiJl 1 AaUj dj-i^J 'JJ. (j Jl Jl-<sii ojOiiJ dWk^ J Jo (jHa 4ab:
J a l j j <lJ j jl V Ja)llJj ^ ^

1 V
JipljSll dIL (3 ^ ci
JJ^ ^JJ (j^J
Cn.ii j wr Jl JV
L>* jll J JLA 0^^^^ JswlJl
c_Ja^i di) j] ^^JL--adl ejW u* j^. O^j
(.5UI - ^ 1 J j-ji Jji jl y ^ 'i\ Jl (2a) ^ (i ^ i-^
ck>' Jj'?! j J::^' Wb jI ^ Jl sUl
J -ij^i ^ j t
-j1 j )\ 4 L I * J J j^ J ? r Jtl*^ * ( ^ J ^ Jp ^*1 ti

C^.^. L AJU)J I* (J i__^j


gjldl ^ C^:>U (j
jy J s ^ j^ A ^ \ ^ (jl^ lj ii. :^jo * U i l J ji

O^^a>- J - 4/2A SUaS Ua5 ^ O y ^ \ Ji__ 9 e j l li O l iffU-


1 ^U- ji^ jl ^Jo

* A = C o p y of Ms. Cairo T a rih 5 2 8 . T h e p a g in atio n refers to th e Ms.

B = P h o t. M s. A y a S o fy a 34 0 2 . C = P h o t. M s. A y a S o fy a 3 4 0 3 .

{I) B + ^ y^J] C + -0,^ . (2 ) A L ^ ' . (3 ) C J j 1\ . (4 ) B o U ' j


t
(5 5 ) B C ^ . (6 6) C .
548 549

J jl 0 - 3 (Jt*-? <-^V" . (jA t>

o* ^j^j j^ ^ sirU ^ ^U- j^ aJl# j


Jl_p-1 (jc^j 4I I J (j^ ^ ^jLJI ^ Ul_j
(^ 4jU a d ^ jIJ I : i^ d j 4^j*^l o U '^ U llj ^ j l ^ l c j L v I
4Z^j>j dili ^^ (jA 4> ^3^-*^ \i
jfA !^^\j>- o ls j] QJ)J j 6>^ ^ \ dJjJe^
^ 1 o U l l j ^jSJl Jlle o S j)lj o i j ) l j f t 4i)il (3 jU j^ l ^

o^ ^ jV>-^ L?"J oU-^^Oa^'^1 d JlA (jA J?-lj |_^3j


d^^Lallj (3*^ *T^_?_/'^^ c^jJl jjA
Jail ^ ';> L k ^ 'il ( j g j l d l j l I j __ ft^ ^ J jlj
J aI o Iasa : JjS* JjA^d/^ (3>* o \a^ Jli o Ia*
^ilg^j^ (jl 4] A>"1 ^ i^jp' l^)W* i^ji^ (J/u)l
^jaJI jJaI oIa^ I ^ 4A?x^1 ^ ^O
v ::O lj (3 ) ^ 1 (2 ) y j;^ | ^ ^ .b , U
43_J ( 3 0 I3 jJaI oIav_^ ^ ^
( 2 b^ jj> -j9 ^ V jp " J^ J i> ^ d ilJ b %J>C^I
c:J1^ djLall j l I jJ U j *ilil Jl5 4 i J*A k i j J*iU QjJ ^

r JJ :JU J^1$" "(X <i^" _y& 0 . 3 o\ 5_j V^ (3 j ^ (_$1 \T j9 ^ ^ ^LbiS**^

^ I j d ]j^ Ic c r j lj L_C (3^^ ^i-A ijA j <ll)^li- ^


S ^ c^j^J ^dirl Jt* \jS' ^ji 4l3j : J^ " oldjV^
'^J (3^^ (J^ i,J^ (J>^ Vak^ a* ^ * 1 ***
U lj j=r^J ^ cr-^lj <Jla}^ <^JJ
^J^ <J^ ^ (j^ K >.^ tj^ a ll
* ( j* j4* o3
^cLii)! j J ^ * ol_yi> 4^1 1
o J ^ I ( .;0 'o - t l l
^ IJ J A ^ Iaj ^,oe_)l I iS\j j j^ l
j\ J - A a j S> ( 3 J*J1 (3 J
Jrf^ (^)j^ J*u^ t^!-? J J X :> J L ;j^ j/1 jA (3 J ;^ J (J*^ 4 ijX J l

Aj o\ ^JjUallj ^ jl) jj?-l ^ jl J > -\ ( 3b ) iJLijiU 4>

baj! JiJ I j V x . ' l i l j 4^ ^ 1 { : . % 0.1*


w ui 4:^11 u i 4;. u ij 4:^ q d\Aj\ f
V ^ ^
J 4) 1 49jiftA d_^Lc 4<<*ft.i.w)l \iA 1 4)j i 4<* \iA|_^

^ jljl <3j'^^ 1^ ; crJj j j s J^ J d^^Lalij U (8) 4 l,lil fcJl dllr Jl U:>jP Jl J l djj^ Jo 4U
j - a i -1J ^ _ ^ l :o i5 . Q>" ^ 4l*Jl iJ A *'1j^1 Ijl jS f- ^(-1 'ifl i 3 Jl 0^ (J^'^

( 1) B C ^ > ! . (2)ABj'^V\. (3 ) A ^ 1. (4 ) A . (5 ) A B C >U . ( 1) A . (2 ) A d y r ^ . (3 ) A ^ . (4 ) A i} . (5 ) A S ^ \

(6 6) A j i J-i; . (6) C deest. (7 ) A (8) A deest. (9 ) B C 'j U r .


550 551

J ^ l ^ j U M U ^ J l dUfl)! ^ J a j ZaZ ^ OjU* j*

iJlld j jlii>jJi\ (j^^j (J| 1^" (J->- ^jv-all (j j>-Ir jtLi- OjL-> lild JiL a li til 0* ^ V * ^
j:>. jj^ 5j\ ^ i j r l j j y i j > x V j jv tii j
Jl o* - ^ t y ^ V J J l

crb J! J iU l d l V.JJ^ U* ^ r ^ .J

2b lcj (j AjIp il ll A j (J i J - ^ tJ"^ V


o U L - j 4Jjc^ o lcL - J l ^ ^ ^ b ^ l l 0jft JaI j l j-f
iijid J jjwall (3 JL_;5^V j U J - 5 (j J
<u^ tllWl j j i u ^ j j^ju^ ^ ^Jjl ;^^ i j U j
j < l l * * J l dUA d J_ ^ (_ 1 *CLfcJl o>wC <J|

^ y r j j y i o* \-yr J \ a* j* ^ ^*yr
<cU ^ ^j,Jl j^ ^J:;^^. j^^J ^Ji ^y J \
^ j> ' V ^4 u* ^ 6-
j^ \ j (3* ^jf>* 4UJ1 \<#i_j J J o j d j ^ J jl^ l J Ji> j j j Jo U ^ jc 4ljC*ll9 (jX iJl

(il 0* U ^ jK ^ J * u* 4 ij U * j U j j_)C 5 j \ ^ (1 ^ J jU j U t l U jl-u * v -ib i UjIjLa* eilCjS; '^J JJil


^L?j'^l j^Ulj jJ.1! J1 jJuH J | J!>UI 4JI fl:>jC. U:>Jt t V j 6j - ^ j J j^ j Aj ^ j jV*^^
^ r u i ^ U j] ^ 4i j j j > i i (2)j:>ui
^}^'^'^J j j j ij* 3j>-t* ^j-!w 4a4^J ijA
<j V I J ^ l 4^Jj (ii ji ^ (J=" 0 ^ > b > "l> J
b r l 2\ ^1 ^ \U \ 0; (^Ul ci:j-'3 i Ij ^1
(3 jj-A-sll 0* j-ikli J
<d_^ Ulj5 JL3 ^ J& (jjS) ^ ''r^ <Jt <3*
^ 4a. ^ 4jj.-^l 6 jaj ^ 0^3 0^3_? ^ ^_r ^ ^ ^
Jl ^*1 J^J J jlx.^1 (_^i l^J*^ jl^
A a j^ j c
'jiJ li ^\) ! 0j . 1^ <L*v*^l 4Lw)t

>* iS^^ ^ L>^ ^ jU-SlI '^1 ; jlad o U -i 'tiLs
o U jJ u ilj <Jp Ji>U-|j ob *l^ l ^jU- JU>1
oIl^ U j j5 J l l ) 1 J^ j ^Usall _j^J ^
ju u1 o u u i j j ^ i j j j i j ^^11 ^ ^Ji ^ u ij jl^ '^ l d)ll* *!dAlS 4j -lax<^ U J,| _^1 <
A^ fci*^
O'
<i>jIa* (jlj jjp djLc <cU ^ Ia l_j UjI 4lW-
IU>- o l *^ J^ J l J ^ J l/'J^
> 1 ^ j ^ '^ \ dJiUii y i u .^ o j i j L ^ i
oU 4sa1 ljjj-*9 5^^*^1 jjy* (jr* J l jjj
c J j^ U jU j 5jU pJI i.'UI otej ^ u .\ (^ ^jT j J f>jUjC1j d jj^ I jU tj jc j j j
o jl^ i -dJ ^ j]j Ijp \ \ S ^ til \.i^jlr 1 ' Ull (Jl^ liAli (J\^Xvl <uiS^ ijl^^Al

( 1 1) A ^ 1 ^ J l . (2 ) A J^l^D .
( 1) B ' ^ \ j . (2 ) A deest. (3 ) A -Ul .
552 553

J lill ^ (J} <L^ (3*


jL i d j^-aJJ UjlU

1^ jx C -^ V l J1 dXmJ i-jLj- U (3* j^a>- ^ ^JoM 1 ^ ( , ^ / C . w j i <U**u) y clAJS >A ^ I.AA

I j j i l diU ^ 9 Jj C)y^ J 1 -cLv* ^ j l :J ^ 14jlw bjU j (J ^ ti** <^_f

0* 5]j^ Jc- 1jSi_rld 4l i U 1J 5-^UJ iuU J4] JA ^J3lj :>j^]\j ^5^Jllj ^jaIIj p j l j Sj:>Jl ^ jl
|1 clij oV J1 <C ^J -dll ^1 jjJ jA <C<JI cudj S > j5 j A*>j
UJ

J i J:- clij liT^ -ti 4,'Ja o i j c J ^ j>-i <A Usji (Jx c::ijlp j5j ^ ^jJl ^jl"
W ;U : J i ^ ^ 1:11 ^ : (3 ) J i ^ (2 ) ^ ^ 5 1 ^ j y i J i 4I j 4 j J j U | jU ) i ( j * (5 b ) ^ '> = ^ o j

c ^ jl ^ *a1j (J)1 aU I j 1j f c l dWoTJ Ka Js> l^L 4TLw> : cJ5 ^^ J* 4*1*^ \^ j* J

4:* : J i j c^ Jj (!) ( 5 a ) 4L - : J i j j l j ^ j l l t i L J ja\ 4 C -y L>i_j (_^W 'Ull *Ll j} ^ (jl^n -r^U^ 3


J Ja^ 'J i a ^ r j J ^
^ ^::** ^ J ^ j L>lj <U* O ^ j^ j

Jr ^>Uc ^yu>^ j h '%J\ 4*:r jjd Qyr xJ^j xj^ . V "=^ jUflilj j^ ^ j

i 4 Uiwil 4j j ^ 3 6j 5?^^ 6^>Lu2ll ^ip J * ^ u^J^


j <, (10) dJj^, (91^ J v 9) JJ ^ 1 ^ 1 . ^ 1^ U cjU'il J jif 0 ^ .>a^ (j ji^ ji) : JL7 -ujI J^ ^'^UIj

J jb j j'9 1 jr J* 0>^- j y ^^*cs" c K ( 3 l* ^ ^ liJ^ . b j - 9- ji^

SS \ j^ ^ jl^ L*.lj Ja^j'^l ^ 1 <7 * ^ (*Jl J*J dUp ^jojj ^^ J^ ^ ^ j j ij'^.j


J J A <J^:>1 J ? - J \j - A ^
fJ i j^* t j L ? - j AijJ] Ull J D j ^ l
S i
jUjll (^II^ j ^ :iJlj:>Vl J^j J1 o ^ j^ j J ^ j '^:}jj jji^ j u*

4iJ l did J l j 0 5 ^ j 1Ja Jp ^ U j I ^U4-l SIjU'I jj- V ^j ^'Lall ctj:>lj:i-l (_>

cuw *^ Oji^jy^j J ^1 iui jj-***j 1y ^ 40^1 d\l' L^ ^ ^y^ li-^ (j J-=rj!i Llj
Jr^J^, ^ 4i)^jll ^Isl ^ \ ^U* ^ ^y J j'^ 1 i : j r J -? L>* J f ^

jlilp'il \jAj A:Jjli ^jWI j\^ ij lift Jt ^ ,y>


(la ) B i . J - . (1) A I t T . (2 ) B C S > ^ ' . (3 ) A J J . (4 ) A deesL

( 1) B deest. (2 ) A ^ (3 ) A \ ) ^ . (4 4 ) A deest. (5 ) A c iU -'^ b .


(5 ) A deesi. (6) B C ^ 1 . (7 ) A i : - . (8) A C ub^*; B . deest.

(9 9 ) A U 4,'; B a;V . ( 10 ) A iJJi . (11 ) B C 1 1L (6) A ^ .


554 555

\^A - ^ j l la l j d jA U a ll ^ ^ *L J k i j >JA ^ jA Uw )| ojp^\j i i l J 'i/ ^ jh \ ^ J* ^^ill I : cJ5 jji9

^ \ JrL u jl J c jjp Jp jJ i ^ jtll ^ J lp ljS JU::^V1 j U Sjj: V j o j ^ ^ j 5:j^ jp '^Uai a^-jJl

yVS^ ^ Lj l j <U-i9y* (J tiAli jij ^ la-i^ ^ 1 J\5 ^ Vj L-*^' Ijlj\9-\ i;>-lJ ^j> ^ \pj> 4j

Jj 4TjTi> l^j-Vi jj-jJ : cJ^ \1p U jI : JU


\z^ <Jl oJu9 dlls j ^ J 4Aall^ \}jJlll
^U\ t i j i i l t i l L aIsWI l^ ^
^_/L y r ^ ^Ia^JI J-'f*" ^ Cj* ^ til

L-lj ^ ^ U"^^ (_^ (Jrj 3aju^


4 _j*SP Jat^- 1^9 JLld_j tjl*
' ^ j ^ j (j ^ (jc 'bju*-!
^ I j A l U^ o j y l U ^ [ f j lj U j U Uy ^ ^1 iJL-jb
j ^ y ^ I* j j 9 j W *U-sj j U j (3 ^ \ ^ jL
J i^J jLaj'ifl (Jjl (^Jl] I_jpM jL*)l 4?s^ 0
cujl^ JSj 4 t* C/J'^ CP C/J-^ Cf" ^
.J^ Jic dS ^ J l j U lj ^ I j J ^ if lj i j a l l ^>)l ^
1JtA (j ijLj^r ' ^ j S ' Jt^ j l l j < t i : > \ j jUj^l d)lS (j aU^ >>t):>\^\
< aya^ ljL_ ^ lj J^ ij jT i ^j)l iH l
^ U iajUallj A3 j Cm* A?rj ell cu-^ jlj^l
A ^J a iip ^ JW -oil cjlLsi- U J^ j
^ jjd l ^J"^j ^^'1 j * j
-u^-i j" )
4. u ^ n o* j^ ij / i u : - w j u
^ 1 IJa J l ^ ^
j* J ^ J ^ j* J^ j o jlj Vl
HAflll VoJPj ^l-ail ^ J J '^ O^ i]jC^ J b^ ^ ^ 5 U Jl

: ^ > L ) l j 0j L a l l -tip y i <.11 j L i l J 9J jjlU llJ J - ? 'J l lJw>


^yut V*_j J* (3^^^ ^ < J O ^ Viaj^
c3'!)b>-\ \jA : *\^Aa)l J < t U j '^l j^
JJj^ H-J J r^ o\y^ U j -Jj-flU J j* illj
> : cJS jli jU J l jU j) ! (^) ^
A ^ j ^\ ^ j! r crt^jll J ( i ^ 'H
<
iAp ^ I <Cc *ujl j-^ J!l^^ aL^U- jj# ^ JU- dlljS^j (_^j< 1^ t ^ (j j 5 a j Ij

^ W - a ll j - L ) jL ? s r * * ilj i qa 4j j U l C ) ^ I s jl jy ^ J J *Ull <?*J ^ Jlc J*

4i Jj 4JI U J 4i ; cJ^ s J Ju ^ j ^ j i } \ W J a} o j dU l

^A\
ti * i S ^ ^ (i^ (J ^ J J* ' 'J i f

( 1 -1 ) A C^lJl. (2 ) A + (d eleted ) J > \i (I!) A deesf. (4 - 4 ) A in (1) A in d istin ct. (2 ) B + (deleted) ^j * ; C + '-^* (3 3 ) A deest.

(5 ) A . (B) A 0 > U . (7 ) A d eest.


(4) C deest. -(5j A >1 . (6) A B C jlf . (7 ) leg.
556 557

jijd J U *0)1 *b j) Jbl <-jU1 4I j ^ . o^-X-a jA LiiF' l^ r j^ A )jd S ^ jW l ^ U Jj J j^ * )!\ J

Jp J (Ji V_ji-* jj> ^ b j j G d \ j j i diJjJj LaI (JiU-l9 <C,H j 5 CU3 jjA 4J ^Ja^JJ^\

lii J jjJ Us*yx^ j U J l \j^ jj> ^1Jp '^ lj J J j* ^ 1j

j 5 ^ ^ jll J ^ l c ^ jC ji jj jL i :>j..<aA4 J ^j : jU j) j~aA* ^

(7 a) jjW J -*- (3 (7 b ) j ^ A ?rj ^ Ja ^ j ^9 j ^ \ j ^

^.J^ L>* (i I* j __C^->


<uii ^ \Ju31 <uJallj jU-j^J
* U j 'i ll A - i^ ^ J a j 51 a J ^ I I j ^ % J1j 0j l - J l J -^ J iJ *U *V 1
ijiw u y (3) j j 3 . i s j ^ b j i j ] : (2)

^ C p J <j ^ J ^ <3 jLat^l ^ jj t>* ^ -^J_J

J -^ V j ( 3 ^^ ja11s> oJu H (3 o U J a ll oJlA


J Sl^^liall (j (Jr* '1 J--ss>ti o I jS V I j
tills J jL a T *^ ^ 1 J o ^ i-1 ji J l l i w l l d \ ^ f' lift
^*1 : oJi ? (j (SJx n. ^ j J 4 ^ jj*
(5) cil:)! o U > )l oJi^ y 01 o y r}\ J * 4:rJJ W ^ 1
^j^l) ^ i_*sP^l cjL (_5 4J J
o U ia ll b^fi> ^jA 6 J e -lj J^ j- < a ^ j J ^ d W i S ^ j ' ^ W l <a jL m
(i J 4JU-e> ( j j J Ip J jU l o lj> ( 3 mS j j s C V

o U ia ll 0j(U> o J t-Ij J^ jjA <CJm J ?-1 j ^ L ij ^ jU


Vj J--a<dl (jy* U ^ cJjOall (-)^jJ-l \ j^ j
o l^ J I (3 jA J V ^ -?
I* j b X u J lI I oJj ? jlL ll I o j c3 <3 * ^ J -j

^l ^ J:^lj a& JWJ^ ^ o j U r J < S ) \ 4i J


^ 4 X w 4 J-<a^; ^ jj a:^ ^ l^ J j: t>* ^

1y ^ . (JU r <Ull JI5 . __# llll J j:^ U ll jjA cti) 1J j U <i ^


d jl^ ^ lJ d*lji)l _j! ij* J^J ^J*^ iiWi 4I

A ^ ^ j* (j ,3 '- ^ ^
: J\5 Jy J^l U 0.J . ^'3 l ^\ 4J I

w j i p . i ' d j ' f o / " U j/ t i 3 '3 ^ 'o ! > i f O i a : i ; (*)a


4?U ^j ^ <3 ( 3 <3^^ <-jU ^

l . U V J lc > j j C V () U 1 J .i,^U L^lJ U1 ^J>rjs : J


dX^ JjL?- a) J -< a ^ ^ /* o U ia ll dJia ^y* J^
c i^ U l j b ^'^>^1 A i\ju 9 J AJll b^A <0 ^ U l j& W

J (3 4*51 J c :J 1 ^ 4 j* o V U j < 5^ o ljljiil


^J(_ri^ d\) j j (3-^^ L ^ J <CU-<3 (JpJ d^ 3
dUi J i* j V (3 *1 j * - j
o - p - ll ( j^ j-* d l 4! jji^ V 1^ ^ 4^>- (3 * d^ jj j-* l) l

( 1) A C (2 ) B C i i U l * . (3 3 ) A j W l j j t (4 ) A deest. (5 ) A
( 1) I H d n : 4lie ( 2 ) C deest. (3 ) B C o / l ) * ( 4 ) A j ' j i - ' i ' j (5 ) C (*j U L

(6) A l l j ? (6) B in m arg. (7) A o j U j . (S) B I . (9 ) A * !'y > L ( 10 ) A + (deleted) j


558 559

^ U lfj o :> \p j IjJ i j '% ! > J J [:^ J W ^1 Jl 5 - . j : r j l ' o - ' i J j j " ? ' ->=rj'l J ; u i

ji^ j5 : JU A3i\ Jl5 i J dib J di!j, ^ J^ A^j ^J^^ (_/ UlajJ J : ^SjI o ljL < ? (jp

j} J (^3-) JUj J lj l~juil -oil Vl 4il L^s jU lJ ^'91 J j t CjH j 5j . Up JW9 jua UL?- aS (3 : J^
Jc 4Ui.ill 0 I 51 (3^ dl'i jrtc J1 J j l It j\j : J d^>Lall <ip ^ J * JU " 'oiii J l i . u^J
* *0

U jj j ) : pjaJl J_^ J I d lli ^ y *y ^ J J>^'^ ^ (3 ^_/ u^

(j J^l lift 0* J!j ajijtjx: j1 ^ jl 3jsl* l^ j j } Sj^l*

S^!s>bllj 5l:>l^l |Ia* ( j j ljj\ ^ \ J aII^I W^>^_? 4*JuU)l 4^1a*l! <Ua I)1 dJl^ ja II) IaIi^ I

J ^ a* u > -lj ^ jl" J-aJ alP 4! 4L?U-1 o l j L t V l dlL"j


cIj'^ J ^ j V (4^ < u^ l ^*V

j - ip <u>!^ 4I jja \ o U JaJl dilT 5 jb - lj


dilJii :J U Oil JI3 jj^ ld l ^_^bJi0 diJS (jj :JU" J^

J1> ^ 1 ^ j j UUl l (J-^.*^ (J^ ^ j^ J* ^

V j ^^ J J '^ J dJbl o U J a ll o l s J ^ A ? r lift (w ^ L ? (J>~^ L aIJ

<iX)l oltfJa)! ^ S j? - lj ^ ^JA AXm J > -lj J$^ J l Job I3I C^yw (j Jautjuli^ ^y> 4-d \1 Oj>^ ^

J a il Jc jLa<^l J o l j l ^ V l jL a ^ lj
^Lusxli di)i jrjp

jj-5s jUj^'^1 o I lW j 4mJL1 djp^j ) i Jj,ua>- U S ' crJ^ lijid ^ Jy <U>-L<9 ^ L aIj

J^ o U ia ll J ?L (j a j ^ J _yo;>- l^lc- j-^ ( j ^1^1 j\^ J ^ 11 baJ^

o l^ j'^ l ^j o b r l ^ l ^ y \ J ^ . jA J j j u l l j o U l j jlj^ l
4J (-1^ ^ i^ y - " L aIj
ojPrj (i V d jT J J -a ^ UaIoc U j o l j l ^ l j
l i l L lj ijp 4^'W J-* <i ^
:sU 51 0j : r j (i jl ^ :>U 3 ji'Jl
4?rjll jA J-A \a ^ j 4^W

jl^ l Ujl *l^Vl Xfr 4J 4^U -1 oljLcVi dlL"J UuW" 1 0^9 (jj^ tiJ U lj

-Urj jU lj -I=rj j4 ^ li| (j 4J '.

jl^ l l^*U- J ^1 ^_/9jUr A->r^ jIjc-I (8b) jjliJI 4^ <i U jp ^ j o \j \c^ jW j

O J^ j l l
( 1 1) A . (2 ) B C . (3 ) B deesf (4 ) C Ul . (o) A -brjll .

(2 ) A . J->;! (3 3 ) A deest {fo rt, r e c ie ) . (4 ) A B C V . (6) A . (7 ) A U . (8 8) A jl , (9 9 ) A deest-, a fte r j ^ h ,

A adds : -=^
560 561

Law ^ t^lJLl) jjlij *LjU)l diJa)J ^ 1 J& 4i^U j^ (jl^l 4=rjJl c>* tK?

j^ p j 0 * *4 ^ J_fj\.\ Q jJ ', O*

^y Aj^ry. m_^U j j a.) A J-^ -trj)l la* ^jl" j : / iU O-U j c ^jJ;. 4^Ls9 ^Ijll O'* iX?

^ tjr* 6JJaJj i3)^JUslll 4! ^ (j Jj-=^ ^ 4:;-jll ^yA?rj J ^ (j

jJ_? <115 lI^ ^-*Aj |i*9 ^ dJjls ^jJ IT J jJ \ ^ j-p)^ j l j Ts u dU jj9

oUall _jA 1;->| jl ^ ctJlj Up ciO *-r*j J ^ l 4JL^ ^ \^\j :^ \ j \f-A J ^ lj ^ f > J ^

o U l (3) u J . V < i ' i J j j . V u o i U )i ^ J J j^ Jj'^^

<U ^i^a_ax)l ^^)*U;ji jlJ ^y* *^J 1^jJX*1 U f 0* <-5 J ^ A) j j l l ^jUll J U j l^ UJpl

djj-,aJ *lijt ^>l:ai (3 *liii V (lOa)<^*li^j <^?'ljp l:^ ^jTj] -jU:VI t>* -^j=^

ciX lj J; ^ J_}i (J*^ <L^j)l L ^ lj ^ > 3 4 .u r i-/ 3 vU'Sl L ^ y


I iU o> o^

V a*| c/u]lj :JLm" 4!jfl) oU^'^l Vj jJli V ^ jL i) J^ j \ j ^ L jj

cfAt^V \i dX^^j>^ \ w_j mAp <011 (Jji^J '^i L|- j i i \^ l^baJ^'i Acljill [s ij

aIU- o y, ^ j j c^ j ._jjl> ^ J \ ^ jl I jl J j jW^'^b y:'?! J::*- (^^oUJall j U j ^

f^\ <0 <Jp ^ ^ d^xip J 4 J I *Loi ^ dUc '^)S'j'>'> :(Jl M 'dll Jli ^Ic oljLwu J*-j)^j

0^3 4!! Vjdjlo j1j!*< (jC*J-^ 4-la.Pj4J fiJA (3 ^'Wj J U J*"j)l

jlj o_- 1^ 4^ \^J M :cJi9 j ^ .y ^ ilil <uis^ ^^^^>LJlj ^ <J

^ jt J CLai U J_^U ^lJl 4lU-i J J-a^ ^ (10 -tlO)


<uU- i S ^ (J^
ti^ *> '1

^IJl ^jjl j5 mJp aJI ^ 4C jO l djft : oU* ^

U jU A^ { j ^ j^ j J j'bfi ^ oJa) 3J=^ Jl jA (3^


.jC^ ^ ^ 4? r j ^ u* J-!^_ 4*ia) *^1 J j-a?- j >^ia) Oj J Ojy?^'

6Jp1j5_j ^ t j (3 ^y^ild oLJlill oJA Ojj-A lijij l : ^ ___^ ^A : JU r 4I1I Jli : cUs J jj- Jp
j _ ^ 4 ^ U ^Jji J jVl J^ : Jji* dDij ^ dLip !>CrJ : J U -Oil Jli 1^ S ^ ^ ^> J dUp
(1_ 1) A d e e s t. (2 ) . (3 ) C a:* . (4 ) B C . (5 ) A +
( 1) A C J ^ . (2 2 ) A rZe^5^. (3 ) C . (4 ) B J i ' .
d eleted ^^ 1' (6) A o U l l l . (7 ) C + . ( 8 -8 ) C (9 ) C deest.

(5 ) A o U > l ) j . (G) A . (7 ) C + . (8) B .


( 10 10 ) A deesl. ( 11 ) A A-i .

R o se n th a l , History of Muslim Historiography 36


562 563

d ilS j ^ : o is ? U J*j)l *Lj1 <Jj_I. 4J1P JI3 ^ (J-^-j-* '^*

U jA J-^ j)l *U1 (jA d U t 4<ai L* J ^ : ol J jV i <-^15^ : J^ 9^:>1 Jc. u)l mJj ^'I ej\:5" *(1)1 I : cJiS
1 x 1 I_/p- dJj>lji 4 U ; ^ L ^r 4Jj5 (3 U ( j < b Ji V ^ : JlS ^^IjI J j* j I <^\S' ( 1 1 a ) '^1 :
tX> fr
(1 0 b ) j)l Ul J j ^ \ Ijft (_$^au> cJj 4^ li^ j\jji31 i \^'^\ ^jA 4suJ d-j^.
S jl W jl J b l 4 -j ll . ^ ^ V i^J ij^ ^ 4jl>j9 jWl cr^j>-l ^^LJl
d j^ (3j*51 (J::^^ (i^jsCU'^i (3-::?*
OL/fr *

J*uj)l *U1 ^
jA ^ 5 * j : (JUr <^ 1^ (3 J^ K S L U l j . J k . i ; 1 jlc c ^ f > :

:J U ^ U 15C- c:J^ jU l j . J^ 4jl ^ IfJ} d-^ Jar ^ (JJ (3^ ^ ^1

JtT (i^ '^j* <i-? J?* t>* Cy*j (3^ j ^ Wj^ (^J ^ J u^ d^iLaJl a^
^JuJ .J_^ (^^ALj J^ J ^ fjA (JW <<1^ ( j j <JiP aJj t_jL.j } ^Lalij . JWa Jo
i w (3 . jlaXA<LJ1 ^ O j } j (J^ ^
" ;J L V ^ *J_^; " j i , i : :^1 : ^ ' i ; ^ j ! r '31
4jl ^ oj^\ ^j lf9 ij^ 4 \S\^ ciuj^
* U V 1 ^JP (J ^ ^ U j Uil JLu? ( ^ j j jS ; c J 5 j U
UiC *\_) ^ . (JJaX/* ^ 4j*^1 tJ*J (3^
JJ (jj O jj-^ j ^ ^ ^ ^ jlj iJlSfl ^g^JiP
^ III ^ uj '111 J a1j i i j 4^ ^1 j
* U '9 l j i jw:: .' v:U9 ? c J iS U)1 j j j J x ^ j i w j ] j ^J^\ bU
iS.cS' Uj : t_^Ur *(Sll Jli . Jlau 4jl ^ *lll (3 J (3^
iJ c Jc j V j J^ rj *^1 ^ 0^
^_]Lu_j aIC" Usl '^-j^ (_^| cuilj l-Ji *-^J^ ^1
j L a i J l j j^:>jp J c S:>lj)] ^ j j ^y\ 4,.<-^v)l j
j4 J iu j S u* (jw H j J .1I1 ^ ^4.11
Ijy* #*f w *
4jl Ujl JP (_^JJ J::^j J_p -Jsl J1 OjaI
^ e ,r j > t)U l ^ sjL j U J ^y Jl4ij oA-Jl j>j'yi <<Ill *.J^
^W ^^j liS ^ j (jTj^^. ^ j'V j^ ^ Is* tj ^ ^ <U^l ^:>lj t^ljjJIj *UjVl Jj'^^J ^y^ <Jila)lj
^ 5 jU ]l j i J ^ t ^ j j j 1^ a T j j C ^ 1 1 j J i U Jo jJ ji^ -j^
J=rjj O* ^ S:^ J*J ^ J^ J^J ^ V*-?
( J ^ I cvlflS ^*-X^J '-^J*J iJ^ iS^-)
ij^j\ Jj^ ^ J a3 jj ^ J^J JW 4j>'J
(1) A (2 ) A ^ j . (3 ) A V , r . (4 ) C deest. (5 ) A 0 *->
dilr (lib) b j l J jJ j, jl JU Mil ^ 1

(6) A 0. (7 ) A (8) A B C ^ j b . (9 ) A B C I'U. ( 10 ) ^ : i ?


(I) A S jU ll. (2 2 ) B C J (3 ) B C + J U *. (4) A + l f . (5 ) A
( 11 ) A in d istin ct.
(6) A deesl.
564 565

fJ t J 1 ^ u^J J j lj ^ (jlc t3 6^ ^cf^i ^ djtSs jyP ij;^jaIc 4 J li


(i ^}^ 0^ j U J l f\jA (j U j Uujl U '^ j)j 4ALd)l (j ^ 1 (^^:>'^j] J1 <ujl ^ ^l
i^ \jJ\S ' 3 J-^ O^J loullj '^JS^ jU-^ sVjl ^ y Qa Jjirlij C^J^} J1
,^r^lJ ctJd j j s J*J^ j^ (3r^^ ^jU-^ J-=*" ^jirUd
c J l > V l j o J 3 i\ ^ J jU V l Jp dL$^ ^ yt> j^all :J ij 'W^ i>*
;JU *ai\ J\i u 4 -^ ,^ ^ 1 o ^ j ^ ja L^j ^ \ jn>

Jl 5 (_/ J j 9 -r (J^* o-j*A o} j-J 4*9j0 SiL& ^ 4j^Ip (jW *UJ^ 1_JJIP_J

o o J ' s C - ' i o p J ' 4 - ' ^ ' / 'o ^ la 'd *W l11 W u* ^ J i ^ ji ^ V *W

.c^ii j 'cJi j3 j o'.isi i:;, 'o^i J ^j\jj tdili (j (wjsI) ^ J (3^ 4\*J1 *\j,Jl C$^

O^ j\ J j l j\-p:- Aj j-a <j^


^ ^Laa ^jC jlii ^ 6 ^ Ji* \^JJ 6^ _>
jl \a 4plla)! ^ 0 fy JU*)1 \jX jJW *U)1 - J 4^^111
<il3 J (Jj- L tjL*j|
\pJiwJ jl| <U)1 j^l LI ^ < ^^1 fjA J>*'^ lla*
'^J U> djlJ>- V jU jlj 4jil ^jl?- '. V
'AJJ J^j
U til *10^0 4_i^l ^jA Ja^l 4J ^j:jimJ1 ^ji jj^], i3^J
J^' C^ J:* jU*^J (JW Ujl J\i . j\:^l (jS^J
iclii-i Ull
j:J.^ (^) 4;^jU ULji^j ^^jj (3^J W j^ C5^ f^
cH^l JW -Oil jl O) tjC. JrUo iSJJJ
j:* jl::r ^ I j u i-l OU-i : > U l 5 : JjSl (^)
Jli <C_J^ oUa^ ij^U <u<i> (J -ia^l c ^
0^^ (3**^ j^ ^ < * ^ jj J^j ijt'" ^
(j j ^ Ojfl
ij*ijij 1 ^ W jj U JU u^i^.i
jl iSJJJ ^ (> ^ y^ J t l ^ jL-a*)l
J^ o U L J -lj (wAlOIj o \ 5Ja]\ J*?rJ a j S j
Uj > :4l') JU j ^ f i \ j J S:>U1P^) ^
(jl^*! Uil ^ 1 2 a ^ L-J j*
, . ^ 1 ' (5 ^i <y (i^ ( io * ^ j ( S ^ ^
*0)1 Jld oLJl J Ic-- j J ci
JUII eift J*9 (^^1 e>^ di)i d\) cuU ^;1 I :J\5j
L^ ^ 1} i^ jiT jj'^7*::^ V i cA"^ cuiU- l J : (JW
(la) B deest. (1) A ' i f j '. (2 ) A B C ^S^\ . (3 ) A ^ > U . (4 ) A

(5 ) A V j l . (6) B C .IcJ'. (7 ) A deest. (8) A (9 9 ) A - C ^ ^ l j U .


(1 ) A C i ' j j . (2 ) A (Zee5/. (3 - 3 ) B C J\ ^ i . . (4 - 4 ) A deest. (5 ) A \ J ^ .
( 1 0 ) A iJ S l. ( 11 ) A ^ . ( 12 ) A If-i. ( 13 ) B C deest. ( 14 ) A deest.
(6) A ^L o . (7 ) B C + jU ) . (8) A in m arg. ( te x t oU-^) . (9 ) A uU-^
( 15 15 ) A C ^"^ J\. ( 1 6 16 ) A I'a^ l. (1 7 ) B C J - j j c j . ( 18 ) A J
( 10 ) A i n m arg. ( 11 ) A o ^ ' ( 12 ) < J ^ J i ^ > o^)t.\ ? (13 ) A B C .
566 567

jl cfAjlj cA-^i/*J (jA tlLjl t j j b : J\_ai


i V <*1 (Jlis ? j I ^ j (_5 j 4Jl)l t j l i (3 y ^ ' ' (3 (Jr* b j^ 1 (3 ^ ^

p ^ j l . i : jr l_ i) l ^ \ j l U dJul c^Jlj V v^aT : J L _ S d J b j/ j. H j y i O J .1 0 ^ ^ u i ^ l j o ^ (^ )> U : (2 )J U

SjL ^y '"J^ (} t>l jl^ !>brj ^ O j j f f ^ j ^ l _ I l j t-JJL jill * l _ ll j 4^ u ) l tLllr

jjj ^ : 4! JjAJ -^laiy I3IJ j\jpr l^l* j>* 4i)l J (3 ^

: j:rjl 4$ jlSi -CtU J* i? I k- ^ ^ ^:>\ jU - j} : J ls ^ j 4^

l>l_j tiL__J3 <jS'J : Jla J^ ?oJl ^jS d]l^:>- 4,^ a ^ l d iL O j l ^ j :>

jJj dXip ^ ; (J\a3 Oj ^ <3 O 4.^___J J __ J l i _ J l i | ( _ ^ L J 1 (J;4 a)l j * j jl;^ ^

S:>l^l j\ji-\ diJp JaL*.J j l ^3 4 l5 w A j OjU uiU Si-aLpj


o l ^ cil J 1 CT^' H (6)^1 . I j D ; Jli^ U - - o j l l ( ij jj ^_y ( l 3 b ) U ljc \ ^ 4LI j) c i - j d U j ] l ^ \J\

f jLaC' ^.:;- 4ji>-:>l ^ (i-^ ^ J J L<>^- ^-:j! j ^ JJ


<jJ g,
^ j A UUjj (3 <:aa I^ Ji ^jjj Jl ^ jj ^ ^ j j (i
it!c^ .J J\5 di)jj ^ o ^ (j"i^l Wj^J ^i,\^lj jUl JaI OiJ^J^ C ^ Jl 1^*9J ij djlwJUl^^U)
^13a^ 4x1^ ^ <d-Jaflj UJ>- d\lA ^jljs^ jl (JUj Uil jl \^ \s (j jl J>1 j UD
J^l jl 4^ J^U=r 0jIj AjS^*jj A^^msk) 1a-^ '>i 5^JUolj9 f (3 J U j
J*jld Ll--^ 1^-# jpi't ^ J 4J1C' Jjl jv>r LJia L*l~^ dll#
iii^ 0 J .1 diu L^ii diiiT 4iP cu ^i jii^ i (ii)yi Jl 4;^
( 13 )' p U J l

is^ V:^ t i l i r ij^ f ^j-*^ !j/^^ (jij *j-^j ^ 4^^ '^1 ^1 (_^ \ i ( ^ J J jU 4> _J*_? LjJi A^Jli
?o^U dlL I Oyy^_jv ^J 4^^111 4oi^ J l oJ^ ^ 4A)1 J . A $
d m .iij 4. VI. ^ s^ < i J > j :ju ^ 1 4, jAj 4^^L;>- J l oJ_y dlli j.-iai cH^.l-^ ljJl5?uuJ 4) ^j;j:Jl>
tdXS^^ U .'Jlii oj_ll dU ^ dArAflLJi 4_U) : jU ill J l O j l __^ j<r jJki O j a JII (Jj jjJl L^jW" c:^?*saZj^

( 1) A o K (2 ) A i j u . (3) A deest. (4 ) A deest ( la c u n a ) . (5 ) A C deest.


dCJ dLs^J- : UJ f ^ c/*J Cji-^L*]1 v j 4I1 j ^ l
(6) B C + jU r . (7 ) B C (j . (8) UUjj ? (Cf. at-Ta^'la't)!, g is a s a l-a n b iy d ^ ).
(l)A:w.. ( 2) B C j : r J j c . (3 ) A J^rlc . (4 ) C . (5 ) A +

(9 ) B C ^ j ^ . ( 10 ) B C U .U . ( 11 ) B + (deleted) o ^ I 'd U . . ( 12 ) A deest.


(6) C A - ^ . (7 ) A ' . (8) A B > jx , . (9 ) A J ;*j'jft ; C J . J j jc . ( 10 ) B C lc-
( 13 ) A B C lS^.9 .
( 11 ) A d e e i t . ( 12 ) B C ^ . ( 13 ) A + IJ. ( 14 ) B C deest.
668 569

J J ^ w3 tiA^J.J*^J tfH ^J>j .dlZal>- ^ j l S j ^JjT L jU_))l 0 J 0 1 ii^ (3 Jr^ J ^jVl (i ^ J Jf>- J
j;c jJl jL ^ '^J ^ J \ : J\5j aJ\j J o o-Xi J-** 4^ Uj) j l : J_iJ J^U 4:01 J0i>l (j9:> : J i j (14b)
**> o> * I
aJ*j ^ ^J.J i (3 ct*><^lcj 4x*4"1 4T^j O^j c:-<^ (j 4Id^ tS ^ 4JLa<J1 (j oX ^

^ *X<il cH^ C5^J ^ tJ^_? Am 4l--< eJw "Ij_>-


iM sp ^ ^
eJu*) dJJS dljLr cJjJl ^\a tfj S 'j ^ (jUjll j l : ^i-j <1)0 m
IjI *U*11 ( j^ Jli
^ J J U jij j\ ^ l5 0_^txll i^r* j^\ (J^jVlj olj,^^)! 4I1I ijl?- ^j|J jiXwil -id

( j^ * J*'* ji 0^ O'* (jljr'il {y> j^ 4 ^ jJ l SjjJili ijL# jl ^lal ^yi oi


|Ua]! J i c J l^ j U J o} :J i j V j^ (3 4,^'^) j j ^ l j ^jlc-**Jl ^^^cil*>" <Ull J?:-jl O 41#J
^J ^ <1)1 jj ^ ^J cij>- ^y-y u^j>- J ^ j'9 (3*J i J j j ^ j {S'^\ ojuAj <-ij=!"
I* Uo jiL411 djd^r J-A) 4_*a]1 t_iJ5l L,J 1^ UsUl <L,^1^ jj^^ (^) 4;^]1 jj^ J jl ij j ^ (j tl}

til OjU LJ ^ 4IU- J j l dDjj jJ^alJ 4lll O ^JJ '"^ (-3V 1 4sw*i 4jJL-J
Aj djljl ^ (S>^ jj: > (J\[ iwl^l ^ i^ jji\ *lj^'^l (j 4;ucll ^jA (wfll'^1 (3
/w
^ ^ A f^^ (j^ j-- U
)^ ol^jk-vJI 4cI*!I ljUj (Jl 4.-J,)Ij 4^5(J1 0^_)^ ^j5^V^ ljlj/^1 JJ^J 4iJuJl
^ c. v>k> w^

liV 4j^^l>Lll uil ja\ jX <u..^! (J^ aXp ^^1 ^^^^4J1 jLil Jdj j U j Jl 4 ^ 1 <i:>Lall j5?;a11 jU_^
a>fi> fi a* a>
ti^*^L*' 4] 1 f^ jj (3^ ^ J v iiji >> ;_}Ur til Jii c-^_? Ol 0^1^^ ^c-UJl^j lil is ,Jm '. 4J0 4iil ^
ijld^ 4J1P 5i\*P ^ji^ 4_ ^ J5^'f~ fc^jiJl (3 _/liall _/^lj *1jj=^^ (3 ^'^1 ^ ol^ 4_;4*1 ^-^1
f^j Liu]l (3 'yi (S~^ (3 (_^H^ jU j 4jUtv.^ 4iiij jij^vi ij^'^ ijii^ j i i (_yiji (3 c3j-*iij
jtn u?-\ ^ jA : J^j ^*- (jilc- ^*|j 4,j4*1 Jlj?-'V1J J ^*1

ol 1_<J ; ^J^\ 4I o*jui CjV ^ ij s:>uii3) u j) J l u

^ J j-uJl 6jL^j 4___^^>U1 4JIP ^^>tJl ijj


(_/* J*J (l5 a )
A
ul : Jl*r Uil Jli
jlc j iJx ^39^ ^ Jx09 dLl ^ pJLA> <CoV Jl 4Ljl JW '^Ij 1jl^ U J t jjj5 Sj ^ ^:>1 l/|J ^-^1 Cy
i}^-^ (j J-r Jj^ y (.^^>^ (3^ ijfrj (jl (j
( 1) B C f j . (2 ) B C o J > l J . (3 ) A B C ; ^ ^ . (4 ) A C (?) .
( 1) g w aw O ^ J . (2 ) A I f ^ '. (3 ) B C + JU . (4 ) B C (5 ) B ^ '.

(5 ) A . (6) C deesL (7 ) A deest. (8) C Sl_L.H . (9 9 ) B deesi.


(6) A ; B j|l ; C ijl . (7 ) Cf. a t - T a 4 abi, Q is a s a l-a n h iy cV . (8) B j U . .

(9 ) A ^ . ( 10 ) A J jJ . ( 11.) A fZe55f. ( 12 ) B C deest. ( 13 13 ) A


570 571

ji jm .i^ -sVji ^ O*-? (j V uf 4xa (_)AJ dilfl]! y ^1 iS'-^ ^


p . < ' > ) fr sk-*
< Z ,^ ^ <Ui (_^L_*j <Ull 4 ^x1) 1 C^J>" 0y ^ L ^ J J 4jVsi^ oxJl *Ujl L^_} As ^J i c.5"^

y 4*i\) ^ <Uj1 d^Lc' ^^c.A> Va\c> (2a*^ 'b/| 4-hi (.^jull f j : > 4 JU jll (j J-:r J l di)i Jji]! j* 4J
<<dl *j jjl (jl Afi^ l?-j Hwijl Lil iJW JlS ^JJiali V |
dL ^ i!j \j]j Jlc^ ^ \j\^j y,] (2) ^ 4]^ J1 ^ jc- (j i3^ 0; <i J O^ <Sj^

(jj^lJ ^ J*IJ J J o ^ j J j \5 J * j ^y> ja\ JW <uj1 jl J ^jljlll J d\lj> j5 j:p


fcP tr
Jc. jS ^ W -y j\^ l j p ^ r l j J~\ U J ^ ^y J j l J & J j J j oy^y^J y^y^ JJr^3 <-^0 -Jj-iaJ jl <-jIjj]1 j C/^
%tf fi

U _y j l \^ t j - \ l f - 0 ;' c F > s j j j Jl ^ **J


ji o JS'j jlill j jl ; C5^ (>J l j , ^J\ di ^ \ i J ^ \. ^li

P) jX j () -LT j tjL oU (5) ^1 JU ^jS j V O S ' dA5i (j^ l|-9 jl^ U *>^19 6Jy^J Jy-^ ^ Jjr^ JU>V^ *Vf^
Ofii ^
j^^ Al*i (J/L4w5*j <C,aJ1 ^y^ a*j ^y
>J

1jLs L^9 0Aj Lac ^ X S " J:-j)l O^j oj Aaaj ^ j> (J| j <\J
> jljjiall Jusw ^Ic- '. J i j Ulo V} (iGa^ v_i)l
wU

jl iiC lj \j^ J l J^\ I : > J\ J\i 6j^ jf" ^ CA*>^_3 4j\^1^ <tV ^ j^^^ V\p (,,/U*ii5^ 'ill
4 L-Uv v_^l ol i^cf- 6j/P jl^ I (J^-^ (l^^'C**! 4l* v_i)l
Ij'lj c i) i (3^ (3^ l)J *a ^
jjJl *Uj1 dWjy ojIji^
1^2^! (^J^J ^ Lajl dA^jj
: JUd *:Uuli (ii^oj:>rj : a1 J i dlsjll LU 4jl : J i j
^ cJb 4-^ ^j ^y U o ^ J ^ .j^ J y - L a J j U j> -ld .
dr* jl)\j 4 C-J^
irU dl^U (11 j dll 11) 0^ j\ : J\ij Jl o >
Jl (12)1.l> a > 5 l j jlI- jt lJu.
<bU:' 4-Cj^ll c:J-*lj <^*\j V Jl VIJ
;j c^U ^1 U j : JUr -Oil J\5 U^r y -iflj
4jl O'* 1 J 0* iy*jL U^ 4JI ^111 (jj*"J^
5;iJ i J i (i^'diJij Uaii JVX.VLJ ilJ ij
(1^) dJIS ju5<3 ^;LftjA d^J* ol^_A*^l Oj^ (3 '^ j Wl cj';)Ls>^ (3 (3:1
>1 5 ^ 1 ji^i^i u i j ^1^11 ^ o5j 5j i j i 4'Si u i > ij
df* ^ j 'J l Jjj V Vj'> o^cl o^ (^_
<CkjU* jjp IJj;>e*9 ^ l*L!l <b (^-L_<^J JL*" *Ull
(1^ diUl] dJiUll il?s-rl 6ja\j 6Ip:> (Ii1

(1) A deest. (2 ) C t ^ j i o_ ,cj . (3 ) < ^y > j ? (4 ) 13 C


( 1) A deest. (2 2 ) A deest. (3 ) A in wa>'^. (4 ) B . (5 ) A ^
(5 ) B C JJ . (6) A ^ J T . (7) A + d ejeted u ^ j'^ ' j (8) A ^-ac (9 ) A dcest.
(6)ACcSJjJ. (7)Ao-?'^. (8)A4;'i. (9 ) A (10) A cZeesi.
( 10 ) B C deest. ( H H ) B decst. ( 12 ) B C . ( 13 ) A B C (ll)AJ:rJ. ( 12 ) A B a i ^ ; C + | i - j U c ^ ' J - . ( 13 ) A ^ J - > ' .
( 14 ) B C Wjw. (15 15 ) A deest.
( 14 ) A ( 15 ) A in m arg. ( 16 ) A ; C
572 573

0jj <LJiP *Uj1 (J^J*_J 4-aJi^ 4JP 4jjl _^*

i}\ *T Oil Jtjp ^ tiHi 15-^ ^ dyp d ^ j i j ^ y j 4*Jl 4:uU

4__ Ip 0)1 jC (jl Jlsw 4_a15^ 4J;p Oil ^_5*<S>J <-^Uaii-i Cf. J ^ J
t> "^::C ^ - ^ < i^ ^ ^ J
fjjc 9,

A-^ 4-j 1 i.oU )l ^_jU)l j>^^ _jA ^ oV\^>'V^ Jp ^ djip d ^ j ( ^ y J clAli Jp ijl i_/2ij
OJ

J 1 jd l V ^ 1 4.;u dJj:^Il jaiJl ^ U S ^ y U j ^ \ JJ.< 1\ ^ ctJi' 4-Ip <Uil 4I1I J uL-ic- (j\^ J
u/

^ j ):>U-1 l^L^Ur vtJI^ l ) } j


iLv (^*** 1 dj-iP i ^ j f j ^ y j

J Jij^ ^ jTa^ 4sujl) ta\*) Aa1p 4lP <011 CJ, i^~


^.J
Oi ^ ^

uJJall j _^1 jup 0; j\:: j O y^j cjjP" o ^ j ^ ^ y j


o' O^ o'

j[ C/ J 0; (j; 0; "j~* v ' ^ 0;


^W-all 0} ^ *'r^J' ^jXsLlail j j

<y. J ' y 0 ; Cr , ^ I J ^ 0; - O', (l^ t> ) C/ O ; ,/a jJ ^


( l7 a ) u* j j i U J l j ---- - *U)1 J li
UJA ft UJ ^

J] jl'jp a*j \^9j <Jp J* jl'a t jlx ^jc5i <3!^


X~*^y jLjfij'bfl^j
fr ^ ^
A^^Ull (i!;)l:i-'^lj 4_ aU 1 Si^Ul o W a llj o U l ^ j ^ l J_y'^l j ! ^ t5^-^ (3!^ ^ ^jc^I
o a) ^

J f \ 4*rb)l UJC}\ j; J lj aUliJl (j^ d i)U j (3^ f^ i 4j?j 4AvJ>- j^lj 1j*
Of ^

34) l^-j^J dL)S jjC j:ij:*t liJ^_pi diJjis (j,<^J -Jtw \xwk 6j;^ O l^ io J__11 J*J ^ J'__* b Jl^ 'j^l
^ ft
: Jli ^J' /j. UU ^J ^ 1 4 __j y s y l uH Ij4 0: y}j Jj ^ l ^ 0 ^ J

A^ o y ^ j ^ J l 0 l^ j i^ y j ^ -? j^ull (3^ jjr ^U1 JW


r j i .^ - U - j : ; o i u"

:iljLJu ^ j ^ y j V^-^ Oil AJj 0; O',

^^1,1*11 L^*>^ O^sw^l J,U) *Oil ALkA. iJ\3t^^j Iju-- OjtP


{J^iy*j J jV ^ (3 * 3j ^ iS'^^ ^Jt
^ 1 jj > 1 (5 )^ ^ jU j eJl:ll v U l
'Ujl i ^ j (j *'LjVl ^_J 0-^-? ^-?i j ^

4iX^^ ^ (jjA *1^^ <U)1 (_5 0} ijl Ji (3^-^ ^l-?x-(a)l - J ! ^ ( j l ^ c5_?

ojd lj=rj^ *^.i-? UjLi crJ'ls J ^ (3>* ^ J ^ O'* <3^ J*^ J < - u J l j < -jtO l j l J j V l JUli <iij

.U l J VI 4II ^ <j1 ^1 : JW *oil j y o ^1 > 1

( 1) A in m a v g in . (2 ) C + (3 - 3 ) A bis. (4 ) B C ^ U . (5 ) A B C ("l) A deest. (2 ) B C - f - C P Uil (_ji>j (3 ) B C + J U ' (4 ) 3 C d e e s i.

^U . (6) A * J l ? (7 ) A deest. (8) B C t^eesi. (9 ) A deest. ( 10 ) A B C . (5 ) A + (deleted) ^i*!! .


574 575

dXftl'j (jr^J ^*^1 -W,all Ixli ^ 1 I j l j l j j ^ j Uaji ^ ^ J J IjiU j < U * f l j tii


s>>
e:il^ QA *uil J>W ^_^J A_^j ^"j- J_^j!o J s r j J-C- Usl J1 jij 6j:^-'^! j l j j i J l

(j 4j j 4 '^ }
Up J i j V j J 5j : JU" 4Ij9j Uu)l
^
4.^A ^ A1p *Odl >ii J- ii. li*''-? i Ji S ^ y . J j y i % *J J* ^

jiy i J-ias : j -uj) ^1 \^JJ c i j W^Ij J2) ;^ 5 t _ , U J j (D oU t JJl jiJ l i \ u j J01

,> j'3 ij o i _ ^ i > l j <3'<5C*:^j 61 > > i r jjUi ^ f\ ' j i I fo lilS l ^ \ ^ 1 : j j 'j ! j ^ 5 3 c i ^ i j > <2^1

^>^51 l i i l J ^ l
^U1 Jp C jJ -^ t3 O j:L l i_ s -^ J Uy v r 3 ^UJI ^er^
o>
dLjS; ^1 JU.1 ^ ^1 : ^ il > Jy Jt> J<1\ Utj * ( J- ^ ^ ^ J,ajsll
U* \X
> .
4.0^ ^ ^ c l o l j 9J jill J ba^l ^j Ja ; cJl5 *Uu)l iSjj J

^ jAI ^ ^ i ^ 1 >>5 VI > i i a : - ! j u. ' i i Jc ( ) / i Jlfl3 J J ^ j j J f l l i Jl : cJUs di'li ^ J j 51 : U> JUd

^1 0_>U14-Ij 4;u.^ oKU J J -'i si o!- diJJl dJA t3 (j\^A

W^ i 0 | W^ J ^ L)|^ J ^ J *1JCI ijj^ (j^ J - ^ t^ W Ull C )\j c J jill) ^ jW

4^ dMIj Jttl jJi jb:-li diHlj Jlilj ^1 (=)ctt (*:jUI oj\ls> 1^ jL ^ t ; c J li *i dilS J49
O
l^ ^ fi, t>
4I5 t - J j l U a J L ^ l j j ^ ^j^yr (3 ^3*^ (3 Ujy (3^ o J t^ l (J->*

jjb l L ^ lj ^ ^ ^ (j ( w flA j o \ c -^ (3 ^

_;2 \^ 6jrtjJ j ] <blj] \ o l ^ * l j*M -J_jlla# U^ jL? J_5- JWJl ^t>u]l ^_^ ^jU-^ J i (J^* f -CUJ;^'
cjjlkll ^ J cJj-i j 4 4j1ul 1^ jikll jl <^U1 (j U A^ Ljd <ol^ l^jrJ Ji (J^ J X-ia)l>^ Uji*

(j} jlai)l_j *U)L ^ j* ll ji>^ mJIo] o j u i LJ ^ i (J-^ ^_;jr V ^1^ <b'Ui) J li JJ

<U)1 ij} V j ) j ^f:: 'bf _psls J!l^ 4i (_^j]l JaU)1 iJ\j L J ^ \^9 JJ.^ J*=rj Ji (^

6jru)j 4jlj] J_jllall LaJj 5ji?-l_j 4jbff J 9^ \ j 1)1^ U.^ oL ^ l^ l 4JU v : ^ j A 4 j 1j I^Id ^i J ^ 4wwo ^
0)0. gj
X^Lai 1^)1 (jjA AjjllaA t)Jji3 V-'1j -liJ! J l ^ ^1> : 4I eJ\5 V^lj. J>. I
lil P) j L 3='il \x^ j o W U Ij v j lilj ^ ^ V: J :. I f : li jt e >* ("'o gL . J l fj. y j

( 1) B C o l i U J l . (2 2) A i n m ayg. (3 ) A i n m a rg. (4 ) A o * : L . (5 ) A -U j? .
( 1 ) C i 5C j ' ^ l . (2 ) A i n m a rg . ( 3 ) B + (deleted) (^1 Jfr UjLaJ .
(6 ) C J U j . (7 ) A (8 ) L e g .<^7 (9 9 ) A i n m a rg . ( 10 ) A C IjoiJ .
(4 ) A ' / j . . (5 ) A . (6 6 ) A S^l j yJ^ . (7 ) A < > . (8 ) A o ' ^ '^ i .
( 9 ) A deest. ( 11 ) A C ^ > J - .
576 577

'UlJl ( ? ) -Ca ^ l jjjlaj (j Am (J->- Sjl> j ^ j j 4- ^ jlP jib : Jlfl9 jA jjP Qjj^ 1

UjUl* (3 *^*W -J^ ^J=r (j (_riJ U^" CU^ 0* Jj^ ^Jla)! (J (J*^J t5^ Oi^JU
; j * c J j s r ( i i j l ^-i Olc-Ju I : ctJlij jl^ J u o^j (Ji <Jb <Ua j L (3-ir 4_a^Ij >- j LsL.Ij Jj^ <Ha5^

J \A \ ^ j5 Ol : J\5j 4^ (2)jV> ( 19 a ) ^ L " ^ J > j] l

^ jr T (3^ W ^ _;"* f ' C cuilc' J i j ^^J^\ Ijd <^y>r jU-a)l .' 4] 1jJUj ? JJll j^ \ cjIjj]I ^ jU i
W ft ^ \)J -MO a/

O U j U a ^ - } t_Jda9 o JjA ct\)i *\aiJ] o l j LJla c^j^l jdr 4I Ai\$^\ J* J>-j ejfA ^ 6jxL& ^
<ta>' P A kV ^ ^

^^JuJl <Ull JllP (dDjj ijL^ jJlflllj *Laa)l ^ ^ J jj U j^ ^y=rJ 0j - 5j

(3^ C/ (3^ iSJJ d\Jl Ui*^ (3~^^ ^ JLaflil 4X^\ jl jlall cJJu9 (^1 0} : 4I J\5j

jl^ 4 J L i <l^^L_J.^ (j ^ 0^ ^ r^ JUj


6*^* tiilc'

^ \a _^^ ^ jP 5 ^ ip (jl* A ^ \ j 0~)Jji,


1^0?JA Ijft : J j i J ^ ^ (J*^
_? ^j)^ ^^49 j l l j OJ^ J& j9 j)l d\)3 (i C^l j1 <1)1 4^19 ^ ^
p ^
O i > j i ^ J-Ua ^JjI ^ ^ ' j <utj 4jIj (Ji <>.2-<Ltf>j ->*-? _^--a) cJU^
\fi>- fi^lp ^y>:> ^jt^l j1 o:>:ij : Jlij J-uclj 0* X> 1^1^J j
U> . ft UJ .
'i 4 ,^
(3^ **J \inP (3 o} ^ (JlS
ft ft ^
Jjj>. J / ^ j -5 j L i i o J ? U 1 jA j j C o yi
J1 (> <i- W Jji. J lj^
^ j l ( 13) U l i a j ' J ijd i < L ^ J j *05 V ^ J : jL a a
4 i J j--ai jVl cfAL" (3 lilJ J t,r^
vC^Jl 1^ (_yr *1 JuJi ; j \ I _ j S (jt*9 dillA O^ ( j ^ u^
^ 4-ip :5j9 4ip ^jLi *1^1 J1 4j^Jo ^ I j <u>rj)l (>?- -jU 5jyj9
0j J i ^ \ j r ^ ^ S^h AiJUl jV ii-lj J
(jr!-^ j"*^ j5 4C-LJ] j l li L ;<(] Jli
U i* Jl ( i i l ' 4I L . J e J U a a d 4 - C J u l l i w - l ^ l l j ^
(jj;^-lj 4j aC' 4i dll jji3 j;i- .'41 JlSj 4*Jj li ^ 4jjl> J <3
(j (ji>- (JW Ujt jl <L-^j (3 ojbrj ^} diil^ 14 Jl^ 45>s.^j9 ^ 4?t^j9 1 4iUA (j Ja-^j jljrV 4a5^ (J 4l*5TJ
j3 4 lL i ^ V j J jJ L A V o t j U j Ip O i *5^ O ^j ^
J ljl3-lj lj5?5>- 43jIa (3 d-^ts dWjj _/>iai-l 4?u:rj9 j=^l

(la) A B C u ^ ji (and a lw a y s so ). ( 1) A ^ . (2 ) A B C ^ y<^ . (3 - 3 ) A i n m a rg.


( 1) A in m arg. (2 ) B C J J l j . (3 ) A (4 ) B in m arg. (5 ) A B C tSi V
(4 ) A J . (5 ) A . (6-6) A h is. (7 ) A JCcj . (8) A C . ( 9 ) A 3l . > .
( 10 - 10 ) A U ; B I . ( 11 ) A > J . ( 12 ) A i n m arg. ( 13 ) A B C U j l L l . (6 6) B C ; A'jA ? (7 ) A : ^ ^ ' j . ( 8 )A ^ . (9 ) A ( 10 ) A

( 14 ) A .
(11 ) B C j i l : - . ( 12 12 ) A o '> U U .

37
R o senth al, H istory of M uslim H istoriograph y
578 579

c/'}^ ^ ^ . '' v^J ^1y\ J l dj^sUl di)jj ^ *jaUlI ^


(j^j'^^ o-Ci# tiLl I j A C^'jill lj> I : j-^a^\ J l -Sa jl dllil ^
V o;^ ^iS*j ^ ^ Vj ^ 1 UILj |l b ? jl ilLjlj J^j (j 01*^^ iljlll diLj
V :Jl5j (19^) ^ (^)j^l Ijj^J ljL:jc^lj J5"l |i>lL^jj ^v^li-pljA
c> O ^ j 0;':if 0 ^ jJ : ^ j 4.^ -dsl J li IjA IjA 4Tj;V- ^ j l j ^ J l iJ^J u* (Jr^^ jF'J
u* > V jiJ vU ll VI o;i Lij:r Vj lt)l V jija v^--?
j lj::C jl^ I j - ^ : J'*^\j j\*Jd\ JaI J ^ j t^lT U <j S ^ ,j^ (J-^J v ^ - ? (i^- ^

CS^J j SjjTjll dj^jll ^ J. CF (3^^


J1 |11j*3l dSfii ^ J^ j l ^1 Jl ju ^ l Jbl j (6)^1 J ^ ^ l (5)^_^^

{J:l-^ ^'jCill Jyll ^U jJl ^1j*)i dll" cjI;:^ j ^j^. JiL*ll : ^^!)LJ1 j;i ^ (j (3:?
O-J (j (^UUl llaiU ^iUj J aI lijlc 4iU
IS? 5 ^ ^ ^ s ^ r ''
U j >- ^ lift diip ^ <jjl ^1 Jli lid J d j

"^^ju?- i p Jr^ jjp Ai^-9~ JW -Ull JI9 ^J.J (3*1 Ol ^_^lji-l J^ l


j^ J jf " J Jc- |UVl -xJc J j ^ oU_gU ^1 ' y 1 J ^J j} j~^ ^ji?-:sl : ^
t> -^ J ^La J c

j*J li-c jAJ J \ Vj <0)1 4;15^ jVl J^l Jrt^ jjs 1-1^ V
Jlt*'^lj ^ \} jj^ j t^l jillj jjbt- jAj JU-Jl J l^L-&J (j i]jl JldJ <j^l l^j*- :>ljl j_>A 4^jl j
j>-}>j t>J;^ii O j^ j o j^ j 4jl jU-'b/l i^J Ja*T iwU u/^^1 J_/^
*'-^ c>J Jjwl]l ^^OA Ic jyt^ dim L1 ^jrvtJ arlallJ ^ jj)lJ dlill (^'"o^Ajl lil (^ jl (Jl ^-^1 til (3*
^ I j ^i^!l jU JUfl) J . jj5l L1J jA
j j _II j U j Jrljifl j 5jj--a j^ ^ j l J^\ JOM j
c j^ lj (^^)c_i5ljAj Jc ^lL.9 UllJ -ul -Ujl ^J^J u /'l^ (j'J cP' i j j j j 1^1 02\a
{ l)B C d e e s f. (2 ) < il > 4 ,,^ ? (3 ) B C . (4 ) A B C ^ , i . (5 ) A ^ ^ . ( 1) A bis. (2 ) A . (3 ) A su p r a lin .-.'^ y -i^ ^ (4 ) A^T* (5 ) A-Xi_a^^ .

(6) A (corr. to 4 : - ' ). (7 ) . (8) C, iH d n (Ms. Leid en ) . (6) C decst. ( 7 ) A JiUU (8) C corr. to m/UI . (9 ) A (corr. to x ^ ' ) .

(9 ) A deest. ( 10 ) A s u p r a lin . . (11) A C , I H d n >^ 1 ( 12 ) IH d n :ij^ . ( 10 ) C ' ^ . (II)Aa::-. ( 12 ) B C U 5 ". {12,) A deest. ( 14 ) A 1^:;^

(13 ) A ^ - l_ ^ .
( 15 l.j) A for d eleted _ ^ 'J C j^ ( 16 ) A I^a-LLj ?
581
580

\5_jjii 4jI ..mo^ <jlc


j*j Ol tl/ ^aIj jJj5 <jj ^j> W^ : J\i
j jll ^jlll J^j)l^ <cSCJj 4ljji ( j j dljl :Jlid iaull y) c i> ^ * (3 o *^ >y} ^ ^ J

4C\ j r j *1 Oj Cy* ^ * ^ . J
1^*9 Uj(]1 jl^l jt ^oL*)] j
4 > jjsi-l ^_^S (3 ^ K j I * 5- < ul?Li;)l ( jK j
(j U ^ ljl*l 5j>vJl ^ ^j ( j ^ j ^ j j - = ^ j o l^ ^ l
Al*-
Ja^l iiUr ^y* JS' 1 IjX J 4cUr j u?-lj 4cL
J L - v i j \>JLi)^ 0*3 ctJ ^ <CI* ( jliii- a ) ^ 1 l ) j j j l
1j)\dj UL^l ^y,^>^J ocTUj l_i)l C/^J^J

. (_;la*Jl jU d c jjj* J J^ (j^lUll CJj< \jLl


u j' _ _ ^ ! y . j p i > '

dUj:; ^ JW Jl ^j'Jl JlJr^> Jbcrl J\5 ^ liu i o i-" y < j > ''c j ^ ''

JW^1 y j i J 3 _ 4 ji f i .\ j:/ 'j - v ;

L . --J L |1 J llll^ ll (J J -) c :U iJ
^j: u * j J 5 '3 ^ u* ^

(jf*! <-jc^j Ujf - jA t-jllsa ^j-<:5LJ1

^\ 4jilj jUaftVl la>t9j ^ jJ \ ^ y > r j iioljlc U lli J 4 f "c:.,jj

< -j\ S ' J (_/ ^ ajl}j/k S j 4 * > A ) f^_S \X j^ dJuoAaj! f h j ( 1 2 1 b )

o ld V lj J j V jJ lj e^ Lfill ^jC- ^U" <Ijl L-^Lo j~ ^ ^ b. A d-D ah abi, Tabaqdt al-qurrd^i^)


(above, p . 349 )
<_u J ^ \ j |*_^ ( j i ^ j d lls j i ^ o u y i j

^ ju ll (O j> ^ ^ ( jU : - a | C/, C/
A)ljLtf>j _jll dlil U.-0-J iSj^'^ u y -^ j

^^)L>J J *1^,? J Ij J^
^ l } 0^ jtA)
*1j-a 11 ^jA ^ jr u ^ J l J O y - ^ j o le
11
a. Ad-D ahabi, M u'jam ^Ijj j>;J^ ^(^\*.<~J <Lwi oiljilL ip\j
(above, p . 349 )
o\^ j ^ \ Ub ^ J^yi J&^Ip0;Vj Oj^'^ cS^-J(i^
i^jUl :ijlirl ^ c / j \ - = ^ l/ O'
J iC ^ A 'S\ (3 O l-'Jl - K . '^ y } j J^ j ^'^-3
^^yi*L*uSl j-J l (j|\ JLP j-X
( 1) M s.: "IrJUis . (2 ) I do n o t k n o w w h eth er th e ed ition of t h e Tabaqdt

(I) A (2 ) A rfeesL (3 ) B ^Ij . (4 ) A \ j ^ . (5) C p ^ l j S ^ l . m en tioned by B ro ck e lm an n , GAL S u p p le m e n t II, 4 6 , e x te n d s as fa r as th e

(6 ) A o 5. . (7 ) A j i i ) . (8) A B C \ * ^ > . (9 ) B c 4 - U . ( 10 ) A t/ees/; C . b io g r a p h y of I b n B ash a n .


583
582

(jUj> <c ^ o^J^ f '


0[ (*J ^ J ^jA 4ic- j5j oijaH 0;
'*' ft
A ^ \ jj sJl -ujVj cc-'5i c i ^ x-^U 1} j ^jjcC'^1 u^-3 4-ia?- ^_y U -Jlpj -i5j
SfJ
C/ > vV " isaUJlj ^
^ OJ ^

^ j \ ^ yL J] ^ jij
1j>-ir oj>U - (j (j^Wj cli j ^j-^

<^JUuaJj 1*1jc] *UU 0 ^jaII ^ J il ^ (ji* (_^

^jU* O ^j 4^J OjU l^lj *1j-ll aJUaJj ol 1 Cf C/jJl :>l^ iiiU-1 >k5U^lJ
^jV ^ OjL<5 (J^l ^JsaI 4I> Jlfl \^ ji^j ^ jV <j 4jj^
*^,J
oljj J U j j ^ 1 4j1 1^ 6u1-3 l ^ j j ^1jdi ^ 1^ 3^^ 0^1
<jI 4lJJcl ^ di > Jswa<tll ^j^ 4:^1j^\ (3 U?L ^1) i2/l (jl ^ O ^ jaUs^I
liftJ JL-ai)) J W1J ] j l J jSl > JiS li : Jlij ^ Ic <CU jjJl IajaL^ 4-jl ^ U olf^U-1 (__pa (J
_? (J^>^ aSp ^ISd

A) * l fjA ^U-1 H*ul <Q ^ 0ypA)j 6 j^ \jj ^^^SLlaa)! jli j^ 'J l ^ <k ^ \ aJ '^J^\ \j : a:. ^ ^Jl>
jJW <1)1 jl^ ^ l 4jl ^ 4l>fr *1ji'il (jA J _>**. ^ J Gr

^ji?^l J j_yj^i u^J 1 li J bJ (jt jl*i <uslj j AaI! *'lil <C_i?"j


o \^ l qa <Jjl^' ^J ^ d i l * 4_j 4^j]lj o l 1j^l <CP
ciAl JIT" ^ V j 0^1 til 5:lJ1 oJiA J i A^j\ Jjii (3 ^ ; l ajJs 0; -^Ip

12
Ibn H ajar, Inbd^ dkAA J_^j, 0<|^1 J
(ab o ve, p . 356 , n . 3 , p . 4 7 2 , n. 9 , a n d p . 4 9 6 , n. 2 )
A1m (jl^ J j ^ (j JW <1)1 eJi?- J} J J\ 4iil jAJ ^ ....
VVr ^ j ] 0^ ^4]1 jUjll j>- AJ (J^ loA
JadU-1 Jt^j'^l l^ ^U-i AftJPr (^jSl C^^J
i\ jj u y ^ j U *3 i o U j JO L ^ y j : > c ^ i;-:r
<<irlj] ^J
^jJ: ^'^^CaJjilr j t <bJaL^ U ^ __J ti jW^J Cy* ^
Iwiajl <Ua ^ J S : i ^y^ |>c' 4.*AjL.li (3
hp
li^ J J c> ij^ c>
(^
(1) O u r an: J i ^ ' j . (2) C f. also as-S a fad i, iVa^i^, 2 4 0 . (3) < > . C f. as-S afad i.

(1) . (2) J JsTM; -tu . (3) ?; M?. . (4) Ms. in m a rg .


(4 ) a s -S a fa d i + iS r ^ O',' OlJ' (5 ) a s -S a fa d t : ^ . (6) ARM , X I X , 3,85 : A R M :

j Jja!' J1j> -\ . (7 ) A R M : culr. (8) A R M : U t (?) , (5) Ms. -Otfjl-.


584 585

13
4) 1^ (j ji- ? - liS ^ j crJd \ jS ^ J ^ J l c '^ l '^Ja ^y> 4 & W 4i
Ib n al-M ulaqqin, *^Iqd
(above, p. 414, n. 7) C ^ .J (j O '* 4?ttwa)

4i I j L l l j ^y oWUr^ J S j.... JjiJI Aa^ ^1^1 Jc- (*1^ J 0\ Jlij JuUJi i-U-
ttf -------------- '
^vu^l 4 ia ^ j kfl-Jl ^jA 4^l]a)l <C-C^ ljb5^ t_Jaa)l j l ^ l l (_| jjl -?

J\ - f ^ 1 1 y\ ^ U \ Y O:' C / J J ! ^jA \1j^-------------------- J ^JCold o l i _ ^ j l l (3 Aflilall Sj>-jjL SijlflJl

Y -V= *^ J U > 1 A > J , '(^* ^ j \^ 1 j W < i Juiiil ^ 4l" -dliiA O jJaji LH :J ^ 4 liJ J ojl>-l

Oi' f l i ^ j j j ; ' "f 4i l j _>-i J - ^ . j jl-l W jli^ dj_Ju**> o**uJ_9 I,# 4_ ^ ^ '^ 1 oJUfl*)! dAlr
oJ
<3 u i J l j J j r J jSi J i j j ^jJl 4 jJ ^ j O^^La)) 4 _-v<ii) Ia u l^ -^ (J/IjiTI^ 1 L^9 ' ^ 1 Aj jA^laiir 'b?

....w -ijld i l if t j 1^1 ^ J (3 tj^ (3 : f > ^ -4 *^^ l( J l

^ J Uj ^^l j la^y^idA
14

Safi-ad-din b. A b i 1-Mansur, Risdlah :s'^)l {j :>U1 J_'S' jLs? JL^m l i _i j ^ j :>J_11 c J U D j


(above, p. 426, n. 1)
Oil JU^ ( jl tiU S ^J
* U ^ L.m 4! C^^-? i^ j 4__ JV ( ^ j \ jjC ^ 4J ^ J jL * 4 ^ ( j^ 4 _)| J l- A J * jjl

A^ Ujjjlcj Ujl tjA o>il J_9J 1Jl_J^ O^j <JUT -Uil Oj>wl9 jj| J ___ 9 ( j^ ULail L _ liU (3

. . . . Aa^ ^ ^ ^ 0**lcJJ S l ^ l 0:^. jL ft:! 0: 0; u; tiL ^ l

J ijl L J i^ l -\ iu ll I jA ^ <L-JC' ^ 4^ J x i- ila


15
I^Ia I 4J1P t ^ j A jJ|l
As-Sahaw i, al-Qawl al-munhi
(above, p . 4 3 0 , n, 7 )
0; ^1 0; j j 01^1^ j^
aJjU* (3 Ujl Aa^LjJ! Li^cJw<J\5
U ( l 4a ) b j L 5- j 4 _ _ ic ^ j,j: j l ^ jI

(X^sf ( j J * J ^ 0; j ( i) y<i\ i y
OLT ^
(j| i S ^ C / *> JI3
J-la) ^ 1 j il
^ y j J u > - 4j l C/^ ( i 0; JL ^ C roJl
:/ V l)->^ A
J.UjV l . i L I t3 ^Ui (3 Oy,J 4a JLa) c^jij_3 bJaa ( j- O
(4)
(1) ?
(1 ) M s. U ? (2 ) Le^. . (3 ) M s. . (4 ) T h e verses are q u o te d b y
586 587

c>* (j^. j - ^ ^ j j^ 3j

^ 9 .n**>j jr (jluii 4IUII jfw Jl 5 ^ AjWi [^]-J!i^J jd j 49 j y &\Z>^ ^W


<uil kX_>P sijAl (j^l u^_3 c5 0;^ Sjfy t^llaUa (J^J
tlru^l j-w ei-ft J,!^ QA Ji:il j.\yi JuAa j * j

<*1 0^_$ 4a-SC11 olso^^^l k^Jlj^ j ti-0 j \S^ jj'^ j <-<k^ C/'^ J ^ jJaw dj^ f^ j^ \ mJUJU j (3 J_su O^Vj
c-j8-L<?_j ^1^1 0^ oWwl Ic aJU-sl L)1 '^1 ^Jlai 49jJw_j ^3_^--ain t3 j (jL-j>- cy} y} ^ p|Vj
44)Ha)! diir ^V"* t3 ^ rJ oj^Ua ^o ojC^ LzJT" jjujl ^la) Ul_4^J _;\!1 ly^ lu5^J (_/<j^ iy\
4 J-ap-J r (*^^J ijLi--l lf-9 isjj j>j j;Jl Jf j J s L jjIj ^j^j)l j
Ol> ft
(J^ 0^t*51j (JL-^l (3 Vj til j Oy-^ l5 ~L-%wi iiy^y u^Iaall
j Qj_Zw> 4l* jllaaj (j ouljAj C^'^J O^ JisW- c- _j ( j j y j ^293a^
O^J (j (3 y )j 1ax-o)
J ^ i 'oJT "4dt; C-^lJ *1^ U (3*^^_? iJLA* (3 -5 ^ ^
i_iJKL U^ L j i31jj l^Ip o[ (3 O'oll ysi J
^ (.5^ 0;

Q dU^ U : j L ^ y\ Jla oU! j:^'! jjl Sjr^l (_5 djruJl ^a\yp^ (_5 * _jaI!
O^^ull t^ 9 <jl>tu*i)l JjIy^ (_^\laiil SjsoCjf-
16 .:i_;AA <Ji^ (3 tiUS :>j_;rj ^ J
As-Sahaw i, al-Jawdhir wa-d-durar*
^jaxjl 1J-- ft ^yJJj JL_^ (^1 ^
(ab o ve, p . 455 , n. 4 )

Jc cuijJ A^ o ijJ U J^UI y} 4 i J4J j% -J


4ifU
^ic- o ^ajTj <CflLl ^ 4j?t-Jill (^-^Ltf> a1jl (3 oUl (j^-?
<Uil mIjI j j ^ j lj_^ 0j y ^)l\ ijA ^j-^2>- V jl:^ :>_^9l j5
A ? - . s \ ^ l (j^l cjI^I *,<^1 ^ Ij-Tj j ^ l (J1 ojj\ |1
c-fl-JUaJlj Ulc
i>j]l jlftJ \jS' A;^J^J j l ^ Cf JL-s^ll C/} ij!l^^ ^ ^
Y a h y a b . H a ld u n , B u g y a h no. 93 B e l (A lger 1904 ). (I) s ic . (2 ) p j j l
^15"j^\ j jr 4cUrj J jVl J1 L:^l ^ j^ y
(3 ) C f. Ib n 'A r a b i, a l-F u tu h d t a l-M a k k iy a h , beg.; L a t c V if a l-a srd r, 42 (C airo
1380 / 1 9 6 1 ). ( 1) A JJo, . (2 ) A cr'i/ (3 ) A o U . (4 ) A O'.'
* P = M s . P a ris ar. 2 1 0 5 . T h e folio num bers refer to this ms.
(5 ) C/}j 1 -> in d istin ct. (6 6) P in m a rg . (7 7 ) P deest.
A = M s . A h m e t I I I , 299 1 .
588 589

jiij ^ JsU j O y a ^ j ^JJ[


l \ jJ \ u3WJ (^jjj^\ (293bj 0; C/j
A)\:S' (j
(J_j^jll jjLjbf (_5 (1)^ 1 __IzaI! jJ^ 1
^ fi
t3b "^ J Cf j j **--- ^ 0^ c5" ^ J t^JJuaJ (j (j'J <^j (^.v-ajJl C/ 0;

y} O j J ^ j iS J^'5i 0;^
^ fr 3j~
J l ^ '^ 1 jj 1J ooU 'j (^j^j)' ^ j j J^ oljsy;;*!! \>xS'J J?-lj ^JLa^I ^jOu'La^\j

^-a!1 _j>1j (Jlj^yiJ ^_$jiiCUJ.l (_/<L^l y \J j. ., ^ \ ^1-ai!1j J ji-^ j jfp j ^'^^4sl:>j l J A jLiSj 4J I _ y j 4 jU i

J*-? y^ y ) j ^ ijj^ \ (j-^1 (-jliT

L/^^ y } j l/J^ j ) \ j L-J^(^l 0j_Jl ^ _ ^ J J l^ u ^ il ji (. ^ ^ ^ u la ^

t_^llaUJ 4pUt1 ij > \s (3j i l l o 9 j - la ll j ) J j <y ^1 ^ j>.j u^ J 0 13*^^ ^^11 jslj


\^ J^ (J c : - ^ J - i j J J
J>\ ^U j Vyr 0;^ J ^\

4iMra)l ( jjj-A u; (i^ J b l i 'J j (j '^ J i <L~a> ^4 *^ Cf^J

\_jJl J ^ J 4pl_jtfTj Cf) y)J C/J y} (J^J


^ImJ] cjLII (_$ oIuJl3 1^ 4pW 4j *lii]i cjk5^ jlaldl Uj?-1 0;'^ <_ijLa) c3 'iJifr

d (3 *L_4-^ ^ ^ j l l i3 V j C/'^J *_)^ <3 lj_ft j-^iL^j S-^ (3 J *Jr^ <3 <JV*
^ U ^ l aid (j ^ _ ^ J j51j ^jU)l oVl^l ^ij,l Jjfljl JjL_at>l) IJl) j Jldj (3
c - i 0 ^ L -ii'^ ij ^jla^^l (Jjfly- < ^ _ A j a I j J (3 (3 <
i_^. ^ 4TL;- (3 dL,c>-
UAm ci'5 j k J . 1 j- ^ \ jAjJl cLc^j ^Ltf>^l AjbS^ ^y* dJijji (^4]^ I o-Ls> d lli

(3 i j j ^ ^ Cj ) j C fj)^ ^ 4 p L -^ J
j-iai-l JU- (3
4I w ijL a ) (j jJ ( i Cj \j ^ j^ J ( ju lL a J l/ } j 0 - ^ J j ^ J J^. ^ w ^ A tL jr ^ j

J ja llj ^ 1 ^ 1 j 'S 4 )> 1 j ^ 1 J4 ]l 0 - j


\y-*^J J^ (3^J ^^j j ^ j
L /jla ^ l (_s l u j U u i j ( J ^ j ijAj^l ^ul^ljj Ju Jjli (j^ J
u~^ ^ j ^ ^ V-^J o;
(I- 1) A chest. (2) i n m arg . (3) K y \ j . (4) A
(1) A > L iJJj . (2 2) P i n marg.
(0 5) 1> in m arg . (6) Sic, Cf. D a w , I I I , 146, 11. 21-22. (7) A > K
590 591

*Uj1 j l j l/ V 1JlS^j >^ll 4iJ| ^ I I C^.J^ (j J*J c/jj^

j J (3 ^Xj* jL ^ V l J i 0;'^J (J-J'l 0^ JUJ^J t-Awjl ^ J^ -^j^ J \f' ^ J


ft
0: j \ ^ j u - ^
0; (J^l - ^ j i^jj=^t l/1 t>*j ^ j'^ J
j j lj Jl o; 0; v*^ -?
(J jjjI^ j ^ O^_? J^ l^ l
Oyii^j d\L* J t (j (?) oj: 0^ 0^
(!) l/^J <0)1 JiP J \j
0; jw^l ^C j>\J <^1 jut 0; 0; y } j J'^j j ^^j
C/ (Jr*^^ i3^ O'. cT*^^ i5j j^l (_/<L^l _j)l \jS'J

u_j>u O'} elJ* Sjtu (j^l j il j Oijy

tj; Jc- Juj j>-^J ^L;:^i-1 ^ 4Z^j j^j>r O) j-^" 'O. y} J J 0|^ Ji^l_j 4j (_5 ^twj 4I (JjL*ll

ijsls A*jj'^l (w-aIj^U i-ill J;> J^ (_--jIu J:>-1j j j lj J-A_c*'l o y )j ^j>Lc<Jkl (Jr^' 0|^
y*f C C t-
J>)J JL^ JL^i jA*5t j>J 4 0 >- ^1 <~^lu _j)lj j^ lill j^_) o ^ 0^ 0^
^ ^ gj
JL^ 0; iiil -AXi ^^JA^\ j lV ij; Jc- l/ Uil jip Jij*u]l 4j_j_), 0; 05^1 0; j<^ y}J 0;^ u- ^ ^
(JjU-l j-:l-! i> i-jjOM^ Cf, J/ -oil Juf- y \ j J C / }
J'^j/^'^J L ^ jj^ b 3jj^ j <i
<U ft ft
<^a-LoA JL^ (j^ J.J^ (J/ JLC JU? j ^J aL-<w<j
c-i-,,^ <j ^L-j)l -X)j i^\ c/} y }j O^^J
JlJ^ ^ <Uil JL& c--dllA (3 <LaI^1 oli,W
0: a _ f j i j i U
i . j l l > l -\si^\ J l ^

jL^ lj d ^*1(_$.AsuJl ^1J^^\ ^1 J'l


jL% l 0; 0; *A-f y )J v i f 0;
j)JJ c^ ji'i J *cc ^ j j ^ J ^u?1 ft ^ ^ ft

0; Q JJ' J ib c 5 j 4 0: 0: 0: J ib
-W-1 y ) j <_jI.Uj>- (j JrLlaS :>yl ^^ yi 4^!1 O;
j ilj ^ Ji?l ^y^ JL>J^ yJl j il j :>yuMA
AsO j)]j Cf^j^ -^3^ (j jjj- * O', v ^ 0; 0^
% i
(j; u_j; *
-usl J,c- y \ j
*^l *
S^jJ^\ :iL^i ***C/ J__ iy
j^jf-
(Sjj^j^^ 0^ ( J - j>)J 0| 0;

Cf j.*^^ O ' . ^ v j ^ . ji^j (5JL*Jl 0[ 0^ L>"^ l)-^^ y )J y }J 0 ^ ^ 0; O; f j >}j

(j|l Ja^ (^294a^ 0'.^ j_i]all j> \j Jl ^d*:r O; j;b j -^ 0; 0; ^

(1 ) A deest. (2 2 ) P deesi. (3 3 ) P deest. (4 4 ) P i n m arg. ( 1 _ 1 ) p Jj l . (2 2 ) P deesi. (3 3 ) P (4 4 ) V deest.

(5 ) A J j y \ . (6 6) P deest. (7 7 ) P in m a rg . (8 8) P d eesi. (5 ) A <>-i-' . (6) Ib n F arh u n , D ib d j, 228 (Fes 1316 ) a d m its or .


592
593

j L ^ ti/ jj^ j 1)
d f c/ 0: 0 * ^^ ( i^ y } j o: J ;* -^ l
f- tjj %
}
4 ill JL.C' ^2/ y } j 0^1 J J i l j t iW U <L-i
4_^ jA -l L li 4 i ^ (jjjl ( j L J l aSjI

(3 ^ i _?!^-? <j- (J^ u^ j) ] j O')


Ja>1 ^UJj ^ JW ^\ \c4^J 6-yj^j (294b)
O'! Cf c/ j^ >x.^ Cf, c/
li* i y ) C f Cf Jl^ j f t li a li

0 ^ 0 ; ji V j^ , y } j ^ ^ jw ll j ' O i j o | jL>j^ j
(3 ^ 0 ; 0 ; - y J -? o ;l
4XP A_ ;^ 4ijl Jyp (J/ C-jLjJ ^'*(3 ' ^ ( 3^ 'A* . sU
^ ^ U )l jJW-j4l J' c / J
(ji.y ^ jiP y \ j 4aJ?- j j l j ^ L t l l j d llU Ji*lia3 ( j UsjI ^Ij
c / ( j- ^ j) l y ) j 4 'U a 5 ( j l l L a J A^U Jl o U J s
i^bdl j - l j <jjj=^^j 0[ 0;;^
D; J c/ i > ^ ^ j;b J a iU -l o:
u^ 0; ( j'S j j
l 4 ::^ j j X ^ (i 0; ^ j> )j ijj^
ui jL U J l J c o; J JaiUU I i T j *_>=r J
^ C ^*^4)1 y ^ j j '^ 0[ (j>* ^ ^ y } - ^ d A ll* t . ^ b * 4 ji
(_5 A~s^Li> (j^ dllA jjjC o>JL.^
J/ y ) j Ja3 ^ l J ^ '\ mS ' (J/ 4i)l
jjj:^ ^ J ApW j diiw* * ljjjl J J>^j U l^ Ji3-\J jrtC J
u! O u i-1 j , ] j ( j^ J ill ( j j <jj ji^ J
Jjli d d i l i *\aZ x\ (J j
y } j J L j ^ i ^ L -^ / ^j* <U5 ^ 1 \ ^ ui
0; 0; ^ j : ! ( 3 ^ 1 j!^ UU1 ^ _^ lj ^ ^ ^ f gkf
( jlj^ JL***! J L -^ J jA .O y ^ J ^^^vLu*y}\ ^ j>\ JL ^ " *Usl JLP
JJ^ \ ( '^ ) J a i U - i ^ j j l L J j \ ^ \ y > j J^ Jl Jb?-! ^ J ,jJ

jU a ill JJsA ^1 / l i o ; jA .o Ji.^^ JW-1 Oil Jl^


L-I3 j5 : Uj5^1 (j JlS iljU) ^jV (j ^CJ^j cn^l) ^ (J'l
0 ^ lsI*^^ <3 l j ^ . Oi J* y } j
I j_A L.J-V* Uj-jais\ L1.O (JA dJUC- ^ vrJUlw''b[ d j lj i 'l j aJIu
j -1 ^jJ _ j)lj 4JI- ^ L i) l
o l l * j j^ liill |1U ^J J) (3^j <^.i>dl ^J1 ^^L jlj u li
(3 ^|0t-all c_-0-'^ jL ^ I^U- j j l J iJj'.'^^
w-.-L^j <1)1 * li o l U> j i l <-j\l5^ (j *LaaZwyi
b b w - > - L ^ ( ^ j. ^ ^ 1 4ijl JLP jJjil (^/U*^l (J)> J l_ ^
-*]1 j : ^ (j| J t C/ OS-i J:aill J1I
JiP ^1 JL^-C ruJ-1 j i l j ^ b a a i l jA * r 4 * ^ L ^1 j j f - *Ull JUO j i i j
:.U o : < > J - > ! p i l ' j : i v - ^ " j J j J l ^ J l J,<^ 0 ; c/>

|_^j_j)Lju]1 Uil JLP (Jj) J u ^ Uil JLP U!


( 1 1 ) P i n m arg. (2 2) P deest. (3 3 ) P deest] O', : P

(4 4 ) P deest. {0-^0) P deest. (6) A + *' ^y>j . (7 ) A + _ ^ y )


( 1 1) P deest. (2) P (3 ) P in m a rg. (4 ) A inserts here P s

(8 8) A jU :^ 'i\ j l i J j . (9 ) T B , II , 73 . ( 10 ) A deest. (5 ) as-Sam'^ani, AnscV), 1 2 b ; ( j-J -L (6 6) I* i n m a rg.


m argin a l n o te C -6.

R o senth al, H istory o f Muslim H istoriography 38


594 595

^ c. (j L ^ j l j 5i (3J \jS'J y) j j J^^J *aL^ ti


^ ' y_ ^ y^ ^ Usl XwP ^'1 k_^l Ja5 '';i~lj c-9l^ 4I J f - ^ i u! j-*^ u! uO^ ^ O i ^ l
, ft ^ uJ i*
jtl 4o^-^llj (3^^ 4A-1^ a j (^^sljiJl jL::^!! (Ji^l (^;U^1 j U'SI j 2Joj J^l

ji^ j <u^!lj ^'1>^(j (j'-^ i_3niOi ^ i^jaA>- y \ j iaiU-i ^Jirj ijdij


4;^i (^^l-u*!i jil 4^1IWj c?'^ 3 4)^Ja Ia\-..*i daj^ t^7C**>lj..5^(3 l>6~iii$^ (j
gj ~
^ cf^ J O'. c jW I
^ ' ^wC1J5 tijJ^
ejL -xii \j^ J J 0:> j) \ j (J/ JjaC j)l <cJb>-
4j?rjv <-a^^ oL.4^ *yrr i3 JaiU- ^i^JiJl
(j; Ct-Ji J j is IJub o J ^ I s lj cji>lL:ll
49IjjJj (J>A5^' <L9 (j ^JJ?" J-^J
l j i \a.A^ yto 4;^i (j 4_il '^^laaH ^1^11
e^jj j 4l*lc^ ^W (3^ jjj xJ- Js>r 0}
^ ^ iS'^ ^ 3j J^J
4juLoa jjO oJL?- cjj*j)_ ^ JL^ Ujl JIP ^ J^\
^ * * A *
t3 C/ X-^l jsJC <>0;1 \ j f j ('IjJsi J v ' f ^ ' j r O - ' 0: | U j

u! ^ J '} j (3 -^^ j^J (J| j-^^ iji ^j] y }J 43 jLi! Llajl (3 *3^ (3
J ^ jrtP j L J l ^ *(11 JiP ^ U l j4 a J u:' j%
^ jj Jj5^^ ij) jl^ j J c ji?] j ^ L i ) l ^JA <Uju ^ (j ^Up yr (j UWj
^y *Ujl J P JL>J^ y \ j jLjf- liail JljG) ^JlJ31 j)! y
v-->-slll ,3; f- J;:*-^] j '^J ( _ ^ u l ba)] j l l l jd lj (5 ^ 5 lT ^
'* o>
*-aJ^ wA**p^) ^1 <uil x*c y^J -xS^ (_5 ^jJ aXjS" (J-^ *y^ cj 4-*^W(jL-xJl (j
<^-VP (3^^-?
f UbT ft ft

JUP y \ j ^jdi 4 ^ L t ll o l l . U j c^L d jU-i JljCii


W ^ j* j 0: u: u^J'^ j h ^3'J' J u>J . 1^.5jSl ^ <3^ OijSl \jS' J

JiiU-^ *X ^ji (3-^} (3| -L^ -Ull JU<^ ^ji ^,j*_A)i (3^ J^(J)J -U^l (3^ Oi JU<aX*ll_^
SjtU (j> JL;^ c j L a J u c ^1 ^295 a^ Jifl^^l-l ^j^ti ^j> ^jy* jjj-* ui (3^i ij> j^'>r

( 1 *1) P deest. (2 2 ) P in m arg. (3 ) A c ^ j . (4 ) S ic .


( 1 1) P d cesL (2 2 ) P deesL (3 3 ) P d eest; Ib n H a llik a n , I I I , 309
(5) K i y f - . (6) A c/'if . (7 ) P (8 8) P .
(Cairo 1948 ). (4 ) A + *^ Jaj (5) A ? (6 6) P i n m arg.

( 7 7 ) P d eest. (8) A ?ees^. (9 9 ) P deest. (9 9 ) P m marg.; -cL- ; A 4.*:^:-. ( 10 10 ) P y ) . ( H H ) A deest {\).


597
596

\ ji Uaji (3^^ ^ l^^ifl) \jS ' j Jrfjll

^ > _ , y i ^ y ( x ilT j

4j jjLs^ 4jJ J '^ j j uJ 'j-T ^ <)JfUv j V j j ^y}


^ y ^ _^AUal] Sj^ ijPrJDl <>^1/9 ^jC. Ji :i~\ ^yj: iJom *j?rj
y\j ^"^j3ljilll jAj=r ^ j^'j (3; ^
~^J */ ^ ^

^ ( -5?J1 c :-^ J ^Jais^ j* J


^ ijr^^ <3^ SljuJl djry ^ (3> ^c.
jL?-l O j?-l ^ .y * \ jS^j <ui JU<aA cuip V*J uDi
(Jh ^ u! JP (Jr^^ J!^ j l j ^ ui u!^
^ ' j > twifcvy j.all ^.^fllL.Ji.1 ^ j j U U L a^ lA> 4__^Usl!

j ^ i 0 ^ ^ (j
^ ^ ^1j v-jiiJ)^ j)J 4-) tdLftlij ^ J i )
Jj ^ 0
*lx*51 ijA U > - l j Jrtp O i^ lj
aJum^jJl <L-jllal*Jl 6l_c (_5 jjjli t3J*''J
u; (j; 4ii u>y ui j^-^1
vi)^l_p-J 4jlj>-lJ A:>-j^j (J^-a)1 (j (J^ 1 iSl^ j
'^-p (ji t > ^
^ J**l y) ^ j ol^l-sf (j <uU (j ^lijl
j i f (3_^1 t3-^ i
^ y^ j jj^ (Jj J-^ djrt* o:>^9lj
(y. ^

^ l ^ l j ^*295 b^ iS J j^'^ J^'^J <S'j^^


lfjd j i 4^^^ ij> ^y 'Ult a f ' 0, j:1 J-^1 Jrb
UJ ft * #
(3 *uJ^l -i>-lJ J ^ ^ U 1 ^U'il ^IJl (j _^>-Lillj *^^kjju.ll 5jP j]
jd-sf J j l i l ij>} y\ :>j \
^ - ' ' " ' of
40W j)^ JLP jjp jiT*J'Jj

4]j j ] l jL k U l ^ \ ^ j^ j 0; v^bS^ *j5j* (j (3'^^ ,(^>tv>jl ^y Jw?l


jlJ ^ l jiP JL^ j|l U^jsl u^cSi^ :> (jj'^ (3*.
aJjrw> ^1 :>l.^^)l ij^ Ot
jU jJl i-^ L ? jL - ^ l (j j\_^tl (9) O', i>.

^ (^ j-:i ^ '[ y ^ o -J ^ J ^ '^ ^ j - J l j ( J * ./ )


jd.1 1^y *<1)1 J-P (j^ y }j

\dS^J j*lla!l AJi^Z^j Jm ^ 9j l l l oljL-i* Qyl^ y^ <UP ySj y 4jJ-?- cr* j u*J

j^ji*)l JL-$CJ1 ^ Uil xc- jjj >u?-] <*^I)U]1 j | l j


J -^ jj 3 ^ j - i \ (*J^ J^J j^llail a^
" . ~ *
(^^1 j->------ J1 ^^>L)1 ^ J (Jj 9j< ^AUa)] 0jy>^ (jL J^ ^ . j jaJJ ,^jl*il '%11 j l ^ j-^ b llv (-^15^ (3

(1) A b S " , (2) A deest. (3 3) P i n m arg . (4 4) P dedsl


(1) P + d eleted ^ J . (2) A j ' ij H ' . (3) A j;t . (4) P i n m arg.

(^7 5) P deest. (6) A 5_>1


(5) A P J^ U . (6 6) P in marg. (7) P .
598 599
t p ^ # a!*
JL.^ j>\ (jj ^ j jlJ
(j uj u> j>\j
y>j^ j j^ Lc" " j r j
(^iU l y) ^ 0* ^ d i ^ J^J ___
.ijji J l j j ) l C r^ l L>. (J:f*"^l->

ik'^ c5"J* -Jj ui u! J f - ^ l y j^

Jj Ja9-1 Jc (jJ-l J J^ i y \j ^ (i

O^J j C>4 - ul ( 296 a ) OL^l ^

(3 ? ^ a)1 \)1 ^ Ja3 l?41_^ {J^.iifl^ Am)Ic jaII j J j l l olou ( j jib (jJ: d jfjcj ^aID I

*j=r j-sUli JiP U:>J > \ 1 J 5 j i]\(J \ ^y^ J j ^ S^ J * (jU -l Jl

Jis^ ^y^ (..jL-j^ j)l o l^ ) 1 (J) ju ^ l ^ j j l J j u ^ j ^ y j)l jls - J \ y \ 4 ii , ^ j j i - l Ol'

^^j]i J^>-1 (jj ^ %X4>-1jaU^ _J!^-? jlll

cJJV (j jA o^jSl jLaaII fji ^j) Juf- (jj JU>-1 (^L-*)l y \ j


l^ :> j l l jloL Ji < ^ j uj ^j| J j (>^J^ *-r^ J
4] ^jsl ^j jJl J jj J_jf JU>-1 jj^l_*sJl
jjl ^ 1 jj* '9 l 4lrbai ^ IJiTJ jui^l Jl y \ o J ^

U i j ] 1a T j i3^ i^ U; ULe- J Jl

J j ^ b '3 ) j U ^ ll (jl ^ y } 'i ^ J lj^ (j>


JL^ U^jSl *uil *llaP j3| (^j O I Jli=- JUs-l ^ U lj

^li ^c/^11 _^lliA(_5*Ua*Jl <^JlxS' IaI_a.*^ jC" (_^.iLiJl jjijl (j ^ J t / j _ ^ ^jj ^_a)i

t>J v b

c 3 jJ * ll (^9) (Jj -^11 ^ JL-^ J-*|>-1 (j^L^l J |1 jW lj ^ L * j ] l Ji?l y \ l^3c?r j U - a ll jT b aili y \ ^JoJ lj

JLP jj| Jujf" ^j> (jeJuw *UJ^ JS> ^3] <^L_ia) <UL.LjOa ^3 ^1 jjL b j\^ \ o :> ^ !9 J ip (> -^ l jj lj

JUII ^ 1 .11.9) ^ y i ^,11 ^l Juir J 4- I j ) l ^ j; ! 0; ^ O; 0 - ^ ^ " ^ I j

( 1) P + an erasure o f one or tw o w ords. (2 2) P i n m a r g . (3) A deest.


l_)=r j c 3 j j _/*

(4 ) A t/ljJl ? (5 5 ) P in m arg. (6) A j ; P h as a d ele ted ijr J befo re U\^.., .


( 1) X L^'^ ^ a l-H a tib , I h d ta h , 92 (Cairo 1319 ); H a jji H a lifa h ,
( 7) T h e title is m en tio n ed an o n y m o u s ly b y as-S ah aw t, T u h f a t a l-a h b db , 394 (Cairo
V I , 301 F lu g e l, has (3 3 ) F deest. (4 4 ) P deest. (5 5 ) 1? deest.
13 5 6 / 1937 ), from Ib n A b i 1-M an surs R is d la h . (8 8) P i n m a rg. (9 9 ) P
in m arg. (H P i n m arg. (7 7 ) P deest; ^>yr '. A .jsr Cf. D u r a r , I I , 2 0 .
600 601

Ju P y \ ^ O; C/ C/ l A - ^ \ J i^ j \ j^ j Oi ^ ^ 296 b^ jf^ S-A^

J l_ ^ ui'

Cf J-j^l C/ Cr^^ ejL -ji'l :>Ji\ Jj>^al Cf ^ o -ij ^ U -1 r Oi O:

J^ W olpj->_y : J ^ j jL J I A ^ ^^j*J ^^^(jlaJ-la*ll Jp Vt i J^J 4*^L1 ^-aLm ^^


--------------------------- ^ ^
^\^l J\^ ^ Ia)1 L 4-l- *wiJua) (3 ^ j J* (JiiU-1 < ^ > ^ 1 a ^ ^ 1 ^^lall

C fJ ' ^ s f dL-laS)! *L]ac- o j^ ^y^ *lki)l ^-aJS'j


JU
(jiaJu* -ojCa 41.0 I^aJ J a cuJtP Uj ji>l
<**jJ v^^JAuall tiLjl (j^ li-all y\
^jiflll Uall Xlj9 o; 0; o; ^1 jJ jll
U:>j\ -J_)Jl
UjJ ^ 4!Ij (i
jljjli (^) ( c ^ L ? ) ^
_^l JasU-1 ^jSl ^ JL-4i^ 4wl UXj
^ V .j u ! j^ .
t ^ jj 4-^ 0;'^

JljC^ ^y^ jjLi (j-^j5l lilu ^j (jl ui ^

^^ Ol (ji c3'^ '^ j^ J ^


dJ%
*l~ \a^jsl <jj d-x( -Ull jjIj
oil
i j j j ^ \ (j)^ ui
JljlC^SJ ^ u J
jJlj^*fj Oi'^ Ol
_j>l l-j^ll ^ ^<3^ 0^ J
*-P (^ J 41)1 ,xs^
u! (jj ^ 0*-? ul'^ C jy ^ J
(3; i. l l
j-,^ ^jj (J-^l V j ^ . v3 '^ j L ^ ^j jA*;r

^Jldll *lja)l (Jl^rjLj! Jj! ^ y 0-^1 ^ (3_4.Ju y \j (_^jLia)Vl J (3 l jjp (jj J^ (j) Usl
....... . * o>
^JiUll c^bS^ (3 j^l JuC' JisUslt
<>

^ w\L^ ^ j a U iIj

^ y) a u -4 ^ y }j <u*ud l^Jil (3^^^ 0_?j-* (jl (j)> 4^1 J y}y

j l 0*' ^ (Jjj ^isl JS-j


(1 1) V in m a rg . (2) A (3) j A 'a ii\ ? (44) P d e e st;

A after the entry Ziyad, but the correct position of the entry is indicated by special (1_ 1) P deest. (2 ) ? , jT-vUII j ' ( a l-B a r a d i'i ?). (3 3) P i n m arg.

marks. (55) P d e e st. (6 6) P d e e st. (77) P in m a rg . (8) A . (4 ^ P deest.


602 603

O* J\ js^ o, O, o; J}
U:j^1 ^liJl JU-1 i-sJill j l jJl -ujl jiP j j W . " ) iii'i- 1 V J >

*!:)^C O r J L P j (3^ \e^ J jLj^^ J

^o j_gisLj)l bj^\ P! u - - ^ L ^ ^jwil jll J f u: (-297a)-j;]! JiiWlj

^U
iwJ O. Cf, S'* Ji J Oj'jT j
(_)A U Laj:4 * (3-^^ u/^ j^\^\
xJ^ ly^ j j - ^ Cf. C ^ " - ^ j y } j

j^r* (3 <Li& o J ? i - l j^ l ^ jj^ jll -^ j ( ji ^j> j u > - l ^ jjl


*^Ix!? 4^ A ^jj <4. : > > \jS'J

iLp-Utf* l_^ j.slfl)\ jup J t3 A-^jj U L ^ j (_/<j*Ul!


j j ^ c^ L -L * (3 j^ L J ll jj* L i^ oLiamm*

J .sUld i^jilflli J -^ 1 y} ^
O', -u^ 4li J *Jl j Cj j o;'bf ^i)l cj; (>-*"jJl Ji^j
^'^Lall 1 ^ * ^ ^ \ j)l j^ jC ll JLP ^ 4)1 j j l j
juf^ c; o; ti^ O, o -^
Jla>*1 -Uil JLP JU ^ j>J 0j l s ^ l
cn-**' ^*j^ oy^^^j ( 3 j ^ c ^ t3'* ' ^ l C r^ c^ i

J . ^ U>
(j L - ^ I jJ J a is < iill ^

o ^ y* (jj (3^ ^ i-jL ajJI JLP


.j^ j l 5_? o* Aj^^*J1 0_/u*Jl
O ^^ <jj <j
^1 <^j_?Jl (jj^^ll
J ijC ^ O jV ( j* 0 - ^ ( -iJ L la ll j j I j

U :.^ ! ^ J ^ y i 0! u! > J ib
j^J 0 -3j 5i Jidlc- C/
jf" L p ^y) j>) i S (J::*-^! ui (Jr^^ y} J
( 3 ^ (J-aa)l
(3 i^JLill c^y dLc" ^lfi>- l)t 5^
L.^xsr ^ ^-^11 jjl J ^ J iiU - lj

Jiflli-1 4c -jj j|] fljJj

uJlfJ- O, O^-? iJW*<a^l ^Ui^ O, i3^J JLPj j)l dj)j U.5jil jS^L-P (ji ^ ul u! j>} JaiUJIj
_ il! JL >
; ,y i y ij
. J j W T Sr^^ ^ a y c > - ^ 'y )
p\<t fj^
(1) A < 5^^ ; P . (2 2) P i n m arg. (3 3) P i n marg.
j !j ^
(4 4) A jU_;Jl . (5) A 4 ^ 1 . (6 6) P i n m arg. (7) A *

(8 8) P in marg. ; I A . (9 9) A j a L . j l ' . (10) A ^ ( !)


(1) Leg. (cl. 617). (2 2) P i n m a r g . (3 3) A in niarg,\ P deest.
(11 11) P h a s th is e n tr y b efore th e p reced in g o n e, b u t th e correct p o sitio n is
(4) S a d a ra t, I I I , 198: j ' j ^ . (5) P deest. (6 6) P deest. in d ic a te d b y sp ec ia l rnarks.
G04 605

^ O. a u! J '} j <-jl.ll" (3 jjf" iy}

c jL j5 ^ ( j j l ^ l ^ .y \ ^ 1 JLP y \ 6 j_ ^ r J-^ (j|^


l^x.>- \ j S ' j A^S.'^ ^ *Uii JP
(<?) ( ? ) 4^5f: o y j i i ^ 1 1 j ^ o u / j j> s a i ; j i CL J.A V U U 4ljC )
^ ' gi>
<-^Ls ^ j\ j U ^ l J l l j d jr > ~ j C/ ^ J J* J ^1 4jl j jj J l (_ ij^^ ^ i

j ^ J V * U^j Sl *150111 o l i l a l l ^ jl^ U 4>JIS^ : J ^ J o ^ J l C i a j l ^ l l ^jjl L />3


r
j ^ (jj ju?^ 0; J 4:^ (j| JUj>-1 (J/ 0^ J_-ft.>-l j- flla ll j ) l j

wLij J ^ l l J)1 a j J j ^4*^ (j> J-^ j U l U^>1

WJ! jr-^J c?A'^ ^lL!l J,J1 ^ ^-.Ull jl:!l , J j UJc^l j-J j)l (3^ 0| 0| Jl^-?
t ^ ^
^JiP ^Jlji jd -^ ( j o y ^ o i i l j j *y>r (j 4311* fljlj
o' hk< o
cu^l ^:>53- j i J Jc- jL-ili (jj ( 3 J ^^^L_ll <Uj1 JX- j l l j:-l 41^ jJ,| J (J,i JaJ"] ^y j/P J)]J

4_>^ Jolji 4i j -cJlli? <uJi ijA JjLafl) oJjLaJ <i ^J^j \p bajl ^ J u l l *ljal]
i^ UJ
Jlir) aj)J lf*^5T ^}iy (3 ^ jjf" j A ^ \ jS <\J AC'L-^.'::^ (j*! l/ l3 ^ J

0J j J

c:A<^j j 9^*14.^11 ^J* (297b) J j l ^^jUSfl JU& O', O'. jA^ll j)lJ

(^ * u S j u y L u j . 3 ^

^sbjr^ u:^ J Vj-J Ui U ^ y l Ja\---- f ^;,. J ^ ! l j ^ jy r ^ r u A i! c j i : ^ ^ w

^ la )l u! u> vjLa>- Oi

^ jjjl ^jjv^ji)l jrv p y } - ^ O-jT u! Oi -'-^ J


^ J>) ^ ^ ^

^ u J l u! ^ j :' *0)1 ^ 0; O', ui j a j 4<Ja3

_^)1 u! 0|V

^ j[ l 0 { jju J lj mJjjII o; J f cr fj'^^ y )


jCj ^il 4j>-] ^jj - U ^ i ^jj JU *.^ - j L l a ^ l
(1) A d e e s t ; P i n p v a lin . (2) A -t-i . (3) Cf. B u r a r , IV"; 4.5; A P .i_,' -

(4 4 \ p i n marg. {')) A decsL (B fi) P in marg. (7) A I*


( 1 1) Y" in m arg. (2 2) A jj'a_>-? (3 3 ) P in marg. (4 4 ) P in niarg.

(5) A ^-il (tj 6) P deesi. ( ~ ~ 7 ) P deest. (8 8) A dee^t. (S) A ^ 5 ^ . (9) H ib a ta lla li is n o t m en tio n ed in P(j(ii , V i n , lOO f. (U)) A OjC .
606 607

JL-^a 0; Cr dlwiuH ys- C/ y} ^ ^ v '

O jy ^ j .A S <ul jip 0; J_0; J-

Jfl ^W} L-^A;^ (_^^l5^^1 j)l J-C ^y JL^^ y} JI3J 4_ol^l <^1:11 j ls[.y-Jl J ^ dll*- Xsf (j

1^9 ^jl*# j;l 0; V j - J C/ j^ l/*'^ <)X^\ 4I 3 j_> La:>jsl

-uil J.C y] dJi__Jir J ^ ^UL*)] olu- 0; C/ j (jl u; -u)) jLc jC IjjTJ jly-'^l ^ UUL*.J culS ciU Jl
y ^ ^ T J j\ ^ 4 . 0: c/ <>'4 - 0: ^ 0;\ ^jc- j \ c T o K ^ l

^ J ' JUS^ Ui'J*-^J ^


(2 ^ 15)1

U:iy 1 j jtll J i j (j/J V*-? O. y} j j .n U:>_f\ ^ s ^ \ jii?- < 1 / ^ 0 ; '4.ji u; y}^


^ X if J 31^4-V i J (j jl^ xll j A j U L ^ ^ j ^ u *^
* gj
j J l L^r 0; 0: >-f J jC^ J
jU ^ .j ^U J g 31 J ^ U !l
j j j**J
<ti& <(111 *Li ij], *^0^ j ^ j UW^ c/*a]^
(j\J*3i iasW lJ
jif ^5_^n J cf, Cf 0; 0; J
0; (j^ ^ U ) l Cf J - ^ J

Jajljll o; j y
ftj>-j)l JU>^^ J)1 4J ^ :r O', J - ^ y}J
A_jk 4.*lj_^n O j^l i-stl cJj ^JW ^1jS" ^y^ J
e^ *<311 JU^ y \j
Japljll iSJJj^^ ( S ^
0; jZ ^
(j UjL>-l jljU-1 Jc c^ ^^^JLju-1 O' JUS^ cJ^l
<uiJ t^jjA.'Ol ^ i - 1 J< JUf^- J
4*Jui) djl.vujl ^i<fl9 (_5 <Ciij*^l
cJaA^ l_^;^:^ l/ C/ JuW J>\ J
o; jL-i^l ojl^l ^ jjf^ ^ 0; y}j
j U ^11 <!& UJ>-1j <y J " ^ ^'^^iwJll? jjI
(?)
dJ ^J:;r^ ijj^ \ j-__--.c u; j 0| J
O, y^ j'^'' V^=r t j j j ^ ^ O, \ f j y}
c.1
^ l j \ y 4_L- (j \^1 ji* (3 (3 " j-^ (3
(1 1) P in marg. (2) P *vr/ (3-^ 3) A deest. (4) S u . (5 5)

P (/ef.'./. (G b) 1 i n m arg. (7) A P ^ j . (8 8) P in m arg. (9) ? (1 1) P m jnarg. (2 2) P dee.st. (3) A (_yJUl ? (4 4) P deesL

(Cf. D a w \ V 5 3
149 : j:> L )\ J^s j* ; . (5) A Ox- . f6) A . (7) A jj .
G08 609

C/ .2j_sl lu 5 ^ (_5_J">^^ < J -? ^^6jU -1 d f^ Cf J

x p ciJ ji o i j ^ 1 ^ 1 ^ll 4jJu^r iy* jS!>j ^1 jUj'^1 0 ; y ^ ^ i v^iyi y J


^^l:ajl 4^ ^ j:p jA j 4 J^ ^ j ^ l _^9j J* d<k>-l J j _ j J l (j^

'1/ ja W Cf j ^ j^Vj ^ J ld l c-iJ lO l O' J:f-^ 1 y <^Ua)l ^'"^(J^J

c .^ U > >waJiwa) (3
J f> Cf Cf y} ^jF' jJ)J^j
^ ^ b Jl y \ j
jJ ^ (3

^Jlj)CL (j^l J5^ c^lu ^^1 ujjIa c/ Qj*** O' c5^j ^

iisU -l S])^ ^ < ^UsyJ~l _yl JaiU>lj"^


y}~ ^
J iiU -lo ^ ^ ^ 1 1 j l > o l> J% 11
0 ^ -^J^J
(298 a^ (jl ^dj]_j < u l^ lj

jT ja i ^1 jt^ J\ < iu ^ 4 p m
J 'j- ^ ci^ '
(^\aI^ ^1 j>\ \jS^j jli j^ll *uil js- y\ 6jU^l Ly^^y y^j
4'ba3 C/J J t j f ^ O', (j-^1 j i^ j
Cfy ^ j y } /'^
V : i 5' j S f J U 4-1
U:> j \ ijj\ j) l j^
^ C^J* o; 0; o; j ^ j!^
^ >XJ^ ^L_.la3 jJ y C ^AvmH J
j Sjry J; *^1 aJli?- 4!

(^ ^U1 .j^ i jjl dJuJirj jJiLill ,3*^1 y \ j ^ ^ 11 j ^ U ii d ill' C/^


UJ

o i ' (^ ^ ly (j <u)i iLc'^

4l)l OP ejjl" y )j 4 a>!5r jL ^ l (o-L? (Jl^^'bfi

jilj v:uJb U AC1^1 oJAj iU5^ -=U^jj^ l^i jjO d^r<a?- -rV \*AAj
Liall s_y? J' <ujl JwP ^3! (j| Ou i-l y \ j j l J 1 JLC (J Sj_^ Ja) o-i^j If^)^ u^

djU^l (j iaiU -l _ r ^ 0 ^ y ^ <^W_? <y> S '^ li! (i^


(1 1) P z marg. (2) A y i' . (3 3) P . (4) A ^ J u V '.
(1) P (2) A deest. (3 3) P in marg. (4 4) V deest. (5 5) P deest. (6 6) P i n marg. (7 7) P deest; A in marg.

(f) 5) P deest. (0) A Ai_j . (7 7) P in marg. (^) ^ y r (9 9) (8) Cf. a s-S u y u ti, H u s n a l - m u h d d a r a h , I, 298 (C airo 1299); A P ( j j l O i . (9 9)
P in marg. (10 10) F deest. (11 11) V in marg. ( see th e fo llo w in g p a g e )
P su p r a lin. (10 10) P deesl. (11) A ^ S

R o senth al, H istory of M uslim H istoriography 39


610

(II,-

17

As-SiJafi, Mu'-jam
(a b o v e , p . 4 7 1 , n. 6)
INDEX OF PROPER NAMES
The following index contains all proper names mentioned in the preceding pages. Italicized
O', <1/ J o b * ^ numbers preceded b y IHdn refer to the edition of the IHdn (Damascus 1349). T h ey concern
proper names from the passage om itted in the English translation (cf. above, p. 265).
In the alphabetization, no distinction has been made between different Arabic sounds.
Thus, s, s, and s are all treated like one and the same letter. The words a. (for abu), b. (for ibn),
^ 6 bint, and the definite article al- are disregarded in the alphabetic order. The abbreviations of
. J>- JrJC ^ J^j *^J l^j5 proper names are more or less the same as those employed in G A L , that is; A. = Ahmad,
^AI. = 'Abdallah, 'Ar. = 'Abd-ar-Rahm an, H. = Hasan, Hu. = Husayn, Ibr. = Ibrahim,
Ism. = Isma'il, M. = Muhammad, Q. = Qasim, Su. = S ulaym an,^U. = ^Umar, Ya. = Yahya,
and Yu. = Yusuf.
Where the names of contemporary Near Eastern scholars are identical with medieval proper
names and are not cited in a Latin transliteration of their own, they are always listed at the end
of the entries for a given name. For instance, 'A b d -al--Aziz Ahm ad is listed after all the other
Ahmads.

'A l. b. 'Abd-az-Zahir 119, 128, 155 f., 412,


596
Aaron (Harun) 288, 389, 580 'A l. b. 'Adi, a. A. al-Jurjani 361, 393, 401,
b. bint al-A 'azz; 'Ar. b. 'Abd-al-W ahhab, 453, 515-517, 522, 528, IHdn 1 4 1
Taqt-ad-dm 'A l. b. A. al-Bisbisi 428
b. bint al-A 'azz; ^Abd-al-Wahhab b. Halaf 'A l. b. A. b. Hanbal 521, 601
Abaga b. Hulagu 178 'A l. b. A., a. M. al-Fargam 82, 478
Aban b. ^Abd-al-Harnid al-Lahiqi 180 'A l. b. A ., a. M. b. Zabr 512 f., 603
Aban b. Yazid al-'^Attar 376 'A l. b. A ., a. 1-Q. al-K a 'b i al-Balhi 430, 467
al-Abarquhi: A. b. Ishaq, a. 1-M a^Mi 'A l. b. A ., Muwaffaq-ad-din b. Qudamah
b. *^Abbad; Ism. b. 'A bbad, as-Sahib 359, 601, 605
al-'A bbadi: M. b. A., a. 'Asim 'A l. b. A. b. Sulaym al-A sw toi 106
al-'^Abbadi, A. M. 356 'A l. b. A ., a. 'U . ad-Dimashqi 590 f.,
b. al-Abbar; M, b. 'Al. 'A l. b. A. az-Zarandi 349
b. 'A bbas: 'A l. 'A l. b. 'A ll b. Hadidah 403
al-'A bbas b. 'Abd-al-M uttalib 282, 360, 'A l. b. 'A ll, a. M. b. al-Jarud 407, 438
408 (?), 589 'A l. b. 'A ll b. Suwayd at-Takriti 465
al-'A bbas b. 'A li b. Rasul: al-Afdal 'A l. b. 'Am ir 581
al-'A bbas b. (al-)Faraj ar-Riyasi 504, 511 'A l. b. 'A m r 495
al-'A bbas b. M. al-Andalusi 504 'A l. b. As'ad, 'Afif-ad-din al-Y afi'i 148, 308,
al-'A bbas b. M. al-Ansari 429 429 f., 485, 497, 500, 521, 533, 589
(al-)'Abbas b. M. ad-Duri 446, 449 'A l. b. 'A w n /'/aw i j g
al-'A bbas (?) b. M., a. 1-Q. as-Sabti 399, 588 'A l. b. a. 1-I3 arakat al-Akrarn, a. Bakr 607
al-'A bbas b. Mus'ab b. Bisr 477 'A l. b. Buraydah 295
'Abbas, Ihsan 36, 113, 466 V 'A l. b. al-Fadl al-Lahmi 272
Abbott, N. X IV , 82, 87, 130 f., 394, 431, 'A l. b. Fadlallah al-Wassaf 121
504, 518 a. 'A l. b. Hanimad as-Sabti: b. Hamniad
* H e r e fo llo w th e c o n c lu d in g w o rd s o f th e w h o le w o r k , a n d th e s u b s c r ip tio n w h ic h 'A b d b. A., a. Darr al-Harawi 453, 523, 591 'A l. b. al-Hu. b. Sa'd al-K atib 409 f., 504
in P , a n d s im ila r ly in A , ru n s a s fo llo w s: 'A l. ( = 'A l. b. 'Abbas ?) 334, 341 'A l. b. Ja'far b. Durustawayh 378, 400
'A l. b. 'Abbas 284, 287, 324, 382 f., 385, 511, 'A l. b. Ja'far al-Madiiii 363
^yJ 4j (3 ^ 5 <iJijA Jls - jr^ ifry J j-^1 514, 517, 565, 568, 570, 574, 579, 589 f. 'A l. b. Katir 581, /'/aw i j 6
'A l. b. 'A b d-al-'A ziz al-Yuniiii 602 'A l. b. Lahi'ah 395, 504, 518, IHdn 138
A_fU JL(J j o' 'A l. b. 'A bd-al-H akam 590 'Al. b. Mahfuz: 'A l. b. M. b. Mahfuz
'A l. b. 'Abd-al-M alik al-Marjani 476 a. 'A l. al-Maliki 608 f.
, . . . ^i/l\ 'A l. b. 'Ar. ad-Darimi 520, /'/aw 142 'A l. b. Maslainah al-Qa'nabi 379, 519
'A l. b. 'Ar. az-Zuhri 599 'A l. b. Mas'ud 278, 578, IHdn 139
6i2 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S 613
IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES

^Al. b. M aym un al-Q addah 275 'A b d -a l-H a y y b. A . b. a l-'I n iM 55, 272, 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. F ah d 480
'A l. b. W aq id , a. R a ja IHdn 142
'A l. b. al-M ubarak 333, 335, 341, 518, 5o i, 405, 430, 463, 466, 471, 520, 522 f., 602 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. M., M uhyi-ad-din al-Qurasi
'A l. b. Y u , b. H isam 245, 314, 456
iH dn 142 (?) 'A b d -a l-H a y y b. ad-D ahh ak al-G ardizi 321 a l-H an afi 310, 417 , 423, 442 f., 445, 448 f.,
'A l. b. Y u ., a. M. al-Jurjaiu 415, 584, 593 f.
'A l. b. M. b. 'A l. b. M. b. Farhun 604 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r b. 'A l. a l-H aw lan i 168, 468 454, 468, 482, 534, 590
'A l. b. Y u ., a. 1-Q. b. R id w an 118
A l. b. M., ^Afif-ad-din al-M atari 43 (?), 415, 'A l. b. Y u . b. Y u n us al-Urm,awi 602 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r b. a. B a k r b. H am dis 466 'A b d -al-Q ah ir b. 'A L , a. n -N ajib as-Suhra-
442 , 476, 505 'A l. b. a. Z a yd 'A r. al-M aliki 591, 601 A b d -al-Jab b ar b. M. al-H araqi 384 wardi 415, 584
'A l. b. M. b. A ll b. A. 439 'A l. b. Z iy M b. S am 'an 439 'A b d -a l-J ab b a r al-M u tan abbi 115 , 184 f. 'A b d -al-Q ah ir b. 'A b d -a l-G a n i b. T a ym iya h
AI. b. M. b. a. l-'A w w a m as-Sa*^di 590 'A l. b. az-Z u b ayr 283, 382, 406 'A b d -el-Jalil, J.-M. 84 466
^Al. b. M ., a. B a k r b. a. d -dun ya 399 f., 408, 'A l. b. az-Z u b ayr a l-H u m ayd i 519, IHdn 136 b. 'A b d -a l-K a rim 472 'A b d -al-Q ah ir b. 'A r. al-Jurjan i 348
429, 432 f., 505, 5 1 1, 601 'A b d -a l-A 'la b. Mushir, a. Mushir IHdn 138 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. 'A b d -an -N u r, Q utb-ad-din 'A b d -al-Q ah ir b. T a h ir a l-B agd ad i 430
^Al. b. M., a. B akr al-M 41iki 392, 419, 426, 'A b d -a l-'A zim b. 'A b d -al-Q aw i, Zaki-ad-din al-H alab i 396, 442, 452 , 476, 478, 525, 587 'A bd -al-Q u d du s b. a l-H a jja j, a. 1-Mugirah
460, 473 f., 510 al-M undiri 45, 441, 452, 460, 512, 515, 525 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. 'A r. al-Q alqasan di 440 IHdn 139
'^Al. b. M., a. B a k r b. a. S ay b a h 361, 392, 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. 'A l. (b.) al-M ajisun 518 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. H aw azin al-Q usayri 425 f. b. 'A b d rab b ih ; A . b. M.
395, 501, 520 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. 'A l al-U w aysi 281 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. M., a. 1-Q. a r-R a fi'i 44, 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. A b d -al-K arim , a. 1-
Al. b. M. a l-B a kri 486 f. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. 'A b d -as-Salam , 'Izz-ad -d in 127, 169, 243, 279 (?), 298, 459, 472 f., M uzaffar (b.) as-Sam '&ni 431
A l. b. M. ad-D inaw ari IHdn 1 4 1 as-Sulam i 334, 341, 346 f., 602 483, 603 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. 'A li, al-Q a^i al-F adil
Al. b. M. b. a. D u la y m al-Q urtubi 417 f. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A ., 'Izz-ad -d in ad-D irm i 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. M., a. S a 'd (b.) as-Sam 'an i al-B aysan i 127, 175
A l. b. M. b. F arhu n 309, 3 11, 476, 604 398, 603 42 f., 73, 275, 277, 286, 3 11, 339 t , 362, 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. al-H . al-Isnaw i (al-Isna i)
A l. b. M. al-H araw i al-A nsari 361, 523, 594, 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A. a l-K in a n i 512 379, 392 f., 408, 418, 431, 445, 451, 453 f-, 415, 442, 602
601 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A . b. 'U tm an , 'Izz-ad-din. 457-459, 461-467, 469-471, 4 7 3 , 4 7 5 , 4 7 7 , 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. al-H u., Zayn-ad-din al-
'A l. b. M. al-H ^riti 449, 464, 590 al-H akk ari 602 482-484, 509, 522 f., 532, 593 'Ira q i 398 f., 405, 436, 447, 513, 526, 528,
'A l. b. M. b. H ar^n a t-T a i 601 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. a. H azim (Salam ah) 379 'A b d -a l-L a tif b. M. al-H am aw i 529 587 f., 602, 607
'A l. b. M ., a. Ja'^far a ii-N u fayli 520 'A b d -a l-A ziz b. M ahm ud b. al-A hd ar 433 'A b d -al-M ajid b. 'A b d u n 181 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. Ibr. b. al-B^rizi 88, 277,
'A l. (b. M.) b. M ahfuz a l-B a la w i 504 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M., a. H asim al-H asim i 'A b d -al-M ajid, 'A b d -a l-'A z iz 312 386 f.
'A l. b. M. b. M andaw ayh as-Suruti 594 a l-'A b b a si 602 'A b d -al-M ajid, H am id 185, 371, 426, 512 A r. I l l (an-Nasir of Spain) 80, 184
'A l. b. M. b. al-M uhandis 417 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M., 'Izz-ad -d in a. 'U . b. b. 'A b d -al-M alik ; M. b. M. b. 'A b d -al-M alik a. 'A r . ; 'A r, b. Y a z id
'A l. b. M. al-M usnadi (!) IHan 142 J a m a 'a h 331, 397, 424 f. al-M arrakusi 'A r. b. 'A L b. 'A b d -a l-H ak am 162 f., 477,
'A l. b. M., a. 1-Q. al-B agaw i 405, 524, 527 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M. an-N ahsabi 471, 610 'A b d -al-M alik b. 'A l. b. B adru n 32, 181
'A l. b. M. b. as-Sarqi IHdn 14 1 'A b d -al-M alik b. 'A L , Im am al-H aram ayn 504
'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M usa b. N u sayr 119 'A r. b. 'A L as-Su h ayli 360, 394, 397, 524, 587
'A l. b. M ., a. s-S ayh b. H ibban 168, 361, 396, 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. Saddad, a. l-'A ra b (a, 374 'A r. b. 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r, a. N asr al-F am i 483
400, 402, 453, 459, 501, 522 G arib ?) 473 'A b d -al-M alik b. 'A b d -a l-'A iz b. Ju ra yj 379,
'A r. b. 'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. M akanis 425
'A l. b. M. b. 'U m arah b. al-Q addah 96 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. 'U ., 'Izz-ad -d in b. F ah d IHdn 136 'A r. b. 'A b d -al-W ah h ab , Taqi-ad-din b. b in t
'A l. b. M., a. 1-W alid al-F arad i i68, 171, 393, 421 (?), 482 'A b d -al-M alik al-B agaw i 417
a l-A 'a z z 366
400, 418 f., 460, 474, 504, 599, 609 'A b d -a l-B a d i', L u tfi 5 'A b d -al-M alik b. H abib 46, 275, 395 (?),
'A r, b. A ., 'A d u d-ad -din a l-lji 202, 220 f.,
'A l. b. M. b. Y a z d M , a. Salih 73 'A b d -a l-B a q i b. 'A b d -al-M ajid a l-Y a m a n i 4 7 9 , 591, IHdn 140
244, 456 (?)
'A l. b. (al-)Muharrir 341 485, 500, 504 'A b d -al-M alik b. H isam 29, 50, 187, 282, 316,
'A r . b. A . b. B a q i b. M ahlad 599
'A l. b. al-M u qaffa' 187, 505, 511 'A b d -a l-B aq i b. Q an i', a. 1-Hu. 405, 511 f., 522 3 3 5 , 361, 394 , 398, 4 11, 456, 5 34, 586 f. 'A r. b. A ., a. S a 'id b. Y u n us 55, 168, 171,
'A l. b. Musa as-Salam i 322 b. 'A b d -a l-B arr: A. b. M., a. 'A b d -al-M alik 'A b d -al-M alik b. M arwan 50, 68 f., 116 , 123,
393, 408, 418, 441, 450, 4 7 7 , 504, 5 11,
^Al. b. Muslim b. Q u ta y b ah 50, 323, 355, b. 'A b d -a l-B arr; Y u . b. 'A L , a. 'U . 413, IHdn 138
522, 528, 533
401, 423, 505, 515, 5 8 8 ,IHdn 14 1 'A b d -a l-B asit ('U .) b. M., Zayn-ad-din 'A b d -al-M alik b. M ., a. S a 'd an-N isaburi 402,
'A r. b. A ., Zayn-ad-din b. R ajab 82, 283,
^Al. b. al-Mu'^tazz 182-185, 272, 411, 424, 500 (az-Zayni) b. Zuhayrah 413 588
420, 427, 443. 462, 483, 502, 523
'A l. b. a. N ajih I'^ldn 136 'A b d -a l-B a sit b. Musa a l-'A lm a w i 337, 352, 'A b d -al-M alik b. M. a t-T a 'a lib i 92, 114, 142,
'A r. b. 'A ll b. a d -D a y b a ' 157, 159, 286, 330
^Al. b. an-N asir 599 418 174, 177, 179, 272, 321-323, 3 5 5, 390, 414, 'A r. b. 'A li, a. 1-Faraj b. al-Jaw zi 34, 41,
^Al. b. Q ays, a. M usa a l-A s ari 251, 380, 'A b d -a l-6 a ffa r b. A . al-Q usi 425 422, 459, 469, 503, 532 46, 67, 72, 82-85, 93, 109, 119, 125, 127,
551, 567, IHdn 139 'A b d -a l-6 a fir (Gaffar) b. Hu. a l-A lm a 'i 473 'A b d -al-M alik b. Qura>b a l-A sm a 'i 50, 58,
143 f., 146, 201, 204, 243, 256, 272, 279 f.,
^Al. b. Q ays, au-N abigah a l-J a 'd i 387 'A b d -al-G M ir b. Ism. 483 187, 271, 379, 505, 5 11, 603 283, 295 f., 317, 321, 324, 332, 345, 354 f.,
^Al. al-Q u tru bulli 73 'A b d -al-(5 a r i b. 'Abd-al-VVahid al-J am m a'ili 'A b d -al-M alik b. SMih 122
375, 385, 394 f-, 399-402, 408, 414, 420 f.,
A l. b. S a 'd b. a. Jam rah 601 al-M aqdisi 275 f., 278, 341, 396, 406, 447 f., 'A bd-al-M uhsin b. 'U tm an b. C a n a im al-
424-429, 436, 439, 453 f., 458, 470 t , 4 7 3 ,
'A l. b. S ah l al-Quda^i 420 524, 587, 590, 603 H atib 465, 593
481, 490 f., 501-503, 515, 521-524, 528,
'A l. b. Salam 335, 517 'A b d -a l-G an i b. M. b. T a y m iya h 466 'A b d -a l-M u 'izz M., a. R aw h al-H araw i
531, 533 , 588-590, 593 f., 596 f., 599 f-,
^Al. b. Su., a. B a k r b. a. D aw ud 363, 404 'A b d -a l-G an i b. S a 'id 427, 448, 450, 522, 609 IHdn 142
604, 607
^Al. b. Suw ayd(ah) a t-T a k riti: 'A l. b. '^Ali b. 'A b d -a l-H ad i: M. b. A. 'A b d -a l- M u W n b. Plalaf, araf-ad-din ad-
b. S u w ay d D im ya ti 328, 396, 403, 4 4 i , 452 , 4 5 4 , 525, 'A r. b. 'A m r a l-A w za 'i 157, 362, 395, 518,
b. 'A b d -al-H ak am : 'A l.
(Al. ?) b. Ta^us b. K a y san IHdn 140 581 f., 587, 599 591, 602
b. 'A b d -a l-H ak am : 'A r. b. 'A l.
'A l. b. 'U b a y d a lla h b. a. M ulaykah IHdn 136 b. 'A b d -al-M u n 'im a l-H im yari n o , 487 'A r. b. 'A m r, a. Z u r'a h ad-Dim aqi 72, 282,
b. 'A b d -a l-H am id : M. b. 'A b d -a l-H am id
'^Al. b. U b a y y IHdn 143 'A b d -al-M u ttalib 433 392, 450, 501, 520
b. 'A l.
H\l. b. 'U . fb. H afs ?) IHdn 136 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. 'A l. b. a l-'A yd a ru s 57, 85 f., 'A r. b. 'A w f 383, 589
'A b d -al-H am id b. 'A l. b. Usam ah a l-K u fi 98
^\1. b. 'U . b. a l-H a ttab 287, 351, 359. 363 A r. b. a l-A w z a 'i, a. S a 'id 591
'A b d -al-H am id a l-K atib 52 126
'A l. b. U nays 191 f. 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. 'A L al-J il4ni 439, 598, 603 'A r. b. a. B akr, JaU l-ad-din as-S u yu ti 27, 44,
'A b d -al-H aq q b. 'A r. al-Isbili 524
^Al. b. W ah b 518, 592, 601, IHdn 138 A b d -al-Q ad ir b. 'A L ar-R uh aw i 524, 601 49, 71, 86, 13 1, 156, 163, 184 f., 277, 298,
'A b d -a l-H aq q b. Ibr. b. S a b 'in 304, 329
6i 4 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES 615

378, 411 f., 422, 434, 436, 441, 452, 475 f., {includes Ta^rih Bagdad) 14, 43, 45, 48,
'A b d -as-Salam b. Y u . ad-D im asqi 424 b. a l-'A d im : A . b. H ibatallah
524 i., 532, 5 3 5 , 609 b. a l-'A d im : 'U . b. A ., a. 1-Q. K am al-ad-din 55, 60, 62, 69, 72 f., 87, 96, 99, 102, 113 ,
^Abd-as-Samad b. 'A b d -al-W ah hab , a. 1-
*^Ar. b. Bisr I'^ldn 141 122, 124, 127 f., 166, 169, 183, 201, 250,
Y u iim b. 'A sa k ir 401, 475 b. a. Jaradah
'A r. b. a l-F a y d , a. 1-A sw ad 400 258, 272, 275-279, 281, 285, 295, 304 f.,
'A bd -as-Sam ad b. 'A b d -a l-W a rit b. S a 'id 'A d n an 387
^Ar. b. F u tay s: ^Ar. b. M. b. F u tay s (Sa^d) 405 310 f., 324, 326 f., 331, 333 f., 340-343,
'A d u d-ad -daw lah 124, 177, 4 11, 488, 596
'A r. b. al-H akara 327 'A d u d-ad -din 456 {see also 'A r. b. A.) 345 f., 350, 354 f., 358, 361-363, 366, 368,
^Abd-as-Samad b. S a 4 d, a. 1-Q. al-H im si
'A r. b. H. al-J ab arti 378 al-A fdal (al-'A b b as b. 'A li b. Rasul) 56, 485 3 74 , 379 f., 393, 395, 399 , 40i f., 404-406,
405, 46 7
Ar. b. Hasirn I^-ldn 14 1 b. 'Abd-as-Sami'^: Su. b. 'A li al-A fgani, S a 'id 259, 492 410, 416, 429, 431-435, 4 37 , 439 f-, 446,
'A r. b. a. H atiin (M.) b. Idris at-Taruim i 'A b d -a s-S am i' b. 'A bd -as-Sam ad al-H asim i b. 'A fif: A . b. M ., a. 'U . 448-450, 4 5 3 , 461-464, 471, 4 7 3 , 476 f.,
ar-R azi 95, 393, 4:8, 437, 43 9. 4 4 5, 448, b. 'A fif-ad -d in : M. b. M. b. as-S ayyid 'A fif-ad - 482 f., 498, 501, 504 f., 507-509, 512, 515,
( = b. '^Abd-as-Sami'^ a l-H atib an-N assa-
450, 480 f., 520 f., 593 f. b ah ?) 98 517-523, 532, 592
din
'A r. b. Ibr., D u h aym IHdn 138 'A fif-ad -d in al-M atari: 'A l. b. M. A. b. 'A li, a. B akr b. M anjaw ayh 447
'A b d -a s-S ay yid b. M., a. N asr b. as-Sabbag
'A r. b. 'Isa , a. M. al-B u zu ri 607 Agdnt: 'A li b. al-H u., a. 1-Faraj al-Isbahani A . b. 'A li b. H ajar 41, 44 f., 53 f., 86, 106,
280
'A r. b. Ism ., a. Sam ah 83, 15 1, 178, 304, A gapiu s (M ahbub b. Q ustan tin al-M anbiji) 127, 155, 163, 185, 201, 258, 264, 267, 269,
'A b d -al-W ah hab b. 'A l., A b u N asr b. al-
3 5 3, 3 9 3, 412, 4 5 5 , 458, 468, 491 f., 504, 275-278, 280-282, 291 f., 306, 309, 3 11,
J a y y a r 591 77 f., 108, 137 f.
525, 528, 582 325, 327 f., 338 f., 341, 343 f , 346, 348-350,
'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. A ., a. 1-Mugirah 150 Ahasuerus 50
'A r. b. Mahdi 515, 518, 527 <^Abd-al-Wahhab b. <^Ali, T aj-ad -d in as-Subki a l-A hd al: al-H u. b. 'A r. 352-357, 359, 361-363, 365 370 f., 374-
'A r. b. M aki b. ^Utman as-Sari'i: 'A r. b, b. al-A hd ar: 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M ahm ud 376, 379-381, 388, 391, 394-401, 403-408,
4 3 , 62, 65, 347 f., 353, 364, 370-375,
'U tm an A h lw ard t, VV. 49, 51, 56, 58, 188, 246, 529 414-417, 420-422, 424-431, 434-438, 440-443.
401, 414-416, 439 , 442 f., 45 7 , 468, 4 7 5 , 477 ,
'A r . b. M arzuq, a. 1-M utarrif al-Q anazi^ 602 483, 534 , 603 A . b. 'A l., a. l-'Ala^ al-M a'arri 73, 210, 235, 4 4 5 -4 4 7 , 449 f-, 452, 4 5 4 , 456-458, 460-465,
Ar. b. M u 'aw iyah (of Spain) 461 'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. H alaf b. bin t a l-A 'a z z 603 467, 471-473, 475-479, 482 f., 485, 491-493,
256, 597
'A r. b. M. al-B istam i 40, 249 A . b. 'A l. b. 'A m irah 155 496-500, 503-507, 509, 512 f., 515-517,
'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. M. a l-F to ii 414, 417, 584
'A r. b. M. al-F u ran i 430 519, 523, 525 f-, 528 f., 531 f., 582 f., 587,
'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. M. b. M andah 283, 400 A . b. 'A l. al-B arq i 501
'A r. b. M. b. F u tay s, a. 1-M utarrif al-M agribi 'A b d -al-W ah id b. 'A ll al-M arrakusi 82, n o , A . b. 'A l. al-F argani 82 589, 592, 595, 597, 599, 603-605, 610
401, 522, 588 A. b. 'A l. al-F irabri 595 A . b. 'A li b. H atim ah 477
477
'A r. b. M. al-Idrisi al-A starab ad i 168, 458, 470 A . b. 'A li b. 'In a b a h 98, 434, 475
'A b d -a l-W a h id b. M., a. 'U b a y d al-J u zajan i A . b. 'A l., a. 1-H. a l-B akri 191
'A r. b. M., a. 1-Q. al-L ab id i (Lubaydi) (Ibn 600 A . b. 'A ll, a. 'Isa b. al-M unajjim 72, 79, 91,
A . b. 'A l. a l-'I jli 435, 439, 520
Farhun, Dibdj, 152 [Cairo 1351]) 608 Abd-al-Wahid b. S iya h as-Sirazi 425 A . b. 'A l., M uhibb-ad-din at-T a b ari 397, 406, 511
'A r. b. M., a. 1-Q. b. M andah 165, 400, 475, 'A b d -Y a s u ' b. Bahrez 79 A . b. 'A li b. Musa 439
434 , 587
481, 513, 590, 599 A . b. 'A l., a. N u 'a y m al-Isbahani 160, i 58 f., A . b. 'A li b. al-M utanna, a. Y a 'la al-M awsili
b. 'A b d -az-Z ah ir; 'A l. b. 'A b d -az-Z ahir
^Ar. b. M., a. 1-Q. b. R asiq 473 f. 'A b d an (b. M. al-M arwazi) 404, 416 2 4 3 , 259, 361, 393, 400, 402, 404 f-, 426, 4 5 3 , 521
'A r. b. M. b. Q udam ah 602 'A b d an b. 'U tm an IHdn 142 A . b. 'A li b. an-N ajai 432
441, 448, 4 53 , 459 , 498, 515, 588, 597 , 600
A r. b. M ., W ali-ad-din b. H aldun X I V , 15, A. b. 'A li an-Nasa^i 361, 436, 438, 447, 515,
a l-'A b d a ri; M. b. M. b. al-H ajj A . b. 'A l. al-Q u tru bulli 73
32 f., 4 1, 44, 49, 52, 54, 60, 81, 98, 112 f., al-'A b d a w i, a. H atim (?) 522 {see also 'U . A . b. 'A l. ar-R azi 335, 471, 484, 486 521, 527, 595
116 -119 , 121, 127, 190, 201-203, 220, b. A ., a. Hazim) A . b. 'A l. b. Sal(l)am 139 A . b. 'A li a r-R ifa 'i 598
241 f., 245, 253, 257, 3 11, 316, 320, 370, A . b. 'A ll, Sihab-ad-din al-Q alqasandi 52,
A b d -el-K ader, A. H. 325 A . b. 'A L , ihab-ad-din al-A w h adi 479
407, 438, 487, 497 f., 504 a l-'A b d i; M. b. 'A li A . b. 'A b d -al-H alim , Taqi-ad-din b. T a y- 191, 261, 296, 3 11, 434
'A r. b. M., a. Z ayd al-A nsari al-Q ayraw ani m iyah 355, 376, 378, 493, 525, 598, IHdn A . b. 'A ll, Taqi-ad-din al-M aqrizi 10, 15, 41,
a l-'A b d i; 'U m arah b. Ju w ayn , a. H arun
b. ad -D abb ag 306, 460 (?), 473 f. 44, 55, 63, 70, 81, 85, 109, 124, 126-128,
a l-'A b d i: Y a . b. a r-R ab i' 138 147, 149, 155 f., 171, 175, 181, 246, 249,
'Ar. b. N ajm , N asih-ad-din b. al-H an bali al-A bi: M ansur b. al-H u., a. S a 'd A . b. 'A bd -al-M alik, a. Salih al-M u addin
426 f. b. 'A b d iin : Abd-al-M ajid 280, 315-317, 321, 328 f., 356, 367, 378,
477 , 523
'A r. b. (al-)Q. 592, 602, IHdn 138, 140 A . b. 'A b d -al-M u min as-Sarisi 272 397, 406-409, 411, 414, 425, 429, 434 f-,
A b el (Habil) 183, 569
'A r. b. ^U., Jalal-ad-din al-BuIqini 283 (?), A . b. 'A b d -al-Q ad ir, Taj-ad -d in b. Maktum, 442, 454 f-, 462, 469, 477-479, 498 f., 502
'A b id ('U b ayd ) b. H usayn ar-Ra*^i 323
328, 402, 602, 604 A . b. 'A m r, a. B a k r b. a. 'A sim 403, 521
^Abid C^Ubayd) b. Saryah 50, 64, 187 421 f., 4 4 1 , 52 5
'A r. b. "^U. al-Jaw bari 390 A. b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im , W ali-ad-din a. Z u r'ah A . b. 'A m r, a. B a k r al-B azzar 521
'A b id in , a. 1-Yusr 216
'A r. b. 'U ., M ajd-ad-din b. al-'A diru 442 (b.) a l-'Ira q i 513, 526, 602 a. A. (b.) a l-'A ssal: M. b. A.
al-A biw ard i; M. b. A ,, a. I-M uzaffar
'A r. b. U. al-Q ibabi 452 A . b. A yb a k , a. I-Hu. ad -D im yati 442, 513,
al-A bn asi: Ibr. b. H ajja j, Burhan-ad-din A . b. 'A r. al-Q asri 591
*^Ar. b. 'U tn ia n b. M aki a s - S M 'i 427 Abraham (Ibr.) 26, 149, 257, 285, 288-290, A . b. 'A r. b. M uzahir 419, 471 525
'A r. b. Y a z id , a. 'A r. IHdn 136 A . b. 'A b d -al-W ah hab an-N uw ayri 32, 39, A . b. B a h tiy a r b. al-M anda i al-W asiti 427
3__i9, 385, 559 , 563, 579 , 589
'A r. b. Y u . b. H iras 365, 521 al-A buri: M. b. al-Hu. 52, 177, 33^ 485, 49 7 , 502 A . b. B u d a yl 276
'A b d -a r-R a z z a q : 'A b d -a r-R a zza q b . H am mam A. b. 'A b d -a l-W a rit b. H alifah 444 A . b. D aw u d ad-D inaw ari 87, 92, 133, 529
A d am 39, 58, 149, 256, 261, 284, 296, 385-387,
'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. A . b. a l-F u w ati 58, 83, A . b. al-F a d l a l-B atirq an i 420
561-563, 565-569, 572 A. b. 'A b d ah ad-D abbi 365
A . b. al-F a d l a n -N u 'a ym i 160
86, 98, 176, 348, 397, 410 f., 414, 423 f., b. A d am ; A. b. M. b. 'U b a y d b. A d am al- A . b. A . b. 'A b d -a l-L a tif as-Sarji al-Y a m a n i
431, 441, 451, 457 f., 460, 462, 468, 470, 'A sq alan i {G AL Supplement II, 254) 52, 426, 476 A . b. F arah 525
473, 4 9 2 , 5 0 4 A d am al-'A sqalan i 471 A . b. A . al-G ubrini 86, 461
A . b. Faris, a. 1-H u. 316, 333, 396, 399, 401,
'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. H ainm am as-San ani b. al-A dam i: 'A li b. M., Sadr-ad-din A . b. A . b. al-H u. b. a. 1-Mansur al-A zd i 426 587 f., 607
394, 519 , 588, 602, I^ldn 140 A. b. 'A li, a. l-'A b b a s al-M ayuraqi 165, 304, A . b. a l-F u rat, a. M as'u d ar-R azi 598
b. 'A d i: 'A l. b. 'A d i, a. a .
'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. R izq -A llah ar-R as'an i 58 b. 'A d i: al-H aytam A. b. Hafs P ld n 142
325, 481 f.
b. ^Abd-as-Salam: A b d -a l-'A ziz b. Abd-as- a l-'A d id li-din-Allah 175, 407 A . b. 'A li b. B abah 52 A . b. H alid 602
Salam , 'Izz-ad -d in A . b. 'A ll, a. B a k r al-H atib al-B agd ad i A . b. I la lil, Sihab-ad-din b. al-L ubudi 283, 428
b. al-'A d im : 'A r. b. 'U ., M ajd-ad-din
6 i6 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES 617

A . b. H an bal: A . b. M. b. H an bal A . b. M. al-B asam 163, 483 b. 'A id ; M.


A. b. M ustafa, T ask op riizM eh V I I I , 27, 46,
A . b. H arun a l-B a rd iji 521 b. 'A isah; 'U b a yd a lla h b. M.
A . b. M. b. al-F aqih 52 310, 365, 477 , 530-535
A . b. H arun, a. 'U . b, A t 461 'A isah bin t 'A l. at-Tabari, Um m -al-huda 434
A. b. M, b. IJallikan 53, 82-84, 175, 177, 283, A . b. M utarrif, a. 1-F ath a l-K in a n i 321
A . b. a. 1-tIa y r a l-Y a m a n i a s-S a yyad 597 'A isah bint a. B akr 274, 277, 290, 359 f.,
292, 315. 343, 381, 393, 397 , 400, 412, 423, A . b. N ajd ah al-H araw i IHdn 142
A . b. a. H ayta m a h : A . b. Zuh ayr 517, 572
4 5 9 , 462, 4 7 3 , 477 , 483, 4 8 5 , 496, 499 f - , A . b. N asr ad-D aw udi 278
A . b. H ib atallah b, al-'A d im 544 b. a. l- 'A ja iz ; A . b. H um ayd
502, 507, 515, 531-553,_ 594 A . b. N asr a r-R u y a n i 352
A . b. H ijji, ihab-ad-din 496, 513, 526, 583 A . b. M., a. H am id b. as-Sarqi IHdn 14 1 a l-'A jja j 549
A . b. N asr, a. TM ib a l-B a g d M i 522
A . b. H u m ayd b. a. l-'Aja^iz 156 b. 'A jla n (M. ?) IHdn 136
A . b. M. b. H an bal 85, 261, 274, 276, 290, A. b. N asr b. Z iy M al-H am adani 278
A . b. al-H u., a l-B a d i' al-H am adani 296 al-A jurri; M. b. 'A li, a. 'U b a y d
333, 341, 352, 358, 360 f., 381, 392 f-, 416, A. b. al-Q. Kannun, a. l- 'A y s 50
A . b. al-H u., a. B a k r a l-B a y h a q i 365, 392, al-A jurri; M. b. al-H u., a. B a k r
446, 4 4 9 , 5 1 5 , 5 1 9 f-, 5 2 7 , 528 (?), 5 7 3 , A . b. al-Q . b. a. U say b i'ah 32, 47, 54, 79-81,
400, 403, 456, 523, 588, 592, 594, 597 593 f., 602 al-A kfan i; H ib atallah b. A .
94, 122, 147, 184, 272, 429, 453, 463, 510,
A . b. al-H u., a. 1-Hu. al-A hw azi 173 A . b. M. al-H anqani 502 (b.) al-A kfan i; M. b. Ibr,
A . b. al-H u., ihab-ad-din b. R aslan 398, 587 535 A l Y asin , M. H. 58, 174, 332
A . b. M. b. H . b. a l'G a m m a r 598 A. b. S ah l, a. Z a yd al-B alh i 32, 34, 105, 467,
A . b. Ibr., a. B a k r a l-Ism a'ili 453, 522, IHdn A . b. M. b. 'is a 168, 467 a l-'A la M ?) 443
14 1 482
A . b. M. b. Ishaq, a. B a k r b. as-Sani ad- A . b. S a 'id , a. l-'A b b a s al-M a'd ani 168, 477 b. a l-'A la ^ a. 'A m r
A . b. Ibr., 'Izz-ad -d m a l-K in a n i al-H anbali D inaw ari IHdn 14 1 a. l- 'A la a l-'A tta r al-H am adant; al-H . b. A .
A . b. S a 'id b. H azm , a. 'U . as-Sadafi 419, 502,
44, 163, 307, 320, 325, 334, 341, 343. A . b. M., 'Izz-ad -d ln al-H usayn i 512 a. I-'A la a l-M a'arri; A . b. 'A l.
345-348, 350 f., 420, 428, 526 511 'A la -ad-din, grandson of 'A l. al-U rm aw i 602
A . b. M., Jam al-ad-din b. az-Zahiri 401, 442, A . b. S^lih al-Misri (b.) at-T ab ari 371, 374,
A . b. Ibr., a. J a 'fa r b. az-Zu b ayr 460 462, 525 a l-'A la i; H alil b. K a yk a ld i
A . b. Ibr. a l-Jazzar 54, 171 520
A . b. M. al-M am ani 461 'A lam -al-h u da; M. b. M.
A. b. Salih b. S a fi' al-Jili 502
A . b. Ibr. b. S ib i', araf-ad-din al-Fazart 582 A. b. M. al-M aqqari 150, 155, 160, 181, 261, al-A lbani, M. N, 519 f.
A. b. S a y y a r 168, 416, 477
A . b. Ibr., S ib t b. a l-'A ja rn i 170, 461, 462 (?), 419, 457, 460, 462, 472, 482 A lexan d er {also D u 1-qarnayn) 26, 47, 51,
A . b. Su., M uhyi-ad-din a l-Y am an i al-H usay-
467, 483 A . b. M. al-M arzuqi 86, 378, 387 114, 117, 126, 138, 140, 155, 261, 545, 552,
ni 598
A . b. 'Im a d , Sihab-ad-din b. 'I m 4 d-ad-din A. b. M. b. M atb u t ar-Ra^s 598 A . b. a. T ah ir T a y fu r 81, 122, 135, 143, 563, 576 f.
al-A qfah si 398, 587 'A li; 'A li b. a. Talib
A . b. M. b. M attaw ayh 444 152 f., 408, 462, 471 (?), 502
A . b. 'I s a ; A . b. M. b. 'I s a 'A li (grandson of 'U . b. al-Farid) 604
A . b. M. al-M aydani 215 A . b. a t-T a y y ib as-Sarahsi 153, 174, 542
A . b. 'Isa, Kam al-ad-din b. al-Q alyubi A. b. M. b. Mufrih (?) al-Isbili a l-'A ssab 599 'A ll b. 'A l. a l-6 u z u li 322
A . b. T u gan a l-B a y ta r 545
al-'A sqalan i 605 'A li b. 'A l., a. 1-H. (Hu.) b. Jahdam 427
A . b. M. b. al-M uhanna, Jam al-ad-din a. A . b. T u lu n 44, 4 1 1, 416 f., 596
A . b. Ishaq, a. 1-M a'Mi al-A barq u h i 442 1-F adl 97 f. 'A li b. 'A L , a. 1-H. as-Sadili 608
A , b. 'U b a y d al-Is'ird i 525
A . b. Ism. b. 'A ll 154, 545 A . b. M. b. M uhriz 341 'A ll b. 'A l. b. al-M adini 363, 404, 438, 446,
A . b. 'U ., a. l-'A b b a s a l-'U d ri 487, 590 (?)
A . b. Ism. al-Ib siti a l-W a 'iz 397 520
A . b. M. b. al-M unayyir 402, 588 A. b. 'U . al-M uzajjad 57
A . b. J a 'fa r Jahzah 174, 609 'A li b. 'A l. b. M ahbub at-Tarabulusi 471
A . b. M., N ajm -ad-din b. Sasra 582 A . b. 'U . b. S u rayj 279, 416
A . b. J a 'fa r b. al-M unadi 277 f., 444 A . b. M., a. N asr a l-K ala b ad i 447, 522 'A li b. 'A L , N ur-ad-din as-Sam hudi 476
A . b. 'U m a y r b. Jaw sa 521
A . b. M arwan, a. B a k r ad-D inaw ari 591 A . b. M. al-Q adisi 83 'A li b. 'A L b. a. s-Surur as-Saruji; 'A li b. M.
A . b. W a^ih 591
A . b. M aslam ah b. W add^h, a. J a 'fa r 313 A. b. M. b. al-Q uduri 417 b. a. s-Surur
A . b, Y a . al-B aladu ri 54, 67, 90, 96, 99 f.,
A . b. al-M u 'ad dal (M u'addal) 591 A . b. M. b. a. r-R a b i' 38, 46 'A li b. 'A l. b. a. t-T a y y ib 45
107, 119, 149, 180, 383, 486, 502
A . b. al-M u 'alla ad-D im asql 469 A . b. M. b. a r-R af'a h 315 'A ll b. 'A l. b. a. Z a r' 50, ii 6 , 127, 312, 472
A . b. Y a . ad -D abb i 378, 460, 465
A . b. M., a. l-'A b b a s an-N asaw i 425 'A li b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz al-Jurjan i 272
A . b. M. b. Rusd(irah) (?), a. J a 'fa r 591 A . b. Y a . b. F ad lallah a l-'U m a ri 434, 454,
A. b. M., a. l-'A b b a s b. 'U q d ah 431, 450, 522, A. b. M., a. S a 'id b. a l-A 'rab i 165, 425, 481 'A li b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz a l-K a tib 470
IHdn i3 g 486, 525
A . b. M. b. S ayh 183 'A li b. 'A b d -a l-K a fi, Taqi-ad-din as-Subki
A . b. Y a . b. a. H ajalah 369, 604
A . b. M. b. 'A b d -a l-K arim b. 'Ata^llah, A. b. M., ihab-ad-din a l-'A q a b i 453 62, 372, 603
A . b. Y a . b. al-M unajjim 122
Taj-ad-din 598, 608 'A li b. 'A r. a l-Y a zu ri; al-H . b. 'A li b. 'A r.
A . b. M. as-Silafi 272, 441, 451, 461, 471, A . b. Y a 'q u b al-M isri; A . b. a. Y a 'q u b al-
A . b. M., a. 'A b d -al-M alik b. 'A b d -al-B arr 419 'A li b. A . b. 'A b d -a l-W a h id b. a l-B u h M 349
4 7 5 , 478, 484, 524, 590, 593 , 597 f-, 600, Y a 'q u b i (?)
A . b. M. b. 'A b d rab b ih 49, 67, 184, 308, 605, 610, IHdn 138 'A li b. A . b. 'A li al-M u'addid (al-Mufassis,
A. b. a. Y a 'q u b a l-Y a 'q u b i 16, 64, 67, 78,
515 f-, 529 A . b. M. at-T ah aw i 448, 590 87, 90, 92, 106, 108 f.. I l l , 119, 124, al-M ufaddid ?) 6oo
A . b. M. b. 'A r., a. l-'A b b a s al-B asir al-B a- 'A li b. A . b. H azm 29, 36 f., 112 f., 150, 311,
A . b. M, a t-T a 'la b i 288-290, 404, 432, 566, 13 2 -13 4 , 136, 409, 502, 5 11, 515, 529
lansi 598 568 316, 333 f., 347, 355, 396, 430, 4 5 7 , 462,
A . b. Y u . b. al-A zraq 152, 154, 462, 467, 482
A . b. M. b. 'A ll b. a. 1-Mansur al-A zd i 426 A. b. M., Taqi-ad-din as-um unni 453 523, 527 f., 587, 603
A . b. Y u . b. ad -D ayah 409, 510
A . b. M., a. 'A ll (b.) M iskaw ayh 46 f., 54, 92, 'A ll b. A ., a. 1-Hu. as-Sallam i; al-H u. b. A .,
A. b. M. b. 'U b a y d b. A dam a l-'A sq a la n i 471 A . b. Y u . an-N isaburi IHdn 14 1
108, I I I f., 141 f., 173, 180, 182, 243, 292, A . b. M. b. a. 'U d ay b a h 526 a. 'A li as-Sallam i
A . b. Y u . at-T ^ M i 308, 516
308, 321, 327, 489, 511 A . b. M. b. 'U . b. A b an al-L u bn ani 594 A . b. Zu h ayr, a. B akr b. a. H ayta m a h 12, 62, 'A li b. a. 'A li al-A m id i 221, 246, 254, 374,
A . b. M., a. 'A ll ar-R ud abari 609 A . b. M., a. 'U . b. 'A fif 419 476
72, 382, 392, 396, 406, 437, 448 f., 520,
A . b. M. al-A nbari 183 'A li b. 'A li, Sadr-ad-din al-H anafi 496
A . b. M., a. 'U . at-T alam an k i 591 587, 597
A . b. M. b. 'A rabgah 412 'A li b. A n jab a1-H&zin, T aj-ad -d in b. as-S4'i
A. b. M. b. 'U . a l-Y a m a n i 354 A hm ad, 'A b d -a l-'A ziz 355
A . b. M. al-Arraj^ni 330 55 f., 58, 83, 97, 305, 410, 413, 424, 427,
A. b. M. b. Y a sin (S a'id ?), a. Ishaq al-H add ad A h m ad , M. H. 431
A . b. M. aI-A'ari 324 462 f., 469, 491, 505
al-H araw i 167, 483 (d. 334/945-46 !) A hm edali, A. 427
A . b. M., a. B a k r al-Barqslni 446, 522 'A li b. 'A q il, a. l-Wafa^* al-Faqih 41, 463
A . b. M. b. Y u n us, a. Ishaq a l-B a zza z 483 al-A hn af b. Q ays 590
A . b. M., a. B a k r ar-R azi 97, 153, 160, 408, A . b. M uhanna a l-'U b a y d a li 414 'A li b. B adr at-Tinnisi 593
al-Ahw dni, 'A b d -a l-'A z iz M. 441, 487
419, 4 3 5 , 461, 472, 474 'A ll b. a. B akr, Nur-ad-din a l-H a ytam i
A . b. Musd, a. B a k r b. M ardaw ayh 160, 459, al-A hw ani, A . F . 46
A . b. M., a. B a k r al-Y aqtinJ 591 522 370, 435 , 439
al-A h w a zi; A . b. al-H u., a. 1-Hu.
6 i8 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES 619

a. 'A ll al-B asir 508 A ll b. M., Ala^-ad-din al-B agd ad i a l-H azin A ll b. ZMir al-A zd i 174, 297, 404, 410 f., al-A ubiiri; A . b. M.
All b. B assam 184, 300, 317, 326, 462, 466 397 Andronicus 78 f.
426, 432, 462, 529
'A li b. D a w M b. as-S ayrafi al-Jaw hari 84, A li b. M. b. Farhuii 604 A li b. Z a yd a l-B a y h a q i 49, 84, 161, 174, Anianus 79
156, 247 f., 357 A li b. M. a l-F a yy u m i 499 254, 285, 295, 321, 343 , 414 f,, 423, 4 5 7 , b. A u ja b ; .Aili
^Ali b. al-F a d l b. T ah ir al-B alh i 463 f- A li b. M., a. 1-H. b. al-Q attan 524 461, 463, 465, 467 f,, 483, 535, 584 b. a l-A nm ati; Ism. b. A l.
^Ali b. (a.) 1-F ath ; 'A ll b. al-H . b. a l-F ath A li b. M. b. H atib au-N asiriyah 126, 170, al- A li, Salih A . V U I al-A nsari: al- A b b as b. M.
b. al-M utaw w aq 4 4 5 , 4 5 2 , 455 , 4 6 7 , 4 7 2 , 4 7 8 , 526, 583 a. l- A liya h (R u fa y ) I ld n J39 al-A nsari; A l. b. M. al-H araw i
a. AH a l-C assan i: al-H u. b. M. A ll b. M., a. H ayya n at-T aw h idi 36, 51 f., al- A llam ah al-H illi: H . b. Y u . al-A nsari; Ar. b. M., a. Z ayd
^Ali b. al-H akam 431 105, 322, 348, 350, 368 b. A llan ; A li b. al-H . al-A nsari; S a id b. A w s, a. Z ayd
^Ali b. H am zah al-Isbaham 459 A ll b. M., Izz-ad-din b. a l-A tir 45, 53, 55, a l-A lm a i: A bd -al-G afir (Gaffar) b, Hu. a l-A n ta k i: Y a . b. S a ld
A ll b. H am zah al-Kisa^i 314 58, 64, 100, 108, 112, 127, 146 f., 154, 243, al- A lm aw i: A b d -al-B asit b. M usa A n tar 47, 188
A ll b. al-H . b. A li b. FudM a l-K u fi 431 275, 298 f., 307, 321, 336 f., 339, 365, A lp A rslan 120, 178 al- A n tari (a. 1-Mu^ayyad al-Jazari) 47
A ll b. al-H . b. A llan al-H arrani 466 387, 393 , 405, 448, 482, 491, 506, 528 f., b. A lq ain ah ; M. b. al-H alaf A n tuna, M. M. 70, 87
A ll b. al-H . al-B ah arzi 49, 423, 532 A lqam ah (b. Q ays an-N ah a i ?) IHdn 139 AnCisarwan 36, 52, 117, 319, 386, 539 f.,
531 f-
A ll b. al-H . b. a l-F a th b. al-M utaw w aq 413, A li b. M. al-Jurjan i 531 b. A lq am ah: T am m am b. Am ir 552, 579
505 A li b. M. b. K as, a. 1-Q. 590 A lq am ah b. D i Jadan 158 aI-A q a b i: A . b. M., Sihab-ad-din
A ll b. al-H , b. Fihr 450, 591 A ll b. M. al-Mada^ini 69 f., 89, 104, 127, A ltam ira, R, X I V al-A qfah si: A, b. Im ad
A ll b. al-H . b. al-M asitah 413, 505 429, 506 al- A lu ji, Abd-al-H am id 295 a l-A qfah si: H alil b. M., Salah-ad-din
A ll b. al-H ., M uw affaq-ad-din al-H azraji A ll b. M. al-M aw ardi 258 f., 365, 401 f., 413, b. al-A m anah ; M. b. M., M uhibb-ad-din b . A qiI: A l i
312, 396, 4 4 3, 485 588 A m ar, E. 246, 396, 405, 457, 465, 473 b. A q il; M.
A li b. M. au-N aw fali 506 Am ari, M. 462, 470 A q il b. Sarija, Q utb-ad-din 606
A ll b. al-H ., a. 1-Q. b. A sakir [includes
A ll b. M. al-Q abisi 46, 608 a l-A m as; Su, b. Mihran al-A qsahri: M. b. A . b. Am in
Ta?Hh Dimasq) 43, 123, 163, 169, 272,
A li b. M. a r-R u ayn i 396, 465 Am edroz, H . F. i i i f., 462 a. l- A ra b : A b d -a l- A ziz b, Saddad
276, 3 4 5, 352, 378 i., 393, 39^, 404, 429,
A li b. M. b. as-Sabbag 433 al-A m id i; A li b. a. A li a, l- A rab : M. b. A,
441, 447 f., 451, 4 5 4 , 468, 47 3 , 483, 515,
A ll b. M., Sadr-ad-diii b. al-A dam i 344 al-Amidi: al-H . b. Bisr a. l- Arab as-Sinhaji 473
524, 532, 587, 593 , 603
A li b. M. b. S u ja a r-R ab a i 469 al- A m ili: M. b. H u., B a h a -ad-din a. l- A ra b as-Siqilli (?) 473
A li b. al-H ., a. 1-Q. al-W azir 279
A li b. M. b. a. s-Surur as-Saruji 408 al-A m in 49 b. A rab i: M. b. A li
A ll b. al-H . b. Saqiq al-M arwazi IHdn 142
A li b. M. at-TanM isi / Mn 14 1 b, al-A m in, a, Ishaq 405 b. al- A rab i: M. b. A l., a, B akr
A ll b. H ., Sayf-ad-dm b. Izz-ad-dm al-
A li b. M. at-Taiiuhi 272 al-A m in i: U, b. al-H ajib , Izz-ad-din al- A rab i: M. b. U ., Jam al-ad-din
Isfahsalar 53
A ll b. M., b. a t-T a yyib al-Jullab i 484 al- A rab i; U. b. M. b. Mas ud
A li b. H ib atallah b. M akiila 448, 473, 514, b. A m ir; A l.
A li b. M. b. lib a y d b. a l-K u fi 482 Am ir b. H afs; Su haym b. a l-A rabi; A. b. M., a. S a id
523, 525
A li b. M. a l-Y iin in i 491 A m ir b. Sarahil as-Sa b i 63, 187, 324, 380, b. A rab sah ; A . b. M,
A li b. al-H u., a. 1-F ad l a l-F a lak i 523
A li b. M., Zahir-ad-din al-K azaru n i 397, A rb erry, A , J. 263, 398, 402, 405, 424 f.,
A li b. al-H u., a. 1-F araj al-Isbahani {includes ^385, 517, 591
410, 497, 506 Amir b. Umayr 565 518, 524
Agdni) 50, 84, 291, 293, 300, 327, 350, Ardasir (b. B a b a k, B abakan) 36, 52, 180,
A li b. M ujahid ar-R azi 394, 410, 505 Amir, A bd-al-M un ini 133
387 f., 425, 428, 432, 434, 446, 497, 508, 386, 539 f.
A ll b. M unjib b. as-Sayrafi 413 b. A m irah; A . b, Al.
528, 609 Arev'alo, F. 15
A li b. Musa b. S a id 86, 97, 308, 460, 473, al-Ainiri: M. b. Y u ., a. I-H.
A li b. al-H u. al-M as udi 10, 42, 50, 54, 59, A rib b. S a d al-Q urtubi 82
4 7 9 , 516 b. Ain m ar; H isam b. Am m ar
65, 67, 81, 88 f,, 96, 108 f., I l l , 114, 123, a l- Arini, a s-S a yyid a l-B a z X I V
A ll b. N asr, S a d-ad-din al-Isfarayin i 480 b. Am m ar: M. b, Al.
127, 135-137, 176, 183, 187, 266 f., 272, A ristotle 52, 1x7, 133, 138, 155, 246, 257, 507
A li al-Q ari (Qari^): A li b. Su ltan al-Q ari b. A m m ar; M, b. A m m ar
290 f., 324, 378, 386 f., 408-413, 429, 432, al-A rm anazi: 6 a y t b. A li
A li b. a. 1-Q. b. Q ufl ad-D im yati 604 Am m ar b. Y asir 590, IHdn 13Q
458, 482, 487, 489 f-, 501-511 al-ArraJani; A . b. M,
A li b. Rabban at-T abari 47 a. A m r b. al- Ala^ 210, 295 f., 581 f.
A li b. al-Hu. b. Mvisa al-M urtada 432 b. Arsljln; M ahm ud b. M.
A li b. Rid wan 171 A m r b. Ali, a. H afs a l-F allas 392, 436, 501
A li b. al-H u, az-Zarrad ad-D aylam i 596 a. A ru b ah: aFH u, b, M, b, M awdud
A li b. as-Sari a l-K arh i 124 Am r b, al- As 495, 579, IHdn 137 f.
A ll b, Ibr,, A la -ad-din b, al- A tta r 452, A li b. Su ltan al-Q ari 531 A m r b. Bahr al-Jahiz 36, 49, 64 f., 100, 162, a l-A sa 261, 324, 572
607 A ll b. a, T alib 38, 63, 99, 133 f,, 136, 190-193, A s ab at-tdmi'- 599
259, 305, 324, 3 55, 391, 435 , 498, 501, 506
A ll b, Ibr, a l-Y a m a iii al-H an afi 269 A sad b. H am daw ayh al-W aratini 473
235, 254, 278 f,, 285, 324, 332, 348, 352, A m r b. Dinar 381 f.
A li b. Isa al-W azir 122, 503, 509 a. A m r b. H afs 346 A s ad b. al-H u tayr, a. 1-M akarim 596
35 5 , 359 f-, 382 f., 406 f., 433 , 5 i 7 , 528,
A ll b. Ism ., a, 1-H. a l-A s ari 429, 548, 603 A m r b. J u m a y al-A zdi 453 A s ad b. al-M uhaddab b. M am m ati 116
5 3 4, 5 5 5 , 573 i-, 576, 589
A li b. Ism. b. Sidah 85, 543 A li b. U b aydallah b. B abaw ayh 431 A m r b. al-H arit (al-Misri) IH dn 138 A s ad T u b b a 158
A li b. J a far b. a l-Q a tta 466, 470 A li b. U baydallah, a. 1-H. b. az-Zaguni al-.\sadi; al-H u. b. A. b. al-H u., a. A l.
A^ ir b. M a dikarib 528
A ll b. al-Jahm 183, 185, 256 82 f. a. A m r b. al-M urabit: M. b. Utm an b. A sa ir; M. b. A li
A li b. (a. l-)M ansur al-M aliki: AH b. Zafir A ll b. U. ad-D araqutm 334, 363, 418, a l-A s a jj; U tm an b. al-H attab , a. d-dunya
A m r b. R a fi I'-ldn 14 1
al-A zd i 436 f., 439, 446-450, 514, 522, 528, 592 f., b. A sakir; .A.bd-as-Samad b. Abd-al-
Am r b. Su ayb 450
A li b. M ansur b. al-Q arih 73 A ll b. U., a. 1-H. b. as-Sabbag 458 Am r b. Utm an, S ib aw ayh 314 W'ahhab, a. 1-Yum n
A li b. Mas ud b. N afis al-M awsili 581 (?) A li b. U tm an at-T u rkm an i 397 al-A rnuli: M, b, M ahmud b, A sak ir; A li b. al-H ., a. 1-Q.
A ll b. al-M ufaddal, a. 1-H. al-M aqdisi 512, A ll b. Y a . al-M unajiim 110 A nas b. M alik 369, 379, 394, 517, IH dn J39 b. A sakir; ahQ , b, A li
524 al-Asam rn; M, b. Y a qub, a. l- A b b as
A li b, Y u . al-Q ifti 32, 5 4 , 59 , 73, 7 8 , 80 f., A n aw ati, G. C. 484
A li b. M. b. Al. b, H nw n (Hanun) at-Tabari 83, 158-160, 285 f., 348, 381, 404, 4 11, al- A n azi: al-H . b. U layl al-A sam m ; Safw an
78 422, 459 , 469, 477 , 483, 510, 528 al- A n azi: M. b. (al-) ^lutanna al-A s ari; Al. b. Q ays, a. Musa
620 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES 621
IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES

a l-A s'ari: A . b. M.
b. a l-'A tta r: 'A li b. Ibr., 'A la -ad-din al-B alh i; 'A li b a l-F a d l b. T ah ir
a l-A s ari: 'A li b. Ism ., a. 1-H. B adr-ad-din: L u lu
a l-'A tta r; al-H . b. A ., a. l- 'A la b. B ad ru n ; 'A b d -al-M alik b. 'A l. al-B alh i; M. b. 'A q il al-x\zhari
A sbag b. 'A li (al-'Abb^s ?) b. Hisdin b. a. a l-'A tta r: M. b. 'A l. b. a l-H a ytam al-B agaw i; 'A l. b. M ., a. 1-Q. al-B alh i; b. Tarh an
l-'^Abbas 474
a l-'A tta r; Y a . b. 'A li, Rasid(-ad-din) al-B alisi; a. B a k r b. Q iw am
a. 1-A sbag b. Sahl 526 al-B agaw i: 'A b d -al-M alik
b. a l-'A tu b ! (?) 471 a l-B alisi; M. b. 'U . b. a. B akr b. Qiw am
b. A sb a t (Sibat); H am zah b. A. a l-B agd ad i, a. 'A li 609
'A w a d , B . ' A . : 'Iw a d al-B allafiq i; M. b. M ., a. 1-B arak at
b. al-A sfar 465 a l-B agd ad i, a. 1-B ara k at: H ib atallah
a. 'A w a n a h ; Y a 'q u b b. Ishaq b. al-B an n a ; al-H . b. A ., a. 'A li
Ashab (Miskin b. A b d -a l- Aziz) 592 a l-B agd ad i, a. I-Q. 594
'A w a n a h b. al-H akam 73, 89 f., 104 al-B an n a , H asan 47
A shtor, E. X I V , 496-498, 513 al-B ah arzi; 'A li b. al-H .
a l'A w h a d i; A. b. 'A l., Sihab-ad-din b. a. 1-B aq a 409
'A sim (Q uran reader) 5S2 b. B ah rez: 'A b d -Y a s u '
b, 'A w n : 'A l. B a q i b. M aU ad 521, 590, 599, IHdn 140
b. a. ^Asim; A . b. 'A m r, a. B akr b. B ah rez: H abib
'A w n , 'A b d -a r-R a iif 432 a l-B aq illani: M. b. a t-T a y y ib
b. Asim: a. Y a . b. a. B akr B a h sa l; A slam b. Sahl
'A w w a d , K . 5, 128, 166 B aqiyah (b. al-W alid) I^ldn 139
a. ^Asim a l-'A b b M i; M. b. A. a. I-B ahtari; W ahb b. W ahb
'A w w ad , M. 153, 173, 500 Bar H ebraeus 138
a. 'Asim an-N abtl: ad-D ahhak b. M ahlad a l-B a jaw i, 'A lt M. 404
b. a l-A w za 'i: 'A r. a l-B a ra d i'i: H alaf b. (a.) 1-Q.
Asin Palacios, M. 36, 334 a l-B a ji; Su. b. ^ a la f, a. 1-W alid
a l-A w z a 'i: 'A r. b. 'A m r b. a. I-B arakat 469
a l-A sja 'i: S a 'id b. ^Isa a l-B a k k a i; Z iy 4d b. 'A L
A y a d , K a m il X I V a. 1-B ara k at b . K a b a r; b. K ab ar
b. 'A sk a r: M. b. 'A ll b. H idr a. B a k r 47, 383, 389, 406, 534, 573, 589
A yalon , D. 53 a l-B a rd a 'i (B arda'i) 457
'A sk a r (b. M.) b. a l-H u .: a. T u ra b an-N ahsabi a. B a k r b. a. 'A l.: 'A l. b. M ., a. B a k r al-
b. A y b a k : A. a l-B ard iji; A . b. H arun
a l-'A sk a ri; al-H . b. 'A L , a. A. M aliki
b. A y b a k : M. b. 'A li b. al-B arizi: 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. Ibr.
a l-'A sk a ri: al-H . b. 'A l., a. H ilal a. B a k r b. 'A l. (b.) a d -D a w M a ri 109, 272,
b. a l-'A y d a ru s: 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. 'A l. a l-B a rk an i (B arn akan i); M. b. A . b. Sahl
A slam b . S ah l, B a h sa l al-W ^siti 94, 166 f., 484 a. l - 'A y n i 609 287, 4 5 5 , 487
a. B a k r b. A ., Taqi-ad-din b. Q adi Suhbah Barm ecides 140, 172, 314, 429
a l-A sm a 'i: 'A b d -al-M alik b. Q urayb a l-'A y n i: M ahm ud b. A. Barnes, H . A . X I V
al-'A sq a la n i: Adam 317, 415, 458, 483, 492, 496, 510
a. l- 'A y s : A. b. al-Q. Kannun al-B arqan i; A. b. M., a. B akr
al-'A sq a la n i: A . b. 'A ll b. H ajar a. B a k r b. 'A li b. liijja h 52
b. 'A y y a s al-Q attan ; Y a. al-B arqi, a. B akr 501 (see also A . b. 'A l. and
a l-'A sq a la n i: A. b. M. b 'U b a y d b. Adam a.B a k r b. 'A z ra h (?) 599
A y y u b b. M., as-Salih b. a l-K am il 489 a.B a k r b. a. D aw u d; 'A l. b. Su. M. b. 'A l.)
a l-'A sq a la iii: 'Isa b. A. B arq uq az-Zahir 412, 443, 498, 596
A y y u b as-Sahtiyan i 367, I^ldn 139 a. B a k r b. F ath u n ; M. b. Ila la f
a l-'A sqalan i: M. b. H. b. Q utaybah B a rsb ay al-A sraf 41, 282, 328, 331, 409, 412,
A y y u b b. Z ayd (!) b. (al-)Q irriyah 187, a. B a k r b. H am sin 466
a l-'A sq alan i: M. b. 'U b a y d b. Adam I^ldn 137
al-'A sq a la n i: Y u b. Sahin a. B a k r b. H a y y a n : M. b. H alaf b. H ayya n , 597
a l-'A y za ri: M. b. M. b. a l-^ id r B arth , J. 11
al-A sraf: B arsb ay a. B a k r W a k i'
al-A zd i: A . b. A. b. al-H u. b. a. 1-Mansur B arthold, W . X V , r24, 145, 321 f., 470, 473
a l-A sraf: InM a. B a k r b. al-H u ., Zayn-ad-din al-M aragi
a l-A zd i: A . b. M. b. 'A li b. al-H u. al-Bariidi, a. M ansur 404
a l-A sraf; Ism. b. a l-'A b b a s 452, 476, 503
al-A zd i; 'A li b. ZMir al-B asan i; A . b. M.
al-A sraf; Q a itb a y a. B a k r al-Iiu w arizm i: M. b. a l-'A b b a s
al-A zd i; al-H u. b. 'A li b. a. 1-Mansur a. B a k r b. M., T aqi-ad -d in al-H isni 588 b. B ashan ; M. b. A .
a l-'A ssa b ; A . b. M. b. M ufrih
a l-A zd i: Ibr. b. al-H u. b. 'A li a. B a k r b. M., Taqi-ad-din al-Q alqasandi al-Basir, a. l-'A b b a s: A . b. M. b. 'A r.
(b.) a l-'A ssal: M. b. A ., a. A. a l-A zd i: M. b. 'A l. al-B asir, a. 'A li 508
a l-'A ssal; M. b. S a 'd , a. 1-B ara k at al-A zd i: M. b. A. b. al-H u. 439 f- b. B asku w al; H alaf b. 'A bd -al-M alik
al-A star, Salih 312 a. B a k r b. M. b. Y u ., Radi-ad-din (ar-R ida ?)
al-A zd i; M. b. al-H u ., a. 1-F ath a l-B asri: al-H . al-Basri
al-A starab ad i: 'A r. b. M. al-Idrisi 485
al-A zd i: Y a z id b. M., a. Z a k a riy a B a k r b. M un ayyir (Munir, M unabbih) 342 (b.) al-Basri, a. 'A li 419, 511
a. 1-Asw ad: 'A r. b. a l-F a y d
a l-A zd i; Zafir b. H. (al-Hu.) b. Bassam ; 'A li b. Bassain
a. 1-Asw ad 395 a. B a k r b. Q iw am a l-B a lisi 608
b. a l-A zh ar; J a 'fa r b. M. Bassar b. B u rd 327
a. 1-Asw ad ad-D u ali (Zalim b. 'Am r) 332 a. B a k r b. Sad aqah 467
b. a. 1-A zhar; M. b. A. b. M azyad a. B a k r b. as-Sani: A . b. M. b. Ishaq Basset, R. 97, 181
al-A sw ad (b. Y a z id an-N aha'i) IHdn i j g a l-'A zim i; M. b. 'A li
a. B a k r b. a. Saybah: 'A l. b. M. BaStak an-N asiri 425
al-A sw ani: 'A l. b. A . b. Su laym a l-'A z iz (of E gyp t) 59 al-B astak i: M. b. Ibr., Badr-ad-din
b. 'A t: A . b. H arun, a. 'U . a. B a k r as-Sibli 289
b. a l-A zraq : A . b. Y u . a. B a k r b. a. 'U . b. A . b. y a l i l as-Sakuni al-B atirq an i; A . b. al-F ad l
b. 'A t a ; b. 'A t a llah
b. a l-A zraq : 'U . b. B atis; Ism. b. H ib atallah , 'Im ad-ad-din
'A t a b. M. al-Juw ayn i 37, 54, 124, 176, 453 604 f.
al-A zraq i; M. b. 'A l. a. B a kra h at-T a q afi; N u fa y ' b. a l-H a rit al-B attM 47
'A t a (b. a. R abah Aslam ) IHdn 136
'A zzam , 'Abd-al-VVahhab 424 a l-B a tta n i: M. b. Jab ir
a. l-'A tilh iy a h 609 a l-B a k ri; 'A l. b. M.
a l-'A zzaw i, 'A b b a s 5, 156, 408, 410, 440, 467, a l-B a k ri; A . b. 'A l., a. 1-H. B auer, A . 176
b. 'A t a lla h ; A . b. M. b. 'A b d -a l-K arim B aum stark, A . 26, 76, 78 f., 151
4 9 3, 526 a l-B a k ri; al-H . b. M., Sadr-ad-din
b. 'A t a llah : M. b. 'A t a (m h ), am s-ad-din al-B a'rin i: Ibr. b. A ., Burhan-ad-din
a l-A ta rib i: H am dan b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im a l-B a kri, a. 'A li 439
B a l-B a 'u n i; M. b. A ., Sams-ad-din
A tes, A. r48 b.'iB alaban , Sayf-ad-din as-S u 'iid i ( = 'A b d -
b. B a b a h ; A. b. 'A li a l-B a 'iin i; M. b. Y u ., B a h a -ad-din
'A tiq b. H alaf a t-T u jib i 473 f. a l-L a tif b. B alab an, of. Daw^, I, 492;
b. B a b a w ayh , a. 1-H. 431, 469 Baur, F. C. 10
b. al-A tir: 'A ll b. M., 'Izz-ad-din II, 406) 584
B a b a y 180 a l'B a w a rd i; M. b. al-M utanna
b. al-A tir: Ism. b. A. a l-B a la d i: Ibr. b. al-H a ytam
B abinger, F. X I V , 4, 7, 51, 140 B ayb ars al-M ansuri ad-D aw adar 56, 85,
b. al-A tir: al-M ubarak b. M., M ajd-ad-din al-B aladu ri: A . b. Y a.
a l-B a b lu tti: Y a . b. 'A l. b. ad-D ahh ak a l-B a la ti (a l-B u la y ti); 'U tm a n b. 'Isa 147, 408, 496 f., 503
b. a l-A tir: N asrallah b. M., D iy a -ad-din Bacher, W . 139, 180 B ayb ars az-Zahir 51, i88 f., 412, 596
'A tiy a h , 'A z iz S u ry al 116 a l-B a la w i: 'A l. (b. M.) b. M ahfiiz
B acon, Francis 179 a l-B a yd a w i: M. b. M.
'A tta b b. Asid 281 f. a l-B a la w i: M. b. A ., a. 'Amir
B adaw i, 'A r. 52, 257, 327, 350, 352 a l-B a yh a q i: A , b. al-H u., a. B a k r
a l-'A tta r; A b an b. Y a z id a l-B a lh i: 'A l. b. A ., a. 1-Q. a l-K a 'b i
a l-B a d i' al-H am adani: A. b. al-Hu. a l-B a yh a q i: 'A li b. Z ayd
a l-B alh i: A . b. Sahl, a. Z a yd
622 IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES 623
IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES

a l-B a y h a q i: Ibr. b. M. ad-D ahhak b. M ahlad, a. 'Asim an-N abil 519 ad-D ihqan; M. b. 'A li b. al-F adl
a l-B u la y ti; 'U tm an b. 'I s a a l-B a la ti
a l-B a y h a q i: M. b. al-H u., a. 1-Fadl a d -D a h h aii: M. b. 'A li, a. S u ja ' b. D ihqan (?) 461
al-B u lq iiii; 'A r. b. 'A r. b. ^U., Jalal-ad-din
al-B a ysa u i: ^Abd-ar-Rahim b. '^Ali, al-Q adi ad-D ahhan (D ahan), S. 82, 156 f., 283, 412, b, D ih yah; 'U . b. al-H u., a. 1-H attab
al-B u lq iu i: Salih b. 'U ., Alarn-ad-din
al-F adil 420, 427. 462, 469, 483, 486, 502, 523 D i'lij b. A. b. D i'lij 444
al-B u lqin i: 'U . b. Raslan
al-B azzar; A. b. ^Amr, a. B a k r b. D ah h aq: Ibr. b. Y u . D ilthey, W . 100
al-B u n d ari: al-F ath b. M.
al-B azzar; 'U . b. ^Ali, Siraj-ad-din ad-I)in\asqi; 'A r. b. 'A m r, a. Z u r'ah
B u rayd ah b. H usayb al-A slam i 295, IHdn b. D ah jan (?) 461
a l-B a zza z; A. b. M. b. Yunus, a. Ishaq b. a. d-dam : Ibr, b. 'A l. b. 'A b d -al-M u n 'im ad-D im asqi; 'Abd-as-Salam b. Y u .
142
Beaurecueil, S. de 361 ad-D im asqi; A . b. al-M u'alla
Burhan-ad-din al-H alab i: Ibr. b. M., Sib t b. ad-D am agani: M. b. 'A li
Becker, C, H. X V , l o i , 175, 181, 335, 434, 473 ad-D im asqi; M. b. al-H ., as-Sarif al-H usayni
a l-'A ja m i ad-D am agani: M. b. 'Isa
B ejkem 53 ad-D im asqi; M. b. 'U tm an , a, Zur'ah
a l-B u san ji (Busanji ?): M. b. A . b. M azyad ad-D am raw i: M. b. SMih b. Musa
B el, A. 190 ad-D im asqi; Y u . b. A ., a. 1-Mahasin
b. a. 1-Azhar ad-Dam sisi: Y a . b. M.
Beige, K . R. 530 ad-D im yati; 'Abd-al-Mu^min b. H alaf, Saraf-
a l-B u sa u ji; M. b. Ibr., a. Al. ad-D ani; 'U tm an b. S a'id , a. 'A m r
B ellam y, J. A. 83 D aniel (Daniyal) i i 2 , 358 f. ad-dui
b. B u tlan ; al-M uhtar b. al-H .
B eil A cl io u r, F. 445 ad-D im yati; A. b. A y b a k , a. 1-Hu.
B u tler, A. J. 76 b. D an iyal; M. b. D an iyal
Ben-D or, I. 506 ad-D im yati; 'A li b. a. 1-Q. b. Qufl
B utrus ar-R ahib 138 ad-D aniyali 112
Ben Shem esh, A. 117 D inar (father of Saliniah) 379
a l-B u w ay ti: Y u. b. Y a. b. D aq iq-al-'id : M. b. 'A li, Taqi-ad-din
B erge, M. 36 ad-Dinaw'ari; 'A l. b. M.
al-B u ziiri: 'A r. b. 'Isa, a. M. D aq iqi 180
Berges, W . 48 ad-D inaw ari: A . b. Dawrid
b. a l-B u z u ri: M ahfiiz b. M a'tu q D ara b. D ara (Darius) 386
Bergstriisser, G. 83, 322, 468 ad-D inaw ari; A . b. M arwan, a. Bakr
ad-D araqu tn i: 'A ll b. 'U .
Bernheim , E, X I V ad-D inaw ari; A. b. M. b. Ishaq, a. B akr
ad-D arbandi, Mamsus 461
a l-B iq a 'i; Ibr. b. U ad-D inaw ari; M. b. 'A li
b. D arbas; Utman b. 'Isa
B irge, J . K . 248 Caesar 50 a. d-Darda^ ('U w aym ir b. Zayd) 324 Dindorf, G. (W.) 76
a l-B irm aw i; M. b. 'Abd-ad-D aH m ad-D arim i: 'A l. b. 'A r. D io d es 151
Caetani, L. 108, 127, 141, 281, 376, 405
al-B irunt: M. b. A. ad-D arim i; 'U tm an b. S a'id D iocletian 125 f., 544
Cahen, C. X V f., 64, 82 f., 138, 175, 177, 196,
(b.) a l-B irzali; M. b. Y u ., a. 'A l. Dioscurides 80 f.
397, 412, 431, 463, 465 f. D arm esteter, J. 115
(b.) a i-liirzali: al-Q . b. M., 'A lam -ad-dm ad-D irini; 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A ., 'Izz-ad-din
Cain (Qabil) 183, 570 a. D arr: 'A b d b. A.
al-B isbisi: 'A l, b. A. Diya^-ad-din al-M aqdisi; M. b. 'A b d -al-
Canard, M. 49, 120, 170, 482 a. D arr; M us'ab b. M.
al-B iskri: N asir b. A . W ahid
Cantineau, J. 19 a. D arr a l-C ifa ri 562, 589
Bisr b. G iy a t al-M arisi 431 a. p k w (r)h al-M awsili 482
Caqm aq az-ZM iir 412, 597 ad-D arrab; al-H . b. Ism.
Bisr b. al-H arit al-H afi 599 Casanova, P. 44 ad-D arrab; Ism. b. Ibr. al-Q arrab Dodge, B. V n i
B isr b. al-M ufaddal 518 ad-Dastuwa^i; H isam b. a. 'A l. Dorn, B. 16, 162, 474
Casiri, M. 35
al-B istam i: 'A r. b. M. D ozy, R. 82, 150, 155, 1 8 1 , 261, 457, 460,
Caskel, W . X V , 19 f., 96 D avid (Dawud) 359, 385, 563
b. al-B itriq : Y a . b. al-H u. Cerulli, E . 119, 196 (b.) ad-D aw ad ari: a. B a k r b. 'A l. 462, 477
B lau, J. 314 ad-D aw lab i; M. b. A ., a. Bisr D roysen, J. G. 197
Chabot, J.-B . 76, 79
B lochet, E. 142, 146 D u 1-Him m ah 47
Cheikho, L. 47, 77, 121, 138 ad-Dawraq? 590
B odiu, Jean X I V , 50, 113 D u n-Nun al-Misri 600
Chejne, A . G. 5, 120 D aw u d; D avid
Boer, T. J. de 194 b. a. D aw u d; 'A l. b. Su., a. B akr D u 1-qarnayn; Alexander
Christensen, A. 75
B olingbroke, H. St. J. g Cicero 358 a. D aw ud; Su. b. a l-A s'a t ad-Du^ali; a. 1-Aswad
B onebakker, S. A. 272, 524 (b.) ad -D u b ayti (D abayti); M. b. S a 'id
Cleopatra 386 a. D aw ud; Su. b. D aw ud
B oyle, J. A. 124, 453 D aw ud b. 'A li al-Isbahani 593 D ubler, C. E . 77, 196
Codera, F. 4, 155, 168, 312, 378, 400, 419,
B rauulich, E. 387 ad-D uguli; M. b. 'A r., a. l-'A bb^s
4 5 9, 4 f)i, 464, 472, 474 D aw ud a l-'A za b 600
Brinner, W . M. 157, 391, 451 ad-D uhli; M. b. A ., a. t-Tahir
Colin, G. S. 477 D aw ud b. al-Jarrah 503
B rockelm ann, C. V , 4 f., 23, 147, I54, 181, ad-D aw iidi: A. b. Nasr ad-D uhli; M. b. Y a .
Combe, E. 124
261, 355, 453 (and G A L passim) b. ad-D ayah ; A. b. Y u . ad-D uhli; S u ja ' b. Faris
Constantine I 73, 418
Brooks, E. W . 76 f., 79 D u h aym ; 'A r. b. Ibr.
Constantine V II 80 b. ad-D ayah ; Y u . b. Ibr.
Browne, E. G. 116, 162, 177 b. a d -D a y b a '; 'A r. b. 'A li b. D u h ayn i: al-H .
Conti Rossini, C. 12 f.
Briinnow , R, 127, 365, 505 ad-D ujayl), 'A b d -a l-K arim 332
Croce, B. 3, 9 D a yf, Saw qi 479
Brunschvig, R. 238, 396 ad -D aylam i; .Sahrdar b. Siraw ayh b. a. D u laym ; 'A l. b. M.
Cyrillus of A lexan dria 79
B u chth al, H. 176 a d -U aylam i: Siraw ayh b. .Sahrdar ad-D unaysiri: 'U . b. al-H idr
b. al-B uhari: 'A li b. A. b. 'A bd -al-W ah id b. ad -D ayri; S a 'd b. M. Dunlop, D. M. 35
al-B u h ari; Ishaq b. Bisr, a. H udayfah D D edering, S. 169, 259, 292, 361, 412, 414, b. a. d-dunya; 'A l. b. M., a. Bakr
al-Buhjiri: M. b. A ., Gunjar a. d-dunya; 'U tm a n b. al-H attab
a d -D a b a y ti: ad-D u b ayti 42 453, 463, 465, 468
al-B uhari: M. b. Ism. b. D uqniaq; Ibr. b. M.
b. ad-D abb ag: Y u . b. A l., a. l-\Valid D enipf, A. 10
al-B uhari: ]\r. b. i\L, ^Ala -ad-din Derenbourg, H. 315 b. D u rayd ; M. b, al-H .
b. ad-I)abbag al-A iisari 460 [sie also 'A r.
b. Buhtisfi*:: 'U b a y d a lla h b. Jibril D u ravd b. as-Sinunah 300
b. M., a. Zayd) Dhorm e, P. 11
B uhtnassar (Xebuchadnezzar) 386 ad-Dhri; (al-)'Abbas b. M.
acl-Dabbi: A. b. 'A b d ah b. a. p i'b : M. b. 'A r.
b. B u htu r: Salih b. ^^li ad-D uri; M. b. M ahlad, a. '.M.
ad-D abbi: A . b. Y a. D i'b il b. 'A li al-H u za'i 600
b. B uhtur: Salih b. Y a. ad-Dviri, '.\b d -a l-'A ziz X V , 69 f., 89 f., 131,
b. D a b u q a : J a 'fa r b. al-Q ., Radi-ad-din Dieterici, 1'. 34, 257
a l-B uh turi, a. 'U b ad ah 607 334 f., 381, 392 f., 395 , 506
ad-D ahabi: M. b. A. D ietrich, 50, 280
b. B u k a y r: Y un us b. D u ru staw ayh ; 'A l. b. J a 'fa r
Dahan, S . : ad-Dahhan, S. ad-D ihli: S a 'id b. 'A l.
624 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES 625
IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES

E al-Farisi: Ibr. b. M ahaw ayh G ottsch alk, L . 15


a l-F u d ayl b. 'ly a t j 604, IHdn 136
E gh b al, 'A b b a s 162, 290 al-F arisi: M. b. A. G ottw ald t, I. M. E . 73 f., 79, 90, 93, n o f.,
F u ck, J. V I I I , 332, 453 , 491
E lija h of N isibis 48, 73, 79, 462, 503 b. a l-F a rra ; Ism. b. 'A r., 'Izz-ad-din 124, 137, 160, 378, 386, 459
F u nd u q ; 'A li b. Z a yd a l-B a yh a q i
Enger, R. 259, 413 b. a l-F a rra ': M. b. M., b. a. Y a 'la G raf, G. 78 f., 108, 137, 139, 15 1, 496
al-F urahinani; M. b. 'A li b. H am zah
E rm an, A . 126 F arraj, 'A b d -as-S attar A . 217, 326, 424, 509 Gregorius, a. 1- F a r a j: B ar Hebraeus
b. F u rak : M. b. al-H .
E rn st, H . 412 al-F a ru q i (?), Badr-ad-diu 441 f. Grohm ann, A. 13, 122
a l-F ik a n i; 'A r. b. M.
E ttinghausen, R . 176 a l-F a ry a b i; J a 'fa r b. M., a. B akr Grundm ann, H. 10, 31
E u clid 507 b. a l-F u ra t: A.
a l-F a ryab i: M. b. Y u . Grunebaum , G. E. von X V , 35, 47, 123 f.,
b. a l-F u ra t; M. b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im
Eusebius 78 al-F asaw i: A. b. M., a. l-'A b b a s an-N asaw i 180, 235
b. a l-F u ra t: W atim ah b. Musa
E u tych iu s (S a'id b. B itriq) 80, 137 f. al-F asaw i: Y a 'q u b b. Su fyan G ryazn evich , P. A . 89, 119, 145, 282, 327, 387
E ve 183 F urlani, G. 79
al-F asi: M. b. A ., Taqi-ad-din al-G ub rini; A . b. A.
b. F u ta y s; 'A r. b. M.
al-F asi; M, a t-T a yy ib b. a i-F u w a ti: 'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. A . Guest, R . 82, 175, 395 , 435 , 479
F
al-Fasi, a. 'Im ran 419 Guidi, I. X V , 76, 151
a. 1-FadaH l (?) 458 al-Fasi, M. 516 G Guillaum e, A. 393
a l-F ad ili 468 ( = Ibr. b. Daw ud, d. 692/ al-F a th b. H aqan 411 Guirgass, W . F. 529
1293 ?) Gabrieli, F . X V , 470, 510
a l-F a th b. M. a l-B u n d ari 50, 120, 178, 470 al-G um ri 49, 163, 185, 286, 546
a l-F ad ili; Ibr. b. D a w M b. 6 a d ir ; M. b. A .
a l-F ath b. Musa b. Mismar 398, 587 al-G afiq i: M. b. 'A b d -al-W ah id, a. 1-Q. G u n jar; 'I s a b. Musa
a l-F a d lb . A l. al-H araw i IHdn 142
b. F ath u n ; M. b. H alaf, a. B a k r G u n ja r; M. b. A .
al-B'adl b. 'A b d -al-M u ttalib , Taj-ad -d in a. a l-G ^ iq i: S a'id b. Su.
b. F ath u n ; S a 'id a l-G u zu li; 'A li b. 'A l.
1-M a'ali al-H M im i 544 Galen 90
F atim ah (daughter of the Prophet) 192, 360,
al-F adl b. D u kayn , a. N u 'a y m 278, 380, b. G a lib 389 H
589 a. (ja lib : Hum am b. al-F adl
JHdn 14 1
F atim ah bint Q ays 346 a l-H ab bal; Ibr. b. S a 'id
al-F adl b. M arwan b. M isarjis 51, 174 a. (b.) Cialih a l-G aru a ti 460
b. a. 1-Faw aris: M, b. A , b. al-H ab baz; Ism . b. Ibr., N ajm -ad-din
al-F adl b. Musa I'^ldn 142 a l-G alla b i; al-M ufaddal b. G assau
a l-F a yyu m i 499, 5 11 {see also 'A li b. M.) a l-G alla b i; M. b. Zakariya^ a. 1-F id a'
a. 1-F ad l b. N asir: M. b. Nasir b . H abib: 'A b d -al-M alik
al-F azari; A . b. Ibr. b. S ib a ', Saraf-ad-din al-G am ri, a. Z a yd 470
a. I-Fadl b. T ah ir: M. b. Jah ir al-F azari: Ibr. b. 'A r. b. H ab ib : al-H . b. 'U .
F a d la lla h : Rasid-ad-din Garbers, K . 73
a l-F a za ri; Ibr. b. M., a. Ishaq b. H ab ib ; M.
F ad lallah b. a. 1-F ah r 500 Garcia G om ez, E. 181, 419
Ferguson, C. A. 161 al-G ardizi; 'A b d -a l-H a y y b. ad-D ahh ak H abib b. A w s; a. T am m am
b. F ad lallah al- U m ari: A . b. Y a . a. 1-F id a ; Ism. b. 'A li H abib b. B ahrez 79
b. F ah d ; <^Abd-al-'Aziz b. 'U ., 'Izz-ad-diu a l-6 a riq i (al-Fariqi, al-F aru qi ?), Badr-ad-
b. F ih r 450 (see also 'A li b. al-H .) H abil; A bel
b. F ah d ; ^Abd-al-Qadir b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz din 441 f.
Fihrist: M. b. Ishaq b. an-N adim b. a l-H a^ # ^ ; M. b. Y a ., a. 'A l.
b. F ah d : M. b. M., Taqi-ad-din a l-G arn ati; a. (b.) 6 a lib
Finhas b. B a ta (?) a l-'Ib ra m 139 al-H addad; A . b. M. b. Y asin (Sa'id)
b. F ah d ; 'U . b. M,, N ajm -ad-din a l-6 a rn a ti; M. b. A y y u b b. G a lib
Finkelstein, J. J. 11 al-H addad; M. b. S a 'id , a. Ishaq
b . al-F ah h ar; M. b. Ibr., a. Al. al-(ja rn ati: M. b. M. b. J u z a y y
al-Fiqi, M. H am id 420, 431 al-H addad: Sadaqah b. al-H u.
Fahr-ad-din M ubarak S ah 98 a l-G arn ati: Y a . b. M. b. Y u . al-A nsari
al-F irab ri; A. b. 'A l. H addad, G. M. 5, 54
Fajjr-ad-din ar-R azi: M. b. ^U. al-G arraq i (Garrafi), a. l-'A b b as 475
al-F irab ri; M. b. Y u . H addam b. al-JahhM (JahhM) 191 f.
al-F akih i: M. b. Ishaq a l-6 assan i; al-H u. b. M., a. 'A li
a. Firas 182 al-H adi (b.) Ibr. b. al-M urtada al-H asani 481
al-F alak i: 'AH b. a l-H u a. 1-Fadl a l-C assan i; M. b. 'A ll b. H idr
Firdaw si (includes Sdhndmah) 178-180, 190, b. H adidah: 'A l. b. 'A li
al-F allas: 'A m r b. 'A ll, a. H afs a l-6 assan i: M utarrif b. 'Is&
531 G a y t b. 'A ll al-A rm anazi 471
al-H adram i: M. b. 'A l.
al-F ain i: 'A r. b. 'A b d -al-Jab b ar, a. Nasr b. al-F irkah ; Ibr. b. 'A r. al-H adram i; M. b. a. B akr
al-F am i: 'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. M. G a y t b. 'A li as-Suri 471
a l-F iru za b a d i: Ibr. b. 'A li, a. Ishaq as-Slrazi H afs b. 'A L IHdn 14 1
b. al-F aqih: A. b. M. a l-G azal: Y a . b. H akaui
al-F'iruzabadi; M. b. Y a 'q iib a. H afs al-F allas: 'A m r b. 'A li
al-F arab i: M. b. M. a l-G azza li: M. b. M.
Fischel, W . 141 H afs b. G iyat 277
(b.) al-F arad i: 'A l. b. M., a. 1-W alid G eoffrey of V iterb o 196
Fischer, A . 314 b. al-Ha^im: M. b. A ., M uhibb-ad-din
al-F arad i: Sad aqah b. al-H u. G erlach, E. 75
Fleischer, H. L. 28, 72, 79, 511 H aitsm a, Aggaeus 290
b. F arah ; A. G eyer, R. 324
F lin t, R. X I V , 10 b. a. H ajalah 369, 604 [see also A. b. Y a.)
a. 1-Faraj al-Isbah am ; 'A U b. al-Hu. Gibb, H. A. R. X V , 64, 117 , 120, 143, 147
F liigel, G. 50 f., 70, 72 f., 79, 89, 97, 104, 1 1 1 , b. H ajar: A . b. 'A li
a. 1-F araj b. al-Jaw zi; 'A r. b. 'A ll al-G ifari; a. D arr
121 f., 125, 127, 137, 139, 15 1, 162, 164, b. al-H ajib : 'U .
al-Faransis 178 Ginzel, F. K . 90
168, r8o, 186, 201, 244, 272, 288, 308, 356, b. al-H ajib ; 'U tm a n b. 'U .
a l-F argan i; 'A l. b. A ., a. M. (jirs-a n -n i'm a h : M. b. H ilal
381, 386, 392, 400-402, 404, 410 f., 413, al-H ajiri, M. T ah a 355
al-F argani: A . b. 'A l. al-G itrifi; M. b. A.
418, 424, 428 f., 432 f., 436, 450 f., 457, b. a l-H a jj; M. b. A ., a. 1-VValid
b. Farhun: 'A l. b. M. b. 'A l. b. M. Goeje, M. J. de 42, 52, 67, 96, 107 f., n o ,
461 f., 465-467, 474, 476, 478, 482, 484, b. a l-H a jj: M. b. M., a. 1-B arak at al-B allafiq i
b. F arhun; 'A l. b. M. 120, 122, 137, 176, 287, 378, 383, 386 f., 409
486, 488 f., 503 f., 506 f., 510 f., 530 b. a l-H a jj: M. b. M. b. al-H ajj al-'A bd ari
b. F arhiin ; 'A li b. M. G oitein, S. D. F. X V , 99
Forrer, L. 4 b. (al-)H ajjaj (poet) 609
b. F arhun; Ibr. b. 'A li, Burhan-ad-din G oldziher, I. X V , 3, 36, 75, 180 f., 305, 337,
F ranke, H. i n a l-H ajjaj b. H isam 444
b. al-F arid; 'U . 340, 360, 430, 495
Freund, A. 151 H ajja j b. Y ii. (b. a. M ani') 395
b. Farigun 32, 34 f., 38, 52, 145 Goliath (Jalut) 327
F re y tag , G. W . 28 al-H ajjaj b. Y u . a t-T a q afi 277, 369, 590
Fariq, K . {^.) A. 396, 401 Golius, J. 28
Friedlander, I. X V H a jji Hah'fah: M ustafa b. 'A l.
b. F aris; A. G onzalez Palencia, A . 461
F rye, R. N. 116, 160, 163, 168, 458, 482 f., 486 al-H akam : M. b. 'A li, Sam s-ad-din a-
Faris, N. A . 125 G otth eil, R. 155
F uchs, F. 75 Sadili
G ottsch alk, H. L . 64, 397
40
R o se n th al, History of Muslim Historiography
626 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES 627
IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES

al-H akam al-M ustansir (of Spain) 474 (b.) al-H am adani; M. b. 'A b d -al-M alik
al-H arb i: Ibr. b. Ishaq a. 1-H. a l-K a tib 472
a l-H akam b. N a fi', a. 1-Y am an al-H im si al-H am adan i: Salih b. A. al-H . b. Ibr. b. Zvilaq 55, 124, 154 f., 4 11,
IHdn i 3g al-H am aw i: M. b. A li b. B a rak at
H ardy, P. X V , 180
4 2 7 , 4 2 9 , 478, 5 0 3 , 516, 528, 596, 606
al-H akam b. U tbah I'^ldn i j g b. H arit: M. b. H arit al-Q araw i
al-H am aw i: M. b. Salih b. W^sil al-H . b. M aym iin b. an-N asri 89
al-H akam i: ' U m ar ah b. 'A ll al-H arit b. A sa d al-M uhasibi 368, 599
al-Hamaysa^ 158 al-H . b. M., a. 'A l. a l-K u tu b i 483
al-H akim (of E gy p t) 63, 407, 462 a l-H a rit a l-A 'w a r 5 17
H am dallM i al-M ustaw fi 180 al-H . b. M. b. A . b. ar-R ab ib al-Q ayraw ani
al-H akim ; M. b. M., a. A. al-H arit b. al-H . b. Miskin, M uHaman-ad-din
al-H akim an-N isaburi: M. b. ^AI.
H am dan b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im a l-A ta rib i 62, 466
603 150
al-H am dani: al-H . b. A. al-H . b. M. al-H allai 523
al-H akim at-Tirm idi: M. b. 'A li al-H arit b. a l-Jaru d 121
b. al-H am dani: M. b. 'A b d -al-M alik (b.) al-H . b. M. b. M ufarraj (?) al-Q ubbasi, a.
al-H akk ari; Abd-al-'-Aziz b. A . b. 'U tm an , al-H a rit (b. M.) b. a. Usam ah 128
al-H am adani B akr 419, 472
Izz-ad-din al-H ariti: 'A l. b. M.
b. H am dis: 'A b d -al-Jab b ar b. a. B a k r al-H . b. M. al-M uhallabi 291, 434
a l-H alabi 281 al-H ariti: M as'ud b. A ., Sa'd-ad-din
b. H am diin: M. b. al-H. H. b. M. al-Qum m i 160
al-H alabi, B u rh an -ad -d in ; Ibr. b. M., Sibt H ariz b. 'U tm an I^ldn i j g
H am eed ud-Din X V al-H . b. M., R adi-ad-din a. 1-Fada^il as-Sagani
b. a l-'A ja m i al-H arizi; Ibr. b. Y a 'q u b al-Jiizajan i
H am id b. M., Iftihar-ad-din al-H uw arizm i 599
al-H alab i, Q utb-ad-din: 'A b d -al-K arim b. b. H arm ah: Ibr. b. H arm ah
599
H arm alah b. al-M undir 29 al-H . b. M., Sadr-ad-din al-B akri 468
'A bd-an -N ur
H am idullah, M. 82, 119, 128, 413, 462, H. b. M. b. SMih, Badr-ad-din an-N abulusi
^ialaf b. 'A bd -al-M alik b. B asku w al 354, H arm alah b. Y a . 416
478 f., 503 607
a l - H a r r a J i i ; 'A b d b. A ., a . D a r r
393, 400, 403, 419, 460 f., 472, 4 7 4 , 5 2 4 , b. H am is: M. b. M.
al-H arrani: 'A li b. al-H . b . 'A llan al-H . b. M. at-T u si 431
590, 595, 5 9 7, 599-602, 604, 608 f. b. H am m ad, a. 'A l. as-Sabti 419
al-H arrani; H am m ad b. H ib atallah , a. al-H . b. M. al-W aziri 105
H alaf b. A y y u b I ^ldn 142 H am m M 'A jra d 503 al-H . b. M. az-Z a'faran i 416
H alaf b. M. al-W asiti 522 t-Tana^
H am m ad b. H ibatallah, a. t-Tana^ al-H arrani al-H arran i; al-H u. b. M. b. M aw dud al-H . b. al-M uzaffar an-N isaburi 468
H alaf b. al-Q. (a. 1-Q. a l-B a ra d i4 ?) 601 466
al-H arrani: a. 1-Mahasin b. Salam ah b. al-H . b. a r-R ab i', a. 'A li 333
b. y a ld u n ; 'A r. b. M ., W ali-ad-din H am m ad ar-R aw iyah 503 al-H. b. R asiq 593
b. y:aldun ; Y a . b. M. y a lifa h
H am m ad b. S alam ah 518, IHdn is g al-H. b. Sahib as-Sasi 600, IHdn 142
b. H alfu n : M. b. Ism ., a. B akr al-H arrani: M. b. S a 'id al-Q usayri
H am m ad b. Z a yd 277, IHdn 140 al-H . b. Su fyan 395, 521
H alid b. H isam al-U m aw i 410, 503 al-H artam i; a l-H a lil b. a l-H a ytam
al-H am m al; H arun b. 'A l. al-H . b. 'U la y l a l-'A n a zi 599
H alid b. M a'd an 277 H arun: Aaron
H am m am : al-M uqaddam b. A m r al-H . b. 'U . b. H abib al-H alabi 178 f., 357,
H alid b. S a 'd al-Q urtubi 168 H arun: ar-R asid
H am m am b. M unabbih IHdn 140 452, 4 55, 467
jHalid b. S a 'id 191 b. H arun : M. b. H ariin, a. 'A li
al-H am m ani; Jabir b. N uh al-H . b. 'U . (b.) as-Sabbag 458
H alid b. al-W alid 589 Harun b. 'A l. al-H am m al 520
H am m er-Purgstall, J. 127 al-H . b. 'U m arah 362
H alid b. Y u ., a. 1-B aq a an-N abulusi 525 a. H arun a l-'A b d i: 'U m arah b. J u w a y r
b. H am sin (?), a. B akr 466 al-H . b. 'U tm ^n, a. Hassan az-Ziyadi 73,
a l-y;alid iy4n (Sa*^id b. H asim and M. b. H arun b. 'A li b. al-M unajjim 5 1 1, 532
H am zah b. A . b, Sib at (Sbat, A sb 4 t) 157 450, 470, 510
Hasim) 154, 482 H arun b. 'A zzu r 78
H am zah b. A sad b. al-Q alanisi 147, 156 H. b. Y u ., a l-'A llam ah al-H illi 221
P a lifa h b. H a y y a t, Sabbab al-'U sfu ri 71, Harun b. al-M uqtadir 48
H am zah b. al-H u. (H) al-Isbah ani (b.) H arun, 'A b d -as-Salam M. 70, 323, 529 al-H asim i: a. Ishaq b. Su.
287, 378, 382, 392, 406, 448 f., 501, 503 al-M u addib 71, 73 f., 79, 90-93, 10 9-111,
al-H. b. 'A l. b. a l-'A b b a s 53, 78 al-H assab, a. T a lib 592
al-H alifah an-N isaburi 483
116, 124, 136 f., 139, 160, 378, 386, 418, al-H . b. 'A L , a. A . al-'A sk a ri 323, 355, 405, Hassan b. T a b it 261
b. H alil: Y u . b. H alil ad-D im asqi 4 5 9, 482 (?) H assan b. Z a yd 276
al-H alil b. 'A L , a. Y a 4 a al-PIalili 438, 4 7 3, 522 472, 529
H am zah b. Y u ., a. 1-Q. as-Sahm i 160, 258, b. Hassfil: M. b. 'A li
H alil b. A y b a k , Salah-ad-din as-Safadi V I, al-H. b. 'A l., a. H ilal a l-'A ska ri 52, 323, 365,
361, 432, 446, 458, 465, 523 H atch, W . H. P. 151
51, 54-56, 82 f., l o i , 122, 163, 175, 185, 378, 387, 508 f.
al-H anafi, Sam s-ad-din 581 b. a l-H atib : M. b. 'A l., Lisan-ad-din
246, 265, 277, 292, 317, 327, 330, 332, 349, al-H . b. 'A l. b. Madhij al-Isbili 591
b. H anbal: A. b. M. al-H atib al-B agd ad i: A . b. 'A li, a. B akr
372, 387, 396, 408, 4 1 2 - 4 1 4 , 4 2 4 f - , 430, al-H . b. 'A l. as-SirM i 422
H an b al b. Ishaq 449 H atib b. a. B a lta 'a h 361
al-H . b. A ., a. l-'Ala^ a l-'A tta r al-H am adani
432, 4 3 5 , 438, 442, 4 5 4, 457 f-, 460, 462 f.. b. al-H an bali; Ar. b. N ajm , N asih-ad-din b. H atib an-N asiriyah: 'A li b. M.
465, 467 f., 470-472, 483, 485, 496, 501, IHdn 14 1
a l-H an bali; A. b. Ibr., 'Izz-ad-din al-K in an i al-H . b. A ., a. 'A li b. al-B an n a 83, 174, al-H atib at-T ibrizi; M. b. 'A l.
526, 528 f., 532, 535, 582, 600 b. al-H anbali: M. b. Ibr.
285 f., 420, 593 f. b. a. H atim : M. b. a. H atim
al-H alil b. a l-H a ytam al-H artam i 432, 503 a. H anifah (an-N u'm an b. T abit) 85, 261,
a!-H . b. A ., a. 'A li b. Sadan 453 a. H atini b. H ibbau: M. b. A.
H alil b. Ishaq al-M aliki 602
3 11, 371, 449, 464, 517, 5 73 , 590, 592 al-H . b, A . b. al-H am dani 125, 158 f., 187 b. a. H atim ar-R azi: 'A r. b. a. H atim
H alil b. K a y k a ld i a l-'A la i 374 f., 464, 525, al-H an qan i: A . b. M.
al-H . b. 'A li b. 'A r. a l-Y a zu ri 414, 596 a. H atim ar-R azi; M. b. Idris
589, 603, 608
b. Hanun at-T ab ari: 'A li b. M. b. 'A l. b. Hatim,ah: A. b. 'A li
H alil b. M., Salah-ad-din al-A qfahsi 442, al-H . b. 'A li b. l^'udal a l-K u fi 431
H anzalah b. a. Su fyan IHdn 136 H a tt: Y a . b. Musa
452, 526 al-II. b. 'A li b. Saw w as 444
al-H ara iti: M. b. J a 'fa r, a. B akr a. 1-H attab as-Sakuni: M. b. A. b. H alil
al-H alili; al-H alil b. A l., a. Y a 4 a al-H . b. 'A li b. a. Talib 322, 406, 589
al-H araqi: 'A b d -al-Jab b ar b. M. al-H aw iani: 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r b. 'A l.
al-H alili; M. b. Y a 'q u b al-H . b. 'A li al-W asiti 599
al-H araw i: 'A b d b. A ., a. p a r r b. H aw q al 470, 510
H alkin, A. S. 377 al-H . b. 'A tiq al-Q astallan i 429, 433
al-H araw i: -Al. b. M. al-H araw i al-H aw w ari: M aymun
a l-H a lla j: al-H u. b. M ansur al-H . al-Basri 343, 3 4 7 , 3^9, 590, 599 , IHdn
al-Haravvi: Abd-al-Mu'izz b. M., a. Raw h al-H ayb ari: Y u . b. al-F adl al-Y ahu d i
al-H allal; al-H . b. M. al-H araw i: A. b. M. b. Y asin 139 al-H aydari: M. b. M., Qutb-ad-din
b. H a llik a n : A. b. M. al-H . b. Bisr al-A m idi 609
al-H araw i: Ishaq b. Y a 'q u b al-Q arrab (b.) a. 1-H a y ja ar-R aw w ad 457
H alphen, L. 61 al-H . b. D u h aym 429
al-H araw i: M. b. 'A t a llah, am s-ad-din al-H aytam b. 'A d i 70, 73, 84, 89, 127, 162
al-H am adani: A . b. al-H u., a l-B a d i' al-H . b. al-H ajib ; al-H . b. Sahib
al-H araw i: a. Raw h al-H araw i 164, 381, 392, 510
al-H am adani; 'Im ra n b. M. al-H . b. H ibatallah, a. 1-M awahib b. Sasra 451
al-H araw i: S a yf b. M. a l-H aytam b. K u la yb as-Sasi IHdn 143
a l'H . b. Ism. ad-Darrab 591
IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S 629
628 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S

Ibr. b. 'A li, Burhan-ad-din b. Farhun 95, 311,


b. a. H a y ta m a h ; A . b. Zuhayr, a. B akr 321 f., 467
H isam b. 'Abd-al-M alik, a. 1-W alid a t-T a ya- al-H u. b. A. b. al-H u., a. 'A l. al-A sadi 594 419 f., 450, 460, 465, 479, 502, 591, 604
a. y a y ta in a h : Zu h ayr b. Harb lisi 519 Ibr. b. 'A ll, Burhan-ad-din al-Q adiri 426, 603
al-H u. b. A . b. M aym un 439
a l-H a ytam i: A li b. a. B akr, N ur-ad-din Hisarn b. 'A r. (of Spain) 461 Ibr. b. 'A li al-H usri 124, 181, 324, 355
al-H u. b. A. b. S a'd a n 51
H ayw ah b. Su rayh al-M isri IHdn 138 H isam b. 'A m m ar 400 Ibr. b. 'A ll, a. Ishaq as-Sirazi (al-Firuz4badi)
al-H u. b. 'A ll, a. 'A l. a l-K u tu b i 503
b. H a y y a n : H ayyan b. Ilalaf, a. Marwati H isam b. M. b. a l-K alb i 95 f., 386, 511 95, 354, 4^4, 418, 448, 515, 584
al-H u. b. 'A li al-Jizi 471, 610
a. H ay y a n ; 'Ali b. M., a. H ayya n at-Taw hidi H isam b. 'U rw a h IHdn 138 /. Ibr. b. D aw ud al-F adili 468 (?), 581
Hu. b. 'A li, Badr-ad-din as-Sadili 478, 499
a. H a y y a n ; M. b. Y u . a l-H isni: a. B a k r b. M., Taqi-ad-diii Ibr. b. F alah, Burhan-ad-din al-Iskandari
al-H u. b. 'A ll al-K arab isi 416
b. H ay y a n , a. B a k r; M. b. IJalaf b. H ayyan , H itti, P. K . 277, 298 (Iskandarani) 581 f.
a. B a k r W a k i' al-H u. b. 'A ll al-M agribi 474
H oenerbach, W . 404 al-H u. b. 'A ll b. a. 1-Mansur al-A zd i 426, Ibr. b. H ajja j, Burhan-ad-din al-A bnasi 598
H ay y a n b. H alaf, a. M arwan b. H ayyan 87, H olt, P. M. X V , 54, 75, 81 f., 84, n o , 156 f., Ibr. b. H alid, a. T a w r 416
419, 460, 466, 472, 474
584, 598
197, 4 3 1 , 460 al-H u. b. 'A ll as-Saym ari 590 Ibr. b. Harm ah 323
b. a l-H a y y a t; M. b. a. B akr, Jam al-ad-din H om er 190 al-H u. b. 'A li b. a. T a lib 103, 322, 370, 589 Ibr. b. a l-H aytam al-B aladi 401
a. H a y y a w a y h 501 {see also M. b. al-*^Abbas H orovitz, J. X V , 28, 69 f., 73, 94, 131, 157, al-H u. b. H ibban al-B agd ad i 449 Ibr. b. H ilal as-Sabi 5 1, 54, 59, i 77, 410 f.,
b. H ayyaw ayh ) 335, 394 f. al-H u. b. Idris b. Hurram al-H araw i 437 f. 499
b. H azim ; Jarir b. H azim H ourani, A. H. 157 al-H u. b. K u ja k al-'A b si al-H alab i 541 Ibr. b. al-H u. b. 'A li al-A zd i 426, 584
Hazinx b. M. b. H azim al-Andalusi al-Qar- H outsm a, M. T . 124, 134, 467, 529 al-H u. b. Mansiir al-H allaj 585, 600 Ibr. b. Ishaq al-H arbi 521, 5 9 7
tajan ni 181, 314 H uart, C. i i r , 179, 183, 486 al-H u. b. M., a. 'A Ii al-<5 assani 524, IHdn 140 Ibr. b. Ism. b. S a'id al-H asim i al-A hbari 477,
al-H aziini; M. b. Musa, a. B akr b. H u b ayrah ; Y a . b. M. al-H u. b. M., a. 'A li al-M asarji 522 479
(b.) al-H aziri; S a 'd b. 'AK H ubert, A. 261 al-H u. b. M. b. H usraw al-B alh i 590 Ibr. b. J a m a 'ah b. 'A li 153
b. H azm ; A . b. S a 'id b. al-H ububi; M. b. M. al-H u. b. M. b. M awdiid, a. 'A ru b a h al-H ar- Ibr. b. M ahaw ayh al-F arisi 502 f.
b. H azm : 'A li b. A. H u d 288 Ibr. b. al-M ahdi 510
ran i 168, 381, 465, 469, 521
al-H azraji; ^Ali b. al-H ., M uwaffaq-ad-din al-H udali, a. B akr 52 al-H u. b. M., ar-R agib al-Isfahani 49, 327 Ibr. b. M. b. 'A ra fa h , N iftaw a yh 502
H eer, F. J. 107, 152, 403, 405, 458 f., 462 f., b. H u db ah 465 al-H u. b. 'U b a y d a lla h ('A l.) al-H adim 444 Ibr. b. M. a l-B a yh a q i 360, 391, 509, 529
465, 470, 475, 482 a. H u d a yfa h ; Ishaq b. Bisr al-H u. b. W aq id IHdn 142 Ibr. b. M., Burhan-ad-din a l-Q ayrati 443
H ekataeus 109 H iibner, R. 197 Ibr. b. M. b. D uqm aq 148, 356, 369, 408, 412,
H usayn, M. 363
H ell, J. 387 H ugo of F leu ry 15 al-H usayn i; A. b. M., 'Izz-ad -d in 417, 435, 498, 502, 583, 596
H ellen 79 H uici M iranda, A. 82, n o , 477 a l-H u sayn i; Husaini Ibr. b. M. b. H am zah al-Isbahani 453
H erder, J. G . 197 H uizinga, J. 10, 31, 61 Ibr. b. M., a. Ishaq al-F azari 395, 518
a l-H u sayui; Ism. b. 'A li
H ergenrother, J. 76 H u jr b. 'A m r 387 al-H u sayn i; M. b. 'A lf, Sam s-ad-dfn Ibr. b. M., a. Ishaq as-Sarifini 449, 525
H erodotus 109 H ulagii 179 al-H u sayn i; M. b. al-H ., as-Sarif Ibr. b. M., a. M as'ud ad-Dim asqi 522
H ibatallah b. 'A b d -a l-W a rit, a. 1-Q. as- a l-H u ld i; J a 'fa r b. M. Ibr. b. M. b. al-M udabbir 30
H usqadam az-Zahir 329
Sirazi 470 H um am b. al-F adl, a. 6 M ib al-M agribi 465 H usraw b. A ., 'Izz-ad -d in al-Irb ili 609 Ibr. b. M., S ib t b. a l-'A ja m i, Burhan-ad-din
b. H um am -ad-din; M. b. 'A b d -al-W ah id, al-H alabi 191, 353, 396, 452, 526, 587, 603,
H ib atallah b. A . a l-A kfa n i 447, 512 al-H usri; Ibr. b. 'A ll
Kam al-ad-din a l-H u w arizm i; M ahmiid b. M. b. Arslan 606
H ibatallah b. 'A li b. M akula 46
b. H u m ayd; M. b. 'A li al-H uw arizm i; M. b. A. Ibr. b. M. b. Y a z id al-M awsili 482
H ib atallah b. 'A li, a. N asr b. al-M ahalli 608
b. H u m ayd; M. b. H um ayd al-H uw arizm i; M. b. Musa Ibr. b. Musa (of a r-R ayy) IHdn 14 1
H ibatallah al-B agd ad i, a. 1-B arak at 45, 257
H um ayd b. T aw r 388 al-H uw arizm i, a. B a kr; M. b. a l-'A bb as Ibr. b. Musa al-W asiti 4 1 3 , 502
H ibatallah b. al-H . al-Lalaka^i 447
H u m araw ayh b. A. b. T u lu n 411, 596 Ibr. b. al-Q. (b.) ar-R aq iq al-Q ayraw ani 168,
H ib atallah b. J u m a y ' 453 b. Ilu za y m a h ; M. b. Ishaq
a l-H u m ayd i; 'A l. b. az-Zu bayr 419, 460, 4 7 3 , 510
b. H ibban: 'A l. b. M., a. s-Sayh
a l-H u m ayd i; M. b. Futuh, a. 'A l. Ibr. b. S a 'd az-Zuhri 276, IHdn 136
b. H ibban; al-H u. b. H ibban al-B agdadi
H um e, D. 197 Ibr. b. S a 'id al-H ab bal 171
b. H ibban; M. b. A ., a. H atim Ib ra h im ; A braham
H un ayn b. Ishaq 80, 176 Ibr. b. 'A l., a. Ishaq an-N ajiram i 418 Ibr. b. Tahm an IHdn 141
al-H idr 26, 261, 572, 577 f., 589
al-H u raqan i; M. b. H am daw ayh Ibr. b. 'A l. b. al-J u n ayd 446 Ibr. b. a. T alib IHdn 141
H ijazi, M ustafa 485
a. H urayrah 334, 355, 589 f. Ibr. b. 'A l. b. 'A b d -al-M u n 'im b. a. d-dam Ibr. b. 'U . a l-B iq a 'i 107, 398, 501, 526, 587,
b. H ijjah ; a. B akr b. 'A ll
a. H urayrah ('A r. b. M. ad-Dahabi) 363 148, 272, 301, 382, 396, 430, 492, 499, 501, 606
b. H ijji; A.
H urgroiije, C. S. X V , 53 Ibr. b. 'U . al-J a'b ari 592
Plilal b. al-M uhassin (b.) as-Sabi (54), 82,
al-H u n n uzan 383, 551
515 Ibr. b. 'U tm a n a l-K asga ri 405
153, 173, 412 f., 4 9 9, 510 Ibr. b. 'A l. b. Q udam ah 597
b. H urradadbih; 'U b a yd a lla h b. 'A l. Ibr. b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz al-L uri 500 Ibr. b. Y a 'q u b al-Juzajan i al-H arizi (al-Jariri)
H ilal, J . (G.) 'A r. 414 b. Hurran^; al-H u. b. Idris 278
Ibr. b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. Y a . a l-K tib 501
al-H illi; H. b. Y u ., al-'A llam ah H urrazad b. Darsad 486 Ibr. b. YU. b. D ahhaq b. al-M ar ah 585 f.
Ibr. b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im , Burhan-ad-din b.
al-H im si; 'A b d -as-S am ad b. S a'id , a. 1-Q. H usaini, I. M. 47 Ibr. b. Y u . b. T asfin 401
al-H im yari 484 Ja m a 'a h 349, 597
H usaini, Q. S. K . 161 Ibr. b. 'A r. b. al-F irkah al-F azari 464, 469 Ibrahim , 'Iw a d 56
al-H iinyari; b. 'A b d -al-M u n 'im H usaym b. Basir 518, /Hdn 139 Ibrahim , M. a. 1-F ad l 422
H ippocrates 133, 507 Ibr. b. A d h am 5 9 7
a. 1-Hu. b. a. 'A l. b. H am zah al-M aqdisi Ibr. b. A ., Burhan-ad-din a l-B a 'u n i 398 al-Ibsihi; M. b. A .
b. H iras; 'A r. b. Y u . as-Sufi 608 al-Ibsiti; A . b. Ism.
Ibr. b. A ., a. Ishaq al-J ab ib ati (?) (Ibn
H irschberg, J. \V. 23 al-H u. b. 'A l. b. Sina 32, 61, 109, 242, 257, al-Ib yari, Ibr. 55, 86, 185, 312, 370, 426, 512
F arhun, Dtbdj, 4, 86 f. [Cairo 1 3 5 1 ]; Jyny^ny,
H irschfeld, H. 355 542, 600 b. Idris 459, 470
b. H isam ; 'A l. b. Y u . J b t y n y, etc.) 608
al-H u. b. 'A l. at-T ibi 215, 225 Ibr. b. A ., a. Ishaq al-M ustam li 168, 463 f. Idris b. H. al-Idrisi as-Sarif 151
b. H isam ; 'A bd -al-M alik al-H u. b. 'A r. al-A hdal 317, 430 (?), 483, 589 Idris, H. R. 385
Ibr. b. A . at-Tan u hi 452
Hisam b. a. 'A l. ad-Dastuwa^i 518 al-H u. b. A ., a. 'A li as-Sallam i 150, 163,
630 IN DEX OF PROPER NAMES 631
IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES

al-Idrisi: 'A r. b. M. J a 'fa r b. M., a. M a'sar 78, i n , 386!,


al-Isfarayin i: 'A li b. N asr, Sa'd-ad-din Ism . b. J a 'fa r (of Medina) IHdn 136
al-Idrisi: Idris b. H. J a 'fa r b. M. al-M aw sili 503
al-Isfa ra yin i: T a h ir b. M., a. 1-M uzaffar Ism . b. J a 'fa r as-Sadiq 275
Ihw&n as-safa 34, 45 f., i i i f. a. J a 'fa r b. a l-M u 'tad id 48, 541
al-Isfarayin i 480 [see S a'd a llah b. 'U .) Ism ., M ajd-ad-din al-H an afi 452
al-Ih w an i: al-A hw aiii J a 'fa r b. al-Q ., Radi-ad-din b . D ab uq a 581
b. Ish aq : M. b. Ishaq al-M uttalibi Ism. b. M., a. 1-Q. at-T a ym i al-Isfahani 243,
a l-lji; A r. b. A ., 'A dud-ad-din J a 'fa r as-Sadiq 275, IHdn 136
a. Ishaq 168, 464 {see also Ibr. b. A ., a. 394, 400, 588, 599
a l-lji; M. b. Ibr. a. J a 'fa r at-T ab ari: M. b. Jari rat-T ab ari
Ish^q al-M ustam li) Ism. b. M. as-Saffar 527 f.
a l-'Ijli; A . b. AI. J a 'fa r b. T a 'la b (?), Kam al-ad-din al-U dfuw i
a. Ishaq ('A m r b. 'A l. or Su. b, F a y ru z ?) Ism. b. al-M utanna at-T ibrizi 457
a l-'I jli (?) 480
IHdn 139 Ism . b. T a w b ah (of Qazwin) IHdn 14 1 307, 441, 470, 525
4 krim ah 514, 590
a. Ishaq al-F azari: Ibr. b. M. Ism. b. 'U ., 'Im ad-ad-din b. K a tir 50, 82 f., J a 'fa r b. Y a . b. Ibr. 439
al-Ilb iri: Y a . b. M ujahid b. Jahd am : 'A li b. 'A L , a. 1-H. (Hu.)
a. Ishaq al-Jab ib ati (?): Ibr. b. A ., a. Ishaq 86, 109, 13 1, 148 f., 175, 185, 201, 278, 282,
b. a l-'Im a d : 'A b d -a l-H a y y b. A. a l-Jaliiz: 'A m r b. B alir
Ishaq b. Bisr, a. H u dayfah al-B u h ari 188, 332, 3 3 4 , 347 , 353 , 355 f-, 360 f., 366, 381 f.,
a l-'Im a d (al-Isb ah an i): M. b. M. 403, 469 b. al-Jahm : 'A li
'Im a d -ad 'd in b. K a tir: Ism. b. 387, 389, 393-397, 399 f-, 403 f-, 412, 414 f.,
Ishaq b. H unayn 80 b. al-Jah m : M.
b. ^Imad-ad-din Ism. b. K a tir 496 427, 431, 433 , 438, 442, 4 4 4 , 447 , 449 , 4 51 ,
Ishaq b. Ibr. al-M awsili 99, 428, 502 466, 492 f., 495 f., 521, 524 f., 528, 531, a. Jahm b. H u d ayfah 346
al-^Imadi; M. b. ^Ali, a. 1-Q.
Ishaq b. Ibr. b. R ah aw ayh 416, 520, IHdn 14 1 Jahn , K . 148
Im am a l-H a ra m a y n : '^x\bd-al-Malik b. ^Al. 583, 587, 593, 597
Ishaq b. Ibr. as-Sijazi IHdn 14 1 al-Jah siyari: M. b. 'A b d u s
a. Imran; al-Fasi a. Ism. at-Tirm idi: M. b. Ism.
Ishaq b. Ibr. at-Tadm uri 468 Ism. b. Y a . : Ism . b. T a w b ah (!) Jah zah : A . b. J a 'fa r
'Im ran b. H u sayn iH dn i j g J a lu t: Goliath
Ishaq b. Ibr. a t-T alaq i IHdn 14 1 Ism. b. Y a . al-M uzam 303, 367, 4r6
'Im ra n b. al-H am adam 484 b. Ja m a 'ah : 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M., 'Izz-ad -d in
Ishaq b. Ism,. al-Juzajan i 363 al-Ism a'ili: A . b. Ibr., a. B a k r
a l-'Im ran i: M. b. 'A li, JamM -ad-din
Ishaq b. J a rir az-Zuhri as-San 'an i 470 f., 484 al-Isn aw i: 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. al-H . a. 'U .
a l-'Im ran i; T a h ir b. Y a . b. a. 1-^ a y r Ishaq b. M ansur al-K aw saj 520 b. J a m a 'a h : Ibr. b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im , Burhan-
Imru^u-i-Qays (inscription) ig al-Isn aw i: Su. b. J a 'fa r
Ishaq b. M. at-Tustar! 600 a l-'Iss, Y u . 5, 43, 171, 341, 381, 392, 401, ad-din
Imru^u-l-Qays (b. H ujr) 296, 387 Ishaq b. Salam ah al-Q ayni 168, 474 b. J a m a 'a h : M. b. a. B a kr, 'Izz-ad-din
b. 'In a b a h ; A . b. 'A li 405, 435, 446, 466, 468
a. Ishaq as-Sirazi: Ibr. b. 'A li b. J a m a 'a h ; M. b. Ib r., Badr-ad-din
Inal a l-A sraf 281 Ivan ow , W . X V , 64, 432
a. Ishaq b. Su. al-H asim i 510 Jam M -ad-din al-U stadar 434
Inalcik, H . 54, n o 'Iw a d b. N asr 454
Ishaq b. Y a 'q u b al-Q arrab al-H araw i 523 'Iw a d ('A w ad), B adaw i 'A b d -a l-L a tif 152, 482 b. J a m i': b. J u m a y '
loannes M alalas 76 f., 151 Jam il b. K a tir 192
Ishm ael (Ism a'il) 149, 385 'ly a d (b. M usa al-Yahsubi) 97, 267, 293, 402,
loan nes Philoponus 77 f. Isidore of Seville 15 a l-J a m m a 'ili; 'A b d -a l-G an i b. 'A b d -al-W ah id
417-419, 427 f., 435, 451, 456, 460 f., 470,
a l-'Ira q i: 'Abd-ar-RahJm b. al-H u., Zayn-ad- a l-Is'ird i: A. b. 'U b a y d b. a. Jam rah : 'A l. b. S a 'd
din 5 n , 524, 588, 604
a l-Is'ird i: 'U b a y d b. M. al-Jan ad i; al-M ufaddal b. M., a. S a 'id
a l-'Ira q i: A, b, 'A b d -ar-R ah im , W ali-ad-din b. ly a s : M. b. A .
al-Iskan d ari (Iskan daran i): Ibr. b. F alah , al-Janadi: M. b. Y a 'q u b
a. Z u r'ah 'Izz-ad -D aw lah 51
Burhaii-ad-din 'Izz-ad -d in b. 'A b d -as-S alam : 'A b d -a l-'A z iz Jaq m aq: Caqmaq
a l-'Ira q i: 'U tm a n b. 'A l. b. a. Ja ra d a h : 'U . b. A ., a. 1-Q.
a. 'Ism ah al-M arw azi: M. b. A . b. 'A b b a d b. 'A bd-as-Salam
al-Irb ili: H usraw b. A ., 'Izz-ad-din Ism a 'il: Ishm ael Jarim , 'A li 56
'! s a : Jesus 'Izz-ad -d in b. al-A tir: 'A li b. M.
Ism. (Judge): Ism. b. Ishaq 'Izz-ad-din b. Ja m a 'ah : 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M. b. Jarir: M. b. Jarir at-T ab ari
'Tsa b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz, a. 1-Q. al-L ahm i 450 Jarir b. 'A b d -al-H am id IHdn 141
Ism. b. 'A b b ad , as-Sahib 174, 592, 609 'Izz-ad-din, b. Ja m a 'ah : M. b. a. B akr
'I s a b. A . a l-'A sq a la n i iH dn 142 Jarir b. H azim 394
Ism. b. al-'A b b as, al-A sraf (of the Yem en) 56 'Izz-ad -d in a l-K in an i al-H an bali: A . b. Ibr.
't s a b. Farruhansah 508 b. al-Jarrah; D aw ud
Ism. b. 'A l. b. al-A nm ati 524
'I s a b. L a h i'ah 395, 504 b. al-Jarrali; M. b. D aw ud
Ism. b. 'A b d -al-M ajid 444
'I s a b. M as'ud az-Zaw aw i 498, 506, 591 al-Jarrah b. M alik 363
Ism. b. 'A r., 'Izz-ad-din b. al-Farra^ 581 a l-J a 'b a ri: Ibr. b. 'U .
'I s a b. M. (of E lv ira ?) 465 b. al-Jaru d : 'A l. b. 'A li, a. M.
Ism. b. 'A r., a. 'U tm an as-Sabuni 498 al-J ab arti: 'A r. b. H.
a. 'Isa b. al-M unajjim : A . b. 'A li Ism,, b. A. b. al-A tir 487 b. al-Jaru d : a l- H M t
'Isa b. Musa, G u n jar IHan 142 a l-J ab arti; Ism. b. Ibr. b. 'A bd -as-Sam ad
Ism. b. 'A li, a. 1-F id a al-M u a y y a d 7, 55, 72, a l-Jab ayini, a. 'A li 447 Jaspers, K . 25
a. 'Isa at-Tirm idf; M. b. 'Isa
78 f., 91, 146, 487, 492, 511 al-J ab ib ati (?): Ibr. b. A ., a. Ishaq Jaussen, A . 12 f.
'I s a m i 180 Jaw ad, M ustafa 58, 82, 98, 176, 305, 348,
Ism. b. 'A li al-H u sayn i 427 Jabir b. N uh al-H am m ani 275 f.
al-Isbahani: A . b. 'A l., a. N u 'a y m 397, 410 f., 414, 423 f., 431, 441, 451,
Ism. b. 'A ll, a. S a 'd as-Sam m an 523 Jab ir b. Y a z id a l-J u 'fi 5 17
al-Isbahani: 'A li b. H am zah 457 f., 460, 462, 468, 470, 473, 525
Ism . b. 'A y y a s 277, IHdn 139 Jacob (Y a'q u b ) 290
al-Isbahani: 'A li b. al-H u., a. 1-Faraj Ism . b. a, B a k r b. al-M uqri 176 al-Jaw aliqi: M awhub b. A ., a. Mansiir
al-Isbahani: D a w M b. 'A li Jacob of E dessa 76 f.
Isni. b. al-H ab bab (?) a l-H im yari 594 al-Jaw bari: 'A r. b. 'U .
al-Isbahani: H am zah b. al-H u. Jacob , G. 381
Ism. b. H am m ad al-Jaw h ari 271 f., 564 Jaw d ar (Judar), U stad 120
al-Isbahani: al-H u. b. M., ar-R agib Jacob of V itry 196
Ism. b. H ib atallah, 'Im ad-ad-din b. Bati Jaw har (Fatim id General) 596
al-Isbahani: Ibr. b. M. b. H am zah J acob y, F. 100
414 f., 482 a l-J a 'd i: 'A l. b. Q ays, an-N abigah b. Jaw.sa^: A . b. 'U m a y r
al-Isbahani: M. b. M., a l-'I m M al-Jaw hari: 'A li b. D aw u d b. as-Sayrafi
Ism. b. Ibr. b. 'A bd -as-Sam ad a l-J ab arti 599 J a 'fa r b. A. as-Sarraj 408, 433
al-Isbili; 'A b d -a l-H aq q b. 'A r. al-Jaw hari: Ism. b. H am m ad
Ism. b. Ibr. al-Q arrab (ad-Darrab ?) 592 J a 'fa r b. Ibr. as-Sk w y 243
al-Isbili: M. b. 'A l., a. B a k r b. al-'A rab i al-Jaw w ani: M. b. A s'a d
Ism. b. Ibr., N ajm -ad-din a. 1-F id a b. al- J a 'fa r b. M ., a. l-'A b b as al-M ustagfiri 400-402,
al-Isbili; M. b. 'A l. b. Qassiim b. al-Jaw zi: 'A r. b. 'A li, a. 1-Faraj
H ab b az 597, 602 405, 470, 473, 482, 588 f.
al-Isfahani: al-Lsbahani Ja y y a s b. N ajah 56, 159, 469
Ism. b. Ibr. b. 'U la y y a h 366, 518 J a 'fa r b. M. b. al-A zh ar 72, 507
Isfand iyar 29
Ism . b. Ibr., a. 1-Y u sr 181 J a 'fa r b. M., a. B a k r a l-F a ryab i 402, 475, Jazarah: Salih b. M.
b. Isfa n d iy ir: M. b. H. (b.) al-J azari: M. b. Ibr., Sam S'ad-din
Ism. al-Isfah an i: Ism. b. M., a. 1-Q. a t-T a ym i
b. Isfand iyar al-W a 'iz 462 521, 591, 143
Ism. b. Ishaq (Judge) 401, 403, 588, 599 J a 'fa r b. M. al-H uldi 597 b. al-Jazari: M. b. M.
632 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM E S IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S 633

(b.) al-Jaziri, a. M. "^Al. 599 K am alashri (Bakshi) 148 b. al-L u bu d i: A . b. H alil, ihab-ad-din
K rehl, L . 13, 250, 282, 284, 290, 304, 316, 334,
al-J azzar; A . b. Ibr. a. K a m il 418, 511 Lucian 61, 358
360 f., 366, 369, 378 f., 495
al-Jazzar: Y a . b. ^Abd-al-'Azim b. a l-K am il: A y y u b b. M. L u lu , Badr-ad-dtn 58
K rek, M. 405
b. Jd^r 478 al-L uri: Ibr. b. 'A b d -a l-'A ziz
K am il, M urad 119, 412 Krem er, A . von 3
Jerom e (St.) 78 K am p ffm eyer, G. 4 L u t b. Y a ., a. Mihnaf 70, 90, 506
K ren kow , F. 122
Jesus ('Isa, Messiah) 85, 144, 15 1, 223, 385 f. K a n 'a n , A lb ert Y u . 292 K ritzek , J. 56 M
543, 561, IHdn 137 a l-K a n ji as-Sufi: M. b. M. b. K u b r: b. K abar
al-Ji'^abi: M. b. 'U . K a n ka lah i i i M a'add b. 'A d n an 385
K iihnel, E . 176
al-Jilani: 'A bd -al-Q ad ir b. "Al. K arab acek, J. von 13 al-M a'afiri: M. b. Salih
K iinstliuger, D. 28
al-Jili: A . b. Salih b. S a fi' a l-K ara b isi: al-H u. b. 'A li al-M a'afiri: T ah ir b. M ufaw w az
b. a l-K u fi: 'A li b. M. b. 'U b a y d
al-Jili: S ati b. 'U . b. K arram : M. al-M a'arri: A . b. 'A l., a. l- 'A la
al-K u lin i: M. b. Y a 'q u b
Jin gizh an 40, 105 K arst, J. 78 al-M a'arri: Y a . b. 'A li
K u rd 'A ll, M. 30, 73, 429, 484
Jirjis al-M akin; al-M akin a l-K asgari: Ibr. b. 'U tm an M acnaghten, W . H. 51, i n
K u ta y y ir 327
al-Jizi: al-H u. b. 'A ll al-K asi, M uzhir-ad-din 468 al-Mada^ini: 'A li b. M.
K u tlu a y, Y . 430
al-Jizi: M. b. ar-R ab i' a l-K assi: M. b. 'U ., a. 'A m r al-M a'dani: A. b. S a'id , a. l-'A b b as
a l-K u tu b i: al-H . b. M., a. 'A l.
al-Jizi: a r-R a b i' b. Su. b. K a tir: 'A l. al-Madara^i 596
al-K u tu b i: al-H u. b. 'A li, a. 'A l.
Jong, P. de 503 M adclung, W . 177, 504
b. K a tir: Ism. b. 'U ., 'Im ad-ad-din a l-K u tu b i: M. b. Ihv.
Joseph (Y usuf) 290, 385, 563, 579 f., 589 al-M adini: 'A l. b. J a 'fa r
b. K a tir: Y a . b. Y a . (b. K a tir al-Andalusi) a l-K u tu b i: M. b. Sakir
b. J u b ay r: M. b. A. b. al-M adini: 'A li b. 'A l.
K a tir b. H isam I^ldn 14 1
al-Ju b iyari: M. b. J a 'fa r al-M adini; M. b. 'U ., a. Miisa
Ju d ar: Jaw dar a l-K aw sa j: Ishaq b. Mansur
al-M M arruhi: M ufaddal b. S a 'd
a l-K aw tari, M. Zahid 377, 412, 462 b. al-L ab b ad : M. b. M.
b. Ju lju l: Su. b. Hassan al-M agam i: Y u . b. Y a .
K a y , H. C. 159, 484 L abid 261, 562
al-Jullabi: 'Ali b. M. b. at-Tayyib b. al-M ahalli: H ib atallah b. 'A li, a. N asr
K a y u m a rt 386 a l-L abid i: 'A r. b. M., a. 1-Q.
al-Jum ahi: M. b. S allam al-M ahalii: M. b. 'A li b. H um ayd
a l-K azaru n i: 'A li b. M,, Zahir-ad-din b. L a h i'a h : 'A l.
al-Jum ahi: Q udam ah b. M az'un al-M ahalli: M. b. al-H u., a. t-Tahir
a l-K azaru n i: Y u . b. 'A li, Sadid-ad-din (?) b. L a h i'a h : 'Isa
b. J u m a y ': 'A m r M ahasin b. H alifah 466
al-L ah iq i: Aban b. 'A b d -al-H am id
b. J u m a y ': H ib atallah K ebir Q adizadeh 175 a. 1-Mahasin b. Salam ah b. IJalifah al-
K eilani, Ibr. 348 al-Lal)m i: 'A l. b. al-F adl
b. J u m a y ': M. b. A ., a. 1-Hu. H arrani 466
al-L ah m i; 'Isa b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz, a. 1-Q.
b . al-J u n ayd ; Ibr. b. 'A l. K eller, H. 122, 135, 143 b. M ahaw ayh: Ibr.
K en n edy, E. S. 73, n o al-L ah m i: M. b. al-H . (Hu.)
al-Jun ayd (b. M.), a. 1-Q. 325 M ahbub b. Q ustantin al-M aiibiji: Agapius
K eu ck, K . 9 al-Lalaka^i: H ibatallah b. al-H.
b. J u ra y j: 'A b d -al-M alik b. 'A b d -a l-'A ziz al-M ahdi ('A b b asid caliph) 154, 439
Key, K. K. 5 Lam m ers, W . 10, 60
a l-Jurjan i: 'AI. b. 'A d i, a. A. al-M ahdi (Fatirnid of N orthwestern Africa)
K h ad d u ri, M ajid X V Landberg, C. 296, 386
al-Ju rjan i: 'A l. b. Y u ., a. M. 407
K han , M. S. 177 Lane, E . 315, 350
a l-Jurjan t; 'A b d -al-Q ah ir b. 'A r. al-M ahdi (Alm ohad) 97
Lang, C. 104, 182
a l-Jurjan i: 'A lt b. 'A b d -a l-'A ziz a l-K ilan i: 'A bd-al-Q adir b. 'A l. al-Jil4ni al-M ahdi (Sahib az-zam an) 596
L aou st, H . 82, 283, 396, 420, 427, 462, 483,
al-Jurjani: 'All b. M. a l-K iiian i: 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A . b. M ahdi: 'A r.
Justinian 126 502, 523
al-K in an i: A . b. Ibr., 'Izz-ad-din Mahdi, Muhsin 32
Lassner, J. 169
al-Juwayni: 'A ta b. M. al-K in an i: A . b. M utarrif, a. 1-Fath b. M ahfuz: 'A l. b. M.
a l-L a y t b. S a 'd 275, 360, 515 (?), 518, 604,
al-Juzajan i: 'A b d -al-W ah id b. M., a. 'U b a y d a l-K in a n i: M. b. A . b. Ju b ayr M ahfuz b. M a'tu q b. al-B u zu ri 490
IHdn 138
al-Juzajan i: Ibr. b. Y a 'q u b a l-K in d i: M. b. Y u ., a. 'U . M ahfuz, Hu. 'A li 482
a. 1- L a y t as-Sam arqandi 464
al-Ju zajan i: Ishaq b. Ism. a l-K in d i: 'U . b. M. b. Y ii. Mahmud of G azn ah, Y am in -ad -d aw lah 38,
Leclerc, L . 194
b. J u z a y y : M. b. M. a l-K in d i: Y a 'q u b b. Ishaq 172, 177, 541, 596
Leo, F. l o i
a l'J u zu li 601 Kireher, Athanasius 126 Mahmtid (Saljuq) 50
Leon, H. M. 187
(b.) al-K irm an i: Y a . b. M., Taqi-ad-din L ev i D ella V ida, G. 61, 80 f., 89, 15 1, 158, M ahm ud b. A . a l-'A y n i 50, 58, 104, 109,
K al-Kisa^i: 'A li b. H am zah 325 f., 328 f., 331, 343, 345 f-, 356, 395,
187, 191, 359, 387, 4 5 3 . 470, 4 7 9 , 501, 506
K a'b al-ahbar 335, 564 , 567 f-, 579 a l-K isa 'i: M. b. 'A l. L evi-P roven cal, E. X V , 29, 87, 97, n o , 119, 412, 417, 448, 515, 526, 532, 583, 596 f.
Ka'b b. Luayy 385 f. a l-K israw i: M usa b. 'Isa M ahm ud b. A. b. al-F araj 445
121, 164, 18 1, 293, 313, 419, 460 f., 464,
K a 'b b. Sur 282 Mahmud B asa 248
al-K israw i: Y a z d ja r d b . M ah b u n d id 487, 506
b. K a b ar (Kubr), a. l-B arak ^ t 496 f. K ister, M. J. 87, 518 M ahm ud b. Ibr., a, 1-Q. b. S u m a y ' 501
Lew icki, T . 487
a l-K a 'b i; 'A l. b. A ., a. 1-Q. K och, J. 60 M ahmud b. M as'ud as-Sirazi 244, 248, 251,
Lew is, B. X V , 54, 62, 75, 81 f., 84, n o , 156 f.,
a l-K a fiy a ji: M. b. Su ., M uhyi-ad-din K obert, R. 368 384
178, 407, 431 f., 460
K a fu r 478 Mahmrid b. M. b. Arslan al-H uw arizm i 468
K ohler, O. 9 Lichten stad ter, I. X V , 387
a l-K ala b ad i: A . b. M., a. N asr K oym en, M ustafa 248 M ahm ud b. S u m a y', a. 1-H. 501
L idzbarski, M. 126, 335
a l-K a la 'i: Su. b. Musa, a. r-R a b i' K orah (Qarun) 288 M ahm ud b. 'U ., a. 1-Q. az-Zam ahsari 594
L ietzm ann, H. 176
b. a l-K a lb i: H isam b. M. K ow alski, T . 318 al-M ahzum i 482
Lippert, J. 32, 54 , 5 9 , 7 8 , 83, i i i , 469
(b.) a l-K alb i: M. b. as-SaHb K raeh kovsk y, I. Y . 106, 487 al-M ahzum i, a. s-Sa ib 510
Lisd n al-^Arab: M. b. M ukarram b. M anzur
K am al-ad-din b. H um ^m -ad-din: M. b. K raelitz, F. 152 Maimonides 140
L isan -ad'din b. a l-H atib : M. b. 'A l.
'A b d -al-W ah id Kraem er, J. 176 b. M a'in : Y a .
Lofgren, O. 56, 158 f., 187, 323, 453
K am al-ad-din, Im am al-K am iliy ah : M. b. M. Kram ers, J. H. X V , n o , 510 b. M ajah: M. b. Y a zid
L o th , O. 89
Kam M -ad-din b. T a lh a h : M. b. T alh ah K raus, P. 355 M ajd-ad-din (teacher of ad -p ah ab i) 582
al-L u bn ani: A . b. M. b. 'U . b. A b an
634 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM E S IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S 635

M ajd-ad-din al-L u gaw i: M. b. Y a 'q u b al- Mansur b. al-M u'tam ir I^ldn i j g al-M arzuqi; A . b. M. 1-G ayt 606
Firuzabadi M ansur b. Salim , a. 1-M uzaffar 458 (cf. V a jd a , M asa llah 134 M inorsky, V. 35, 457, 461
(b.) al-M ajisun: 'A b d -a l- A ziz b. 'A l. in J A , 1965, 341 ff.) a. M a'sar; J a 'fa r b. M. M inovi, M. 84, 290, 360
M ajnun L a y la 217 al-M aiisuri: B ayb ars a. M a'sar: N ajih al-M inqari: M. b. Su.
al-M ajriti: M aslam ah b. A. al-M antiqi as-Sijistani: M. b. T ah ir, a. Su. al-M asarji: al-H u. b. M., a. 'A li al-M inqari: N asr b. M uzahim
b. M akatiis: 'A r. b. 'A b d -a r-R azzaq M anuel, Ju an 48 b. M asarjis: al-FadI b. Marwan (b.) M iskaw ayh: A . b. M., a. 'A li
Makdisi, G. 83 al-M anufi, 'A l. (cf. G A L Supplement II, 99) b. M asdi: M. b. Y u . b. Mismar; al-F ath
M aki b. ^Abd-as-Salam (b.) ar-R um ayli al- 602 b. al-M asitah; 'A ll b. al-H . al-Misri 324 f., 511
Maqdisi 464, 468 b. M anzur: M. b. M ukarram M aslam ah b. A. al-M ajriti 241 M ittw och, E . 74, 139, 160, 459
M aki b. Ibr. IH&n 142 al-M aqdisi: 'A b d -a l-6 a n i b. 'A b d -al-W d h id M aslam ah b. Q. 437 al-M izzi: Y u . b. 'A r.
M aki b. 'U . al-Misri 603 a l-J am m a'ili M asruq (b. a l-A jd a ' 'A r.) 591, IHan 139 M oberg, A. 23
al-M akin 7, 139 al-M aqdisi: 'A li b. al-M ufaddal, a. 1-H. b. M asruq at-T u si 429, 433 M ohl, J. 109
M akki, M ahm ud ('Alt) X V , 275, 478 al-M aqdisi: M aki b. 'Abd-as-Sal& m (b.) Masse, H. 62, i n , 296, 414 M onneret de V illard, U. 196
b. M aktum : A . b. 'A bd -al-Q ad ir, Taj-ad-dm ar-R u iu ayli b. M as'ud: 'A l. M ontaigne, M. de 51
b. M akula: 'AH b. H ibatallah al-M aqdisi; M. b. 'A b d -al-W ah id, Diya^- M as'u d b. A ., Sa'd-ad-din a l-H a riti 443, 525 M ordtm ann, J. H. 152
b. M akula; H ib atallah b. 'A li ad-din M as'u d b. 'A li as-Sijazi 446 Moses (Musa) 79, 85, 124, 253, 258, 288, 290,
M alalas; loannes al-M aqdisi: M. b. T ah ir, a. 1-Fadl a. M as'u d ad-D im asqi: Ibr. b. M. 385, 543, 554 , 559 , 580, 589
a l-M alik . . .: under the second elem ent al-M aqdisi: al-M utahhar b. T a h ir M as'udi 179 M u'ad b. Ja b al 281 f., 287, IHdn 139
b. M alik: M. b. A l., Jam al-ad-din al-M aqdisi: Nasr b. Ibr. al-M as'ud i; 'A li b. al-H u. b. al-M u'addal (M u 'a d d al): A.
M alik b. A nas 85, 261, 275, 281, 310, 359, al-M aqdisi, Sihab-ad-din a. M. 595 al-M atari: 'A l. b. M., 'A fif-ad -d in (b.) al-M u addib 482 (see also H am zah b.
363, 394, 418 f., 4 4 7 , 449 i-, 5 ^7, 526, 573, al-M aqdisi: Su. b. H am zah al-M atari; M. b. A . b. H alaf al-Hu.)
590-592, IHdn 136, 140 al-M aqqari: A. b. M. M atthew s, C. D. 122, 406, 464, 477 al-Mu^addib: Y u n u s b. M.
M alik b. H im yar 158 al-M aqrizi: A. b. 'A li, Taqi-ad-din al-M aw ardi: 'A li b. M. al-M u'addid (?); 'A li b. A . b. 'A lt
al-M aliki, a. B a kr: 'A l. b. M., a. B akr al-M aragi: a. B akr b. al-H u., Zayn-ad-din M awhub b. A ,, a. Mansur al-Jaw aliq i 271 al-M u 'ad dil: M. b. A ., a. B akr
al-M aliki, a. D arr: M us'ab b. M., a. Darr al-M aw sili: A . b. 'A li b. al-M utanna, a. Y a '14 al-M u^addin; A . b. 'A bd -al-M alik, a. Salih
al-M aragi: M. b. a. B akr, Saraf-ad-din
M aliksah 251 al-M aragi, 'A b d -a l-'A z iz M ustafa 418 al-M aw sili: a. Dkw (r)h b. al-M ii a d d in ; M. b. 'A li
al-M allahi: M. b. 'A b d -al-W ah id , a. 1-Q. b. al-Mar^ah; Ibr. b. Y u . b. D ah haq al-M aw sili: Ibr. b. M. b. Y a z id al-M u 'afa b. 'Im ran al-M awsili 153, 518
al-M am ani (b. M am a): A . b. M. al-M aw sili: Ishaq b. Ibr. al-M u 'afa b. Zakariya^ an-N ahraw ani 280
al-M arani: 'U tm an b. 'Isa b. D arbas
M a'm ar b. A. b. Z iya d al-'Arif 426 al-M ar'asi, Zahir-ad-din 16, 162 al-M awsili; J a 'fa r b. M. al-M u'alla b. 'U rfan 278
M a'm ar b. al-M utanna, a. 'U b a y d a h 71, 89, M argais, W . 20 al-M aw sili; al-M u'afa b. 'Im ran a l-M u 'allam i, 'A r. b. Y a . 488
96, 406, 510 M ardam (Bey), H alil 183, 256 al'M aw sili: al-M ubarak b. a. B a k r b. H am dan al-Mu^ammal b. M asrur a l-^ u m ra k i 445
M a'm ar b. R asid 518, I ^ldn 140 b. Mardawa^^h; A . b. Musa, a. B akr al'M aw sili: M. b. 'A l. b. 'A m m ar M u arrij b. 'A m r as-Sadusi 95 f., 418
M a'm ar b. Sabib b. S ay b a h 280 M argoliouth, D. S. X V , 23, 29, 43, 45, 49 f., al-M awsili: M. b. a r-R ab i' M u'aw iyah b. 'A m r, a. 'A m r 395
b. M am m ati: A s'a d b. al-M uhaddab al'M ayd an i: A. b. M. M u'aw iyah b. a. S u fy in 50, 63, 89, 279,
54 f., 71-73, 82, 84, 89, 105, I I I f., 126,
Mamsus (?) ad-D arbandi 461 151, 174, 177, 182 f., 256, 272, 284, 286, al-M aydum i: M. b. Ibr., Saraf-ad-din 346 (?), 406, 589, IHdn 138
al-Ma^mun 51, 79, 87, 143, 280, 408, 432, 595 b.(bint) al-M aylaq; M. b. 'Abd-ad-Da^im al-M u^ayyad (of E gyp t) 104 f., 328, 412, 597
321 f., 404, 4 11, 413 f., 419 f., 422, 427-429,
al-ManbiJi; Agapius b. M aym un 97 f. al-M u^ayyad: Ism. b. 'A li, a. 1-F ida
447, 461, 467-468, 470 f., 473, 477, 483 f.,
al-M anbiji al-A dib (?) 607 502-504, 506, 510 f., 514, 516, 518, 528 M aym un b. A . b. al-H . 445 al-M u^ayyad (b.) M. at-T u si IHdn 14 1
b. M andah: 'A r. b. M., a. 1-Q. al-M arini (al-M aridini): M. b. H am id b. Mayrniin al-Hawwar? 312 b. al-M ubarak: 'A L
b. M an d ah : 'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. M. M aym un b. Mihran 381 al-M ubarak b. 'A b d -al-Jab b ar b. at-T u yu ri
al-M utaw w ij
b . M andah: M. b. Ishaq, a. 'A l. al-M arisi: Bisr b. 6 iy a t M aym un b. Q ays: a l-A 'sa 593
b. M andah; Y a . b. 'A b d -al-W ah hab , a. al-M ayuraqi; A . b. 'A li, a. l-'A b b a s al-M ubarak b. A ., a. 1-B arak at b. al-M ustaw fi
al-M aristani: 'U b a yd a lla h b. 'A li b. al-
Z a ka riyS M aristaniyah Mehmet the Conqueror 51 458
b. al-M anda i: A. b. B a h tiy a r Meinecke, F. 3, 197 al-M ubarak b. a. B akr b . H am dan b. a s-S a "a r
al-M arjani; 'A l. b. 'A bd -al-M alik
b. M an d aw ayh : 'A l. b. M. al-M arrakusi: 'A b d -al-W ah id b. 'A li Menage, V . L. 59, n o al-M awsili 423
b. a. M ani': H ajjaj b. Y u . M engeli B oga 414, 597 al-M ubarak b. M., M ajd-ad-diu b. al-A tir
al-M arrakusi: M. b. M. b. 'A b d -al-M alik
b. M an jaw ayh: A. b. 'Ah', a. B akr al-M arrakusi: M. b. Musa, Jam al-ad-din Mensing, J. P. 201 71, 405, 4 2 7 , 491
Mann, J. 140 M eyer, E. 6 M ubarak a h ; Fahr-ad-din
M artinus O ppaviensis (Polonus) 147
al-M ansur ('A b b asid caliph) 52, 121, 354 M a'ru f al-K arh i 607 M eyerhof, M. 77, 81, 171 al-M ubarrad: M. b. Y a z id
al-M ansur (F atim id of N orthw estern Africa) M arwan II 407 Mez, A. 89, 114 al-M ubassir (b. F atik) 176, 352
126, 407 M arwan b. M. a t-T atari IHdn 138 M ichael Syrus 139 b. al-M udabbir: Ibr. b. M.
al-M ansur (of Ham ah) 55 al-M arw azi; M. b. A. b. 'A b b ad , a. 'Ism ah Migne, J.-P. 79 M iiller, A . 32, 47, 54, 59, 78-81, 83, 122, 147,
al-M ansur: Qala^un M arx, A. 139 a. M ihnaf; L u t b. Y a . 184, 272, 453, 463, 469
M ansur, secretary of U stad Jaw dar 120 b. a. M aryam : S a 'id b. al-H akam b. M ihran; M. b. (al-)M ufaddal: 'A li
a. Mansur 464 ( ?) M aryam bin t A. a l-A d ra 'iya h 452 M ikh aylova, A . I. 4 al-M ufaddal b. a. 1-F ad a il 139
b. a. 1-Mansur; al-H u. b. 'A ll Miles, G. C. 128 al-M ufaddal b. G assan al-G allab i 393, 449
b. al-M arzuban: M. b. H alaf
M ansur b. al-H u., a. S a 'd al-Abi 308, 469, M illward, W . 16 al-M ufaddal b. M. b. M is'ar, a. 1-Mahasin
al-M arzuban, a. 'A l. 609 {see M. b. 'Im r^n
516 al-M arzubani) al-M im asi: M. b. Ja 'fa r al-M agribi 422
M ansur b. M., a. 1-M uzaffar (b.) as-Sam 'ani M ingana, A. 26, 4 7 al-M ufaddal b. M., a. S a 'id al-Janadi 475, 480
al-M arzubani; M. b. 'Im ran
451 M inhal b. M. b. Mansur b. M inhal, a. al-M ufaddal b. S alam ah ad-D abbi 258
b. M arzuq; M. b. A ., a. 'A l.
636 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM E S
IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S 637
M ufaddal b. S a 'd al-M afarruhi 150, 161, 459 M. b. 'A l. b. Zakariya^ b. H a y y a w a y h
b. Mufarra/ij (?); al-H . b. M. M. b. A ., a. 1-W alid b. al-H ajj at-T u jib i
an-N isaburi 592 124, 134, 137, 139, 145, 173, 177, 181, 221,
b. M ufarra/ij: b. Mufrih M. b. 'A b d -a l-A 'la 395 242-244, 322, 378, 384, 468 601 (?), 605
b. M ufarrij : M. M. b. A ., a. Bisr ad-D aw labi 408, 506, 510, M. b. A ., a. 1-W alid b. R usd 312 f.
M. b. 'A b d -a l-'A zim b. al-M undiri 441
al-M ufassis (al-M ufaddid) (?); 'A li b. A. b. M. b. ^Abd-al-'Aziz ad-D inaw ari I^ldn 14 1 M. b. A. al-W asiti 464
52 1, 591
'A ll M. b. A ., a. B isr ad-D aw lab i 408, 506, 510, M. b. 'A^id ad-D im asqi 392, 394, 509, 5 1 1,
M. b. 'A b d -a l-^Aziz b. S a 'M a h as-Satibi 606
b. M ufaw w az; Tahir 521 , 591 588
M. b. 'Abd-al-'^Aziz as-Sirazi al-Q assar 470 M. b. 'A ll, a. 'A l. as-Suri 523
b. M uflih; M. M. b. A . ad-D ahabi 32 f., 43, 45, 54, 58, 63,
M. b. 'A b d -a d -D a im al-B irm aw i 397 f., 587 M. b. 'A li a l-'A b d i al-IIurasam 59
b. Mufrih (Mufarra/ij ?), a. 1-Q. 419, 472 82 f., 85, 93 f., 102, 13 1, 145 f., 149, 191,
M. b. ^Abd-ad-Da^im b. (bint) al-M aylaq, M. b. 'A li b. 'A ra b i 235, 253, 324, 348, 43,
a. l-M ugirah: 'A bd -al-Q u d du s b. al-H ajjaj 259, 265, 276, 278, 281, 292, 322, 328,
Nasir-ad-din 399
M ugultay b. Q ilij, 'A la -ad-dm 177, 369, 388, 339, 346-351, 361, 363-365, 371, 374-377, 456, 584, 586, 606
M. b. ^Abd-al-Gani b. N u q tah 447, 449, M. b. 'A li b. 'A s a ir 467, 603
395, 398 f., 401, 4 4 7, 465, 526, 534, 587 f-, 524 f., 601 388, 391-396, 400 f., 404 f., 408, 421 f.,
607 M. b. 'A ll b. A y b a k as-Sariiji 435, 525
M. b. 'A b d -al-H am id b. 'A l. b. H alaf al-M isri 431, 433, 435-437, 440, 442, 445-447,
al-M uhallabi: al-H . b. M. 451 f., 454, 456, 460-462, 468, 482-484, M. b. 'A li al-'A zim i 156, 1 7 7
486, 607, 6og
M uham m ad the Proph et 24-30 a n i passim 487, 490, 492 f., 500 f., 503, 512-516, 520, M. b. 'A li b. B a ra k a t al-H am aw i 53, 119, 145
M. b. 'A b d -al-Jab b ar, a. N asr a l-'U tb i 177,
M. b. A b an IHan 142 522-529, 532, 580-82, 587, 590 f., 595 , M. b. 'A ll ad-D am agani 280
596 M. b. 'A li ad-D inaw ari 509
M. b. a l-'A b b a s, a. B a k r al-H uw arizm i 300 598, 601, 604, 607
M. b. 'A b d -a l-K arim , a. 1-Fadl ar-R M i'i 44 M. b. 'A li b. al-F adl ad-D ihqan 474
M. b. al-'-Abbas b. H a y y a w a y h 501 M. b. A . al-Farisi 490, 506
M. b. a l-'A b b a s a l-Y a z id i 123 M. b. *-Abd-al-Karim as-Sahrastani 243, 430 M. b. A . b. a. 1-Faw aris al-B agd ad i 522 M. b. 'A ll, al-H akim at-Tirm idi 399
M. b. 'A l. b. a l-A bb ar 55, 86, 155, 312, 393, M. b. *^Abd-al-Karim, T aqi-ad -d in b. Q utb- M. b. 'A li b. H am zah al-F urahinan i 4 7 7
M. b. A . b. G adir 581
414, 460, 464, 525 ad-din al-H alabi 441 f., 478 M. b. 'A li b. H assul 59, 177
M. b. A . a l-G itrifi IHdn 141
M. b. ^Al. b. 'A m m ar al-M aw sili 520 M. b. *^Abd-al-Malik (b.) al-H am adan i 82 f., M. b. 'A ll b. H idr b. 'A sk a r a l-C assan i 474
M. b. A ., G u u jar al-B u h ari 461, 506
M. b. 'A l. al-A zd i al-Misri 469 292, 411 f., 414, 488, 509 M. b. A . b. H alaf, Jam al-ad-din al-M atari 476 M. b. 'A li b. H u m ayd al-M ahalli 605
M. b. 'A l. al-A zraq i 43, 126, 164 f., 479 f., M. b. 'A bd -al-M alik al-M arjani: ^Al. b. M. b. A . b. H alil, a. 1-H attab as-Sakuni 604 M. b. 'A li, a. 1-Hu. b. al-M uhtadi bi-llah 453
509, IHdn 136 'A bd-al-M alik M. b. 'A li b. Ibr. b. Saddad, 'Izz-ad -d in 107,
M. b. A . b. H am dan 593
M. b. 'A l., a. B a k r b. a l-'A ra b i al-Isbili 46, M. b. -Abd-ar-R ahim b. a l-F u ra t 382, 412, I I I , 151, 156, 171, 277, 412, 469, 482, 486,
M. b. A . b. al-H . a l-K a tib 174
311, 360, 370, 459 4 9 7, 50 9, 583 596
M. b. A ., a. H atim b. H ibbaii 404, 435 f.,
M. b. ^Al., a. B a k r b. M uhibb-ad-din 437, 439, M. b. 'A r., a. l-*^Abbas ad-D uguli 404 M. b. 'A li b. Ism. b. a. s-Sayf: M. b. Ism. b.
4 3 9 , 447 f-, 515, 522, 592 f-
464 M. b. 'A r. b. a. D i b IH dn 136 a. s-Sayf
M. b. A ., a. 1-Hu. b. J u m a y ' 453
M. b. *^A1. al-B arq i 501 M. b. 'A r., a. 1-Hu. ar-R ud abari 541 f. M. b. A . b. al-H u. b. a. 1-Mansur al-A zd i 426 M. b. 'A li, Jam al-ad-din a l-'Im ran i 410
M. b. 'A I. b. a. I-Fadl, Saraf-ad-din as-Sulami M. b. 'A r. as-Sahaw i V II I , 12-16, 29, 32, 36, M. b. A . al-H uw arizm i 33 f. M. b. 'A ll, Jam al-ad-din b. as-Sabuni 58, 441,
585 40-42, 4 4 , 50, 53, 55 f-, 61 f., 72, 84, 86, M. b. A . al-Ibsihi 356 447, 451, 525
M. b. 'A l. al-Hadram .i 276 88, 96, 102, 106, 127, 165-168, 185, 201 f., M. b. A . b. ly a s 84, 247 M. b. 'A ll, Jam al-ad-din as-Saybi 127, 481
M. b. 'A l., al-H akim an-N isaburi 43, 168, 204, 210, 245-248, 263-529, 530, 586-610 M. b. A ., Jam al-ad-din b. M uhibb-ad-din M. b. 'A ll, Kam M -ad-din b. az-Zam lakani 582
282, 355, 363, 379-381, 393, 436, 446-448, M. b. *^Ar. as-Sa^mi I'^ldn 142 M. b. 'A li b. al-Mu^addin az-Zabidi an-N asili
a t-T a b ari 480
467, 483, 522, 527, 593 M. b. 'A r. a l-'U tm a n i 470 M. b. A ., JamM -ad-din al-Q azw ini 37, 365 480 f.
M. b. 'A l., al-H atib at-T ibrizi 448 M. b. 'A b d -al-W ah id, D iy a -ad-din al- M. b. A . b. J u b ay r a l-K in an i 516 M. b. ' A l l b. M uyassar 62, i i i , 1 55, 4 i 4 .
M. b. 'A l. b. al-H aytam al-'^Attar 445 M aqdisi 402, 451, 465, 470, 480, 483, M. b. A. al-M agribi 609 427, 478
M. b. 'A l., a. 1-Hu. a r-R azi 156, 593 600 f., 603, 605, 608 M. b. A. b. M ahdi as-5 ahid 507 M. b. 'A li al-Q affal as-Sasi 181, 416, IHdn 143
M. b. 'A I., Jam al-ad-din b. M alik 314 f, M. b. 'A b d -al-W ah id, K am al-ad-din b. M. b. A. b. M azyad b. a. 1-A zhar al-B u san ji M. b. 'A ll, a. 1-Q. a l-'Im a d i 145
M. b. 'A l., Jam al-ad-din ar-R aym i 354 Hum am -ad-din 282, 606 M. b. 'A li a l-Q a y ati 325, 343 f., 366
73, 507, 511
M. b. 'A l., Jam al-ad-din b. Zuhayrah 452 M. b. ^Abd-al-Wahid, a. 1-Q. al-G afiq i M. b. A ., M uhibb-ad-din b. a l-H a im 398, 587 M. b. 'A ll, a. S a 'id an-N aqqas 425
M. b. 'A l. a l-K isa i 404 al-M allahi 465 M. b. A. al-M uqaddam i 506 M. b. 'A li, Sam s-ad-din as-Sadili al-H akam
M. b. 'A l,, Lisan-ad-din b. al-H atib {includes M. b. *^Abdus a l-J a h siy M 45, 115 , 127 f., M. b. A ., a. 1-M uzaffar al-A biw ard i 457, 467, 598
Ihdtah) 44, 70, 86, 184 f., 355, 424, 441, 378, 413 M. b. 'A li, Sam s-ad-din al-H usayni 421, 449
605
455, 4 5 7 , 465 f-, 470, 472-474, 483, 526, 599 M. b. A . b. A b b ad , a. 'Ism ah al-M arw azi 477 M. b. A . an-N ahraw ali 317 M. b. 'A li as-Sim sati 154
M. b. 'A l., M utayyan 276, 404 M. b. A ., a. Al. b. M arzuq 599 M. b. A . b. al-Q M isi 83 M. b. 'A li, a. S u ja ' ad-D ahhan 510
M. b. 'A l. b. Numajn: 520 M. b. A. b. 'A b d -al-H ad i, a. 'A l. 598 M. b. A. (b.) a l-Q a ti'i 462 M. b. 'A li, Taqi-ad-din b. D aq iq-al-'id 327,
M. b. ^Al. b. Qassum al-Isb ili 459 M. b. A ., a. A . (b.) a l-'A ssal 400, 402, 453 M. b. A . b. al-Q attan 593 339, 352 f., 364, 366, 421, 525, 606
M. b. ^Al. ar-R asidi 453 M. b. A . b. Sahl al-B arkan i (al-Barnakani) 591 M. b. 'A lib . T a rh a n a l-B a lh i 401 (?), 5 1 3 f- (?),
M. b. A. b. 'A ll, Q utb-ad-din al-Q astallani
M. b. 'A l. as-Sahtiyan i 476 f. M. b. A ., Sam s-ad-din al-B a 'u n i 185, 285 f., IHdn 142
150, 485, 488, 584-586, 589 (?)
M. b. 'A l., am s-ad-din b. Nasir-ad-din 397, M. b. 'A li b. a t-T iq ta q a 49, 51, 56, 58, 115 f.,
M. b. A. b. Am in al-A qsahri 127, 476 398, 409, 534
399, 421, 588, 595, 598 M. b. A ., a. 'A m ir al-R alaw t 32, 461 M. b. A . b. S u 'a y b a s-S u 'a y b i 590 529
M. b. 'A l., Saraf-ad-din as-Safraw i 605 f. M. b. A ., a. t-Tahir ad-D uhli 609, IHdn 138 M. b. 'A ll, a. 'U b a y d al-A jurri 446
M. b. A ., a. l-'A ra b at-Tam im i al-Q ayraw ani
M. b. 'A l. as-Sibli 33, 71, 149, 276, 279, 282 f., M. b. A ., Taqi-ad-dni al-F asi 43, 57, 126 f., M. b. 'A ll, a. U m am ah b. an-N aqqas 397,
419, 435, 460, 465, 473, 591, 600
378, 381 M. b. A ., a. 'Asim a l-'A b b a d i 415, 448, 584 150, 165, 304, 320, 381, 396, 440-442, 4 4 9 , 589 (?)
M. b. 'A l., a. Su. b. Zabr 512 f. 462, 468, 475 f., 480-482, 486, 490, 493, M. al-A m in b. F ad lallah al-M uhibbi 86
M. b. A ., a. B a k r al-M u 'ad dil 459
M. b. 'A l. a l-'U ta q i 59, 64 M. b. 'Aram ar, Sam s-ad-din al-M aliki 44,
M. b. A . b. Bashan ad-D im asqi 349, 376, 526, 583, 606
M. b. 'A l. ('U b ayd allah ) b. 'U tb a h a i-'U tb i 580-582 M. b. A ., a. 'U . b. Q udam ah 605 280 f., 312-315, 497 f-
509, 511 M. b. A. b. 'U . al-Qusa\Ti 591 M. b. 'A m r, a. J a 'fa r a l-'U q a y li 436, 439, 521
M. b. A . al-B irun i 68, 73, 76, 78 f., 90 f., 113,
M. b. A. b. 'U tm an al-Q aysi 441 M. b. 'A q il 463
638 IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S 639
IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S

M. b. Ishaq al-M uttalibi 48, 87, 89, 132, M. b. M., a. l-B arak^ t b. al-H ajj a l-B allafiq i
M. b. A q il al-A zh ari al-B alh i 463 M. b. al-H . b. Zabalah 475
M. b. A s'a d al-Jaw w aui 155, 434, 475, 479, 385, 392-394, 397, 403, 508, 534, 586 55, 461 (?), 477
M. b. al-H . az-Zu bayd i 422
607 M. b. Ishaq b. an-N adim (includes Fihrist) M. b. M. al-B aydaw i 280
M. b. H asim al-HM idi 154, 482
M. b. A slam at-T u si IHdn 142 V I I I , 32 f., 50 f., 70, 72 f., 79 f., 89, 97, M. b. M. al-F arab i 32, 257
M. b. a. H atim al-Buhari 342, 595
104, I I I , 122, 125, 127, 137, 139, 162, M. b. M. al-6 azzM i 52, 60, 64, 218, 232, 237,
M. b. 'A t a llah, Sam s-ad-din al-H araw i 601 M. b. al-H aysam 606
164, 180, 186, 272, 366, 381, 386, 392, 2 3 9 , 281, 285, 303, 3 11, 316, 337, 343,
M. b. A y b a k as-Saruji; M. b. 'A li b. A y b a k M. b. a l-H aytam b. Sababah 412, 510
400 f., 404, 410 f., 413, 418, 428-430, 432, 346, 348, 360, 368, 374, 430, 606
M. b. A y y u b b. G a lib al-G arn ati 460 M. b. H ilal, G irs-an-ni'm ah as-Sabi^ 82, 479
436, 450, 462, 465, 467, 4 7 4 , 478, 482, M. b. M. b. al-H ajj a l-'A b d a ri 3 11, 461 (?)
M. b. A y y u b ar-R aq q i 604 M. b. H u m ayd IHdn 14 1
486, 489, 503 f., 506 f., 511 M. b. M. b. H am is, a. B a k r 300, 466, 474
M. b. a. 1-Azhar 73, 507, 511 [see also M. b. M. b. al-H u. al-A bu ri 593
A. b. M azyad) M. b. Ishaq as-Sabi^ 508 M. b. M, b. al-H idr a l-'A y za ri 606
M. b. Hu., B a h a -ad-diu al-'-Amili 281
M. b. a. B akr al-H adram i 470 M. b. Ishaq al-Wassa^ (M. b. A . b. Ishaq) M. b. M. b. al-H ububi 306
M. b. al-H u ., a. B a k r a l-A ju rri 590, 593 M. b. M., a l-'Im a d al-Isbah ani 43, 50, 62,
M. b. a. B akr, 'Izz-ad-dJn b. Ja m a 'ah 331, M. b. al-H u., a. 1-F adl a l-B ayh aq i 84 127, 187 (?), 365, 505
M. b. Ism ., a. B a k r b. H alfu n al-A zd i 524 64, 120, 151, 155, 174, 177 f-, 296, 386,
587, 605 M. b. al-H u ., a. 1-F ath al-A zd i 350, 406, 436
410, 424, 462, 464, 483, 532, 596
M. b. a. B akr, Jam al-ad-din b. a l-H a y y a t 485 M. b. H u., a. S a 'd al-W azir 424 M. b. Ism. al-B uhari 13 f., 86, 167, 201, 250,
M. b. M., Jam al-ad-din b. as-Sabiq al-H am aw i
M. b. a. B akr, Jam al-ad-din al-M isri 354 M. b. al-H u., as-Sarif ar-R ad i 317, 428 (?) 276-278, 282, 284, 290, 292, 295, 304, 316,
M. b. a. B akr b. Q ayyim al-Jaw ziyah 113, 444 , 492
M. b. al-H u., a. S u ja ' 292, 321, 489, 508 324, 328, 330 f., 334, 341-343, 355, 359-363,
M. b. M. b. al-Jazari 276, 399, 421, 456,
217, 256, 402, 480 (?), 589 M. b. al-H u. as-Sulam i 425, 435, 365-367, 369, 378 f., 381 f., 392, 394 f-,
588 f., 608 (?)
M. b. a. B akr, Saraf-ad-din (b.) al-M aragi M. b. al-H u., a. t-Tahir al-M ahalli 605 404, 418, 431, 436-439, 447 f., 450 f., 4 9 5 ,
M. b. M. b. J u z a y y al-G arn ati 472
398, 452, 587 M. b. al-H u. b. at-Tarjum an(i) 471, 610 504, 515, 517-520, 527, 595, I'^lan 142
M. b. M., Kam al-ad-din 429, 602, 606, 608
M. b. a. B akr b. Zu rayq 353 M. b. al-H u. b. U ht ^Isa b. Farruhansah 508 M. b. Ism ., a. Ism. at-Tirm idi 281, 416
M. b. B asir ar-R iyasi 508 M. b. M. al-K an ji as-Sufi 465
M. b. al-H u., a. Y a 4 a b. a l-F a rra 420 M. b. Ism . b. a. s-Sayf 485 f.
M. b. M. b. al-L abbad (d. 333/944) 592
M. b. D a n iyal al-M aw sili 163, 184 f., 428 M. b. al-H u., a. Y a 'la al-Jurjan i 465 M. b. Jab ir a l-B a ttan i i i i
M. b. M., M uhibb-ad-din b. al-A m anah 478
M. b. D aw ud b. al-Jarrah 413, 424, 454, 503, M. b. al-H u. a l-Y a m a n i 422 a. M. b. a. J a 'fa r 312 f.
M. b. M., M uhibb-ad-din b. as-Sihnah
509 M. b. al-H u. (H ?) az-Z u b ayd i 422 M. b. J a 'fa r, a. B akr al-H ara iti 399
(the younger) n r , 1 2 7 , i 7 i, 4 3 6 , 439, 4 4 4 ,
M. b. F u tuh , a. 'A l. a l-H u m ayd i 67, 97, 153, M. b. Ibr., a. 'A l. al-B u san ji 593, IHdn 14 1 M. b. J a 'fa r al-Jub iyari al-W arraq 463
326, 460, 474, 513 f., 523 462, 472
M. b. Ibr., a. *^A1. b. al-F ahh ar al-M alaqi 524 M. b. J a 'fa r al-M imasi 591
M. b. a. Gassan, a. Ilaqah 592 M. b. M. b. al-Q aw b a' (Quba') 396
M. b. Ibr. (b.) al-A kfan i 32, 307 f., 320, 430 M. b. J a 'fa r an-N arsahi 116, 160, 162, 461
M. b. M., Q utb-ad-din al-H aydari 416, 461
M. b. H abib 70, 97, 387, 401 M. b. Ibr., Badr-ad-din a l-B a stak i 425, 445, M. b. J a 'fa r at-Tam im i a l-K u fi b. ari-N ajjar
M. b. H afif, a. 'A l. 605 M. b. M., Sams-ad-din b. N ubatah 445
472, 479 168, 4 7 3 M. b. M. b. Sasra 57, 157
M. b. a l-^ a la f b. 'A lq a m a h 464 M. b. Ibr., Badr-ad-din b. Jama^ah 43, 163, M. b. al-Jahm as-Sam i 275 M. b. M. b. as-S ayyid 'A fif-ad -d in 475
M. b. H alaf, a. B a k r b. F ath u n 405 350, 418 M. b. al-Jahm as-Susi al-B arm aki 275 M. b. M. b. Sayyid-an -n as 327 f., 392, 396,
M. b. H alaf (H alid ?) al-H asim i 509 M. b. Ibr., a. B akr b. al-Muqri^ 449 (?), 453 M. b. Jarir a t-T a b ari V I, 7, 42, 45, 47, 50,
M. b. H alaf b. H ay y a ii, a. B akr Waki*^ 73, 456, 525, 587
M. b. Ibr., Fath-ad-din b. as-Sahid 398, 587 53-55, 69-73, 75, 78, 81 f., 92, 108, n o , M. b. M., Taqi-ad-din b. F ahd 397 f., 421,
79, 418, 428, 467, 508, 510, 518 M. b. Ibr. b. al-H an bali 467, 472 120-122, 127, 131, 134-136, 142, 144,
M. b. H alaf b. al-M arzuban 423, 433, 509 447, 452, 45 5 , 496, 500, 587, 595
M. b. Ibr. a l-lji V , 15, 40, 85, 113, 202-244, 147, 176, 188, 243, 278, 286 f., 292, 326, M. b. M. b. a. Y a 'la al-Farra^ 420, 443
M. b. al-H alaf as-Sadafi 155 245, 250, 259, 261 378, 387 f., 393, 404, 418, 488 f., 506, 508, M. b. M ukarram b. M anzur [includes Lisdn
M. b. H alid (H alaf ?) al-H asim i 509 M. b. Ibr., Jam M -ad-din al-M ursidi 443 515, 521, 529, 531 al-'^Arab) 85 f., 93, 271, 296, 300, 316,
M. b. H am d aw ayh , a. Raja^ as-Saiiji al- M. b. Ibr. a l-K u tu b i a l-W a tw a t 491, 506 M. b. K arram 606
H uraqani 168, 476 f. 323 f-, 353, 368, 388, 428, 463, 468, 529
M. b. Ibr., Sadr-ad-din al-M uiiawi 604 M. b. M ahfuz as-Su bayki 493 M. b. al-M undir I'-ldn 142
M. b. H am id b. al-M utaw w ij (M utawwaj) M. b. Ibr., 5 ams-ad-diu (b.) al-Jazari 60, M. b. M ahlad, a. 'A l. ad-D iiri 592 M. b. Musa b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz, S ib aw ayh 429,
al-M arini (Maridini) 427 134, 4 9 3 , 506, 525 M. b. M ahmud al-A m uli 39 f.
M. b. H ainzah b. ^Ali 439 606
M. b. Ibr., Saraf-ad-din al-M aydum i 525 M. b. M ahm ud b. an-N ajjar 48, 57, 83, 164, M. b. Musa, a. B a k r al-H azim i 524
M. b. (al-)H arit al-Q araw i, a. 'A l. 418 f., M. b. Idris, a. B akr (?) 459
460 f., 472, 510, 602 2 75 , 354, 425, 439 f-, 451, 462 f., 465, M. b. Musa al-H uw arizm i 73, 76, 134
M. b. Idris, a. H atim ar-R azi 374, 520, 526 f. M. b. ]\Iusa, Jam al-ad-din al-M arrakusi
M. b. al-H arit at-T aglib i 4 11, 508 4 7 5 , 480, 502, 507, 510, 524, 532, 594
M. b. Idris as-Safi^i 41, 75, 98, 234, 261, M. b. M ahmud as-.Sahrazuri 39
M. b. H arun a l-'A bb ast 78 442, 452
279-281, 286, 365-367, 371, 394, 409, M. b. M a'n : al-M u'tasim b. Sum adih M. b. Musa b. an-N u'rnan an-N u'm an i 604,
M. b. H arun, a. ^Ali 401, 588 415-417, 4 4 9 , 512, 518, 526, 546, 573, M. b. M aym un, a. H am zah as-Su kkari IHdn 607, 609
M. b. al-H ., a. B akr aii-N aqqas 400, 588 592-594, IHdn 138, 140
M. b. al-H . b. D u rayd 55, 290 142 M. b. M u si ar-R azi 164, 419
M. b. 'Im ra n al-M arzubani 73, 387, 422, M. b. Mihran al-Jam m al a r-R azi IHdn 1 4 1 M. b. Musa b. Sind, Sam s-ad-din 353
M. b. al-H . b. F u rak 368 424, 429, 509, 600 (?), 609 (?) M. b. M ufarrij 604, 607 M. b. Muslim b. Sihab az-Zuhri 63, 96, 130 f.,
M. b. al-H . b. H am dun 49, 53, 91, 307, 516 M. b. 'Isa ad-D am agani IHdn 14 1
M. b. Muflih 346 334, 379, 395, 45 o
M. b. H. b. Isfandiyar 115 f., 162, 177, 290, M. b. -Isa, a. 'Isa at-Tirm idi 29, 46, 401,
M. b. M. b. 'A b d -al-M alik al-M arrakusi 441, M. b. :Muslim b. W arah IHdn 141
355 404, 447 , 527, 588, 595
460 M. b. (al-)M utanna a l-'A n a zi, a. Musa
M. b. al-H . (Hu.) al-L ah m i 608 M. b. Ishaq, a. l-'A b b as as-Sarraj 62, 449 f.,
M. b. M. (?) b. 'A b d -al-M u n 'im al-H im yari az-Zam in 392, 501
M. b. H. b. Q u tayb ah al-'^Asqalani 597 IHdn 14 1
n o , 487 M. b. al-M utanna al-Bavvardi 599
M. b. al-H . as-Sayban i 449, 464, 591 M. b. Ishaq, a. 'A l. b. Mandah 43, 283, 400,
M. b. M., 'A lam -al-h u da 453 M, b. al-M utaw akkil b. a. s-Sari al-'A sqalan i
M. b. al-H ., as-Sarif al-H u sayui (Hasani) 403-405, 448, 459, 501, 522
ad-Dim asqi 426, 526 M. b. M., a. A. al-H akim 522 509
M. b. Ishaq al-F akih i 162, 164 f., 479 f., 508
M. b. al-H . at-Tusi 431, 453, 475 M. b. M., 'A la -ad-din al-Buhari 606 M. b. N ahid 328, 597
M. b. Ishaq b. H uzaym ah 521, IHdn 14 1 M. b. N asir, a. 1-F adl as-Salam i 524
M. b. al-H . al-W asiti 414 M. b. M., Badr-ad-din b. al-Q attan 281
M. b. Ishaq al-M usayyabi 399
IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S 641
640 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM E S

M. b. Y u . b. Y a 'q u b : M. b. Y a 'q u b al-M uqtadir 48, 407, 413, 462, 486, 541
M. b. N asr al-M arwazi 521, IHdn 142 M. b. T u lu n V I, 63, 126, 397, 430
al-Janadi b. al-M urabit; M. b. 'U tm an , a. 'A n ir
M. b. Qala^un, an-N asir 499, 596 M b. 'U b a y d b. A d am al-^Asqalani 471
M. b. Zakariya^ a. B akr ar-R azi 194, 408, 509 al-M uradi: Q ays b. M aksuh
M. b. al-Q ., a. 1-H. at-Tam m ii 98 M. b. 'U b a y d a lla h : M. b. <^A1. b. U tbah
M. b. Zakariya^ a l-(ja lla b i 429, 509 al-M uradi: a r-R ab i' b. Su.
M. b. al-Q ., a. Ishaq b. 5 a ban 450, 592 M. b. '^Ubaydallah al-M usabbihi 155, 478
b. al-M uhandis: 'A l. b. M. al-M uradi: U b a y y
M. b. Q. an-N uw ayri 155, 458 M. b. 'U ., a. 'A m r al-K assi 432
b. al-M uhanna: A . b. M. Murrah b. Sarahil 382
M. b. a. 1-Q. b. T a y m iy a h 466 M. b. ^U. b. a. B a k r b. Q iw am al-B alisi 608
al-M uhasibi: al-H arit b. A sad al-Mursi, a. l-'A b b a s 608
M. b. Q aysar al-Q attan 513 M. b. '^U., Fahr-ad-diu ar-R azi 37 f., 237,
al-M uhassin b. 'A li at-T an u lji 71 al-M ursidi: M. b. Ibr., Jam al-ad-din
M. b. ar-RaW^ al-Jizi 406, 427 242, 244, 254, 257, 539 f., 555 , 594 , 609
al-M uhassin b. Ibr. as-Sabi 499 al-M urtada; 'A li b. al-H u. b. Miisa
M. b. a r-R ab i' al-M awsili 348 M. b. ^U., Jam al-ad-din a l-'A rab i 604
b. M uhibb-ad-din: M. b. 'A l,, a. B akr b. al-M urtada: al-H adi (b.) Ibr.
M. b. Rafi*^ (aii-Nisaburi) IHdn 14 1 M. b. 'U . a l-J i'a b i 433
M uhibb-ad-din b. as-5 ihnah; M. b. M. b. al-M urtada: Z a yd b. H 4sim
M. b. RMi'-, Taqi-ad-diii 57, 301, 401, 440, M. b. 'U ., a. Musa al-M adiiii 404 f., 448, 524,
M uhibb-ad-din a t-T ab ari: A. b. 'A l. M urtada az-Zabidi [T a j al-'-arus) 484
442, 4 4 9, 452, 458, 463, 465, 490, 496, 593 , 597 , 599 , 601
b. M uhibb-ad-din a t-T ab ari: M. b. A ., M usa: Moses
512 f., 525 f., 583 M. b. 'U . an-N abtiti 604, 608
Jam al-ad-din b. M usa: M. b. Mus4 , Jam al-ad-din al-
M. b. Sa'^d, a. 1-B ara k at al- Assal 272 M. b. U. b. R u sayd 454, 516, 606
al-M uhibbi: M. al-A m in b. F adlallah M arrakusi
M. b. Sa'^d, K a tib al-W aqid i 86, 94, 96, 282, M. b. 'U . al-W aqidi 42, 60, 70, 73, 187, 243,
b. M uhriz: A . b. M. a. Musa a l-A s'ari: 'A l. b. Q ays
284, 287, 369, 381, 383 f., 386, 392, 394 f., 281, 381, 385, 392, 394, 397, 402, 448,
a. M uhriz al-M aliki 609 Musa b. 'Isa a l-K isra w i 93
402, 406, 437, 448, 501, 515, 517, 519, 528, 469, 501, 510, 519, 588
al-M uhtadi 275 a. Musa al-M adini: M. b. 'U .
587 M. b. 'U trnan, a. ^Amr b. al-M urabit 338,
b. al-M uhtadi b i-llah : M. b. 'A ll, a. 1-Hu. Musa b. M., Q utb-ad-din al-Y u n in i 44, 51,
M. b. S a 'd b. S ab iq IHdn 141 348-351, 605 f.
al-M uhtar b. al-H . b. B u tlan 171 128, 393, 412, 423, 458, 490 f., 510
M. b. S a'd u n , a. 'A l. 473 f. M. b. ^Utinan b. a. Saybah 446, 521
al-M uhtar b. a. 'U b a y d a l-K ad d a b 517 Musa b. M. a l-Y u su fi 499, 511
M. b. Sahl b. Bassatn 509 M. b. 'U tm an , a. Z u r'ah ad-D im asqi 416
al-M u 'izz li-din-Allah 407 Musa b. 'U q b ah al-A sad i 69, 131 f., 393 f.,
M. b. Sahnun 592 M. b. W addah al-A ndalusi 521, 590, 592,
M. b. as-Sa'ib (b.) a l-K a lb i 386 M ujahid (b. Jab r, b. Ju b ayr) IHdn 136 515, 588
607, IH d n 140 Musa b. Y u . b. Z a yya n ('A b d-al-W adid of
M. b. S a id (b.) al-D u b a y ti (D abayti) 427, b. M ujalid 473
M. b. al-W alid at-Turtusi 262
M ujam m i' b. Y a 'q u b b. M ujam m i' al-A nsari Tlem cen) 118
462 f., 484, 502, 524, 532 M. b. Y a ., a. 'A l. b. al-H ad d a 72, 447
276 M us'ab b. 'A l. az-Z u b ayri 41, 379
M. b. Sa'^id, a. Ishaq al-H addad 483 M. b. Y a . al-^Alawi 475
b. M ukarram : M. M us'ab b. M., a. D arr al-M aliki 400, 588
M. b. Sa^ d al-Q usayri al-H arrani 167, 469 M. b. Y a . ad-D uh li 520, I^ldn 14 1
al-M u ktafi 108, 505 al-M usabbihi: M. b. 'U b a yd a lla h
M. b. S akir a l-K u tu b i 55, 149, 317, 327, 496, M. b. Y a . al-M aqdisi 442
b. al-M ulaqqin: 'U . b. 'A li M us'ad, M. M. 106
509 M. b. Y a . as-Suli 48 f., 53 f., 73, 127, 172-174,
b. a. M ulaykah : 'A l. b. 'U b a y d a lla h al-M usarraf b. al-M urajja, a. 1-M a'ali al-
M. b. Salam ah al-Quda^i 67, 87, 126, 149, 271 f., 378, 383, 387, 408, 412 f., 418, 471,
b. M unabbih: H am m am Maqdisi 469
292, 4 5 3, 4 7 9, 490, 509, 593 510 f., 528
b. M unabbih: W ahb M usarriq b. 'A l. al-H aiab i 444
M. b. Salih, a. 1-H. at-T ab ari 405 M. b. Y a ., Z ayn -al-'A bidin al-M unaw i 281
b. al-M unadi: A. b. J a 'fa r al-M usawi ar-R ida, a. 1-H. 428
M. b. SMih al-M a'afiri al-Q ahtani 168, 461 M. b. Ya'-qub, a. l-'A b b as al-A sam ni 528
b. al-M unadi, a. J a 'fa r 589 b. al-M u sayyab : S a 'id
M. b. Salih b. Mihran b. an-X attah 89, 410, M. b. Ya'-qub, Badr-ad-din b. a n-N ah w iyah V I
al-M unajjid, Salah-ad-din 5, 96, 156, 334, al-M usayyab b. W adih 395
476 (?), 509 M. b. Ya'-qub al-F iruzabadi, M ajd-ad-din
392, 418, 432, 434, 468 f., 487, 532 al-M u sayy a b i: M. b. Ishaq
M. b. Salih b. Musa ad-D am raw i 605 al-L u gaw i as-Sirazi 417, 423, 459, 476, 481,
b. al-M unajjim : A. b. 'A li, a. 'Isa a. Mushir: 'A b d -a l-A 'la
M. b. Salih b. W asil al-H am aw i 65, 116 487, 535 , 603
b. al-M unajjim : A . b. Y a . b. a. Muslim (?) 474
M. b. Sallain a l-B a yka n d i IHdn 142 M. b. Y a 'q u b al-H alili 405
al-M unajjim : 'A li b. Y a . a. Muslim (al-H urasani) 137
M. b. Sallam al-Juniahi 387, 424, 509 M. b. Y a 'q u b al-Janadi 288, 306, 471, 484 f,,
b. al-M unajjim ; H arun b. 'AH Muslim b. a l-H ajjaj 276, 288, 303 f., 347,
M. b. a. Sari, a. J a 'fa r 509 I^ldn 140
b. al-M unajjim al-Misri 453 355, 360, 363, 367 f., 416, 438, 447, 451,
M. b. Siriu 382, 517, 590, IHdn i j g M. b. Y a 'q u b al-K ulini 324
al-M unaw i: M. b. Ibr., Sadr-ad-din 500, 515, 521, 595, IHdn 141
M. b. Su. al-M inqari al-Jaw hari 509 M. b. Y a z d a d ; 'A l. b. M. b. Y a zd a d
al-M unaw i: M. b. Y a ., Z ayn -al-'A b id in Muslim b. I la lid az-Zanji I^ldn 136
M. b. Su. (b. M.) b. A bd-al-M alik as-Satibi M. b. Y a z id b. M ajah /'/an 14 1
al-M unaw i: Y a , b, M., Saraf-ad-din al-Mustadi^ 596
a r-R a si 598, 609 M. b. Y a zid , al-M ubarrad 356, 388, 502 f.,
b. al-M unayyir: A . b. M. M ustafa b. 'A l., H a jji H alifah 121, 146,
M. b. Su. b. M., a. 1-H. 467 510, 515, 528
al-M undir b. Ma^-as-sama 387 151 f., 168, 244, 288, 308, 356, 392, 402,
M. b. Su. b. M. b. Su. as-Satibi 606 M. b. Y u ., a. 'A l. al-BirzM i 525
Mundir b. S a'id 607 410, 424, 429, 433, 451, 4 5 7 , 461, 463,
M. b. Su., M uhyi-ad-din a l-K a fiy a ji V II I , M. b. Y u ., B a h a -ad-diu a l-B a 'u n i 409
al-M undiri: 'A b d -a l-'A z im b. 'A b d -al-Q aw i 465-467, 476, 481, 484, 488, 510, 530, 535,
10, 15, 40-42, 44, 202, 204, 208, 245-262, M. b. Y u . a l-F a ryab i 519
264-267, 284, 293, 318-320, 326, 355, 384, b. al-M undiri: M. b. 'A b d -al-A zim 599
M. b. Y u . al-Firabri 595 al-M u stagfiri: J a 'fa r b. M., a. l-'A b b as
530, 547-580 M. b. Y u ., a. 1-H, al-'A n iiri 360 M u nis, Hu. 419
b. al-M unla 156 al-M usta'iu 507
M. b. Tahir, a. 1-F adl al-M aqdisi 436, 447, 523 M. b. Y u ., a. H ayy a n 350, 452, 454, 461, 516,
b. al-M untab 592 al-M ustam li: Ibr. b. A ., a. Ishaq
M. b. Tahir, a. Su. al-M aiitiqi as-Sijistani 585 f., 607
al-M untasir 123 al-M ustanjid 122
79 , 535 M. b. Y ii b. M asdi 442, 452
al-M uqaddam b. 'A m r, H am m am 388 al-M ustansir 56, 58
M. b. T alh ah , Kam al-ad-din an-N asibi 399, M. b. Y u . au-N aw fali 596
al-M uqaddam i: M. b. A. al-M ustansir (of E gyp t) 414, 596
589, 596 M. b. Y u ., a. 1-Q. al-M adaui (Madini) al-
b. al-M u qaffa': 'A l. al-M ustansir (of Spain): al-H akam
M. b. Tarh an at-Turki 401 (?), 513 f. (?) H aiiafi 293, 463
M uqatil 565 al-M usta'sim 38, 58, 410, 453
M. b. T arif a l-B a ja li 276 M. b. Y u . b. as-Saffi 608
b. al-Muqri^: Ism. b. a. Bakr al-M ustaw fi: H am dallah
M. b. a t-T a y y ib al-B aqillani 30 M. b. Y ii., a. 'U . al-K in d i 162, 395, 414,
b. al-Muqri^ 449, 453 (see also M. b. Ibr., b. al-M ustaw fi: al-M ubarak b. A ., a. 1-Barak^t
M. a t-T a y y ib al-Fasi 87 418, 427, 4 3 5 , 478 f., 510 f.
a. Bakr) al-M ustazhir 82
M. b. T u gj al-Ihsid 4 11, 596 M. b. Y u . al-W arraq 168, 460
R o sen th al, H istory of Muslim Histriography 41
642 IN D EX OF PROPER NAMES IN D E X OF PROPER NAMES 643
al-Mu'^tadid 48, 88, 104, 120, 174, 182, 408, an-N ajiram i: Ibr. b. 'A l., a. Ishaq al-Q ahir; B a yb a rs az-Z&hir
an -N u fayli: 'A l. b. M., a. J a 'fa r
507, 509, 541 f., 595 b. an -N ajjar: M. b. J a 'fa r at-Tam im i al-Q a im 279
N uh: N oah
al-M utahhar b. T ah ir al-M aqdisi 10, 92, 109 f., b. an -N ajjar: M. b. M ah m M al-Q a im (Fatim id of N orthw estern Africa)
114, 136, 148, 179, 183, 202, 486 N u 'm 323
N ajm -ad-din b. F ah d : 'U . b. M. b. an-N u'm an an-N u'm an i: M. b. Musa 407
al-Mu^tainaii b. A . as-Saji 523 N ajm i-Z an jam , M. 221 Q a itb a y a F A sra f 248, 409
an-N u'm an b. T a b it: a. H anifah
al-M u 'tam id 174 N allino, C. A. 470 b. al-Q alanisi: H am zah b. A sad
M u'tam ir b. Su. 395 b. N u m a yr: M. b. 'A l.
N allino, M. 387 b. N u q tah : M. b. 'A b d -a l-6 a n i Qala^un al-M ansur 412
al-M utanabbi 355, 609 al-Q alqasandi: 'A b d -a l-K a rim b. 'A r.
an-N am i: 'A r. b. 'A b d -a l-Jab b a r, a. N asr Nur-ad-din 125, 491, 544, 596, IHdn 138
b. al-M utanna 476 al-F am i al-Q alqasandi: A . b. 'A li, ih 4b-ad-din
a. 1-M u tarrif: 'A r. b. M. b. F u tay s a. Nuw^s 609
N am rud: N im rod an -N uw ayri: A . b. 'A b d -al-W ah h ab al-Q alqasan di: a. B a k r b. M ., Taqi-ad-din
M utarrif b. 'Isa al-G assani 465 an-N aqqa: M. b. 'A li, a. S a 'id b. al-Q alyu bi: A . b. 'I s 4 , K a m 41-ad-din
an-N uw ayri: M. b. Q.
al-M u tarrizi: N asir b. 'A b d -as-S ayyid b. an-N aqqas: M. b. 'A li, a. Um^mah a l-Q a'n ab i: 'A l. b. M aslam ah
al-M uHasim 38, 51 N y k l, A . R. 181
an-N aqqas; M. b. al-H ., a. B a k r al-Q an azi'i: 'A r. b. M arzuq, a. 1-M utarrif
al-M u 'tasim b. Sum adih (M. b. M a'a) 504 an-N arsahi: M. b. J a 'fa r O b. Q a n i': 'A b d -a l-B a q i
al-M utaw akkil 54, n o an-N asafi: 'U . b. M. Q araqus 44
Oberm ann, J. X V
b. a l-M u taw w aq : A li b. al-H . b. Fath an-N asa i: A . b. 'A li b. al-Q arih: 'A ll b. Mansur
Og 571
a l-M u taw w i'i: U. b. ^Ali, a. H afs an-N asaw i: A . b. M., a. l-'A b b a s al-Q arr4b : I s M q b. Y a 'q u b
Oman, (W .) C. 10
b. al-M u taw w i]; M. b. H am id N asih-ad-din: 'A r. b. N ajm al-Q arrab: Ism. b. Ibr.
Orosius 80 f.
M u ta y y a n : M. b. Al. an-N asir 410, 596 al-Q artajann i: H azim b. M. b. H azim
O tto of Freising 15, 60
al-M u 'tazz 507 f. b. N asir: M. b. Nasir, a. 1-Fadl Q arun: K orah
b. al-M u 'tazz: 'A l. P
an-N asir: M. b. Q ala un b. (al-)Q.: 'A r.
al-M uttaqi 489 P aret, R. X V , 188-190 b. al-Q. (b. A b i B a k r b. Z a yt^ r) 592 (read
N asir b. 'A b d -a s-S ay yid al-M utarrizi 272
al-M uw affaq 45 N asir b. A, al-B iskri 438 Pedersen, J. 425 b. al-Q. : 'A r . ?)
al-M uw affaq b. A ., a. 1-Mu^ayyad al-M akki b. N asir-ad-din: M. b. 'A l., am s-ad-din P ellat, C. 36, 150, 291, 324, 391, 460 al-Q . b. 'A li b. 'A sa k ir 468, 475, 603
590 an-N asiri: 'U tm an b. 'U ., 'A fif-ad -d in Peihs, H . 186 Q. b. A sb a g 81, 382, 604
b. M uyassar: M. b. 'A li N asr b. F ityan , a. 1-F ath 607 Perlm ann, M. 47 Q. al-H anafi: Q. b. Q utliibuga
al-Muzaffar (of the Yem en) 486 N asr b. Ibr. al-M aqdisi 592, 594 Perry, B . E . 186 al-Q. b. 'Isa b. an-N aji 306, 473
a. 1-M uzaffar (b.) a s-S a m 'in i; Mansur b. M. N asr b. M., a. 1-L a y t as-Sam arqandi 464 Petersen, E. L. X V , 63, 131 a. 1-Q. b. M ansur b. Y a . a l-Q a b b M 609
a. 1-M uzaffar Tekes 38, 541 Nasr b. M uzahim al-M inqari 64 P h ilb y, H . St. J. B . 125 al-Q. b. M., 'A lam -ad-din (b.) a l-B irza li 86,
b. M u zih ir; A . b. 'A r. PhiUps, C. H. X V 306, 452, 491 f., 513, 525, 528 f., 600, 604
N asrallah b. M., D iy a -ad-din b. a l-A tir 180,
al-M uzajjad: A . b. 'U . 183, 288, 491 Photius 76 Q. b. Q utlubuga al-H an afi 448, 534
al-M uzani: Ism. b. Y a . b. an-N asri: al-H . b. M aym un Pingree, D. i n Q. b. Sa'd^ n 474
M uzhir-ad-din a l-K asi 468 N asw an b. S a'id 181 P in to, O. 411 al-Q . b, S allam , a. 'U b a y d 116, 122 f., 506,
M yh rm ar, D. W . 364, 370 b. an -N attah : M. b. Salih b. Mihran P ir 'A ll al-H afiz 202 519, 604
M zik, H . von 127, 413 an-N aw aw i: Y a . b. Saraf Pirenne, H. 77 Q. b. T a b it b. H azm as-Saraqusti 400
an-N aw fali: 'A li b. M. P lato 114, 138, 507 al-Q. b. Y u ., 'A lam -ad-din at-T u jib i 516
N Plessner, M. 31, 38, 116, 241
an -N aw fali: M. b. Y u . al-Q assar; M. b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz ag-SirSzi
an-N abigah: 'A l. b. Q ays Pons Boigues, F. X V , 4, 155, 399, 401, 405, b. Q assum : M. b. 'A l.
an-N aw fali, a. 1-H. ( = one of the preceding ?)
an-N ab titi: M. b. 'U . 506 418 f., 441 f-, 447, 459-461, 465 f-, 472 -474 , al-Q astallani: al-H . b. 'A tiq
a n -N ab titi; 'U . b. 'A li N azim , M. 321 477, 521, 524 al-Q astallan i: M. b. A . b. 'A li, Q utb-ad-din
an-N abulusi: H alid b. Y u ., a. 1-B aq a N em oy, L. 398, 400 Pope, A . U. 176 Q atadah b. D i'am ah 284, 287, I^ldn 139
b. an-N adim : M. b. Ishaq N eubauer, A . 139 Pope, M. H. I I (b.) a l-Q a ti'i: M. b. A .
an-N adr b. al-H arit 28 f. Nicephoros Phocas 181 Popper, W . 256, 263, 326, 328, 499 b. al-Q att& ': 'A li b. J a 'fa r
an-N adr b. S u m a y l 510 Nicholson, R. A. 430 P o rp h yry 78 b. a l-Q attan : 'A li b. M., a. 1-H.
N adw i, R. 'A . 334 Ptolem y 109, 507 al-Q attan : M. b. A.
N idar (Nudar) bint a. H ayy a n M. b. Y u . 454,
N a fi' (m awla b. 'U .) 359, 363 516 b. a l-Q a ttin : M. b. M ., Badr-ad-dIn
Q
N a fi' (Qur an reader) 581, IHdn 136 N iftaw a yh : Ibr. b. M. b. 'A ra fa h al-Q a tta n : M. b. Q aysar
al-Q abbari: a. 1-Q. b. M ansur b. Y a .
b. N afis (the elder) ( = 'A li b. M as'ud ?) 581 N im rod (Namrud) 288 al-Q attan : Y a . b. 'A y y a s
N afisah, as-S ayyidah 607 Q abil: Cain
an-N isaburi: 'A b d -al-M alik b. M., a. S a 'd al-Q abisi: 'A li b. M. a l-Q attan : Y a . b. S a 'id
an -N ah a'i: 'A lq am ah b. Q ays an-N isaburi: a l-y a lifa h al-Q attan , a. 1-H. I^ldn 14 1
al-Q addah: 'A l. b. M aym un
an -N ah a'i: al-A sw ad b. Y a zid an-N isaburi: al-H . b. al-M uzaffar b. al-Q atu li 471
b. al-Q addah: 'A l. b. M. b. 'U m arah
an -N ah a'i: Sarik b. 'A l. an-N isaburi: M. b. 'A l., al-H akim al-Q aw ariri: 'U b a y d a lla h b. 'U .
b. N ah id: M. al-Q addahi 275
N oah (Nuh) 261, 288, 387, 5 43, 563, 569-571, al-Q adi a l-F M il al-B aysan i: 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. al-Q a w b a ': M. b. M.
an-N ahraw ali: M. b. A. 580 al-Q ayati: M. b. 'A li
b. 'A ll
an-N ahsabi: 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. M. N oldeke, T . 3, 11, 28 al-Q ayni: Ishaq b. Salam ah
b. Q adi Suhbah: a. B akr b. A ., Taqi-ad-diii
an-N ahsabi: a. Turab a. N u 'a y m : A. b. 'A l. a l-Q a yrati: Ibr. b. M., Burhan-ad-din
al-Q adiri: Ibr. b. 'A li, Burhan-ad-din
b. an-N ah w iyah : M. b. Y a 'q u b , Badr-ad-din a. N u 'a y m ; al-F adl b. D u k ayn al-Q ayraw ani: 'A r. b. M., a. Zayd
a l-Q M isi: A . b, M.
b. an-N ajast; A . b. 'A li a n -N u 'a ym i: A . b. al-Fadl al-Q ayraw ani: al-H . b. M. b. A.
b. al-Q M isi: M. b. A.
b. an-N aji: al-Q. b. 'Is^ b. N ub atah : M. b. M., Sam s-ad -d in al-Q ayraw ani: Ibr. b. al-Q. (b.) ar-R aqiq
a l-Q affal: M. b. 'A li
N ajih, a. Ma'Sar 393 N u fa y ' b. al-H arit, a. Bakrah a t-T a q afi 277 al-Q ayraw ani: M. b. A ., a. l-'A ra b
al-Q ahir 59
644 IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S
IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM ES 645
Q ays b. al-H atim 318
a r-R a b i' b. Su. al-M uradi 416 f.
Q ays b. Maksuh al-M uradi 528 R a b i'a h a l-'A d a w iy ah 600 Ridw an b. M., Zayn-ad-din 282 as-Sabuni; Ism. b. 'A r., a. 'UtmAn
b. al-Q ayyirn, a. 'A l. (b.) M. 480 ( = b. b. ar-R ab ib : al-H . b. M. b. A . b. as-Sabuni: M. b. 'A li, Jam al-ad-din
a r-R ifa 'i; A . b. 'A li
Q ayyim al-Jaw ziyah ?) ar-R adi 48 Ritter, H. 35, 101, 128, 150, 241, 248, 277, Sacaqlizadeh (M. al-M ar'asi) 531
b. Q ay y im a l-J aw ziyah : M. b. a. B akr 298, 306, 317, 330, 332, 348, 372, 387, Sachau, E. X V f., 76, 7 8 f., 8 6 , 113, 124, 139,
a r-R ad i; M. b. al-H u., as-Sarif
al-Q azw ini: M. b. A ., Jam al-ad-din b. a r-R a f'a h ; A . b. M. 173, 177, 221, 242, 271, 278, 282, 284, 287,
396, 405, 408, 412-414, 425, 430, 457 f-,
al-Q azw ini, a. 1-H, al-B agd ad i 608 b. R a fi': 'A m r 322, 369, 378, 381, 383 f., 395, 402, 517,
460, 472, 483, 491, 526
al-Q ibabi; 'A r. b. ^U. b. R a fi': M. 519
R itter, M. 118
al-Q ifti: 'A li b. Y u . b. S a 'd : 'A l. b. al-H u.
a r-R a fi'i: 'A b d -a l-K arim b. M., a. 1-Q. ar-R iyasi: a l-'A b b a s b. (al-)Faraj
b. (al-) Q irriyah: A y y u b b. Z ayd a r-R a fi'i: M. b. 'A b d -a l-K arim , a. 1-Fadl a r-R iyasi: M. b. Basir a. S a 'd ; 'A b d -a l-K arim b. M.
Quatremfere, E . M. 148 ar-R agib al-Isfah an i; al-H u. b. M. a. S a 'd : 'A b d -al-M alik b. M.
Rizzitan o, U. 279
b. al-Quba'^; M. b. M. b. R ah aw ayh : Ishaq b. Ibr, b. S a 'd ; M.
Robson, J. 218, 401
al-Q ubbasi: al-H . b. M. b. M ufarraj (?) a r-R a 'i: 'A b id b. al-H usayn S a 'd b. 'A l, al-Q um m i 432
Ronianos 80
al-Q u d a'i: 'A l. b. Sahl b. R a jab : 'A r. b. A ., Zayn-ad-din S a 'd b, 'A li (b.) al-H aziri 424, 532,
Rosenthal, E. I. J. 56
al-Q uda4 ; M. b. Salam ah R ajih b. al-H u. 444 Rosenthal, F. 11, 15 f., 46, 48, 52, 58, 68, S a 'd b. 'A ll b. M., a. 1-Q. az-Zanjani 523
b. Q udam ah: 'A l. b. A ., M uw affaq-ad-dia R ajih b. Ism. al-A sadi 444 71, 80, 87, 91-93, 102, 113 f., 116, 122, S a 'd b. Janah 461
b, Q udam ah: 'A r. b. M. (b.) ar-R aq iq : Ibr. b. al-Q. 126, 170, 174, 186, 220, 241 f., 253, 279, S a 'd b, M u'ad 279
b. Q udam ah: Ibr. b. 'A l. b. R aqiqah, Sa'd-ad-din 184 S a 'd b. M. b. ad-D ayr! 325, 343 f.
303, 323 f-, 330, 350, 365, 370, 418, 446,
b . Q udam ah: M. b. A . b. 'Abd-al-H ^di ar-R aq q i: M. b. A y y u b S a 'd b. M. az-Zanjani: S a 'd b. 'A li b. M.
487, 507
b. Q udam ah; M. b. A ., a. 'U . a r-R as'a n i: 'A b d -a r-R azzaq b. R izqallah Ross, E . D. 98, 121, 253 S a 'd b, a. W aqqas 382, 589
b. Q udam ah: Su. b. H am zah ar-R asid (Harun) 49 f., 58, 139, 314, 529 as-Sadafi: A. b. S a 'id b. H azm , a. 'U ,
Rothstein, G. 139
Q udam ah b. J a 'fa r, a. 1-F araj 116 f., 272, 506, ar-R asid b. az-Zubayr 82, 119, 128, 413, 462, a r-R u 'a y n i; 'A li b. M. as-Sadafi: M. b. al-H alaf
543 f- a r-R iidabari: M. b. 'A r., a. 1-Hu. S a'd allah b. 'U . al-Isfarayin i 480
478 f., 503
Qudam ah b. M az'un al-Jum aW 424 Rasid-ad-din al-A dib 581 ( = 'A b d -az-Z ahir ar-R iidabari: A. b. M., a. 'A li b. Sadan: al-H . b. A ., a. 'A li
b. al-Q uduri; A . b. M. ar-R uh aw i: 'A b d -a l-Q M ir b. 'A l. b. S a'd an : al-H u. b. A.
b. N asw an, d. 649/1251-52 ?)
b. Q u fl: 'A li b. a. 1-Q. (b.) ar-R u m ayli; M aki b. 'A bd-as-Salain b. S a 'd a n ; Q.
Rasid-ad-din F ad lallah 81, 105, 141, 147 f.,
al-Q um m i; H. b. M. 176 b. Sadaqah, a. B akr 467
R u pp , H . 9
al-Q um m i: S a 'd b. 'A l. ar-R asidi 598 Sadaqah b. al-Hu. al-H addad al-Faradi 83, 504
b. R u sayd ; M. b. 'U .
al-Q urasi; 'A b d -a l-B a q i b. 'A bd -al-M ajid ar-R asid i; M. b. 'A l. b. R usd: M. b. A ., a. 1-W alid Sadaqah b. Mansur 272
al-Y am an i b .S ad d ad ; M. b, 'A li b. Ibr.
b. R asiq: 'A r. b. M., a. 1-Q. R ustum 29
al-Q urasi: 'A b d -al-Q ad ir b. M., M uhyi-ad-din b. R asiq; al-H. a r-R u ya n i: A . b. N asr b. Saddad: Y u . b. R a fi'
a l-Q u rtu b i: H alid b. S a 'id b. R aslan: A. b. al-H u., Sihab-ad-din Saddad b. A w s I^ldn i 3 j
al-Q urtubi, a. 'A l. 399 b. R aslan: 'U . b. Raslan al-B u lqin i Sadeque, S. F. 412
al-Q usayri: 'A b d -a l-K arim b. Hawazin b . R asu l: al-A fdal S a 'a d y a h Gaon 139 as-Sadili; 'A li b. 'A l., a. 1-H.
al-Q usayri: M. b. A . b. 'U . b. a s -S a "a r: al-M ubarak b. a. B a k r b. as-Sadili: Hu. b. 'A li, Badr-ad-din
a. Raw h al-H araw i 483 (see also 'A b d -a l-
al-Q usayri: M. b. S a 'id M u'izz b. M.) as-fiadili: M. b. 'A li, am s-ad-din
H aradaii
al-Q usi: 'A b d -a l-6 a ffa r b. A. (b.) a r-R aw w M , (b.) a. 1-Hayja^ 457 Sadruddin M. 175
b. S a b ' as-Sabti 402, 588
Quss b. S a'id a h 400 a r-R aym i; M. b. 'A l., Jam al-ad-din b. S a'd u n ; M.
b. Sababah: M. b. al-H aytam
Q usta b. L u q a 80 ar-R azi: 'A r. b. a. H atim b. S a'b an , a. 1-Q. 450 [sec also M. b. al-Q ., as-Sadusi 243
b. Q u ta yb ah : 'A l. b. Muslim ar-R azi: A. b. 'A l. as-Sadusi; M u arrij b. 'A m r
a. Ishaq)
b. Q u tayb ah ; M. b. H. a r-R azi: A . b. M., a. Bakr Sab(a)tun: Z iya d b. 'A r. as-Safadi; H alil b. A y b a k , Salah-ad-din
Q u taybah b. S a'id 276, IHdn 142 a r-R azi: 'A li b. M ujahid Sabbab (al-'U sfu ri); H alifah b. H a v y a t as-Saffah 529
Q utb-ad-din al-H alab i: 'A b d -a l-K arim b. a r-R azi: M. b. 'A l., a. 1-Hu. b. as-Sabbag: 'A b d -a s-S ayyid b, M., a. Nasr as-Saffar: Ism. b. M.
'A bd -an -N u r ar-R azi: M. b. Idris, a. H atim b. as-Sabbag: 'A ll b. M. b! as-Saffi: M. b. Y u .
b. Q utb-ad-din al-H alab i: M. b. 'A b d -al- ar-R azi: M. b. Musa b. as-Sabbag; 'A li b. 'XL, a. 1-H. as-Saffi: Yvi. b. A.
K arim , Taqi-ad-diu ar-R azi: M. b. 'U ., Fahr-ad-din (b.) as-Sabbag: al-H . b. 'U . b. S a fi': A. b. Salih
Q utb-ad-din al-Q astallan i: M. b. A. b, 'A li a r-R azi: M. b. Z a k a riy a , a. B akr Sabbiih, Ibr. 396, 465 S a fi' b. 'U . al-Jili 595
Qutb-ad-din al-Y u n in i: Musa b. M. a r-R azi: T am m am b. M., a. 1-Q. as-Sabi^- H ilal b. al-Muhassin as-S a fi'i: M. b, Idris
b. Q utlubuga: Q. a s-Sabi ; Ibr. b. H ilal as-Safraw i; M. b. 'A l., Saraf-ad-din
ar-R azi; 'U b a y d a lla h b. 'A b d -a l-K arim , a.
al-Q utrubulli: 'A l. Zu r'ah as-Sabi : M. b. HilM , G irs-an-ni'm ah Safw an al-Asam m 439
al-Q utrubulli: A . b. 'A l. as-Sagani: al-H . b. M., Radi-ad-din a.
R azin b. M u'aw iyah as-Saraqusti 476, 480 as-Sabi : M. b. Ishaq
Renaud, H. J. P. 35 as-Sabi^ al-M uhassin b. Ibr. 1-F ad a'il
R Rescher, O. 323, 370 as-Sabi : T a b it b. Sinan as-Sahaw i: M. b. 'A r.
Reynolds, B. 51, 114 as-.^a'bi; 'A n iii b. Sarahil as-Sahib: Ism. b. 'A b b a d
a r-R ab a'i: 'A li b. M. b. S u ja ' R hodokanakis, N. 12 f., 23 as-Sahid; M. b. A . b, Mahdi
as-Sa'b i, a. S a 'id 480
b. a. r-R a b i': A . b. M. R ibera, J. 4, 378 b. S a b 'in ; 'A b d -al-H aq q b. Ibr. b. as-fiahid; M. b. Ibr., Fath-ad-din
a r-R a b i' b. D a b u ' a l-F azari 387 R ichter, G. X V , 114 b. as-Sabiq; M. b. M., Jam al-ad-din b. Sahin: 'I", b. A ., a. Hafs
a r-R ab i' b. H u taym 382 R ichter, H. 15, 118, 336 b. Sahin, a, l-'A b b as 609
b. Sabiq: M. b. S a'd
a. r-R a b i' a l-K a la 'i; Su. b, Musa b. R id w an ; 'A l. b. Y u ., a. 1-Q. as-Sabti: a l-'A b b a s (b.) M,, a. 1-Q. b. Sahl: a. l-.Asbag
a r-R a b i' b. Su. al-Jizi 416 f. b. R id w an : 'A li as-Sabti; b. H am m ad, a. 'A l. Sahl b. Harun 504
as-S ab ti; b. S a b ' Sahl b. S a 'd as-Sa'idi 379
646 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM ES IN D E X OF P R O P E R N AM ES 647

S ah l b. Zanjalah I^ldn 141 S aliba, Jam il 34 S ib aw ayh : 'A m r b. 'U tm an


as-Sarraf, A. H. 58
as-Sahm i: H am zah b. Y u ., a. 1-Q. Salibi, K . S. X V I , 57 Sibaw ayh al-M isri; M. b. Musa b. 'A b d -al-
as-Sarraj; J a 'fa r b. A.
Sahnun ( A bd-as-Salam b. Sa'id) 600, I^ldn a. S a lih : A . b. 'A bd-al-M alik a s-S a rra j: M. b. Ishaq, a. l-'A b b a s 'A z iz
140 as-Sibli; M. b. 'A l.
Salih b. A . al-H am adani 165, 168, 483 as-Saruji; 'A li b. M. b. a. s-Surur
b. Sahnun; M. Salih b. A. b. H aiibal 446 as-Sibli, a. B akr 289
as-Saruji; M. b. 'A li b. A yb a k
a-ahrastani; M. b. 'A b d -a l-K arim Salih b. 'A li b. B u htu r 47 S ib t b. a l-'A ja m i: A . b. Ibr.
b. S aryah : 'A b id
a-Sahrazuri; M. b. Mahmud as-Salih b. al-K am il: A y y u b b. M. S ib t b. a l-'A ja m i: Ibr. b. M.
as-gasi; M. b. 'A li al-Q affal
Sahrdar b. Sira w ayh a d -D a y la m i 385, 483 Salih b. K aysan 63 Sib t b. al-Jaw zi; Y u . b. Qizoglu
b. Sasra: A. b. M., N ajm -ad-din
b. Sah ryar, a. Ishaq 608 Salih b. M., Jazarah 520, IHdn 142 b. Sidah: 'A li b. Ism.
b. Sasra; al-H . b. H ib atallah, a. 1-M awahib
S ahrzad 51 Siddiqi, M. Z. 162
Salih b. 'U ., 'A lam -ad-din al-B u lqin i 602, b. Sasra: M. b. M.
as-S ah tiyan t; A y y u b 604 as-Satibi; M. b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. S a'a d ah b. Sihab az-Zuhri: M. b. Muslim
a s-S a h tiya n i: M. b. 'A l. ihab-ad-din b. 'Im M -a d -d in : A. b. 'I m M
Salih b. Y a . b. B u h tu r 47, 57, 121, 157 f. as-S atib i; M. b. Su. (b. M.) b. 'A bd -al-M alik
b. as-S a':: Alt b. A n jab S a lim a h : see also Salam ah b. as-Sihnah: M. b. M., M uhibb-ad-din
as-Satibi; M. b. Su. b. M. b. Su.
a. s-Saib al-M ahzum i 510 a. Salim ah (b. 'A r.) 379 as-Sijazi; M as'ud b. 'A li
Sau vaget, J. X V I , 124, i 57, 444
b. S a 'id : A . b. S a'id , a. l-'A b b a s al-M a'dani Salim ah b. Dinar 379 S avign ac, R . 12 f. as-Sijistani: M. b. T ah ir, a. Su.
b. S a 'id ; 'A li b. Musa S allam b. M iskin 369 as-Silafi: A . b. M.
b. a. a yb a h ; 'A l. b. M., a. B akr
as-Sa'td (Artuqid) 596 as-Sallam i; see also as-Salam i as-fiim sati: M. b. 'A li
b. a. S ayb a h : M. b. 'U tm an
S a'id b. 'A l., a. 1-H ayr ad-D ihli 500, 504, 525 as-Sallam i: al-H u. b. A ., a. 'A li b. Sin a: al-Hu. b. 'A l.
as-Sayban i: M. b. al-H.
S a'id b. A . al-A ndalusi 92, 535 Salm aw ayh 137 as-S ayb i; M. b. 'A li, Jam al-ad-din Sinan b. T a b it b. Qurrah 48, 54, 78, 88, 104,
S a 'id b. A sad al-U m aw i 427 Sam : Shem as-Saydalani: Y u . b. A . b. ar-R uh ayl (?) 114, 504 f., 507, 541, 595 f-
S a 'id b. Aw s, a. Z a y d al-A nsari 504 a. S a m a h ; 'A r. b. Ism. a. s-Sindi; S u h a y l b. D akw an
b. a. s-Sayf: M. b. Ism.
S a'id b. Bir 147 Sindi al-W arraq 428
(b.) as-Sam 'an i; 'A b d -a l-K arim b. M., a. S a 'd S a yf b. p i Y a z a n 188
S a'id b. al-B itriq: E u tychiu s (b.) as-Sam 'an i: 'A b d -a r-R ah im b. 'A b d -al- as-Sinhaji: a. l-'A ra b
S a y f b. M. al-H araw i 162
S 4 'id b. Fath u n 35 K arim as-Sirafi: al-H . b. 'A l.
S a y f b. 'U . 188, 392, 515
S a 'id b. al-H akam b. a. M aryam 478 (b.) as-Sam 'an i: Mansur b. M., a. 1-M uzaffar Siraw ayh b. Sahrdar a d -D a y la m i 351, 385,
Sayf-ad-daw lah 596
S a 'id b. H M im a l-y a lid i 154, 482 as-Sam arqandi; N asr b. M., a. l-L a y t 473 , 483, 523
a. s-S ayh ; 'A l. b. M.
S a'id b. 'Isa a l-A sja 'i 363 as-Sirazi; 'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. M. al-Fam !
as-Samaw^al b. Y a . al-M agribi 46 f., 53, 601 b. S ayh : A. b. M.
S a 'id b. Ju b ay r 517, 590, IHdn 136 as-Sam hiidi: 'A li b. 'A l., N ur-ad-din as-Sirazi; 'A b d -al-W ah id b. S iyah
as-Saym ari; al-H u. b. 'A li
S a 'id b. K a tir b. 'U fa y r 478, 501 as-Sam i: M. b. al-Jahm as-Sirazi; H ib atallah b. 'A b d -a l- W arit, a.
b. as-Sayrafi: 'A li b. D aw u d
S a 'id b. Mansur IHdn 136 b. as-Sam m ak: 'U tm an b. A ., a. 'A m r b. as-Sayrafi: 'A li b. M unjib i-Q-
S a 'id b. a. M aryam ; S a 'id b. al-H akam as-Sam m an; Ism. b. 'A li, a. S a 'd a s-S a yyad al-M anbiji: Salam ah as-Sirazi; Ibr. b. 'A li, a. Ishaq
S a 'id b. al-M usayyab 292, 334 f., 368, 381, 5 ams-ad-din (brother of Jam al-ad-din al- a s -S a y y a l, Jam M -ad-din 5, 65, 116, 133, 147, as-Sirazi; Mahmud b. M as'ud
517, 600 U stadar) 434 as-Sirazi; M. b. 'A b d -a l-'A ziz
408
S a'id b. Sallam 444 S a yyid , Fu^ad 5, 54, 78, 81, 248, 307, 334, as-vSirazi; b. Zarkub
am s-ad-din b. N asir-ad-din: M. b. 'A l.
S a 'id b. Su. al-G afiqi 465 b. Sam urah; 'U . b. 'A li as-Sirazi, M ajd-ad-din; M. b. Y a 'q u b al-
343, 460, 484 f., 501, 517
S a 'id b. 'U fa y r; S a 'id b. K a tir Sanadi; Sindi b. as-S ayyid 'A fif-ad -d in : M. b. M. b. (as- Firuzabadi
S a 'id b. 'U tm an , a. 'A li b . as-Sakan 404, 436 Sanchez Alonso, B. X I V as-Sirazi, a. N asr 595
Sayyid ) 'A fif-ad-din
S a'id b. Y a ., a. 'U tm an al-U m aw i 394, 504, as-Sandubi, H. 305 b. Sajo^id-an-nas; M. b. M. b. Sirin; M.
5 11, 588 b. as-Sani; A. b. M. b. Ishaq, a. B akr Sbath , P. 48, 78, 137, 359, 422, 424 Siroyah b. H osraw b. H u rm uz 123
a. S a 'id b. Y u n u s: 'A r. b. A. S an jar ad-D aw adari 338 S it; Seth
Scaliger, J. 90
S a 'id (b. Zayd) 589 as-Sanji: M. b. H am daw ayh S ch ach t, J. 63 f., 69, 75, 77, 13 1, 1 7 1, 245, vSlane, McG. de 82-84, 175, 177, 283, 292,
as-S aji; al-M u tam an b. A. S aqiq b. Salim ah, a. W a il 278 315, 343, 381, 397, 400, 412, 423, 4 5 9 ,
354 , 393, 452
as-Saji: Z a k a riy a b. Y a. Saqr, A. 434, 529 462, 473, 483, 507, 532 f.
Schaeder, H . H . 176
b. as-Sakan: S a 'id b. 'U tm an , a. 'A li .W a h b il b. S a'd 95 Schefer, C. 116 Sm ith, M argaret 368
Sakir, M ahm ud M. 96, 392, 397, 427, 434, 441 Sarahil (inscription) 19 Scheidius, E. 290 Socrates 241
as-S akk aki: Y u . b. a. B a k r as-Sarahsi; A. b. a t-T a yyib Solom on (Sulaym an) 123, 261, 290, 318,
Scheller, P. 15, 61
as-Sakuni 243 as-Saraqusti; Q. b. T a b it b. Hazm 385, 547 , 563, 574-576
Schregle, G. 188 f.
as-Sakuni: M. b. A. b. H alil, a. I-H attab as-Saraqusti; R azin b. M u'aw iyah Schreiner, M. 47 Som ogyi, J. de X V I , 75, 144, 181, 503
b. as-Salah: 'U tm an b. 'A r., a. 'A m r as-Saraqusti: T a b it b. H azm Schulz, Marie 15 Sourdel, D. 413
S al4h-ad-din H alil b. A y b a k as-Sarif an-N assabah 475 ( = M. b. A s'a d S ch w a lly, F. 28, 360, 391, 509, 529 Sperber, J. 119, 122
Saiah-ad-din: H alil b. M. al-Jaw w ani ?) Speyer, H. 27
Selim 50, 1 7 5
S a l4h-ad-din (Y u . b. A y y u b ) 104 f., 107, as-fiarif ar-R ad i; M. b. al-H u. Sellheim , R. 73, 322, 387, 422, 506 Spies, O. 33, 109, 143 f., 148 f., 403, 414, 465
172 f., 175, 296, 4 11, 596, IHdn 138 as-Sarifini; Ibr. b. M., a. Ishaq Sem seddin, M. X V I Spitaler, A. 421
S a la m a h : see also Salim ah as-S ari'i: 'A r. b. M aki b. 'U tm an S erjean t, R. B. 422, 484 Sporl, J. ro
b. S alam ah; a. 1-Mahasin S arik b. 'A l. a n -N ah a'i 439, IHdn 13Q (?) Seth (Sit) 568-570 Sprenger, A. 28, 188, 431, 453, 475
S alam ah b. al-F ad l (ar-Razi) 394 as-fiarisi; A. b. 'A b d -al-M u min Seybold, C. F. 196, 277, 378 Spuler, B. X V I , 49, 75
Sal&mah a s-S a y y M al-M anbiji 348 as-fiarji a l-Y a m a n i: A. b. A. b. 'A b d -a l-L a tif Sezgin, F u at 4, 88, 381 Stam m ler, W . 31
as-Salam i 322 Steinschneider, M. 35, 77, 140
b. a-Sarqi; A . {or his brother, 'A l. ?) b. M., Shem (Sam) 58
a s-S a lim i: 'A l. b. Musa a. Ham id Shotw ell, J. T . 9, 16 Stern, S. M. 79 f., 126, 196, 469, 477, 490
as-Sal^mi: M. b. N asir, a. 1-Fadl Sarqi b. Q utam i 504 b. S ib at (S b a t): H am zah b, A. Stinespring, W . F. 151
648 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S 649

S torey, C. A. X V I , 4, 7, 58, 146, 148, 161 f., Su. b. S a 'd (al-qudah) 413 b. T alh ah , K am al-ad-din 399 {see also M. b. b. a. T a y y : Y a .
180, 258, 458 Su. b. b in t Surahbil: Su. b. 'x\r. b. a. t - T a y y ib : 'A li b. 'A l.
Talhah)
S trzygow sk y, J. 178 as-Suli: M. b. Y a . a. t-T a y y ib : Tahir b. 'A l.
a. TM ib (b. 'A bd-al-M uttalib) 161, 433
S u 'a y b b. a. H am zah IHdn i j g b. S u m a y ': M ahmud b. Ibr., a. 1-Q. T B : A. b. 'A li, a. B a k r al-H atib al-B agd ad i
Tam im ad-D ari 122, 589
a -S u 'a y b i: M. b. A. b. S u 'a y b Teres, E. 465
b. S u m a y ': Mahmud b. S u m a y ', a. 1-H. T a m im b. M. b. Tam im , a. J a 'fa r 600
S u 'b a h b. al-H ajjaj 517, 526 f., IHdn 139 as-Sum unni: A . b. M., Taqi-ad-din Them istius 46
Tam im b. Y u . b. Tasfin 312
as-Subayki: M. b. M ahfuz Suraybah, Nur-ad-din 425, 435 Theodem ir i i g
at-Tam im i: 'A r. b. a. H^tim
as-Subki: 'A b d -al-W ah h ab b. 'A li, Taj-ad-din S u rayh 591, 601 at-Tam im i: M. b. A ., a. l-'A ra b Theophanes 76
as-Subki: A lt b. A b d -a l-K afi, Taqi-ad-dm b. S a ra y j 279 {see also A. b. 'U . and 'U . b. A.) at-Tam im i: M. b. J a 'fa r Theophilus of Edessa 76
Sublet, J. 452 as-Suri: G a y t b. 'A li T hucydides 120
at-T am im i: M. b. al-Q ., a. 1-H.
b. Sudah, 'A bd -as-Salam 5 as-S u ri: M. b. 'A li, a. 'A l. at-T ibi: al-H u. b. 'A l,
a. T am m am (H abib b. Aws) 412
a-gudi (?), a. 'A l. 585 as-Suruti: 'A l. b. M. b. M andaw ayh at-T ibrizi: Ism. b. al-M utanna
Tam m am b. 'Amir b. 'A lq a m a h 184
as-Sufi; M. b. M, al-K an ji as-Susi: M. b. al-Jahm a t-T ibrizi: M. b. 'A L , al-H atib
Tam m am b. M., a. 1-Q. a r-R azi 432, 522
S u fyan (b. S a'id ) at-T aw ri 276, 293, 518, as-Susi, a. l-'A b b 4s 425 at-T an afisi: 'A li b. M. at-Tifasi: A . b. Y u .
527, 590, 600, IHdn 137 Suter, H. 35, 251 Tim ur (Tamerlane) 414, 597
T an sar 290
Sufyan b. U ya yn ah 293, 3 11, 518, 526, 591, b. S u w ayd : 'A l. b. 'A li at-Tinnisi: 'A li b. B adr
at-T an u hi: 'A li b. M.
600 b. a t-T iq ta q a : M. b. 'A li
as-S u yu ti: 'A r. b. a. B akr, Jalal-ad-din at-T an u hi; Ibr. b. A.
S u h ayl b. D akw an, a. s-Sindi 277 a t-T irm id i: M. b. 'A li, al-H akim
at-T an u hi: al-Muhassin b. 'A li
as-Suhayli: 'A r. b. 'A l. a t-T irm id i: M. b. 'Isa , a. 'I s a
Taqi-ad-din b. b in t a l-A 'a z z: 'A r. b. 'A b d -al-
Suhaym ('Am ir) b. H afs, a. 1-Y aq zan 381 at-Tirm idi: M. b. Ism ., a. Ism.
W ahhab
as-Suhraw ardi: 'A b d -al-Q ah ir b. 'A l., a. a t-T a 'a lib i: 'A bd-al-M alik b. M. Taqi-ad-din b. D aq iq-al-'id : M. b. 'A li T ogan , A . Zeki V elidi X V I , 201
n-N ajib a t-T a 'a lib i: A. b. M. a t-T a 'la b i Tornberg, C. J. 50, 116, 127, 312
Taqi-ad-din b. F ah d : M. b. M.
as-Suhraw ard!; 'U . b. M. at-T ab aran i: Su. b. A ., a. 1-Q. b. T u g ril; 'U . b. A y y u b
Taqi-ad-din al-F asi: M. b. A .
as-Suhraw ardi: Y a . b. H abas a t-T ab ari: A. b. 'A l., Muhibb-ad-din Taqi-ad-din al-Q alqasandi: a. B a k r b. M. T u grilbek 177
b. g u j i '; 'A l i b . M. (b.) at-T ab ari: A. b. Sahh al-Misri a t-T u jib i: 'A tiq b. H alaf
Taqi-ad-din b. T a y m iya h : A . b. 'A b d -al-
a. S u ja '; M. b. 'A ll a t-T ab ari: 'A li b. M. b. 'A l. b. Hnwn a t-T u jib i: al-Q. b. Y u ., 'A lam -ad-din
H alim
a. S u ja ': M. b. al-H u. a t-T a b ari: 'A li b. Rabban T u la ym a t, 'A bd -al-Q ad ir A . 55, 154
Taqizadeh, S. H . 251
u ja ' b, Paris ad-D uhli 523 b. T u lu n : A .
a t-T ab ari: M. b. A ., Jam al-ad-din b. M uhibb- a t-Tarabulu si: 'A li b. 'A l. b. M ahbub
as-Sukkari (?) 243 ad-din b. T iilu n : M.
T a ra f b. Ludan 47
as-Sukkari; M. b. M aym un, a. Ham zah at-T ab ari: M. b. Jarir a. T u m ay la h : Y a . b. W adih
a^ T arasu si: at-Tarsusi
as-Sulam i: 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. 'A bd-as-Salam , a t-T ab ari: M. b. Salih, a. 1-H. b. T arh an , a. B akr al-B alh i 401, 513 f. a. T u ra b an-N ahsabi 340
'Izz-ad-din a t-T ab ari: T ah ir b. 'A l., a. t-T a y y ib {see also M. b. 'A li b. Tarh an and M. b. at-Turk(u)m ani: 'A li b. 'Utm ^n
as-Sulam i; M. b. 'A l. b. a. 1-Fadl, araf-ad-din at-T ab b ah , M. R agib 268, 274, 444, 514 Tarhan at-Turki) at-T u rtu si: M. b. al-W alid
as-Sulam i: M. b. al-Hu. T a b it (b. Aslam) al-Bunani P la n 139 T a M h DimaSq: 'A li b. al-H ., a. 1-Q. b. a t-T u si: al-H . b. M.
as-Sulam i (?), a. 'A m r 466 T a b it b. H azm as-Saraqusti 400, 588 a t-T u si: b. Masruq
'A sa k ir
b. S u laym al-A sw ani: 'A l. b. A. T a b it b. Q. b. T a b it as-Saraqusti 400 b. a t-T a rju m a n (i): M. b. al-H u. at-Tiisi: M. b. al-H.
Su laym an : Solomon T a b it b. Qurrah 104, 241, 541 f. (?) a t-T u sta ri: Ishaq b. M.
at-T arsiisi: 'U tm an b. 'A l.
Sulaym an the M agnificent 172 T a b it b. Sinan b. T a b it b. Qurrah (as-Sabi^) b. at-T u yu ri: al-M ubarak b. 'A b d -al-Jab b ar
b. T asfin : Ibr."b. Y u .
Su. b. 'A l., a. 1-H. az-Zanjan i 458 82, 122, 503, 541 f. (? ?) b. T asfin : T am im b. Y u . a t-T u zari: 'U . b. M., Fahr-ad-din
Su. b. 'A r. b. b in t Surahbil (Sarahbil) I^ldn T acitu s 67, lo i T a sk op riiza d eh : A . b. M ustafa T y a n , E. 362
138 at-T ad m u ri: Ishaq b. Ibr. T a ta r az-Zahir 328, 412, 597
Su. b. A ., a. 1-Q. at-T ab aran i 335, 400, 403, U
at-T aglib i: M. b. al-H arit Tauer, F. 4, 175
405, 453 f., 522, 588, 594, 600, IHdn 137 b. T agribirdi: Y u . 'U b M a h b. as-Sam it 517, IHdn 137
Tamils (b. K aysan ) IHdn 140
Su. b. 'A li b. 'A b d -as-S am i' 427 at-T ah an aw i 251, 378 T a w b ah (Y a. ?) b. 'A b d a l ('A b d a k ?) IHdn 'U b a y d : 'A b id '
Su. b. a l-A s'at, a. D aw ud as-Sijistani 305, a t-T ah aw i: A. b. M. 141 a. 'U b a y d : al-Q. b. Sallam
360, 363, 401, 446 f., 520 f., 588, 595 b. at-T ah h an : Y a . b. 'A li, a. 1-Q. at-T aw hidi: 'A li b. M., a. H ayy a n 'U b a y d b. M. al-Is'ird i 525, 595
Su. b. BilM P la n 136 b. T ah ir: M. b. Tahir, a. 1-Fadl b. T a w it at-T an ji, M. 72, 322 'U b a y d b. 'U m a y r 384
Su. b. D aw ud, a. D a w M at-T ayalisi 518, b. a. T ah ir (Tayfur): A. a. T a w r: Ibr. b. H alid 'U b a y d , A . 217
600 a. 'U b a y d a h : M a'm ar b. al-M utanna
T ah ir b. 'A l., a. t-T a y y ib a t-T a b ari 279, at-T aw ri: S u fyan
Su. b. Ila la f, a. 1-W alid a l-B a ji 414, 523, a t-T a y alisi: Hisam b. 'A bd -al-M alik, a. 1- 'U b a yd a h (b. 'A m r) IHdn 139
354, 415, 584
I^ldn 140 T ah ir b. H . b. 'U . b. H abib 455 a l-'U b a y d a li: A. b. M uhanna
W aiid
Su. b. H am zah, Taqi-ad-din a. 1-Fadl al- a t-T a y alisi: Su. b. D aw ud, a. D aw ud 'U b a yd a lla h b. 'A l. b. H urradadbih 84, 486,
T ah ir b. M ufaw w az al-M a'afiri as-fiatibi 523
M aqdisi 600 505
T ah ir b. M., a. 1-M uzaffar al-Isfarayin i 65 at-T a ym i: Ism. b. M., a. 1-Q.
Su. b. H assan b. J u lju l 54, 78, 81, 92, 94, i i i 'U b a yd a lla h b. 'A b d -a l-K arim , a. Z u r'ah
T ah ir b. Y a. b. a. 1-H ayr al-'Im ran i 593 b. T a y m iya h : 'A b d -a l-G an i b. M.
Su. b. J a 'fa r al-Isnaw i 415 Taj-ad-diii b. M uham m ad 98 b. T a y m iya h : 'A bd -al-Q ah ir b. 'Abd-al-(^ani ar-R azi 395, 400, 436, 520, 588, IHdn 14 1
a. Su. al-M antiqi as-Sijistani: M. b. Tahir a t-T a k riti: 'A l. b. 'A li b. S u w ayd b. T a y m iy a h : A . b. 'A b d -al-H alim , Taqi-ad- 'U b a yd a lla h b. A . b. H urradadbih; 'U b a y d
Su. b. Mihran a l-A 'm a s 277, 362, 517, 591, a t-T a 'la b i: A . b. M. din allah b. 'A l.
601, IHdn 139 a t-T a la q i: Ishaq b. Ibr. 'U b a yd a lla h b. A . b. a. Tahir (Tayfur) 81,
b. T a y m iya h : M. b. al-Q.
Su. b. Musa, a. r-R a b i' a l-K a la 'i 396, 402, 587 Talas, A s'a d 38 T aym u r, A. 277 153, 462
Su. b. S ab S a. r-R a b i' as-Sabti: b. S ab ' b. T a lh ah : M. 'U b a yd a lla h b. 'A lt b. al-M aristaniyah 463
T a y iim a rt 386
650 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S 651

U b ayd allah b. al-H u. b. 'A ll b. al-Hu. b. "All 'U m arah b. W atim ah 72, 191, 506 b. W ad ih : A. 152, 165, 250, 277 f., 281 f., 316 f., 322,
b. a. T a lib 475 'U m arah b. Z ayd 403, 504 {identity ?) b. W ad ih ; A . b. a. Y a 'q iib a l-Y a 'q u b i 334, 361, 363, 394, 398, 400 f., 404, 408,
^Ubaydallah b. Jibrtl b. B u h tisu ' 79 al-'U m ari: A. b. Y a . b. Fadlallah al-W adiyasi 604 413 f., 417, 424, 431, 4 3 5 , 442, 446, 448,
U baydallah b. M. b. 'A^isah 505 al-'U m ari, A k ram D . 72 W agner, F. 42 450, 4 5 3 , 461-463, 468-471, 473-475, 482,
U b aydallah b. ^U. al-Q aw ariri 520 al-U m aw i: H alid b. Hiam 487, 501, 520, 523 f.
a. W ah b 545
U b aydallah b. Z iya d 529 al-U m aw i: S a 'id b. A sad a. W ah b az-Zahid 609
U b a y y al-M uradi 528 al-U m aw i: S a 'id b. Y a ., a. 'U tm an b. W ah b : 'A l.
b. a. 'U d a y b a h ; A. b. M. U m ayya h 407 W ah b b. M unabbih 9 1, 123, 187, 335, 510, a l-Y M i'i: 'A l. b. A s'a d , 'A fif-ad-din
al-U dfuw i: J a 'fa r b . T a 'la b (?), K am al-ad-din U m ay y a h b. 'A l. b. 'A m r ('U .) b. 'U tm a n 444 563 f., IHdn 140 Yagbe^a S eyon 119
a l-'U d ri: A . b. U., a. l-'A b b as a l-'U q a y li: M. b. 'A m r, a. J a 'fa r W ahb b. W ah b, a. 1-B a^ tari 401, 588 al-Y agm u ri: Y u . b. A .
b. U ht 'Isa b. F arruhansah: M. b. al-Hu. b. 'U q b a h ; Musa a. W a il: Saqiq b. Salim ah Y a h ia , Osm an 430
'U k asah , T a rw a t 515 b. 'U q d a h ; A. b. M., a. l-'A b b a s W a k i': M. b. H alaf b. H ayya n , a. B a k r Y a . b. 'A l. b. ad-D ahh ak a l-B a b lu tti 362
b. 'U la y y a h ; Ism. b. Ibr. 'U rfu d(t)ah 191 Y a . b. 'A b d -a l-'A z im al-Jazzar 163
W a k i' b. al-Jarrah 363
U lu g h a n i253 a l-U rm aw i; 'A l. b, Y u . b. Y u n u s W ali-ad-din (b.) a l-'Ira q i: A . b. 'A b d -ar- Y a . b. 'A b d -al-W ah h ab , a. Z a k a riya b.
a. Um^mah b. an-N aqqa: M. b. 'A ll 'U rw a h b. az-Zu b ayr 6g, 103 f., 395 R ahim M andah 283, 406, 459, 594 f.
b. 'U . : 'A l. b. 'U . b. a l-H attab b. a. U sam ah: al-H arit (b. M.) al-W alid b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz b. A b an 444 Y a . b. 'A b d a l ('A b d a k ?): T aw b ah
U. b. ^Al. ('Ubaydallah) az-Zahraw i 472 U sam ah b. M unqid 173, 282, 305, 365 al-W alid b. 'A b d -al-M alik I ^ldn 140 Y a . b. A d am 116
b Abd-al-'^Aziz 294, 410, 590 U sam ah b. Z ayd 335, 346 a l-W alid b. al-H u. = S arqi b. Q u tim i (?) Y a . [b. 'A d i !] an-N ahw i 77 (see loan nes
'U . b. A ., a. H afs b. Sahin 404, 435 b. a. U s a y b i'a h : A . b. al-Q. al-W alid b. M uslim al-Q urasi ad-D im asqi 395 Philoponus)
'U . b. A ., a. H azim a l-'A b d a w i 522 a l-'U sfu ri: H alifah b. ^ layyat a. 1-W alid a t-T a yalisi: H isam b. 'A b d -al- Y a . b. A k ta m 281 f.
U. b. A ., a. 1-Q. K am al-ad-dm b. a. Ja rM ah a l-'U ta q i: M. b. 'A l. M alik Y a . b. 'A li al-M a'arri 272
b. a l-'A d im 48, 78, 98, 107, 122, 125 f., b. 'U tb a h ; A. b. 'A li b. 'In a b ah W angelin, H . 188 Y a . b. 'A ll, a. 1-Q. b. a t-Jah h an 450, 477, 533
151, 158, 170 f., 174 f-, 277, 399. 412, 429, b. 'U tb a h : M. b. 'A l. ('U bayd allah ) al-W aqid i: M. b. 'U . Y a . b. 'A li, Rasid(-ad-din) a l-'A tt^ r 450-452,
4 4 3, 4 4 5 , 452 f., 4 5 7, 465 i-, 482, 492, 525, a l-'U tb i: M. b. "Al. b. 'U tb a h b. W arah : M. b. Muslim 525, 592
532, 541 f-, 544 f-, 583, 589, 597 a l-'U tb i: M. b. 'A b d -al-Jab b ar, a. N asr W araqah 192 Y a . b. 'A y y a s al-Q attan 358
'U . b. A . b. S u rayj 279 'U tm an b. 'A l. a l-'Ira q i 430 al-W aratin i: A sad b. H am d aw ayh Y a . b. A y y u b (al-Misri) IHdn 138
'U . b. 'A ll, a. H afs al-M u taw w i'i al-A dib 'U t m in b. 'A l. at-Tarsusi 126, 545 al-W arraq: M. b. Y u . a. Y a . b. a. B a k r b. 'A sim i 5o
414 f., 584 'U tm a n b. 'A r., a. 'A m r b. as-Salah 274, al-W arraq: Sindi Y a . b. H abas as-Suhraw ardi 355
'U . b. 'A ll b. al-M ulaqqin 414 f., 426, 449, 276, 283, 302, 415, 448, 492, 514, 525, W arton, T . 197 Y a . b. H akam a l-6 a z a l 181
584, 5 9 3, 5 9 5, 603 584, 594 b. W asil: M. b. S ^ ih Y a . b. H alid al-B arm aki 314
'U . b. 'A ll an-N abtitt 604, 608 'U tm an (b. 'A ffan ) 29, 65, 119, 278, 382, al-W asiti: A . b. B a h tiya r b. al-M anda i Y a . b. al-H . al-H asani al-'A law i (al-Hasimi)
'U . b. 'AH b. Sam urah 484 f. a l-W asiti: H alaf b. M. 475
406, 534 , 573, 589 f-
'U . b. 'A ll, Siraj-ad-din a l-B azzar 598 'U tm M b. A ., a. 'A m r b. as-Sam m ak 599 al-W asiti: al-H . b. 'A li Y a . b. al-H u. b. a l-B itriq 431
'U . a l-'A rab i: 'U . b. M. b. M as'ud 'Utm An b. al-H attab , a. d -dun ya al-A sajj 352 al-W asiti: Ibr. b. Musa Y a . b. M a'in 341-343, 35, 362, 393 , 43 ^,
'U . b. A y y u b b. T u gril as-SayyM 588, 607 'U tm a n b. 'I s a a l-B a la ti (B u layti) 428 f. al-W asiti: M. b. A . 446, 449, 519, 526 f., 608
'U . b. al-A zraq, a. H afs 429 'U tm 4n b. 'I s a b. DarbSs al-M arani 397, 587 al-W asiti: M. b. al-H . Y a . b. al-M ubarak a l-Y a zid i 510 f.
'U . b. F ah d ; 'U . b. M N ajm -ad-din 'U tm a n b. M., Fahr-ad-din at-T u zari 588 f. al-Wassa^: M. b. Ishaq ( = M. b. A. b. Ishaq) Y a . b. M. b. 'A b b a d b. H an i 394
'U . b. al-F arid 369, 604 'U tm ^n b. S a'id , a. 'A m r ad-D ani 420, IHdn b. al-Wasa^: W atim ah b. Miisa b. al-F u rat Y a . b. M. ad-D am sisi 248
'U . b. al-H ajib, 'Izz-ad -d in al-A m ini 452, 468 140 al-W assaf: 'A l. b. F adlallah Y a . b. M. b. H aldun 586
'U . b. H arun IHdn 142 'U tm a n b. S a 'id ad-D arim i 431, 446 W atim ah b. Musa b. a l-F u ra t b. al-Wassa^ Y a . b. M. b. H u b ayrah 608
'U . (b. al-H attab ) 13, 47, 251, 253, 272, 282, 'U tm a n b. 'U ., 'A fif-ad -d in an-N asiri 434 404, 510 f. Y a . b. M ., araf-ad-din al-M unawi 281
321, 360, 379-384, 386, 389, 406, 517, 'U tm an b. 'U . b. al-H ^jib 315 Y a . b. M., Taqi-ad-din (b.) al-K irm an i 587
a l-W atiq 275
534, 551, 5 5 4, 5 7 3, 589. 138 a l-'U tm a n i: M. b. 'A r. a l-W a tw a t: M. b. Ibr. a l-K u tu b i Y a . b. M. b. Y u . al-A nsari al-G arn a ti 410 f.
'U . b. al-H u., a. 1-H attab b. D ihyah 339 f., al-'U tm ^ ni, a. 1-Q. 405 al-W aziri: al-H . b. M. Y a . b. M ujahid al-Ilbiri 608
589 'U w a y m ir b. Z a y d (a. d -D ard a ) 324 W eisw eiler, M. 329, 445, 451, 468 Y a . b. Musa, H a tt IHdn 142
'U . b. a l-y id r 469 al-U w aysi: 'A b d -a l-'A ziz b. 'A l. W eitzm ann, K . 176 Y a . an-N ahw i: loan nes Philoponus
a. 'U . al-K in d i: M. b. Y u . b. 'U y a y n a h : Sufyan W ensinck, A . J. 127, 201, 274 (and Concor Y a . b. a r-R ab i' a l-'A b d i 590
'U . b. M. b. B ahir IHdn 142 dance passim) Y a . b. S a 'id a l-A n ta k i 138
'U . b. M. b. M as'u d a l-'A ra b i 604 V W h ittin g, C. E. J. 56 Y a . b. S a 'id al-Q attan 342, 518, 527
'U . b. M., N ajm -ad-din b. F ahd 316, 320, V ad et, J.-C. 399 Y a . b. S araf, M uhyi-ad-din a. Z a k a riy a
b. W h jan (?) 461
419-421, 429, 434, 440, 444 f., 452, 455, V ajd a, G. 257, 328, 422, 441, 464, 634 W idengren, G. 19 an-N aw aw i 277 f., 281 f., 302 f., 334, 3 37,
463, 475 f-, 480 f., 483, 496, 500, 506, 526 V eccia Vaglieri, L. 64 W iener, A. 413 341, 346 f., 353 f., 359, 396, 405, 415, 417,
'U . b. M. an-N asafi 470 V itestam , G . 431 W iet, G. 124 448, 450, 456, 483, 584, 5 9 4 , 607
'U . b. M. as-Suhraw ardi 239 Vollers, K . 97 W illiam of M alm esbury 336 Y a . b. a. T a y y H u m ayd 50, 431
'U . b. M. b. Y u . al-K in d t 478 V oorhoeve, P. 269, 458 W illiam of T yre 196 Y a . b. a. U naysah 363
'U . b. Raslan al-B u lqm i 604 Vossius, G. J. 61 W in der, R . B . 56 Y a . b. W ad ih , a. T u m ayla h IHdn 142
'U . b. Sabbah 162, 462, 473, 475, 480, 506 Y a . b. Y a . (b. K a tir al-Andalusi) 519, IHdn
W itte k , P. 152
'U . b. Sahl ad-D in aw an IHdn 14 1 W 140
W olfson, H. A . 256
'U m arah b. 'A lt al-H akam i 173, 315, 469 b. W ad d ah : A. b. Maslamah W righ t, W . 58, 356, 388, 529 Y a . b. Y a . (a. Z a k a riy a an-Nisaburi) 519,
'U m arah b. Ju w ayn , a. H^run a l-'A b d i 517 b. W ad d ah : M. W iistenfeld, F. X V I , 3, 29, 72, 83, 122, 126, IHdn 141
IN D E X O F P R O P E R N A M E S 653
652 IN D E X OF P R O P E R N A M E S
Z iyad b. 'A t ., Sab(a)tun 600
Zam baur, E. de 35
Y a . b. Y a 'm u r (Y a'm ar) iH dn 142 Ziyadah, M. M ustafa X V I , 5, 147, 432
a. 1-Y u sr: Ism. b. Ibr. az-Zam in : M. b. (al-)M utanna, a. Miisa
a. Y a 4 a: A. b. 'A li b. al-M utauna Y u su f: Joseph az-Ziyadi; al-H . b. 'U tm an , a. Hassan
b. a z - Z a n i l a k a n i : M. b. 'A li, K am al-ad-diii
a. Y a 'la ; al-H alil b. 'A l. a. Y i i . : Y a 'q u b b. Ibr. Zoroaster 161
a s-Z an jan i: S a 'd b. 'A li b. M.
a. Y a 'la : M. b. al-H u. Y u . b. 'A l., a. 'U . b. 'A b d -a l-B arr 29, 32, Zotenberg, H. 114, 142, 179
az-Zanj& ni: Su. b. 'A l. b. a. 1-H.
b. a. Y a ^ a : M. b. M. 253, 293, 311, 324, 326, 348, 350, 359, az-Z u b ayd i: M. b. al-H u. (al-H.)
a z-Z a n ja n i: Y u . b. 'A li
Y a 'la b. U m ayyah 381 364, 366, 396, 404 f., 434, 436, 448, 466, az-Z u b ayr (father of 'U rw ah ) 395
as-Z anji: M uslim b. H alid
Y a ltk a y a , Serefettin 530 495, 523, 587, 592, 607, I'-ldn 140 b. az-Z u b ayr: 'A l.
b. a. Z a r': 'A li b. 'A L
al-Y am am i: A. b. M. b. 'U . Y u . b. 'A l., a. 1-W alid b. ad -D abb ag 421 f., 501 b. az-Z u b ayr: A . b. Ibr.
az-Zarandi: 'A l. b. A.
az-Zu b ayr b. B a k k a r; 45, 96, 99, 392, 418,
a. 1-Y am an : al-H akam b. N afi' Y u . b. 'A r. al-M izzi 275 f., 278, 367, 374, b. Zarkub-i-Sirazi 162
al-Y a m a iii: 'A b d -a l-B aq i b. ^Abd-al-Majid 427, 4 3 4 , 441, 4 7 5 , 480, 503, 591
393, 396, 415, 438, 44 7 , 515, 525, 608, az-Z arrad: 'A li b. al-H u.
a l-Y a iu an i: M. b. al-H u. /'/an 138 Z u h a y rb . al-'Ala^ a l-'A b si 406
a z - Z a w a w i : 'I s a b. M as'ud
a l-Y a q tin i: A. b. M., a. B akr Y u . b. A ., a. 1-Mahasin al-Y agm u ri ad- Zuh ayr b. H arb, a. H a yta m a h 519
Z a y d 254, 555 b. Zu h ayrah : 'Abd-'^al-Basit ('U .) b. M.
Y a 'q u b ; Jacob D im asqi 322, 422, 467 b. a. Z a y d : 'A l.
Y a 'q u b b. Ibr., a. Y u . 116, 327, 464, 591 Y u . b. A . b. a r-R u h ayl as-Saydalani 590, 592 b. Z a yd : A, b. M., Sihab-ad-din al-H au bali az-Zayni
Y a 'q u b b. Ishaq, a. 'A w an ah al-Isfarayini b. Z u h ayrah ; M. b. 'A L , Jam al-ad-din
Y u . b. A . as-Saffi 608 a. Z a yd ; A . b. Sahl
310, 416 Y ii. b. 'A ll, Sadid-ad-din a l-K azaru n i (?) 410 az-Zuhri 276 (?)
Z a y d b. 'A li 103, 590
Y a 'q u b b. Ishaq a l-K in d i 32, 89 Y u . b. 'A ll az-Zanjani 354 Z a y d b. H asim al-M urtada al-H asani 165, 481 az-Zuhri; 'A L b. 'A r .
Y a 'q u b b. a l-L a y t as-Saffar 507 Y ii. b. A y y u b : Salah-ad-din az-Zuhri: Ibr. b. S a 'd
Z a y d b. a. U naysah 363
Y a 'q u b b. Su fyan al-F asaw i 43, 72, 392, 406, Y u . b. a. B a k r as-Sakkaki 250, 531 az-Zuhri: Ishaq b. Jarir
Z ayn -al-'A b id in al-M unaw i; M. b. Y a .
Y ii. b. al-F adl a l-Y ah u d i al-H ayb ari 78 az-Zuhri: M. b. M uslim b. Sihab
4 5 3, 501, 510 Z ayn -ad-din; 'A r. b. A .
a l-Y a 'q iib i; A. b. a. Y a 'q u b Y u . b. H alil ( = the follow ing ?) 598, 601 b. Ziilaq: al-H . b. Ibr.
Z a y n - a d - d i n ; a. B akr b . al-H u.
Y a q u t (b. 'A l. al-H am aw i) 29, 43, 45, 4 9 !., Y u . b. H alil ad-D im asqi 524 az-Z u layh i (?) 472
Zayn-ad-din: Ridw an b . M.
a. Z u r'a h ad-D im asqi: 'A r . b. 'A m r
54 f., 65, 68, 71-73, 8 2 !., 89, 105-107, 126, Y ii. b. Ibr. (b. ad-D ayah) 80, 409, 510 Zayn-ad-din a l-'Ira q i; 'A b d -ar-R ah im b. al-
152, 174, 183, 250, 256, 272, 282, 284, 286, a. Z u r'a h ad-D im asqi; M. b. 'U tm a n
Y u . b. M. az-Zahir, a. H asim 56 Hu. a. Z u r'ah (b.) a l-'Ira q i: A . b. 'A b d -ar-R ah im ,
321 f., 350, 403-405, 4 11, 413 f-, 419 f-, Y ii. b. M utahhar, Sadid-ad-din (?) 410 b. Z a y y a n : Musa b. Y u .
Y ii. b. Q izoglu, a. 1-M uzaffar Sib t b. al-Jaw zi W ali-ad-din
422-424, 427-429, 4 3 5 , 4 4 6 !., 4 5 3 , 457-4 5 9 , Zechariah (Zakariya^) 563
a. Z u r'ah ar-R azi; 'U b a y d a lla h b. 'A b d -al-
461-463, 465-471, 473-475, 477, 482-484, 45, 109, 146, 272, 284, 288, 301, 345, 378 f., Ziadeh, F . J. 329
486 f., 502-504, 506, 510 f., 514, 516, K arim
381, 383, 385 f-, 393 , 490, 510, 515, 531, Zir Zalim 190
518, 524, 528, 535 564, 569, 590 b. Z u ra yq ; M. b. a. B akr
Z iy a d b. 'A l. a l-B a k k a i 394
a. 1-Y aq zan : Su haym ('Am ir) b. Hafs Y u . b. R a fi' b. S ad d M 104, 173, 596
Y a s b a k min M ahdi 'A zim -ad-daw lah, ad- Y ii. b. Sahin (grandson of Ibn H ajar) 445
D aw adar 329 Y u . b. Tagrib irdi 256, 326, 328, 499, 510
Y a s b a k {min Salm an Sah) al-M u a yy a d i Y ii. b. Y a . a l-B u w ay ti 281, 416
ad-D aw adar 328 Y ii. b. Y a . al-M agam i 592
b. Y asin A. b. M. a l-Y u su fi: Miisa b. M.
b. Y a z d a d ; 'A l. b. M.
Y a z d ja rd 386
Y a z d ja rd b. M ahbundad (Mahmandar) al- b. Z abalah; M. b. al-H.
K israw i 153 az-Zabidi: M. b. 'A li b. al-M u addin
Y a z id b. H arun 518, 608 a z-Z a b id i: M urtada
Y azid b. M., a. Z a k a riy a al-A zd i 121, 153 f., b. Zabr; 'A l. b. A ., a. M.
482, 545 b. Zabr: M. b. 'A l., a. Su.
al-Y a zid i; M. b. a l-'A bb as a z-Z a 'fa ra n i: al-H . b. M.
a l-Y a zid i: Y a . b. al-M ubarak Zafir b. H. (al-Hu.) al-A zdi 411
a l-Y a zu ri: al-H . b. 'A li b. 'A r. b. az-ZagCmi: 'A li b. 'U b a yd a lla h , a. 1-H.
Y ehu d ah hal-Lew i 355 az-Zahir: Barquq
Y oh an n an bar P en kaye 26 az-Zahir: Caqm aq
Y u m n 74 az-Zahir: H usqadam
a. 1-Y um n b. 'A sa k ir: 'A bd -as-Sam ad b. az-Zahir: T a tar
'A b d -al-W ah hab Zahir-ad-din: al-M ar'asi
a l-Y u n in i: 'A l. b. 'A b d -a l-'A z iz Zahir-ad-din al-K azariin i: 'A li b. M.
al-Y u n in i: 'A li b. M. b. az-Zahiri: A. b. M., Jam al-ad-din
al-Y u n in i: Musa b. M., Q utb-ad-din az-Zahraw i: 'U . b. 'A l. ('U bayd allah )
b. Y u n us: 'A r. b. A ., a. S a'id Z a k a riy a : Zechariah
Y u n u s b. 'A b d -a l-A 'la 416 a. Z a k a riya a l-A zd i: Y a z id b. M.
Y u n us b. B u k a y r 394 Z a k a riy a b. Y a . as-Saji 152, 436, 593
Y u n u s b. M ugit (Y unus b. M. b. Mugit) 608 Zaki-ad-din al-M undiri: 'A b d -a l-'A zim b.
Y ijn u s b. M. al-Mu^addib 274 f. 'A b d -al-Q aw i
Y im us (b. 'U b a y d ['A b id ?] al-Basri) IHan i j g Zalim b. 'A m r: a. 1-Asw ad ad -D u ali
Y u n us b. Y a z id 395 az-Zam aM ari: M ahmiid b. 'U ., a. 1-Q.

Das könnte Ihnen auch gefallen